Versione ebook di Readme.it powered by Softwarehouse.it    Life And Adventures Of Martin Chuzzlewit 
by Charles Dickens 
PREFACE 
What is exaggeration to one class of minds and perceptions
is plain truth to another. That which is commonly called a long-sight
perceives in a prospect innumerable features and bearings 
non-existent to a short-sighted person. I sometimes ask myself 
whether there may occasionally be a difference of this kind between 
some writers and some readers; whether it is ALWAYS the writer 
who colours highlyor whether it is now and then the reader 
whose eye for colour is a little dull? 
On this head of exaggeration I have a positive experiencemore 
curious than the speculation I have just set down. It is this: 
I have never touched a character precisely from the lifebut some 
counterpart of that character has incredulously asked me: "Now 
reallydid I ever reallysee one like it?" 
All the Pecksniff family upon earth are quite agreedI believe
that Mr. Pecksniff is an exaggerationand that no such character 
ever existed. I will not offer any plea on his behalf to so 
powerful and genteel a bodybut will make a remark on the 
character of Jonas Chuzzlewit. 
I conceive that the sordid coarseness and brutality of Jonas 
would be unnaturalif there had been nothing in his early 
educationand in the precept and example always before him
to engender and develop the vices that make him odious. But
so born and so bredadmired for that which made him hateful
and justified from his cradle in cunningtreacheryand avarice; 
I claim him as the legitimate issue of the father upon whom those 
vices are seen to recoil. And I submit that their recoil upon 
that old manin his unhonoured ageis not a mere piece of 
poetical justicebut is the extreme exposition of a direct truth. 
I make this commentand solicit the reader's attention to it in 
his or her consideration of this talebecause nothing is more 
common in real life than a want of profitable reflection on the 
causes of many vices and crimes that awaken the general horror. 
What is substantially true of families in this respectis true 
of a whole commonwealth. As we sowwe reap. Let the reader go 
into the children's side of any prison in EnglandorI grieve 
to addof many workhousesand judge whether those are monsters 
who disgrace our streetspeople our hulks and penitentiariesand 
overcrowd our penal coloniesor are creatures whom we have 
deliberately suffered to be bred for misery and ruin. 
The American portion of this story is in no other respect a 
caricature than as it is an exhibitionfor the most part (Mr. 
Bevan expected)of a ludicrous sideONLYof the American 
character--of that side which wasfour-and-twenty years ago
from its naturethe most obtrusiveand the most likely to be 
seen by such travellers as Young Martin and Mark Tapley. As I 
had neverin writing fictionhad any disposition to soften what 
is ridiculous or wrong at homeso I then hoped that the 
good-humored people of the United States would not be generally 
disposed to quarrel with me for carrying the same usage abroad. 
I am happy to believe that my confidence in that great nation was 
not misplaced. 
When this book was first publishedI was given to understandby 
some authoritiesthat the Watertoast Association and eloquence 
were beyond all bounds of belief. Therefore I record the fact 
that all that portion of Martin Chuzzlewit's experiences is a 
literal paraphrase of some reports of public proceedings in the 
United States (especially of the proceedings of a certain Brandywine 
Association)which were printed in the Times Newspaper in June 
and July1843--at about the time when I was engaged in writing 
those parts of the book; and which remain on the file of the Times 
Newspaperof course. 
In all my writingsI hope I have taken every available opportunity 
of showing the want of sanitary improvements in the neglected 
dwellings of the poor. Mrs. Sarah Gamp wasfour-and-twenty years 
agoa fair representation of the hired attendant on the poor in 
sickness. The hospitals of London werein many respectsnoble 
Institutions; in othersvery defective. I think it not the least 
among the instances of their mismanagementthat Mrs. Betsey Prig 
was a fair specimen of a Hospital Nurse; and that the Hospitals
with their means and fundsshould have left it to private humanity 
and enterpriseto enter on an attempt to improve that class of 
persons--sincegreatly improved through the agency of good women. 
POSTSCRIPT 
At a Public Dinner given to me on Saturday the 18th of April1868
in the city of New Yorkby two hundred representatives of the Press 
of the United States of AmericaI made the following observations
among others:-
So much of my voice has lately been heard in the land, that I 
might have been contented with troubling you no further from my 
present standing-point, were it not a duty with which I henceforth 
charge myself, not only here but on every suitable occasion, 
whatsoever and wheresoever, to express my high and grateful sense 
of my second reception in America, and to bear my honest testimony 
to the national generosity and magnanimity. Also, to declare how 
astounded I have been by the amazing changes I have seen around me 
on every side--changes moral, changes physical, changes in the 
amount of land subdued and peopled, changes in the rise of vast 
new cities, changes in the growth of older cities almost out of 
recognition, changes in the graces and amenities of life, changes 
in the Press, without whose advancement no advancement can take 
place anywhere. Nor am I, believe me, so arrogant as to suppose 
that in five-and-twenty years there have been no changes in me, 
and that I had nothing to learn and no extreme impressions to 
correct when I was here first. And this brings me to a point on 
which I have, ever since I landed in the United States last November, 
observed a strict silence, though sometimes tempted to break it, 
but in reference to which I will, with your good leave, take you 
into my confidence now. Even the Press, being human, may be 
sometimes mistaken or misinformed, and I rather think that I have 
in one or two rare instances observed its information to be not 
strictly accurate with reference to myself. Indeed, I have, now 
and again, been more surprised by printed news that I have read of 
myself, than by any printed news that I have ever read in my present 
state of existence. Thus, the vigour and perseverance with which 
I have for some months past been collecting materials for, and 
hammering away at, a new book on America has much astonished me; 
seeing that all that time my declaration has been perfectly well 
known to my publishers on both sides of the Atlantic, that no 
consideration on earth would induce me to write one. But what 
I have intended, what I have resolved upon (and this is the 
confidence I seek to place in you), is, on my return to England, 
in my own person, in my own Journal, to bear, for the behoof of my 
countrymen, such testimony to the gigantic changes in this country 
as I have hinted at to-night. Also, to record that wherever I have 
been, in the smallest places equally with the largest, I have been 
received with unsurpassable politeness, delicacy, sweet temper, 
hospitality, consideration, and with unsurpassable respect for 
the privacy daily enforced upon me by the nature of my avocation 
here and the state of my health. This testimony, so long as I live, 
and so long as my descendants have any legal right in my books, 
I shall cause to be republished, as an appendix to every copy of 
those two books of mine in which I have referred to America. 
And this I will do and cause to be done, not in mere love and 
thankfulness, but because I regard it as an act of plain justice 
and honour.
I said these words with the greatest earnestness that I could lay 
upon themand I repeat them in print here with equal earnestness. 
So long as this book shall lastI hope that they will form a part 
of itand will be fairly read as inseparable from my experiences 
and impressions of America. 
CHARLES DICKENS. 
May1868. 
CHAPTER ONE 
INTRODUCTORYCONCERNING THE PEDIGREE OF THE CHUZZLEWIT FAMILY 
As no lady or gentlemanwith any claims to polite breedingcan 
possibly sympathize with the Chuzzlewit Family without being first 
assured of the extreme antiquity of the raceit is a great 
satisfaction to know that it undoubtedly descended in a direct line 
from Adam and Eve; and wasin the very earliest timesclosely 
connected with the agricultural interest. If it should ever be 
urged by grudging and malicious personsthat a Chuzzlewitin any 
period of the family historydisplayed an overweening amount of 
family pridesurely the weakness will be considered not only 
pardonable but laudablewhen the immense superiority of the house 
to the rest of mankindin respect of this its ancient originis 
taken into account. 
It is remarkable that as there wasin the oldest family of which we 
have any recorda murderer and a vagabondso we never fail to 
meetin the records of all old familieswith innumerable 
repetitions of the same phase of character. Indeedit may be laid 
down as a general principlethat the more extended the ancestry
the greater the amount of violence and vagabondism; for in ancient 
days those two amusementscombining a wholesome excitement with a 
promising means of repairing shattered fortuneswere at once the 
ennobling pursuit and the healthful recreation of the Quality of 
this land. 
Consequentlyit is a source of inexpressible comfort and happiness 
to findthat in various periods of our historythe Chuzzlewits 
were actively connected with divers slaughterous conspiracies and 
bloody frays. It is further recorded of themthat being clad from 
head to heel in steel of proofthey did on many occasions lead 
their leather-jerkined soldiers to the death with invincible 
courageand afterwards return home gracefully to their relations 
and friends. 
There can be no doubt that at least one Chuzzlewit came over with 
William the Conqueror. It does not appear that this illustrious 
ancestor 'came over' that monarchto employ the vulgar phraseat 
any subsequent period; inasmuch as the Family do not seem to have 
been ever greatly distinguished by the possession of landed estate. 
And it is well known that for the bestowal of that kind of property 
upon his favouritesthe liberality and gratitude of the Norman were 
as remarkable as those virtues are usually found to be in great men 
when they give away what belongs to other people. 
Perhaps in this place the history may pause to congratulate itself 
upon the enormous amount of braverywisdomeloquencevirtue
gentle birthand true nobilitythat appears to have come into 
England with the Norman Invasion: an amount which the genealogy of 
every ancient family lends its aid to swelland which would beyond 
all question have been found to be just as greatand to the full as 
prolific in giving birth to long lines of chivalrous descendants
boastful of their origineven though William the Conqueror had been 
William the Conquered; a change of circumstances whichit is quite 
certainwould have made no manner of difference in this respect. 
There was unquestionably a Chuzzlewit in the Gunpowder Plotif 
indeed the arch-traitorFawkes himselfwere not a scion of this 
remarkable stock; as he might easily have beensupposing another 
Chuzzlewit to have emigrated to Spain in the previous generation
and there intermarried with a Spanish ladyby whom he had issue
one olive-complexioned son. This probable conjecture is 
strengthenedif not absolutely confirmedby a fact which cannot 
fail to be interesting to those who are curious in tracing the 
progress of hereditary tastes through the lives of their unconscious 
inheritors. It is a notable circumstance that in these later times
many Chuzzlewitsbeing unsuccessful in other pursuitshave
without the smallest rational hope of enriching themselvesor any 
conceivable reasonset up as coal-merchants; and havemonth after 
monthcontinued gloomily to watch a small stock of coalswithout 
in any one instance negotiating with a purchaser. The remarkable 
similarity between this course of proceeding and that adopted by 
their Great Ancestor beneath the vaults of the Parliament House at 
Westminsteris too obvious and too full of interestto stand in 
need of comment. 
It is also clearly proved by the oral traditions of the Familythat 
there existedat some one period of its history which is not 
distinctly stateda matron of such destructive principlesand so 
familiarized to the use and composition of inflammatory and 
combustible enginesthat she was called 'The Match Maker;' by which 
nickname and byword she is recognized in the Family legends to this 
day. Surely there can be no reasonable doubt that this was the 
Spanish ladythe mother of Chuzzlewit Fawkes. 
But there is one other piece of evidencebearing immediate 
reference to their close connection with this memorable event in 
English Historywhich must carry convictioneven to a mind (if 
such a mind there be) remaining unconvinced by these presumptive 
proofs. 
There waswithin a few yearsin the possession of a highly 
respectable and in every way credible and unimpeachable member of 
the Chuzzlewit Family (for his bitterest enemy never dared to hint 
at his being otherwise than a wealthy man)a dark lantern of 
undoubted antiquity; rendered still more interesting by beingin 
shape and patternextremely like such as are in use at the present 
day. Now this gentlemansince deceasedwas at all times ready to 
make oathand did again and again set forth upon his solemn 
asseverationthat he had frequently heard his grandmother saywhen 
contemplating this venerable relic'Ayeaye! This was carried by 
my fourth son on the fifth of Novemberwhen he was a Guy Fawkes.' 
These remarkable words wrought (as well they might) a strong 
impression on his mindand he was in the habit of repeating them 
very often. The just interpretation which they bearand the 
conclusion to which they leadare triumphant and irresistible. The 
old ladynaturally strong-mindedwas nevertheless frail and 
fading; she was notoriously subject to that confusion of ideasor
to say the leastof speechto which age and garrulity are liable. 
The slightthe very slightconfusion apparent in these expressions 
is manifestand is ludicrously easy of correction. 'Ayeaye' 
quoth sheand it will be observed that no emendation whatever is 
necessary to be made in these two initiative remarks'Ayeaye! 
This lantern was carried by my forefather'--not fourth sonwhich is 
preposterous--'on the fifth of November. And HE was Guy Fawkes.' 
Here we have a remark at once consistentclearnaturaland in 
strict accordance with the character of the speaker. Indeed the 
anecdote is so plainly susceptible of this meaning and no other
that it would be hardly worth recording in its original statewere 
it not a proof of what may be (and very often is) affected not only 
in historical prose but in imaginative poetryby the exercise of a 
little ingenious labour on the part of a commentator. 
It has been said that there is no instancein modern timesof a 
Chuzzlewit having been found on terms of intimacy with the Great. 
But here again the sneering detractors who weave such miserable 
figments from their malicious brainsare stricken dumb by evidence. 
For letters are yet in the possession of various branches of the 
familyfrom which it distinctly appearsbeing stated in so many 
wordsthat one Diggory Chuzzlewit was in the habit of perpetually 
dining with Duke Humphrey. So constantly was he a guest at that 
nobleman's tableindeed; and so unceasingly were His Grace's 
hospitality and companionship forcedas it wereupon him; that we 
find him uneasyand full of constraint and reluctance; writing his 
friends to the effect that if they fail to do so and so by bearer
he will have no choice but to dine again with Duke Humphrey; and 
expressing himself in a very marked and extraordinary manner as one 
surfeited of High Life and Gracious Company. 
It has been rumouredand it is needless to say the rumour 
originated in the same base quartersthat a certain male 
Chuzzlewitwhose birth must be admitted to be involved in some 
obscuritywas of very mean and low descent. How stands the proof? 
When the son of that individualto whom the secret of his father's 
birth was supposed to have been communicated by his father in his 
lifetimelay upon his deathbedthis question was put to him in a 
distinctsolemnand formal way: 'Toby Chuzzlewitwho was your 
grandfather?' To which hewith his last breathno less distinctly
solemnlyand formally replied: and his words were taken down at the 
timeand signed by six witnesseseach with his name and address in 
full: 'The Lord No Zoo.' It may be said--it HAS been saidfor human 
wickedness has no limits--that there is no Lord of that nameand 
that among the titles which have become extinctnone at all 
resembling thisin sound evenis to be discovered. But what is 
the irresistible inference? Rejecting a theory broached by some 
well-meaning but mistaken personsthat this Mr Toby Chuzzlewit's 
grandfatherto judge from his namemust surely have been a 
Mandarin (which is wholly insupportablefor there is no pretence of 
his grandmother ever having been out of this countryor of any 
Mandarin having been in it within some years of his father's birth; 
except those in the tea-shopswhich cannot for a moment be regarded 
as having any bearing on the questionone way or other)rejecting 
this hypothesisis it not manifest that Mr Toby Chuzzlewit had 
either received the name imperfectly from his fatheror that he had 
forgotten itor that he had mispronounced it? and that even at the 
recent period in questionthe Chuzzlewits were connected by a bend 
sinisteror kind of heraldic over-the-leftwith some unknown noble 
and illustrious House? 
From documentary evidenceyet preserved in the familythe fact is 
clearly established that in the comparatively modern days of the 
Diggory Chuzzlewit before mentionedone of its members had attained 
to very great wealth and influence. Throughout such fragments of 
his correspondence as have escaped the ravages of the moths (whoin 
right of their extensive absorption of the contents of deeds and 
papersmay be called the general registers of the Insect World)we 
find him making constant reference to an unclein respect of whom 
he would seem to have entertained great expectationsas he was in 
the habit of seeking to propitiate his favour by presents of plate
jewelsbookswatchesand other valuable articles. Thushe 
writes on one occasion to his brother in reference to a gravy-spoon
the brother's propertywhich he (Diggory) would appear to have 
borrowed or otherwise possessed himself of: 'Do not be angryI have 
parted with it--to my uncle.' On another occasion he expresses 
himself in a similar manner with regard to a child's mug which had 
been entrusted to him to get repaired. On another occasion he says
'I have bestowed upon that irresistible uncle of mine everything I 
ever possessed.' And that he was in the habit of paying long and 
constant visits to this gentleman at his mansionifindeedhe did 
not wholly reside thereis manifest from the following sentence: 
'With the exception of the suit of clothes I carry about with me
the whole of my wearing apparel is at present at my uncle's.' This 
gentleman's patronage and influence must have been very extensive
for his nephew writes'His interest is too high'--'It is too much' 
--'It is tremendous'--and the like. Still it does not appear (which 
is strange) to have procured for him any lucrative post at court or 
elsewhereor to have conferred upon him any other distinction than 
that which was necessarily included in the countenance of so great a 
manand the being invited by him to certain entertainment'sso 
splendid and costly in their naturethat he calls them 'Golden 
Balls.' 
It is needless to multiply instances of the high and lofty station
and the vast importance of the Chuzzlewitsat different periods. 
If it came within the scope of reasonable probability that further 
proofs were requiredthey might be heaped upon each other until 
they formed an Alps of testimonybeneath which the boldest 
scepticism should be crushed and beaten flat. As a goodly tumulus 
is already collectedand decently battened up above the Family 
gravethe present chapter is content to leave it as it is: merely 
addingby way of a final spadefulthat many Chuzzlewitsboth male 
and femaleare proved to demonstrationon the faith of letters 
written by their own mothersto have had chiselled noses
undeniable chinsforms that might have served the sculptor for a 
modelexquisitely-turned limbs and polished foreheads of so 
transparent a texture that the blue veins might be seen branching 
off in various directionslike so many roads on an ethereal map. 
This fact in itselfthough it had been a solitary onewould have 
utterly settled and clenched the business in hand; for it is well 
knownon the authority of all the books which treat of such 
mattersthat every one of these phenomenabut especially that of 
the chisellingare invariably peculiar toand only make themselves 
apparent inpersons of the very best condition. 
This history havingto its own perfect satisfaction(and
consequentlyto the full contentment of all its readers) proved 
the Chuzzlewits to have had an originand to have been at one time 
or other of an importance which cannot fail to render them highly 
improving and acceptable acquaintance to all right-minded 
individualsmay now proceed in earnest with its task. And having 
shown that they must have hadby reason of their ancient birtha 
pretty large share in the foundation and increase of the human 
familyit will one day become its province to submitthat such of 
its members as shall be introduced in these pageshave still many 
counterparts and prototypes in the Great World about us. At present 
it contents itself with remarkingin a general wayon this head: 
Firstlythat it may be safely assertedand yet without implying 
any direct participation in the Manboddo doctrine touching the 
probability of the human race having once been monkeysthat men do 
play very strange and extraordinary tricks. Secondlyand yet 
without trenching on the Blumenbach theory as to the descendants of 
Adam having a vast number of qualities which belong more 
particularly to swine than to any other class of animals in the 
creationthat some men certainly are remarkable for taking uncommon 
good care of themselves. 
CHAPTER TWO 
WHEREIN CERTAIN PERSONS ARE PRESENTED TO THE READERWITH WHOM HE 
MAYIF HE PLEASEBECOME BETTER ACQUAINTED 
It was pretty late in the autumn of the yearwhen the declining sun 
struggling through the mist which had obscured it all daylooked 
brightly down upon a little Wiltshire villagewithin an easy 
journey of the fair old town of Salisbury. 
Like a sudden flash of memory or spirit kindling up the mind of an 
old manit shed a glory upon the scenein which its departed youth 
and freshness seemed to live again. The wet grass sparkled in the 
light; the scanty patches of verdure in the hedges--where a few 
green twigs yet stood together bravelyresisting to the last the 
tyranny of nipping winds and early frosts--took heart and brightened 
up; the stream which had been dull and sullen all day longbroke 
out into a cheerful smile; the birds began to chirp and twitter on 
the naked boughsas though the hopeful creatures half believed that 
winter had gone byand spring had come already. The vane upon the 
tapering spire of the old church glistened from its lofty station in 
sympathy with the general gladness; and from the ivy-shaded windows 
such gleams of light shone back upon the glowing skythat it seemed 
as if the quiet buildings were the hoarding-place of twenty summers
and all their ruddiness and warmth were stored within. 
Even those tokens of the season which emphatically whispered of the 
coming wintergraced the landscapeandfor the momenttinged its 
livelier features with no oppressive air of sadness. The fallen 
leaveswith which the ground was strewngave forth a pleasant 
fragranceand subduing all harsh sounds of distant feet and wheels 
created a repose in gentle unison with the light scattering of seed 
hither and thither by the distant husbandmanand with the 
noiseless passage of the plough as it turned up the rich brown 
earthand wrought a graceful pattern in the stubbled fields. On 
the motionless branches of some treesautumn berries hung like 
clusters of coral beadsas in those fabled orchards where the 
fruits were jewels; others stripped of all their garniturestood
each the centre of its little heap of bright red leaveswatching 
their slow decay; others againstill wearing theirshad them all 
crunched and crackled upas though they had been burnt; about the 
stems of some were piledin ruddy moundsthe apples they had borne 
that year; while others (hardy evergreens this class) showed 
somewhat stern and gloomy in their vigouras charged by nature with 
the admonition that it is not to her more sensitive and joyous 
favourites she grants the longest term of life. Still athwart their 
darker boughsthe sunbeams struck out paths of deeper gold; and the 
red lightmantling in among their swarthy branchesused them as 
foils to set its brightness offand aid the lustre of the dying 
day. 
A momentand its glory was no more. The sun went down beneath the 
long dark lines of hill and cloud which piled up in the west an airy 
citywall heaped on walland battlement on battlement; the light 
was all withdrawn; the shining church turned cold and dark; the 
stream forgot to smile; the birds were silent; and the gloom of 
winter dwelt on everything. 
An evening wind uprose tooand the slighter branches cracked and 
rattled as they movedin skeleton dancesto its moaning music. 
The withering leaves no longer quiethurried to and fro in search 
of shelter from its chill pursuit; the labourer unyoked his horses
and with head bent downtrudged briskly home beside them; and from 
the cottage windows lights began to glance and wink upon the 
darkening fields. 
Then the village forge came out in all its bright importance. The 
lusty bellows roared Ha ha! to the clear firewhich roared in turn
and bade the shining sparks dance gayly to the merry clinking of the 
hammers on the anvil. The gleaming ironin its emulationsparkled 
tooand shed its red-hot gems around profusely. The strong smith 
and his men dealt such strokes upon their workas made even the 
melancholy night rejoiceand brought a glow into its dark face as 
it hovered about the door and windowspeeping curiously in above 
the shoulders of a dozen loungers. As to this idle companythere 
they stoodspellbound by the placeandcasting now and then a 
glance upon the darkness in their rearsettled their lazy elbows 
more at ease upon the silland leaned a little further in: no more 
disposed to tear themselves away than if they had been born to 
cluster round the blazing hearth like so many crickets. 
Out upon the angry wind! how from sighingit began to bluster round 
the merry forgebanging at the wicketand grumbling in the 
chimneyas if it bullied the jolly bellows for doing anything to 
order. And what an impotent swaggerer it was toofor all its 
noise; for if it had any influence on that hoarse companionit was 
but to make him roar his cheerful song the louderand by 
consequence to make the fire burn the brighterand the sparks to 
dance more gayly yet; at lengththey whizzed so madly round and 
roundthat it was too much for such a surly wind to bear; so off it 
flew with a howl giving the old sign before the ale-house door such 
a cuff as it wentthat the Blue Dragon was more rampant than usual 
ever afterwardsand indeedbefore Christmasreared clean out of 
its crazy frame. 
It was small tyranny for a respectable wind to go wreaking its 
vengeance on such poor creatures as the fallen leavesbut this wind 
happening to come up with a great heap of them just after venting 
its humour on the insulted Dragondid so disperse and scatter them 
that they fled awaypell-mellsome heresome thererolling over 
each otherwhirling round and round upon their thin edgestaking 
frantic flights into the airand playing all manner of 
extraordinary gambols in the extremity of their distress. Nor was 
this enough for its malicious fury; for not content with driving 
them abroadit charged small parties of them and hunted them into 
the wheel wright's saw-pitand below the planks and timbers in the 
yardandscattering the sawdust in the airit looked for them 
underneathand when it did meet with anywhew! how it drove them 
on and followed at their heels! 
The scared leaves only flew the faster for all thisand a giddy 
chase it was; for they got into unfrequented placeswhere there was 
no outletand where their pursuer kept them eddying round and round 
at his pleasure; and they crept under the eaves of housesand clung 
tightly to the sides of hay-rickslike bats; and tore in at open 
chamber windowsand cowered close to hedges; andin shortwent 
anywhere for safety. But the oddest feat they achieved wasto take 
advantage of the sudden opening of Mr Pecksniff's front-doorto 
dash wildly into his passage; whither the wind following close upon 
themand finding the back-door openincontinently blew out the 
lighted candle held by Miss Pecksniffand slammed the front-door 
against Mr Pecksniff who was at that moment enteringwith such 
violencethat in the twinkling of an eye he lay on his back at the 
bottom of the steps. Being by this time weary of such trifling 
performancesthe boisterous rover hurried away rejoicingroaring 
over moor and meadowhill and flatuntil it got out to seawhere 
it met with other winds similarly disposedand made a night of it. 
In the meantime Mr Pecksniffhaving received from a sharp angle in 
the bottom step but onethat sort of knock on the head which lights 
upfor the patient's entertainmentan imaginary general 
illumination of very bright short-sixeslay placidly staring at his 
own street door. And it would seem to have been more suggestive in 
its aspect than street doors usually are; for he continued to lie 
thererather a lengthy and unreasonable timewithout so much as 
wondering whether he was hurt or no; neitherwhen Miss Pecksniff 
inquired through the key-hole in a shrill voicewhich might have 
belonged to a wind in its teens'Who's there' did he make any 
reply; norwhen Miss Pecksniff opened the door againand shading 
the candle with her handpeered outand looked provokingly round 
himand about himand over himand everywhere but at himdid he 
offer any remarkor indicate in any manner the least hint of a 
desire to be picked up. 
'I see you' cried Miss Pecksniffto the ideal inflicter of a 
runaway knock. 'You'll catch itsir!' 
Still Mr Pecksniffperhaps from having caught it alreadysaid 
nothing. 
'You're round the corner now' cried Miss Pecksniff. She said it at 
a venturebut there was appropriate matter in it too; for Mr 
Pecksniffbeing in the act of extinguishing the candles before 
mentioned pretty rapidlyand of reducing the number of brass knobs 
on his street door from four or five hundred (which had previously 
been juggling of their own accord before his eyes in a very novel 
manner) to a dozen or somight in one sense have been said to be 
coming round the cornerand just turning it. 
With a sharply delivered warning relative to the cage and the 
constableand the stocks and the gallowsMiss Pecksniff was about 
to close the door againwhen Mr Pecksniff (being still at the 
bottom of the steps) raised himself on one elbowand sneezed. 
'That voice!' cried Miss Pecksniff. 'My parent!' 
At this exclamationanother Miss Pecksniff bounced out of the 
parlour; and the two Miss Pecksniffswith many incoherent 
expressionsdragged Mr Pecksniff into an upright posture. 
'Pa!' they cried in concert. 'Pa! SpeakPa! Do not look so wild my 
dearest Pa!' 
But as a gentleman's looksin such a case of all othersare by no 
means under his own controlMr Pecksniff continued to keep his 
mouth and his eyes very wide openand to drop his lower jaw
somewhat after the manner of a toy nut-cracker; and as his hat had 
fallen offand his face was paleand his hair erectand his coat 
muddythe spectacle he presented was so very dolefulthat neither 
of the Miss Pecksniffs could repress an involuntary screech. 
'That'll do' said Mr Pecksniff. 'I'm better.' 
'He's come to himself!' cried the youngest Miss Pecksniff. 
'He speaks again!' exclaimed the eldest. 
With these joyful words they kissed Mr Pecksniff on either cheek; 
and bore him into the house. Presentlythe youngest Miss Pecksniff 
ran out again to pick up his hathis brown paper parcelhis 
umbrellahis glovesand other small articles; and that doneand 
the door closedboth young ladies applied themselves to tending Mr 
Pecksniff's wounds in the back parlour. 
They were not very serious in their nature; being limited to 
abrasions on what the eldest Miss Pecksniff called 'the knobby 
parts' of her parent's anatomysuch as his knees and elbowsand to 
the development of an entirely new organunknown to phrenologists
on the back of his head. These injuries having been comforted 
externallywith patches of pickled brown paperand Mr Pecksniff 
having been comforted internallywith some stiff brandy-and-water
the eldest Miss Pecksniff sat down to make the teawhich was all 
ready. In the meantime the youngest Miss Pecksniff brought from the 
kitchen a smoking dish of ham and eggsandsetting the same before 
her fathertook up her station on a low stool at his feet; thereby 
bringing her eyes on a level with the teaboard. 
It must not be inferred from this position of humilitythat the 
youngest Miss Pecksniff was so young as to beas one may say
forced to sit upon a stoolby reason of the shortness of her legs. 
Miss Pecksniff sat upon a stool because of her simplicity and 
innocencewhich were very greatvery great. Miss Pecksniff sat 
upon a stool because she was all girlishnessand playfulnessand 
wildnessand kittenish buoyancy. She was the most arch and at the 
same time the most artless creaturewas the youngest Miss 
Pecksniffthat you can possibly imagine. It was her great charm. 
She was too fresh and guilelessand too full of child-like 
vivacitywas the youngest Miss Pecksniffto wear combs in her 
hairor to turn it upor to frizzle itor braid it. She wore it 
in a cropa loosely flowing cropwhich had so many rows of curls 
in itthat the top row was only one curl. Moderately buxom was her 
shapeand quite womanly too; but sometimes--yessometimes--she 
even wore a pinafore; and how charming THAT was! Oh! she was indeed 
'a gushing thing' (as a young gentleman had observed in versein 
the Poet's Corner of a provincial newspaper)was the youngest Miss 
Pecksniff! 
Mr Pecksniff was a moral man--a grave mana man of noble sentiments 
and speech--and he had had her christened Mercy. Mercy! ohwhat a 
charming name for such a pure-souled Being as the youngest Miss 
Pecksniff! Her sister's name was Charity. There was a good thing! 
Mercy and Charity! And Charitywith her fine strong sense and her 
mildyet not reproachful gravitywas so well namedand did so 
well set off and illustrate her sister! What a pleasant sight was 
that the contrast they presented; to see each loved and loving one 
sympathizing withand devoted toand leaning onand yet 
correcting and counter-checkingandas it wereantidotingthe 
other! To behold each damsel in her very admiration of her sister
setting up in business for herself on an entirely different 
principleand announcing no connection with over-the-wayand if the 
quality of goods at that establishment don't please youyou are 
respectfully invited to favour ME with a call! And the crowning 
circumstance of the whole delightful catalogue wasthat both the 
fair creatures were so utterly unconscious of all this! They had no 
idea of it. They no more thought or dreamed of it than Mr Pecksniff 
did. Nature played them off against each other; THEY had no hand in 
itthe two Miss Pecksniffs. 
It has been remarked that Mr Pecksniff was a moral man. So he was. 
Perhaps there never was a more moral man than Mr Pecksniff
especially in his conversation and correspondence. It was once said 
of him by a homely admirerthat he had a Fortunatus's purse of good 
sentiments in his inside. In this particular he was like the girl 
in the fairy taleexcept that if they were not actual diamonds 
which fell from his lipsthey were the very brightest pasteand 
shone prodigiously. He was a most exemplary man; fuller of virtuous 
precept than a copy book. Some people likened him to a directionpost
which is always telling the way to a placeand never goes 
there; but these were his enemiesthe shadows cast by his 
brightness; that was all. His very throat was moral. You saw a 
good deal of it. You looked over a very low fence of white cravat 
(whereof no man had ever beheld the tie for he fastened it behind)
and there it laya valley between two jutting heights of collar
serene and whiskerless before you. It seemed to sayon the part of 
Mr Pecksniff'There is no deceptionladies and gentlemenall is 
peacea holy calm pervades me.' So did his hairjust grizzled with 
an iron-grey which was all brushed off his foreheadand stood bolt 
uprightor slightly drooped in kindred action with his heavy 
eyelids. So did his personwhich was sleek though free from 
corpulency. So did his mannerwhich was soft and oily. In a word
even his plain black suitand state of widower and dangling double 
eye-glassall tended to the same purposeand cried aloud'Behold 
the moral Pecksniff!' 
The brazen plate upon the door (which being Mr Pecksniff'scould 
not lie) bore this inscription'PECKSNIFFARCHITECT' to which Mr 
Pecksniffon his cards of businessaddedAND LAND SURVEYOR.' In 
one senseand only onehe may be said to have been a Land Surveyor 
on a pretty large scaleas an extensive prospect lay stretched out 
before the windows of his house. Of his architectural doings
nothing was clearly knownexcept that he had never designed or 
built anything; but it was generally understood that his knowledge 
of the science was almost awful in its profundity. 
Mr Pecksniff's professional engagementsindeedwere almostif not 
entirelyconfined to the reception of pupils; for the collection of 
rentswith which pursuit he occasionally varied and relieved his 
graver toilscan hardly be said to be a strictly architectural 
employment. His genius lay in ensnaring parents and guardiansand 
pocketing premiums. A young gentleman's premium being paidand the 
young gentleman come to Mr Pecksniff's houseMr Pecksniff borrowed 
his case of mathematical instruments (if silver-mounted or otherwise 
valuable); entreated himfrom that momentto consider himself one 
of the family; complimented him highly on his parents or guardians
as the case might be; and turned him loose in a spacious room on the 
two-pair front; wherein the company of certain drawing-boards
parallel rulersvery stiff-legged compassesand twoor perhaps 
threeother young gentlemenhe improved himselffor three or five 
yearsaccording to his articlesin making elevations of Salisbury 
Cathedral from every possible point of sight; and in constructing in 
the air a vast quantity of CastlesHouses of Parliamentand other 
Public Buildings. Perhaps in no place in the world were so many 
gorgeous edifices of this class erected as under Mr Pecksniff's 
auspices; and if but one-twentieth part of the churches which were 
built in that front roomwith one or other of the Miss Pecksniffs 
at the altar in the act of marrying the architectcould only be 
made available by the parliamentary commissionersno more churches 
would be wanted for at least five centuries. 
'Even the worldly goods of which we have just disposed' said Mr 
Pecksniffglancing round the table when he had finished'even 
creamsugarteatoastham--' 
'And eggs' suggested Charity in a low voice. 
'And eggs' said Mr Pecksniff'even they have their moral. See how 
they come and go! Every pleasure is transitory. We can't even eat
long. If we indulge in harmless fluidswe get the dropsy; if in 
exciting liquidswe get drunk. What a soothing reflection is 
that!' 
'Don't say WE get drunkPa' urged the eldest Miss Pecksniff. 
'When I say wemy dear' returned her father'I mean mankind in 
general; the human raceconsidered as a bodyand not as 
individuals. There is nothing personal in moralitymy love. Even 
such a thing as this' said Mr Pecksnifflaying the fore-finger of 
his left hand upon the brown paper patch on the top of his head
'slight casual baldness though it bereminds us that we are but'-he 
was going to say 'worms' but recollecting that worms were not 
remarkable for heads of hairhe substituted 'flesh and blood.' 
'Which' cried Mr Pecksniff after a pauseduring which he seemed to 
have been casting about for a new moraland not quite successfully
'which is also very soothing. Mercymy dearstir the fire and 
throw up the cinders.' 
The young lady obeyedand having done soresumed her stool
reposed one arm upon her father's kneeand laid her blooming cheek 
upon it. Miss Charity drew her chair nearer the fireas one 
prepared for conversationand looked towards her father. 
'Yes' said Mr Pecksniffafter a short pauseduring which he had 
been silently smilingand shaking his head at the fire--'I have 
again been fortunate in the attainment of my object. A new inmate 
will very shortly come among us.' 
'A youthpapa?' asked Charity. 
'Ye-esa youth' said Mr Pecksniff. 'He will avail himself of the 
eligible opportunity which now offersfor uniting the advantages of 
the best practical architectural education with the comforts of a 
homeand the constant association with some who (however humble 
their sphereand limited their capacity) are not unmindful of their 
moral responsibilities.' 
'Oh Pa!' cried Mercyholding up her finger archly. 'See 
advertisement!' 
'Playful--playful warbler' said Mr Pecksniff. It may be observed 
in connection with his calling his daughter a 'warbler' that she was 
not at all vocalbut that Mr Pecksniff was in the frequent habit of 
using any word that occurred to him as having a good soundand 
rounding a sentence well without much care for its meaning. And he 
did this so boldlyand in such an imposing mannerthat he would 
sometimes stagger the wisest people with his eloquenceand make 
them gasp again. 
His enemies assertedby the waythat a strong trustfulness in 
sounds and forms was the master-key to Mr Pecksniff's character. 
'Is he handsomePa?' inquired the younger daughter. 
'Silly Merry!' said the eldest: Merry being fond for Mercy. 'What 
is the premiumPa? tell us that.' 
'Ohgood graciousCherry!' cried Miss Mercyholding up her hands 
with the most winning giggle in the world'what a mercenary girl 
you are! oh you naughtythoughtfulprudent thing!' 
It was perfectly charmingand worthy of the Pastoral ageto see 
how the two Miss Pecksniffs slapped each other after thisand then 
subsided into an embrace expressive of their different dispositions. 
'He is well looking' said Mr Pecksniffslowly and distinctly; 
'well looking enough. I do not positively expect any immediate 
premium with him.' 
Notwithstanding their different naturesboth Charity and Mercy 
concurred in opening their eyes uncommonly wide at this 
announcementand in looking for the moment as blank as if their 
thoughts had actually had a direct bearing on the main chance. 
'But what of that!' said Mr Pecksniffstill smiling at the fire. 
'There is disinterestedness in the worldI hope? We are not all 
arrayed in two opposite ranks; the OFfensive and the DEfensive. 
Some few there are who walk between; who help the needy as they go; 
and take no part with either side. Umph!' 
There was something in these morsels of philanthropy which reassured 
the sisters. They exchanged glancesand brightened very much. 
'Oh! let us not be for ever calculatingdevisingand plotting for 
the future' said Mr Pecksniffsmiling more and moreand looking 
at the fire as a man mightwho was cracking a joke with it: 'I am 
weary of such arts. If our inclinations are but good and openhearted
let us gratify them boldlythough they bring upon us Loss 
instead of Profit. EhCharity?' 
Glancing towards his daughters for the first time since he had begun 
these reflectionsand seeing that they both smiledMr Pecksniff 
eyed them for an instant so jocosely (though still with a kind of 
saintly waggishness) that the younger one was moved to sit upon his 
knee forthwithput her fair arms round his neckand kiss him 
twenty times. During the whole of this affectionate display she 
laughed to a most immoderate extent: in which hilarious indulgence 
even the prudent Cherry joined. 
'Tuttut' said Mr Pecksniffpushing his latest-born away and 
running his fingers through his hairas he resumed his tranquil 
face. 'What folly is this! Let us take heed how we laugh without 
reason lest we cry with it. What is the domestic news since 
yesterday? John Westlock is goneI hope?' 
'Indeedno' said Charity. 
'And why not?' returned her father. 'His term expired yesterday. 
And his box was packedI know; for I saw itin the morning
standing in the hall.' 
'He slept last night at the Dragon' returned the young lady'and 
had Mr Pinch to dine with him. They spent the evening togetherand 
Mr Pinch was not home till very late.' 
'And when I saw him on the stairs this morningPa' said Mercy with 
her usual sprightliness'he lookedoh goodnessSUCH a monster! 
with his face all manner of coloursand his eyes as dull as if they 
had been boiledand his head aching dreadfullyI am sure from the 
look of itand his clothes smellingoh it's impossible to say how 
strongoh'--here the young lady shuddered--'of smoke and punch.' 
'Now I think' said Mr Pecksniff with his accustomed gentleness
though still with the air of one who suffered under injury without 
complaint'I think Mr Pinch might have done better than choose for 
his companion one whoat the close of a long intercoursehad 
endeavouredas he knewto wound my feelings. I am not quite sure 
that this was delicate in Mr Pinch. I am not quite sure that this 
was kind in Mr Pinch. I will go further and sayI am not quite 
sure that this was even ordinarily grateful in Mr Pinch.' 
'But what can anyone expect from Mr Pinch!' cried Charitywith as 
strong and scornful an emphasis on the name as if it would have 
given her unspeakable pleasure to express itin an acted charade
on the calf of that gentleman's leg. 
'Ayeaye' returned her fatherraising his hand mildly: 'it is 
very well to say what can we expect from Mr Pinchbut Mr Pinch is a 
fellow-creaturemy dear; Mr Pinch is an item in the vast total of 
humanitymy love; and we have a rightit is our dutyto expect in 
Mr Pinch some development of those better qualitiesthe possession 
of which in our own persons inspires our humble self-respect. No' 
continued Mr Pecksniff. 'No! Heaven forbid that I should say
nothing can be expected from Mr Pinch; or that I should saynothing 
can be expected from any man alive (even the most degradedwhich Mr 
Pinch is notnoreally); but Mr Pinch has disappointed me; he has 
hurt me; I think a little the worse of him on this accountbut not 
if human nature. Ohnono!' 
'Hark!' said Miss Charityholding up her fingeras a gentle rap 
was heard at the street door. 'There is the creature! Now mark my 
wordshe has come back with John Westlock for his boxand is going 
to help him to take it to the mail. Only mark my wordsif that 
isn't his intention!' 
Even as she spokethe box appeared to be in progress of conveyance 
from the housebut after a brief murmuring of question and answer
it was put down againand somebody knocked at the parlour door. 
'Come in!' cried Mr Pecksniff--not severely; only virtuously. 'Come 
in!' 
An ungainlyawkward-looking manextremely short-sightedand 
prematurely baldavailed himself of this permission; and seeing 
that Mr Pecksniff sat with his back towards himgazing at the fire
stood hesitatingwith the door in his hand. He was far from 
handsome certainly; and was drest in a snuff-coloured suitof an 
uncouth make at the bestwhichbeing shrunk with long wearwas 
twisted and tortured into all kinds of odd shapes; but 
notwithstanding his attireand his clumsy figurewhich a great 
stoop in his shouldersand a ludicrous habit he had of thrusting 
his head forwardby no means redeemedone would not have been 
disposed (unless Mr Pecksniff said so) to consider him a bad fellow 
by any means. He was perhaps about thirtybut he might have been 
almost any age between sixteen and sixty; being one of those strange 
creatures who never decline into an ancient appearancebut look 
their oldest when they are very youngand get it over at once. 
Keeping his hand upon the lock of the doorhe glanced from Mr 
Pecksniff to Mercyfrom Mercy to Charityand from Charity to Mr 
Pecksniff againseveral times; but the young ladies being as intent 
upon the fire as their father wasand neither of the three taking 
any notice of himhe was fain to sayat last
'Oh! I beg your pardonMr Pecksniff: I beg your pardon for 
intruding; but--' 
'No intrusionMr Pinch' said that gentleman very sweetlybut 
without looking round. 'Pray be seatedMr Pinch. Have the 
goodness to shut the doorMr Pinchif you please.' 
'Certainlysir' said Pinch; not doing sohoweverbut holding it 
rather wider open than beforeand beckoning nervously to somebody 
without: 'Mr Westlocksirhearing that you were come home--' 
'Mr PinchMr Pinch!' said Pecksniffwheeling his chair aboutand 
looking at him with an aspect of the deepest melancholy'I did not 
expect this from you. I have not deserved this from you!' 
'Nobut upon my wordsir--' urged Pinch. 
'The less you sayMr Pinch' interposed the other'the better. I 
utter no complaint. Make no defence.' 
'Nobut do have the goodnesssir' cried Pinchwith great 
earnestness'if you please. Mr Westlocksirgoing away for good 
and allwishes to leave none but friends behind him. Mr Westlock 
and yousirhad a little difference the other day; you have had 
many little differences.' 
'Little differences!' cried Charity. 
'Little differences!' echoed Mercy. 
'My loves!' said Mr Pecksniffwith the same serene upraising of his 
hand; 'My dears!' After a solemn pause he meekly bowed to Mr Pinch
as who should say'Proceed;' but Mr Pinch was so very much at a 
loss how to resumeand looked so helplessly at the two Miss 
Pecksniffsthat the conversation would most probably have 
terminated thereif a good-looking youthnewly arrived at man's 
estatehad not stepped forward from the doorway and taken up the 
thread of the discourse. 
'ComeMr Pecksniff' he saidwith a smile'don't let there be any 
ill-blood between uspray. I am sorry we have ever differedand 
extremely sorry I have ever given you offence. Bear me no ill-will 
at partingsir.' 
'I bear' answered Mr Pecksniffmildly'no ill-will to any man on 
earth.' 
'I told you he didn't' said Pinchin an undertone; 'I knew he 
didn't! He always says he don't.' 
'Then you will shake handssir?' cried Westlockadvancing a step 
or twoand bespeaking Mr Pinch's close attention by a glance. 
'Umph!' said Mr Pecksniffin his most winning tone. 
'You will shake handssir.' 
'NoJohn' said Mr Pecksniffwith a calmness quite ethereal; 'no
I will not shake handsJohn. I have forgiven you. I had already 
forgiven youeven before you ceased to reproach and taunt me. I 
have embraced you in the spiritJohnwhich is better than shaking 
hands.' 
'Pinch' said the youthturning towards himwith a hearty disgust 
of his late master'what did I tell you?' 
Poor Pinch looked down uneasily at Mr Pecksniffwhose eye was fixed 
upon him as it had been from the first; and looking up at the 
ceiling againmade no reply. 
'As to your forgivenessMr Pecksniff' said the youth'I'll not 
have it upon such terms. I won't be forgiven.' 
'Won't youJohn?' retorted Mr Pecksniffwith a smile. 'You must. 
You can't help it. Forgiveness is a high quality; an exalted 
virtue; far above YOUR control or influenceJohn. I WILL forgive 
you. You cannot move me to remember any wrong you have ever done 
meJohn.' 
'Wrong!' cried the otherwith all the heat and impetuosity of his 
age. 'Here's a pretty fellow! Wrong! Wrong I have done him! He'll 
not even remember the five hundred pounds he had with me under false 
pretences; or the seventy pounds a year for board and lodging that 
would have been dear at seventeen! Here's a martyr!' 
'MoneyJohn' said Mr Pecksniff'is the root of all evil. I 
grieve to see that it is already bearing evil fruit in you. But I 
will not remember its existence. I will not even remember the 
conduct of that misguided person'--and herealthough he spoke like 
one at peace with all the worldhe used an emphasis that plainly 
said "I have my eye upon the rascal now"--'that misguided person who 
has brought you here to-nightseeking to disturb (it is a happiness 
to sayin vain) the heart's repose and peace of one who would have 
shed his dearest blood to serve him.' 
The voice of Mr Pecksniff trembled as he spokeand sobs were heard 
from his daughters. Sounds floated on the airmoreoveras if two 
spirit voices had exclaimed: one'Beast!' the other'Savage!' 
'Forgiveness' said Mr Pecksniff'entire and pure forgiveness is 
not incompatible with a wounded heart; perchance when the heart is 
woundedit becomes a greater virtue. With my breast still wrung 
and grieved to its inmost core by the ingratitude of that personI 
am proud and glad to say that I forgive him. Nay! I beg' cried Mr 
Pecksniffraising his voiceas Pinch appeared about to speak'I 
beg that individual not to offer a remark; he will truly oblige me 
by not uttering one wordjust now. I am not sure that I am equal 
to the trial. In a very short space of timeI shall have 
sufficient fortitudeI trust to converse with him as if these 
events had never happened. But not' said Mr Pecksniffturning 
round again towards the fireand waving his hand in the direction 
of the door'not now.' 
'Bah!' cried John Westlockwith the utmost disgust and disdain the 
monosyllable is capable of expressing. 'Ladiesgood evening. 
ComePinchit's not worth thinking of. I was right and you were 
wrong. That's small matter; you'll be wiser another time.' 
So sayinghe clapped that dejected companion on the shoulder
turned upon his heeland walked out into the passagewhither poor 
Mr Pinchafter lingering irresolutely in the parlour for a few 
secondsexpressing in his countenance the deepest mental misery and 
gloom followed him. Then they took up the box between themand 
sallied out to meet the mail. 
That fleet conveyance passedevery nightthe corner of a lane at 
some distance; towards which point they bent their steps. For some 
minutes they walked along in silenceuntil at length young Westlock 
burst into a loud laughand at intervals into anotherand another. 
Still there was no response from his companion. 
'I'll tell you whatPinch!' he said abruptlyafter another 
lengthened silence--'You haven't half enough of the devil in you. 
Half enough! You haven't any.' 
'Well!' said Pinch with a sigh'I don't knowI'm sure. It's 
compliment to say so. If I haven'tI supposeI'm all the better 
for it.' 
'All the better!' repeated his companion tartly: 'All the worseyou 
mean to say.' 
'And yet' said Pinchpursuing his own thoughts and not this last 
remark on the part of his friend'I must have a good deal of what 
you call the devil in metooor how could I make Pecksniff so 
uncomfortable? I wouldn't have occasioned him so much distress-don't 
laughplease--for a mine of money; and Heaven knows I could 
find good use for it tooJohn. How grieved he was!' 
'HE grieved!' returned the other. 
'Why didn't you observe that the tears were almost starting out of 
his eyes!' cried Pinch. 'Bless my soulJohnis it nothing to see 
a man moved to that extent and know one's self to be the cause! And 
did you hear him say that he could have shed his blood for me?' 
'Do you WANT any blood shed for you?' returned his friendwith 
considerable irritation. 'Does he shed anything for you that you DO 
want? Does he shed employment for youinstruction for youpocket 
money for you? Does he shed even legs of mutton for you in any 
decent proportion to potatoes and garden stuff?' 
'I am afraid' said Pinchsighing again'that I am a great eater; 
I can't disguise from myself that I'm a great eater. Nowyou know 
thatJohn.' 
'You a great eater!' retorted his companionwith no less 
indignation than before. 'How do you know you are?' 
There appeared to be forcible matter in this inquiryfor Mr Pinch 
only repeated in an undertone that he had a strong misgiving on the 
subjectand that he greatly feared he was. 
'Besideswhether I am or no' he added'that has little or nothing 
to do with his thinking me ungrateful. Johnthere is scarcely a 
sin in the world that is in my eyes such a crying one as 
ingratitude; and when he taxes me with thatand believes me to be 
guilty of ithe makes me miserable and wretched.' 
'Do you think he don't know that?' returned the other scornfully. 
'But comePinchbefore I say anything more to youjust run over 
the reasons you have for being grateful to him at allwill you? 
Change hands firstfor the box is heavy. That'll do. Nowgo on.' 
'In the first place' said Pinch'he took me as his pupil for much 
less than he asked.' 
'Well' rejoined his friendperfectly unmoved by this instance of 
generosity. 'What in the second place?' 
'What in the second place?' cried Pinchin a sort of desperation
'whyeverything in the second place. My poor old grandmother died 
happy to think that she had put me with such an excellent man. I 
have grown up in his houseI am in his confidenceI am his 
assistanthe allows me a salary; when his business improvesmy 
prospects are to improve too. All thisand a great deal moreis 
in the second place. And in the very prologue and preface to the 
first placeJohnyou must consider thiswhich nobody knows better 
than I: that I was born for much plainer and poorer thingsthat I 
am not a good hand for his kind of businessand have no talent for 
itor indeed for anything else but odds and ends that are of no use 
or service to anybody.' 
He said this with so much earnestnessand in a tone so full of 
feelingthat his companion instinctively changed his manner as he 
sat down on the box (they had by this time reached the finger-post 
at the end of the lane); motioned him to sit down beside him; and 
laid his hand upon his shoulder. 
'I believe you are one of the best fellows in the world' he said
'Tom Pinch.' 
'Not at all' rejoined Tom. 'If you only knew Pecksniff as well as 
I doyou might say it of himindeedand say it truly.' 
'I'll say anything of himyou like' returned the other'and not 
another word to his disparagement.' 
'It's for my sakethen; not hisI am afraid' said Pinchshaking 
his head gravely. 
'For whose you pleaseTomso that it does please you. Oh! He's a 
famous fellow! HE never scraped and clawed into his pouch all your 
poor grandmother's hard savings--she was a housekeeperwasn't she
Tom?' 
'Yes' said Mr Pinchnursing one of his large kneesand nodding 
his head; 'a gentleman's housekeeper.' 
'HE never scraped and clawed into his pouch all her hard savings; 
dazzling her with prospects of your happiness and advancementwhich 
he knew (and no man better) never would be realised! HE never 
speculated and traded on her pride in youand her having educated 
youand on her desire that you at least should live to be a 
gentleman. Not heTom!' 
'No' said Tomlooking into his friend's faceas if he were a 
little doubtful of his meaning. 'Of course not.' 
'So I say' returned the youth'of course he never did. HE didn't 
take less than he had askedbecause that less was all she hadand 
more than he expected; not heTom! He doesn't keep you as his 
assistant because you are of any use to him; because your wonderful 
faith in his pretensions is of inestimable service in all his mean 
disputes; because your honesty reflects honesty on him; because your 
wandering about this little place all your spare hoursreading in 
ancient books and foreign tonguesgets noised abroadeven as far 
as Salisburymaking of himPecksniff the mastera man of learning 
and of vast importance. HE gets no credit from youTomnot he.' 
'Whyof course he don't' said Pinchgazing at his friend with a 
more troubled aspect than before. 'Pecksniff get credit from me! 
Well!' 
'Don't I say that it's ridiculous' rejoined the other'even to 
think of such a thing?' 
'Whyit's madness' said Tom. 
'Madness!' returned young Westlock. 'Certainly it's madness. Who 
but a madman would suppose he cares to hear it said on Sundaysthat 
the volunteer who plays the organ in the churchand practises on 
summer evenings in the darkis Mr Pecksniff's young manehTom? 
Who but a madman would suppose it is the game of such a man as he
to have his name in everybody's mouthconnected with the thousand 
useless odds and ends you do (and whichof coursehe taught you)
ehTom? Who but a madman would suppose you advertised him 
hereaboutsmuch cheaper and much better than a chalker on the walls 
couldehTom? As well might one suppose that he doesn't on all 
occasions pour out his whole heart and soul to you; that he doesn't 
make you a very liberal and indeed rather an extravagant allowance; 
orto be more wild and monstrous stillif that be possibleas 
well might one suppose' and hereat every wordhe struck him 
lightly on the breast'that Pecksniff traded in your natureand 
that your nature was to be timid and distrustful of yourselfand 
trustful of all other menbut most of allof him who least 
deserves it. There would be madnessTom!' 
Mr Pinch had listened to all this with looks of bewildermentwhich 
seemed to be in part occasioned by the matter of his companion's 
speechand in part by his rapid and vehement manner. Now that he 
had come to a closehe drew a very long breath; and gazing 
wistfully in his face as if he were unable to settle in his own mind 
what expression it woreand were desirous to draw from it as good a 
clue to his real meaning as it was possible to obtain in the dark
was about to answerwhen the sound of the mail guard's horn came 
cheerily upon their earsputting an immediate end to the 
conference; greatly as it seemed to the satisfaction of the younger 
manwho jumped up brisklyand gave his hand to his companion. 
'Both handsTom. I shall write to you from Londonmind!' 
'Yes' said Pinch. 'Yes. Doplease. Good-bye. Good-bye. I can 
hardly believe you're going. It seemsnowbut yesterday that you 
came. Good-bye! my dear old fellow!' 
John Westlock returned his parting words with no less heartiness of 
mannerand sprung up to his seat upon the roof. Off went the mail 
at a canter down the dark road; the lamps gleaming brightlyand the 
horn awakening all the echoesfar and wide. 
'Go your ways' said Pinchapostrophizing the coach; 'I can hardly 
persuade myself but you're aliveand are some great monster who 
visits this place at certain intervalsto bear my friends away into 
the world. You're more exulting and rampant than usual tonightI 
think; and you may well crow over your prize; for he is a fine lad
an ingenuous ladand has but one fault that I know of; he don't 
mean itbut he is most cruelly unjust to Pecksniff!' 
CHAPTER THREE 
IN WHICH CERTAIN OTHER PERSONS ARE INTRODUCED; ON THE SAME TERMS AS 
IN THE LAST CHAPTER 
Mention has been already made more than onceof a certain Dragon 
who swung and creaked complainingly before the village alehouse 
door. A fadedand an ancient dragon he was; and many a wintry storm 
of rainsnowsleetand hailhad changed his colour from a gaudy 
blue to a faint lack-lustre shade of grey. But there he hung; 
rearingin a state of monstrous imbecilityon his hind legs; 
waxingwith every month that passedso much more dim and 
shapelessthat as you gazed at him on one side of the sign-board it 
seemed as if he must be gradually melting through itand coming out 
upon the other. 
He was a courteous and considerate dragontoo; or had been in his 
distincter days; for in the midst of his rampant feeblenesshe kept 
one of his forepaws near his noseas though he would say'Don't 
mind me--it's only my fun;' while he held out the other in polite 
and hospitable entreaty. Indeed it must be conceded to the whole 
brood of dragons of modern timesthat they have made a great 
advance in civilisation and refinement. They no longer demand a 
beautiful virgin for breakfast every morningwith as much 
regularity as any tame single gentleman expects his hot rollbut 
rest content with the society of idle bachelors and roving married 
men; and they are now remarkable rather for holding aloof from the 
softer sex and discouraging their visits (especially on Saturday 
nights)than for rudely insisting on their company without any 
reference to their inclinationsas they are known to have done in 
days of yore. 
Nor is this tribute to the reclaimed animals in question so wide a 
digression into the realms of Natural History as it mayat first 
sightappear to be; for the present business of these pages in with 
the dragon who had his retreat in Mr Pecksniff's neighbourhoodand 
that courteous animal being already on the carpetthere is nothing 
in the way of its immediate transaction. 
For many yearsthenhe had swung and creakedand flapped himself 
aboutbefore the two windows of the best bedroom of that house of 
entertainment to which he lent his name; but never in all his 
swingingcreakingand flappinghad there been such a stir within 
its dingy precinctsas on the evening next after that upon which 
the incidentsdetailed in the last chapter occurred; when there was 
such a hurrying up and down stairs of feetsuch a glancing of 
lightssuch a whispering of voicessuch a smoking and sputtering 
of wood newly lighted in a damp chimneysuch an airing of linen
such a scorching smell of hot warming-panssuch a domestic bustle 
and to-doin shortas never dragongriffinunicornor other 
animal of that species presided oversince they first began to 
interest themselves in household affairs. 
An old gentleman and a young ladytravellingunattendedin a 
rusty old chariot with post-horses; coming nobody knew whence and 
going nobody knew whither; had turned out of the high roadand 
driven unexpectedly to the Blue Dragon; and here was the old 
gentlemanwho had taken this step by reason of his sudden illness 
in the carriagesuffering the most horrible cramps and spasmsyet 
protesting and vowing in the very midst of his painthat he 
wouldn't have a doctor sent forand wouldn't take any remedies but 
those which the young lady administered from a small medicine-chest
and wouldn'tin a worddo anything but terrify the landlady out of 
her five witsand obstinately refuse compliance with every 
suggestion that was made to him. 
Of all the five hundred proposals for his relief which the good 
woman poured out in less than half an hourhe would entertain but 
one. That was that he should go to bed. And it was in the 
preparation of his bed and the arrangement of his chamberthat all 
the stir was made in the room behind the Dragon. 
He wasbeyond all questionvery illand suffered exceedingly; not 
the lessperhapsbecause he was a strong and vigorous old man
with a will of ironand a voice of brass. But neither the 
apprehensions which he plainly entertainedat timesfor his life
nor the great pain he underwentinfluenced his resolution in the 
least degree. He would have no person sent for. The worse he grew
the more rigid and inflexible he became in his determination. If 
they sent for any person to attend himmanwomanor childhe 
would leave the house directly (so he told them)though he quitted 
it on footand died upon the threshold of the door. 
Nowthere being no medical practitioner actually resident in the 
villagebut a poor apothecary who was also a grocer and general 
dealerthe landlady hadupon her own responsibilitysent for him
in the very first burst and outset of the disaster. Of course it 
followedas a necessary result of his being wantedthat he was not 
at home. He had gone some miles awayand was not expected home 
until late at night; so the landladybeing by this time pretty well 
beside herselfdispatched the same messenger in all haste for Mr 
Pecksniffas a learned man who could bear a deal of responsibility
and a moral man who could administer a world of comfort to a 
troubled mind. That her guest had need of some efficient services 
under the latter head was obvious enough from the restless 
expressionsimportinghoweverrather a worldly than a spiritual 
anxietyto which he gave frequent utterance. 
From this last-mentioned secret errandthe messenger returned with 
no better news than from the first; Mr Pecksniff was not at home. 
Howeverthey got the patient into bed without him; and in the 
course of two hourshe gradually became so far better that there 
were much longer intervals than at first between his terms of 
suffering. By degreeshe ceased to suffer at all; though his 
exhaustion was occasionally so great that it suggested hardly less 
alarm than his actual endurance had done. 
It was in one of his intervals of reposewhenlooking round with 
great cautionand reaching uneasily out of his nest of pillowshe 
endeavouredwith a strange air of secrecy and distrustto make use 
of the writing materials which he had ordered to be placed on a 
table beside himthat the young lady and the mistress of the Blue 
Dragon found themselves sitting side by side before the fire in the 
sick chamber. 
The mistress of the Blue Dragon was in outward appearance just what 
a landlady should be: broadbuxomcomfortableand good looking
with a face of clear red and whitewhichby its jovial aspectat 
once bore testimony to her hearty participation in the good things 
of the larder and cellarand to their thriving and healthful 
influences. She was a widowbut years ago had passed through her 
state of weedsand burst into flower again; and in full bloom she 
had continued ever since; and in full bloom she was now; with roses 
on her ample skirtsand roses on her bodiceroses in her cap
roses in her cheeks--ayeand rosesworth the gathering tooon 
her lipsfor that matter. She had still a bright black eyeand 
jet black hair; was comelydimpledplumpand tight as a 
gooseberry; and though she was not exactly what the world calls 
youngyou may make an affidaviton trustbefore any mayor or 
magistrate in Christendomthat there are a great many young ladies 
in the world (blessings on them one and all!) whom you wouldn't like 
half as wellor admire half as muchas the beaming hostess of the 
Blue Dragon. 
As this fair matron sat beside the fireshe glanced occasionally 
with all the pride of ownershipabout the room; which was a large 
apartmentsuch as one may see in country placeswith a low roof 
and a sunken flooringall downhill from the doorand a descent of 
two steps on the inside so exquisitely unexpectedthat strangers
despite the most elaborate cautioningusually dived in head first
as into a plunging-bath. It was none of your frivolous and 
preposterously bright bedroomswhere nobody can close an eye with 
any kind of propriety or decent regard to the association of ideas; 
but it was a gooddullleadendrowsy placewhere every article 
of furniture reminded you that you came there to sleepand that you 
were expected to go to sleep. There was no wakeful reflection of 
the fire thereas in your modern chamberswhich upon the darkest 
nights have a watchful consciousness of French polish; the old 
Spanish mahogany winked at it now and thenas a dozing cat or dog 
mightnothing more. The very size and shapeand hopeless 
immovability of the bedsteadand wardrobeand in a minor degree of 
even the chairs and tablesprovoked sleep; they were plainly 
apoplectic and disposed to snore. There were no staring portraits 
to remonstrate with you for being lazy; no round-eyed birds upon the 
curtainsdisgustingly wide awakeand insufferably prying. The 
thick neutral hangingsand the dark blindsand the heavy heap of 
bed-clotheswere all designed to hold in sleepand act as 
nonconductors to the day and getting up. Even the old stuffed 
fox upon the top of the wardrobe was devoid of any spark of 
vigilancefor his glass eye had fallen outand he slumbered 
as he stood. 
The wandering attention of the mistress of the Blue Dragon roved to 
these things but twice or thriceand then for but an instant at a 
time. It soon deserted themand even the distant bed with its 
strange burdenfor the young creature immediately before herwho
with her downcast eyes intently fixed upon the firesat wrapped in 
silent meditation. 
She was very young; apparently no more than seventeen; timid and 
shrinking in her mannerand yet with a greater share of self 
possession and control over her emotions than usually belongs to a 
far more advanced period of female life. This she had abundantly 
shownbut nowin her tending of the sick gentleman. She was short 
in stature; and her figure was slightas became her years; but all 
the charms of youth and maidenhood set it offand clustered on her 
gentle brow. Her face was very palein part no doubt from recent 
agitation. Her dark brown hairdisordered from the same causehad 
fallen negligently from its bondsand hung upon her neck; for which 
instance of its waywardness no male observer would have had the 
heart to blame it. 
Her attire was that of a ladybut extremely plain; and in her 
mannereven when she sat as still as she did thenthere was an 
indefinable something which appeared to be in kindred with her 
scrupulously unpretending dress. She had satat first looking 
anxiously towards the bed; but seeing that the patient remained 
quietand was busy with his writingshe had softly moved her chair 
into its present place; partlyas it seemedfrom an instinctive 
consciousness that he desired to avoid observation; and partly that 
she mightunseen by himgive some vent to the natural feelings she 
had hitherto suppressed. 
Of all thisand much morethe rosy landlady of the Blue Dragon 
took as accurate note and observation as only woman can take of 
woman. And at length she saidin a voice too lowshe knewto 
reach the bed: 
'You have seen the gentleman in this way beforemiss? Is he used 
to these attacks?' 
'I have seen him very ill beforebut not so ill as he has been 
tonight.' 
'What a Providence!' said the landlady of the Dragon'that you had 
the prescriptions and the medicines with youmiss!' 
'They are intended for such an emergency. We never travel without 
them.' 
'Oh!' thought the hostess'then we are in the habit of travelling
and of travelling together.' 
She was so conscious of expressing this in her facethat meeting 
the young lady's eyes immediately afterwardsand being a very 
honest hostessshe was rather confused. 
'The gentleman--your grandpapa'--she resumedafter a short pause
'being so bent on having no assistancemust terrify you very much
miss?' 
'I have been very much alarmed to-night. He--he is not my 
grandfather.' 
'FatherI should have said' returned the hostesssensible of 
having made an awkward mistake. 
'Nor my father' said the young lady. 'Nor' she addedslightly 
smiling with a quick perception of what the landlady was going to 
add'Nor my uncle. We are not related.' 
'Oh dear me!' returned the landladystill more embarrassed than 
before; 'how could I be so very much mistaken; knowingas anybody 
in their proper senses might that when a gentleman is illhe looks 
so much older than he really is? That I should have called you 
Miss,tooma'am!' But when she had proceeded thus farshe 
glanced involuntarily at the third finger of the young lady's left 
handand faltered again; for there was no ring upon it. 
'When I told you we were not related' said the other mildlybut 
not without confusion on her own part'I meant not in any way. Not 
even by marriage. Did you call meMartin?' 
'Call you?' cried the old manlooking quickly upand hurriedly 
drawing beneath the coverlet the paper on which he had been writing. 
'No.' 
She had moved a pace or two towards the bedbut stopped 
immediatelyand went no farther. 
'No' he repeatedwith a petulant emphasis. 'Why do you ask me? 
If I had called youwhat need for such a question?' 
'It was the creaking of the sign outsidesirI dare say' observed 
the landlady; a suggestion by the way (as she felt a moment after 
she had made it)not at all complimentary to the voice of the old 
gentleman. 
'No matter whatma'am' he rejoined: 'it wasn't I. Why how you 
stand thereMaryas if I had the plague! But they're all afraid of 
me' he addedleaning helplessly backward on his pillow; 'even she! 
There is a curse upon me. What else have I to look for?' 
'Oh dearno. Oh noI'm sure' said the good-tempered landlady
risingand going towards him. 'Be of better cheersir. These are 
only sick fancies.' 
'What are only sick fancies?' he retorted. 'What do you know about 
fancies? Who told you about fancies? The old story! Fancies!' 
'Only see again therehow you take one up!' said the mistress of 
the Blue Dragonwith unimpaired good humour. 'Dear heart alive
there is no harm in the wordsirif it is an old one. Folks in 
good health have their fanciestooand strange onesevery day.' 
Harmless as this speech appeared to beit acted on the traveller's 
distrustlike oil on fire. He raised his head up in the bedand
fixing on her two dark eyes whose brightness was exaggerated by the 
paleness of his hollow cheeksas they in turntogether with his 
straggling locks of long grey hairwere rendered whiter by the 
tight black velvet skullcap which he worehe searched her face 
intently. 
'Ah! you begin too soon' he saidin so low a voice that he seemed 
to be thinking itrather than addressing her. 'But you lose no 
time. You do your errandand you earn your fee. Nowwho may be 
your client?' 
The landlady looked in great astonishment at her whom he called 
Maryand finding no rejoinder in the drooping facelooked back 
again at him. At first she had recoiled involuntarilysupposing 
him disordered in his mind; but the slow composure of his manner
and the settled purpose announced in his strong featuresand 
gatheringmost of allabout his puckered mouthforbade the 
supposition. 
'Come' he said'tell me who is it? Being hereit is not very 
hard for me to guessyou may suppose.' 
'Martin' interposed the young ladylaying her hand upon his arm; 
'reflect how short a time we have been in this houseand that even 
your name is unknown here.' 
'Unless' he said'you--' He was evidently tempted to express a 
suspicion of her having broken his confidence in favour of the 
landladybut either remembering her tender nursingor being moved 
in some sort by her facehe checked himselfand changing his 
uneasy posture in the bedwas silent. 
'There!' said Mrs Lupin; for in that name the Blue Dragon was 
licensed to furnish entertainmentboth to man and beast. 'Nowyou 
will be well againsir. You forgotfor the momentthat there 
were none but friends here.' 
'Oh!' cried the old manmoaning impatientlyas he tossed one 
restless arm upon the coverlet; 'why do you talk to me of friends! 
Can you or anybody teach me to know who are my friendsand who my 
enemies?' 
'At least' urged Mrs Lupingently'this young lady is your 
friendI am sure.' 
'She has no temptation to be otherwise' cried the old manlike one 
whose hope and confidence were utterly exhausted. 'I suppose she 
is. Heaven knows. Therelet me try to sleep. Leave the candle 
where it is.' 
As they retired from the bedhe drew forth the writing which had 
occupied him so longand holding it in the flame of the taper burnt 
it to ashes. That donehe extinguished the lightand turning his 
face away with a heavy sighdrew the coverlet about his headand 
lay quite still. 
This destruction of the paperboth as being strangely inconsistent 
with the labour he had devoted to itand as involving considerable 
danger of fire to the Dragonoccasioned Mrs Lupin not a little 
consternation. But the young lady evincing no surprisecuriosity
or alarmwhispered herwith many thanks for her solicitude and 
companythat she would remain there some time longer; and that she 
begged her not to share her watchas she was well used to being 
aloneand would pass the time in reading. 
Mrs Lupin had her full share and dividend of that large capital of 
curiosity which is inherited by her sexand at another time it 
might have been difficult so to impress this hint upon her as to 
induce her to take it. But nowin sheer wonder and amazement at 
these mysteriesshe withdrew at onceand repairing straightway to 
her own little parlour below stairssat down in her easy-chair with 
unnatural composure. At this very crisisa step was heard in the 
entryand Mr Pecksnifflooking sweetly over the half-door of the 
barand into the vista of snug privacy beyondmurmured: 
'Good eveningMrs Lupin!' 
'Oh dear mesir!' she criedadvancing to receive him'I am so 
very glad you have come.' 
'And I am very glad I have come' said Mr Pecksniff'if I can be of 
service. I am very glad I have come. What is the matterMrs 
Lupin?' 
'A gentleman taken ill upon the roadhas been so very bad upstairs
sir' said the tearful hostess. 
'A gentleman taken ill upon the roadhas been so very bad upstairs
has he?' repeated Mr Pecksniff. 'Wellwell!' 
Now there was nothing that one may call decidedly original in this 
remarknor can it be exactly said to have contained any wise 
precept theretofore unknown to mankindor to have opened any 
hidden source of consolation; but Mr Pecksniff's manner was so 
blandand he nodded his head so soothinglyand showed in 
everything such an affable sense of his own excellencethat anybody 
would have beenas Mrs Lupin wascomforted by the mere voice and 
presence of such a man; andthough he had merely said 'a verb must 
agree with its nominative case in number and personmy good 
friend' or 'eight times eight are sixty-fourmy worthy soul' must 
have felt deeply grateful to him for his humanity and wisdom. 
'And how' asked Mr Pecksniffdrawing off his gloves and warming 
his hands before the fireas benevolently as if they were somebody 
else'snot his; 'and how is he now?' 
'He is betterand quite tranquil' answered Mrs Lupin. 
'He is betterand quite tranquil' said Mr Pecksniff. 'Very well! 
Ve-ry well!' 
Here againthough the statement was Mrs Lupin's and not Mr 
Pecksniff'sMr Pecksniff made it his own and consoled her with it. 
It was not much when Mrs Lupin said itbut it was a whole book when 
Mr Pecksniff said it. 'I observe' he seemed to say'and through 
memorality in general remarksthat he is better and quite 
tranquil.' 
'There must be weighty matters on his mindthough' said the 
hostessshaking her head'for he talkssirin the strangest way 
you ever heard. He is far from easy in his thoughtsand wants some 
proper advice from those whose goodness makes it worth his having.' 
'Then' said Mr Pecksniff'he is the sort of customer for me.' But 
though he said this in the plainest languagehe didn't speak a 
word. He only shook his head; disparagingly of himself too. 
'I am afraidsir' continued the landladyfirst looking round to 
assure herself that there was nobody within hearingand then 
looking down upon the floor. 'I am very much afraidsirthat his 
conscience is troubled by his not being related to--or--or even 
married to--a very young lady--' 
'Mrs Lupin!' said Mr Pecksniffholding up his hand with something 
in his manner as nearly approaching to severity as any expression of 
hismild being that he wascould ever do. 'Person! young person?' 
'A very young person' said Mrs Lupincurtseying and blushing; '--I 
beg your pardonsirbut I have been so hurried to-nightthat I 
don't know what I say--who is with him now.' 
'Who is with him now' ruminated Mr Pecksniffwarming his back (as 
he had warmed his hands) as if it were a widow's backor an 
orphan's backor an enemy's backor a back that any less excellent 
man would have suffered to be cold. 'Oh dear medear me!' 
'At the same time I am bound to sayand I do say with all my 
heart' observed the hostessearnestly'that her looks and manner 
almost disarm suspicion.' 
'Your suspicionMrs Lupin' said Mr Pecksniff gravely'is very 
natural.' 
Touching which remarklet it be written down to their confusion
that the enemies of this worthy man unblushingly maintained that he 
always said of what was very badthat it was very natural; and that 
he unconsciously betrayed his own nature in doing so. 
'Your suspicionMrs Lupin' he repeated'is very naturaland I 
have no doubt correct. I will wait upon these travellers.' 
With that he took off his great-coatand having run his fingers 
through his hairthrust one hand gently in the bosom of his waistcoat 
and meekly signed to her to lead the way. 
'Shall I knock?' asked Mrs Lupinwhen they reached the chamber 
door. 
'No' said Mr Pecksniff'enter if you please.' 
They went in on tiptoe; or rather the hostess took that precaution 
for Mr Pecksniff always walked softly. The old gentleman was still 
asleepand his young companion still sat reading by the fire. 
'I am afraid' said Mr Pecksniffpausing at the doorand giving 
his head a melancholy roll'I am afraid that this looks artful. I 
am afraidMrs Lupindo you knowthat this looks very artful!' 
As he finished this whisperhe advanced before the hostess; and at 
the same time the young ladyhearing footstepsrose. Mr Pecksniff 
glanced at the volume she heldand whispered Mrs Lupin again; if 
possiblewith increased despondency. 
'Yesma'am' he said'it is a good book. I was fearful of that 
beforehand. I am apprehensive that this is a very deep thing 
indeed!' 
'What gentleman is this?' inquired the object of his virtuous 
doubts. 
'Hush! don't trouble yourselfma'am' said Mr Pecksniffas the 
landlady was about to answer. 'This young'--in spite of himself he 
hesitated when "person" rose to his lipsand substituted another 
word: 'this young strangerMrs Lupinwill excuse me for replying 
brieflythat I reside in this village; it may be in an influential 
mannerhoweverundeserved; and that I have been summoned here by 
you. I am hereas I am everywhereI hopein sympathy for the 
sick and sorry.' 
With these impressive wordsMr Pecksniff passed over to the 
bedsidewhereafter patting the counterpane once or twice in a 
very solemn manneras if by that means he gained a clear insight 
into the patient's disorderhe took his seat in a large arm-chair
and in an attitude of some thoughtfulness and much comfortwaited 
for his waking. Whatever objection the young lady urged to Mrs 
Lupin went no furtherfor nothing more was said to Mr Pecksniff
and Mr Pecksniff said nothing more to anybody else. 
Full half an hour elapsed before the old man stirredbut at length 
he turned himself in bedandthough not yet awakegave tokens 
that his sleep was drawing to an end. By little and little he 
removed the bed-clothes from about his headand turned still more 
towards the side where Mr Pecksniff sat. In course of time his eyes 
opened; and he lay for a few moments as people newly roused 
sometimes willgazing indolently at his visitorwithout any 
distinct consciousness of his presence. 
There was nothing remarkable in these proceedingsexcept the 
influence they worked on Mr Pecksniffwhich could hardly have been 
surpassed by the most marvellous of natural phenomena. Gradually 
his hands became tightly clasped upon the elbows of the chairhis 
eyes dilated with surprisehis mouth openedhis hair stood more 
erect upon his forehead than its custom wasuntilat lengthwhen 
the old man rose in bedand stared at him with scarcely less 
emotion than he showed himselfthe Pecksniff doubts were all 
resolvedand he exclaimed aloud: 
'You ARE Martin Chuzzlewit!' 
His consternation of surprise was so genuinethat the old manwith 
all the disposition that he clearly entertained to believe it 
assumedwas convinced of its reality. 
'I am Martin Chuzzlewit' he saidbitterly: 'and Martin Chuzzlewit 
wishes you had been hangedbefore you had come here to disturb him 
in his sleep. WhyI dreamed of this fellow!' he saidlying down 
againand turning away his face'before I knew that he was near 
me!' 
'My good cousin--' said Mr Pecksniff. 
'There! His very first words!' cried the old manshaking his grey 
head to and fro upon the pillowand throwing up his hands. 'In his 
very first words he asserts his relationship! I knew he would; they 
all do it! Near or distantblood or waterit's all one. Ugh! What 
a calendar of deceitand lyingand false-witnessingthe sound of 
any word of kindred opens before me!' 
'Pray do not be hastyMr Chuzzlewit' said Pecksniffin a tone 
that was at once in the sublimest degree compassionate and 
dispassionate; for he had by this time recovered from his surprise
and was in full possession of his virtuous self. 'You will regret 
being hastyI know you will.' 
'You know!' said Martincontemptuously. 
'Yes' retorted Mr Pecksniff. 'AyeayeMr Chuzzlewit; and don't 
imagine that I mean to court or flatter you; for nothing is further 
from my intention. Neithersirneed you entertain the least 
misgiving that I shall repeat that obnoxious word which has given 
you so much offence already. Why should I? What do I expect or 
want from you? There is nothing in your possession that I know of
Mr Chuzzlewitwhich is much to be coveted for the happiness it 
brings you.' 
'That's true enough' muttered the old man. 
'Apart from that consideration' said Mr Pecksniffwatchful of the 
effect he made'it must be plain to you (I am sure) by this time
that if I had wished to insinuate myself into your good opinionI 
should have beenof all thingscareful not to address you as a 
relative; knowing your humourand being quite certain beforehand 
that I could not have a worse letter of recommendation.' 
Martin made not any verbal answer; but he as clearly implied though 
only by a motion of his legs beneath the bed-clothesthat there was 
reason in thisand that he could not dispute itas if he had said 
as much in good set terms. 
'No' said Mr Pecksniffkeeping his hand in his waistcoat as though 
he were readyon the shortest noticeto produce his heart for 
Martin Chuzzlewit's inspection'I came here to offer my services to 
a stranger. I make no offer of them to youbecause I know you 
would distrust me if I did. But lying on that bedsirI regard 
you as a strangerand I have just that amount of interest in you 
which I hope I should feel in any strangercircumstanced as you 
are. Beyond thatI am quite as indifferent to youMr Chuzzlewit
as you are to me.' 
Having said whichMr Pecksniff threw himself back in the easy-chair; 
so radiant with ingenuous honestythat Mrs Lupin almost wondered 
not to see a stained-glass Glorysuch as the Saint wore in the 
churchshining about his head. 
A long pause succeeded. The old manwith increased restlessness
changed his posture several times. Mrs Lupin and the young lady 
gazed in silence at the counterpane. Mr Pecksniff toyed 
abstractedly with his eye-glassand kept his eyes shutthat he 
might ruminate the better. 
'Eh?' he said at lastopening them suddenlyand looking towards 
the bed. 'I beg your pardon. I thought you spoke. Mrs Lupin' he 
continuedslowly rising 'I am not aware that I can be of any 
service to you here. The gentleman is betterand you are as good a 
nurse as he can have. Eh?' 
This last note of interrogation bore reference to another change of 
posture on the old man's partwhich brought his face towards Mr 
Pecksniff for the first time since he had turned away from him. 
'If you desire to speak to me before I gosir' continued that 
gentlemanafter another pause'you may command my leisure; but I 
must stipulatein justice to myselfthat you do so as to a 
strangerstrictly as to a stranger.' 
Now if Mr Pecksniff knewfrom anything Martin Chuzzlewit had 
expressed in gesturesthat he wanted to speak to himhe could only 
have found it out on some such principle as prevails in melodramas
and in virtue of which the elderly farmer with the comic son always 
knows what the dumb girl means when she takes refuge in his garden
and relates her personal memoirs in incomprehensible pantomime. But 
without stopping to make any inquiry on this pointMartin 
Chuzzlewit signed to his young companion to withdrawwhich she 
immediately didalong with the landlady leaving him and Mr 
Pecksniff alone together. For some time they looked at each other 
in silence; or rather the old man looked at Mr Pecksniffand Mr 
Pecksniff again closing his eyes on all outward objectstook an 
inward survey of his own breast. That it amply repaid him for his 
troubleand afforded a delicious and enchanting prospectwas clear 
from the expression of his face. 
'You wish me to speak to you as to a total stranger' said the old 
man'do you?' 
Mr Pecksniff repliedby a shrug of his shoulders and an apparent 
turning round of his eyes in their sockets before he opened them
that he was still reduced to the necessity of entertaining that 
desire. 
'You shall be gratified' said Martin. 'SirI am a rich man. Not 
so rich as some supposeperhapsbut yet wealthy. I am not a miser 
sirthough even that charge is made against meas I hearand 
currently believed. I have no pleasure in hoarding. I have no 
pleasure in the possession of moneyThe devil that we call by that 
name can give me nothing but unhappiness.' 
It would be no description of Mr Pecksniff's gentleness of manner to 
adopt the common parlanceand say that he looked at this moment as 
if butter wouldn't melt in his mouth. He rather looked as if any 
quantity of butter might have been made out of himby churning the 
milk of human kindnessas it spouted upwards from his heart. 
'For the same reason that I am not a hoarder of money' said the old 
man'I am not lavish of it. Some people find their gratification 
in storing it up; and others theirs in parting with it; but I have 
no gratification connected with the thing. Pain and bitterness are 
the only goods it ever could procure for me. I hate it. It is a 
spectre walking before me through the worldand making every social 
pleasure hideous.' 
A thought arose in Pecksniff's mindwhich must have instantly 
mounted to his faceor Martin Chuzzlewit would not have resumed as 
quickly and as sternly as he did: 
'You would advise me for my peace of mindto get rid of this source 
of miseryand transfer it to some one who could bear it better. 
Even youperhapswould rid me of a burden under which I suffer so 
grievously. Butkind stranger' said the old manwhose every 
feature darkened as he spoke'good Christian strangerthat is a 
main part of my trouble. In other handsI have known money do 
good; in other hands I have known it triumphed inand boasted of 
with reasonas the master-key to all the brazen gates that close 
upon the paths to worldly honourfortuneand enjoyment. To what 
man or woman; to what worthyhonestincorruptible creature; shall 
I confide such a talismaneither now or when I die? Do you know 
any such person? YOUR virtues are of course inestimablebut can 
you tell me of any other living creature who will bear the test of 
contact with myself?' 
'Of contact with yourselfsir?' echoed Mr Pecksniff. 
'Aye' returned the old man'the test of contact with me--with me. 
You have heard of him whose misery (the gratification of his own 
foolish wish) wasthat he turned every thing he touched into gold. 
The curse of my existenceand the realisation of my own mad desire 
is that by the golden standard which I bear about meI am doomed to 
try the metal of all other menand find it false and hollow.' 
Mr Pecksniff shook his headand said'You think so.' 
'Oh yes' cried the old man'I think so! and in your telling me "I 
think so I recognize the true unworldly ring of YOUR metal. I 
tell you, man,' he added, with increasing bitterness, 'that I have 
gone, a rich man, among people of all grades and kinds; relatives, 
friends, and strangers; among people in whom, when I was poor, I had 
confidence, and justly, for they never once deceived me then, or, to 
me, wronged each other. But I have never found one nature, no, not 
one, in which, being wealthy and alone, I was not forced to detect 
the latent corruption that lay hid within it waiting for such as I 
to bring it forth. Treachery, deceit, and low design; hatred of 
competitors, real or fancied, for my favour; meanness, falsehood, 
baseness, and servility; or,' and here he looked closely in his 
cousin's eyes, 'or an assumption of honest independence, almost 
worse than all; these are the beauties which my wealth has brought 
to light. Brother against brother, child against parent, friends 
treading on the faces of friends, this is the social company by whom 
my way has been attended. There are stories told--they may be true 
or false--of rich men who, in the garb of poverty, have found out 
virtue and rewarded it. They were dolts and idiots for their pains. 
They should have made the search in their own characters. They 
should have shown themselves fit objects to be robbed and preyed 
upon and plotted against and adulated by any knaves, who, but for 
joy, would have spat upon their coffins when they died their dupes; 
and then their search would have ended as mine has done, and they 
would be what I am.' 
Mr Pecksniff, not at all knowing what it might be best to say in the 
momentary pause which ensued upon these remarks, made an elaborate 
demonstration of intending to deliver something very oracular 
indeed; trusting to the certainty of the old man interrupting him, 
before he should utter a word. Nor was he mistaken, for Martin 
Chuzzlewit having taken breath, went on to say: 
'Hear me to an end; judge what profit you are like to gain from any 
repetition of this visit; and leave me. I have so corrupted and 
changed the nature of all those who have ever attended on me, by 
breeding avaricious plots and hopes within them; I have engendered 
such domestic strife and discord, by tarrying even with members of 
my own family; I have been such a lighted torch in peaceful homes, 
kindling up all the inflammable gases and vapours in their moral 
atmosphere, which, but for me, might have proved harmless to the 
end, that I have, I may say, fled from all who knew me, and taking 
refuge in secret places have lived, of late, the life of one who is 
hunted. The young girl whom you just now saw--what! your eye 
lightens when I talk of her! You hate her already, do you?' 
'Upon my word, sir!' said Mr Pecksniff, laying his hand upon his 
breast, and dropping his eyelids. 
'I forgot,' cried the old man, looking at him with a keenness which 
the other seemed to feel, although he did not raise his eyes so as 
to see it. 'I ask your pardon. I forgot you were a stranger. For 
the moment you reminded me of one Pecksniff, a cousin of mine. As I 
was saying--the young girl whom you just now saw, is an orphan 
child, whom, with one steady purpose, I have bred and educated, or, 
if you prefer the word, adopted. For a year or more she has been my 
constant companion, and she is my only one. I have taken, as she 
knows, a solemn oath never to leave her sixpence when I die, but 
while I live I make her an annual allowance; not extravagant in its 
amount and yet not stinted. There is a compact between us that no 
term of affectionate cajolery shall ever be addressed by either to 
the other, but that she shall call me always by my Christian name; I 
her, by hers. She is bound to me in life by ties of interest, and 
losing by my death, and having no expectation disappointed, will 
mourn it, perhaps; though for that I care little. This is the only 
kind of friend I have or will have. Judge from such premises what a 
profitable hour you have spent in coming here, and leave me, to 
return no more.' 
With these words, the old man fell slowly back upon his pillow. Mr 
Pecksniff as slowly rose, and, with a prefatory hem, began as 
follows: 
'Mr Chuzzlewit.' 
'There. Go!' interposed the other. 'Enough of this. I am weary of 
you.' 
'I am sorry for that, sir,' rejoined Mr Pecksniff, 'because I have a 
duty to discharge, from which, depend upon it, I shall not shrink. 
No, sir, I shall not shrink.' 
It is a lamentable fact, that as Mr Pecksniff stood erect beside the 
bed, in all the dignity of Goodness, and addressed him thus, the old 
man cast an angry glance towards the candlestick, as if he were 
possessed by a strong inclination to launch it at his cousin's head. 
But he constrained himself, and pointing with his finger to the 
door, informed him that his road lay there. 
'Thank you,' said Mr Pecksniff; 'I am aware of that. I am going. 
But before I go, I crave your leave to speak, and more than that, Mr 
Chuzzlewit, I must and will--yes indeed, I repeat it, must and will 
--be heard. I am not surprised, sir, at anything you have told me 
tonight. It is natural, very natural, and the greater part of it 
was known to me before. I will not say,' continued Mr Pecksniff, 
drawing out his pocket-handkerchief, and winking with both eyes at 
once, as it were, against his will, 'I will not say that you are 
mistaken in me. While you are in your present mood I would not say 
so for the world. I almost wish, indeed, that I had a different 
nature, that I might repress even this slight confession of 
weakness; which I cannot disguise from you; which I feel is 
humiliating; but which you will have the goodness to excuse. We 
will say, if you please,' added Mr Pecksniff, with great tenderness 
of manner, 'that it arises from a cold in the head, or is 
attributable to snuff, or smelling-salts, or onions, or anything but 
the real cause.' 
Here he paused for an instant, and concealed his face behind his 
pocket-handkerchief. Then, smiling faintly, and holding the bed 
furniture with one hand, he resumed: 
'But, Mr Chuzzlewit, while I am forgetful of myself, I owe it to 
myself, and to my character--aye, sir, and I HAVE a character which 
is very dear to me, and will be the best inheritance of my two 
daughters--to tell you, on behalf of another, that your conduct is 
wrong, unnatural, indefensible, monstrous. And I tell you, sir,' 
said Mr Pecksniff, towering on tiptoe among the curtains, as if he 
were literally rising above all worldly considerations, and were 
fain to hold on tight, to keep himself from darting skyward like a 
rocket, 'I tell you without fear or favour, that it will not do for 
you to be unmindful of your grandson, young Martin, who has the 
strongest natural claim upon you. It will not do, sir,' repeated Mr 
Pecksniff, shaking his head. 'You may think it will do, but it 
won't. You must provide for that young man; you shall provide for 
him; you WILL provide for him. I believe,' said Mr Pecksniff, 
glancing at the pen-and-ink, 'that in secret you have already done 
so. Bless you for doing so. Bless you for doing right, sir. Bless 
you for hating me. And good night!' 
So saying, Mr Pecksniff waved his right hand with much solemnity, 
and once more inserting it in his waistcoat, departed. There was 
emotion in his manner, but his step was firm. Subject to human 
weaknesses, he was upheld by conscience. 
Martin lay for some time, with an expression on his face of silent 
wonder, not unmixed with rage; at length he muttered in a whisper: 
'What does this mean? Can the false-hearted boy have chosen such a 
tool as yonder fellow who has just gone out? Why not! He has 
conspired against me, like the rest, and they are but birds of one 
feather. A new plot; a new plot! Oh self, self, self! At every 
turn nothing but self!' 
He fell to trifling, as he ceased to speak, with the ashes of the 
burnt paper in the candlestick. He did so, at first, in pure 
abstraction, but they presently became the subject of his thoughts. 
'Another will made and destroyed,' he said, 'nothing determined on, 
nothing done, and I might have died to-night! I plainly see to what 
foul uses all this money will be put at last,' he cried, almost 
writhing in the bed; 'after filling me with cares and miseries all 
my life, it will perpetuate discord and bad passions when I am dead. 
So it always is. What lawsuits grow out of the graves of rich men, 
every day; sowing perjury, hatred, and lies among near kindred, 
where there should be nothing but love! Heaven help us, we have much 
to answer for! Oh self, self, self! Every man for himself, and no 
creature for me!' 
Universal self! Was there nothing of its shadow in these 
reflections, and in the history of Martin Chuzzlewit, on his own 
showing? 
CHAPTER FOUR 
FROM WHICH IT WILL APPEAR THAT IF UNION BE STRENGTH, AND FAMILY 
AFFECTION BE PLEASANT TO CONTEMPLATE, THE CHUZZLEWITS WERE THE 
STRONGEST AND MOST AGREEABLE FAMILY IN THE WORLD 
That worthy man Mr Pecksniff having taken leave of his cousin in 
the solemn terms recited in the last chapter, withdrew to his own 
home, and remained there three whole days; not so much as going out 
for a walk beyond the boundaries of his own garden, lest he should 
be hastily summoned to the bedside of his penitent and remorseful 
relative, whom, in his ample benevolence, he had made up his mind to 
forgive unconditionally, and to love on any terms. But such was the 
obstinacy and such the bitter nature of that stern old man, that no 
repentant summons came; and the fourth day found Mr Pecksniff 
apparently much farther from his Christian object than the first. 
During the whole of this interval, he haunted the Dragon at all 
times and seasons in the day and night, and, returning good for evil 
evinced the deepest solicitude in the progress of the obdurate 
invalid, in so much that Mrs Lupin was fairly melted by his 
disinterested anxiety (for he often particularly required her to 
take notice that he would do the same by any stranger or pauper in 
the like condition), and shed many tears of admiration and delight. 
Meantime, old Martin Chuzzlewit remained shut up in his own chamber, 
and saw no person but his young companion, saving the hostess of the 
Blue Dragon, who was, at certain times, admitted to his presence. 
So surely as she came into the room, however, Martin feigned to fall 
asleep. It was only when he and the young lady were alone, that he 
would utter a word, even in answer to the simplest inquiry; though 
Mr Pecksniff could make out, by hard listening at the door, that 
they two being left together, he was talkative enough. 
It happened on the fourth evening, that Mr Pecksniff walking, as 
usual, into the bar of the Dragon and finding no Mrs Lupin there, 
went straight upstairs; purposing, in the fervour of his 
affectionate zeal, to apply his ear once more to the keyhole, and 
quiet his mind by assuring himself that the hard-hearted patient was 
going on well. It happened that Mr Pecksniff, coming softly upon 
the dark passage into which a spiral ray of light usually darted 
through the same keyhole, was astonished to find no such ray 
visible; and it happened that Mr Pecksniff, when he had felt his way 
to the chamber-door, stooping hurriedly down to ascertain by 
personal inspection whether the jealousy of the old man had caused 
this keyhole to be stopped on the inside, brought his head into such 
violent contact with another head that he could not help uttering in 
an audible voice the monosyllable 'Oh!' which was, as it were, 
sharply unscrewed and jerked out of him by very anguish. It 
happened then, and lastly, that Mr Pecksniff found himself 
immediately collared by something which smelt like several damp 
umbrellas, a barrel of beer, a cask of warm brandy-and-water, and a 
small parlour-full of stale tobacco smoke, mixed; and was 
straightway led downstairs into the bar from which he had lately 
come, where he found himself standing opposite to, and in the grasp 
of, a perfectly strange gentleman of still stranger appearance who, 
with his disengaged hand, rubbed his own head very hard, and looked 
at him, Pecksniff, with an evil countenance. 
The gentleman was of that order of appearance which is currently 
termed shabby-genteel, though in respect of his dress he can hardly 
be said to have been in any extremities, as his fingers were a long 
way out of his gloves, and the soles of his feet were at an 
inconvenient distance from the upper leather of his boots. His 
nether garments were of a bluish grey--violent in its colours once, 
but sobered now by age and dinginess--and were so stretched and 
strained in a tough conflict between his braces and his straps, that 
they appeared every moment in danger of flying asunder at the knees. 
His coat, in colour blue and of a military cut, was buttoned and 
frogged up to his chin. His cravat was, in hue and pattern, like 
one of those mantles which hairdressers are accustomed to wrap about 
their clients, during the progress of the professional mysteries. 
His hat had arrived at such a pass that it would have been hard to 
determine whether it was originally white or black. But he wore a 
moustache--a shaggy moustache too; nothing in the meek and merciful 
way, but quite in the fierce and scornful style; the regular Satanic 
sort of thing--and he wore, besides, a vast quantity of unbrushed 
hair. He was very dirty and very jaunty; very bold and very mean; 
very swaggering and very slinking; very much like a man who might 
have been something better, and unspeakably like a man who deserved 
to be something worse. 
'You were eaves-dropping at that door, you vagabond!' said this 
gentleman. 
Mr Pecksniff cast him off, as Saint George might have repudiated the 
Dragon in that animal's last moments, and said: 
'Where is Mrs Lupin, I wonder! can the good woman possibly be aware 
that there is a person here who--' 
'Stay!' said the gentleman. 'Wait a bit. She DOES know. What 
then?' 
'What then, sir?' cried Mr Pecksniff. 'What then? Do you know, 
sir, that I am the friend and relative of that sick gentleman? That 
I am his protector, his guardian, his--' 
'Not his niece's husband,' interposed the stranger, 'I'll be sworn; 
for he was there before you.' 
'What do you mean?' said Mr Pecksniff, with indignant surprise. 
'What do you tell me, sir?' 
'Wait a bit!' cried the other, 'Perhaps you are a cousin--the cousin 
who lives in this place?' 
'I AM the cousin who lives in this place,' replied the man of worth. 
'Your name is Pecksniff?' said the gentleman. 
'It is.' 
'I am proud to know you, and I ask your pardon,' said the gentleman, 
touching his hat, and subsequently diving behind his cravat for a 
shirt-collar, which however he did not succeed in bringing to the 
surface. 'You behold in me, sir, one who has also an interest in 
that gentleman upstairs. Wait a bit.' 
As he said this, he touched the tip of his high nose, by way of 
intimation that he would let Mr Pecksniff into a secret presently; 
and pulling off his hat, began to search inside the crown among a 
mass of crumpled documents and small pieces of what may be called 
the bark of broken cigars; whence he presently selected the cover of 
an old letter, begrimed with dirt and redolent of tobacco. 
'Read that,' he cried, giving it to Mr Pecksniff. 
'This is addressed to Chevy Slyme, Esquire,' said that gentleman. 
'You know Chevy Slyme, Esquire, I believe?' returned the stranger. 
Mr Pecksniff shrugged his shoulders as though he would say 'I know 
there is such a person, and I am sorry for it.' 
'Very good,' remarked the gentleman. 'That is my interest and 
business here.' With that he made another dive for his shirt-collar 
and brought up a string. 
'Now, this is very distressing, my friend,' said Mr Pecksniff, 
shaking his head and smiling composedly. 'It is very distressing to 
me, to be compelled to say that you are not the person you claim to 
be. I know Mr Slyme, my friend; this will not do; honesty is the 
best policy you had better not; you had indeed.' 
'Stop' cried the gentleman, stretching forth his right arm, which 
was so tightly wedged into his threadbare sleeve that it looked like 
a cloth sausage. 'Wait a bit!' 
He paused to establish himself immediately in front of the fire with 
his back towards it. Then gathering the skirts of his coat under 
his left arm, and smoothing his moustache with his right thumb and 
forefinger, he resumed: 
'I understand your mistake, and I am not offended. Why? Because 
it's complimentary. You suppose I would set myself up for Chevy 
Slyme. Sir, if there is a man on earth whom a gentleman would feel 
proud and honoured to be mistaken for, that man is my friend Slyme. 
For he is, without an exception, the highest-minded, the most 
independent-spirited, most original, spiritual, classical, talented, 
the most thoroughly Shakspearian, if not Miltonic, and at the same 
time the most disgustingly-unappreciated dog I know. But, sir, I 
have not the vanity to attempt to pass for Slyme. Any other man in 
the wide world, I am equal to; but Slyme is, I frankly confess, a 
great many cuts above me. Therefore you are wrong.' 
'I judged from this,' said Mr Pecksniff, holding out the cover of 
the letter. 
'No doubt you did,' returned the gentleman. 'But, Mr Pecksniff, the 
whole thing resolves itself into an instance of the peculiarities of 
genius. Every man of true genius has his peculiarity. Sir, the 
peculiarity of my friend Slyme is, that he is always waiting round 
the corner. He is perpetually round the corner, sir. He is round 
the corner at this instant. Now,' said the gentleman, shaking his 
forefinger before his nose, and planting his legs wider apart as he 
looked attentively in Mr Pecksniff's face, 'that is a remarkably 
curious and interesting trait in Mr Slyme's character; and whenever 
Slyme's life comes to be written, that trait must be thoroughly 
worked out by his biographer or society will not be satisfied. 
Observe me, society will not be satisfied!' 
Mr Pecksniff coughed. 
'Slyme's biographer, sir, whoever he may be,' resumed the gentleman, 
'must apply to me; or, if I am gone to that what's-his-name from 
which no thingumbob comes back, he must apply to my executors for 
leave to search among my papers. I have taken a few notes in my 
poor way, of some of that man's proceedings--my adopted brother, 
sir,--which would amaze you. He made use of an expression, sir, 
only on the fifteenth of last month when he couldn't meet a little 
bill and the other party wouldn't renew, which would have done 
honour to Napoleon Bonaparte in addressing the French army.' 
'And pray,' asked Mr Pecksniff, obviously not quite at his ease, 
'what may be Mr Slyme's business here, if I may be permitted to 
inquire, who am compelled by a regard for my own character to 
disavow all interest in his proceedings?' 
'In the first place,' returned the gentleman, 'you will permit me to 
say, that I object to that remark, and that I strongly and 
indignantly protest against it on behalf of my friend Slyme. In the 
next place, you will give me leave to introduce myself. My name, 
sir, is Tigg. The name of Montague Tigg will perhaps be familiar to 
you, in connection with the most remarkable events of the Peninsular 
War?' 
Mr Pecksniff gently shook his head. 
'No matter,' said the gentleman. 'That man was my father, and I 
bear his name. I am consequently proud--proud as Lucifer. Excuse 
me one moment. I desire my friend Slyme to be present at the 
remainder of this conference.' 
With this announcement he hurried away to the outer door of the Blue 
Dragon, and almost immediately returned with a companion shorter 
than himself, who was wrapped in an old blue camlet cloak with a 
lining of faded scarlet. His sharp features being much pinched and 
nipped by long waiting in the cold, and his straggling red whiskers 
and frowzy hair being more than usually dishevelled from the same 
cause, he certainly looked rather unwholesome and uncomfortable than 
Shakspearian or Miltonic. 
'Now,' said Mr Tigg, clapping one hand on the shoulder of his 
prepossessing friend, and calling Mr Pecksniff's attention to him 
with the other, 'you two are related; and relations never did agree, 
and never will; which is a wise dispensation and an inevitable 
thing, or there would be none but family parties, and everybody in 
the world would bore everybody else to death. If you were on good 
terms, I should consider you a most confoundedly unnatural pair; but 
standing towards each other as you do, I took upon you as a couple 
of devilish deep-thoughted fellows, who may be reasoned with to any 
extent.' 
Here Mr Chevy Slyme, whose great abilities seemed one and all to 
point towards the sneaking quarter of the moral compass, nudged his 
friend stealthily with his elbow, and whispered in his ear. 
'Chiv,' said Mr Tigg aloud, in the high tone of one who was not to 
be tampered with. 'I shall come to that presently. I act upon my 
own responsibility, or not at all. To the extent of such a trifling 
loan as a crownpiece to a man of your talents, I look upon Mr 
Pecksniff as certain;' and seeing at this juncture that the 
expression of Mr Pecksniff's face by no means betokened that he 
shared this certainty, Mr Tigg laid his finger on his nose again for 
that gentleman's private and especial behoof; calling upon him 
thereby to take notice that the requisition of small loans was 
another instance of the peculiarities of genius as developed in his 
friend Slyme; that he, Tigg, winked at the same, because of the 
strong metaphysical interest which these weaknesses possessed; and 
that in reference to his own personal advocacy of such small 
advances, he merely consulted the humour of his friend, without the 
least regard to his own advantage or necessities. 
'Oh, Chiv, Chiv!' added Mr Tigg, surveying his adopted brother with 
an air of profound contemplation after dismissing this piece of 
pantomime. 'You are, upon my life, a strange instance of the little 
frailties that beset a mighty mind. If there had never been a 
telescope in the world, I should have been quite certain from my 
observation of you, Chiv, that there were spots on the sun! I wish I 
may die, if this isn't the queerest state of existence that we find 
ourselves forced into without knowing why or wherefore, Mr 
Pecksniff! Well, never mind! Moralise as we will, the world goes on. 
As Hamlet says, Hercules may lay about him with his club in every 
possible direction, but he can't prevent the cats from making a most 
intolerable row on the roofs of the houses, or the dogs from being 
shot in the hot weather if they run about the streets unmuzzled. 
Life's a riddle; a most infernally hard riddle to guess, Mr 
Pecksniff. My own opinions, that like that celebrated conundrum, 
Why's a man in jail like a man out of jail?" there's no answer to 
it. Upon my soul and bodyit's the queerest sort of thing 
altogether--but there's no use in talking about it. Ha! Ha!' 
With which consolatory deduction from the gloomy premises recited
Mr Tigg roused himself by a great effortand proceeded in his 
former strain. 
'Now I'll tell you what it is. I'm a most confoundedly soft-hearted 
kind of fellow in my wayand I cannot stand byand see you two 
blades cutting each other's throats when there's nothing to be got 
by it. Mr Pecksniffyou're the cousin of the testator upstairs 
and we're the nephew--I say wemeaning Chiv. Perhaps in all 
essential points you are more nearly related to him than we are. 
Very good. If soso be it. But you can't get at himneither can 
we. I give you my brightest word of honoursirthat I've been 
looking through that keyhole with short intervals of restever 
since nine o'clock this morningin expectation of receiving an 
answer to one of the most moderate and gentlemanly applications for 
a little temporary assistance--only fifteen poundsand MY security 
--that the mind of man can conceive. In the meantimesirhe is 
perpetually closeted withand pouring his whole confidence into the 
bosom ofa stranger. Now I say decisively with regard to this 
state of circumstancesthat it won't do; that it won't act; that it 
can't be; and that it must not be suffered to continue.' 
'Every man' said Mr Pecksniff'has a rightan undoubted right
(which Ifor onewould not call in question for any earthly 
consideration; oh no!) to regulate his own proceedings by his own 
likings and dislikingssupposing they are not immoral and not 
irreligious. I may feel in my own breastthat Mr Chuzzlewit does 
not regard--mefor instance; say me--with exactly that amount of 
Christian love which should subsist between us. I may feel grieved 
and hurt at the circumstance; still I may not rush to the conclusion 
that Mr Chuzzlewit is wholly without a justification in all his 
coldnesses. Heaven forbid! Besides; howMr Tigg' continued 
Pecksniff even more gravely and impressively than he had spoken yet
'how could Mr Chuzzlewit be prevented from having these peculiar and 
most extraordinary confidences of which you speak; the existence of 
which I must admit; and which I cannot but deplore--for his sake? 
Considermy good sir--' and here Mr Pecksniff eyed him wistfully-'
how very much at random you are talking.' 
'Whyas to that' rejoined Tigg'it certainly is a difficult 
question.' 
'Undoubtedly it is a difficult question' Mr Pecksniff answered. As 
he spoke he drew himself aloftand seemed to grow more mindful
suddenlyof the moral gulf between himself and the creature he 
addressed. 'Undoubtedly it is a very difficult question. And I am 
far from feeling sure that it is a question any one is authorized to 
discuss. Good evening to you.' 
'You don't know that the Spottletoes are hereI suppose?' said Mr 
Tigg. 
'What do you meansir? what Spottletoes?' asked Pecksniff
stopping abruptly on his way to the door. 
'Mr and Mrs Spottletoe' said Chevy SlymeEsquirespeaking aloud 
for the first timeand speaking very sulkily; shambling with his 
legs the while. 'Spottletoe married my father's brother's child
didn't he? And Mrs Spottletoe is Chuzzlewit's own nieceisn't she? 
She was his favourite once. You may well ask what Spottletoes.' 
'Now upon my sacred word!' cried Mr Pecksnifflooking upwards. 
'This is dreadful. The rapacity of these people is absolutely 
frightful!' 
'It's not only the Spottletoes eitherTigg' said Slymelooking at 
that gentleman and speaking at Mr Pecksniff. 'Anthony Chuzzlewit 
and his son have got wind of itand have come down this afternoon. 
I saw 'em not five minutes agowhen I was waiting round the 
corner.' 
'OhMammonMammon!' cried Mr Pecksniffsmiting his forehead. 
'So there' said Slymeregardless of the interruption'are his 
brother and another nephew for youalready.' 
'This is the whole thingsir' said Mr Tigg; 'this is the point and 
purpose at which I was gradually arriving when my friend Slyme here
with six wordshit it full. Mr Pecksniffnow that your cousin 
(and Chiv's uncle) has turned upsome steps must be taken to 
prevent his disappearing again; andif possibleto counteract the 
influence which is exercised over him nowby this designing 
favourite. Everybody who is interested feels itsir. The whole 
family is pouring down to this place. The time has come when 
individual jealousies and interests must be forgotten for a time
sirand union must be made against the common enemy. When the 
common enemy is routedyou will all set up for yourselves again; 
every lady and gentleman who has a part in the gamewill go in on 
their own account and bowl awayto the best of their abilityat 
the testator's wicketand nobody will be in a worse position than 
before. Think of it. Don't commit yourself now. You'll find us at 
the Half Moon and Seven Stars in this villageat any timeand open 
to any reasonable proposition. Hem! Chivmy dear fellowgo out 
and see what sort of a night it is.' 
Mr Slyme lost no time in disappearingand it is to be presumed in 
going round the corner. Mr Tiggplanting his legs as wide apart as 
he could be reasonably expected by the most sanguine man to keep 
themshook his head at Mr Pecksniff and smiled. 
'We must not be too hard' he said'upon the little eccentricities 
of our friend Slyme. You saw him whisper me?' 
Mr Pecksniff had seen him. 
'You heard my answerI think?' 
Mr Pecksniff had heard it. 
'Five shillingseh?' said Mr Tiggthoughtfully. 'Ah! what an 
extraordinary fellow! Very moderate too!' 
Mr Pecksniff made no answer. 
'Five shillings!' pursued Mr Tiggmusing; 'and to be punctually 
repaid next week; that's the best of it. You heard that?' 
Mr Pecksniff had not heard that. 
'No! You surprise me!' cried Tigg. 'That's the cream of the thing 
sir. I never knew that man fail to redeem a promisein my life. 
You're not in want of changeare you?' 
'No' said Mr Pecksniff'thank you. Not at all.' 
'Just so' returned Mr Tigg. 'If you had beenI'd have got it for 
you.' With that he began to whistle; but a dozen seconds had not 
elapsed when he stopped shortand looking earnestly at Mr 
Pecksniffsaid: 
'Perhaps you'd rather not lend Slyme five shillings?' 
'I would much rather not' Mr Pecksniff rejoined. 
'Egad!' cried Tigggravely nodding his head as if some ground of 
objection occurred to him at that moment for the first time'it's 
very possible you may be right. Would you entertain the same sort 
of objection to lending me five shillings now?' 
'YesI couldn't do itindeed' said Mr Pecksniff. 
'Not even half-a-crownperhaps?' urged Mr Tigg. 
'Not even half-a-crown.' 
'Whythen we come' said Mr Tigg'to the ridiculously small amount 
of eighteen pence. Ha! ha!' 
'And that' said Mr Pecksniff'would be equally objectionable.' 
On receipt of this assuranceMr Tigg shook him heartily by both 
handsprotesting with much earnestnessthat he was one of the most 
consistent and remarkable men he had ever metand that he desired 
the honour of his better acquaintance. He moreover observed that 
there were many little characteristics about his friend Slymeof 
which he could by no meansas a man of strict honourapprove; but 
that he was prepared to forgive him all these slight drawbacksand 
much morein consideration of the great pleasure he himself had 
that day enjoyed in his social intercourse with Mr Pecksniffwhich 
had given him a far higher and more enduring delight than the 
successful negotiation of any small loan on the part of his friend 
could possibly have imparted. With which remarks he would beg 
leavehe saidto wish Mr Pecksniff a very good evening. And so he 
took himself off; as little abashed by his recent failure as any 
gentleman would desire to be. 
The meditations of Mr Pecksniff that evening at the bar of the 
Dragonand that night in his own housewere very serious and grave 
indeed; the more especially as the intelligence he had received from 
Messrs Tigg and Slyme touching the arrival of other members of the 
familywere fully confirmed on more particular inquiry. For the 
Spottletoes had actually gone straight to the Dragonwhere they 
were at that moment housed and mounting guardand where their 
appearance had occasioned such a vast sensation that Mrs Lupin
scenting their errand before they had been under her roof half an 
hourcarried the news herself with all possible secrecy straight to 
Mr Pecksniff's house; indeed it was her great caution in doing so 
which occasioned her to miss that gentlemanwho entered at the 
front door of the Dragon just as she emerged from the back one. 
MoreoverMr Anthony Chuzzlewit and his son Jonas were economically 
quartered at the Half Moon and Seven Starswhich was an obscure 
ale-house; and by the very next coach there came posting to the 
scene of actionso many other affectionate members of the family 
(who quarrelled with each otherinside and outall the way down
to the utter distraction of the coachman)that in less than fourand-
twenty hours the scanty tavern accommodation was at a premium
and all the private lodgings in the placeamounting to full four 
beds and sofarose cent per cent in the market. 
In a wordthings came to that pass that nearly the whole family sat 
down before the Blue Dragonand formally invested it; and Martin 
Chuzzlewit was in a state of siege. But he resisted bravely; 
refusing to receive all lettersmessagesand parcels; obstinately 
declining to treat with anybody; and holding out no hope or promise 
of capitulation. Meantime the family forces were perpetually 
encountering each other in divers parts of the neighbourhood; and
as no one branch of the Chuzzlewit tree had ever been known to agree 
with another within the memory of manthere was such a skirmishing
and floutingand snapping off of headsin the metaphorical sense 
of that expression; such a bandying of words and calling of names; 
such an upturning of noses and wrinkling of brows; such a formal 
interment of good feelings and violent resurrection of ancient 
grievances; as had never been known in those quiet parts since the 
earliest record of their civilized existence. 
At lengthin utter despair and hopelessnesssome few of the 
belligerents began to speak to each other in only moderate terms of 
mutual aggravation; and nearly all addressed themselves with a show 
of tolerable decency to Mr Pecksniffin recognition of his high 
character and influential position. Thusby little and littlethey 
made common cause of Martin Chuzzlewit's obduracyuntil it was 
agreed (if such a word can be used in connection with the 
Chuzzlewits) that there should be a general council and conference 
held at Mr Pecksniff's house upon a certain day at noon; which all 
members of the family who had brought themselves within reach of the 
summonswere forthwith bidden and invitedsolemnlyto attend. 
If ever Mr Pecksniff wore an apostolic lookhe wore it on this 
memorable day. If ever his unruffled smile proclaimed the words'I 
am a messenger of peace!' that was its mission now. If ever man 
combined within himself all the mild qualities of the lamb with a 
considerable touch of the doveand not a dash of the crocodileor 
the least possible suggestion of the very mildest seasoning of the 
serpentthat man was he. Andohthe two Miss Pecksniffs! Ohthe 
serene expression on the face of Charitywhich seemed to say'I 
know that all my family have injured me beyond the possibility of 
reparationbut I forgive themfor it is my duty so to do!' And
ohthe gay simplicity of Mercy; so charminginnocentand infantlike
that if she had gone out walking by herselfand it had been a 
little earlier in the seasonthe robin-redbreasts might have 
covered her with leaves against her willbelieving her to be one of 
the sweet children in the woodcome out of itand issuing forth 
once more to look for blackberries in the young freshness of her 
heart! What words can paint the Pecksniffs in that trying hour? Oh
none; for words have naughty company among themand the Pecksniffs 
were all goodness. 
But when the company arrived! That was the time. When Mr Pecksniff
rising from his seat at the table's headwith a daughter on either 
handreceived his guests in the best parlour and motioned them to 
chairswith eyes so overflowing and countenance so damp with 
gracious perspirationthat he may be said to have been in a kind of 
moist meekness! And the company; the jealous stony-hearted 
distrustful companywho were all shut up in themselvesand had no 
faith in anybodyand wouldn't believe anythingand would no more 
allow themselves to be softened or lulled asleep by the Pecksniffs 
than if they had been so many hedgehogs or porcupines! 
Firstthere was Mr Spottletoewho was so bald and had such big 
whiskersthat he seemed to have stopped his hairby the sudden 
application of some powerful remedyin the very act of falling off 
his headand to have fastened it irrevocably on his face. Then 
there was Mrs Spottletoewho being much too slim for her yearsand 
of a poetical constitutionwas accustomed to inform her more 
intimate friends that the said whiskers were 'the lodestar of her 
existence;' and who could nowby reason of her strong affection for 
her uncle Chuzzlewitand the shock it gave her to be suspected of 
testamentary designs upon himdo nothing but cry--except moan. 
Then there were Anthony Chuzzlewitand his son Jonas; the face of 
the old man so sharpened by the wariness and cunning of his life
that it seemed to cut him a passage through the crowded roomas he 
edged away behind the remotest chairs; while the son had so well 
profited by the precept and example of the fatherthat he looked a 
year or two the elder of the twainas they stood winking their red 
eyesside by sideand whispering to each other softly. Then there 
was the widow of a deceased brother of Mr Martin Chuzzlewitwho 
being almost supernaturally disagreeableand having a dreary face 
and a bony figure and a masculine voicewasin right of these 
qualitieswhat is commonly called a strong-minded woman; and who
if she couldwould have established her claim to the titleand 
have shown herselfmentally speakinga perfect Samsonby shutting 
up her brother-in-law in a private madhouseuntil he proved his 
complete sanity by loving her very much. Beside her sat her 
spinster daughtersthree in numberand of gentlemanly deportment
who had so mortified themselves with tight staysthat their tempers 
were reduced to something less than their waistsand sharp lacing 
was expressed in their very noses. Then there was a young 
gentlemangrandnephew of Mr Martin Chuzzlewitvery dark and very 
hairyand apparently born for no particular purpose but to save 
looking-glasses the trouble of reflecting more than just the first 
idea and sketchy notion of a facewhich had never been carried out. 
Then there was a solitary female cousin who was remarkable for 
nothing but being very deafand living by herselfand always 
having the toothache. Then there was George Chuzzlewita gay 
bachelor cousinwho claimed to be young but had been youngerand 
was inclined to corpulencyand rather overfed himself; to that 
extentindeedthat his eyes were strained in their socketsas if 
with constant surprise; and he had such an obvious disposition to 
pimplesthat the bright spots on his cravatthe rich pattern on 
his waistcoatand even his glittering trinketsseemed to have 
broken out upon himand not to have come into existence 
comfortably. Last of all there were present Mr Chevy Slyme and his 
friend Tigg. And it is worthy of remarkthat although each person 
present disliked the othermainly because he or she DID belong to 
the familythey one and all concurred in hating Mr Tigg because he 
didn't. 
Such was the pleasant little family circle now assembled in Mr 
Pecksniff's best parlouragreeably prepared to fall foul of Mr 
Pecksniff or anybody else who might venture to say anything whatever 
upon any subject. 
'This' said Mr Pecksniffrising and looking round upon them with 
folded hands'does me good. It does my daughters good. We thank 
you for assembling here. We are grateful to you with our whole 
hearts. It is a blessed distinction that you have conferred upon 
usand believe me'-- it is impossible to conceive how he smiled 
here--'we shall not easily forget it.' 
'I am sorry to interrupt youPecksniff' remarked Mr Spottletoe
with his whiskers in a very portentous state; 'but you are assuming 
too much to yourselfsir. Who do you imagine has it in 
contemplation to confer a distinction upon YOUsir?' 
A general murmur echoed this inquiryand applauded it. 
'If you are about to pursue the course with which you have begun
sir' pursued Mr Spottletoe in a great heatand giving a violent 
rap on the table with his knuckles'the sooner you desistand this 
assembly separatesthe better. I am no strangersirto your 
preposterous desire to be regarded as the head of this familybut I 
can tell YOUsir--' 
Oh yesindeed! HE tell. HE! What? He was the headwas he? From 
the strong-minded woman downwards everybody fellthat instantupon 
Mr Spottletoewho after vainly attempting to be heard in silence 
was fain to sit down againfolding his arms and shaking his head 
most wrathfullyand giving Mrs Spottletoe to understand in dumb 
showthat that scoundrel Pecksniff might go on for the presentbut 
he would cut in presentlyand annihilate him. 
'I am not sorry' said Mr Pecksniff in resumption of his address'I 
am really not sorry that this little incident has happened. It is 
good to feel that we are met here without disguise. It is good to 
know that we have no reserve before each otherbut are appearing 
freely in our own characters.' 
Herethe eldest daughter of the strong-minded woman rose a little 
way from her seatand trembling violently from head to footmore 
as it seemed with passion than timidityexpressed a general hope 
that some people WOULD appear in their own charactersif it were 
only for such a proceeding having the attraction of novelty to 
recommend it; and that when they (meaning the some people before 
mentioned) talked about their relationsthey would be careful to 
observe who was present in company at the time; otherwise it might 
come round to those relations' earsin a way they little expected; 
and as to red noses (she observed) she had yet to learn that a red 
nose was any disgraceinasmuch as people neither made nor coloured 
their own nosesbut had that feature provided for them without 
being first consulted; though even upon that branch of the subject 
she had great doubts whether certain noses were redder than other 
nosesor indeed half as red as some. This remark being received 
with a shrill titter by the two sisters of the speakerMiss Charity 
Pecksniff begged with much politeness to be informed whether any of 
those very low observations were levelled at her; and receiving no 
more explanatory answer than was conveyed in the adage 'Those the 
cap fitslet them wear it' immediately commenced a somewhat 
acrimonious and personal retortwherein she was much comforted and 
abetted by her sister Mercywho laughed at the same with great 
heartiness; indeed far more naturally than life. And it being quite 
impossible that any difference of opinion can take place among women 
without every woman who is within hearing taking active part in it
the strong-minded lady and her two daughtersand Mrs Spottletoe
and the deaf cousin (who was not at all disqualified from joining in 
the dispute by reason of being perfectly unacquainted with its 
merits)one and all plunged into the quarrel directly. 
The two Miss Pecksniffs being a pretty good match for the three Miss 
Chuzzlewitsand all five young ladies havingin the figurative 
language of the daya great amount of steam to dispose ofthe 
altercation would no doubt have been a long one but for the high 
valour and prowess of the strong-minded womanwhoin right of her 
reputation for powers of sarcasmdid so belabour and pummel Mrs 
Spottletoe with taunting words that the poor ladybefore the 
engagement was two minutes oldhad no refuge but in tears. These 
she shed so plentifullyand so much to the agitation and grief of 
Mr Spottletoethat that gentlemanafter holding his clenched fist 
close to Mr Pecksniff's eyesas if it were some natural curiosity 
from the near inspection whereof he was likely to derive high 
gratification and improvementand after offering (for no particular 
reason that anybody could discover) to kick Mr George Chuzzlewit 
forand in consideration ofthe trifling sum of sixpencetook his 
wife under his arm and indignantly withdrew. This diversionby 
distracting the attention of the combatantsput an end to the 
strifewhichafter breaking out afresh some twice or thrice in 
certain inconsiderable spurts and dashesdied away in silence. 
It was then that Mr Pecksniff once more rose from his chair. It was 
then that the two Miss Pecksniffs composed themselves to look as if 
there were no such beings--not to say presentbut in the whole 
compass of the world--as the three Miss Chuzzlewits; while the three 
Miss Chuzzlewits became equally unconscious of the existence of the 
two Miss Pecksniffs. 
'It is to be lamented' said Mr Pecksniffwith a forgiving 
recollection of Mr Spottletoe's fist'that our friend should have 
withdrawn himself so very hastilythough we have cause for mutual 
congratulation even in thatsince we are assured that he is not 
distrustful of us in regard to anything we may say or do while he is 
absent. Nowthat is very soothingis it not?' 
'Pecksniff' said Anthonywho had been watching the whole party 
with peculiar keenness from the first--'don't you be a hypocrite.' 
'A whatmy good sir?' demanded Mr Pecksniff. 
'A hypocrite.' 
'Charitymy dear' said Mr Pecksniff'when I take my chamber 
candlestick to-nightremind me to be more than usually particular 
in praying for Mr Anthony Chuzzlewit; who has done me an injustice.' 
This was said in a very bland voiceand asideas being addressed 
to his daughter's private ear. With a cheerfulness of conscience
prompting almost a sprightly demeanourhe then resumed: 
'All our thoughts centring in our very dear but unkind relativeand 
he being as it were beyond our reachwe are met to-dayreally as 
if we were a funeral partyexcept--a blessed exception--that there 
is no body in the house.' 
The strong-minded lady was not at all sure that this was a blessed 
exception. Quite the contrary. 
'Wellmy dear madam!' said Mr Pecksniff. 'Be that as it mayhere 
we are; and being herewe are to consider whether it is possible by 
any justifiable means--' 
'Whyyou know as well as I' said the strong-minded lady'that any 
means are justifiable in such a casedon't you?' 
'Very goodmy dear madamvery good; whether it is possible by ANY 
meanswe will say by ANY meansto open the eyes of our valued 
relative to his present infatuation. Whether it is possible to make 
him acquainted by any means with the real character and purpose of 
that young female whose strangewhose very strange positionin 
reference to himself'--here Mr Pecksniff sunk his voice to an 
impressive whisper--'really casts a shadow of disgrace and shame 
upon this family; and whowe know'--here he raised his voice again 
--'else why is she his companion? harbours the very basest designs 
upon his weakness and his property.' 
In their strong feeling on this pointtheywho agreed in nothing 
elseall concurred as one mind. Good Heaventhat she should 
harbour designs upon his property! The strong-minded lady was for 
poisonher three daughters were for Bridewell and bread-and-water
the cousin with the toothache advocated Botany Baythe two Miss 
Pecksniffs suggested flogging. Nobody but Mr Tiggwho
notwithstanding his extreme shabbinesswas still understood to be 
in some sort a lady's manin right of his upper lip and his frogs
indicated a doubt of the justifiable nature of these measures; and 
he only ogled the three Miss Chuzzlewits with the least admixture of 
banter in his admirationas though he would observe'You are 
positively down upon her to too great an extentmy sweet creatures
upon my soul you are!' 
'Now' said Mr Pecksniffcrossing his two forefingers in a manner 
which was at once conciliatory and argumentative; 'I will notupon 
the one handgo so far as to say that she deserves all the 
inflictions which have been so very forcibly and hilariously 
suggested;' one of his ornamental sentences; 'nor will Iupon the 
otheron any account compromise my common understanding as a man
by making the assertion that she does not. What I would observe is
that I think some practical means might be devised of inducing our 
respectedshall I say our revered--?' 
'No!' interposed the strong-minded woman in a loud voice. 
'Then I will not' said Mr Pecksniff. 'You are quite rightmy dear 
madamand I appreciate and thank you for your discriminating 
objection--our respected relativeto dispose himself to listen to 
the promptings of natureand not to the--' 
'Go onPa!' cried Mercy. 
'Whythe truth ismy dear' said Mr Pecksniffsmiling upon his 
assembled kindred'that I am at a loss for a word. The name of 
those fabulous animals (paganI regret to say) who used to sing in 
the waterhas quite escaped me.' 
Mr George Chuzzlewit suggested 'swans.' 
'No' said Mr Pecksniff. 'Not swans. Very like swanstoo. Thank 
you.' 
The nephew with the outline of a countenancespeaking for the first 
and last time on that occasionpropounded 'Oysters.' 
'No' said Mr Pecksniffwith his own peculiar urbanity'nor 
oysters. But by no means unlike oysters; a very excellent idea; 
thank youmy dear sirvery much. Wait! Sirens. Dear me! sirens
of course. I thinkI saythat means might be devised of disposing 
our respected relative to listen to the promptings of natureand 
not to the siren-like delusions of art. Now we must not lose sight 
of the fact that our esteemed friend has a grandsonto whom he was
until latelyvery much attachedand whom I could have wished to 
see here to-dayfor I have a real and deep regard for him. A fine 
young man. a very fine young man! I would submit to youwhether we 
might not remove Mr Chuzzlewit's distrust of usand vindicate our 
own disinterestedness by--' 
'If Mr George Chuzzlewit has anything to say to ME' interposed the 
strong-minded womansternly'I beg him to speak out like a man; 
and not to look at me and my daughters as if he could eat us.' 
'As to lookingI have heard it saidMrs Ned' returned Mr George
angrily'that a cat is free to contemplate a monarch; and therefore 
I hope I have some righthaving been born a member of this family
to look at a person who only came into it by marriage. As to 
eatingI beg to saywhatever bitterness your jealousies and 
disappointed expectations may suggest to youthat I am not a 
cannibalma'am.' 
'I don't know that!' cried the strong-minded woman. 
'At all eventsif I was a cannibal' said Mr George Chuzzlewit
greatly stimulated by this retort'I think it would occur to me 
that a lady who had outlived three husbandsand suffered so very 
little from their lossmust be most uncommonly tough.' 
The strong-minded woman immediately rose. 
'And I will further add' said Mr Georgenodding his head violently 
at every second syllable; 'naming no namesand therefore hurting 
nobody but those whose consciences tell them they are alluded to
that I think it would be much more decent and becomingif those who 
hooked and crooked themselves into this family by getting on the 
blind side of some of its members before marriageand 
manslaughtering them afterwards by crowing over them to that strong 
pitch that they were glad to diewould refrain from acting the part 
of vultures in regard to other members of this family who are 
living. I think it would be full as wellif not betterif those 
individuals would keep at homecontenting themselves with what they 
have got (luckily for them) already; instead of hovering aboutand 
thrusting their fingers intoa family piewhich they flavour much 
more than enoughI can tell themwhen they are fifty miles away.' 
'I might have been prepared for this!' cried the strong-minded 
womanlooking about her with a disdainful smile as she moved 
towards the doorfollowed by her three daughters. 'Indeed I was 
fully prepared for it from the first. What else could I expect in 
such an atmosphere as this!' 
'Don't direct your halfpay-officers' gaze at mema'amif you 
please' interposed Miss Charity; 'for I won't bear it.' 
This was a smart stab at a pension enjoyed by the strong-minded 
womanduring her second widowhood and before her last coverture. 
It told immensely. 
'I passed from the memory of a grateful countryyou very miserable 
minx' said Mrs Ned'when I entered this family; and I feel now
though I did not feel thenthat it served me rightand that I lost 
my claim upon the United Kingdom of Great Britain and Ireland when I 
so degraded myself. Nowmy dearsif you're quite readyand have 
sufficiently improved yourselves by taking to heart the genteel 
example of these two young ladiesI think we'll go. Mr Pecksniff
we are very much obliged to youreally. We came to be entertained
and you have far surpassed our utmost expectationsin the amusement 
you have provided for us. Thank you. Good-bye!' 
With such departing wordsdid this strong-minded female paralyse 
the Pecksniffian energies; and so she swept out of the roomand out 
of the houseattended by her daughterswhoas with one accord
elevated their three noses in the airand joined in a contemptuous 
titter. As they passed the parlour window on the outsidethey were 
seen to counterfeit a perfect transport of delight among themselves; 
and with this final blow and great discouragement for those within
they vanished. 
Before Mr Pecksniff or any of his remaining visitors could offer a 
remarkanother figure passed this windowcomingat a great rate 
in the opposite direction; and immediately afterwardsMr Spottletoe 
burst into the chamber. Compared with his present state of heathe 
had gone out a man of snow or ice. His head distilled such oil upon 
his whiskersthat they were rich and clogged with unctuous drops; 
his face was violently inflamedhis limbs trembled; and he gasped 
and strove for breath. 
'My good sir!' cried Mr Pecksniff. 
'Oh yes!' returned the other; 'oh yescertainly! Oh to be sure! Oh
of course! You hear him? You hear him? all of you!' 
'What's the matter?' cried several voices. 
'Oh nothing!' cried Spottletoestill gasping. 'Nothing at all! 
It's of no consequence! Ask him! HE'll tell you!' 
'I do not understand our friend' said Mr Pecksnifflooking about 
him in utter amazement. 'I assure you that he is quite 
unintelligible to me.' 
'Unintelligiblesir!' cried the other. 'Unintelligible! Do you 
mean to saysirthat you don't know what has happened! That you 
haven't decoyed us hereand laid a plot and a plan against us! Will 
you venture to say that you didn't know Mr Chuzzlewit was going
sirand that you don't know he's gonesir?' 
'Gone!' was the general cry. 
'Gone' echoed Mr Spottletoe. 'Gone while we were sitting here. 
Gone. Nobody knows where he's gone. Ohof course not! Nobody knew 
he was going. Ohof course not! The landlady thought up to the 
very last moment that they were merely going for a ride; she had no 
other suspicion. Ohof course not! She's not this fellow's 
creature. Ohof course not!' 
Adding to these exclamations a kind of ironical howland gazing 
upon the company for one brief instant afterwardsin a sudden 
silencethe irritated gentleman started off again at the same 
tremendous paceand was seen no more. 
It was in vain for Mr Pecksniff to assure them that this new and 
opportune evasion of the family was at least as great a shock and 
surprise to him as to anybody else. Of all the bullyings and 
denunciations that were ever heaped on one unlucky headnone can 
ever have exceeded in energy and heartiness those with which he was 
complimented by each of his remaining relativessinglyupon 
bidding him farewell. 
The moral position taken by Mr Tigg was something quite tremendous; 
and the deaf cousinwho had the complicated aggravation of seeing 
all the proceedings and hearing nothing but the catastrophe
actually scraped her shoes upon the scraperand afterwards 
distributed impressions of them all over the top stepin token that 
she shook the dust from her feet before quitting that dissembling 
and perfidious mansion. 
Mr Pecksniff hadin shortbut one comfortand that was the 
knowledge that all these his relations and friends had hated him to 
the very utmost extent before; and that hefor his parthad not 
distributed among them any more love thanwith his ample capital in 
that respecthe could comfortably afford to part with. This view 
of his affairs yielded him great consolation; and the fact deserves 
to be notedas showing with what ease a good man may be consoled 
under circumstances of failure and disappointment. 
CHAPTER FIVE 
CONTAINING A FULL ACCOUNT OF THE INSTALLATION OF MR PECKSNIFF'S 
NEW PUPIL INTO THE BOSOM OF MR PECKSNIFF'S FAMILY. WITH ALL THE 
FESTIVITIES HELD ON THAT OCCASIONAND THE GREAT ENJOYMENT OF 
MR PINCH 
The best of architects and land surveyors kept a horsein whom the 
enemies already mentioned more than once in these pages pretended to 
detect a fanciful resemblance to his master. Not in his outward 
personfor he was a raw-bonedhaggard horsealways on a much 
shorter allowance of corn than Mr Pecksniff; but in his moral 
characterwhereinsaid theyhe was full of promisebut of no 
performance. He was always in a mannergoing to goand never 
going. When at his slowest rate of travelling he would sometimes 
lift up his legs so highand display such mighty actionthat it 
was difficult to believe he was doing less than fourteen miles an 
hour; and he was for ever so perfectly satisfied with his own speed
and so little disconcerted by opportunities of comparing himself 
with the fastest trottersthat the illusion was the more difficult 
of resistance. He was a kind of animal who infused into the breasts 
of strangers a lively sense of hopeand possessed all those who 
knew him better with a grim despair. In what respecthaving these 
points of characterhe might be fairly likened to his masterthat 
good man's slanderers only can explain. But it is a melancholy 
truthand a deplorable instance of the uncharitableness of the 
worldthat they made the comparison. 
In this horseand the hooded vehiclewhatever its proper name 
might beto which he was usually harnessed--it was more like a gig 
with a tumour than anything else--all Mr Pinch's thoughts and 
wishes centredone bright frosty morning; for with this gallant 
equipage he was about to drive to Salisbury alonethere to meet 
with the new pupiland thence to bring him home in triumph. 
Blessings on thy simple heartTom Pinchhow proudly dost thou 
button up that scanty coatcalled by a sad misnomerfor these many 
yearsa 'great' one; and how thoroughlyas with thy cheerful voice 
thou pleasantly adjurest Sam the hostler 'not to let him go yet' 
dost thou believe that quadruped desires to goand would go if he 
might! Who could repress a smile--of love for theeTom Pinchand 
not in jest at thy expensefor thou art poor enough alreadyHeaven 
knows--to think that such a holiday as lies before thee should 
awaken that quick flow and hurry of the spiritsin which thou 
settest down againalmost untastedon the kitchen window-sill
that great white mug (put byby thy own handslast nightthat 
breakfast might not hold thee late)and layest yonder crust upon 
the seat beside theeto be eaten on the roadwhen thou art calmer 
in thy high rejoicing! Whoas thou drivest offa happymanand 
noddest with a grateful lovingness to Pecksniff in his nightcap at 
his chamber-windowwould not cry'Heaven speed theeTomand send 
that thou wert going off for ever to some quiet home where thou 
mightst live at peaceand sorrow should not touch thee!' 
What better time for drivingridingwalkingmoving through the 
air by any meansthan a freshfrosty morningwhen hope runs 
cheerily through the veins with the brisk bloodand tingles in the 
frame from head to foot! This was the glad commencement of a bracing 
day in early wintersuch as may put the languid summer season 
(speaking of it when it can't be had) to the blushand shame the 
spring for being sometimes cold by halves. The sheep-bells rang as 
clearly in the vigorous airas if they felt its wholesome influence 
like living creatures; the treesin lieu of leaves or blossoms
shed upon the ground a frosty rime that sparkled as it felland 
might have been the dust of diamonds. So it was to Tom. From 
cottage chimneyssmoke went streaming up highhighas if the 
earth had lost its grossnessbeing so fairand must not be 
oppressed by heavy vapour. The crust of ice on the else rippling 
brook was so transparentand so thin in texturethat the lively 
water might of its own free will have stopped--in Tom's glad mind it 
had--to look upon the lovely morning. And lest the sun should break 
this charm too eagerlythere moved between him and the grounda 
mist like that which waits upon the moon on summer nights--the very 
same to Tom--and wooed him to dissolve it gently. 
Tom Pinch went on; not fastbut with a sense of rapid motionwhich 
did just as well; and as he wentall kinds of things occurred to 
keep him happy. Thus when he came within sight of the turnpikeand 
was--oh a long way off!--he saw the tollman's wifewho had that 
moment checked a waggonrun back into the little house again like 
madto say (she knew) that Mr Pinch was coming up. And she was 
rightfor when he drew within hail of the gateforth rushed the 
tollman's childrenshrieking in tiny chorus'Mr Pinch!' to Tom's 
intense delight. The very tollmanthough an ugly chap in general
and one whom folks were rather shy of handlingcame out himself to 
take the tolland give him rough good morning; and that with all 
thisand a glimpse of the family breakfast on a little round table 
before the firethe crust Tom Pinch had brought away with him 
acquired as rich a flavour as though it had been cut from a fairy 
loaf. 
But there was more than this. It was not only the married people 
and the children who gave Tom Pinch a welcome as he passed. Nono. 
Sparkling eyes and snowy breasts came hurriedly to many an upper 
casement as he clattered byand gave him back his greeting: not 
stinted eitherbut sevenfoldgood measure. They were all merry. 
They all laughed. And some of the wickedest among them even kissed 
their hands as Tom looked back. For who minded poor Mr Pinch? 
There was no harm in HIM. 
And now the morning grew so fairand all things were so wide awake 
and gaythat the sun seeming to say--Tom had no doubt he said--'I 
can't stand it any longer; I must have a look' streamed out in 
radiant majesty. The misttoo shy and gentle for such lusty 
companyfled offquite scaredbefore it; and as it swept away
the hills and mounds and distant pasture landsteeming with placid 
sheep and noisy crowscame out as bright as though they were 
unrolled bran new for the occasion. In compliment to which 
discoverythe brook stood still no longerbut ran briskly off to 
bear the tidings to the water-millthree miles away. 
Mr Pinch was jogging alongfull of pleasant thoughts and cheerful 
influenceswhen he sawupon the path before himgoing in the same 
direction with himselfa traveller on footwho walked with a light 
quick stepand sang as he went--for certain in a very loud voice
but not unmusically. He was a young fellowof some five or sixand-
twenty perhapsand was dressed in such a free and fly-away 
fashionthat the long ends of his loose red neckcloth were 
streaming out behind him quite as often as before; and the bunch of 
bright winter berries in the buttonhole of his velveteen coat was as 
visible to Mr Pinch's rearward observationas if he had worn that 
garment wrong side foremost. He continued to sing with so much 
energythat he did not hear the sound of wheels until it was close 
behind him; when he turned a whimsical face and a very merry pair of 
blue eyes on Mr Pinchand checked himself directly. 
'WhyMark?' said Tom Pinchstopping. 'Who'd have thought of 
seeing you here? Well! this is surprising!' 
Mark touched his hatand saidwith a very sudden decrease of 
vivacitythat he was going to Salisbury. 
'And how spruce you aretoo!' said Mr Pinchsurveying him with 
great pleasure. 'ReallyI didn't think you were half such a tightmade 
fellowMark!' 
'ThankeeMr Pinch. Pretty well for thatI believe. It's not my 
faultyou know. With regard to being sprucesirthat's where it 
isyou see.' And here he looked particularly gloomy. 
'Where what is?' Mr Pinch demanded. 
'Where the aggravation of it is. Any man may be in good spirits and 
good temper when he's well dressed. There an't much credit in that. 
If I was very ragged and very jollythen I should begin to feel I 
had gained a pointMr Pinch.' 
'So you were singing just nowto bear upas it wereagainst being 
well dressedehMark?' said Pinch. 
'Your conversation's always equal to printsir' rejoined Mark
with a broad grin. 'That was it.' 
'Well!' cried Pinch'you are the strangest young manMarkI ever 
knew in my life. I always thought so; but now I am quite certain of 
it. I am going to Salisburytoo. Will you get in? I shall be 
very glad of your company.' 
The young fellow made his acknowledgments and accepted the offer; 
stepping into the carriage directlyand seating himself on the very 
edge of the seat with his body half out of itto express his being 
there on sufferanceand by the politeness of Mr Pinch. As they 
went alongthe conversation proceeded after this manner. 
'I more than half believedjust nowseeing you so very smart' 
said Pinch'that you must be going to be marriedMark.' 
'WellsirI've thought of thattoo' he replied. 'There might be 
some credit in being jolly with a wife'specially if the children 
had the measles and thatand was very fractious indeed. But I'm 
a'most afraid to try it. I don't see my way clear.' 
'You're not very fond of anybodyperhaps?' said Pinch. 
'Not particularsirI think.' 
'But the way would beyou knowMarkaccording to your views of 
things' said Mr Pinch'to marry somebody you didn't likeand who 
was very disagreeable.' 
'So it wouldsir; but that might be carrying out a principle a 
little too farmightn't it?' 
'Perhaps it might' said Mr Pinch. At which they both laughed 
gayly. 
'Lord bless yousir' said Mark'you don't half know methough. 
I don't believe there ever was a man as could come out so strong 
under circumstances that would make other men miserableas I could
if I could only get a chance. But I can't get a chance. It's my 
opinion that nobody never will know half of what's in meunless 
something very unexpected turns up. And I don't see any prospect of 
that. I'm a-going to leave the Dragonsir.' 
'Going to leave the Dragon!' cried Mr Pinchlooking at him with 
great astonishment. 'WhyMarkyou take my breath away!' 
'Yessir' he rejoinedlooking straight before him and a long way 
offas men do sometimes when they cogitate profoundly. 'What's the 
use of my stopping at the Dragon? It an't at all the sort of place 
for ME. When I left London (I'm a Kentish man by birththough)
and took that situation hereI quite made up my mind that it was 
the dullest little out-of-the-way corner in Englandand that there 
would be some credit in being jolly under such circumstances. But
Lordthere's no dullness at the Dragon! Skittlescricketquoits
nine-pinscomic songschorusescompany round the chimney corner 
every winter's evening. Any man could be jolly at the Dragon. 
There's no credit in THAT.' 
'But if common report be true for onceMarkas I think it is
being able to confirm it by what I know myself' said Mr Pinch'you 
are the cause of half this merrimentand set it going.' 
'There may be something in thattoosir' answered Mark. 'But 
that's no consolation.' 
'Well!' said Mr Pinchafter a short silencehis usually subdued 
tone being even now more subdued than ever. 'I can hardly think 
enough of what you tell me. Whywhat will become of Mrs Lupin
Mark?' 
Mark looked more fixedly before himand further off stillas he 
answered that he didn't suppose it would be much of an object to 
her. There were plenty of smart young fellows as would be glad of 
the place. He knew a dozen himself. 
'That's probable enough' said Mr Pinch'but I am not at all sure 
that Mrs Lupin would be glad of them. WhyI always supposed that 
Mrs Lupin and you would make a match of itMark; and so did every 
oneas far as I know.' 
'I never' Mark repliedin some confusion'said nothing as was in 
a direct way courting-like to hernor she to mebut I don't know 
what I mightn't do one of these odd timesand what she mightn't say 
in answer. WellsirTHAT wouldn't suit.' 
'Not to be landlord of the DragonMark?' cried Mr Pinch. 
'Nosircertainly not' returned the otherwithdrawing his gaze 
from the horizonand looking at his fellow-traveller. 'Why that 
would be the ruin of a man like me. I go and sit down comfortably 
for lifeand no man never finds me out. What would be the credit 
of the landlord of the Dragon's being jolly? Whyhe couldn't help 
itif he tried.' 
'Does Mrs Lupin know you are going to leave her?' Mr Pinch inquired. 
'I haven't broke it to her yetsirbut I must. I'm looking out 
this morning for something new and suitable' he saidnodding 
towards the city. 
'What kind of thing now?' Mr Pinch demanded. 
'I was thinking' Mark replied'of something in the grave-digging. 
way.' 
'Good graciousMark?' cried Mr Pinch. 
'It's a good dampwormy sort of businesssir' said Markshaking 
his head argumentatively'and there might be some credit in being 
jollywith one's mind in that pursuitunless grave-diggers is 
usually given that way; which would be a drawback. You don't happen 
to know how that is in generaldo yousir?' 
'No' said Mr Pinch'I don't indeed. I never thought upon the 
subject.' 
'In case of that not turning out as well as one could wishyou 
know' said Markmusing again'there's other businesses. 
Undertaking now. That's gloomy. There might be credit to be gained 
there. A broker's man in a poor neighbourhood wouldn't be bad 
perhaps. A jailor sees a deal of misery. A doctor's man is in the 
very midst of murder. A bailiff's an't a lively office nat'rally. 
Even a tax-gatherer must find his feelings rather worked uponat 
times. There's lots of trades in which I should have an 
opportunityI think.' 
Mr Pinch was so perfectly overwhelmed by these remarks that he could 
do nothing but occasionally exchange a word or two on some 
indifferent subjectand cast sidelong glances at the bright face of 
his odd friend (who seemed quite unconscious of his observation)
until they reached a certain corner of the roadclose upon the 
outskirts of the citywhen Mark said he would jump down thereif 
he pleased. 
'But bless my soulMark' said Mr Pinchwho in the progress of his 
observation just then made the discovery that the bosom of his 
companion's shirt was as much exposed as if it was Midsummerand 
was ruffled by every breath of air'why don't you wear a 
waistcoat?' 
'What's the good of onesir?' asked Mark. 
'Good of one?' said Mr Pinch. 'Whyto keep your chest warm.' 
'Lord love yousir!' cried Mark'you don't know me. My chest 
don't want no warming. Even if it didwhat would no waistcoat 
bring it to? Inflammation of the lungsperhaps? Wellthere'd be 
some credit in being jollywith a inflammation of the lungs.' 
As Mr Pinch returned no other answer than such as was conveyed in 
his breathing very hardand opening his eyes very wideand nodding 
his head very muchMark thanked him for his rideand without 
troubling him to stopjumped lightly down. And away he fluttered
with his red neckerchiefand his open coatdown a cross-lane; 
turning back from time to time to nod to Mr Pinchand looking one 
of the most carelessgood-humoured comical fellows in life. His 
late companionwith a thoughtful face pursued his way to Salisbury. 
Mr Pinch had a shrewd notion that Salisbury was a very desperate 
sort of place; an exceeding wild and dissipated city; and when he 
had put up the horseand given the hostler to understand that he 
would look in again in the course of an hour or two to see him take 
his cornhe set forth on a stroll about the streets with a vague 
and not unpleasant idea that they teemed with all kinds of mystery 
and bedevilment. To one of his quiet habits this little delusion 
was greatly assisted by the circumstance of its being market-day
and the thoroughfares about the market-place being filled with 
cartshorsesdonkeysbasketswaggonsgarden-stuffmeattripe
piespoultry and huckster's wares of every opposite description and 
possible variety of character. Then there were young farmers and 
old farmers with smock-frocksbrown great-coatsdrab great-coats
red worsted comfortersleather-leggingswonderful shaped hats
hunting-whipsand rough sticksstanding about in groupsor 
talking noisily together on the tavern stepsor paying and 
receiving huge amounts of greasy wealthwith the assistance of such 
bulky pocket-books that when they were in their pockets it was 
apoplexy to get them outand when they were out it was spasms to 
get them in again. Also there were farmers' wives in beaver bonnets 
and red cloaksriding shaggy horses purged of all earthly passions
who went soberly into all manner of places without desiring to know 
whyand whoif requiredwould have stood stock still in a china 
shopwith a complete dinner-service at each hoof. Also a great 
many dogswho were strongly interested in the state of the market 
and the bargains of their masters; and a great confusion of tongues
both brute and human. 
Mr Pinch regarded everything exposed for sale with great delightand 
was particularly struck by the itinerant cutlerywhich he 
considered of the very keenest kindinsomuch that he purchased a 
pocket knife with seven blades in itand not a cut (as he 
afterwards found out) among them. When he had exhausted the marketplace
and watched the farmers safe into the market dinnerhe went 
back to look after the horse. Having seen him eat unto his heart's 
content he issued forth againto wander round the town and regale 
himself with the shop windows; previously taking a long stare at the 
bankand wondering in what direction underground the caverns might 
be where they kept the money; and turning to look back at one or two 
young men who passed himwhom he knew to be articled to solicitors 
in the town; and who had a sort of fearful interest in his eyesas 
jolly dogs who knew a thing or twoand kept it up tremendously. 
But the shops. First of all there were the jewellers' shopswith 
all the treasures of the earth displayed thereinand such large 
silver watches hanging up in every pane of glassthat if they were 
anything but first-rate goers it certainly was not because the works 
could decently complain of want of room. In good sooth they were 
big enoughand perhapsas the saying isugly enoughto be the 
most correct of all mechanical performers; in Mr Pinch's eyes
however they were smaller than Geneva ware; and when he saw one very 
bloated watch announced as a repeatergifted with the uncommon 
power of striking every quarter of an hour inside the pocket of its 
happy ownerhe almost wished that he were rich enough to buy it. 
But what were even gold and silverprecious stones and clockwork
to the bookshopswhence a pleasant smell of paper freshly pressed 
came issuing forthawakening instant recollections of some new 
grammar had at schoollong time agowith 'Master PinchGrove 
House Academy' inscribed in faultless writing on the fly-leaf! That 
whiff of russia leathertooand all those rows on rows of volumes 
neatly ranged within--what happiness did they suggest! And in the 
window were the spick-and-span new works from Londonwith the 
title-pagesand sometimes even the first page of the first chapter
laid wide open; tempting unwary men to begin to read the bookand 
thenin the impossibility of turning overto rush blindly inand 
buy it! Here too were the dainty frontispiece and trim vignette
pointing like handposts on the outskirts of great citiesto the 
rich stock of incident beyond; and store of bookswith many a grave 
portrait and time-honoured namewhose matter he knew welland 
would have given mines to havein any formupon the narrow shell 
beside his bed at Mr Pecksniff's. What a heart-breaking shop it 
was! 
There was another; not quite so bad at firstbut still a trying 
shop; where children's books were soldand where poor Robinson 
Crusoe stood alone in his mightwith dog and hatchetgoat-skin cap 
and fowling-pieces; calmly surveying Philip Quarn and the host of 
imitators round himand calling Mr Pinch to witness that heof all 
the crowdimpressed one solitary footprint on the shore of boyish 
memorywhereof the tread of generations should not stir the 
lightest grain of sand. And there too were the Persian taleswith 
flying chests and students of enchanted books shut up for years in 
caverns; and there too was Abudahthe merchantwith the terrible 
little old woman hobbling out of the box in his bedroom; and there 
the mighty talismanthe rare Arabian Nightswith Cassim Baba
divided by fourlike the ghost of a dreadful sumhanging upall 
goryin the robbers' cave. Which matchless wonderscoming fast on 
Mr Pinch's minddid so rub up and chafe that wonderful lamp within 
himthat when he turned his face towards the busy streeta crowd 
of phantoms waited on his pleasureand he lived againwith new 
delightthe happy days before the Pecksniff era. 
He had less interest now in the chemists' shopswith their great 
glowing bottles (with smaller repositories of brightness in their 
very stoppers); and in their agreeable compromises between medicine 
and perfumeryin the shape of toothsome lozenges and virgin honey. 
Neither had he the least regard (but he never had much) for the 
tailors'where the newest metropolitan waistcoat patterns were 
hanging upwhich by some strange transformation always looked 
amazing thereand never appeared at all like the same thing 
anywhere else. But he stopped to read the playbill at the theatre 
and surveyed the doorway with a kind of awewhich was not 
diminished when a sallow gentleman with long dark hair came outand 
told a boy to run home to his lodgings and bring down his 
broadsword. Mr Pinch stood rooted to the spot on hearing thisand 
might have stood there until darkbut that the old cathedral bell 
began to ring for vesper serviceon which he tore himself away. 
Nowthe organist's assistant was a friend of Mr Pinch'swhich was 
a good thingfor he too was a very quiet gentle souland had been
like Toma kind of old-fashioned boy at schoolthough well liked 
by the noisy fellow too. As good luck would have it (Tom always 
said he had great good luck) the assistant chanced that very 
afternoon to be on duty by himselfwith no one in the dusty organ 
loft but Tom; so while he playedTom helped him with the stops; and 
finallythe service being just overTom took the organ himself. 
It was then turning darkand the yellow light that streamed in 
through the ancient windows in the choir was mingled with a murky 
red. As the grand tones resounded through the churchthey seemed
to Tomto find an echo in the depth of every ancient tombno less 
than in the deep mystery of his own heart. Great thoughts and hopes 
came crowding on his mind as the rich music rolled upon the air and 
yet among them--something more grave and solemn in their purpose
but the same--were all the images of that daydown to its very 
lightest recollection of childhood. The feeling that the sounds 
awakenedin the moment of their existenceseemed to include his 
whole life and being; and as the surrounding realities of stone and 
wood and glass grew dimmer in the darknessthese visions grew so 
much the brighter that Tom might have forgotten the new pupil and 
the expectant masterand have sat there pouring out his grateful 
heart till midnightbut for a very earthy old verger insisting on 
locking up the cathedral forthwith. So he took leave of his friend
with many thanksgroped his way outas well as he couldinto the 
now lamp-lighted streetsand hurried off to get his dinner. 
All the farmers being by this time jogging homewardsthere was 
nobody in the sanded parlour of the tavern where he had left the 
horse; so he had his little table drawn out close before the fire
and fell to work upon a well-cooked steak and smoking hot potatoes
with a strong appreciation of their excellenceand a very keen 
sense of enjoyment. Beside himtoothere stood a jug of most 
stupendous Wiltshire beer; and the effect of the whole was so 
transcendentthat he was obliged every now and then to lay down his 
knife and forkrub his handsand think about it. By the time the 
cheese and celery cameMr Pinch had taken a book out of his pocket
and could afford to trifle with the viands; now eating a littlenow 
drinking a littlenow reading a littleand now stopping to wonder 
what sort of a young man the new pupil would turn out to be. He had 
passed from this latter theme and was deep in his book againwhen 
the door openedand another guest came inbringing with him such a 
quantity of cold airthat he positively seemed at first to put the 
fire out. 
'Very hard frost to-nightsir' said the newcomercourteously 
acknowledging Mr Pinch's withdrawal of the little tablethat he 
might have place: 'Don't disturb yourselfI beg.' 
Though he said this with a vast amount of consideration for Mr 
Pinch's comforthe dragged one of the great leather-bottomed chairs 
to the very centre of the hearthnotwithstanding; and sat down in 
front of the firewith a foot on each hob. 
'My feet are quite numbed. Ah! Bitter cold to be sure.' 
'You have been in the air some considerable timeI dare say?' said 
Mr Pinch. 
'All day. Outside a coachtoo.' 
'That accounts for his making the room so cool' thought Mr Pinch. 
'Poor fellow! How thoroughly chilled he must be!' 
The stranger became thoughtful likewiseand sat for five or ten 
minutes looking at the fire in silence. At length he rose and 
divested himself of his shawl and great-coatwhich (far different 
from Mr Pinch's) was a very warm and thick one; but he was not a 
whit more conversational out of his great-coat than in itfor he 
sat down again in the same place and attitudeand leaning back in 
his chairbegan to bite his nails. He was young--one-and-twenty
perhaps--and handsome; with a keen dark eyeand a quickness of look 
and manner which made Tom sensible of a great contrast in his own 
bearingand caused him to feel even more shy than usual. 
There was a clock in the roomwhich the stranger often turned to 
look at. Tom made frequent reference to it also; partly from a 
nervous sympathy with its taciturn companion; and partly because the 
new pupil was to inquire for him at half after sixand the hands 
were getting on towards that hour. Whenever the stranger caught him 
looking at this clocka kind of confusion came upon Tom as if he 
had been found out in something; and it was a perception of his 
uneasiness which caused the younger man to sayperhapswith a 
smile: 
'We both appear to be rather particular about the time. The fact 
isI have an engagement to meet a gentleman here.' 
'So have I' said Mr Pinch. 
'At half-past six' said the stranger. 
'At half-past six' said Tom in the very same breath; whereupon the 
other looked at him with some surprise. 
'The young gentlemanI expect' remarked Tomtimidly'was to 
inquire at that time for a person by the name of Pinch.' 
'Dear me!' cried the otherjumping up. 'And I have been keeping 
the fire from you all this while! I had no idea you were Mr Pinch. 
I am the Mr Martin for whom you were to inquire. Pray excuse me. 
How do you do? Ohdo draw nearerpray!' 
'Thank you' said Tom'thank you. I am not at all coldand you 
are; and we have a cold ride before us. Wellif you wish itI 
will. I--I am very glad' said Tomsmiling with an embarrassed 
frankness peculiarly hisand which was as plainly a confession of 
his own imperfectionsand an appeal to the kindness of the person 
he addressedas if he had drawn one up in simple language and 
committed it to paper: 'I am very glad indeed that you turn out to 
be the party I expected. I was thinkingbut a minute agothat I 
could wish him to be like you.' 
'I am very glad to hear it' returned Martinshaking hands with him 
again; 'for I assure youI was thinking there could be no such luck 
as Mr Pinch's turning out like you.' 
'Noreally!' said Tomwith great pleasure. 'Are you serious?' 
'Upon my word I am' replied his new acquaintance. 'You and I will 
get on excellently wellI know; which it's no small relief to me to 
feelfor to tell you the truthI am not at all the sort of fellow 
who could get on with everybodyand that's the point on which I had 
the greatest doubts. But they're quite relieved now.--Do me the 
favour to ring the bellwill you?' 
Mr Pinch roseand complied with great alacrity--the handle hung 
just over Martin's headas he warmed himself--and listened with a 
smiling face to what his friend went on to say. It was: 
'If you like punchyou'll allow me to order a glass apieceas hot 
as it can be madethat we may usher in our friendship in a becoming 
manner. To let you into a secretMr PinchI never was so much in 
want of something warm and cheering in my life; but I didn't like to 
run the chance of being found drinking itwithout knowing what kind 
of person you were; for first impressionsyou knowoften go a long 
wayand last a long time.' 
Mr Pinch assentedand the punch was ordered. In due course it 
came; hot and strong. After drinking to each other in the steaming 
mixturethey became quite confidential. 
'I'm a sort of relation of Pecksniff'syou know' said the young 
man. 
'Indeed!' cried Mr Pinch. 
'Yes. My grandfather is his cousinso he's kith and kin to me
somehowif you can make that out. I can't.' 
'Then Martin is your Christian name?' said Mr Pinchthoughtfully. 
'Oh!' 
'Of course it is' returned his friend: 'I wish it was my surname 
for my own is not a very pretty oneand it takes a long time to 
sign Chuzzlewit is my name.' 
'Dear me!' cried Mr Pinchwith an involuntary start. 
'You're not surprised at my having two namesI suppose?' returned 
the othersetting his glass to his lips. 'Most people have.' 
'Ohno' said Mr Pinch'not at all. Oh dear no! Well!' And then 
remembering that Mr Pecksniff had privately cautioned him to say 
nothing in reference to the old gentleman of the same name who had 
lodged at the Dragonbut to reserve all mention of that person for 
himhe had no better means of hiding his confusion than by raising 
his own glass to his mouth. They looked at each other out of their 
respective tumblers for a few secondsand then put them down empty. 
'I told them in the stable to be ready for us ten minutes ago' said 
Mr Pinchglancing at the clock again. 'Shall we go?' 
'If you please' returned the other. 
'Would you like to drive?' said Mr Pinch; his whole face beaming 
with a consciousness of the splendour of his offer. 'You shallif 
you wish.' 
'Whythat dependsMr Pinch' said Martinlaughing'upon what 
sort of a horse you have. Because if he's a bad oneI would rather 
keep my hands warm by holding them comfortably in my greatcoat 
pockets.' 
He appeared to think this such a good jokethat Mr Pinch was quite 
sure it must be a capital one. Accordinglyhe laughed tooand was 
fully persuaded that he enjoyed it very much. Then he settled his 
billand Mr Chuzzlewit paid for the punch; and having wrapped 
themselves upto the extent of their respective meansthey went 
out together to the front doorwhere Mr Pecksniff's property 
stopped the way. 
'I won't drivethank youMr Pinch' said Martingetting into the 
sitter's place. 'By the byethere's a box of mine. Can we manage 
to take it?' 
'Ohcertainly' said Tom. 'Put it inDickanywhere!' 
It was not precisely of that convenient size which would admit of 
its being squeezed into any odd cornerbut Dick the hostler got it 
in somehowand Mr Chuzzlewit helped him. It was all on Mr Pinch's 
sideand Mr Chuzzlewit said he was very much afraid it would 
encumber him; to which Tom said'Not at all;' though it forced him 
into such an awkward positionthat he had much ado to see anything 
but his own knees. But it is an ill wind that blows nobody any 
good; and the wisdom of the saying was verified in this instance; 
for the cold air came from Mr Pinch's side of the carriageand by 
interposing a perfect wall of box and man between it and the new 
pupilhe shielded that young gentleman effectually; which was a 
great comfort. 
It was a clear eveningwith a bright moon. The whole landscape was 
silvered by its light and by the hoar-frost; and everything looked 
exquisitely beautiful. At firstthe great serenity and peace 
through which they travelleddisposed them both to silence; but in 
a very short time the punch within them and the healthful air 
withoutmade them loquaciousand they talked incessantly. When 
they were halfway homeand stopped to give the horse some water
Martin (who was very generous with his money) ordered another glass 
of punchwhich they drank between themand which had not the 
effect of making them less conversational than before. Their 
principal topic of discourse was naturally Mr Pecksniff and his 
family; of whomand of the great obligations they had heaped upon 
himTom Pinchwith the tears standing in his eyesdrew such a 
picture as would have inclined any one of common feeling almost to 
revere them; and of which Mr Pecksniff had not the slightest 
foresight or preconceived ideaor he certainly (being very humble) 
would not have sent Tom Pinch to bring the pupil home. 
In this way they went onand onand on--in the language of the 
story-books--until at last the village lights appeared before them
and the church spire cast a long reflection on the graveyard grass; 
as if it were a dial (alasthe truest in the world!) marking
whatever light shone out of Heaventhe flight of days and weeks and 
yearsby some new shadow on that solemn ground. 
'A pretty church!' said Martinobserving that his companion 
slackened the slack pace of the horseas they approached. 
'Is it not?' cried Tomwith great pride. 'There's the sweetest 
little organ there you ever heard. I play it for them.' 
'Indeed?' said Martin. 'It is hardly worth the troubleI should 
think. What do you get for thatnow?' 
'Nothing' answered Tom. 
'Well' returned his friend'you ARE a very strange fellow!' 
To which remark there succeeded a brief silence. 
'When I say nothing' observed Mr Pinchcheerfully'I am wrong
and don't say what I meanbecause I get a great deal of pleasure 
from itand the means of passing some of the happiest hours I know. 
It led to something else the other day; but you will not care to 
hear about that I dare say?' 
'Oh yes I shall. What?' 
'It led to my seeing' said Tomin a lower voice'one of the 
loveliest and most beautiful faces you can possibly picture to 
yourself.' 
'And yet I am able to picture a beautiful one' said his friend
thoughtfully'or should beif I have any memory.' 
'She came' said Tomlaying his hand upon the other's arm'for the 
first time very early in the morningwhen it was hardly light; and 
when I saw herover my shoulderstanding just within the porchI 
turned quite coldalmost believing her to be a spirit. A moment's 
reflection got the better of thatof courseand fortunately it 
came to my relief so soonthat I didn't leave off playing.' 
'Why fortunately?' 
'Why? Because she stood therelistening. I had my spectacles on
and saw her through the chinks in the curtains as plainly as I see 
you; and she was beautiful. After a while she glided offand I 
continued to play until she was out of hearing.' 
'Why did you do that?' 
'Don't you see?' responded Tom. 'Because she might suppose I hadn't 
seen her; and might return.' 
'And did she?' 
'Certainly she did. Next morningand next evening too; but always 
when there were no people aboutand always alone. I rose earlier 
and sat there laterthat when she cameshe might find the church 
door openand the organ playingand might not be disappointed. 
She strolled that way for some daysand always stayed to listen. 
But she is gone nowand of all unlikely things in this wide world
it is perhaps the most improbable that I shall ever look upon her 
face again.' 
'You don't know anything more about her?' 
'No.' 
'And you never followed her when she went away?' 
'Why should I distress her by doing that?' said Tom Pinch. 'Is it 
likely that she wanted my company? She came to hear the organnot 
to see me; and would you have had me scare her from a place she 
seemed to grow quite fond of? NowHeaven bless her!' cried Tom
'to have given her but a minute's pleasure every dayI would have 
gone on playing the organ at those times until I was an old man; 
quite contented if she sometimes thought of a poor fellow like me
as a part of the music; and more than recompensed if she ever mixed 
me up with anything she liked as well as she liked that!' 
The new pupil was clearly very much amazed by Mr Pinch's weakness
and would probably have told him soand given him some good advice
but for their opportune arrival at Mr Pecksniff's door; the front 
door this timeon account of the occasion being one of ceremony and 
rejoicing. The same man was in waiting for the horse who had been 
adjured by Mr Pinch in the morning not to yield to his rabid desire 
to start; and after delivering the animal into his chargeand 
beseeching Mr Chuzzlewit in a whisper never to reveal a syllable of 
what he had just told him in the fullness of his heartTom led the 
pupil infor instant presentation. 
Mr Pecksniff had clearly not expected them for hours to come; for he 
was surrounded by open booksand was glancing from volume to 
volumewith a black lead-pencil in his mouthand a pair of 
compasses in his handat a vast number of mathematical diagramsof 
such extraordinary shapes that they looked like designs for 
fireworks. Neither had Miss Charity expected themfor she was 
busiedwith a capacious wicker basket before herin making 
impracticable nightcaps for the poor. Neither had Miss Mercy 
expected themfor she was sitting upon her stooltying on the--oh 
good gracious!--the petticoat of a large doll that she was dressing 
for a neighbour's child--reallyquite a grown-up dollwhich made 
it more confusing--and had its little bonnet dangling by the ribbon 
from one of her fair curlsto which she had fastened it lest it 
should be lost or sat upon. It would be difficultif not 
impossibleto conceive a family so thoroughly taken by surprise as 
the Pecksniffs wereon this occasion. 
Bless my life!' said Mr Pecksnifflooking upand gradually 
exchanging his abstracted face for one of joyful recognition. 'Here 
already! Martinmy dear boyI am delighted to welcome you to my 
poor house!' 
With this kind greetingMr Pecksniff fairly took him to his arms
and patted him several times upon the back with his right hand the 
whileas if to express that his feelings during the embrace were 
too much for utterance. 
'But here' he saidrecovering'are my daughtersMartin; my two 
only childrenwhom (if you ever saw them) you have not beheld--ah
these sad family divisions!--since you were infants together. Nay
my dearswhy blush at being detected in your everyday pursuits? We 
had prepared to give you the reception of a visitorMartinin our 
little room of state' said Mr Pecksniffsmiling'but I like this 
betterI like this better!' 
Oh blessed star of Innocencewherever you may behow did you 
glitter in your home of etherwhen the two Miss Pecksniffs put 
forth each her lily handand gave the samewith mantling cheeks
to Martin! How did you twinkleas if fluttering with sympathywhen 
Mercyreminded of the bonnet in her hairhid her fair face and 
turned her head aside; the while her gentle sister plucked it out
and smote her with a sister's soft reproofupon her buxom shoulder! 
'And how' said Mr Pecksniffturning round after the contemplation 
of these passagesand taking Mr Pinch in a friendly manner by the 
elbow'how has our friend used youMartin?' 
'Very well indeedsir. We are on the best termsI assure you.' 
'Old Tom Pinch!' said Mr Pecksnifflooking on him with affectionate 
sadness. 'Ah! It seems but yesterday that Thomas was a boy fresh 
from a scholastic course. Yet years have passedI thinksince 
Thomas Pinch and I first walked the world together!' 
Mr Pinch could say nothing. He was too much moved. But he pressed 
his master's handand tried to thank him. 
'And Thomas Pinch and I' said Mr Pecksniffin a deeper voice
'will walk it yetin mutual faithfulness and friendship! And if it 
comes to pass that either of us be run over in any of those busy 
crossings which divide the streets of lifethe other will convey 
him to the hospital in Hopeand sit beside his bed in Bounty!' 
'Wellwellwell!' he added in a happier toneas he shook Mr 
Pinch's elbow hard. 'No more of this! Martinmy dear friendthat 
you may be at home within these wallslet me show you how we live
and where. Come!' 
With that he took up a lighted candleandattended by his young 
relativeprepared to leave the room. At the doorhe stopped. 
'You'll bear us companyTom Pinch?' 
Ayecheerfullythough it had been to deathwould Tom have 
followed him; glad to lay down his life for such a man! 
'This' said Mr Pecksniffopening the door of an opposite parlour
'is the little room of stateI mentioned to you. My girls have 
pride in itMartin! This' opening another door'is the little 
chamber in which my works (slight things at best) have been 
concocted. Portrait of myself by Spiller. Bust by Spoker. The 
latter is considered a good likeness. I seem to recognize something 
about the left-hand corner of the nosemyself.' 
Martin thought it was very likebut scarcely intellectual enough. 
Mr Pecksniff observed that the same fault had been found with it 
before. It was remarkable it should have struck his young relation 
too. He was glad to see he had an eye for art. 
'Various books you observe' said Mr Pecksniffwaving his hand 
towards the wall'connected with our pursuit. I have scribbled 
myselfbut have not yet published. Be careful how you come 
upstairs. This' opening another door'is my chamber. I read here 
when the family suppose I have retired to rest. Sometimes I injure 
my health rather more than I can quite justify to myselfby doing 
so; but art is long and time is short. Every facility you see for 
jotting down crude notionseven here.' 
These latter words were explained by his pointing to a small round 
table on which were a lampdivers sheets of papera piece of India 
rubberand a case of instruments; all put readyin case an 
architectural idea should come into Mr Pecksniff's head in the 
night; in which event he would instantly leap out of bedand fix it 
for ever. 
Mr Pecksniff opened another door on the same floorand shut it 
againall at onceas if it were a Blue Chamber. But before he had 
well done sohe looked smilingly roundand said'Why not?' 
Martin couldn't say why notbecause he didn't know anything at all 
about it. So Mr Pecksniff answered himselfby throwing open the 
doorand saying: 
'My daughters' room. A poor first-floor to usbut a bower to them. 
Very neat. Very airy. Plants you observe; hyacinths; books again; 
birds.' These birdsby the byecomprisedin allone staggering 
old sparrow without a tailwhich had been borrowed expressly from 
the kitchen. 'Such trifles as girls love are here. Nothing more. 
Those who seek heartless splendourwould seek here in vain.' 
With that he led them to the floor above. 
'This' said Mr Pecksniffthrowing wide the door of the memorable 
two-pair front; 'is a room where some talent has been developed I 
believe. This is a room in which an idea for a steeple occurred to 
me that I may one day give to the world. We work heremy dear 
Martin. Some architects have been bred in this room; a fewI 
thinkMr Pinch?' 
Tom fully assented; andwhat is morefully believed it. 
'You see' said Mr Pecksniffpassing the candle rapidly from roll 
to roll of paper'some traces of our doings here. Salisbury 
Cathedral from the north. From the south. From the east. From the 
west. From the south-east. From the nor'west. A bridge. An 
almshouse. A jail. A church. A powder-magazine. A wine-cellar. 
A portico. A summer-house. An ice-house. Planselevations
sectionsevery kind of thing. And this' he addedhaving by this 
time reached another large chamber on the same storywith four 
little beds in it'this is your roomof which Mr Pinch here is the 
quiet sharer. A southern aspect; a charming prospect; Mr Pinch's 
little libraryyou perceive; everything agreeable and appropriate. 
If there is any additional comfort you would desire to have here at 
anytimepray mention it. Even to strangersfar less to youmy 
dear Martinthere is no restriction on that point.' 
It was undoubtedly trueand may be stated in corroboration of Mr 
Pecksniffthat any pupil had the most liberal permission to mention 
anything in this way that suggested itself to his fancy. Some young 
gentlemen had gone on mentioning the very same thing for five years 
without ever being stopped. 
'The domestic assistants' said Mr Pecksniff'sleep above; and that 
is all.' After whichand listening complacently as he wentto the 
encomiums passed by his young friend on the arrangements generally
he led the way to the parlour again. 
Here a great change had taken place; for festive preparations on a 
rather extensive scale were already completedand the two Miss 
Pecksniffs were awaiting their return with hospitable looks. There 
were two bottles of currant winewhite and red; a dish of 
sandwiches (very long and very slim); another of apples; another of 
captain's biscuits (which are always a moist and jovial sort of 
viand); a plate of oranges cut up small and gritty; with powdered 
sugarand a highly geological home-made cake. The magnitude of 
these preparations quite took away Tom Pinch's breath; for though 
the new pupils were usually let down softlyas one may say
particularly in the wine departmentwhich had so many stages of 
declensionthat sometimes a young gentleman was a whole fortnight 
in getting to the pump; still this was a banquet; a sort of Lord 
Mayor's feast in private life; a something to think ofand hold on 
byafterwards. 
To this entertainmentwhich apart from its own intrinsic merits
had the additional choice qualitythat it was in strict keeping 
with the nightbeing both light and coolMr Pecksniff besought the 
company to do full justice. 
'Martin' he said'will seat himself between you twomy dearsand 
Mr Pinch will come by me. Let us drink to our new inmateand may 
we be happy together! Martinmy dear friendmy love to you! Mr 
Pinchif you spare the bottle we shall quarrel.' 
And trying (in his regard for the feelings of the rest) to look as 
if the wine were not acid and didn't make him winkMr Pecksniff did 
honour to his own toast. 
'This' he saidin allusion to the partynot the wine'is a 
mingling that repays one for much disappointment and vexation. Let 
us be merry.' Here he took a captain's biscuit. 'It is a poor heart 
that never rejoices; and our hearts are not poor. No!' 
With such stimulants to merriment did he beguile the timeand do 
the honours of the table; while Mr Pinchperhaps to assure himself 
that what he saw and heard was holiday realityand not a charming 
dreamate of everythingand in particular disposed of the slim 
sandwiches to a surprising extent. Nor was he stinted in his 
draughts of wine; but on the contraryremembering Mr Pecksniff's 
speechattacked the bottle with such vigourthat every time he 
filled his glass anewMiss Charitydespite her amiable resolves
could not repress a fixed and stony glareas if her eyes had rested 
on a ghost. Mr Pecksniff also became thoughtful at those moments
not to say dejected; but as he knew the vintageit is very likely 
he may have been speculating on the probable condition of Mr Pinch 
upon the morrowand discussing within himself the best remedies for 
colic. 
Martin and the young ladies were excellent friends alreadyand 
compared recollections of their childish daysto their mutual 
liveliness and entertainment. Miss Mercy laughed immensely at 
everything that was said; and sometimesafter glancing at the happy 
face of Mr Pinchwas seized with such fits of mirth as brought her 
to the very confines of hysterics. But for these bursts of gaiety
her sisterin her better sensereproved her; observingin an 
angry whisperthat it was far from being a theme for jest; and that 
she had no patience with the creature; though it generally ended in 
her laughing too--but much more moderately--and saying that indeed 
it was a little too ridiculous and intolerable to be serious about. 
At length it became high time to remember the first clause of that 
great discovery made by the ancient philosopherfor securing 
healthrichesand wisdom; the infallibility of which has been for 
generations verified by the enormous fortunes constantly amassed by 
chimney-sweepers and other persons who get up early and go to bed 
betimes. The young ladies accordingly roseand having taken leave 
of Mr Chuzzlewit with much sweetnessand of their father with much 
duty and of Mr Pinch with much condescensionretired to their 
bower. Mr Pecksniff insisted on accompanying his young friend 
upstairs for personal superintendence of his comforts; and taking 
him by the armconducted him once more to his bedroomfollowed by 
Mr Pinchwho bore the light. 
'Mr Pinch' said Pecksniffseating himself with folded arms on one 
of the spare beds. 'I don't see any snuffers in that candlestick. 
Will you oblige me by going downand asking for a pair?' 
Mr Pinchonly too happy to be usefulwent off directly. 
'You will excuse Thomas Pinch's want of polishMartin' said Mr 
Pecksniffwith a smile of patronage and pityas soon as he had 
left the room. 'He means well.' 
'He is a very good fellowsir.' 
'Ohyes' said Mr Pecksniff. 'Yes. Thomas Pinch means well. He 
is very grateful. I have never regretted having befriended Thomas 
Pinch.' 
'I should think you never wouldsir.' 
'No' said Mr Pecksniff. 'No. I hope not. Poor fellowhe is 
always disposed to do his best; but he is not gifted. You will make 
him useful to youMartinif you please. If Thomas has a faultit 
is that he is sometimes a little apt to forget his position. But 
that is soon checked. Worthy soul! You will find him easy to 
manage. Good night!' 
'Good nightsir.' 
By this time Mr Pinch had returned with the snuffers. 
'And good night to YOUMr Pinch' said Pecksniff. 'And sound sleep 
to you both. Bless you! Bless you!' 
Invoking this benediction on the heads of his young friends with 
great fervourhe withdrew to his own room; while theybeing tired
soon fell asleep. If Martin dreamed at allsome clue to the matter 
of his visions may possibly be gathered from the after-pages of this 
history. Those of Thomas Pinch were all of holidayschurch organs
and seraphic Pecksniffs. It was some time before Mr Pecksniff 
dreamed at allor even sought his pillowas he sat for full two 
hours before the fire in his own chamberlooking at the coals and 
thinking deeply. But hetooslept and dreamed at last. Thus in 
the quiet hours of the nightone house shuts in as many incoherent 
and incongruous fancies as a madman's head. 
CHAPTER SIX 
COMPRISESAMONG OTHER IMPORTANT MATTERSPECKSNIFFIAN AND 
ARCHITECTURALAND EXACT RELATION OF THE PROGRESS MADE BY MR PINCH 
IN THE CONFIDENCE AND FRIENDSHIP OF THE NEW PUPIL 
It was morning; and the beautiful Auroraof whom so much hath been 
writtensaidand sungdidwith her rosy fingersnip and tweak 
Miss Pecksniff's nose. It was the frolicsome custom of the Goddess
in her intercourse with the fair Cherryso to do; or in more 
prosaic phrasethe tip of that feature in the sweet girl's 
countenance was always very red at breakfast-time. For the most 
partindeedit woreat that season of the daya scraped and 
frosty lookas if it had been rasped; while a similar phenomenon 
developed itself in her humourwhich was then observed to be of a 
sharp and acid qualityas though an extra lemon (figuratively 
speaking) had been squeezed into the nectar of her dispositionand 
had rather damaged its flavour. 
This additional pungency on the part of the fair young creature led
on ordinary occasionsto such slight consequences as the copious 
dilution of Mr Pinch's teaor to his coming off uncommonly short in 
respect of butteror to other the like results. But on the morning 
after the Installation Banquetshe suffered him to wander to and 
fro among the eatables and drinkablesa perfectly free and 
unchecked man; so utterly to Mr Pinch's wonder and confusionthat 
like the wretched captive who recovered his liberty in his old age
he could make but little use of his enlargementand fell into a 
strange kind of flutter for want of some kind hand to scrape his 
breadand cut him off in the article of sugar with a lumpand pay 
him those other little attentions to which he was accustomed. There 
was something almost awfultooabout the self-possession of the 
new pupil; who 'troubled' Mr Pecksniff for the loafand helped 
himself to a rasher of that gentleman's own particular and private 
baconwith all the coolness in life. He even seemed to think that 
he was doing quite a regular thingand to expect that Mr Pinch 
would follow his examplesince he took occasion to observe of that 
young man 'that he didn't get on'; a speech of so tremendous a 
characterthat Tom cast down his eyes involuntarilyand felt as if 
he himself had committed some horrible deed and heinous breach of Mr 
Pecksniff's confidence. Indeedthe agony of having such an 
indiscreet remark addressed to him before the assembled familywas 
breakfast enough in itselfand wouldwithout any other matter of 
reflectionhave settled Mr Pinch's business and quenched his 
appetitefor one mealthough he had been never so hungry. 
The young ladieshoweverand Mr Pecksniff likewiseremained in 
the very best of spirits in spite of these severe trialsthough 
with something of a mysterious understanding among themselves. When 
the meal was nearly overMr Pecksniff smilingly explained the cause 
of their common satisfaction. 
'It is not often' he said'Martinthat my daughters and I desert 
our quiet home to pursue the giddy round of pleasures that revolves 
abroad. But we think of doing so to-day.' 
'Indeedsir!' cried the new pupil. 
'Yes' said Mr Pecksnifftapping his left hand with a letter which 
he held in his right. 'I have a summons here to repair to London; 
on professional businessmy dear Martin; strictly on professional 
business; and I promised my girlslong agothat whenever that 
happened againthey should accompany me. We shall go forth to-
night by the heavy coach--like the dove of oldmy dear Martin--and 
it will be a week before we again deposit our olive-branches in the 
passage. When I say olive-branches' observed Mr Pecksniffin 
explanation'I meanour unpretending luggage.' 
'I hope the young ladies will enjoy their trip' said Martin. 
'Oh! that I'm sure we shall!' cried Mercyclapping her hands. 
'Good graciousCherrymy darlingthe idea of London!' 
'Ardent child!' said Mr Pecksniffgazing on her in a dreamy way. 
'And yet there is a melancholy sweetness in these youthful hopes! 
It is pleasant to know that they never can be realised. I remember 
thinking once myselfin the days of my childhoodthat pickled 
onions grew on treesand that every elephant was born with an 
impregnable castle on his back. I have not found the fact to be so; 
far from it; and yet those visions have comforted me under 
circumstances of trial. Even when I have had the anguish of 
discovering that I have nourished in my breast on ostrichand not a 
human pupil--even in that hour of agonythey have soothed me.' 
At this dread allusion to John WestlockMr Pinch precipitately 
choked in his tea; for he had that very morning received a letter 
from himas Mr Pecksniff very well knew. 
'You will take caremy dear Martin' said Mr Pecksniffresuming 
his former cheerfulness'that the house does not run away in our 
absence. We leave you in charge of everything. There is no 
mystery; all is free and open. Unlike the young man in the Eastern 
tale--who is described as a one-eyed almanacif I am not mistaken
Mr Pinch?--' 
'A one-eyed calenderI thinksir' faltered Tom. 
'They are pretty nearly the same thingI believe' said Mr 
Pecksniffsmiling compassionately; 'or they used to be in my time. 
Unlike that young manmy dear Martinyou are forbidden to enter no 
corner of this house; but are requested to make yourself perfectly 
at home in every part of it. You will be jovialmy dear Martin
and will kill the fatted calf if you please!' 
There was not the least objectiondoubtlessto the young man's 
slaughtering and appropriating to his own use any calffat or lean
that he might happen to find upon the premises; but as no such 
animal chanced at that time to be grazing on Mr Pecksniff's estate
this request must be considered rather as a polite compliment that a 
substantial hospitality. It was the finishing ornament of the 
conversation; for when he had delivered itMr Pecksniff rose and 
led the way to that hotbed of architectural geniusthe two-pair 
front. 
'Let me see' he saidsearching among the papers'how you can best 
employ yourselfMartinwhile I am absent. Suppose you were to 
give me your idea of a monument to a Lord Mayor of London; or a tomb 
for a sheriff; or your notion of a cow-house to be erected in a 
nobleman's park. Do you knownow' said Mr Pecksnifffolding his 
handsand looking at his young relation with an air of pensive 
interest'that I should very much like to see your notion of a 
cow-house?' 
But Martin by no means appeared to relish this suggestion. 
'A pump' said Mr Pecksniff'is very chaste practice. I have found 
that a lamp post is calculated to refine the mind and give it a 
classical tendency. An ornamental turnpike has a remarkable effect 
upon the imagination. What do you say to beginning with an 
ornamental turnpike?' 
'Whatever Mr Pecksniff pleased' said Martindoubtfully. 
'Stay' said that gentleman. 'Come! as you're ambitiousand are a 
very neat draughtsmanyou shall--ha ha!--you shall try your hand on 
these proposals for a grammar-school; regulating your planof 
courseby the printed particulars. Upon my wordnow' said Mr 
Pecksniffmerrily'I shall be very curious to see what you make of 
the grammar-school. Who knows but a young man of your taste might 
hit upon somethingimpracticable and unlikely in itselfbut which 
I could put into shape? For it really ismy dear Martinit really 
is in the finishing touches alonethat great experience and long 
study in these matters tell. Hahaha! Now it really will be' 
continued Mr Pecksniffclapping his young friend on the back in his 
droll humour'an amusement to meto see what you make of the 
grammar-school.' 
Martin readily undertook this taskand Mr Pecksniff forthwith 
proceeded to entrust him with the materials necessary for its 
execution; dwelling meanwhile on the magical effect of a few 
finishing touches from the hand of a master; whichindeedas some 
people said (and these were the old enemies again!) was 
unquestionably very surprisingand almost miraculous; as there were 
cases on record in which the masterly introduction of an additional 
back windowor a kitchen dooror half-a-dozen stepsor even a 
water spouthad made the design of a pupil Mr Pecksniff's own work
and had brought substantial rewards into that gentleman's pocket. 
But such is the magic of geniuswhich changes all it handles into 
gold! 
'When your mind requires to be refreshed by change of occupation' 
said Mr Pecksniff'Thomas Pinch will instruct you in the art of 
surveying the back gardenor in ascertaining the dead level of the 
road between this house and the finger-postor in any other 
practical and pleasing pursuit. There are a cart-load of loose 
bricksand a score or two of old flower-potsin the back yard. If 
you could pile them up my dear Martininto any form which would 
remind me on my return say of St. Peter's at Romeor the Mosque of 
St. Sophia at Constantinopleit would be at once improving to you 
and agreeable to my feelings. And now' said Mr Pecksniffin 
conclusion'to dropfor the presentour professional relations 
and advert to private mattersI shall be glad to talk with you in 
my own roomwhile I pack up my portmanteau.' 
Martin attended him; and they remained in secret conference 
together for an hour or more; leaving Tom Pinch alone. When the 
young man returnedhe was very taciturn and dullin which state he 
remained all day; so that Tomafter trying him once or twice with 
indifferent conversationfelt a delicacy in obtruding himself upon 
his thoughtsand said no more. 
He would not have had leisure to say muchhad his new friend been 
ever so loquacious; for first of all Mr Pecksniff called him down to 
stand upon the top of his portmanteau and represent ancient statues 
thereuntil such time as it would consent to be locked; and then 
Miss Charity called him to come and cord her trunk; and then Miss 
Mercy sent for him to come and mend her box; and then he wrote the 
fullest possible cards for all the luggage; and then he volunteered 
to carry it all downstairs; and after that to see it safely carried 
on a couple of barrows to the old finger-post at the end of the 
lane; and then to mind it till the coach came up. In shorthis 
day's work would have been a pretty heavy one for a porterbut his 
thorough good-will made nothing of it; and as he sat upon the 
luggage at lastwaiting for the Pecksniffsescorted by the new 
pupilto come down the lanehis heart was light with the hope of 
having pleased his benefactor. 
'I was almost afraid' said Tomtaking a letter from his pocket and 
wiping his facefor he was hot with bustling about though it was a 
cold day'that I shouldn't have had time to write itand that 
would have been a thousand pities; postage from such a distance 
being a serious considerationwhen one's not rich. She will be 
glad to see my handpoor girland to hear that Pecksniff is as 
kind as ever. I would have asked John Westlock to call and see her
and tell her all about me by word of mouthbut I was afraid he 
might speak against Pecksniff to herand make her uneasy. Besides
they are particular people where she isand it might have rendered 
her situation uncomfortable if she had had a visit from a young man 
like John. Poor Ruth!' 
Tom Pinch seemed a little disposed to be melancholy for half a 
minute or sobut he found comfort very soonand pursued his 
ruminations thus: 
'I'm a nice manI don't thinkas John used to say (John was a 
kindmerry-hearted fellow; I wish he had liked Pecksniff better)
to be feeling lowon account of the distance between uswhen I 
ought to be thinkinginsteadof my extraordinary good luck in 
having ever got here. I must have been born with a silver spoon in 
my mouthI am sureto have ever come across Pecksniff. And here 
have I fallen again into my usual good luck with the new pupil! Such 
an affablegenerousfree fellowas he isI never saw. Whywe 
were companions directly! and he a relation of Pecksniff's tooand 
a cleverdashing youth who might cut his way through the world as 
if it were a cheese! Here he comes while the words are on my lips' 
said Tom; 'walking down the lane as if the lane belonged to him.' 
In truththe new pupilnot at all disconcerted by the honour of 
having Miss Mercy Pecksniff on his armor by the affectionate 
adieux of that young ladyapproached as Mr Pinch spokefollowed by 
Miss Charity and Mr Pecksniff. As the coach appeared at the same 
momentTom lost no time in entreating the gentleman last mentioned
to undertake the delivery of his letter. 
'Oh!' said Mr Pecksniffglancing at the superscription. 'For your 
sisterThomas. Yesoh yesit shall be deliveredMr Pinch. Make 
your mind easy upon that score. She shall certainly have itMr 
Pinch.' 
He made the promise with so much condescension and patronagethat 
Tom felt he had asked a great deal (this had not occurred to his 
mind before)and thanked him earnestly. The Miss Pecksniffs
according to a custom they hadwere amused beyond description at 
the mention of Mr Pinch's sister. Oh the fright! The bare idea 
of a Miss Pinch! Good heavens! 
Tom was greatly pleased to see them so merryfor he took it as a 
token of their favourand good-humoured regard. Therefore he 
laughed too and rubbed his hands and wished them a pleasant journey 
and safe returnand was quite brisk. Even when the coach had 
rolled away with the olive-branches in the boot and the family of 
doves insidehe stood waving his hand and bowing; so much gratified 
by the unusually courteous demeanour of the young ladiesthat he 
was quite regardlessfor the momentof Martin Chuzzlewitwho 
stood leaning thoughtfully against the finger-postand who after 
disposing of his fair charge had hardly lifted his eyes from the 
ground. 
The perfect silence which ensued upon the bustle and departure of 
the coachtogether with the sharp air of the wintry afternoon
roused them both at the same time. They turnedas by mutual 
consentand moved off arm-in-arm. 
'How melancholy you are!' said Tom; 'what is the matter?' 
'Nothing worth speaking of' said Martin. 'Very little more than 
was the matter yesterdayand much moreI hopethan will be the 
matter to-morrow. I'm out of spiritsPinch.' 
'Well' cried Tom'now do you know I am in capital spirits today
and scarcely ever felt more disposed to be good company. It was a 
very kind thing in your predecessorJohnto write to mewas it 
not?' 
'Whyyes' said Martin carelessly; 'I should have thought he would 
have had enough to do to enjoy himselfwithout thinking of you
Pinch.' 
'Just what I felt to be so very likely' Tom rejoined; 'but nohe 
keeps his wordand saysMy dear Pinch, I often think of you,and 
all sorts of kind and considerate things of that description.' 
'He must be a devilish good-natured fellow' said Martinsomewhat 
peevishly: 'because he can't mean thatyou know.' 
'I don't suppose he caneh?' said Tomlooking wistfully in his 
companion's face. 'He says so to please meyou think?' 
'Whyis it likely' rejoined Martinwith greater earnestness
'that a young man newly escaped from this kennel of a placeand 
fresh to all the delights of being his own master in Londoncan 
have much leisure or inclination to think favourably of anything or 
anybody he has left behind him here? I put it to youPinchis it 
natural?' 
After a short reflectionMr Pinch repliedin a more subdued tone
that to be sure it was unreasonable to expect any such thingand 
that he had no doubt Martin knew best. 
'Of course I know best' Martin observed. 
'YesI feel that' said Mr Pinch mildly. 'I said so.' And when he 
had made this rejoinderthey fell into a blank silence againwhich 
lasted until they reached home; by which time it was dark. 
NowMiss Charity Pecksniffin consideration of the inconvenience 
of carrying them with her in the coachand the impossibility of 
preserving them by artificial means until the family's returnhad 
set forthin a couple of platesthe fragments of yesterday's 
feast. In virtue of which liberal arrangementthey had the 
happiness to find awaiting them in the parlour two chaotic heaps of 
the remains of last night's pleasureconsisting of certain filmy 
bits of orangessome mummied sandwichesvarious disrupted masses 
of the geological cakeand several entire captain's biscuits. That 
choice liquor in which to steep these dainties might not be wanting
the remains of the two bottles of currant wine had been poured 
together and corked with a curl-paper; so that every material was at 
hand for making quite a heavy night of it. 
Martin Chuzzlewit beheld these roystering preparations with infinite 
contemptand stirring the fire into a blaze (to the great 
destruction of Mr Pecksniff's coals)sat moodily down before itin 
the most comfortable chair he could find. That he might the better 
squeeze himself into the small corner that was left for himMr 
Pinch took up his position on Miss Mercy Pecksniff's stooland 
setting his glass down upon the hearthrug and putting his plate 
upon his kneesbegan to enjoy himself. 
If Diogenes coming to life again could have rolled himselftub and 
allinto Mr Pecksniff's parlour and could have seen Tom Pinch as he 
sat on Mercy Pecksniff's stool with his plate and glass before him 
he could not have faced it outthough in his surliest moodbut 
must have smiled good-temperedly. The perfect and entire 
satisfaction of Tom; his surpassing appreciation of the husky 
sandwicheswhich crumbled in his mouth like saw-dust; the 
unspeakable relish with which he swallowed the thin wine by drops
and smacked his lipsas though it were so rich and generous that to 
lose an atom of its fruity flavour were a sin; the look with which 
he paused sometimeswith his glass in his handproposing silent 
toasts to himself; and the anxious shade that came upon his 
contented face whenafter wandering round the roomexulting in its 
uninvaded snugnesshis glance encountered the dull brow of his 
companion; no cynic in the worldthough in his hatred of its men a 
very griffincould have withstood these things in Thomas Pinch. 
Some men would have slapped him on the backand pledged him in a 
bumper of the currant winethough it had been the sharpest vinegar 
--ayeand liked its flavour too; some would have seized him by his 
honest handand thanked him for the lesson that his simple nature 
taught them. Some would have laughed withand others would have 
laughed at him; of which last class was Martin Chuzzlewitwho
unable to restrain himselfat last laughed loud and long. 
'That's right' said Tomnodding approvingly. 'Cheer up! That's 
capital!' 
At which encouragement young Martin laughed again; and saidas soon 
as he had breath and gravity enough: 
'I never saw such a fellow as you arePinch.' 
'Didn't you though?' said Tom. 'Wellit's very likely you do find 
me strangebecause I have hardly seen anything of the worldand 
you have seen a good deal I dare say?' 
'Pretty well for my time of life' rejoined Martindrawing his 
chair still nearer to the fireand spreading his feet out on the 
fender. 'Deuce take itI must talk openly to somebody. I'll talk 
openly to youPinch.' 
'Do!' said Tom. 'I shall take it as being very friendly of you' 
'I'm not in your wayam I?' inquired Martinglancing down at Mr 
Pinchwho was by this time looking at the fire over his leg. 
'Not at all!' cried Tom. 
'You must know thento make short of a long story' said Martin
beginning with a kind of effortas if the revelation were not 
agreeable to him; 'that I have been bred up from childhood with 
great expectationsand have always been taught to believe that I 
should beone dayvery rich. So I should have beenbut for 
certain brief reasons which I am going to tell youand which have 
led to my being disinherited.' 
'By your father?' inquired Mr Pinchwith open eyes. 
'By my grandfather. I have had no parents these many years. 
Scarcely within my remembrance.' 
'Neither have I' said Tomtouching the young man's hand with his 
own and timidly withdrawing it again. 'Dear me!' 
'Whyas to thatyou knowPinch' pursued the otherstirring the 
fire againand speaking in his rapidoff-hand way; 'it's all very 
right and proper to be fond of parents when we have themand to 
bear them in remembrance after they're deadif you have ever known 
anything of them. But as I never did know anything about mine 
personallyyou knowwhyI can't be expected to be very 
sentimental about 'em. And I am not; that's the truth.' 
Mr Pinch was just then looking thoughtfully at the bars. But on his 
companion pausing in this placehe startedand said 'Oh! of 
course'--and composed himself to listen again. 
'In a word' said Martin'I have been bred and reared all my life 
by this grandfather of whom I have just spoken. Nowhe has a great 
many good points--there is no doubt about that; I'll not disguise 
the fact from you--but he has two very great faultswhich are the 
staple of his bad side. In the first placehe has the most 
confirmed obstinacy of character you ever met with in any human 
creature. In the secondhe is most abominably selfish.' 
'Is he indeed?' cried Tom. 
'In those two respects' returned the other'there never was such a 
man. I have often heard from those who knowthat they have been
time out of mindthe failings of our family; and I believe there's 
some truth in it. But I can't say of my own knowledge. All I have 
to doyou knowis to be very thankful that they haven't descended 
to meandto be very careful that I don't contract 'em.' 
'To be sure' said Mr Pinch. 'Very proper.' 
'Wellsir' resumed Martinstirring the fire once moreand 
drawing his chair still closer to it'his selfishness makes him 
exactingyou see; and his obstinacy makes him resolute in his 
exactions. The consequence is that he has always exacted a great 
deal from me in the way of respectand submissionand self-denial 
when his wishes were in questionand so forth. I have borne a 
great deal from himbecause I have been under obligations to him 
(if one can ever be said to be under obligations to one's own 
grandfather)and because I have been really attached to him; but we 
have had a great many quarrels for all thatfor I could not 
accommodate myself to his ways very often--not out of the least 
reference to myselfyou understandbut because--' he stammered 
hereand was rather at a loss. 
Mr Pinch being about the worst man in the world to help anybody out 
of a difficulty of this sortsaid nothing. 
'Well! as you understand me' resumed Martinquickly'I needn't 
hunt for the precise expression I want. Now I come to the cream of 
my storyand the occasion of my being here. I am in lovePinch.' 
Mr Pinch looked up into his face with increased interest. 
'I say I am in love. I am in love with one of the most beautiful 
girls the sun ever shone upon. But she is wholly and entirely 
dependent upon the pleasure of my grandfather; and if he were to 
know that she favoured my passionshe would lose her home and 
everything she possesses in the world. There is nothing very 
selfish in THAT loveI think?' 
'Selfish!' cried Tom. 'You have acted nobly. To love her as I am 
sure you doand yet in consideration for her state of dependence
not even to disclose--' 
'What are you talking aboutPinch?' said Martin pettishly: 'don't 
make yourself ridiculousmy good fellow! What do you mean by not 
disclosing?' 
'I beg your pardon' answered Tom. 'I thought you meant thator I 
wouldn't have said it.' 
'If I didn't tell her I loved herwhere would be the use of my 
being in love?' said Martin: 'unless to keep myself in a perpetual 
state of worry and vexation?' 
'That's true' Tom answered. 'Well! I can guess what SHE said when 
you told her' he addedglancing at Martin's handsome face. 
'Whynot exactlyPinch' he rejoinedwith a slight frown; 
'because she has some girlish notions about duty and gratitudeand 
all the rest of itwhich are rather hard to fathom; but in the main 
you are right. Her heart was mineI found.' 
'Just what I supposed' said Tom. 'Quite natural!' andin his 
great satisfactionhe took a long sip out of his wine-glass. 
'Although I had conducted myself from the first with the utmost 
circumspection' pursued Martin'I had not managed matters so well 
but that my grandfatherwho is full of jealousy and distrust
suspected me of loving her. He said nothing to herbut straightway 
attacked me in privateand charged me with designing to corrupt the 
fidelity to himself (there you observe his selfishness)of a young 
creature whom he had trained and educated to be his only 
disinterested and faithful companionwhen he should have disposed 
of me in marriage to his heart's content. Upon thatI took fire 
immediatelyand told him that with his good leave I would dispose 
of myself in marriageand would rather not be knocked down by him 
or any other auctioneer to any bidder whomsoever.' 
Mr Pinch opened his eyes widerand looked at the fire harder than 
he had done yet. 
'You may be sure' said Martin'that this nettled himand that he 
began to be the very reverse of complimentary to myself. Interview 
succeeded interview; words engendered wordsas they always do; and 
the upshot of it wasthat I was to renounce heror be renounced by 
him. Now you must bear in mindPinchthat I am not only 
desperately fond of her (for though she is poorher beauty and 
intellect would reflect great credit on anybodyI don't care of 
what pretensions who might become her husband)but that a chief 
ingredient in my composition is a most determined--' 
'Obstinacy' suggested Tom in perfect good faith. But the 
suggestion was not so well received as he had expected; for the 
young man immediately rejoinedwith some irritation
'What a fellow you arePinch!' 
'I beg your pardon' said Tom'I thought you wanted a word.' 
'I didn't want that word' he rejoined. 'I told you obstinacy was 
no part of my characterdid I not? I was going to sayif you had 
given me leavethat a chief ingredient in my composition is a most 
determined firmness.' 
'Oh!' cried Tomscrewing up his mouthand nodding. 'Yesyes; I 
see!' 
'And being firm' pursued Martin'of course I was not going to 
yield to himor give way by so much as the thousandth part of an 
inch.' 
'Nono' said Tom. 
'On the contrarythe more he urgedthe more I was determined to 
oppose him.' 
'To be sure!' said Tom. 
'Very well' rejoined Martinthrowing himself back in his chair
with a careless wave of both handsas if the subject were quite 
settledand nothing more could be said about it--'There is an end 
of the matterand here am I!' 
Mr Pinch sat staring at the fire for some minutes with a puzzled 
looksuch as he might have assumed if some uncommonly difficult 
conundrum had been proposedwhich he found it impossible to guess. 
At length he said: 
'Pecksniffof courseyou had known before?' 
'Only by name. NoI had never seen himfor my grandfather kept 
not only himself but mealoof from all his relations. But our 
separation took place in a town in the adjoining country. From that 
place I came to Salisburyand there I saw Pecksniff's 
advertisementwhich I answeredhaving always had some natural 
tasteI believein the matters to which it referredand thinking 
it might suit me. As soon as I found it to be hisI was doubly 
bent on coming to him if possibleon account of his being--' 
'Such an excellent man' interposed Tomrubbing his hands: 'so he 
is. You were quite right.' 
'Whynot so much on that accountif the truth must be spoken' 
returned Martin'as because my grandfather has an inveterate 
dislike to himand after the old man's arbitrary treatment of meI 
had a natural desire to run as directly counter to all his opinions 
as I could. Well! As I said beforehere I am. My engagement with 
the young lady I have been telling you about is likely to be a 
tolerably long one; for neither her prospects nor mine are very 
bright; and of course I shall not think of marrying until I am well 
able to do so. It would never doyou knowfor me to be plunging 
myself into poverty and shabbiness and love in one room up three 
pair of stairsand all that sort of thing.' 
'To say nothing of her' remarked Tom Pinchin a low voice. 
'Exactly so' rejoined Martinrising to warm his backand leaning 
against the chimney-piece. 'To say nothing of her. At the same 
timeof course it's not very hard upon her to be obliged to yield 
to the necessity of the case; firstbecause she loves me very much; 
and secondlybecause I have sacrificed a great deal on her account
and might have done much betteryou know.' 
It was a very long time before Tom said 'Certainly;' so longthat 
he might have taken a nap in the intervalbut he did say it at 
last. 
'Nowthere is one odd coincidence connected with this love-story' 
said Martin'which brings it to an end. You remember what you told 
me last night as we were coming hereabout your pretty visitor in 
the church?' 
'Surely I do' said Tomrising from his stooland seating himself 
in the chair from which the other had lately risenthat he might 
see his face. 'Undoubtedly.' 
'That was she.' 
'I knew what you were going to say' cried Tomlooking fixedly at 
himand speaking very softly. 'You don't tell me so?' 
'That was she' repeated the young man. 'After what I have heard 
from PecksniffI have no doubt that she came and went with my 
grandfather.--Don't you drink too much of that sour wineor you'll 
have a fit of some sortPinchI see.' 
'It is not very wholesomeI am afraid' said Tomsetting down the 
empty glass he had for some time held. 'So that was shewas it?' 
Martin nodded assent; and addingwith a restless impatiencethat 
if he had been a few days earlier he would have seen her; and that 
now she might befor anything he knewhundreds of miles away; 
threw himselfafter a few turns across the roominto a chairand 
chafed like a spoilt child. 
Tom Pinch's heart was very tenderand he could not bear to see the 
most indifferent person in distress; still less one who had awakened 
an interest in himand who regarded him (either in factor as he 
supposed) with kindnessand in a spirit of lenient construction. 
Whatever his own thoughts had been a few moments before--and to 
judge from his face they must have been pretty serious--he dismissed 
them instantlyand gave his young friend the best counsel and 
comfort that occurred to him. 
'All will be well in time' said Tom'I have no doubt; and some 
trial and adversity just now will only serve to make you more 
attached to each other in better days. I have always read that the 
truth is soand I have a feeling within mewhich tells me how 
natural and right it is that it should be. That never ran smooth 
yet' said Tomwith a smile whichdespite the homeliness of his 
facewas pleasanter to see than many a proud beauty's brightest 
glance; 'what never ran smooth yetcan hardly be expected to change 
its character for us; so we must take it as we find itand fashion 
it into the very best shape we canby patience and good-humour. I 
have no power at all; I needn't tell you that; but I have an 
excellent will; and if I could ever be of use to youin any way 
whateverhow very glad I should be!' 
'Thank you' said Martinshaking his hand. 'You're a good fellow
upon my wordand speak very kindly. Of course you know' he added
after a moment's pauseas he drew his chair towards the fire again
'I should not hesitate to avail myself of your services if you could 
help me at all; but mercy on us!'--Here he rumpled his hair 
impatiently with his handand looked at Tom as if he took it rather 
ill that he was not somebody else--'you might as well be a toastingfork 
or a frying-panPinchfor any help you can render me.' 
'Except in the inclination' said Tomgently. 
'Oh! to be sure. I meant thatof course. If inclination went for 
anythingI shouldn't want help. I tell you what you may do
thoughif you willand at the present moment too.' 
'What is that?' demanded Tom. 
'Read to me.' 
'I shall be delighted' cried Tomcatching up the candle with 
enthusiasm. 'Excuse my leaving you in the dark a momentand I'll 
fetch a book directly. What will you like? Shakespeare?' 
'Aye!' replied his friendyawning and stretching himself. 'He'll 
do. I am tired with the bustle of to-dayand the novelty of 
everything about me; and in such a casethere's no greater 
luxury in the worldI thinkthan being read to sleep. You 
won't mind my going to sleepif I can?' 
'Not at all!' cried Tom. 
'Then begin as soon as you like. You needn't leave off when you see 
me getting drowsy (unless you feel tired)for it's pleasant to wake 
gradually to the sounds again. Did you ever try that?' 
'NoI never tried that' said Tom 
'Well! You canyou knowone of these days when we're both in the 
right humour. Don't mind leaving me in the dark. Look sharp!' 
Mr Pinch lost no time in moving away; and in a minute or two 
returned with one of the precious volumes from the shelf beside his 
bed. Martin had in the meantime made himself as comfortable as 
circumstances would permitby constructing before the fire a 
temporary sofa of three chairs with Mercy's stool for a pillowand 
lying down at full-length upon it. 
'Don't be too loudplease' he said to Pinch. 
'Nono' said Tom. 
'You're sure you're not cold' 
'Not at all!' cried Tom. 
'I am quite readythen.' 
Mr Pinch accordinglyafter turning over the leaves of his book with 
as much care as if they were living and highly cherished creatures
made his own selectionand began to read. Before he had completed 
fifty lines his friend was snoring. 
'Poor fellow!' said Tomsoftlyas he stretched out his head to 
peep at him over the backs of the chairs. 'He is very young to have 
so much trouble. How trustful and generous in him to bestow all 
this confidence in me. And that was shewas it?' 
But suddenly remembering their compacthe took up the poem at the 
place where he had left offand went on reading; always forgetting 
to snuff the candleuntil its wick looked like a mushroom. He 
gradually became so much interestedthat he quite forgot to 
replenish the fire; and was only reminded of his neglect by Martin 
Chuzzlewit starting up after the lapse of an hour or soand crying 
with a shiver. 
'Whyit's nearly outI declare! No wonder I dreamed of being 
frozen. Do call for some coals. What a fellow you arePinch!' 
CHAPTER SEVEN 
IN WHICH MR CHEVY SLYME ASSERTS THE INDEPENDENCE OF HIS SPIRITAND 
THE BLUE DRAGON LOSES A LIMB 
Martin began to work at the grammar-school next morningwith so 
much vigour and expeditionthat Mr Pinch had new reason to do 
homage to the natural endowments of that young gentlemanand to 
acknowledge his infinite superiority to himself. The new pupil 
received Tom's compliments very graciously; and having by this time 
conceived a real regard for himin his own peculiar waypredicted 
that they would always be the very best of friendsand that neither 
of themhe was certain (but particularly Tom)would ever have 
reason to regret the day on which they became acquainted. Mr Pinch 
was delighted to hear him say thisand felt so much flattered by 
his kind assurances of friendship and protectionthat he was at a 
loss how to express the pleasure they afforded him. And indeed it 
may be observed of this friendshipsuch as it wasthat it had 
within it more likely materials of endurance than many a sworn 
brotherhood that has been rich in promise; for so long as the one 
party found a pleasure in patronizingand the other in being 
patronised (which was in the very essence of their respective 
characters)it was of all possible events among the least probable
that the twin demonsEnvy and Pridewould ever arise between them. 
So in very many cases of friendshipor what passes for itthe old 
axiom is reversedand like clings to unlike more than to like. 
They were both very busy on the afternoon succeeding the family's 
departure--Martin with the grammar-schooland Tom in balancing 
certain receipts of rentsand deducting Mr Pecksniff's commission 
from the same; in which abstruse employment he was much distracted 
by a habit his new friend had of whistling aloud while he was 
drawing--when they were not a little startled by the unexpected 
obtrusion into that sanctuary of geniusof a human head which
although a shaggy and somewhat alarming head in appearancesmiled 
affably upon them from the doorwayin a manner that was at once 
waggishconciliatoryand expressive of approbation. 
'I am not industrious myselfgents both' said the head'but I 
know how to appreciate that quality in others. I wish I may turn 
grey and uglyif it isn't in my opinionnext to geniusone of the 
very charmingest qualities of the human mind. Upon my soulI am 
grateful to my friend Pecksniff for helping me to the contemplation 
of such a delicious picture as you present. You remind me of 
Whittingtonafterwards thrice Lord Mayor of London. I give you my 
unsullied word of honourthat you very strongly remind me of that 
historical character. You are a pair of Whittingtonsgents
without the cat; which is a most agreeable and blessed exception to 
mefor I am not attached to the feline species. My name is Tigg; 
how do you do?' 
Martin looked to Mr Pinch for an explanation; and Tomwho had never 
in his life set eyes on Mr Tigg beforelooked to that gentleman 
himself. 
'Chevy Slyme?' said Mr Tigginterrogativelyand kissing his left 
hand in token of friendship. 'You will understand me when I say 
that I am the accredited agent of Chevy Slyme; that I am the 
ambassador from the court of Chiv? Ha ha!' 
'Heyday!' asked Martinstarting at the mention of a name he knew. 
'Praywhat does he want with me?' 
'If your name is Pinch'--Mr Tigg began. 
'It is not' said Martinchecking himself. 'That is Mr Pinch.' 
'If that is Mr Pinch' cried Tiggkissing his hand againand 
beginning to follow his head into the room'he will permit me to 
say that I greatly esteem and respect his characterwhich has been 
most highly commended to me by my friend Pecksniff; and that I 
deeply appreciate his talent for the organnotwithstanding that I 
do notif I may use the expressiongrind myself. If that is Mr 
PinchI will venture to express a hope that I see him welland 
that he is suffering no inconvenience from the easterly wind?' 
'Thank you' said Tom. 'I am very well.' 
'That is a comfort' Mr Tigg rejoined. 'Then' he addedshielding 
his lips with the palm of his handand applying them close to Mr 
Pinch's ear'I have come for the letter.' 
'For the letter' said Tomaloud. 'What letter?' 
'The letter' whispered Tigg in the same cautious manner as before
'which my friend Pecksniff addressed to Chevy SlymeEsquireand 
left with you.' 
'He didn't leave any letter with me' said Tom. 
'Hush!' cried the other. 'It's all the same thingthough not so 
delicately done by my friend Pecksniff as I could have wished. The 
money.' 
'The money!' cried Tom quite scared. 
'Exactly so' said Mr Tigg. With which he rapped Tom twice or 
thrice upon the breast and nodded several timesas though he would 
say that he saw they understood each other; that it was unnecessary 
to mention the circumstance before a third person; and that he would 
take it as a particular favour if Tom would slip the amount into his 
handas quietly as possible. 
Mr Pinchhoweverwas so very much astounded by this (to him) 
inexplicable deportmentthat he at once openly declared there must 
be some mistakeand that he had been entrusted with no commission 
whatever having any reference to Mr Tigg or to his friendeither. 
Mr Tigg received this declaration with a grave request that Mr Pinch 
would have the goodness to make it again; and on Tom's repeating it 
in a still more emphatic and unmistakable mannerchecked it off
sentence for sentenceby nodding his head solemnly at the end of 
each. When it had come to a close for the second timeMr Tigg sat 
himself down in a chair and addressed the young men as follows: 
'Then I tell you what it isgents both. There is at this present 
moment in this very placea perfect constellation of talent and 
geniuswho is involvedthrough what I cannot but designate as the 
culpable negligence of my friend Pecksniffin a situation as 
tremendousperhapsas the social intercourse of the nineteenth 
century will readily admit of. There is actually at this instant
at the Blue Dragon in this village--an ale-houseobserve; a common
paltrylow-mindedclodhoppingpipe-smoking ale-house--an 
individualof whom it may be saidin the language of the Poet
that nobody but himself can in any way come up to him; who is 
detained there for his bill. Ha! ha! For his bill. I repeat it-for 
his bill. Now' said Mr Tigg'we have heard of Fox's Book of 
MartyrsI believeand we have heard of the Court of Requestsand 
the Star Chamber; but I fear the contradiction of no man alive or 
deadwhen I assert that my friend Chevy Slyme being held in pawn 
for a billbeats any amount of cockfighting with which I am 
acquainted.' 
Martin and Mr Pinch lookedfirst at each otherand afterwards at 
Mr Tiggwho with his arms folded on his breast surveyed themhalf 
in despondency and half in bitterness. 
'Don't mistake megents both' he saidstretching forth his right 
hand. 'If it had been for anything but a billI could have borne 
itand could still have looked upon mankind with some feeling of 
respect; but when such a man as my friend Slyme is detained for a 
score--a thing in itself essentially mean; a low performance on a 
slateor possibly chalked upon the back of a door--I do feel that 
there is a screw of such magnitude loose somewherethat the whole 
framework of society is shakenand the very first principles of 
things can no longer be trusted. In shortgents both' said Mr 
Tigg with a passionate flourish of his hands and head'when a man 
like Slyme is detained for such a thing as a billI reject the 
superstitions of agesand believe nothing. I don't even believe 
that I DON'T believecurse me if I do!' 
'I am very sorryI am sure' said Tom after a pause'but Mr 
Pecksniff said nothing to me about itand I couldn't act without 
his instructions. Wouldn't it be bettersirif you were to go to 
--to wherever you came from--yourselfand remit the money to your 
friend?' 
'How can that be donewhen I am detained also?' said Mr Tigg; 'and 
when moreoverowing to the astoundingand I must addguilty 
negligence of my friend PecksniffI have no money for coach-hire?' 
Tom thought of reminding the gentleman (whono doubtin his 
agitation had forgotten it) that there was a post-office in the 
land; and that possibly if he wrote to some friend or agent for a 
remittance it might not be lost upon the road; or at all events that 
the chancehowever desperatewas worth trusting to. Butas his 
good-nature presently suggested to him certain reasons for 
abstaining from this hinthe paused againand then asked: 
'Did you saysirthat you were detained also?' 
'Come here' said Mr Tiggrising. 'You have no objection to my 
opening this window for a moment?' 
'Certainly not' said Tom. 
'Very good' said Mr Tigglifting the sash. 'You see a fellow down 
there in a red neckcloth and no waistcoat?' 
'Of course I do' cried Tom. 'That's Mark Tapley.' 
'Mark Tapley is it?' said the gentleman. 'Then Mark Tapley had not 
only the great politeness to follow me to this housebut is waiting 
nowto see me home again. And for that attentionsir' added Mr 
Tiggstroking his moustache'I can tell youthat Mark Tapley had 
better in his infancy have been fed to suffocation by Mrs Tapley
than preserved to this time.' 
Mr Pinch was not so dismayed by this terrible threatbut that he 
had voice enough to call to Mark to come inand upstairs; a 
summons which he so speedily obeyedthat almost as soon as Tom and 
Mr Tigg had drawn in their heads and closed the window againhe
the denouncedappeared before them. 
'Come hereMark!' said Mr Pinch. 'Good gracious me! what's the 
matter between Mrs Lupin and this gentleman?' 
'What gentlemansir?' said Mark. 'I don't see no gentleman here 
sirexcepting you and the new gentleman' to whom he made a rough 
kind of bow--'and there's nothing wrong between Mrs Lupin and either 
of youMr PinchI am sure.' 
'NonsenseMark!' cried Tom. 'You see Mr--' 
'Tigg' interposed that gentleman. 'Wait a bit. I shall crush him 
soon. All in good time!' 
'Oh HIM!' rejoined Markwith an air of careless defiance. 'YesI 
see HIM. I could see him a little betterif he'd shave himself
and get his hair cut.' 
Mr Tigg shook his head with a ferocious lookand smote himself once 
upon the breast. 
'It's no use' said Mark. 'If you knock ever so much in that 
quarteryou'll get no answer. I know better. There's nothing 
there but padding; and a greasy sort it is.' 
'NayMark' urged Mr Pinchinterposing to prevent hostilities
'tell me what I ask you. You're not out of temperI hope?' 
'Out of tempersir!' cried Markwith a grin; 'why nosir. 
There's a little credit--not much--in being jollywhen such fellows 
as him is a-going about like roaring lions; if there is any breed of 
lionsat leastas is all roar and mane. What is there between him 
and Mrs Lupinsir? Whythere's a score between him and Mrs Lupin. 
And I think Mrs Lupin lets him and his friend off very easy in not 
charging 'em double prices for being a disgrace to the Dragon. 
That's my opinion. I wouldn't have any such Peter the Wild Boy as 
him in my housesirnot if I was paid race-week prices for it. 
He's enough to turn the very beer in the casks sour with his looks; 
he is! So he wouldif it had judgment enough.' 
'You're not answering my questionyou knowMark' observed Mr 
Pinch. 
'Wellsir' said Mark'I don't know as there's much to answer 
further than that. Him and his friend goes and stops at the Moon 
and Stars till they've run a bill there; and then comes and stops 
with us and does the same. The running of bills is common enough Mr 
Pinch; it an't that as we object to; it's the ways of this chap. 
Nothing's good enough for him; all the women is dying for him he 
thinksand is overpaid if he winks at 'em; and all the men was made 
to be ordered about by him. This not being aggravation enoughhe 
says this morning to mein his usual captivating wayWe're going 
to-night, my man.Are you, sir?says I. "Perhaps you'd like the 
bill got readysir?" "Oh nomy man he says; you needn't mind 
that. I'll give Pecksniff orders to see to that." In reply to 
whichthe Dragon makes answerThankee, sir, you're very kind to 
honour us so far, but as we don't know any particular good of you, 
and you don't travel with luggage, and Mr Pecksniff an't at home 
(which perhaps you mayn't happen to be aware of, sir), we should 
prefer something more satisfactory;and that's where the matter 
stands. And I ask' said Mr Tapleypointingin conclusionto Mr 
Tiggwith his hat'any lady or gentlemanpossessing ordinary 
strength of mindto say whether he's a disagreeable-looking chap or 
not!' 
'Let me inquire' said Martininterposing between this candid 
speech and the delivery of some blighting anathema by Mr Tigg'what 
the amount of this debt may be?' 
'In point of moneysirvery little' answered Mark. 'Only just 
turned of three pounds. But it an't that; it's the--' 
'Yesyesyou told us so before' said Martin. 'Pincha word with 
you.' 
'What is it?' asked Tomretiring with him to a corner of the room. 
'Whysimply--I am ashamed to say--that this Mr Slyme is a relation 
of mineof whom I never heard anything pleasant; and that I don't 
want him here just nowand think he would be cheaply got rid of
perhapsfor three or four pounds. You haven't enough money to pay 
this billI suppose?' 
Tom shook his head to an extent that left no doubt of his entire 
sincerity. 
'That's unfortunatefor I am poor too; and in case you had had it
I'd have borrowed it of you. But if we told this landlady we would 
see her paidI suppose that would answer the same purpose?' 
'Oh dearyes!' said Tom. 'She knows mebless you!' 
'Then let us go down at once and tell her so; for the sooner we are 
rid of their company the better. As you have conducted the 
conversation with this gentleman hithertoperhaps you'll tell him 
what we purpose doing; will you?' 
Mr Pinchcomplyingat once imparted the intelligence to Mr Tigg
who shook him warmly by the hand in returnassuring him that his 
faith in anything and everything was again restored. It was not so 
muchhe saidfor the temporary relief of this assistance that he 
prized itas for its vindication of the high principle that 
Nature's Nobs felt with Nature's Nobsand that true greatness of 
soul sympathized with true greatness of soulall the world over. 
It proved to himhe saidthat like him they admired geniuseven 
when it was coupled with the alloy occasionally visible in the metal 
of his friend Slyme; and on behalf of that friendhe thanked them; 
as warmly and heartily as if the cause were his own. Being cut 
short in these speeches by a general move towards the stairshe 
took possession at the street door of the lapel of Mr Pinch's coat
as a security against further interruption; and entertained that 
gentleman with some highly improving discourse until they reached 
the Dragonwhither they were closely followed by Mark and the new 
pupil. 
The rosy hostess scarcely needed Mr Pinch's word as a preliminary to 
the release of her two visitorsof whom she was glad to be rid on 
any terms; indeedtheir brief detention had originated mainly with 
Mr Tapleywho entertained a constitutional dislike to gentleman 
out-at-elbows who flourished on false pretences; and had conceived a 
particular aversion to Mr Tigg and his friendas choice specimens 
of the species. The business in hand thus easily settledMr Pinch 
and Martin would have withdrawn immediatelybut for the urgent 
entreaties of Mr Tigg that they would allow him the honour of 
presenting them to his friend Slymewhich were so very difficult of 
resistance thatyielding partly to these persuasions and partly to 
their own curiositythey suffered themselves to be ushered into the 
presence of that distinguished gentleman. 
He was brooding over the remains of yesterday's decanter of brandy
and was engaged in the thoughtful occupation of making a chain of 
rings on the top of the table with the wet foot of his drinkingglass. 
Wretched and forlorn as he lookedMr Slyme had once been in 
his waythe choicest of swaggerers; putting forth his pretensions 
boldlyas a man of infinite taste and most undoubted promise. The 
stock-in-trade requisite to set up an amateur in this department of 
business is very slightand easily got together; a trick of the 
nose and a curl of the lip sufficient to compound a tolerable sneer
being ample provision for any exigency. Butin an evil hourthis 
off-shoot of the Chuzzlewit trunkbeing lazyand ill qualified for 
any regular pursuit and having dissipated such means as he ever 
possessedhad formally established himself as a professor of Taste 
for a livelihood; and findingtoo latethat something more than 
his old amount of qualifications was necessary to sustain him in 
this callinghad quickly fallen to his present levelwhere he 
retained nothing of his old self but his boastfulness and his bile
and seemed to have no existence separate or apart from his friend 
Tigg. And now so abject and so pitiful was he--at once so maudlin
insolentbeggarlyand proud--that even his friend and parasite
standing erect beside himswelled into a Man by contrast. 
'Chiv' said Mr Tiggclapping him on the back'my friend Pecksniff 
not being at homeI have arranged our trifling piece of business 
with Mr Pinch and friend. Mr Pinch and friendMr Chevy Slyme! 
ChivMr Pinch and friend!' 
'These are agreeable circumstances in which to be introduced to 
strangers' said Chevy Slymeturning his bloodshot eyes towards Tom 
Pinch. 'I am the most miserable man in the worldI believe!' 
Tom begged he wouldn't mention it; and finding him in this 
conditionretiredafter an awkward pausefollowed by Martin. But 
Mr Tigg so urgently conjured themby coughs and signsto remain in 
the shadow of the doorthat they stopped there. 
'I swear' cried Mr Slymegiving the table an imbecile blow with 
his fistand then feebly leaning his head upon his handwhile some 
drunken drops oozed from his eyes'that I am the wretchedest 
creature on record. Society is in a conspiracy against me. I'm the 
most literary man alive. I'm full of scholarship. I'm full of 
genius; I'm full of information; I'm full of novel views on every 
subject; yet look at my condition! I'm at this moment obliged to two 
strangers for a tavern bill!' 
Mr Tigg replenished his friend's glasspressed it into his hand
and nodded an intimation to the visitors that they would see him in 
a better aspect immediately. 
'Obliged to two strangers for a tavern billeh!' repeated Mr Slyme
after a sulky application to his glass. 'Very pretty! And crowds of 
impostorsthe whilebecoming famous; men who are no more on a 
level with me than--TiggI take you to witness that I am the most 
persecuted hound on the face of the earth.' 
With a whinenot unlike the cry of the animal he namedin its 
lowest state of humiliationhe raised his glass to his mouth again. 
He found some encouragement in it; for when he set it down he 
laughed scornfully. Upon that Mr Tigg gesticulated to the visitors 
once moreand with great expressionimplying that now the time was 
come when they would see Chiv in his greatness. 
'Hahaha' laughed Mr Slyme. 'Obliged to two strangers for a 
tavern bill! Yet I think I've a rich uncleTiggwho could buy up 
the uncles of fifty strangers! Have Ior have I not? I come of a 
good familyI believe! Do Ior do I not? I'm not a man of common 
capacity or accomplishmentsI think! Am Ior am I not?' 
'You are the American aloe of the human racemy dear Chiv' said Mr 
Tigg'which only blooms once in a hundred years!' 
'Hahaha!' laughed Mr Slyme again. 'Obliged to two strangers for 
a tavern bill! I obliged to two architect's apprentices. Fellows 
who measure earth with iron chainsand build houses like 
bricklayers. Give me the names of those two apprentices. How dare 
they oblige me!' 
Mr Tigg was quite lost in admiration of this noble trait in his 
friend's character; as he made known to Mr Pinch in a neat little 
ballet of actionspontaneously invented for the purpose. 
'I'll let 'em knowand I'll let all men know' cried Chevy Slyme
'that I'm none of the meangrovellingtame characters they meet 
with commonly. I have an independent spirit. I have a heart that 
swells in my bosom. I have a soul that rises superior to base 
considerations.' 
'Oh ChivChiv' murmured Mr Tigg'you have a nobly independent 
natureChiv!' 
'You go and do your dutysir' said Mr Slymeangrily'and borrow 
money for travelling expenses; and whoever you borrow it oflet 'em 
know that I possess a haughty spiritand a proud spiritand have 
infernally finely-touched chords in my naturewhich won't brook 
patronage. Do you hear? Tell 'em I hate 'emand that that's the 
way I preserve my self-respect; and tell 'em that no man ever 
respected himself more than I do!' 
He might have added that he hated two sorts of men; all those who 
did him favoursand all those who were better off than himself; as 
in either case their position was an insult to a man of his 
stupendous merits. But he did not; for with the apt closing words 
above recitedMr Slyme; of too haughty a stomach to workto beg
to borrowor to steal; yet mean enough to be worked or borrowed
begged or stolen forby any catspaw that would serve his turn; too 
insolent to lick the hand that fed him in his needyet cur enough 
to bite and tear it in the dark; with these apt closing words Mr 
Slyme fell forward with his head upon the tableand so declined 
into a sodden sleep. 
'Was there ever' cried Mr Tiggjoining the young men at the door
and shutting it carefully behind him'such an independent spirit as 
is possessed by that extraordinary creature? Was there ever such a 
Roman as our friend Chiv? Was there ever a man of such a purely 
classical turn of thoughtand of such a toga-like simplicity of 
nature? Was there ever a man with such a flow of eloquence? Might 
he notgents bothI askhave sat upon a tripod in the ancient 
timesand prophesied to a perfectly unlimited extentif previously 
supplied with gin-and-water at the public cost?' 
Mr Pinch was about to contest this latter position with his usual 
mildnesswhenobserving that his companion had already gone 
downstairshe prepared to follow him. 
'You are not goingMr Pinch?' said Tigg. 
'Thank you' answered Tom. 'Yes. Don't come down.' 
'Do you know that I should like one little word in private with you 
Mr Pinch?' said Tiggfollowing him. 'One minute of your company in 
the skittle-ground would very much relieve my mind. Might I beseech 
that favour?' 
'Ohcertainly' replied Tom'if you really wish it.' So he 
accompanied Mr Tigg to the retreat in question; on arriving at which 
place that gentleman took from his hat what seemed to be the fossil 
remains of an antediluvian pocket-handkerchiefand wiped his eyes 
therewith. 
'You have not beheld me this day' said Mr Tigg'in a favourable 
light.' 
'Don't mention that' said Tom'I beg.' 
'But you have NOT' cried Tigg. 'I must persist in that opinion. 
If you could have seen meMr Pinchat the head of my regiment on 
the coast of Africacharging in the form of a hollow squarewith 
the women and children and the regimental plate-chest in the centre
you would not have known me for the same man. You would have 
respected mesir.' 
Tom had certain ideas of his own upon the subject of glory; and 
consequently he was not quite so much excited by this picture as Mr 
Tigg could have desired. 
'But no matter!' said that gentleman. 'The school-boy writing home 
to his parents and describing the milk-and-watersaid "This is 
indeed weakness." I repeat that assertion in reference to myself at 
the present moment; and I ask your pardon. Siryou have seen my 
friend Slyme?' 
'No doubt' said Mr Pinch. 
'Siryou have been impressed by my friend Slyme?' 
'Not very pleasantlyI must say' answered Tomafter a little 
hesitation. 
'I am grieved but not surprised' cried Mr Tiggdetaining him with 
both hands'to hear that you have come to that conclusion; for it 
is my own. ButMr Pinchthough I am a rough and thoughtless man
I can honour Mind. I honour Mind in following my friend. To you of 
all menMr PinchI have a right to make appeal on Mind's behalf
when it has not the art to push its fortune in the world. And so
sir--not for myselfwho have no claim upon youbut for my crushed
my sensitive and independent friendwho has--I ask the loan of 
three half-crowns. I ask you for the loan of three half-crowns
distinctlyand without a blush. I ask italmost as a right. And 
when I add that they will be returned by postthis weekI feel 
that you will blame me for that sordid stipulation.' 
Mr Pinch took from his pocket an old-fashioned red-leather purse 
with a steel claspwhich had probably once belonged to his deceased 
grandmother. It held one half-sovereign and no more. All Tom's 
worldly wealth until next quarter-day. 
'Stay!' cried Mr Tiggwho had watched this proceeding keenly. 'I 
was just about to saythat for the convenience of posting you had 
better make it gold. Thank you. A general directionI supposeto 
Mr Pinch at Mr Pecksniff's--will that find you?' 
'That'll find me' said Tom. 'You had better put Esquire to Mr 
Pecksniff's nameif you please. Direct to meyou knowat Seth 
Pecksniff'sEsquire.' 
'At Seth Pecksniff'sEsquire' repeated Mr Tiggtaking an exact 
note of it with a stump of pencil. 'We said this weekI believe?' 
'Yes; or Monday will do' observed Tom. 
'NonoI beg your pardon. Monday will NOT do' said Mr Tigg. 'If 
we stipulated for this weekSaturday is the latest day. Did we 
stipulate for this week?' 
'Since you are so particular about it' said Tom'I think we did.' 
Mr Tigg added this condition to his memorandum; read the entry over 
to himself with a severe frown; and that the transaction might be 
the more correct and business-likeappended his initials to the 
whole. That donehe assured Mr Pinch that everything was now 
perfectly regular; andafter squeezing his hand with great fervour
departed. 
Tom entertained enough suspicion that Martin might possibly turn 
this interview into a jestto render him desirous to avoid the 
company of that young gentleman for the present. With this view he 
took a few turns up and down the skittle-groundand did not reenter 
the house until Mr Tigg and his friend had quitted itand the 
new pupil and Mark were watching their departure from one of the 
windows. 
'I was just a-sayingsirthat if one could live by it' observed 
Markpointing after their late guests'that would be the sort of 
service for me. Waiting on such individuals as them would be better 
than grave-diggingsir.' 
'And staying here would be better than eitherMark' replied Tom. 
'So take my adviceand continue to swim easily in smooth water.' 
'It's too late to take it nowsir' said Mark. 'I have broke it to 
hersir. I am off to-morrow morning.' 
'Off!' cried Mr Pinch'where to?' 
'I shall go up to Londonsir.' 
'What to be?' asked Mr Pinch. 
'Well! I don't know yetsir. Nothing turned up that day I opened 
my mind to youas was at all likely to suit me. All them trades I 
thought of was a deal too jolly; there was no credit at all to be 
got in any of 'em. I must look for a private serviceI suppose
sir. I might be brought out strongperhapsin a serious family
Mr Pinch.' 
'Perhaps you might come out rather too strong for a serious family's 
tasteMark.' 
'That's possiblesir. If I could get into a wicked familyI might 
do myself justice; but the difficulty is to make sure of one's 
groundbecause a young man can't very well advertise that he wants 
a placeand wages an't so much an object as a wicked sitivation; can 
hesir?' 
'Whyno' said Mr Pinch'I don't think he can.' 
'An envious family' pursued Markwith a thoughtful face; 'or a 
quarrelsome familyor a malicious familyor even a good out-andout 
mean familywould open a field of action as I might do 
something in. The man as would have suited me of all other men was 
that old gentleman as was took ill herefor he really was a trying 
customer. HowseverI must wait and see what turns upsir; and 
hope for the worst.' 
'You are determined to go then?' said Mr Pinch. 
'My box is gone alreadysirby the waggonand I'm going to walk 
on to-morrow morningand get a lift by the day coach when it 
overtakes me. So I wish you good-byeMr Pinch--and you toosir-and 
all good luck and happiness!' 
They both returned his greeting laughinglyand walked home arm-inarm. 
Mr Pinch imparting to his new friendas they wentsuch 
further particulars of Mark Tapley's whimsical restlessness as the 
reader is already acquainted with. 
In the meantime Markhaving a shrewd notion that his mistress was 
in very low spiritsand that he could not exactly answer for the 
consequences of any lengthened TETE-A-TETE in the barkept himself 
obstinately out of her way all the afternoon and evening. In this 
piece of generalship he was very much assisted by the great influx 
of company into the taproom; for the news of his intention having 
gone abroadthere was a perfect throng there all the eveningand 
much drinking of healths and clinking of mugs. At length the house 
was closed for the night; and there being now no help for itMark 
put the best face he could upon the matterand walked doggedly to 
the bar-door. 
'If I look at her' said Mark to himself'I'm done. I feel that 
I'm a-going fast.' 
'You have come at last' said Mrs Lupin. 
AyeMark said: There he was. 
'And you are determined to leave usMark?' cried Mrs Lupin. 
'Whyyes; I am' said Mark; keeping his eyes hard upon the floor. 
'I thought' pursued the landladywith a most engaging hesitation
'that you had been--fond--of the Dragon?' 
'So I am' said Mark. 
'Then' pursued the hostess--and it really was not an unnatural 
inquiry--'why do you desert it?' 
But as he gave no manner of answer to this question; not even on its 
being repeated; Mrs Lupin put his money into his handand asked 
him--not unkindlyquite the contrary--what he would take? 
It is proverbial that there are certain things which flesh and blood 
cannot bear. Such a question as thispropounded in such a manner
at such a timeand by such a personproved (at leastas far as
Mark's flesh and blood were concerned) to be one of them. He looked 
up in spite of himself directly; and having once looked upthere 
was no looking down again; for of all the tightplumpbuxom
bright-eyeddimple-faced landladies that ever shone on earththere 
stood before him thenbodily in that barthe very pink and 
pineapple. 
'WhyI tell you what' said Markthrowing off all his constraint 
in an instant and seizing the hostess round the waist--at which she 
was not at all alarmedfor she knew what a good young man he was-'
if I took what I liked mostI should take you. If I only thought 
what was best for meI should take you. If I took what nineteen 
young fellows in twenty would be glad to takeand would take at any 
priceI should take you. YesI should' cried Mr Tapleyshaking 
his head expressively enoughand looking (in a momentary state of 
forgetfulness) rather hard at the hostess's ripe lips. 'And no man 
wouldn't wonder if I did!' 
Mrs Lupin said he amazed her. She was astonished how he could say 
such things. She had never thought it of him. 
'WhyI never thought if of myself till now!' said Markraising his 
eyebrows with a look of the merriest possible surprise. 'I always 
expected we should partand never have no explanation; I meant to 
do it when I come in here just now; but there's something about you
as makes a man sensible. Then let us have a word or two together; 
letting it be understood beforehand' he added this in a grave tone
to prevent the possibility of any mistake'that I'm not a-going to 
make no loveyou know.' 
There was for just one second a shadethough not by any means a 
dark oneon the landlady's open brow. But it passed off instantly
in a laugh that came from her very heart. 
'Ohvery good!' she said; 'if there is to be no love-makingyou 
had better take your arm away.' 
'Lordwhy should I!' cried Mark. 'It's quite innocent.' 
'Of course it's innocent' returned the hostess'or I shouldn't 
allow it.' 
'Very well!' said Mark. 'Then let it be.' 
There was so much reason in this that the landlady laughed again
suffered it to remainand bade him say what he had to sayand be 
quick about it. But he was an impudent fellowshe added. 
'Ha ha! I almost think I am!' cried Mark'though I never thought so 
before. WhyI can say anything to-night!' 
'Say what you're going to say if you pleaseand be quick' returned 
the landlady'for I want to get to bed.' 
'Whythenmy dear good soul' said Mark'and a kinder woman than 
you are never drawed breath--let me see the man as says she did!-what 
would be the likely consequence of us two being--' 
'Oh nonsense!' cried Mrs Lupin. 'Don't talk about that any more.' 
'Nonobut it an't nonsense' said Mark; 'and I wish you'd attend. 
What would be the likely consequence of us two being married? If I 
can't be content and comfortable in this here lively Dragon nowis 
it to be looked for as I should be then? By no means. Very good. 
Then youeven with your good humourwould be always on the fret 
and worritalways uncomfortable in your own mindalways a-thinking 
as you was getting too old for my tastealways a-picturing me to 
yourself as being chained up to the Dragon doorand wanting to 
break away. I don't know that it would be so' said Mark'but I 
don't know that it mightn't be. I am a roving sort of chapI know. 
I'm fond of change. I'm always a-thinking that with my good health 
and spirits it would be more creditable in me to be jolly where 
there's things a-going on to make one dismal. It may be a mistake 
of mine you seebut nothing short of trying how it acts will set it 
right. Then an't it best that I should go; particular when your 
free way has helped me out to say all thisand we can part as good 
friends as we have ever been since first I entered this here noble 
Dragonwhich' said Mr Tapley in conclusion'has my good word and 
my good wish to the day of my death!' 
The hostess sat quite silent for a little timebut she very soon 
put both her hands in Mark's and shook them heartily. 
'For you are a good man' she said; looking into his face with a 
smilewhich was rather serious for her. 'And I do believe have 
been a better friend to me to-night than ever I have had in all my 
life.' 
'Oh! as to thatyou know' said Mark'that's nonsense. But love 
my heart alive!' he addedlooking at her in a sort of rapture'if 
you ARE that way disposedwhat a lot of suitable husbands there is 
as you may drive distracted!' 
She laughed again at this compliment; andonce more shaking him by 
both handsand bidding himif he should ever want a friendto 
remember herturned gayly from the little bar and up the Dragon 
staircase. 
'Humming a tune as she goes' said Marklistening'in case I 
should think she's at all put outand should be made down-hearted. 
Comehere's some credit in being jollyat last!' 
With that piece of comfortvery ruefully utteredhe wentin 
anything but a jolly mannerto bed. 
He rose early next morningand was a-foot soon after sunrise. But 
it was of no use; the whole place was up to see Mark Tapley off; the 
boysthe dogsthe childrenthe old menthe busy people and the 
idlers; there they wereall calling out 'Good-b'yeMark' after 
their own mannerand all sorry he was going. Somehow he had a kind 
of sense that his old mistress was peeping from her chamber-window
but he couldn't make up his mind to look back. 
'Good-b'ye onegood-b'ye all!' cried Markwaving his hat on the 
top of his walking-stickas he strode at a quick pace up the little 
street. 'Hearty chaps them wheelwrights--hurrah! Here's the 
butcher's dog a-coming out of the garden--downold fellow! And Mr 
Pinch a-going to his organ--good-b'yesir! And the terrier-bitch 
from over the way--hiethenlass! And children enough to hand down 
human natur to the latest posterity--good-b'yeboys and girls! 
There's some credit in it now. I'm a-coming out strong at last. 
These are the circumstances that would try a ordinary mind; but I'm 
uncommon jolly. Not quite as jolly as I could wish to bebut very 
near. Good-b'ye! good-b'ye!' 
CHAPTER EIGHT 
ACCOMPANIES MR PECKSNIFF AND HIS CHARMING DAUGHTERS TO THE CITY OF 
LONDON; AND RELATES WHAT FELL OUT UPON THEIR WAY THITHER 
When Mr Pecksniff and the two young ladies got into the heavy 
coach at the end of the lanethey found it emptywhich was a great 
comfort; particularly as the outside was quite full and the 
passengers looked very frosty. For as Mr Pecksniff justly observed 
--when he and his daughters had burrowed their feet deep in the 
strawwrapped themselves to the chinand pulled up both windows-it 
is always satisfactory to feelin keen weatherthat many other 
people are not as warm as you are. And thishe saidwas quite 
naturaland a very beautiful arrangement; not confined to coaches
but extending itself into many social ramifications. 'For' (he 
observed)'if every one were warm and well-fedwe should lose the 
satisfaction of admiring the fortitude with which certain conditions 
of men bear cold and hunger. And if we were no better off than 
anybody elsewhat would become of our sense of gratitude; which' 
said Mr Pecksniff with tears in his eyesas he shook his fist at a 
beggar who wanted to get up behind'is one of the holiest feelings 
of our common nature.' 
His children heard with becoming reverence these moral precepts from 
the lips of their fatherand signified their acquiescence in the 
sameby smiles. That he might the better feed and cherish that 
sacred flame of gratitude in his breastMr Pecksniff remarked that 
he would trouble his eldest daughtereven in this early stage of 
their journeyfor the brandy-bottle. And from the narrow neck of 
that stone vessel he imbibed a copious refreshment. 
'What are we?' said Mr Pecksniff'but coaches? Some of us are slow 
coaches'-
'GoodnessPa!' cried Charity. 
'Some of usI say' resumed her parent with increased emphasis
'are slow coaches; some of us are fast coaches. Our passions are 
the horses; and rampant animals too--!' 
'ReallyPa' cried both the daughters at once. 'How very 
unpleasant.' 
'And rampant animals too' repeated Mr Pecksniff with so much 
determinationthat he may be said to have exhibitedat the moment 
a sort of moral rampancy himself;'--and Virtue is the drag. We start 
from The Mother's Armsand we run to The Dust Shovel.' 
When he had said thisMr Pecksniffbeing exhaustedtook some 
further refreshment. When he had done thathe corked the bottle 
tightwith the air of a man who had effectually corked the subject 
also; and went to sleep for three stages. 
The tendency of mankind when it falls asleep in coachesis to wake 
up cross; to find its legs in its way; and its corns an aggravation. 
Mr Pecksniff not being exempt from the common lot of humanity found 
himselfat the end of his napso decidedly the victim of these 
infirmitiesthat he had an irresistible inclination to visit them 
upon his daughters; which he had already begun to do in the shape of 
divers random kicksand other unexpected motions of his shoeswhen 
the coach stoppedand after a short delay the door was opened. 
'Now mind' said a thin sharp voice in the dark. 'I and my son go 
insidebecause the roof is fullbut you agree only to charge us 
outside prices. It's quite understood that we won't pay more. Is 
it?' 
'All rightsir' replied the guard. 
'Is there anybody inside now?' inquired the voice. 
'Three passengers' returned the guard. 
'Then I ask the three passengers to witness this bargainif they 
will be so good' said the voice. 'My boyI think we may safely 
get in.' 
In pursuance of which opiniontwo people took their seats in the 
vehiclewhich was solemnly licensed by Act of Parliament to carry 
any six persons who could be got in at the door. 
'That was lucky!' whispered the old manwhen they moved on again. 
'And a great stroke of policy in you to observe it. Hehehe! We 
couldn't have gone outside. I should have died of the rheumatism!' 
Whether it occurred to the dutiful son that he had in some degree 
over-reached himself by contributing to the prolongation of his 
father's days; or whether the cold had effected his temper; is 
doubtful. But he gave his father such a nudge in replythat that 
good old gentleman was taken with a cough which lasted for full five 
minutes without intermissionand goaded Mr Pecksniff to that pitch 
of irritationthat he said at last--and very suddenly: 
'There is no room! There is really no room in this coach for any 
gentleman with a cold in his head!' 
'Mine' said the old manafter a moment's pause'is upon my chest
Pecksniff.' 
The voice and mannertogethernow that he spoke out; the composure 
of the speaker; the presence of his son; and his knowledge of Mr 
Pecksniff; afforded a clue to his identity which it was impossible 
to mistake. 
'Hem! I thought' said Mr Pecksniffreturning to his usual 
mildness'that I addressed a stranger. I find that I address a 
relativeMr Anthony Chuzzlewit and his son Mr Jonas--for theymy 
dear childrenare our travelling companions--will excuse me for an 
apparently harsh remark. It is not MY desire to wound the feelings 
of any person with whom I am connected in family bonds. I may be a 
Hypocrite' said Mr Pecksniffcuttingly; 'but I am not a Brute.' 
'Poohpooh!' said the old man. 'What signifies that word
Pecksniff? Hypocrite! whywe are all hypocrites. We were all 
hypocrites t'other day. I am sure I felt that to be agreed upon 
among usor I shouldn't have called you one. We should not have 
been there at allif we had not been hypocrites. The only 
difference between you and the rest was--shall I tell you the 
difference between you and the rest nowPecksniff?' 
'If you pleasemy good sir; if you please.' 
'Whythe annoying quality in YOUis' said the old man'that you 
never have a confederate or partner in YOUR juggling; you would 
deceive everybodyeven those who practise the same art; and have a 
way with youas if you--hehehe!--as if you really believed 
yourself. I'd lay a handsome wager now' said the old man'if I 
laid wagerswhich I don't and never didthat you keep up 
appearances by a tacit understandingeven before your own daughters 
here. Now Iwhen I have a business scheme in handtell Jonas what 
it isand we discuss it openly. You're not offendedPecksniff?' 
'Offendedmy good sir!' cried that gentlemanas if he had received 
the highest compliments that language could convey. 
'Are you travelling to LondonMr Pecksniff?' asked the son. 
'YesMr Jonaswe are travelling to London. We shall have the 
pleasure of your company all the wayI trust?' 
'Oh! ecodyou had better ask father that' said Jonas. 'I am not 
a-going to commit myself.' 
Mr Pecksniff wasas a matter of coursegreatly entertained by this 
retort. His mirth having subsidedMr Jonas gave him to understand 
that himself and parent were in fact travelling to their home in the 
metropolis; and thatsince the memorable day of the great family 
gatheringthey had been tarrying in that part of the country
watching the sale of certain eligible investmentswhich they had 
had in their copartnership eye when they came down; for it was their 
customMr Jonas saidwhenever such a thing was practicableto 
kill two birds with one stoneand never to throw away spratsbut 
as bait for whales. When he had communicated to Mr Pecksniff these 
pithy scraps of intelligencehe said'That if it was all the same 
to himhe would turn him over to fatherand have a chat with the 
gals;' and in furtherance of this polite schemehe vacated his seat 
adjoining that gentlemanand established himself in the opposite 
cornernext to the fair Miss Mercy. 
The education of Mr Jonas had been conducted from his cradle on the 
strictest principles of the main chance. The very first word he 
learnt to spell was 'gain' and the second (when he got into two 
syllables)'money.' But for two resultswhich were not clearly 
foreseen perhaps by his watchful parent in the beginninghis 
training may be said to have been unexceptionable. One of these 
flaws wasthat having been long taught by his father to over-reach 
everybodyhe had imperceptibly acquired a love of over-reaching that 
venerable monitor himself. The otherthat from his early habits of 
considering everything as a question of propertyhe had gradually 
come to lookwith impatienceon his parent as a certain amount of 
personal estatewhich had no right whatever to be going at large
but ought to be secured in that particular description of iron safe 
which is commonly called a coffinand banked in the grave. 
'Wellcousin!' said Mr Jonas--'Because we ARE cousinsyou knowa 
few times removed--so you're going to London?' 
Miss Mercy replied in the affirmativepinching her sister's arm at 
the same timeand giggling excessively. 
'Lots of beaux in Londoncousin!' said Mr Jonasslightly advancing 
his elbow. 
'Indeedsir!' cried the young lady. 'They won't hurt ussirI 
dare say.' And having given him this answer with great demureness 
she was so overcome by her own humourthat she was fain to stifle 
her merriment in her sister's shawl. 
'Merry' cried that more prudent damsel'really I am ashamed of 
you. How can you go on so? You wild thing!' At which Miss Merry 
only laughed the moreof course. 
'I saw a wildness in her eyet'other day' said Mr Jonas
addressing Charity. 'But you're the one to sit solemn! I say--You 
were regularly primcousin!' 
Oh! The old-fashioned fright!' cried Merry, in a whisper. 'Cherry 
my dear, upon my word you must sit next him. I shall die outright 
if he talks to me any more; I shall, positively!' To prevent which 
fatal consequence, the buoyant creature skipped out of her seat as 
she spoke, and squeezed her sister into the place from which she had 
risen. 
'Don't mind crowding me,' cried Mr Jonas. 'I like to be crowded by 
gals. Come a little closer, cousin.' 
'No, thank you, sir,' said Charity. 
'There's that other one a-laughing again,' said Mr Jonas; 'she's alaughing 
at my father, I shouldn't wonder. If he puts on that old 
flannel nightcap of his, I don't know what she'll do! Is that my 
father a-snoring, Pecksniff?' 
'Yes, Mr Jonas.' 
'Tread upon his foot, will you be so good?' said the young 
gentleman. 'The foot next you's the gouty one.' 
Mr Pecksniff hesitating to perform this friendly office, Mr Jonas 
did it himself; at the same time crying: 
'Come, wake up, father, or you'll be having the nightmare, and 
screeching out, I know.--Do you ever have the nightmare, cousin?' he 
asked his neighbour, with characteristic gallantry, as he dropped 
his voice again. 
'Sometimes,' answered Charity. 'Not often.' 
'The other one,' said Mr Jonas, after a pause. 'Does SHE ever have 
the nightmare?' 
'I don't know,' replied Charity. 'You had better ask her.' 
'She laughs so,' said Jonas; 'there's no talking to her. Only hark 
how she's a-going on now! You're the sensible one, cousin!' 
'Tut, tut!' cried Charity. 
'Oh! But you are! You know you are!' 
'Mercy is a little giddy,' said Miss Charity. But she'll sober down 
in time.' 
'It'll be a very long time, then, if she does at all,' rejoined her 
cousin. 'Take a little more room.' 
'I am afraid of crowding you,' said Charity. But she took it 
notwithstanding; and after one or two remarks on the extreme 
heaviness of the coach, and the number of places it stopped at, they 
fell into a silence which remained unbroken by any member of the 
party until supper-time. 
Although Mr Jonas conducted Charity to the hotel and sat himself 
beside her at the board, it was pretty clear that he had an eye to 
'the other one' also, for he often glanced across at Mercy, and 
seemed to draw comparisons between the personal appearance of the 
two, which were not unfavourable to the superior plumpness of the 
younger sister. He allowed himself no great leisure for this kind 
of observation, however, being busily engaged with the supper, 
which, as he whispered in his fair companion's ear, was a contract 
business, and therefore the more she ate, the better the bargain 
was. His father and Mr Pecksniff, probably acting on the same wise 
principle, demolished everything that came within their reach, and 
by that means acquired a greasy expression of countenance, 
indicating contentment, if not repletion, which it was very pleasant 
to contemplate. 
When they could eat no more, Mr Pecksniff and Mr Jonas subscribed 
for two sixpenny-worths of hot brandy-and-water, which the latter 
gentleman considered a more politic order than one shillingsworth; 
there being a chance of their getting more spirit out of the 
innkeeper under this arrangement than if it were all in one glass. 
Having swallowed his share of the enlivening fluid, Mr Pecksniff, 
under pretence of going to see if the coach were ready, went 
secretly to the bar, and had his own little bottle filled, in order 
that he might refresh himself at leisure in the dark coach without 
being observed. 
These arrangements concluded, and the coach being ready, they got 
into their old places and jogged on again. But before he composed 
himself for a nap, Mr Pecksniff delivered a kind of grace after 
meat, in these words: 
'The process of digestion, as I have been informed by anatomical 
friends, is one of the most wonderful works of nature. I do not 
know how it may be with others, but it is a great satisfaction to me 
to know, when regaling on my humble fare, that I am putting in 
motion the most beautiful machinery with which we have any 
acquaintance. I really feel at such times as if I was doing a 
public service. When I have wound myself up, if I may employ such a 
term,' said Mr Pecksniff with exquisite tenderness, 'and know that I 
am Going, I feel that in the lesson afforded by the works within me, 
I am a Benefactor to my Kind!' 
As nothing could be added to this, nothing was said; and Mr 
Pecksniff, exulting, it may be presumed, in his moral utility, went 
to sleep again. 
The rest of the night wore away in the usual manner. Mr Pecksniff 
and Old Anthony kept tumbling against each other and waking up much 
terrified, or crushed their heads in opposite corners of the coach 
and strangely tattooed the surface of their faces--Heaven knows how 
--in their sleep. The coach stopped and went on, and went on and 
stopped, times out of number. Passengers got up and passengers got 
down, and fresh horses came and went and came again, with scarcely 
any interval between each team as it seemed to those who were 
dozing, and with a gap of a whole night between every one as it 
seemed to those who were broad awake. At length they began to jolt 
and rumble over horribly uneven stones, and Mr Pecksniff looking out 
of window said it was to-morrow morning, and they were there. 
Very soon afterwards the coach stopped at the office in the city; 
and the street in which it was situated was already in a bustle, 
that fully bore out Mr Pecksniff's words about its being morning, 
though for any signs of day yet appearing in the sky it might have 
been midnight. There was a dense fog too; as if it were a city in 
the clouds, which they had been travelling to all night up a magic 
beanstalk; and there was a thick crust upon the pavement like 
oilcake; which, one of the outsides (mad, no doubt) said to another 
(his keeper, of course), was Snow. 
Taking a confused leave of Anthony and his son, and leaving the 
luggage of himself and daughters at the office to be called for 
afterwards, Mr Pecksniff, with one of the young ladies under each 
arm, dived across the street, and then across other streets, and so 
up the queerest courts, and down the strangest alleys and under the 
blindest archways, in a kind of frenzy; now skipping over a kennel, 
now running for his life from a coach and horses; now thinking he 
had lost his way, now thinking he had found it; now in a state of 
the highest confidence, now despondent to the last degree, but 
always in a great perspiration and flurry; until at length they 
stopped in a kind of paved yard near the Monument. That is to say, 
Mr Pecksniff told them so; for as to anything they could see of the 
Monument, or anything else but the buildings close at hand, they 
might as well have been playing blindman's buff at Salisbury. 
Mr Pecksniff looked about him for a moment, and then knocked at the 
door of a very dingy edifice, even among the choice collection of 
dingy edifices at hand; on the front of which was a little oval 
board like a tea-tray, with this inscription--'Commercial Boarding-
House: M. Todgers.' 
It seemed that M. Todgers was not up yet, for Mr Pecksniff knocked 
twice and rang thrice, without making any impression on anything but 
a dog over the way. At last a chain and some bolts were withdrawn 
with a rusty noise, as if the weather had made the very fastenings 
hoarse, and a small boy with a large red head, and no nose to speak 
of, and a very dirty Wellington boot on his left arm, appeared; who 
(being surprised) rubbed the nose just mentioned with the back of a 
shoe-brush, and said nothing. 
'Still a-bed my man?' asked Mr Pecksniff. 
'Still a-bed!' replied the boy. 'I wish they wos still a-bed. 
They're very noisy a-bed; all calling for their boots at once. I 
thought you was the Paper, and wondered why you didn't shove 
yourself through the grating as usual. What do you want?' 
Considering his years, which were tender, the youth may be said to 
have preferred this question sternly, and in something of a defiant 
manner. But Mr Pecksniff, without taking umbrage at his bearing put 
a card in his hand, and bade him take that upstairs, and show them 
in the meanwhile into a room where there was a fire. 
'Or if there's one in the eating parlour,' said Mr Pecksniff, 'I can 
find it myself.' So he led his daughters, without waiting for any 
further introduction, into a room on the ground-floor, where a 
table-cloth (rather a tight and scanty fit in reference to the table 
it covered) was already spread for breakfast; displaying a mighty 
dish of pink boiled beef; an instance of that particular style of 
loaf which is known to housekeepers as a slack-baked, crummy 
quartern; a liberal provision of cups and saucers; and the usual 
appendages. 
Inside the fender were some half-dozen pairs of shoes and boots, of 
various sizes, just cleaned and turned with the soles upwards to 
dry; and a pair of short black gaiters, on one of which was chalked 
--in sport, it would appear, by some gentleman who had slipped down 
for the purpose, pending his toilet, and gone up again--'Jinkins's 
Particular,' while the other exhibited a sketch in profile, claiming 
to be the portrait of Jinkins himself. 
M. Todgers's Commercial Boarding-House was a house of that sort 
which is likely to be dark at any time; but that morning it was 
especially dark. There was an odd smell in the passage, as if the 
concentrated essence of all the dinners that had been cooked in the 
kitchen since the house was built, lingered at the top of the 
kitchen stairs to that hour, and like the Black Friar in Don Juan, 
'wouldn't be driven away.' In particular, there was a sensation of 
cabbage; as if all the greens that had ever been boiled there, were 
evergreens, and flourished in immortal strength. The parlour was 
wainscoted, and communicated to strangers a magnetic and instinctive 
consciousness of rats and mice. The staircase was very gloomy and 
very broad, with balustrades so thick and heavy that they would have 
served for a bridge. In a sombre corner on the first landing, stood 
a gruff old giant of a clock, with a preposterous coronet of three 
brass balls on his head; whom few had ever seen--none ever looked in 
the face--and who seemed to continue his heavy tick for no other 
reason than to warn heedless people from running into him 
accidentally. It had not been papered or painted, hadn't Todgers's, 
within the memory of man. It was very black, begrimed, and mouldy. 
And, at the top of the staircase, was an old, disjointed, rickety, 
ill-favoured skylight, patched and mended in all kinds of ways, 
which looked distrustfully down at everything that passed below, and 
covered Todgers's up as if it were a sort of human cucumber-frame, 
and only people of a peculiar growth were reared there. 
Mr Pecksniff and his fair daughters had not stood warming themselves 
at the fire ten minutes, when the sound of feet was heard upon the 
stairs, and the presiding deity of the establishment came hurrying 
in. 
M. Todgers was a lady, rather a bony and hard-featured lady, with a 
row of curls in front of her head, shaped like little barrels of 
beer; and on the top of it something made of net--you couldn't call 
it a cap exactly--which looked like a black cobweb. She had a 
little basket on her arm, and in it a bunch of keys that jingled as 
she came. In her other hand she bore a flaming tallow candle, 
which, after surveying Mr Pecksniff for one instant by its light, 
she put down upon the table, to the end that she might receive him 
with the greater cordiality. 
'Mr Pecksniff!' cried Mrs Todgers. 'Welcome to London! Who would 
have thought of such a visit as this, after so--dear, dear!--so many 
years! How do you DO, Mr Pecksniff?' 
'As well as ever; and as glad to see you, as ever;' Mr Pecksniff 
made response. 'Why, you are younger than you used to be!' 
'YOU are, I am sure!' said Mrs Todgers. 'You're not a bit changed.' 
'What do you say to this?' cried Mr Pecksniff, stretching out his 
hand towards the young ladies. 'Does this make me no older?' 
'Not your daughters!' exclaimed the lady, raising her hands and 
clasping them. 'Oh, no, Mr Pecksniff! Your second, and her 
bridesmaid!' 
Mr Pecksniff smiled complacently; shook his head; and said, 'My 
daughters, Mrs Todgers. Merely my daughters.' 
'Ah!' sighed the good lady, 'I must believe you, for now I look at 
'em I think I should have known 'em anywhere. My dear Miss 
Pecksniffs, how happy your Pa has made me!' 
She hugged them both; and being by this time overpowered by her 
feelings or the inclemency of the morning, jerked a little pocket 
handkerchief out of the little basket, and applied the same to her 
face. 
'Now, my good madam,' said Mr Pecksniff, 'I know the rules of your 
establishment, and that you only receive gentlemen boarders. But it 
occurred to me, when I left home, that perhaps you would give my 
daughters house room, and make an exception in their favour.' 
'Perhaps?' cried Mrs Todgers ecstatically. 'Perhaps?' 
'I may say then, that I was sure you would,' said Mr Pecksniff. 'I 
know that you have a little room of your own, and that they can be 
comfortable there, without appearing at the general table.' 
'Dear girls!' said Mrs Todgers. 'I must take that liberty once 
more.' 
Mrs Todgers meant by this that she must embrace them once more, 
which she accordingly did with great ardour. But the truth was that 
the house being full with the exception of one bed, which would now 
be occupied by Mr Pecksniff, she wanted time for consideration; and 
so much time too (for it was a knotty point how to dispose of them), 
that even when this second embrace was over, she stood for some 
moments gazing at the sisters, with affection beaming in one eye, 
and calculation shining out of the other. 
'I think I know how to arrange it,' said Mrs Todgers, at length. 'A 
sofa bedstead in the little third room which opens from my own 
parlour.--Oh, you dear girls!' 
Thereupon she embraced them once more, observing that she could not 
decide which was most like their poor mother (which was highly 
probable, seeing that she had never beheld that lady), but that she 
rather thought the youngest was; and then she said that as the 
gentlemen would be down directly, and the ladies were fatigued with 
travelling, would they step into her room at once? 
It was on the same floor; being, in fact, the back parlour; and had, 
as Mrs Todgers said, the great advantage (in London) of not being 
overlooked; as they would see when the fog cleared off. Nor was 
this a vainglorious boast, for it commanded at a perspective of two 
feet, a brown wall with a black cistern on the top. The sleeping 
apartment designed for the young ladies was approached from this 
chamber by a mightily convenient little door, which would only open 
when fallen against by a strong person. It commanded from a similar 
point of sight another angle of the wall, and another side of the 
cistern. 'Not the damp side,' said Mrs Todgers. 'THAT is Mr 
Jinkins's.' 
In the first of these sanctuaries a fire was speedily kindled by the 
youthful porter, who, whistling at his work in the absence of Mrs 
Todgers (not to mention his sketching figures on his corduroys with 
burnt firewood), and being afterwards taken by that lady in the 
fact, was dismissed with a box on his ears. Having prepared 
breakfast for the young ladies with her own hands, she withdrew to 
preside in the other room; where the joke at Mr Jinkins's expense 
seemed to be proceeding rather noisily. 
'I won't ask you yet, my dears,' said Mr Pecksniff, looking in at 
the door, 'how you like London. Shall I?' 
'We haven't seen much of it, Pa!' cried Merry. 
'Nothing, I hope,' said Cherry. (Both very miserably.) 
'Indeed,' said Mr Pecksniff, 'that's true. We have our pleasure, 
and our business too, before us. All in good time. All in good 
time!' 
Whether Mr Pecksniff's business in London was as strictly 
professional as he had given his new pupil to understand, we shall 
see, to adopt that worthy man's phraseology, 'all in good time.' 
CHAPTER NINE 
TOWN AND TODGER'S 
Surely there never was, in any other borough, city, or hamlet in the 
world, such a singular sort of a place as Todgers's. And surely 
London, to judge from that part of it which hemmed Todgers's round 
and hustled it, and crushed it, and stuck its brick-and-mortar 
elbows into it, and kept the air from it, and stood perpetually 
between it and the light, was worthy of Todgers's, and qualified to 
be on terms of close relationship and alliance with hundreds and 
thousands of the odd family to which Todgers's belonged. 
You couldn't walk about Todgers's neighbourhood, as you could in any 
other neighbourhood. You groped your way for an hour through lanes 
and byways, and court-yards, and passages; and you never once 
emerged upon anything that might be reasonably called a street. A 
kind of resigned distraction came over the stranger as he trod those 
devious mazes, and, giving himself up for lost, went in and out and 
round about and quietly turned back again when he came to a dead 
wall or was stopped by an iron railing, and felt that the means of 
escape might possibly present themselves in their own good time, but 
that to anticipate them was hopeless. Instances were known of 
people who, being asked to dine at Todgers's, had travelled round 
and round for a weary time, with its very chimney-pots in view; and 
finding it, at last, impossible of attainment, had gone home again 
with a gentle melancholy on their spirits, tranquil and 
uncomplaining. Nobody had ever found Todgers's on a verbal 
direction, though given within a few minutes' walk of it. Cautious 
emigrants from Scotland or the North of England had been known to 
reach it safely, by impressing a charity-boy, town-bred, and 
bringing him along with them; or by clinging tenaciously to the 
postman; but these were rare exceptions, and only went to prove the 
rule that Todgers's was in a labyrinth, whereof the mystery was 
known but to a chosen few. 
Several fruit-brokers had their marts near Todgers's; and one of the 
first impressions wrought upon the stranger's senses was of oranges 
--of damaged oranges--with blue and green bruises on them, festering 
in boxes, or mouldering away in cellars. All day long, a stream of 
porters from the wharves beside the river, each bearing on his back 
a bursting chest of oranges, poured slowly through the narrow 
passages; while underneath the archway by the public-house, the 
knots of those who rested and regaled within, were piled from 
morning until night. Strange solitary pumps were found near 
Todgers's hiding themselves for the most part in blind alleys, and 
keeping company with fire-ladders. There were churches also by 
dozens, with many a ghostly little churchyard, all overgrown with 
such straggling vegetation as springs up spontaneously from damp, 
and graves, and rubbish. In some of these dingy resting-places 
which bore much the same analogy to green churchyards, as the pots 
of earth for mignonette and wall-flower in the windows overlooking 
them did to rustic gardens, there were trees; tall trees; still 
putting forth their leaves in each succeeding year, with such a 
languishing remembrance of their kind (so one might fancy, looking 
on their sickly boughs) as birds in cages have of theirs. Here, 
paralysed old watchmen guarded the bodies of the dead at night, year 
after year, until at last they joined that solemn brotherhood; and, 
saving that they slept below the ground a sounder sleep than even 
they had ever known above it, and were shut up in another kind of 
box, their condition can hardly be said to have undergone any 
material change when they, in turn, were watched themselves. 
Among the narrow thoroughfares at hand, there lingered, here and 
there, an ancient doorway of carved oak, from which, of old, the 
sounds of revelry and feasting often came; but now these mansions, 
only used for storehouses, were dark and dull, and, being filled 
with wool, and cotton, and the like--such heavy merchandise as 
stifles sound and stops the throat of echo--had an air of palpable 
deadness about them which, added to their silence and desertion, 
made them very grim. In like manner, there were gloomy courtyards 
in these parts, into which few but belated wayfarers ever strayed, 
and where vast bags and packs of goods, upward or downward bound, 
were for ever dangling between heaven and earth from lofty cranes 
There were more trucks near Todgers's than you would suppose whole 
city could ever need; not active trucks, but a vagabond race, for 
ever lounging in the narrow lanes before their masters' doors and 
stopping up the pass; so that when a stray hackney-coach or 
lumbering waggon came that way, they were the cause of such an 
uproar as enlivened the whole neighbourhood, and made the bells in 
the next churchtower vibrate again. In the throats and maws of dark 
no-thoroughfares near Todgers's, individual wine-merchants and 
wholesale dealers in grocery-ware had perfect little towns of their 
own; and, deep among the foundations of these buildings, the ground 
was undermined and burrowed out into stables, where cart-horses, 
troubled by rats, might be heard on a quiet Sunday rattling their 
halters, as disturbed spirits in tales of haunted houses are said to 
clank their chains. 
To tell of half the queer old taverns that had a drowsy and secret 
existence near Todgers's, would fill a goodly book; while a second 
volume no less capacious might be devoted to an account of the 
quaint old guests who frequented their dimly lighted parlours. 
These were, in general, ancient inhabitants of that region; born, 
and bred there from boyhood. who had long since become wheezy and 
asthmatical, and short of breath, except in the article of storytelling; 
in which respect they were still marvellously long-winded. 
These gentry were much opposed to steam and all new-fangled ways, 
and held ballooning to be sinful, and deplored the degeneracy of the 
times; which that particular member of each little club who kept the 
keys of the nearest church, professionally, always attributed to the 
prevalence of dissent and irreligion; though the major part of the 
company inclined to the belief that virtue went out with hairpowder, 
and that Old England's greatness had decayed amain with 
barbers. 
As to Todgers's itself--speaking of it only as a house in that 
neighbourhood, and making no reference to its merits as a commercial 
boarding establishment--it was worthy to stand where it did. There 
was one staircase-window in it, at the side of the house, on the 
ground floor; which tradition said had not been opened for a hundred 
years at least, and which, abutting on an always dirty lane, was so 
begrimed and coated with a century's mud, that no one pane of glass 
could possibly fall out, though all were cracked and broken twenty 
times. But the grand mystery of Todgers's was the cellarage, 
approachable only by a little back door and a rusty grating; which 
cellarage within the memory of man had had no connection with the 
house, but had always been the freehold property of somebody else, 
and was reported to be full of wealth; though in what shape--whether 
in silver, brass, or gold, or butts of wine, or casks of gun-powder-was 
matter of profound uncertainty and supreme indifference to 
Todgers's and all its inmates. 
The top of the house was worthy of notice. There was a sort of 
terrace on the roof, with posts and fragments of rotten lines, once 
intended to dry clothes upon; and there were two or three tea-chests 
out there, full of earth, with forgotten plants in them, like old 
walking-sticks. Whoever climbed to this observatory, was stunned at 
first from having knocked his head against the little door in coming 
out; and after that, was for the moment choked from having looked 
perforce, straight down the kitchen chimney; but these two stages 
over, there were things to gaze at from the top of Todgers's, well 
worth your seeing too. For first and foremost, if the day were 
bright, you observed upon the house-tops, stretching far away, a 
long dark path; the shadow of the Monument; and turning round, the 
tall original was close beside you, with every hair erect upon his 
golden head, as if the doings of the city frightened him. Then 
there were steeples, towers, belfries, shining vanes, and masts of 
ships; a very forest. Gables, housetops, garret-windows, wilderness 
upon wilderness. Smoke and noise enough for all the world at once. 
After the first glance, there were slight features in the midst of 
this crowd of objects, which sprung out from the mass without any 
reason, as it were, and took hold of the attention whether the 
spectator would or no. Thus, the revolving chimney-pots on one 
great stack of buildings seemed to be turning gravely to each other 
every now and then, and whispering the result of their separate 
observation of what was going on below. Others, of a crook-backed 
shape, appeared to be maliciously holding themselves askew, that 
they might shut the prospect out and baffle Todgers's. The man who 
was mending a pen at an upper window over the way, became of 
paramount importance in the scene, and made a blank in it, 
ridiculously disproportionate in its extent, when he retired. The 
gambols of a piece of cloth upon the dyer's pole had far more 
interest for the moment than all the changing motion of the crowd. 
Yet even while the looker-on felt angry with himself for this, and 
wondered how it was, the tumult swelled into a roar; the hosts of 
objects seemed to thicken and expand a hundredfold, and after gazing 
round him, quite scared, he turned into Todgers's again, much more 
rapidly than he came out; and ten to one he told M. Todgers 
afterwards that if he hadn't done so, he would certainly have come 
into the street by the shortest cut; that is to say, head-foremost. 
So said the two Miss Pecksniffs, when they retired with Mrs Todgers 
from this place of espial, leaving the youthful porter to close the 
door and follow them downstairs; who, being of a playful temperament, 
and contemplating with a delight peculiar to his sex and time of 
life, any chance of dashing himself into small fragments, lingered 
behind to walk upon the parapet. 
It being the second day of their stay in London, the Miss Pecksniffs 
and Mrs Todgers were by this time highly confidential, insomuch that 
the last-named lady had already communicated the particulars of 
three early disappointments of a tender nature; and had furthermore 
possessed her young friends with a general summary of the life, 
conduct, and character of Mr Todgers. Who, it seemed, had cut his 
matrimonial career rather short, by unlawfully running away from his 
happiness, and establishing himself in foreign countries as a 
bachelor. 
'Your pa was once a little particular in his attentions, my dears,' 
said Mrs Todgers, 'but to be your ma was too much happiness denied 
me. You'd hardly know who this was done for, perhaps?' 
She called their attention to an oval miniature, like a little 
blister, which was tacked up over the kettle-holder, and in which 
there was a dreamy shadowing forth of her own visage. 
'It's a speaking likeness!' cried the two Miss Pecksniffs. 
'It was considered so once,' said Mrs Todgers, warming herself in a 
gentlemanly manner at the fire; 'but I hardly thought you would have 
known it, my loves.' 
They would have known it anywhere. If they could have met with it 
in the street, or seen it in a shop window, they would have cried 
'Good gracious! Mrs Todgers!' 
'Presiding over an establishment like this, makes sad havoc with the 
features, my dear Miss Pecksniffs,' said Mrs Todgers. 'The gravy 
alone, is enough to add twenty years to one's age, I do assure you.' 
'Lor'!' cried the two Miss Pecksniffs. 
'The anxiety of that one item, my dears,' said Mrs Todgers, 'keeps 
the mind continually upon the stretch. There is no such passion in 
human nature, as the passion for gravy among commercial gentlemen. 
It's nothing to say a joint won't yield--a whole animal wouldn't 
yield--the amount of gravy they expect each day at dinner. And what 
I have undergone in consequence,' cried Mrs Todgers, raising her 
eyes and shaking her head, 'no one would believe!' 
'Just like Mr Pinch, Merry!' said Charity. 'We have always noticed 
it in him, you remember?' 
'Yes, my dear,' giggled Merry, 'but we have never given it him, you 
know.' 
'You, my dears, having to deal with your pa's pupils who can't help 
themselves, are able to take your own way,' said Mrs Todgers; 'but in 
a commercial establishment, where any gentleman may say any Saturday 
evening, Mrs Todgersthis day week we partin consequence of the 
cheese it is not so easy to preserve a pleasant understanding. 
Your pa was kind enough,' added the good lady, 'to invite me to take 
a ride with you to-day; and I think he mentioned that you were going 
to call upon Miss Pinch. Any relation to the gentleman you were 
speaking of just now, Miss Pecksniff?' 
'For goodness sake, Mrs Todgers,' interposed the lively Merry, 
'don't call him a gentleman. My dear Cherry, Pinch a gentleman! 
The idea!' 
'What a wicked girl you are!' cried Mrs Todgers, embracing her with 
great affection. 'You are quite a quiz, I do declare! My dear Miss 
Pecksniff, what a happiness your sister's spirits must be to your pa 
and self!' 
'He's the most hideous, goggle-eyed creature, Mrs Todgers, in 
existence,' resumed Merry: 'quite an ogre. The ugliest, awkwardest 
frightfullest being, you can imagine. This is his sister, so I 
leave you to suppose what SHE is. I shall be obliged to laugh 
outright, I know I shall!' cried the charming girl, 'I never shall 
be able to keep my countenance. The notion of a Miss Pinch 
presuming to exist at all is sufficient to kill one, but to see her 
--oh my stars!' 
Mrs Todgers laughed immensely at the dear love's humour, and 
declared she was quite afraid of her, that she was. She was so very 
severe. 
'Who is severe?' cried a voice at the door. 'There is no such thing 
as severity in our family, I hope!' And then Mr Pecksniff peeped 
smilingly into the room, and said, 'May I come in, Mrs Todgers?' 
Mrs Todgers almost screamed, for the little door of communication 
between that room and the inner one being wide open, there was a 
full disclosure of the sofa bedstead in all its monstrous 
impropriety. But she had the presence of mind to close this portal 
in the twinkling of an eye; and having done so, said, though not 
without confusion, 'Oh yes, Mr Pecksniff, you can come in, if you 
please.' 
'How are we to-day,' said Mr Pecksniff, jocosely. 'and what are our 
plans? Are we ready to go and see Tom Pinch's sister? Ha, ha, ha! 
Poor Thomas Pinch!' 
'Are we ready,' returned Mrs Todgers, nodding her head with 
mysterious intelligence, 'to send a favourable reply to Mr Jinkins's 
round-robin? That's the first question, Mr Pecksniff.' 
'Why Mr Jinkins's robin, my dear madam?' asked Mr Pecksniff, putting 
one arm round Mercy, and the other round Mrs Todgers, whom he 
seemed, in the abstraction of the moment, to mistake for Charity. 
'Why Mr Jinkins's?' 
'Because he began to get it up, and indeed always takes the lead in 
the house,' said Mrs Todgers, playfully. 'That's why, sir.' 
'Jinkins is a man of superior talents,' observed Mr Pecksniff. 'I 
have conceived a great regard for Jinkins. I take Jinkins's desire 
to pay polite attention to my daughters, as an additional proof of 
the friendly feeling of Jinkins, Mrs Todgers.' 
'Well now,' returned that lady, 'having said so much, you must say 
the rest, Mr Pecksniff; so tell the dear young ladies all about it.' 
With these words she gently eluded Mr Pecksniff's grasp, and took 
Miss Charity into her own embrace; though whether she was impelled 
to this proceeding solely by the irrepressible affection she had 
conceived for that young lady, or whether it had any reference to a 
lowering, not to say distinctly spiteful expression which had been 
visible in her face for some moments, has never been exactly 
ascertained. Be this as it may, Mr Pecksniff went on to inform his 
daughters of the purport and history of the round-robin aforesaid, 
which was in brief, that the commercial gentlemen who helped to make 
up the sum and substance of that noun of multitude signifying 
many, called Todgers's, desired the honour of their presence at the 
general table, so long as they remained in the house, and besought 
that they would grace the board at dinner-time next day, the same 
being Sunday. He further said, that Mrs Todgers being a consenting 
party to this invitation, he was willing, for his part, to accept 
it; and so left them that he might write his gracious answer, the 
while they armed themselves with their best bonnets for the utter 
defeat and overthrow of Miss Pinch. 
Tom Pinch's sister was governess in a family, a lofty family; 
perhaps the wealthiest brass and copper founders' family known to 
mankind. They lived at Camberwell; in a house so big and fierce, 
that its mere outside, like the outside of a giant's castle, struck 
terror into vulgar minds and made bold persons quail. There was a 
great front gate; with a great bell, whose handle was in itself a 
note of admiration; and a great lodge; which being close to the 
house, rather spoilt the look-out certainly but made the look-in 
tremendous. At this entry, a great porter kept constant watch and 
ward; and when he gave the visitor high leave to pass, he rang a 
second great bell, responsive to whose note a great footman appeared 
in due time at the great halldoor, with such great tags upon his 
liveried shoulder that he was perpetually entangling and hooking 
himself among the chairs and tables, and led a life of torment which 
could scarcely have been surpassed, if he had been a blue-bottle in 
a world of cobwebs. 
To this mansion Mr Pecksniff, accompanied by his daughters and Mrs 
Todgers, drove gallantly in a one-horse fly. The foregoing 
ceremonies having been all performed, they were ushered into the 
house; and so, by degrees, they got at last into a small room with 
books in it, where Mr Pinch's sister was at that moment instructing 
her eldest pupil; to wit, a premature little woman of thirteen years 
old, who had already arrived at such a pitch of whalebone and 
education that she had nothing girlish about her, which was a source 
of great rejoicing to all her relations and friends. 
'Visitors for Miss Pinch!' said the footman. He must have been an 
ingenious young man, for he said it very cleverly; with a nice 
discrimination between the cold respect with which he would have 
announced visitors to the family, and the warm personal interest 
with which he would have announced visitors to the cook. 
'Visitors for Miss Pinch!' 
Miss Pinch rose hastily; with such tokens of agitation as plainly 
declared that her list of callers was not numerous. At the same 
time, the little pupil became alarmingly upright, and prepared 
herself to take mental notes of all that might be said and done. 
For the lady of the establishment was curious in the natural history 
and habits of the animal called Governess, and encouraged her 
daughters to report thereon whenever occasion served; which was, in 
reference to all parties concerned, very laudable, improving, and 
pleasant. 
It is a melancholy fact; but it must be related, that Mr Pinch's 
sister was not at all ugly. On the contrary, she had a good face; a 
very mild and prepossessing face; and a pretty little figure--slight 
and short, but remarkable for its neatness. There was something of 
her brother, much of him indeed, in a certain gentleness of manner, 
and in her look of timid trustfulness; but she was so far from being 
a fright, or a dowdy, or a horror, or anything else, predicted by 
the two Miss Pecksniffs, that those young ladies naturally regarded 
her with great indignation, feeling that this was by no means what 
they had come to see. 
Miss Mercy, as having the larger share of gaiety, bore up the best 
against this disappointment, and carried it off, in outward show at 
least, with a titter; but her sister, not caring to hide her 
disdain, expressed it pretty openly in her looks. As to Mrs 
Todgers, she leaned on Mr Pecksniff's arm and preserved a kind of 
genteel grimness, suitable to any state of mind, and involving any 
shade of opinion. 
'Don't be alarmed, Miss Pinch,' said Mr Pecksniff, taking her hand 
condescendingly in one of his, and patting it with the other. 'I 
have called to see you, in pursuance of a promise given to your 
brother, Thomas Pinch. My name--compose yourself, Miss Pinch--is 
Pecksniff.' 
The good man emphasised these words as though he would have said, 
'You see in me, young person, the benefactor of your race; the 
patron of your house; the preserver of your brother, who is fed with 
manna daily from my table; and in right of whom there is a 
considerable balance in my favour at present standing in the books 
beyond the sky. But I have no pride, for I can afford to do without 
it!' 
The poor girl felt it all as if it had been Gospel truth. Her 
brother writing in the fullness of his simple heart, had often told 
her so, and how much more! As Mr Pecksniff ceased to speak, she hung 
her head, and dropped a tear upon his hand. 
'Oh very well, Miss Pinch!' thought the sharp pupil, 'crying before 
strangers, as if you didn't like the situation!' 
'Thomas is well,' said Mr Pecksniff; 'and sends his love and this 
letter. I cannot say, poor fellow, that he will ever be 
distinguished in our profession; but he has the will to do well, 
which is the next thing to having the power; and, therefore, we must 
bear with him. Eh?' 
'I know he has the will, sir,' said Tom Pinch's sister, 'and I know 
how kindly and considerately you cherish it, for which neither he 
nor I can ever be grateful enough, as we very often say in writing 
to each other. The young ladies too,' she added, glancing 
gratefully at his two daughters, 'I know how much we owe to them.' 
'My dears,' said Mr Pecksniff, turning to them with a smile: 
'Thomas's sister is saying something you will be glad to hear, I 
think.' 
'We can't take any merit to ourselves, papa!' cried Cherry, as they 
both apprised Tom Pinch's sister, with a curtsey, that they would 
feel obliged if she would keep her distance. 'Mr Pinch's being so 
well provided for is owing to you alone, and we can only say how 
glad we are to hear that he is as grateful as he ought to be.' 
'Oh very well, Miss Pinch!' thought the pupil again. 'Got a 
grateful brother, living on other people's kindness!' 
'It was very kind of you,' said Tom Pinch's sister, with Tom's own 
simplicity and Tom's own smile, 'to come here; very kind indeed; 
though how great a kindness you have done me in gratifying my wish 
to see you, and to thank you with my own lips, you, who make so 
light of benefits conferred, can scarcely think.' 
'Very grateful; very pleasant; very proper,' murmured Mr Pecksniff. 
'It makes me happy too,' said Ruth Pinch, who now that her first 
surprise was over, had a chatty, cheerful way with her, and a 
single-hearted desire to look upon the best side of everything, 
which was the very moral and image of Tom; 'very happy to think that 
you will be able to tell him how more than comfortably I am situated 
here, and how unnecessary it is that he should ever waste a regret 
on my being cast upon my own resources. Dear me! So long as I heard 
that he was happy, and he heard that I was,' said Tom's sister, 'we 
could both bear, without one impatient or complaining thought, a 
great deal more than ever we have had to endure, I am very certain.' 
And if ever the plain truth were spoken on this occasionally false 
earth, Tom's sister spoke it when she said that. 
'Ah!' cried Mr Pecksniff whose eyes had in the meantime wandered to 
the pupil; 'certainly. And how do YOU do, my very interesting 
child?' 
'Quite well, I thank you, sir,' replied that frosty innocent. 
'A sweet face this, my dears,' said Mr Pecksniff, turning to his 
daughters. 'A charming manner!' 
Both young ladies had been in ecstasies with the scion of a wealthy 
house (through whom the nearest road and shortest cut to her parents 
might be supposed to lie) from the first. Mrs Todgers vowed that 
anything one quarter so angelic she had never seen. 'She wanted but 
a pair of wings, a dear,' said that good woman, 'to be a young 
syrup'--meaning, possibly, young sylph, or seraph. 
'If you will give that to your distinguished parents, my amiable 
little friend,' said Mr Pecksniff, producing one of his professional 
cards, 'and will say that I and my daughters--' 
'And Mrs Todgers, pa,' said Merry. 
'And Mrs Todgers, of London,' added Mr Pecksniff; 'that I, and my 
daughters, and Mrs Todgers, of London, did not intrude upon them, as 
our object simply was to take some notice of Miss Pinch, whose 
brother is a young man in my employment; but that I could not leave 
this very chaste mansion, without adding my humble tribute, as an 
Architect, to the correctness and elegance of the owner's taste, and 
to his just appreciation of that beautiful art to the cultivation of 
which I have devoted a life, and to the promotion of whose glory and 
advancement I have sacrified a--a fortune--I shall be very much 
obliged to you.' 
'Missis's compliments to Miss Pinch,' said the footman, suddenly 
appearing, and speaking in exactly the same key as before, 'and begs 
to know wot my young lady is a-learning of just now.' 
'Oh!' said Mr Pecksniff, 'Here is the young man. HE will take the 
card. With my compliments, if you please, young man. My dears, we 
are interrupting the studies. Let us go.' 
Some confusion was occasioned for an instant by Mrs Todgers's 
unstrapping her little flat hand-basket, and hurriedly entrusting 
the 'young man' with one of her own cards, which, in addition to 
certain detailed information relative to the terms of the commercial 
establishment, bore a foot-note to the effect that M. T. took that 
opportunity of thanking those gentlemen who had honoured her with 
their favours, and begged they would have the goodness, if satisfied 
with the table, to recommend her to their friends. But Mr 
Pecksniff, with admirable presence of mind, recovered this document, 
and buttoned it up in his own pocket. 
Then he said to Miss Pinch--with more condescension and kindness 
than ever, for it was desirable the footman should expressly 
understand that they were not friends of hers, but patrons: 
'Good morning. Good-bye. God bless you! You may depend upon my 
continued protection of your brother Thomas. Keep your mind quite 
at ease, Miss Pinch!' 
'Thank you,' said Tom's sister heartily; 'a thousand times.' 
'Not at all,' he retorted, patting her gently on the head. 'Don't 
mention it. You will make me angry if you do. My sweet child'--to 
the pupil--'farewell! That fairy creature,' said Mr Pecksniff, 
looking in his pensive mood hard at the footman, as if he meant him, 
'has shed a vision on my path, refulgent in its nature, and not 
easily to be obliterated. My dears, are you ready?' 
They were not quite ready yet, for they were still caressing the 
pupil. But they tore themselves away at length; and sweeping past 
Miss Pinch with each a haughty inclination of the head and a curtsey 
strangled in its birth, flounced into the passage. 
The young man had rather a long job in showing them out; for Mr 
Pecksniff's delight in the tastefulness of the house was such that 
he could not help often stopping (particularly when they were near 
the parlour door) and giving it expression, in a loud voice and very 
learned terms. Indeed, he delivered, between the study and the 
hall, a familiar exposition of the whole science of architecture as 
applied to dwelling-houses, and was yet in the freshness of his 
eloquence when they reached the garden. 
'If you look,' said Mr Pecksniff, backing from the steps, with his 
head on one side and his eyes half-shut that he might the better 
take in the proportions of the exterior: 'If you look, my dears, at 
the cornice which supports the roof, and observe the airiness of its 
construction, especially where it sweeps the southern angle of the 
building, you will feel with me--How do you do, sir? I hope you're 
well?' 
Interrupting himself with these words, he very politely bowed to a 
middle-aged gentleman at an upper window, to whom he spoke--not 
because the gentleman could hear him (for he certainly could not), 
but as an appropriate accompaniment to his salutation. 
'I have no doubt, my dears,' said Mr Pecksniff, feigning to point 
out other beauties with his hand, 'that this is the proprietor. 
should be glad to know him. It might lead to something. Is he 
looking this way, Charity?' 
'He is opening the window pa!' 
'Ha, ha!' cried Mr Pecksniff softly. 'All right! He has found I'm 
professional. He heard me inside just now, I have no doubt. Don't 
look! With regard to the fluted pillars in the portico, my dears--' 
'Hallo!' cried the gentleman. 
'Sir, your servant!' said Mr Pecksniff, taking off his hat. 'I am 
proud to make your acquaintance.' 
'Come off the grass, will you!' roared the gentleman. 
'I beg your pardon, sir,' said Mr Pecksniff, doubtful of his having 
heard aright. 'Did you--?' 
'Come off the grass!' repeated the gentleman, warmly. 
'We are unwilling to intrude, sir,' Mr Pecksniff smilingly began. 
'But you ARE intruding,' returned the other, 'unwarrantably 
intruding. Trespassing. You see a gravel walk, don't you? What 
do you think it's meant for? Open the gate there! Show that party 
out!' 
With that he clapped down the window again, and disappeared. 
Mr Pecksniff put on his hat, and walked with great deliberation and 
in profound silence to the fly, gazing at the clouds as he went, 
with great interest. After helping his daughters and Mrs Todgers 
into that conveyance, he stood looking at it for some moments, as if 
he were not quite certain whether it was a carriage or a temple; but 
having settled this point in his mind, he got into his place, spread 
his hands out on his knees, and smiled upon the three beholders. 
But his daughters, less tranquil-minded, burst into a torrent of 
indignation. This came, they said, of cherishing such creatures as 
the Pinches. This came of lowering themselves to their level. This 
came of putting themselves in the humiliating position of seeming to 
know such bold, audacious, cunning, dreadful girls as that. They 
had expected this. They had predicted it to Mrs Todgers, as she 
(Todgers) could depone, that very morning. To this, they added, 
that the owner of the house, supposing them to be Miss Pinch's 
friends, had acted, in their opinion, quite correctly, and had done 
no more than, under such circumstances, might reasonably have been 
expected. To that they added (with a trifling inconsistency), that 
he was a brute and a bear; and then they merged into a flood of 
tears, which swept away all wandering epithets before it. 
Perhaps Miss Pinch was scarcely so much to blame in the matter as 
the Seraph, who, immediately on the withdrawal of the visitors, had 
hastened to report them at head-quarters, with a full account of 
their having presumptuously charged her with the delivery of a 
message afterwards consigned to the footman; which outrage, taken in 
conjunction with Mr Pecksniff's unobtrusive remarks on the 
establishment, might possibly have had some share in their 
dismissal. Poor Miss Pinch, however, had to bear the brunt of it 
with both parties; being so severely taken to task by the Seraph's 
mother for having such vulgar acquaintances, that she was fain to 
retire to her own room in tears, which her natural cheerfulness and 
submission, and the delight of having seen Mr Pecksniff, and having 
received a letter from her brother, were at first insufficient to 
repress. 
As to Mr Pecksniff, he told them in the fly, that a good action was 
its own reward; and rather gave them to understand, that if he could 
have been kicked in such a cause, he would have liked it all the 
better. But this was no comfort to the young ladies, who scolded 
violently the whole way back, and even exhibited, more than once, a 
keen desire to attack the devoted Mrs Todgers; on whose personal 
appearance, but particularly on whose offending card and handbasket, 
they were secretly inclined to lay the blame of half their 
failure. 
Todgers's was in a great bustle that evening, partly owing to some 
additional domestic preparations for the morrow, and partly to the 
excitement always inseparable in that house from Saturday night, 
when every gentleman's linen arrived at a different hour in its own 
little bundle, with his private account pinned on the outside. 
There was always a great clinking of pattens downstairs, too, until 
midnight or so, on Saturdays; together with a frequent gleaming of 
mysterious lights in the area; much working at the pump; and a 
constant jangling of the iron handle of the pail. Shrill 
altercations from time to time arose between Mrs Todgers and unknown 
females in remote back kitchens; and sounds were occasionally heard, 
indicative of small articles of iron mongery and hardware being 
thrown at the boy. It was the custom of that youth on Saturdays, to 
roll up his shirt sleeves to his shoulders, and pervade all parts of 
the house in an apron of coarse green baize; moreover, he was more 
strongly tempted on Saturdays than on other days (it being a busy 
time), to make excursive bolts into the neighbouring alleys when he 
answered the door, and there to play at leap-frog and other sports 
with vagrant lads, until pursued and brought back by the hair of his 
head or the lobe of his ear; thus he was quite a conspicuous feature 
among the peculiar incidents of the last day in the week at Todgers's. 
He was especially so on this particular Saturday evening, and 
honoured the Miss Pecksniffs with a deal of notice; seldom passing 
the door of Mrs Todgers's private room, where they sat alone before 
the fire, working by the light of a solitary candle, without putting 
in his head and greeting them with some such compliments as, 'There 
you are agin!' 'An't it nice?'--and similar humorous attentions. 
'I say,' he whispered, stopping in one of his journeys to and fro, 
'young ladies, there's soup to-morrow. She's a-making it now. An't 
she a-putting in the water? Oh! not at all neither!' 
In the course of answering another knock, he thrust in his head 
again. 
'I say! There's fowls to-morrow. Not skinny ones. Oh no!' 
Presently he called through the key-hole: 
'There's a fish to-morrow. Just come. Don't eat none of him!' And, 
with this special warning, vanished again. 
By-and-bye, he returned to lay the cloth for supper; it having been 
arranged between Mrs Todgers and the young ladies, that they should 
partake of an exclusive veal-cutlet together in the privacy of that 
apartment. He entertained them on this occasion by thrusting the 
lighted candle into his mouth, and exhibiting his face in a state of 
transparency; after the performance of which feat, he went on with 
his professional duties; brightening every knife as he laid it on 
the table, by breathing on the blade and afterwards polishing the 
same on the apron already mentioned. When he had completed his 
preparations, he grinned at the sisters, and expressed his belief 
that the approaching collation would be of 'rather a spicy sort.' 
'Will it be long, before it's ready, Bailey?' asked Mercy.
 'No,' said Bailey, 'it IS cooked. When I come up, she was dodging 
among the tender pieces with a fork, and eating of 'em.' 
But he had scarcely achieved the utterance of these words, when he 
received a manual compliment on the head, which sent him staggering 
against the wall; and Mrs Todgers, dish in hand, stood indignantly 
before him. 
'Oh you little villain!' said that lady. 'Oh you bad, false boy!' 
'No worse than yerself,' retorted Bailey, guarding his head, on a 
principle invented by Mr Thomas Cribb. 'Ah! Come now! Do that 
again, will yer?' 
'He's the most dreadful child,' said Mrs Todgers, setting down the 
dish, 'I ever had to deal with. The gentlemen spoil him to that 
extent, and teach him such things, that I'm afraid nothing but 
hanging will ever do him any good.' 
'Won't it!' cried Bailey. 'Oh! Yes! Wot do you go a-lowerin the 
table-beer for then, and destroying my constitooshun?' 
'Go downstairs, you vicious boy,' said Mrs Todgers, holding the 
door open. 'Do you hear me? Go along!' 
After two or three dexterous feints, he went, and was seen no more 
that night, save once, when he brought up some tumblers and hot 
water, and much disturbed the two Miss Pecksniffs by squinting 
hideously behind the back of the unconscious Mrs Todgers. Having 
done this justice to his wounded feelings, he retired underground; 
where, in company with a swarm of black beetles and a kitchen 
candle, he employed his faculties in cleaning boots and brushing 
clothes until the night was far advanced. 
Benjamin was supposed to be the real name of this young retainer but 
he was known by a great variety of names. Benjamin, for instance, 
had been converted into Uncle Ben, and that again had been corrupted 
into Uncle; which, by an easy transition, had again passed into 
Barnwell, in memory of the celebrated relative in that degree who 
was shot by his nephew George, while meditating in his garden at 
Camberwell. The gentlemen at Todgers's had a merry habit, too, of 
bestowing upon him, for the time being, the name of any notorious 
malefactor or minister; and sometimes when current events were flat 
they even sought the pages of history for these distinctions; as Mr 
Pitt, Young Brownrigg, and the like. At the period of which we 
write, he was generally known among the gentlemen as Bailey junior; 
a name bestowed upon him in contradistinction, perhaps, to Old 
Bailey; and possibly as involving the recollection of an unfortunate 
lady of the same name, who perished by her own hand early in life, 
and has been immortalised in a ballad. 
The usual Sunday dinner-hour at Todgers's was two o'clock--a 
suitable time, it was considered for all parties; convenient to Mrs 
Todgers, on account of the bakers; and convenient to the gentlemen 
with reference to their afternoon engagements. But on the Sunday 
which was to introduce the two Miss Pecksniffs to a full knowledge 
of Todgers's and its society, the dinner was postponed until five, 
in order that everything might be as genteel as the occasion 
demanded. 
When the hour drew nigh, Bailey junior, testifying great excitement, 
appeared in a complete suit of cast-off clothes several sizes too 
large for him, and in particular, mounted a clean shirt of such 
extraordinary magnitude, that one of the gentlemen (remarkable for 
his ready wit) called him 'collars' on the spot. At about a quarter 
before five, a deputation, consisting of Mr Jinkins, and another 
gentleman, whose name was Gander, knocked at the door of Mrs 
Todgers's room, and, being formally introduced to the two Miss 
Pecksniffs by their parent who was in waiting, besought the honour 
of conducting them upstairs. 
The drawing-room at Todgers's was out of the common style; so much 
so indeed, that you would hardly have taken it to be a drawingroom, 
unless you were told so by somebody who was in the secret. It was 
floor-clothed all over; and the ceiling, including a great beam in 
the middle, was papered. Besides the three little windows, with 
seats in them, commanding the opposite archway, there was another 
window looking point blank, without any compromise at all about it 
into Jinkins's bedroom; and high up, all along one side of the wall 
was a strip of panes of glass, two-deep, giving light to the 
staircase. There were the oddest closets possible, with little 
casements in them like eight-day clocks, lurking in the wainscot and 
taking the shape of the stairs; and the very door itself (which was 
painted black) had two great glass eyes in its forehead, with an 
inquisitive green pupil in the middle of each. 
Here the gentlemen were all assembled. There was a general cry of 
'Hear, hear!' and 'Bravo Jink!' when Mr Jinkins appeared with 
Charity on his arm; which became quite rapturous as Mr Gander 
followed, escorting Mercy, and Mr Pecksniff brought up the rear with 
Mrs Todgers. 
Then the presentations took place. They included a gentleman of a 
sporting turn, who propounded questions on jockey subjects to the 
editors of Sunday papers, which were regarded by his friends as 
rather stiff things to answer; and they included a gentleman of a 
theatrical turn, who had once entertained serious thoughts of 
'coming out,' but had been kept in by the wickedness of human 
nature; and they included a gentleman of a debating turn, who was 
strong at speech-making; and a gentleman of a literary turn, who 
wrote squibs upon the rest, and knew the weak side of everybody's 
character but his own. There was a gentleman of a vocal turn, and a 
gentleman of a smoking turn, and a gentleman of a convivial turn; 
some of the gentlemen had a turn for whist, and a large proportion 
of the gentlemen had a strong turn for billiards and betting. They 
had all, it may be presumed, a turn for business; being all 
commercially employed in one way or other; and had, every one in his 
own way, a decided turn for pleasure to boot. Mr Jinkins was of a 
fashionable turn; being a regular frequenter of the Parks on 
Sundays, and knowing a great many carriages by sight. He spoke 
mysteriously, too, of splendid women, and was suspected of having 
once committed himself with a Countess. Mr Gander was of a witty 
turn being indeed the gentleman who had originated the sally about 
'collars;' which sparkling pleasantry was now retailed from mouth to 
mouth, under the title of Gander's Last, and was received in all 
parts of the room with great applause. Mr Jinkins it may be added, 
was much the oldest of the party; being a fish-salesman's book
keeper, aged forty. He was the oldest boarder also; and in right of 
his double seniority, took the lead in the house, as Mrs Todgers had 
already said. 
There was considerable delay in the production of dinner, and poor 
Mrs Todgers, being reproached in confidence by Jinkins, slipped in 
and out, at least twenty times to see about it; always coming back 
as though she had no such thing upon her mind, and hadn't been out 
at all. But there was no hitch in the conversation nevertheless; 
for one gentleman, who travelled in the perfumery line, exhibited an 
interesting nick-nack, in the way of a remarkable cake of shaving 
soap which he had lately met with in Germany; and the gentleman of a 
literary turn repeated (by desire) some sarcastic stanzas he had 
recently produced on the freezing of the tank at the back of the 
house. These amusements, with the miscellaneous conversation 
arising out of them, passed the time splendidly, until dinner was 
announced by Bailey junior in these terms: 
'The wittles is up!' 
On which notice they immediately descended to the banquet-hall; some 
of the more facetious spirits in the rear taking down gentlemen as 
if they were ladies, in imitation of the fortunate possessors of the 
two Miss Pecksniffs. 
Mr Pecksniff said grace--a short and pious grace, involving a 
blessing on the appetites of those present, and committing all 
persons who had nothing to eat, to the care of Providence; whose 
business (so said the grace, in effect) it clearly was, to look 
after them. This done, they fell to with less ceremony than 
appetite; the table groaning beneath the weight, not only of the 
delicacies whereof the Miss Pecksniffs had been previously 
forewarned, but of boiled beef, roast veal, bacon, pies and 
abundance of such heavy vegetables as are favourably known to 
housekeepers for their satisfying qualities. Besides which, there 
were bottles of stout, bottles of wine, bottles of ale, and divers 
other strong drinks, native and foreign. 
All this was highly agreeable to the two Miss Pecksniffs, who were 
in immense request; sitting one on either hand of Mr Jinkins at the 
bottom of the table; and who were called upon to take wine with some 
new admirer every minute. They had hardly ever felt so pleasant, 
and so full of conversation, in their lives; Mercy, in particular, 
was uncommonly brilliant, and said so many good things in the way of 
lively repartee that she was looked upon as a prodigy. 'In short,' 
as that young lady observed, 'they felt now, indeed, that they were 
in London, and for the first time too.' 
Their young friend Bailey sympathized in these feelings to the 
fullest extent, and, abating nothing of his patronage, gave them 
every encouragement in his power; favouring them, when the general 
attention was diverted from his proceedings, with many nods and 
winks and other tokens of recognition, and occasionally touching his 
nose with a corkscrew, as if to express the Bacchanalian character 
of the meeting. In truth, perhaps even the spirits of the two Miss 
Pecksniffs, and the hungry watchfulness of Mrs Todgers, were less 
worthy of note than the proceedings of this remarkable boy, whom 
nothing disconcerted or put out of his way. If any piece of 
crockery, a dish or otherwise, chanced to slip through his hands 
(which happened once or twice), he let it go with perfect good 
breeding, and never added to the painful emotions of the company by 
exhibiting the least regret. Nor did he, by hurrying to and fro, 
disturb the repose of the assembly, as many well-trained servants 
do; on the contrary, feeling the hopelessness of waiting upon so 
large a party, he left the gentlemen to help themselves to what they 
wanted, and seldom stirred from behind Mr Jinkins's chair, where, 
with his hands in his pockets, and his legs planted pretty wide 
apart, he led the laughter, and enjoyed the conversation. 
The dessert was splendid. No waiting either. The pudding-plates 
had been washed in a little tub outside the door while cheese was 
on, and though they were moist and warm with friction, still there 
they were again, up to the mark, and true to time. Quarts of 
almonds; dozens of oranges; pounds of raisins; stacks of biffins; 
soup-plates full of nuts.--Oh, Todgers's could do it when it chose! 
mind that. 
Then more wine came on; red wines and white wines; and a large china 
bowl of punch, brewed by the gentleman of a convivial turn, who 
adjured the Miss Pecksniffs not to be despondent on account of its 
dimensions, as there were materials in the house for the decoction 
of half a dozen more of the same size. Good gracious, how they 
laughed! How they coughed when they sipped it, because it was so 
strong; and how they laughed again when somebody vowed that but for 
its colour it might have been mistaken, in regard of its innocuous 
qualities, for new milk! What a shout of 'No!' burst from the 
gentlemen when they pathetically implored Mr Jinkins to suffer them 
to qualify it with hot water; and how blushingly, by little and 
little, did each of them drink her whole glassful, down to its very 
dregs! 
Now comes the trying time. The sun, as Mr Jinkins says (gentlemanly 
creature, Jinkins--never at a loss!), is about to leave the 
firmament. 'Miss Pecksniff!' says Mrs Todgers, softly, 'will 
you--?' 'Oh dear, no more, Mrs Todgers.' Mrs Todgers rises; the 
two Miss Pecksniffs rise; all rise. Miss Mercy Pecksniff looks 
downward for her scarf. Where is it? Dear me, where CAN it be? 
Sweet girl, she has it on; not on her fair neck, but loose upon 
her flowing figure. A dozen hands assist her. She is all confusion. 
The youngest gentleman in company thirsts to murder Jinkins. She 
skips and joins her sister at the door. Her sister has her arm 
about the waist of Mrs Todgers. She winds her arm around her 
sister. Diana, what a picture! The last things visible are a 
shape and a skip. 'Gentlemen, let us drink the ladies!' 
The enthusiasm is tremendous. The gentleman of a debating turn 
rises in the midst, and suddenly lets loose a tide of eloquence 
which bears down everything before it. He is reminded of a toast--a 
toast to which they will respond. There is an individual present; 
he has him in his eye; to whom they owe a debt of gratitude. He 
repeats it--a debt of gratitude. Their rugged natures have been 
softened and ameliorated that day, by the society of lovely woman. 
There is a gentleman in company whom two accomplished and delightful 
females regard with veneration, as the fountain of their existence. 
Yes, when yet the two Miss Pecksniffs lisped in language scarce 
intelligible, they called that individual 'Father!' There is great 
applause. He gives them 'Mr Pecksniff, and God bless him!' They all 
shake hands with Mr Pecksniff, as they drink the toast. The 
youngest gentleman in company does so with a thrill; for he feels 
that a mysterious influence pervades the man who claims that being 
in the pink scarf for his daughter. 
What saith Mr Pecksniff in reply? Or rather let the question be, 
What leaves he unsaid? Nothing. More punch is called for, and 
produced, and drunk. Enthusiasm mounts still higher. Every man 
comes out freely in his own character. The gentleman of a 
theatrical turn recites. The vocal gentleman regales them with a 
song. Gander leaves the Gander of all former feasts whole leagues 
behind. HE rises to propose a toast. It is, The Father of 
Todgers's. It is their common friend Jink--it is old Jink, if he 
may call him by that familiar and endearing appellation. The 
youngest gentleman in company utters a frantic negative. He won't 
have it--he can't bear it--it mustn't be. But his depth of feeling 
is misunderstood. He is supposed to be a little elevated; and 
nobody heeds him. 
Mr Jinkins thanks them from his heart. It is, by many degrees, the 
proudest day in his humble career. When he looks around him on the 
present occasion, he feels that he wants words in which to express 
his gratitude. One thing he will say. He hopes it has been shown 
that Todgers's can be true to itself; and that, an opportunity 
arising, it can come out quite as strong as its neighbours--perhaps 
stronger. He reminds them, amidst thunders of encouragement, that 
they have heard of a somewhat similar establishment in Cannon 
Street; and that they have heard it praised. He wishes to draw no 
invidious comparisons; he would be the last man to do it; but when 
that Cannon Street establishment shall be able to produce such a 
combination of wit and beauty as has graced that board that day, and 
shall be able to serve up (all things considered) such a dinner as 
that of which they have just partaken, he will be happy to talk to 
it. Until then, gentlemen, he will stick to Todgers's. 
More punch, more enthusiasm, more speeches. Everybody's health is 
drunk, saving the youngest gentleman's in company. He sits apart, 
with his elbow on the back of a vacant chair, and glares 
disdainfully at Jinkins. Gander, in a convulsing speech, gives them 
the health of Bailey junior; hiccups are heard; and a glass is 
broken. Mr Jinkins feels that it is time to join the ladies. He 
proposes, as a final sentiment, Mrs Todgers. She is worthy to be 
remembered separately. Hear, hear. So she is; no doubt of it. 
They all find fault with her at other times; but every man feels 
now, that he could die in her defence. 
They go upstairs, where they are not expected so soon; for 
Mrs Todgers is asleep, Miss Charity is adjusting her hair, and 
Mercy, who has made a sofa of one of the window-seats is in a 
gracefully recumbent attitude. She is rising hastily, when Mr 
Jinkins implores her, for all their sakes, not to stir; she looks 
too graceful and too lovely, he remarks, to be disturbed. She 
laughs, and yields, and fans herself, and drops her fan, and there 
is a rush to pick it up. Being now installed, by one consent, as 
the beauty of the party, she is cruel and capricious, and sends 
gentlemen on messages to other gentlemen, and forgets all about them 
before they can return with the answer, and invents a thousand 
tortures, rending their hearts to pieces. Bailey brings up the tea 
and coffee. There is a small cluster of admirers round Charity; but 
they are only those who cannot get near her sister. The youngest 
gentleman in company is pale, but collected, and still sits apart; 
for his spirit loves to hold communion with itself, and his soul 
recoils from noisy revellers. She has a consciousness of his 
presence and adoration. He sees it flashing sometimes in the corner 
of her eye. Have a care, Jinkins, ere you provoke a desperate man 
to frenzy! 
Mr Pecksniff had followed his younger friends upstairs, and taken a 
chair at the side of Mrs Todgers. He had also spilt a cup of coffee 
over his legs without appearing to be aware of the circumstance; nor 
did he seem to know that there was muffin on his knee. 
'And how have they used you downstairs, sir?' asked the hostess. 
'Their conduct has been such, my dear madam,' said Mr Pecksniff, 'as 
I can never think of without emotion, or remember without a tear. 
Oh, Mrs Todgers!' 
'My goodness!' exclaimed that lady. 'How low you are in your 
spirits, sir!' 
'I am a man, my dear madam,' said Mr Pecksniff, shedding tears and 
speaking with an imperfect articulation, 'but I am also a father. I 
am also a widower. My feelings, Mrs Todgers, will not consent to be 
entirely smothered, like the young children in the Tower. They are 
grown up, and the more I press the bolster on them, the more they 
look round the corner of it.' 
He suddenly became conscious of the bit of muffin, and stared at it 
intently; shaking his head the while, in a forlorn and imbecile 
manner, as if he regarded it as his evil genius, and mildly 
reproached it. 
'She was beautiful, Mrs Todgers,' he said, turning his glazed eye 
again upon her, without the least preliminary notice. 'She had a 
small property.' 
'So I have heard,' cried Mrs Todgers with great sympathy. 
'Those are her daughters,' said Mr Pecksniff, pointing out the young 
ladies, with increased emotion. 
Mrs Todgers had no doubt about it. 
'Mercy and Charity,' said Mr Pecksniff, 'Charity and Mercy. Not 
unholy names, I hope?' 
'Mr Pecksniff!' cried Mrs Todgers. 'What a ghastly smile! Are you 
ill, sir?' 
He pressed his hand upon her arm, and answered in a solemn manner, 
and a faint voice, 'Chronic.' 
'Cholic?' cried the frightened Mrs Todgers. 
'Chron-ic,' he repeated with some difficulty. 'Chron-ic. A chronic 
disorder. I have been its victim from childhood. It is carrying me 
to my grave.' 
'Heaven forbid!' cried Mrs Todgers. 
'Yes, it is,' said Mr Pecksniff, reckless with despair. 'I am 
rather glad of it, upon the whole. You are like her, Mrs Todgers.' 
'Don't squeeze me so tight, pray, Mr Pecksniff. If any of the 
gentlemen should notice us.' 
'For her sake,' said Mr Pecksniff. 'Permit me--in honour of her 
memory. For the sake of a voice from the tomb. You are VERY like 
her Mrs Todgers! What a world this is!' 
'Ah! Indeed you may say that!' cried Mrs Todgers. 
'I'm afraid it is a vain and thoughtless world,' said Mr Pecksniff, 
overflowing with despondency. 'These young people about us. Oh! 
what sense have they of their responsibilities? None. Give me 
your other hand, Mrs Todgers.' 
The lady hesitated, and said 'she didn't like.' 
'Has a voice from the grave no influence?' said Mr Pecksniff, with, 
dismal tenderness. 'This is irreligious! My dear creature.' 
'Hush!' urged Mrs Todgers. 'Really you mustn't.' 
'It's not me,' said Mr Pecksniff. 'Don't suppose it's me; it's the 
voice; it's her voice.' 
Mrs Pecksniff deceased, must have had an unusually thick and husky 
voice for a lady, and rather a stuttering voice, and to say the 
truth somewhat of a drunken voice, if it had ever borne much 
resemblance to that in which Mr Pecksniff spoke just then. But 
perhaps this was delusion on his part. 
'It has been a day of enjoyment, Mrs Todgers, but still it has been 
a day of torture. It has reminded me of my loneliness. What am I 
in the world?' 
'An excellent gentleman, Mr Pecksniff,' said Mrs Todgers. 
'There is consolation in that too,' cried Mr Pecksniff. 'Am I?' 
'There is no better man living,' said Mrs Todgers, 'I am sure.' 
Mr Pecksniff smiled through his tears, and slightly shook his head. 
'You are very good,' he said, 'thank you. It is a great happiness 
to me, Mrs Todgers, to make young people happy. The happiness of my 
pupils is my chief object. I dote upon 'em. They dote upon me too-sometimes.' 
'Always,' said Mrs Todgers. 
'When they say they haven't improved, ma'am,' whispered Mr 
Pecksniff, looking at her with profound mystery, and motioning to 
her to advance her ear a little closer to his mouth. 'When they say 
they haven't improved, ma'am, and the premium was too high, they 
lie! I shouldn't wish it to be mentioned; you will understand me; 
but I say to you as to an old friend, they lie.' 
'Base wretches they must be!' said Mrs Todgers. 
'Madam,' said Mr Pecksniff, 'you are right. I respect you for that 
observation. A word in your ear. To Parents and Guardians. This 
is in confidence, Mrs Todgers?' 
'The strictest, of course!' cried that lady. 
'To Parents and Guardians,' repeated Mr Pecksniff. 'An eligible 
opportunity now offers, which unites the advantages of the best 
practical architectural education with the comforts of a home, and 
the constant association with some, who, however humble their sphere 
and limited their capacity--observe!--are not unmindful of their 
moral responsibilities.' 
Mrs Todgers looked a little puzzled to know what this might mean, as 
well she might; for it was, as the reader may perchance remember, Mr 
Pecksniff's usual form of advertisement when he wanted a pupil; and 
seemed to have no particular reference, at present, to anything. 
But Mr Pecksniff held up his finger as a caution to her not to 
interrupt him. 
'Do you know any parent or guardian, Mrs Todgers,' said Mr 
Pecksniff, 'who desires to avail himself of such an opportunity for 
a young gentleman? An orphan would be preferred. Do you know of 
any orphan with three or four hundred pound?' 
Mrs Todgers reflected, and shook her head. 
'When you hear of an orphan with three or four hundred pound,' said 
Mr Pecksniff, 'let that dear orphan's friends apply, by letter postpaid, 
to S. P., Post Office, Salisbury. I don't know who he is 
exactly. Don't be alarmed, Mrs Todgers,' said Mr Pecksniff, falling 
heavily against her; 'Chronic--chronic! Let's have a little drop of 
something to drink.' 
'Bless my life, Miss Pecksniffs!' cried Mrs Todgers, aloud, 'your 
dear pa's took very poorly!' 
Mr Pecksniff straightened himself by a surprising effort, as every 
one turned hastily towards him; and standing on his feet, regarded 
the assembly with a look of ineffable wisdom. Gradually it gave 
place to a smile; a feeble, helpless, melancholy smile; bland, 
almost to sickliness. 'Do not repine, my friends,' said Mr 
Pecksniff, tenderly. 'Do not weep for me. It is chronic.' And 
with these words, after making a futile attempt to pull off his 
shoes, he fell into the fireplace. 
The youngest gentleman in company had him out in a second. Yes, 
before a hair upon his head was singed, he had him on the hearthrug--
her father! 
She was almost beside herself. So was her sister. Jinkins consoled 
them both. They all consoled them. Everybody had something to say, 
except the youngest gentleman in company, who with a noble selfdevotion 
did the heavy work, and held up Mr Pecksniff's head without 
being taken notice of by anybody. At last they gathered round, and 
agreed to carry him upstairs to bed. The youngest gentleman in 
company was rebuked by Jinkins for tearing Mr Pecksniff's coat! 
Ha, ha! But no matter. 
They carried him upstairs, and crushed the youngest gentleman at 
every step. His bedroom was at the top of the house, and it was a 
long way; but they got him there in course of time. He asked them 
frequently on the road for a little drop of something to drink. It 
seemed an idiosyncrasy. The youngest gentleman in company proposed 
a draught of water. Mr Pecksniff called him opprobious names for 
the suggestion. 
Jinkins and Gander took the rest upon themselves, and made him as 
comfortable as they could, on the outside of his bed; and when he 
seemed disposed to sleep, they left him. But before they had all 
gained the bottom of the staircase, a vision of Mr Pecksniff, 
strangely attired, was seen to flutter on the top landing. He 
desired to collect their sentiments, it seemed, upon the nature of 
human life. 
'My friends,' cried Mr Pecksniff, looking over the banisters, 'let 
us improve our minds by mutual inquiry and discussion. Let us be 
moral. Let us contemplate existence. Where is Jinkins?' 
'Here,' cried that gentleman. 'Go to bed again' 
'To bed!' said Mr Pecksniff. 'Bed! 'Tis the voice of the sluggard, 
I hear him complain, you have woke me too soon, I must slumber 
again. If any young orphan will repeat the remainder of that simple 
piece from Doctor Watts's collection, an eligible opportunity now 
offers.' 
Nobody volunteered. 
'This is very soothing,' said Mr Pecksniff, after a pause. 
'Extremely so. Cool and refreshing; particularly to the legs! The 
legs of the human subject, my friends, are a beautiful production. 
Compare them with wooden legs, and observe the difference between 
the anatomy of nature and the anatomy of art. Do you know,' said Mr 
Pecksniff, leaning over the banisters, with an odd recollection of 
his familiar manner among new pupils at home, 'that I should very 
much like to see Mrs Todgers's notion of a wooden leg, if perfectly 
agreeable to herself!' 
As it appeared impossible to entertain any reasonable hopes of him 
after this speech, Mr Jinkins and Mr Gander went upstairs again, 
and once more got him into bed. But they had not descended to the 
second floor before he was out again; nor, when they had repeated 
the process, had they descended the first flight, before he was out 
again. In a word, as often as he was shut up in his own room, he 
darted out afresh, charged with some new moral sentiment, which he 
continually repeated over the banisters, with extraordinary relish, 
and an irrepressible desire for the improvement of his fellow 
creatures that nothing could subdue. 
Under these circumstances, when they had got him into bed for the 
thirtieth time or so, Mr Jinkins held him, while his companion went 
downstairs in search of Bailey junior, with whom he presently 
returned. That youth having been apprised of the service required 
of him, was in great spirits, and brought up a stool, a candle, and 
his supper; to the end that he might keep watch outside the bedroom 
door with tolerable comfort. 
When he had completed his arrangements, they locked Mr Pecksniff in, 
and left the key on the outside; charging the young page to listen 
attentively for symptoms of an apoplectic nature, with which the 
patient might be troubled, and, in case of any such presenting 
themselves, to summon them without delay. To which Mr Bailey 
modestly replied that 'he hoped he knowed wot o'clock it wos in 
gineral, and didn't date his letters to his friends from Todgers's 
for nothing.' 
CHAPTER TEN 
CONTAINING STRANGE MATTER, ON WHICH MANY EVENTS IN THIS HISTORY MAY, 
FOR THEIR GOOD OR EVIL INFLUENCE, CHIEFLY DEPEND 
But Mr Pecksniff came to town on business. Had he forgotten that? 
Was he always taking his pleasure with Todgers's jovial brood, 
unmindful of the serious demands, whatever they might be, upon his 
calm consideration? No. 
Time and tide will wait for no man, saith the adage. But all men 
have to wait for time and tide. That tide which, taken at the 
flood, would lead Seth Pecksniff on to fortune, was marked down in 
the table, and about to flow. No idle Pecksniff lingered far 
inland, unmindful of the changes of the stream; but there, upon the 
water's edge, over his shoes already, stood the worthy creature, 
prepared to wallow in the very mud, so that it slid towards the 
quarter of his hope. 
The trustfulness of his two fair daughters was beautiful indeed. 
They had that firm reliance on their parent's nature, which taught 
them to feel certain that in all he did he had his purpose straight 
and full before him. And that its noble end and object was himself, 
which almost of necessity included them, they knew. The devotion of 
these maids was perfect. 
Their filial confidence was rendered the more touching, by their 
having no knowledge of their parent's real designs, in the present 
instance. All that they knew of his proceedings was, that every 
morning, after the early breakfast, he repaired to the post office 
and inquired for letters. That task performed, his business for the 
day was over; and he again relaxed, until the rising of another sun 
proclaimed the advent of another post. 
This went on for four or five days. At length, one morning, Mr 
Pecksniff returned with a breathless rapidity, strange to observe in 
him, at other times so calm; and, seeking immediate speech with his 
daughters, shut himself up with them in private conference for two 
whole hours. Of all that passed in this period, only the following 
words of Mr Pecksniff's utterance are known: 
'How he has come to change so very much (if it should turn out as I 
expect, that he has), we needn't stop to inquire. My dears, I have 
my thoughts upon the subject, but I will not impart them. It is 
enough that we will not be proud, resentful, or unforgiving. If he 
wants our friendship he shall have it. We know our duty, I hope!' 
That same day at noon, an old gentleman alighted from a hackney-coach 
at the post-office, and, giving his name, inquired for a letter 
addressed to himself, and directed to be left till called for. It 
had been lying there some days. The superscription was in Mr 
Pecksniff's hand, and it was sealed with Mr Pecksniff's seal. 
It was very short, containing indeed nothing more than an address 
'with Mr Pecksniff's respectful, and (not withstanding what has 
passed) sincerely affectionate regards.' The old gentleman tore off 
the direction--scattering the rest in fragments to the winds--and 
giving it to the coachman, bade him drive as near that place as he 
could. In pursuance of these instructions he was driven to the 
Monument; where he again alighted, and dismissed the vehicle, and 
walked towards Todgers's. 
Though the face, and form, and gait of this old man, and even his 
grip of the stout stick on which he leaned, were all expressive of a 
resolution not easily shaken, and a purpose (it matters little 
whether right or wrong, just now) such as in other days might have 
survived the rack, and had its strongest life in weakest death; 
still there were grains of hesitation in his mind, which made him 
now avoid the house he sought, and loiter to and fro in a gleam of 
sunlight, that brightened the little churchyard hard by. There may 
have been, in the presence of those idle heaps of dust among the 
busiest stir of life, something to increase his wavering; but there 
he walked, awakening the echoes as he paced up and down, until the 
church clock, striking the quarters for the second time since he had 
been there, roused him from his meditation. Shaking off his 
incertitude as the air parted with the sound of the bells, he walked 
rapidly to the house, and knocked at the door. 
Mr Pecksniff was seated in the landlady's little room, and his 
visitor found him reading--by an accident; he apologised for it--an 
excellent theological work. There were cake and wine upon a little 
table--by another accident, for which he also apologised. Indeed he 
said, he had given his visitor up, and was about to partake of that 
simple refreshment with his children, when he knocked at the door. 
'Your daughters are well?' said old Martin, laying down his hat and 
stick. 
Mr Pecksniff endeavoured to conceal his agitation as a father when 
he answered Yes, they were. They were good girls, he said, very 
good. He would not venture to recommend Mr Chuzzlewit to take the 
easy-chair, or to keep out of the draught from the door. If he made 
any such suggestion, he would expose himself, he feared, to most 
unjust suspicion. He would, therefore, content himself with 
remarking that there was an easy-chair in the room, and that the 
door was far from being air-tight. This latter imperfection, he 
might perhaps venture to add, was not uncommonly to be met with in 
old houses. 
The old man sat down in the easy-chair, and after a few moments' 
silence, said: 
'In the first place, let me thank you for coming to London so 
promptly, at my almost unexplained request; I need scarcely add, at 
my cost.' 
'At YOUR cost, my good sir!' cried Mr Pecksniff, in a tone of great 
surprise. 
'It is not,' said Martin, waving his hand impatiently, 'my habit to 
put my--well! my relatives--to any personal expense to gratify my 
caprices.' 
'Caprices, my good sir!' cried Mr Pecksniff 
'That is scarcely the proper word either, in this instance,' said 
the old man. 'No. You are right.' 
Mr Pecksniff was inwardly very much relieved to hear it, though he 
didn't at all know why. 
'You are right,' repeated Martin. 'It is not a caprice. It is 
built up on reason, proof, and cool comparison. Caprices never are. 
Moreover, I am not a capricious man. I never was.' 
'Most assuredly not,' said Mr Pecksniff. 
'How do you know?' returned the other quickly. 'You are to begin to 
know it now. You are to test and prove it, in time to come. You 
and yours are to find that I can be constant, and am not to be 
diverted from my end. Do you hear?' 
'Perfectly,' said Mr Pecksniff. 
'I very much regret,' Martin resumed, looking steadily at him, and 
speaking in a slow and measured tone; 'I very much regret that you 
and I held such a conversation together, as that which passed 
between us at our last meeting. I very much regret that I laid open 
to you what were then my thoughts of you, so freely as I did. The 
intentions that I bear towards you now are of another kind; deserted 
by all in whom I have ever trusted; hoodwinked and beset by all who 
should help and sustain me; I fly to you for refuge. I confide in 
you to be my ally; to attach yourself to me by ties of Interest and 
Expectation'--he laid great stress upon these words, though Mr 
Pecksniff particularly begged him not to mention it; 'and to help me 
to visit the consequences of the very worst species of meanness, 
dissimulation, and subtlety, on the right heads.' 
'My noble sir!' cried Mr Pecksniff, catching at his outstretched 
hand. 'And YOU regret the having harboured unjust thoughts of me! 
YOU with those grey hairs!' 
'Regrets,' said Martin, 'are the natural property of grey hairs; and 
I enjoy, in common with all other men, at least my share of such 
inheritance. And so enough of that. I regret having been severed 
from you so long. If I had known you sooner, and sooner used you as 
you well deserve, I might have been a happier man.' 
Mr Pecksniff looked up to the ceiling, and clasped his hands in 
rapture. 
'Your daughters,' said Martin, after a short silence. 'I don't know 
them. Are they like you?' 
'In the nose of my eldest and the chin of my youngest, Mr 
Chuzzlewit,' returned the widower, 'their sainted parent (not 
myself, their mother) lives again.' 
'I don't mean in person,' said the old man. 'Morally, morally.' 
''Tis not for me to say,' retorted Mr Pecksniff with a gentle smile. 
'I have done my best, sir.' 
'I could wish to see them,' said Martin; 'are they near at hand?' 
They were, very near; for they had in fact been listening at the 
door from the beginning of this conversation until now, when they 
precipitately retired. Having wiped the signs of weakness from his 
eyes, and so given them time to get upstairs, Mr Pecksniff opened 
the door, and mildly cried in the passage, 
'My own darlings, where are you?' 
'Here, my dear pa!' replied the distant voice of Charity. 
'Come down into the back parlour, if you please, my love,' said Mr 
Pecksniff, 'and bring your sister with you.' 
'Yes, my dear pa,' cried Merry; and down they came directly (being 
all obedience), singing as they came. 
Nothing could exceed the astonishment of the two Miss Pecksniffs 
when they found a stranger with their dear papa. Nothing could 
surpass their mute amazement when he said, 'My children, Mr 
Chuzzlewit!' But when he told them that Mr Chuzzlewit and he were 
friends, and that Mr Chuzzlewit had said such kind and tender words 
as pierced his very heart, the two Miss Pecksniffs cried with one 
accord, 'Thank Heaven for this!' and fell upon the old man's neck. 
And when they had embraced him with such fervour of affection that 
no words can describe it, they grouped themselves about his chair, 
and hung over him, as figuring to themselves no earthly joy like 
that of ministering to his wants, and crowding into the remainder 
of his life, the love they would have diffused over their whole 
existence, from infancy, if he--dear obdurate!--had but consented 
to receive the precious offering. 
The old man looked attentively from one to the other, and then at Mr 
Pecksniff, several times. 
'What,' he asked of Mr Pecksniff, happening to catch his eye in its 
descent; for until now it had been piously upraised, with something 
of that expression which the poetry of ages has attributed to a 
domestic bird, when breathing its last amid the ravages of an 
electric storm: 'What are their names?' 
Mr Pecksniff told him, and added, rather hastily; his caluminators 
would have said, with a view to any testamentary thoughts that might 
be flitting through old Martin's mind; 'Perhaps, my dears, you had 
better write them down. Your humble autographs are of no value in 
themselves, but affection may prize them.' 
'Affection,' said the old man, 'will expend itself on the living 
originals. Do not trouble yourselves, my girls, I shall not so 
easily forget you, Charity and Mercy, as to need such tokens of 
remembrance. Cousin!' 
'Sir!' said Mr Pecksniff, with alacrity. 
'Do you never sit down?' 
'Why--yes--occasionally, sir,' said Mr Pecksniff, who had been 
standing all this time. 
'Will you do so now?' 
'Can you ask me,' returned Mr Pecksniff, slipping into a chair 
immediately, 'whether I will do anything that you desire?' 
'You talk confidently,' said Martin, 'and you mean well; but I fear 
you don't know what an old man's humours are. You don't know what 
it is to be required to court his likings and dislikings; to adapt 
yourself to his prejudices; to do his bidding, be it what it may; to 
bear with his distrusts and jealousies; and always still be zealous 
in his service. When I remember how numerous these failings are in 
me, and judge of their occasional enormity by the injurious thoughts 
I lately entertained of you, I hardly dare to claim you for my 
friend.' 
'My worthy sir,' returned his relative, 'how CAN you talk in such a 
painful strain! What was more natural than that you should make one 
slight mistake, when in all other respects you were so very correct, 
and have had such reason--such very sad and undeniable reason--to 
judge of every one about you in the worst light!' 
'True,' replied the other. 'You are very lenient with me.' 
'We always said, my girls and I,' cried Mr Pecksniff with increasing 
obsequiousness, 'that while we mourned the heaviness of our 
misfortune in being confounded with the base and mercenary, still we 
could not wonder at it. My dears, you remember?' 
Oh vividly! A thousand times! 
'We uttered no complaint,' said Mr Pecksniff. 'Occasionally we had 
the presumption to console ourselves with the remark that Truth 
would in the end prevail, and Virtue be triumphant; but not often. 
My loves, you recollect?' 
Recollect! Could he doubt it! Dearest pa, what strange unnecessary 
questions! 
'And when I saw you,' resumed Mr Pecksniff, with still greater 
deference, 'in the little, unassuming village where we take the 
liberty of dwelling, I said you were mistaken in me, my dear sir; 
that was all, I think?' 
'No--not all,' said Martin, who had been sitting with his hand upon 
his brow for some time past, and now looked up again; 'you said much 
more, which, added to other circumstances that have come to my 
knowledge, opened my eyes. You spoke to me, disinterestedly, on 
behalf of--I needn't name him. You know whom I mean.' 
Trouble was expressed in Mr Pecksniff's visage, as he pressed his 
hot hands together, and replied, with humility, 'Quite 
disinterestedly, sir, I assure you.' 
'I know it,' said old Martin, in his quiet way. 'I am sure of it. 
I said so. It was disinterested too, in you, to draw that herd of 
harpies off from me, and be their victim yourself; most other men 
would have suffered them to display themselves in all their 
rapacity, and would have striven to rise, by contrast, in my 
estimation. You felt for me, and drew them off, for which I owe you 
many thanks. Although I left the place, I know what passed behind 
my back, you see!' 
'You amaze me, sir!' cried Mr Pecksniff; which was true enough. 
'My knowledge of your proceedings,' said the old man, does not stop 
at this. You have a new inmate in your house.' 
'Yes, sir,' rejoined the architect, 'I have.' 
'He must quit it' said Martin. 
'For--for yours?' asked Mr Pecksniff, with a quavering mildness. 
'For any shelter he can find,' the old man answered. 'He has 
deceived you.' 
'I hope not' said Mr Pecksniff, eagerly. 'I trust not. I have been 
extremely well disposed towards that young man. I hope it cannot be 
shown that he has forfeited all claim to my protection. Deceit-deceit, 
my dear Mr Chuzzlewit, would be final. I should hold myself 
bound, on proof of deceit, to renounce him instantly.' 
The old man glanced at both his fair supporters, but especially at 
Miss Mercy, whom, indeed, he looked full in the face, with a greater 
demonstration of interest than had yet appeared in his features. 
His gaze again encountered Mr Pecksniff, as he said, composedly: 
'Of course you know that he has made his matrimonial choice?' 
'Oh dear!' cried Mr Pecksniff, rubbing his hair up very stiff upon 
his head, and staring wildly at his daughters. 'This is becoming 
tremendous!' 
'You know the fact?' repeated Martin 
'Surely not without his grandfather's consent and approbation my 
dear sir!' cried Mr Pecksniff. 'Don't tell me that. For the honour 
of human nature, say you're not about to tell me that!' 
'I thought he had suppressed it,' said the old man. 
The indignation felt by Mr Pecksniff at this terrible disclosure, 
was only to be equalled by the kindling anger of his daughters. 
What! Had they taken to their hearth and home a secretly contracted 
serpent; a crocodile, who had made a furtive offer of his hand; an 
imposition on society; a bankrupt bachelor with no effects, trading 
with the spinster world on false pretences! And oh, to think that he 
should have disobeyed and practised on that sweet, that venerable 
gentleman, whose name he bore; that kind and tender guardian; his 
more than father--to say nothing at all of mother--horrible, 
horrible! To turn him out with ignominy would be treatment much too 
good. Was there nothing else that could be done to him? Had he 
incurred no legal pains and penalties? Could it be that the 
statutes of the land were so remiss as to have affixed no punishment 
to such delinquency? Monster; how basely had they been deceived! 
'I am glad to find you second me so warmly,' said the old man 
holding up his hand to stay the torrent of their wrath. 'I will not 
deny that it is a pleasure to me to find you so full of zeal. We 
will consider that topic as disposed of.' 
'No, my dear sir,' cried Mr Pecksniff, 'not as disposed of, until I 
have purged my house of this pollution.' 
'That will follow,' said the old man, 'in its own time. I look upon 
that as done.' 
'You are very good, sir,' answered Mr Pecksniff, shaking his hand. 
'You do me honour. You MAY look upon it as done, I assure you.' 
'There is another topic,' said Martin, 'on which I hope you will 
assist me. You remember Mary, cousin?' 
'The young lady that I mentioned to you, my dears, as having 
interested me so very much,' remarked Mr Pecksniff. 'Excuse my 
interrupting you, sir.' 
'I told you her history?' said the old man. 
'Which I also mentioned, you will recollect, my dears,' cried Mr 
Pecksniff. 'Silly girls, Mr Chuzzlewit--quite moved by it, they 
were!
'Whylook now!' said Martinevidently pleased; 'I feared I should 
have had to urge her case upon youand ask you to regard her 
favourably for my sake. But I find you have no jealousies! Well! 
You have no cause for anyto be sure. She has nothing to gain from 
memy dearsand she knows it.' 
The two Miss Pecksniffs murmured their approval of this wise 
arrangementand their cordial sympathy with its interesting object. 
'If I could have anticipated what has come to pass between us four' 
said the old man thoughfully; 'but it is too late to think of that. 
You would receive her courteouslyyoung ladiesand be kind to her
if need were?' 
Where was the orphan whom the two Miss Pecksniffs would not have 
cherished in their sisterly bosom! But when that orphan was 
commended to their care by one on whom the dammed-up love of years 
was gushing forthwhat exhaustless stores of pure affection yearned 
to expend themselves upon her! 
An interval ensuedduring which Mr Chuzzlewitin an absent frame 
of mindsat gazing at the groundwithout uttering a word; and as 
it was plain that he had no desire to be interrupted in his 
meditationsMr Pecksniff and his daughters were profoundly silent 
also. During the whole of the foregoing dialoguehe had borne his 
part with a coldpassionless promptitudeas though he had learned 
and painfully rehearsed it all a hundred times. Even when his 
expressions were warmest and his language most encouraginghe had 
retained the same mannerwithout the least abatement. But now 
there was a keener brightness in his eyeand more expression in his 
voiceas he saidawakening from his thoughtful mood: 
'You know what will be said of this? Have you reflected?' 
'Said of whatmy dear sir?' Mr Pecksniff asked. 
'Of this new understanding between us.' 
Mr Pecksniff looked benevolently sagaciousand at the same time far 
above all earthly misconstructionas he shook his headand 
observed that a great many things would be said of itno doubt. 
'A great many' rejoined the old man. 'Some will say that I dote in 
my old age; that illness has shaken me; that I have lost all 
strength of mindand have grown childish. You can bear that?' 
Mr Pecksniff answered that it would be dreadfully hard to bearbut 
he thought he couldif he made a great effort. 
'Others will say--I speak of disappointedangry people only--that 
you have lied and fawnedand wormed yourself through dirty ways 
into my favour; by such concessions and such crooked deedssuch 
meannesses and vile endurancesas nothing could repay; nonot the 
legacy of half the world we live in. You can bear that?' 
Mr Pecksniff made reply that this would be also very hard to bear
as reflectingin some degreeon the discernment of Mr Chuzzlewit. 
Still he had a modest confidence that he could sustain the calumny
with the help of a good conscienceand that gentleman's friendship. 
'With the great mass of slanderers' said old Martinleaning back 
in his chair'the taleas I clearly foreseewill run thus: That 
to mark my contempt for the rabble whom I despisedI chose from 
among them the very worstand made him do my willand pampered and 
enriched him at the cost of all the rest. Thatafter casting about 
for the means of a punishment which should rankle in the bosoms of 
these kites the mostand strike into their gallI devised this 
scheme at a time when the last link in the chain of grateful love 
and dutythat held me to my racewas roughly snapped asunder; 
roughlyfor I loved him well; roughlyfor I had ever put my trust 
in his affection; roughlyfor that he broke it when I loved him 
most--God help me!--and he without a pang could throw me offwhile I 
clung about his heart! Now' said the old mandismissing this 
passionate outburst as suddenly as he had yielded to it'is your 
mind made up to bear this likewise? Lay your account with having it 
to bearand put no trust in being set right by me.' 
'My dear Mr Chuzzlewit' cried Pecksniff in an ecstasy'for such a 
man as you have shown yourself to be this day; for a man so injured
yet so very humane; for a man so--I am at a loss what precise term 
to use--yet at the same time so remarkably--I don't know how to 
express my meaning; for such a man as I have describedI hope it is 
no presumption to say that Iand I am sure I may add my children 
also (my dearswe perfectly agree in thisI think?)would bear 
anything whatever!' 
'Enough' said Martin. 'You can charge no consequences on me. When 
do you retire home?' 
'Whenever you pleasemy dear sir. To-night if you desire it.' 
'I desire nothing' returned the old man'that is unreasonable. 
Such a request would be. Will you be ready to return at the end of 
this week?' 
The very time of all others that Mr Pecksniff would have suggested 
if it had been left to him to make his own choice. As to his 
daughters--the words'Let us be at home on Saturdaydear pa' were 
actually upon their lips. 
'Your expensescousin' said Martintaking a folded slip of paper 
from his pocketbook'may possibly exceed that amount. If solet 
me know the balance that I owe youwhen we next meet. It would be 
useless if I told you where I live just now; indeedI have no fixed 
abode. When I haveyou shall know it. You and your daughters may 
expect to see me before long; in the meantime I need not tell you 
that we keep our own confidence. What you will do when you get home 
is understood between us. Give me no account of it at any time; and 
never refer to it in any way. I ask that as a favour. I am 
commonly a man of few wordscousin; and all that need be said just 
now is saidI think.' 
'One glass of wine--one morsel of this homely cake?' cried Mr 
Pecksniffventuring to detain him. 'My dears--!' 
The sisters flew to wait upon him. 
'Poor girls!' said Mr Pecksniff. 'You will excuse their agitation
my dear sir. They are made up of feeling. A bad commodity to go 
through the world withMr Chuzzlewit! My youngest daughter is 
almost as much of a woman as my eldestis she notsir?' 
'Which IS the youngest?' asked the old man. 
'Mercyby five years' said Mr Pecksniff. 'We sometimes venture to 
consider her rather a fine figuresir. Speaking as an artistI 
may perhaps be permitted to suggest that its outline is graceful and 
correct. I am naturally' said Mr Pecksniffdrying his hands upon 
his handkerchiefand looking anxiously in his cousin's face at 
almost every word'proudif I may use the expressionto have a 
daughter who is constructed on the best models.' 
'She seems to have a lively disposition' observed Martin. 
'Dear me!' said Mr Pecksniff. 'That is quite remarkable. You have 
defined her charactermy dear siras correctly as if you had known 
her from her birth. She HAS a lively disposition. I assure youmy 
dear sirthat in our unpretending home her gaiety is delightful.' 
'No doubt' returned the old man. 
'Charityupon the other hand' said Mr Pecksniff'is remarkable 
for strong senseand for rather a deep tone of sentimentif the 
partiality of a father may be excused in saying so. A wonderful 
affection between themmy dear sir! Allow me to drink your health. 
Bless you!' 
'I little thought' retorted Martin'but a month agothat I should 
be breaking bread and pouring wine with you. I drink to you.' 
Not at all abashed by the extraordinary abruptness with which these 
latter words were spokenMr Pecksniff thanked him devoutly. 
'Now let me go' said Martinputting down the wine when he had 
merely touched it with his lips. 'My dearsgood morning!' 
But this distant form of farewell was by no means tender enough for 
the yearnings of the young ladieswho again embraced him with all 
their hearts--with all their arms at any rate--to which parting 
caresses their new-found friend submitted with a better grace than 
might have been expected from one whonot a moment beforehad 
pledged their parent in such a very uncomfortable manner. These 
endearments terminatedhe took a hasty leave of Mr Pecksniff and 
withdrewfollowed to the door by both father and daughterswho 
stood there kissing their hands and beaming with affection until he 
disappeared; thoughby the wayhe never once looked backafter he 
had crossed the threshold. 
When they returned into the houseand were again alone in Mrs 
Todgers's roomthe two young ladies exhibited an unusual amount of 
gaiety; insomuch that they clapped their handsand laughedand 
looked with roguish aspects and a bantering air upon their dear 
papa. This conduct was so very unaccountablethat Mr Pecksniff 
(being singularly grave himself) could scarcely choose but ask them 
what it meant; and took them to taskin his gentle mannerfor 
yielding to such light emotions. 
'If it was possible to divine any cause for this merrimenteven the 
most remote' he said'I should not reprove you. But when you can 
have none whatever--ohreallyreally!' 
This admonition had so little effect on Mercythat she was obliged 
to hold her handkerchief before her rosy lipsand to throw herself 
back in her chairwith every demonstration of extreme amusement; 
which want of duty so offended Mr Pecksniff that he reproved her in 
set termsand gave her his parental advice to correct herself in 
solitude and contemplation. But at that juncture they were 
disturbed by the sound of voices in dispute; and as it proceeded 
from the next roomthe subject matter of the altercation quickly 
reached their ears. 
'I don't care that! Mrs Todgers' said the young gentleman who had 
been the youngest gentleman in company on the day of the festival; 
'I don't care THATma'am' said hesnapping his fingers'for 
Jinkins. Don't suppose I do.' 
'I am quite certain you don'tsir' replied Mrs Todgers. 'You have 
too independent a spiritI knowto yield to anybody. And quite 
right. There is no reason why you should give way to any gentleman. 
Everybody must be well aware of that.' 
'I should think no more of admitting daylight into the fellow' said 
the youngest gentlemanin a desperate voice'than if he was a 
bulldog.' 
Mrs Todgers did not stop to inquire whetheras a matter of 
principlethere was any particular reason for admitting daylight 
even into a bulldogotherwise than by the natural channel of his 
eyesbut she seemed to wring her handsand she moaned. 
'Let him be careful' said the youngest gentleman. 'I give him 
warning. No man shall step between me and the current of my 
vengeance. I know a Cove--' he used that familiar epithet in his 
agitation but corrected himself by adding'a gentleman of property
I mean--who practices with a pair of pistols (fellows too) of his 
own. If I am driven to borrow 'emand to send at friend to Jinkins
a tragedy will get into the papers. That's all.' 
Again Mrs Todgers moaned. 
'I have borne this long enough' said the youngest gentleman but now 
my soul rebels against itand I won't stand it any longer. I left 
home originallybecause I had that within me which wouldn't be 
domineered over by a sister; and do you think I'm going to be put 
down by HIM? No.' 
'It is very wrong in Mr Jinkins; I know it is perfectly inexcusable 
in Mr Jinkinsif he intends it' observed Mrs Todgers 
'If he intends it!' cried the youngest gentleman. 'Don't he 
interrupt and contradict me on every occasion? Does he ever fail to 
interpose himself between me and anything or anybody that he sees I 
have set my mind upon? Does he make a point of always pretending to 
forget mewhen he's pouring out the beer? Does he make bragging 
remarks about his razorsand insulting allusions to people who have 
no necessity to shave more than once a week? But let him look out! 
He'll find himself shavedpretty closebefore longand so I tell 
him.' 
The young gentleman was mistaken in this closing sentenceinasmuch 
as he never told it to Jinkinsbut always to Mrs Todgers. 
'However' he said'these are not proper subjects for ladies' ears. 
All I've got to say to youMrs Todgersisa week's notice from 
next Saturday. The same house can't contain that miscreant and me 
any longer. If we get over the intermediate time without bloodshed
you may think yourself pretty fortunate. I don't myself expect we 
shall.' 
'Deardear!' cried Mrs Todgers'what would I have given to have 
prevented this? To lose yousirwould be like losing the house's 
right-hand. So popular as you are among the gentlemen; so generally 
looked up to; and so much liked! I do hope you'll think better of 
it; if on nobody else's accounton mine.' 
'There's Jinkins' said the youngest gentlemanmoodily. 'Your 
favourite. He'll console youand the gentlemen toofor the loss 
of twenty such as me. I'm not understood in this house. I never 
have been.' 
'Don't run away with that opinionsir!' cried Mrs Todgerswith a 
show of honest indignation. 'Don't make such a charge as that 
against the establishmentI must beg of you. It is not so bad as 
that comes tosir. Make any remark you please against the 
gentlemenor against me; but don't say you're not understood in 
this house.' 
'I'm not treated as if I was' said the youngest gentleman. 
'There you make a great mistakesir' returned Mrs Todgersin the 
same strain. 'As many of the gentlemen and I have often saidyou 
are too sensitive. That's where it is. You are of too susceptible 
a nature; it's in your spirit.' 
The young gentleman coughed. 
'And as' said Mrs Todgers'as to Mr JinkinsI must beg of youif 
we ARE to partto understand that I don't abet Mr Jinkins by any 
means. Far from it. I could wish that Mr Jinkins would take a 
lower tone in this establishmentand would not be the means of 
raising differences between me and gentlemen that I can much less 
bear to part with than I could with Mr Jinkins. Mr Jinkins is not 
such a boardersir' added Mrs Todgers'that all considerations of 
private feeling and respect give way before him. Quite the 
contraryI assure you.' 
The young gentleman was so much mollified by these and similar 
speeches on the part of Mrs Todgersthat he and that lady gradually 
changed positions; so that she became the injured partyand he was 
understood to be the injurer; but in a complimentarynot in an 
offensive sense; his cruel conduct being attributable to his exalted 
natureand to that alone. Soin the endthe young gentleman 
withdrew his noticeand assured Mrs Todgers of his unalterable 
regard; and having done sowent back to business. 
'Goodness meMiss Pecksniffs!' cried that ladyas she came into 
the back roomand sat wearily downwith her basket on her knees
and her hands folded upon it'what a trial of temper it is to keep 
a house like this! You must have heard most of what has just passed. 
Now did you ever hear the like?' 
'Never!' said the two Miss Pecksniffs. 
'Of all the ridiculous young fellows that ever I had to deal with' 
resumed Mrs Todgers'that is the most ridiculous and unreasonable. 
Mr Jinkins is hard upon him sometimesbut not half as hard as he 
deserves. To mention such a gentleman as Mr Jinkins in the same 
breath with HIM--you know it's too much! And yet he's as jealous 
of himbless youas if he was his equal.' 
The young ladies were greatly entertained by Mrs Todgers's account
no less than with certain anecdotes illustrative of the youngest 
gentleman's characterwhich she went on to tell them. But Mr 
Pecksniff looked quite stern and angry; and when she had concluded
said in a solemn voice: 
'PrayMrs Todgersif I may inquirewhat does that young gentleman 
contribute towards the support of these premises?' 
'Whysirfor what HE hashe pays about eighteen shillings a 
week!' said Mrs Todgers. 
'Eighteen shillings a week!' repeated Mr Pecksniff. 
'Taking one week with another; as near that as possible' said Mrs 
Todgers. 
Mr Pecksniff rose from his chairfolded his armslooked at her
and shook his head. 
'And do you mean to sayma'am--is it possibleMrs Todgers--that 
for such a miserable consideration as eighteen shillings a weeka 
female of your understanding can so far demean herself as to wear a 
double faceeven for an instant?' 
'I am forced to keep things on the square if I cansir' faltered 
Mrs Todgers. 'I must preserve peace among themand keep my 
connection togetherif possibleMr Pecksniff. The profit is very 
small.' 
'The profit!' cried that gentlemanlaying great stress upon the 
word. 'The profitMrs Todgers! You amaze me!' 
He was so severethat Mrs Todgers shed tears. 
'The profit!' repeated Mr pecksniff. 'The profit of dissimulation! 
To worship the golden calf of Baalfor eighteen shillings a week!' 
'Don't in your own goodness be too hard upon meMr Pecksniff' 
cried Mrs Todgerstaking out her handkerchief. 
'Oh CalfCalf!' cried Mr Pecksniff mournfully. 'OhBaalBaal! oh 
my friendMrs Todgers! To barter away that precious jewelselfesteem
and cringe to any mortal creature--for eighteen shillings a 
week!' 
He was so subdued and overcome by the reflectionthat he 
immediately took down his hat from its peg in the passageand went 
out for a walkto compose his feelings. Anybody passing him in the 
street might have known him for a good man at first sight; for his 
whole figure teemed with a consciousness of the moral homily he had 
read to Mrs Todgers. 
Eighteen shillings a week! Justmost justthy censureupright 
Pecksniff! Had it been for the sake of a ribbonstaror garter; 
sleeves of lawna great man's smilea seat in parliamenta tap 
upon the shoulder from a courtly sword; a placea partyor a 
thriving lieor eighteen thousand poundsor even eighteen 
hundred;--but to worship the golden calf for eighteen shillings a 
week! oh pitifulpitiful! 
CHAPTER ELEVEN 
WHEREIN A CERTAIN GENTLEMAN BECOMES PARTICULAR IN HIS ATTENTIONS TO 
A CERTAIN LADY; AND MORE COMING EVENTS THAN ONECAST THEIR SHADOWS 
BEFORE 
The family were within two or three days of their departure from Mrs 
Todgers'sand the commercial gentlemen were to a man despondent and 
not to be comfortedbecause of the approaching separationwhen 
Bailey juniorat the jocund time of noonpresented himself before 
Miss Charity Pecksniffthen sitting with her sister in the banquet 
chamberhemming six new pocket-handkerchiefs for Mr Jinkins; and 
having expressed a hopepreliminary and piousthat he might be 
blestgave her in his pleasant way to understand that a visitor 
attended to pay his respects to herand was at that moment waiting 
in the drawing-room. Perhaps this last announcement showed in a 
more striking point of view than many lengthened speeches could have 
donethe trustfulness and faith of Bailey's nature; since he had
in factlast seen the visitor on the door-matwhereafter 
signifying to him that he would do well to go upstairshe had left 
him to the guidance of his own sagacity. Hence it was at least an 
even chance that the visitor was then wandering on the roof of the 
houseor vainly seeking to extricate himself from the maze of 
bedrooms; Todgers's being precisely that kind of establishment in 
which an unpiloted stranger is pretty sure to find himself in some 
place where he least expects and least desires to be. 
'A gentleman for me!' cried Charitypausing in her work; 'my 
graciousBailey!' 
'Ah!' said Bailey. 'It IS my graciousan't it? Wouldn't I be 
gracious neithernot if I wos him!' 
The remark was rendered somewhat obscure in itselfby reason (as 
the reader may have observed) of a redundancy of negatives; but 
accompanied by action expressive of a faithful couple walking armin-
arm towards a parochial churchmutually exchanging looks of 
loveit clearly signified this youth's conviction that the caller's 
purpose was of an amorous tendency. Miss Charity affected to 
reprove so great a liberty; but she could not help smiling. He was 
a strange boyto be sure. There was always some ground of 
probability and likelihood mingled with his absurd behaviour. That 
was the best of it! 
'But I don't know any gentlemenBailey' said Miss Pecksniff. 'I 
think you must have made a mistake.' 
Mr Bailey smiled at the extreme wildness of such a suppositionand 
regarded the young ladies with unimpaired affability. 
'My dear Merry' said Charity'who CAN it be? Isn't it odd? I 
have a great mind not to go to him really. So very strangeyou 
know!' 
The younger sister plainly considered that this appeal had its 
origin in the pride of being called upon and asked for; and that it 
was intended as an assertion of superiorityand a retaliation upon 
her for having captured the commercial gentlemen. Thereforeshe 
repliedwith great affection and politenessthat it wasno doubt
very strange indeed; and that she was totally at a loss to conceive 
what the ridiculous person unknown could mean by it. 
'Quite impossible to divine!' said Charitywith some sharpness
'though stillat the same timeyou needn't be angrymy dear.' 
'Thank you' retorted Merrysinging at her needle. 'I am quite 
aware of thatmy love.' 
'I am afraid your head is turnedyou silly thing' said Cherry. 
'Do you knowmy dear' said Merrywith engaging candour'that I 
have been afraid of thatmyselfall along! So much incense and 
nonsenseand all the rest of itis enough to turn a stronger head 
than mine. What a relief it must be to youmy dearto be so very 
comfortable in that respectand not to be worried by those odious 
men! How do you do itCherry?' 
This artless inquiry might have led to turbulent resultsbut for 
the strong emotions of delight evinced by Bailey juniorwhose 
relish in the turn the conversation had lately taken was so acute
that it impelled and forced him to the instantaneous performance of 
a dancing stepextremely difficult in its natureand only to be 
achieved in a moment of ecstasywhich is commonly called The Frog's 
Hornpipe. A manifestation so livelybrought to their immediate 
recollection the great virtuous precept'Keep up appearances 
whatever you do' in which they had been educated. They forbore at 
onceand jointly signified to Mr Bailey that if he should presume 
to practice that figure any more in their presencethey would 
instantly acquaint Mrs Todgers with the factand would demand his 
condign punishmentat the hands of that lady. The young gentleman 
having expressed the bitterness of his contrition by affecting to 
wipe away scalding tears with his apronand afterwards feigning to 
wring a vast amount of water from that garmentheld the door open 
while Miss Charity passed out; and so that damsel went in state 
upstairs to receive her mysterious adorer. 
By some strange occurrence of favourable circumstances he had found 
out the drawing-roomand was sitting there alone. 
'Ahcousin!' he said. 'Here I amyou see. You thought I was 
lostI'll be bound. Well! how do you find yourself by this time?' 
Miss Charity replied that she was quite welland gave Mr Jonas 
Chuzzlewit her hand. 
'That's right' said Mr Jonas'and you've got over the fatigues of 
the journey have you? I say. How's the other one?' 
'My sister is very wellI believe' returned the young lady. 'I 
have not heard her complain of any indispositionsir. Perhaps you 
would like to see herand ask her yourself?' 
'Nono cousin!' said Mr Jonassitting down beside her on the 
window-seat. 'Don't be in a hurry. There's no occasion for that
you know. What a cruel girl you are!' 
'It's impossible for YOU to know' said Cherry'whether I am or 
not.' 
'Wellperhaps it is' said Mr Jonas. 'I say--Did you think I was 
lost? You haven't told me that.' 
'I didn't think at all about it' answered Cherry. 
'Didn't you though?' said Jonaspondering upon this strange reply. 
'Did the other one?' 
'I am sure it's impossible for me to say what my sister mayor may 
not have thought on such a subject' cried Cherry. 'She never said 
anything to me about itone way or other.' 
'Didn't she laugh about it?' inquired Jonas. 
'No. She didn't even laugh about it' answered Charity. 
'She's a terrible one to laughan't she?' said Jonaslowering his 
voice. 
'She is very lively' said Cherry. 
'Liveliness is a pleasant thing--when it don't lead to spending 
money. An't it?' asked Mr Jonas. 
'Very much soindeed' said Cherrywith a demureness of manner 
that gave a very disinterested character to her assent. 
'Such liveliness as yours I meanyou know' observed Mr Jonasas 
he nudged her with his elbow. 'I should have come to see you 
beforebut I didn't know where you was. How quick you hurried off
that morning!' 
'I was amenable to my papa's directions' said Miss Charity. 
'I wish he had given me his direction' returned her cousin'and 
then I should have found you out before. WhyI shouldn't have 
found you even nowif I hadn't met him in the street this morning. 
What a sleeksly chap he is! Just like a tomcatan't he?' 
'I must trouble you to have the goodness to speak more respectfully 
of my papaMr Jonas' said Charity. 'I can't allow such a tone as 
thateven in jest.' 
'Ecodyou may say what you like of MY fatherthenand so I give 
you leave' said Jonas. 'I think it's liquid aggravation that 
circulates through his veinsand not regular blood. How old should 
you think my father wascousin?' 
'Oldno doubt' replied Miss Charity; 'but a fine old gentleman.' 
'A fine old gentleman!' repeated Jonasgiving the crown of his hat 
an angry knock. 'Ah! It's time he was thinking of being drawn out a 
little finer too. Whyhe's eighty!' 
'Is heindeed?' said the young lady. 
'And ecod' cried Jonas'now he's gone so far without giving inI 
don't see much to prevent his being ninety; nonor even a hundred. 
Whya man with any feeling ought to be ashamed of being eightylet 
alone more. Where's his religionI should like to knowwhen he 
goes flying in the face of the Bible like that? Threescore-andten's 
the markand no man with a conscienceand a proper sense of 
what's expected of himhas any business to live longer.' 
Is any one surprised at Mr Jonas making such a reference to such a 
book for such a purpose? Does any one doubt the old sawthat the 
Devil (being a layman) quotes Scripture for his own ends? If he 
will take the trouble to look about himhe may find a greater 
number of confirmations of the fact in the occurrences of any single 
daythan the steam-gun can discharge balls in a minute. 
'But there's enough of my father' said Jonas; 'it's of no use to go 
putting one's self out of the way by talking about HIM. I called to 
ask you to come and take a walkcousinand see some of the sights; 
and to come to our house afterwardsand have a bit of something. 
Pecksniff will most likely look in in the eveninghe saysand 
bring you home. Seehere's his writing; I made him put it down 
this morning when he told me he shouldn't be back before I came 
here; in case you wouldn't believe me. There's nothing like proof
is there? Haha! I say--you'll bring the other oneyou know!' 
Miss Charity cast her eyes upon her father's autographwhich merely 
said--'Gomy childrenwith your cousin. Let there be union among 
us when it is possible;' and after enough of hesitation to impart a 
proper value to her consentwithdrew to prepare her sister and 
herself for the excursion. She soon returnedaccompanied by Miss 
Mercywho was by no means pleased to leave the brilliant triumphs 
of Todgers's for the society of Mr Jonas and his respected father. 
'Aha!' cried Jonas. 'There you areare you?' 
'Yesfright' said Mercy'here I am; and I would much rather be 
anywhere elseI assure you.' 
'You don't mean that' cried Mr Jonas. 'You can'tyou know. It 
isn't possible.' 
'You can have what opinion you likefright' retorted Mercy. 'I am 
content to keep mine; and mine is that you are a very unpleasant
odiousdisagreeable person.' Here she laughed heartilyand seemed 
to enjoy herself very much. 
'Ohyou're a sharp gal!' said Mr Jonas. 'She's a regular teaser
an't shecousin?' 
Miss Charity replied in effectthat she was unable to say what the 
habits and propensities of a regular teaser might be; and that even 
if she possessed such informationit would ill become her to admit 
the existence of any creature with such an unceremonious name in her 
family; far less in the person of a beloved sister; 'whatever' 
added Cherry with an angry glance'whatever her real nature may 
be.' 
'Wellmy dear' said Merry'the only observation I have to make 
isthat if we don't go out at onceI shall certainly take my 
bonnet off againand stay at home.' 
This threat had the desired effect of preventing any farther 
altercationfor Mr Jonas immediately proposed an adjournmentand 
the same being carried unanimouslythey departed from the house 
straightway. On the doorstepMr Jonas gave an arm to each cousin; 
which act of gallantry being observed by Bailey juniorfrom the 
garret windowwas by him saluted with a loud and violent fit of 
coughingto which paroxysm he was still the victim when they turned 
the corner. 
Mr Jonas inquired in the first instance if they were good walkers 
and being answered'Yes' submitted their pedestrian powers to a 
pretty severe test; for he showed them as many sightsin the way of 
bridgeschurchesstreetsoutsides of theatresand other free 
spectaclesin that one forenoonas most people see in a 
twelvemonth. It was observable in this gentlemanthat he had an 
insurmountable distaste to the insides of buildingsand that he was 
perfectly acquainted with the merits of all showsin respect of 
which there was any charge for admissionwhich it seemed were every 
one detestableand of the very lowest grade of merit. He was so 
thoroughly possessed with this opinionthat when Miss Charity 
happened to mention the circumstance of their having been twice or 
thrice to the theatre with Mr Jinkins and partyhe inquiredas a 
matter of course'where the orders came from?' and being told that 
Mr Jinkins and party paidwas beyond description entertained
observing that 'they must be nice flatscertainly;' and often in 
the course of the walkbursting out again into a perfect convulsion 
of laughter at the surpassing silliness of those gentlemenand 
(doubtless) at his own superior wisdom. 
When they had been out for some hours and were thoroughly fatigued
it being by that time twilightMr Jonas intimated that he would 
show them one of the best pieces of fun with which he was 
acquainted. This joke was of a practical kindand its humour lay 
in taking a hackney-coach to the extreme limits of possibility for a 
shilling. Happily it brought them to the place where Mr Jonas 
dweltor the young ladies might have rather missed the point and 
cream of the jest. 
The old-established firm of Anthony Chuzzlewit and SonManchester 
Warehousemenand so forthhad its place of business in a very 
narrow street somewhere behind the Post Office; where every house 
was in the brightest summer morning very gloomy; and where light 
porters watered the pavementeach before his own employer's 
premisesin fantastic patternsin the dog-days; and where spruce 
gentlemen with their hands in the pockets of symmetrical trousers
were always to be seen in warm weathercontemplating their 
undeniable boots in dusty warehouse doorways; which appeared to be 
the hardest work they didexcept now and then carrying pens behind 
their ears. A dimdirtysmokytumble-downrotten old house it 
wasas anybody would desire to see; but there the firm of Anthony 
Chuzzlewit and Son transacted all their business and their pleasure 
toosuch as it was; for neither the young man nor the old had any 
other residenceor any care or thought beyond its narrow limits. 
Businessas may be readily supposedwas the main thing in this 
establishment; insomuch indeed that it shouldered comfort out of 
doorsand jostled the domestic arrangements at every turn. Thus in 
the miserable bedrooms there were files of moth-eaten letters 
hanging up against the walls; and linen rollersand fragments of 
old patternsand odds and ends of spoiled goodsstrewed upon the 
ground; while the meagre bedsteadswashing-standsand scraps of 
carpetwere huddled away into corners as objects of secondary 
considerationnot to be thought of but as disagreeable necessities
furnishing no profitand intruding on the one affair of life. The 
single sitting-room was on the same principlea chaos of boxes and 
old papersand had more counting-house stools in it than chairs; 
not to mention a great monster of a desk straddling over the middle 
of the floorand an iron safe sunk into the wall above the fireplace. 
The solitary little table for purposes of refection and social 
enjoymentbore as fair a proportion to the desk and other business 
furnitureas the graces and harmless relaxations of life had ever 
donein the persons of the old man and his sonto their pursuit 
of wealth. It was meanly laid out now for dinner; and in a chair 
before the fire sat Anthony himselfwho rose to greet his son 
and his fair cousins as they entered. 
An ancient proverb warns us that we should not expect to find old 
heads upon young shoulders; to which it may be added that we seldom 
meet with that unnatural combinationbut we feel a strong desire to 
knock them off; merely from an inherent love we have of seeing 
things in their right places. It is not improbable that many men
in no wise choleric by naturefelt this impulse rising up within 
themwhen they first made the acquaintance of Mr Jonas; but if 
they had known him more intimately in his own houseand had sat 
with him at his own boardit would assuredly have been paramount to 
all other considerations. 
'Wellghost!' said Mr Jonasdutifully addressing his parent by 
that title. 'Is dinner nearly ready?' 
'I should think it was' rejoined the old man. 
'What's the good of that?' rejoined the son. 'I should think it 
was. I want to know.' 
'Ah! I don't know for certain' said Anthony. 
'You don't know for certain' rejoined his son in a lower tone. 
'No. You don't know anything for certainYOU don't. Give me your 
candle here. I want it for the gals.' 
Anthony handed him a battered old office candlestickwith which Mr 
Jonas preceded the young ladies to the nearest bedroomwhere he 
left them to take off their shawls and bonnets; and returning
occupied himself in opening a bottle of winesharpening the 
carving-knifeand muttering compliments to his fatheruntil they 
and the dinner appeared together. The repast consisted of a hot leg 
of mutton with greens and potatoes; and the dishes having been set 
upon the table by a slipshod old womanthey were left to enjoy it 
after their own manner. 
'Bachelor's Hallyou knowcousin' said Mr Jonas to Charity. 'I 
say--the other one will be having a laugh at this when she gets 
homewon't she? Here; you sit on the right side of meand I'll 
have her upon the left. Other onewill you come here?' 
'You're such a fright' replied Mercy'that I know I shall have no 
appetite if I sit so near you; but I suppose I must.' 
'An't she lively?' whispered Mr Jonas to the elder sisterwith his 
favourite elbow emphasis. 
'Oh I really don't know!' replied Miss Pecksnifftartly. 'I am 
tired of being asked such ridiculous questions.' 
'What's that precious old father of mine about now?' said Mr Jonas
seeing that his parent was travelling up and down the room instead 
of taking his seat at table. 'What are you looking for?' 
'I've lost my glassesJonas' said old Anthony. 
'Sit down without your glassescan't you?' returned his son. 'You 
don't eat or drink out of 'emI think; and where's that sleepyheaded 
old Chuffey got to! Nowstupid. Oh! you know your namedo 
you?' 
It would seem that he didn'tfor he didn't come until the father 
called. As he spokethe door of a small glass officewhich was 
partitioned off from the rest of the roomwas slowly openedand a 
little blear-eyedweazen-facedancient man came creeping out. He 
was of a remote fashionand dustylike the rest of the furniture; 
he was dressed in a decayed suit of black; with breeches garnished 
at the knees with rusty wisps of ribbonthe very paupers of 
shoestrings; on the lower portion of his spindle legs were dingy 
worsted stockings of the same colour. He looked as if he had 
been put away and forgotten half a century beforeand somebody 
had just found him in a lumber-closet. 
Such as he washe came slowly creeping on towards the tableuntil 
at last he crept into the vacant chairfrom whichas his dim 
faculties became conscious of the presence of strangersand those 
strangers ladieshe rose againapparently intending to make a bow. 
But he sat down once more without having made itand breathing on 
his shrivelled hands to warm themremained with his poor blue nose 
immovable above his platelooking at nothingwith eyes that saw 
nothingand a face that meant nothing. Take him in that stateand 
he was an embodiment of nothing. Nothing else. 
'Our clerk' said Mr Jonasas host and master of the ceremonies: 
'Old Chuffey.' 
'Is he deaf?' inquired one of the young ladies. 
'NoI don't know that he is. He an't deafis hefather?' 
'I never heard him say he was' replied the old man. 
'Blind?' inquired the young ladies. 
'N--no. I never understood that he was at all blind' said Jonas
carelessly. 'You don't consider him sodo youfather?' 
'Certainly not' replied Anthony. 
'What is hethen?' 
'WhyI'll tell you what he is' said Mr Jonasapart to the young 
ladies'he's precious oldfor one thing; and I an't best pleased 
with him for thatfor I think my father must have caught it of him. 
He's a strange old chapfor another' he added in a louder voice
'and don't understand any one hardlybut HIM!' He pointed to his 
honoured parent with the carving-forkin order that they might know 
whom he meant. 
'How very strange!' cried the sisters. 
'Whyyou see' said Mr Jonas'he's been addling his old brains 
with figures and book-keeping all his life; and twenty years ago or 
so he went and took a fever. All the time he was out of his head 
(which was three weeks) he never left off casting up; and he got to 
so many million at last that I don't believe he's ever been quite 
right since. We don't do much business now thoughand he an't a 
bad clerk.' 
'A very good one' said Anthony. 
'Well! He an't a dear one at all events' observed Jonas; 'and he 
earns his saltwhich is enough for our look-out. I was telling you 
that he hardly understands any one except my father; he always 
understands himthoughand wakes up quite wonderful. He's been 
used to his ways so longyou see! WhyI've seen him play whist
with my father for a partner; and a good rubber too; when he had no 
more notion what sort of people he was playing againstthan you 
have.' 
'Has he no appetite?' asked Merry. 
'Ohyes' said Jonasplying his own knife and fork very fast. 'He 
eats--when he's helped. But he don't care whether he waits a minute 
or an houras long as father's here; so when I'm at all sharp set
as I am to-dayI come to him after I've taken the edge off my own 
hungeryou know. NowChuffeystupidare you ready?' 
Chuffey remained immovable. 
'Always a perverse old filehe was' said Mr Jonascoolly helping 
himself to another slice. 'Ask himfather.' 
'Are you ready for your dinnerChuffey?' asked the old man 
'Yesyes' said Chuffeylighting up into a sentient human creature 
at the first sound of the voiceso that it was at once a curious 
and quite a moving sight to see him. 'Yesyes. Quite readyMr 
Chuzzlewit. Quite readysir. All readyall readyall ready.' 
With that he stoppedsmilinglyand listened for some further 
address; but being spoken to no morethe light forsook his face by 
little and littleuntil he was nothing again. 
'He'll be very disagreeablemind' said Jonasaddressing his 
cousins as he handed the old man's portion to his father. 'He 
always chokes himself when it an't broth. Look at himnow! Did 
you ever see a horse with such a wall-eyed expression as he's got? 
If it hadn't been for the joke of it I wouldn't have let him come 
in to-day; but I thought he'd amuse you.' 
The poor old subject of this humane speech washappily for himself
as unconscious of its purport as of most other remarks that were 
made in his presence. But the mutton being toughand his gums 
weakhe quickly verified the statement relative to his choking 
propensitiesand underwent so much in his attempts to dinethat Mr 
Jonas was infinitely amused; protesting that he had seldom seen him 
better company in all his lifeand that he was enough to make a man 
split his sides with laughing. Indeedhe went so far as to assure 
the sistersthat in this point of view he considered Chuffey 
superior to his own father; whichas he significantly addedwas 
saying a great deal. 
It was strange enough that Anthony Chuzzlewithimself so old a man
should take a pleasure in these gibings of his estimable son at the 
expense of the poor shadow at their table. But he did
unquestionably; though not so much--to do him justice--with 
reference to their ancient clerkas in exultation at the sharpness 
of Jonas. For the same reason that young man's coarse allusions
even to himselffilled him with a stealthy glee; causing him to rub 
his hands and chuckle covertlyas if he said in his sleeve'I 
taught him. I trained him. This is the heir of my bringing-up. 
Slycunningand covetoushe'll not squander my money. I worked 
for this; I hoped for this; it has been the great end and aim of my 
life.' 
What a noble end and aim it was to contemplate in the attainment 
truly! But there be some who manufacture idols after the fashion of 
themselvesand fail to worship them when they are made; charging 
their deformity on outraged nature. Anthony was better than these 
at any rate. 
Chuffey boggled over his plate so longthat Mr Joneslosing 
patiencetook it from him at last with his own handsand requested 
his father to signify to that venerable person that he had better 
'peg away at his bread;' which Anthony did. 
'Ayeaye!' cried the old manbrightening up as beforewhen this 
was communicated to him in the same voice'quite rightquite 
right. He's your own sonMr Chuzzlewit! Bless him for a sharp 
lad! Bless himbless him!' 
Mr Jonas considered this so particularly childish (perhaps with some 
reason)that he only laughed the moreand told his cousins that he 
was afraid one of these fine daysChuffey would be the death of 
him. The cloth was then removedand the bottle of wine set upon 
the tablefrom which Mr Jonas filled the young ladies' glasses
calling on them not to spare itas they might be certain there was 
plenty more where that came from. But he added with some haste 
after this sally that it was only his jokeand they wouldn't 
suppose him to be in earnesthe was sure. 
'I shall drink' said Anthony'to Pecksniff. Your fathermy 
dears. A clever manPecksniff. A wary man! A hypocritethough
eh? A hypocritegirlseh? Hahaha! Wellso he is. Now
among friendshe is. I don't think the worse of him for that
unless it is that he overdoes it. You may overdo anythingmy 
darlings. You may overdo even hypocrisy. Ask Jonas!' 
'You can't overdo taking care of yourself' observed that hopeful 
gentleman with his mouth full. 
'Do you hear thatmy dears?' cried Anthonyquite enraptured. 
'Wisdomwisdom! A good exceptionJonas. No. It's not easy to 
overdo that.' 
'Except' whispered Mr Jonas to his favourite cousin'except when 
one lives too long. Haha! Tell the other one that--I say!' 
'Good gracious me!' said Cherryin a petulant manner. 'You can 
tell her yourselfif you wishcan't you?' 
'She seems to make such game of one' replied Mr Jonas. 
'Then why need you trouble yourself about her?' said Charity. 'I am 
sure she doesn't trouble herself much about you.' 
'Don't she though?' asked Jonas. 
'Good gracious meneed I tell you that she don't?' returned the 
young lady. 
Mr Jonas made no verbal rejoinderbut he glanced at Mercy with an 
odd expression in his face; and said THAT wouldn't break his heart
she might depend upon it. Then he looked on Charity with even 
greater favour than beforeand besought heras his polite manner 
wasto 'come a little closer.' 
'There's another thing that's not easily overdonefather' remarked 
Jonasafter a short silence. 
'What's that?' asked the father; grinning already in anticipation. 
'A bargain' said the son. 'Here's the rule for bargains--"Do 
other menfor they would do you." That's the true business precept. 
All others are counterfeits.' 
The delighted father applauded this sentiment to the echo; and was 
so much tickled by itthat he was at the pains of imparting the 
same to his ancient clerkwho rubbed his handsnodded his palsied 
headwinked his watery eyesand cried in his whistling tones
'Good! good! Your own sonMr Chuzzlewit' with every feeble 
demonstration of delight that he was capable of making. But this 
old man's enthusiasm had the redeeming quality of being felt in 
sympathy with the only creature to whom he was linked by ties of 
long associationand by his present helplessness. And if there had 
been anybody therewho cared to think about itsome dregs of a 
better nature unawakenedmight perhaps have been descried through 
that very mediummelancholy though it wasyet lingering at the 
bottom of the worn-out cask called Chuffey. 
As matters stoodnobody thought or said anything upon the subject; 
so Chuffey fell back into a dark corner on one side of the 
fireplacewhere he always spent his eveningsand was neither seen 
nor heard again that night; save oncewhen a cup of tea was given 
himin which he was seen to soak his bread mechanically. There was 
no reason to suppose that he went to sleep at these seasonsor that 
he heardor sawor feltor thought. He remainedas it were
frozen up--if any term expressive of such a vigorous process can be 
applied to him--until he was again thawed for the moment by a word 
or touch from Anthony. 
Miss Charity made tea by desire of Mr Jonasand felt and looked so 
like the lady of the house that she was in the prettiest confusion 
imaginable; the more so from Mr Jonas sitting close beside herand 
whispering a variety of admiring expressions in her ear. Miss 
Mercyfor her partfelt the entertainment of the evening to be so 
distinctly and exclusively theirsthat she silently deplored the 
commercial gentlemen--at that momentno doubtwearying for her 
return--and yawned over yesterday's newspaper. As to Anthonyhe 
went to sleep outrightso Jonas and Cherry had a clear stage to 
themselves as long as they chose to keep possession of it. 
When the tea-tray was taken awayas it was at lastMr Jonas 
produced a dirty pack of cardsand entertained the sisters with 
divers small feats of dexterity: whereof the main purpose of every 
one wasthat you were to decoy somebody into laying a wager with 
you that you couldn't do it; and were then immediately to win and 
pocket his money. Mr Jonas informed them that these accomplishments 
were in high vogue in the most intellectual circlesand that large 
amounts were constantly changing hands on such hazards. And it may 
be remarked that he fully believed this; for there is a simplicity 
of cunning no less than a simplicity of innocence; and in all 
matters where a lively faith in knavery and meanness was required as 
the ground-work of beliefMr Jonas was one of the most credulous of 
men. His ignorancewhich was stupendousmay be taken into 
accountif the reader pleasesseparately. 
This fine young man had all the inclination to be a profligate of 
the first waterand only lacked the one good trait in the common 
catalogue of debauched vices--open-handedness--to be a notable 
vagabond. But there his griping and penurious habits stepped in; 
and as one poison will sometimes neutralise anotherwhen wholesome 
remedies would not availso he was restrained by a bad passion from 
quaffing his full measure of evilwhen virtue might have sought to 
hold him back in vain. 
By the time he had unfolded all the peddling schemes he knew upon 
the cardsit was growing late in the evening; and Mr Pecksniff not 
making his appearancethe young ladies expressed a wish to return 
home. But thisMr Jonasin his gallantrywould by no means 
allowuntil they had partaken of some bread and cheese and porter; 
and even then he was excessively unwilling to allow them to depart; 
often beseeching Miss Charity to come a little closeror to stop a 
little longerand preferring many other complimentary petitions of 
that nature in his own hospitable and earnest way. When all his 
efforts to detain them were fruitlesshe put on his hat and 
greatcoat preparatory to escorting them to Todgers's; remarking that 
he knew they would rather walk thither than ride; and that for his 
part he was quite of their opinion. 
'Good night' said Anthony. 'Good night; remember me to--haha
ha!--to Pecksniff. Take care of your cousinmy dears; beware of 
Jonas; he's a dangerous fellow. Don't quarrel for himin any 
case!' 
'Ohthe creature!' cried Mercy. 'The idea of quarrelling for HIM! 
You may take himCherrymy loveall to yourself. I make you a 
present of my share.' 
'What! I'm a sour grapeam Icousin?' said Jonas. 
Miss Charity was more entertained by this repartee than one would 
have supposed likelyconsidering its advanced age and simple 
character. But in her sisterly affection she took Mr Jonas to task 
for leaning so very hard upon a broken reedand said that he must 
not be so cruel to poor Merry any moreor she (Charity) would 
positively be obliged to hate him. Mercywho really had her share 
of good humouronly retorted with a laugh; and they walked home in 
consequence without any angry passages of words upon the way. Mr 
Jonas being in the middleand having a cousin on each arm
sometimes squeezed the wrong one; so tightly tooas to cause her 
not a little inconvenience; but as he talked to Charity in whispers 
the whole timeand paid her great attentionno doubt this was an 
accidental circumstance. When they arrived at Todgers'sand the 
door was openedMercy broke hastily from themand ran upstairs; 
but Charity and Jonas lingered on the steps talking together for 
more than five minutes; soas Mrs Todgers observed next morningto 
a third party'It was pretty clear what was going on THEREand she 
was glad of itfor it really was high time that Miss Pecksniff 
thought of settling.' 
And now the day was coming onwhen that bright vision which had 
burst on Todgers's so suddenlyand made a sunshine in the shady 
breast of Jinkinswas to be seen no more; when it was to be packed
like a brown paper parcelor a fish-basketor an oyster barrel or a 
fat gentlemanor any other dull reality of lifein a stagecoach 
and carried down into the country. 
'Nevermy dear Miss Pecksniffs' said Mrs Todgerswhen they 
retired to rest on the last night of their stay'never have I seen 
an establishment so perfectly broken-hearted as mine is at this 
present moment of time. I don't believe the gentlemen will be the 
gentlemen they wereor anything like it--nonot for weeks to come. 
You have a great deal to answer forboth of you.' 
They modestly disclaimed any wilful agency in this disastrous state 
of thingsand regretted it very much. 
'Your pious patoo' said Mrs Todgers. 'There's a loss! My dear 
Miss Pecksniffsyour pa is a perfect missionary of peace and love.' 
Entertaining an uncertainty as to the particular kind of love 
supposed to be comprised in Mr Pecksniff's missionthe young ladies 
received the compliment rather coldly. 
'If I dared' said Mrs Todgersperceiving this'to violate a 
confidence which has been reposed in meand to tell you why I must 
beg of you to leave the little door between your room and mine open 
tonightI think you would be interested. But I mustn't do itfor I 
promised Mr Jinkins faithfullythat I would be as silent as the 
tomb.' 
'Dear Mrs Todgers! What can you mean?' 
'Whythenmy sweet Miss Pecksniffs' said the lady of the house; 
'my own lovesif you will allow me the privilege of taking that 
freedom on the eve of our separationMr Jinkins and the gentlemen 
have made up a little musical party among themselvesand DO intend
in the dead of this nightto perform a serenade upon the stairs 
outside the door. I could have wishedI own' said Mrs Todgers
with her usual foresight'that it had been fixed to take place an 
hour or two earlier; because when gentlemen sit up late they drink
and when they drink they're not so musicalperhapsas when they 
don't. But this is the arrangement; and I know you will be 
gratifiedmy dear Miss Pecksniffsby such a mark of their 
attention.' 
The young ladies were at first so much excited by the newsthat 
they vowed they couldn't think of going to bed until the serenade 
was over. But half an hour of cool waiting so altered their opinion 
that they not only went to bedbut fell asleep; and weremoreover
not ecstatically charmed to be awakened some time afterwards by 
certain dulcet strains breaking in upon the silent watches of the 
night. 
It was very affecting--very. Nothing more dismal could have been 
desired by the most fastidious taste. The gentleman of a vocal turn 
was head muteor chief mourner; Jinkins took the bass; and the rest 
took anything they could get. The youngest gentleman blew his 
melancholy into a flute. He didn't blow much out of itbut that 
was all the better. If the two Miss Pecksniffs and Mrs Todgers had 
perished by spontaneous combustionand the serenade had been in 
honour of their ashesit would have been impossible to surpass the 
unutterable despair expressed in that one chorus'Go where glory 
waits thee!' It was a requiema dirgea moana howla waila 
lamentan abstract of everything that is sorrowful and hideous in 
sound. The flute of the youngest gentleman was wild and fitful. It 
came and went in gustslike the wind. For a long time together he 
seemed to have left offand when it was quite settled by Mrs 
Todgers and the young ladies thatovercome by his feelingshe had 
retired in tearshe unexpectedly turned up again at the very top of 
the tunegasping for breath. He was a tremendous performer. There 
was no knowing where to have him; and exactly when you thought he 
was doing nothing at allthen was he doing the very thing that 
ought to astonish you most. 
There were several of these concerted pieces; perhaps two or three 
too manythough thatas Mrs Todgers saidwas a fault on the right 
side. But even theneven at that solemn momentwhen the thrilling 
sounds may be presumed to have penetrated into the very depths of 
his natureif he had any depthsJinkins couldn't leave the 
youngest gentleman alone. He asked him distinctlybefore the 
second song began--as a personal favour toomark the villain in 
that--not to play. Yes; he said so; not to play. The breathing of 
the youngest gentleman was heard through the key-hole of the door. 
He DIDN'T play. What vent was a flute for the passions swelling up 
within his breast? A trombone would have been a world too mild. 
The serenade approached its close. Its crowning interest was at 
hand. The gentleman of a literary turn had written a song on the 
departure of the ladiesand adapted it to an old tune. They all 
joinedexcept the youngest gentleman in companywhofor the 
reasons aforesaidmaintained a fearful silence. The song (which 
was of a classical nature) invoked the oracle of Apolloand 
demanded to know what would become of Todgers's when CHARITY and 
MERCY were banished from its walls. The oracle delivered no opinion 
particularly worth rememberingaccording to the not infrequent 
practice of oracles from the earliest ages down to the present time. 
In the absence of enlightenment on that subjectthe strain deserted 
itand went on to show that the Miss Pecksniffs were nearly related 
to Rule Britanniaand that if Great Britain hadn't been an island
there could have been no Miss Pecksniffs. And being now on a 
nautical tackit closed with this verse:
'All hail to the vessel of Pecksniff the sire! 
And favouring breezes to fan; 
While Tritons flock round itand proudly admire 
The architectartistand man!'
As they presented this beautiful picture to the imaginationthe 
gentlemen gradually withdrew to bed to give the music the effect of 
distance; and so it died awayand Todgers's was left to its 
repose. 
Mr Bailey reserved his vocal offering until the morningwhen he put 
his head into the room as the young ladies were kneeling before 
their trunkspacking upand treated them to an imitation of the 
voice of a young dog in trying circumstances; when that animal is 
supposed by persons of a lively fancyto relieve his feelings by 
calling for pen and ink. 
'Wellyoung ladies' said the youth'so you're a-going homeare 
youworse luck?' 
'YesBaileywe're going home' returned Mercy. 
'An't you a-going to leave none of 'em a lock of your hair?' 
inquired the youth. 'It's realan't it?' 
They laughed at thisand told him of course it was. 
'Ohis it of coursethough?' said Bailey. 'I know better than 
that. Hers an't. WhyI see it hanging up onceon that nail by 
the winder. BesidesI have gone behind her at dinner-time and 
pulled it; and she never know'd. I sayyoung ladiesI'm a-going 
to leave. I an't a-going to stand being called names by herno 
longer.' 
Miss Mercy inquired what his plans for the future might be; in reply 
to whom Mr Bailey intimated that he thought of going either into 
top-bootsor into the army. 
'Into the army!' cried the young ladieswith a laugh. 
'Ah!' said Bailey'why not? There's a many drummers in the Tower. 
I'm acquainted with 'em. Don't their country set a valley on 'em
mind you! Not at all!' 
'You'll be shotI see' observed Mercy. 
'Well!' cried Mr Bailey'wot if I am? There's something gamey in 
ityoung ladiesan't there? I'd sooner be hit with a cannon-ball 
than a rolling-pinand she's always a-catching up something of that 
sortand throwing it at mewhen the gentlemans' appetites is good. 
Wot' said Mr Baileystung by the recollection of his wrongs'wot
if they DO consume the per-vishuns. It an't MY faultis it?' 
'Surely no one says it is' said Mercy. 
'Don't they though?' retorted the youth. 'No. Yes. Ah! oh! No one 
mayn't say it is! but some one knows it is. But I an't a-going to 
have every rise in prices wisited on me. I an't a-going to be 
killed because the markets is dear. I won't stop. And therefore' 
added Mr Baileyrelenting into a smile'wotever you mean to give 
meyou'd better give me all at oncebecos if ever you come back 
aginI shan't be here; and as to the other boyHE won't deserve 
nothingI know.' 
The young ladieson behalf of Mr Pecksniff and themselvesacted on 
this thoughtful advice; and in consideration of their private 
friendshippresented Mr Bailey with a gratuity so liberal that he 
could hardly do enough to show his gratitude; which found but an 
imperfect ventduring the remainder of the dayin divers secret 
slaps upon his pocketand other such facetious pantomime. Nor was 
it confined to these ebullitions; for besides crushing a bandbox
with a bonnet in ithe seriously damaged Mr Pecksniff's luggageby 
ardently hauling it down from the top of the house; and in short 
evincedby every means in his powera lively sense of the favours 
he had received from that gentleman and his family. 
Mr Pecksniff and Mr Jinkins came home to dinner arm-in-arm; for the 
latter gentleman had made half-holiday on purpose; thus gaining an 
immense advantage over the youngest gentleman and the restwhose 
timeas it perversely chancedwas all bespokeuntil the evening. 
The bottle of wine was Mr Pecksniff's treatand they were very 
sociable indeed; though full of lamentations on the necessity of 
parting. While they were in the midst of their enjoymentold 
Anthony and his son were announced; much to the surprise of Mr 
Pecksniffand greatly to the discomfiture of Jinkins. 
'Come to say good-byeyou see' said Anthonyin a low voiceto Mr 
Pecksniffas they took their seats apart at the tablewhile the 
rest conversed among themselves. 'Where's the use of a division 
between you and me? We are the two halves of a pair of scissors
when apartPecksniff; but together we are something. Eh?' 
'Unanimitymy good sir' rejoined Mr Pecksniff'is always 
delightful.' 
'I don't know about that' said the old man'for there are some 
people I would rather differ from than agree with. But you know my 
opinion of you.' 
Mr Pecksniffstill having 'hypocrite' in his mindonly replied by 
a motion of his headwhich was something between an affirmative 
bowand a negative shake. 
'Complimentary' said Anthony. 'Complimentaryupon my word. It 
was an involuntary tribute to your abilitieseven at the time; and 
it was not a time to suggest compliments either. But we agreed in 
the coachyou knowthat we quite understood each other.' 
'Ohquite!' assented Mr Pecksniffin a manner which implied that 
he himself was misunderstood most cruellybut would not complain. 
Anthony glanced at his son as he sat beside Miss Charityand then 
at Mr Pecksniffand then at his son againvery many times. It 
happened that Mr Pecksniff's glances took a similar direction; but 
when he became aware of ithe first cast down his eyesand then 
closed them; as if he were determined that the old man should read 
nothing there. 
'Jonas is a shrewd lad' said the old man. 
'He appears' rejoined Mr Pecksniff in his most candid manner'to 
be very shrewd.' 
'And careful' said the old man. 
'And carefulI have no doubt' returned Mr Pecksniff. 
'Look ye!' said Anthony in his ear. 'I think he is sweet upon you 
daughter.' 
'Tutmy good sir' said Mr Pecksniffwith his eyes still closed; 
'young people--young people--a kind of cousinstoo--no more 
sweetness than is in thatsir.' 
'Whythere is very little sweetness in thataccording to our 
experience' returned Anthony. 'Isn't there a trifle more here?' 
'Impossible to say' rejoined Mr Pecksniff. 'Quite impossible! You 
surprise me.' 
'YesI know that' said the old mandrily. 'It may last; I mean 
the sweetnessnot the surprise; and it may die off. Supposing it 
should lastperhaps (you having feathered your nest pretty well
and I having done the same)we might have a mutual interest in the 
matter.' 
Mr Pecksniffsmiling gentlywas about to speakbut Anthony 
stopped him. 
'I know what you are going to say. It's quite unnecessary. You 
have never thought of this for a moment; and in a point so nearly 
affecting the happiness of your dear childyou couldn'tas a 
tender fatherexpress an opinion; and so forth. Yesquite right. 
And like you! But it seems to memy dear Pecksniff' added Anthony
laying his hand upon his sleeve'that if you and I kept up the joke 
of pretending not to see thisone of us might possibly be placed in 
a position of disadvantage; and as I am very unwilling to be that 
party myselfyou will excuse my taking the liberty of putting the 
matter beyond a doubt thus early; and having it distinctly 
understoodas it is nowthat we do see itand do know it. Thank 
you for your attention. We are now upon an equal footing; which is 
agreeable to us bothI am sure.' 
He rose as he spoke; and giving Mr Pecksniff a nod of intelligence
moved away from him to where the young people were sitting; leaving 
that good man somewhat puzzled and discomfited by such very plain 
dealingand not quite free from a sense of having been foiled in 
the exercise of his familiar weapons. 
But the night-coach had a punctual characterand it was time to 
join it at the office; which was so near at hand that they had 
already sent their luggage and arranged to walk. Thither the whole 
party repairedthereforeafter no more delay than sufficed for the 
equipment of the Miss Pecksniffs and Mrs Todgers. They found the 
coach already at its starting-placeand the horses in; theretoo
were a large majority of the commercial gentlemenincluding the 
youngestwho was visibly agitatedand in a state of deep mental 
dejection. 
Nothing could equal the distress of Mrs Todgers in parting from the 
young ladiesexcept the strong emotions with which she bade adieu 
to Mr Pecksniff. Never surely was a pocket-handkerchief taken in 
and out of a flat reticule so often as Mrs Todgers's wasas she 
stood upon the pavement by the coach-door supported on either side 
by a commercial gentleman; and by the sight of the coach-lamps 
caught such brief snatches and glimpses of the good man's faceas 
the constant interposition of Mr Jinkins allowed. For Jinkinsto 
the last the youngest gentleman's rock a-head in lifestood upon the 
coachstep talking to the ladies. Upon the other step was Mr Jonas
who maintained that position in right of his cousinship; whereas the 
youngest gentlemanwho had been first upon the groundwas deep in 
the booking-office among the black and red placardsand the 
portraits of fast coacheswhere he was ignominiously harassed by 
portersand had to contend and strive perpetually with heavy 
baggage. This false positioncombined with his nervous excitement
brought about the very consummation and catastrophe of his miseries; 
for when in the moment of parting he aimed a flowera hothouse 
flower that had cost moneyat the fair hand of Mercyit reached
insteadthe coachman on the boxwho thanked him kindlyand stuck 
it in his buttonhole. 
They were off now; and Todgers's was alone again. The two young 
ladiesleaning back in their separate cornersresigned themselves 
to their own regretful thoughts. But Mr Pecksniffdismissing all 
ephemeral considerations of social pleasure and enjoyment
concentrated his meditations on the one great virtuous purpose 
before himof casting out that ingrate and deceiverwhose presence 
yet troubled his domestic hearthand was a sacrilege upon the 
altars of his household gods. 
CHAPTER TWELVE 
WILL BE SEEN IN THE LONG RUNIF NOT IN THE SHORT ONETO CONCERN 
MR PINCH AND OTHERSNEARLY. MR PECKSNIFF ASSERTS THE DIGNITY OF 
OUTRAGED VIRTUE. YOUNG MARTIN CHUZZLEWIT FORMS A DESPERATE 
RESOLUTION 
Mr Pinch and Martinlittle dreaming of the stormy weather that 
impendedmade themselves very comfortable in the Pecksniffian 
hallsand improved their friendship daily. Martin's facilityboth 
of invention and executionbeing remarkablethe grammar-school 
proceeded with great vigour; and Tom repeatedly declaredthat if 
there were anything like certainty in human affairsor impartiality 
in human judgesa design so new and full of merit could not fail to 
carry off the first prize when the time of competition arrived. 
Without being quite so sanguine himselfMartin had his hopeful 
anticipations too; and they served to make him brisk and eager at 
his task. 
'If I should turn out a great architectTom' said the new pupil 
one dayas he stood at a little distance from his drawingand eyed 
it with much complacency'I'll tell you what should be one of the 
things I'd build.' 
'Aye!' cried Tom. 'What?' 
'Whyyour fortune.' 
'No!' said Tom Pinchquite as much delighted as if the thing were 
done. 'Would you though? How kind of you to say so.' 
'I'd build it upTom' returned Martin'on such a strong 
foundationthat it should last your life--ayeand your children's 
lives tooand their children's after them. I'd be your patron
Tom. I'd take you under my protection. Let me see the man who 
should give the cold shoulder to anybody I chose to protect and 
patroniseif I were at the top of the treeTom!' 
'NowI don't think' said Mr Pinch'upon my wordthat I was ever 
more gratified than by this. I really don't.' 
'Oh! I mean what I say' retorted Martinwith a manner as free and 
easy in its condescension tonot to say in its compassion forthe 
otheras if he were already First Architect in ordinary to all the 
Crowned Heads in Europe. 'I'd do it. I'd provide for you.' 
'I am afraid' said Tomshaking his head'that I should be a 
mighty awkward person to provide for.' 
'Poohpooh!' rejoined Martin. 'Never mind that. If I took it in 
my head to sayPinch is a clever fellow; I approve of Pinch;I 
should like to know the man who would venture to put himself in 
opposition to me. Besidesconfound itTomyou could be useful to 
me in a hundred ways.' 
'If I were not useful in one or twoit shouldn't be for want of 
trying' said Tom. 
'For instance' pursued Martinafter a short reflection'you'd be 
a capital fellownowto see that my ideas were properly carried 
out; and to overlook the works in their progress before they were 
sufficiently advanced to be very interesting to ME; and to take all 
that sort of plain sailing. Then you'd be a splendid fellow to show 
people over my studioand to talk about Art to 'emwhen I couldn't 
be bored myselfand all that kind of thing. For it would be 
devilish creditableTom (I'm quite in earnestI give you my word)
to have a man of your information about oneinstead of some 
ordinary blockhead. OhI'd take care of you. You'd be useful
rely upon it!' 
To say that Tom had no idea of playing first fiddle in any social 
orchestrabut was always quite satisfied to be set down for the 
hundred and fiftieth violin in the bandor thereaboutsis to 
express his modesty in very inadequate terms. He was much 
delightedthereforeby these observations. 
'I should be married to her thenTomof course' said Martin. 
What was that which checked Tom Pinch so suddenlyin the high flow 
of his gladness; bringing the blood into his honest cheeksand a 
remorseful feeling to his honest heartas if he were unworthy of 
his friend's regard? 
'I should be married to her then' said Martinlooking with a smile 
towards the light; 'and we should haveI hopechildren about us. 
They'd be very fond of youTom.' 
But not a word said Mr Pinch. The words he would have uttered died 
upon his lipsand found a life more spiritual in self-denying 
thoughts. 
'All the children hereabouts are fond of youTomand mine would 
beof course' pursued Martin. 'Perhaps I might name one of 'em 
after you. Tomeh? WellI don't know. Tom's not a bad name. 
Thomas Pinch Chuzzlewit. T. P. C. on his pinafores--no objection 
to thatI should say?' 
Tom cleared his throatand smiled. 
'SHE would like youTomI know' said Martin. 
'Aye!' cried Tom Pinchfaintly. 
'I can tell exactly what she would think of you' said Martin 
leaning his chin upon his handand looking through the window-glass 
as if he read there what he said; 'I know her so well. She would 
smileTomoften at first when you spoke to heror when she looked 
at you--merrily too--but you wouldn't mind that. A brighter smile 
you never saw.' 
'Nono' said Tom. 'I wouldn't mind that.' 
'She would be as tender with youTom' said Martin'as if you were 
a child yourself. So you are almostin some thingsan't you
Tom?' 
Mr Pinch nodded his entire assent. 
'She would always be kind and good-humouredand glad to see you' 
said Martin; 'and when she found out exactly what sort of fellow you 
were (which she'd do very soon)she would pretend to give you 
little commissions to executeand to ask little services of you
which she knew you were burning to render; so that when she really 
pleased you mostshe would try to make you think you most pleased 
her. She would take to you uncommonlyTom; and would understand 
you far more delicately than I ever shall; and would often sayI 
knowthat you were a harmlessgentlewell-intentionedgood 
fellow.' 
How silent Tom Pinch was! 
'In honour of old time' said Martin'and of her having heard you 
play the organ in this damp little church down here--for nothing 
too--we will have one in the house. I shall build an architectural 
music-room on a plan of my ownand it'll look rather knowing in a 
recess at one end. There you shall play awayTomtill you tire 
yourself; andas you like to do so in the darkit shall BE dark; 
and many's the summer evening she and I will sit and listen to you
Tom; be sure of that!' 
It may have required a stronger effort on Tom Pinch's part to leave 
the seat on which he satand shake his friend by both handswith 
nothing but serenity and grateful feeling painted on his face; it 
may have required a stronger effort to perform this simple act with 
a pure heartthan to achieve many and many a deed to which the 
doubtful trumpet blown by Fame has lustily resounded. Doubtful
because from its long hovering over scenes of violencethe smoke 
and steam of death have clogged the keys of that brave instrument; 
and it is not always that its notes are either true or tuneful. 
'It's a proof of the kindness of human nature' said Tom
characteristically putting himself quite out of sight in the matter
'that everybody who comes hereas you have doneis more 
considerate and affectionate to me than I should have any right to 
hopeif I were the most sanguine creature in the world; or should 
have any power to expressif I were the most eloquent. It really 
overpowers me. But trust me' said Tom'that I am not ungrateful-that 
I never forget--and that if I can ever prove the truth of my 
words to youI will.' 
'That's all right' observed Martinleaning back in his chair with 
a hand in each pocketand yawning drearily. 'Very fine talking
Tom; but I'm at Pecksniff'sI rememberand perhaps a mile or so 
out of the high-road to fortune just at this minute. So you've 
heard again this morning from what's his nameeh?' 
'Who may that be?' asked Tomseeming to enter a mild protest on 
behalf of the dignity of an absent person. 
'YOU know. What is it? Northkey.' 
'Westlock' rejoined Tomin rather a louder tone than usual. 
'Ah! to be sure' said Martin'Westlock. I knew it was something 
connected with a point of the compass and a door. Well! and what 
says Westlock?' 
'Oh! he has come into his property' answered Tomnodding his head
and smiling. 
'He's a lucky dog' said Martin. 'I wish it were mine instead. Is 
that all the mystery you were to tell me?' 
'No' said Tom; 'not all.' 
'What's the rest?' asked Martin. 
'For the matter of that' said Tom'it's no mysteryand you won't 
think much of it; but it's very pleasant to me. John always used to 
say when he was hereMark my words, Pinch. When my father's 
executors cash up--he used strange expressions now and thenbut 
that was his way.' 
'Cash-up's a very good expression' observed Martin'when other 
people don't apply it to you. Well!--What a slow fellow you are
Pinch!' 
'YesI am I know' said Tom; 'but you'll make me nervous if you 
tell me so. I'm afraid you have put me out a little nowfor I 
forget what I was going to say.' 
'When John's father's executors cashed up' said Martin impatiently. 
'Oh yesto be sure' cried Tom; 'yes. "Then says John, I'll 
give you a dinnerPinchand come down to Salisbury on purpose." 
Nowwhen John wrote the other day--the morning Pecksniff leftyou 
know--he said his business was on the point of being immediately 
settledand as he was to receive his money directlywhen could I 
meet him at Salisbury? I wrote and saidany day this week; and I 
told him besidesthat there was a new pupil hereand what a fine 
fellow you wereand what friends we had become. Upon which John 
writes back this letter'--Tom produced it--'fixes to-morrow; sends 
his compliments to you; and begs that we three may have the pleasure 
of dining together; not at the house where you and I wereeither; 
but at the very first hotel in the town. Read what he says.' 
'Very well' said Martinglancing over it with his customary 
coolness; 'much obliged to him. I'm agreeable.' 
Tom could have wished him to be a little more astonisheda little 
more pleasedor in some form or other a little more interested in 
such a great event. But he was perfectly self-possessed; and falling 
into his favourite solace of whistlingtook another turn at the 
grammar-schoolas if nothing at all had happened. 
Mr Pecksniff's horse being regarded in the light of a sacred animal
only to be driven by himthe chief priest of that templeor by 
some person distinctly nominated for the time being to that high 
office by himselfthe two young men agreed to walk to Salisbury; 
and sowhen the time camethey set off on foot; which wasafter 
alla better mode of travelling than in the gigas the weather was 
very cold and very dry. 
Better! A rare strongheartyhealthy walk--four statute miles an 
hour--preferable to that rumblingtumblingjoltingshaking
scrapingcreakingvillanous old gig? Whythe two things will not 
admit of comparison. It is an insult to the walkto set them side 
by side. Where is an instance of a gig having ever circulated a 
man's bloodunless whenputting him in danger of his neckit 
awakened in his veins and in his earsand all along his spinea 
tingling heatmuch more peculiar than agreeable? When did a gig 
ever sharpen anybody's wits and energiesunless it was when the 
horse boltedandcrashing madly down a steep hill with a stone 
wall at the bottomhis desperate circumstances suggested to the 
only gentleman left insidesome novel and unheard-of mode of 
dropping out behind? Better than the gig! 
The air was coldTom; so it wasthere was no denying it; but would 
it have been more genial in the gig? The blacksmith's fire burned 
very brightand leaped up highas though it wanted men to warm; 
but would it have been less temptinglooked at from the clammy 
cushions of a gig? The wind blew keenlynipping the features of 
the hardy wight who fought his way along; blinding him with his own 
hair if he had enough to itand wintry dust if he hadn't; stopping 
his breath as though he had been soused in a cold bath; tearing 
aside his wrappings-upand whistling in the very marrow of his 
bones; but it would have done all this a hundred times more fiercely 
to a man in a gigwouldn't it? A fig for gigs! 
Better than the gig! When were travellers by wheels and hoofs seen 
with such red-hot cheeks as those? when were they so goodhumouredly 
and merrily bloused? when did their laughter ring upon 
the airas they turned them roundwhat time the stronger gusts 
came sweeping up; andfacing round again as they passed bydashed 
onin such a glow of ruddy health as nothing could keep pace with
but the high spirits it engendered? Better than the gig! Whyhere 
is a man in a gig coming the same way now. Look at him as he passes 
his whip into his left handchafes his numbed right fingers on his 
granite legand beats those marble toes of his upon the foot-board. 
Hahaha! Who would exchange this rapid hurry of the blood for 
yonder stagnant miserythough its pace were twenty miles for one? 
Better than the gig! No man in a gig could have such interest in the 
milestones. No man in a gig could seeor feelor thinklike 
merry users of their legs. Howas the wind sweeps onupon these 
breezy downsit tracks its flight in darkening ripples on the 
grassand smoothest shadows on the hills! Look round and round upon 
this bare bleak plainand see even hereupon a winter's dayhow 
beautiful the shadows are! Alas! it is the nature of their kind to 
be so. The loveliest things in lifeTomare but shadows; and they 
come and goand change and fade awayas rapidly as these! 
Another mileand then begins a fall of snowmaking the crowwho 
skims away so close above the ground to shirk the winda blot of 
ink upon the landscape. But though it drives and drifts against 
them as they walkstiffening on their skirtsand freezing in the 
lashes of their eyesthey wouldn't have it fall more sparinglyno
not so much as by a single flakealthough they had to go a score of 
miles. Andlo! the towers of the Old Cathedral rise before them
even now! and by-and-bye they come into the sheltered streetsmade 
strangely silent by their white carpet; and so to the Inn for which 
they are bound; where they present such flushed and burning faces to 
the cold waiterand are so brimful of vigourthat he almost feels 
assaulted by their presence; andhaving nothing to oppose to the 
attack (being freshor rather stalefrom the blazing fire in the 
coffee-room)is quite put out of his pale countenance. 
A famous Inn! the hall a very grove of dead gameand dangling 
joints of mutton; and in one corner an illustrious larderwith 
glass doorsdeveloping cold fowls and noble jointsand tarts 
wherein the raspberry jam coyly withdrew itselfas such a precious 
creature shouldbehind a lattice work of pastry. And beholdon 
the first floorat the court-end of the housein a room with all 
the window-curtains drawna fire piled half-way up the chimney
plates warming before itwax candles gleaming everywhereand a 
table spread for threewith silver and glass enough for thirty--
John Westlock; not the old John of Pecksniff'sbut a proper 
gentleman; looking another and a grander personwith the 
consciousness of being his own master and having money in the bank; 
and yet in some respects the old John toofor he seized Tom Pinch 
by both his hands the instant he appearedand fairly hugged himin 
his cordial welcome. 
'And this' said John'is Mr Chuzzlewit. I am very glad to see 
him!'--John had an off-hand manner of his own; so they shook hands 
warmlyand were friends in no time. 
'Stand off a momentTom' cried the old pupillaying one hand on 
each of Mr Pinch's shouldersand holding him out at arm's length. 
'Let me look at you! Just the same! Not a bit changed!' 
'Whyit's not so very long agoyou know' said Tom Pinch'after 
all.' 
'It seems an age to me' cried John. 'and so it ought to seem to 
youyou dog.' And then he pushed Tom down into the easiest chair
and clapped him on the back so heartilyand so like his old self in 
their old bedroom at old Pecksniff's that it was a toss-up with Tom 
Pinch whether he should laugh or cry. Laughter won it; and they all 
three laughed together. 
'I have ordered everything for dinnerthat we used to say we'd 
haveTom' observed John Westlock. 
'No!' said Tom Pinch. 'Have you?' 
'Everything. Don't laughif you can help itbefore the waiters. 
I couldn't when I was ordering it. It's like a dream.' 
John was wrong therebecause nobody ever dreamed such soup as was 
put upon the table directly afterwards; or such fish; or such 
side-dishes; or such a top and bottom; or such a course of birds and 
sweets; or in short anything approaching the reality of that 
entertainment at ten-and-sixpence a headexclusive of wines. As to 
THEMthe man who can dream such iced champagnesuch claretport
or sherryhad better go to bed and stop there. 
But perhaps the finest feature of the banquet wasthat nobody was 
half so much amazed by everything as John himselfwho in his high 
delight was constantly bursting into fits of laughterand then 
endeavouring to appear preternaturally solemnlest the waiters 
should conceive he wasn't used to it. Some of the things they 
brought him to carvewere such outrageous practical jokesthough
that it was impossible to stand it; and when Tom Pinch insistedin 
spite of the deferential advice of an attendantnot only on 
breaking down the outer wall of a raised pie with a tablespoonbut 
on trying to eat it afterwardsJohn lost all dignityand sat 
behind the gorgeous dish-cover at the head of the tableroaring to 
that extent that he was audible in the kitchen. Nor had he the 
least objection to laugh at himselfas he demonstrated when they 
had all three gathered round the fire and the dessert was on the 
table; at which period the head waiter inquired with respectful 
solicitude whether that portbeing a light and tawny winewas 
suited to his tasteor whether he would wish to try a fruity port 
with greater body. To this John gravely answered that he was well 
satisfied with what he hadwhich he esteemedas one might saya 
pretty tidy vintage; for which the waiter thanked him and withdrew. 
And then John told his friendswith a broad grinthat he supposed 
it was all rightbut he didn't know; and went off into a perfect 
shout. 
They were very merry and full of enjoyment the whole timebut not 
the least pleasant part of the festival was when they all three sat 
about the firecracking nutsdrinking wine and talking cheerfully. 
It happened that Tom Pinch had a word to say to his friend the 
organist's assistantand so deserted his warm corner for a few 
minutes at this seasonlest it should grow too late; leaving the 
other two young men together. 
They drank his health in his absenceof course; and John Westlock 
took that opportunity of sayingthat he had never had even a 
peevish word with Tom during the whole term of their residence in Mr 
Pecksniff's house. This naturally led him to dwell upon Tom's 
characterand to hint that Mr Pecksniff understood it pretty well. 
He only hinted thisand very distantly; knowing that it pained Tom 
Pinch to have that gentleman disparagedand thinking it would be as 
well to leave the new pupil to his own discoveries. 
'Yes' said Martin. 'It's impossible to like Pinch better than I 
door to do greater justice to his good qualities. He is the most 
willing fellow I ever saw.' 
'He's rather too willing' observed Johnwho was quick in 
observation. 'It's quite a fault in him.' 
'So it is' said Martin. 'Very true. There was a fellow only a 
week or so ago--a Mr Tigg--who borrowed all the money he hadon a 
promise to repay it in a few days. It was but half a sovereignto 
be sure; but it's well it was no morefor he'll never see it 
again.' 
'Poor fellow!' said Johnwho had been very attentive to these few 
words. 'Perhaps you have not had an opportunity of observing that
in his own pecuniary transactionsTom's proud.' 
'You don't say so! NoI haven't. What do you mean? Won't he 
borrow?' 
John Westlock shook his head. 
'That's very odd' said Martinsetting down his empty glass. 'He's 
a strange compoundto be sure.' 
'As to receiving money as a gift' resumed John Westlock; 'I think 
he'd die first.' 
'He's made up of simplicity' said Martin. 'Help yourself.' 
'Youhowever' pursued Johnfilling his own glassand looking at 
his companion with some curiosity'who are older than the majority 
of Mr Pecksniff's assistantsand have evidently had much more 
experienceunderstand himI have no doubtand see how liable he 
is to be imposed upon.' 
'Certainly' said Martinstretching out his legsand holding his 
wine between his eye and the light. 'Mr Pecksniff knows that too. 
So do his daughters. Eh?' 
John Westlock smiledbut made no answer. 
'By the bye' said Martin'that reminds me. What's your opinion of 
Pecksniff? How did he use you? What do you think of him now?--
Coollyyou knowwhen it's all over?' 
'Ask Pinch' returned the old pupil. 'He knows what my sentiments 
used to be upon the subject. They are not changedI assure you.' 
'Nono' said Martin'I'd rather have them from you.' 
'But Pinch says they are unjust' urged John with a smile. 
'Oh! well! Then I know what course they take beforehand' said 
Martin; 'andthereforeyou can have no delicacy in speaking 
plainly. Don't mind meI beg. I don't like him I tell you 
frankly. I am with him because it happens from particular 
circumstances to suit my convenience. I have some abilityI 
believein that way; and the obligationif anywill most likely 
be on his side and not mine. At the lowest markthe balance will 
be evenand there'll be no obligation at all. So you may talk to 
meas if I had no connection with him.' 
'If you press me to give my opinion--' returned John Westlock. 
'YesI do' said Martin. 'You'll oblige me.' 
'--I should say' resumed the other'that he is the most consummate 
scoundrel on the face of the earth.' 
'Oh!' said Martinas coolly as ever. 'That's rather strong.' 
'Not stronger than he deserves' said John; 'and if he called upon 
me to express my opinion of him to his faceI would do so in the 
very same termswithout the least qualification. His treatment of 
Pinch is in itself enough to justify them; but when I look back upon 
the five years I passed in that houseand remember the hyprocrisy
the knaverythe meannessesthe false pretencesthe lip service of 
that fellowand his trading in saintly semblances for the very 
worst realities; when I remember how often I was the witness of all 
this and how often I was made a kind of party to itby the fact of 
being therewith him for my teacher; I swear to you that I almost 
despise myself.' 
Martin drained his glassand looked at the fire. 
'I don't mean to say that is a right feeling' pursued John Westlock 
'because it was no fault of mine; and I can quite understand--you 
for instancefully appreciating himand yet being forced by 
circumstances to remain there. I tell you simply what my feeling 
is; and even nowwhenas you sayit's all over; and when I have 
the satisfaction of knowing that he always hated meand we always 
quarrelledand I always told him my mind; even nowI feel sorry 
that I didn't yield to an impulse I often hadas a boyof running 
away from him and going abroad.' 
'Why abroad?' asked Martinturning his eyes upon the speaker. 
'In search' replied John Westlockshrugging his shoulders'of the 
livelihood I couldn't have earned at home. There would have been 
something spirited in that. Butcome! Fill your glassand let us 
forget him.' 
'As soon as you please' said Martin. 'In reference to myself and 
my connection with himI have only to repeat what I said before. I 
have taken my own way with him so farand shall continue to do so
even more than ever; for the fact isto tell you the truththat I 
believe he looks to me to supply his defectsand couldn't afford to 
lose me. I had a notion of that in first going there. Your 
health!' 
'Thank you' returned young Westlock. 'Yours. And may the new 
pupil turn out as well as you can desire!' 
'What new pupil?' 
'The fortunate youthborn under an auspicious star' returned John 
Westlocklaughing; 'whose parentsor guardiansare destined to be 
hooked by the advertisement. What! Don't you know that he has 
advertised again?' 
'No.' 
'Ohyes. I read it just before dinner in the old newspaper. I 
know it to be his; having some reason to remember the style. Hush! 
Here's Pinch. Strangeis it notthat the more he likes Pecksniff 
(if he can like him better than he does)the greater reason one has 
to like HIM? Not a word moreor we shall spoil his whole 
enjoyment.' 
Tom entered as the words were spokenwith a radiant smile upon his 
face; and rubbing his handsmore from a sense of delight than 
because he was cold (for he had been running fast)sat down in his 
warm corner againand was as happy as only Tom Pinch could be. 
There is no other simile that will express his state of mind. 
'And so' he saidwhen he had gazed at his friend for some time in 
silent pleasure'so you really are a gentleman at lastJohn. 
Wellto be sure!' 
'Trying to beTom; trying to be' he rejoined good-humouredly. 
'There is no saying what I may turn outin time.' 
'I suppose you wouldn't carry your own box to the mail now?' said 
Tom Pinchsmiling; 'although you lost it altogether by not taking 
it.' 
'Wouldn't I?' retorted John. 'That's all you know about itPinch. 
It must be a very heavy box that I wouldn't carry to get away from 
Pecksniff'sTom.' 
'There!' cried Pinchturning to Martin'I told you so. The great 
fault in his character is his injustice to Pecksniff. You mustn't 
mind a word he says on that subject. His prejudice is most 
extraordinary.' 
'The absence of anything like prejudice on Tom's partyou know' 
said John Westlocklaughing heartilyas he laid his hand on Mr 
Pinch's shoulder'is perfectly wonderful. If one man ever had a 
profound knowledge of anotherand saw him in a true lightand in 
his own proper coloursTom has that knowledge of Mr Pecksniff.' 
'Whyof course I have' cried Tom. 'That's exactly what I have so 
often said to you. If you knew him as well as I do--JohnI'd give 
almost any money to bring that about--you'd admirerespectand 
reverence him. You couldn't help it. Ohhow you wounded his 
feelings when you went away!' 
'If I had known whereabout his feelings lay' retorted young 
Westlock'I'd have done my bestTomwith that end in viewyou 
may depend upon it. But as I couldn't wound him in what he has not
and in what he knows nothing ofexcept in his ability to probe them 
to the quick in other peopleI am afraid I can lay no claim to your 
compliment.' 
Mr Pinchbeing unwilling to protract a discussion which might 
possibly corrupt Martinforbore to say anything in reply to this 
speech; but John Westlockwhom nothing short of an iron gag would 
have silenced when Mr Pecksniff's merits were once in question
continued notwithstanding. 
'HIS feelings! Ohhe's a tender-hearted man. HIS feelings! Oh
he's a considerateconscientiousself-examiningmoral vagabond
he is! HIS feelings! Oh!--what's the matterTom?' 
Mr Pinch was by this time erect upon the hearth-rugbuttoning his 
coat with great energy. 
'I can't bear it' said Tomshaking his head. 'No. I really 
cannot. You must excuse meJohn. I have a great esteem and 
friendship for you; I love you very much; and have been perfectly 
charmed and overjoyed to-dayto find you just the same as ever; but 
I cannot listen to this.' 
'Whyit's my old wayTom; and you say yourself that you are glad 
to find me unchanged.' 
'Not in this respect' said Tom Pinch. 'You must excuse meJohn. 
I cannotreally; I will not. It's very wrong; you should be more 
guarded in your expressions. It was bad enough when you and I used 
to be alone togetherbut under existing circumstancesI can't 
endure itreally. No. I cannotindeed.' 
'You are quite right!' exclaimed the otherexchanging looks with 
Martin. 'and I am quite wrongTom. I don't know how the deuce we 
fell on this unlucky theme. I beg your pardon with all my heart.' 
'You have a free and manly temperI know' said Pinch; 'and 
thereforeyour being so ungenerous in this one solitary instance
only grieves me the more. It's not my pardon you have to askJohn. 
You have done ME nothing but kindnesses.' 
'Well! Pecksniff's pardon then' said young Westlock. 'Anything 
Tomor anybody. Pecksniff's pardon--will that do? Here! let us 
drink Pecksniff's health!' 
'Thank you' cried Tomshaking hands with him eagerlyand filling 
a bumper. 'Thank you; I'll drink it with all my heartJohn. Mr 
Pecksniff's healthand prosperity to him!' 
John Westlock echoed the sentimentor nearly so; for he drank Mr 
Pecksniff's healthand Something to him--but whatwas not quite 
audible. The general unanimity being then completely restoredthey 
drew their chairs closer round the fireand conversed in perfect 
harmony and enjoyment until bed-time. 
No slight circumstanceperhapscould have better illustrated the 
difference of character between John Westlock and Martin Chuzzlewit
than the manner in which each of the young men contemplated Tom 
Pinchafter the little rupture just described. There was a certain 
amount of jocularity in the looks of bothno doubtbut there all 
resemblance ceased. The old pupil could not do enough to show Tom 
how cordially he felt towards himand his friendly regard seemed of 
a graver and more thoughtful kind than before. The new oneon the 
other handhad no impulse but to laugh at the recollection of Tom's 
extreme absurdity; and mingled with his amusement there was 
something slighting and contemptuousindicativeas it appearedof 
his opinion that Mr Pinch was much too far gone in simplicity to be 
admitted as the friendon serious and equal termsof any rational 
man. 
John Westlockwho did nothing by halvesif he could help ithad 
provided beds for his two guests in the hotel; and after a very 
happy eveningthey retired. Mr Pinch was sitting on the side of 
his bed with his cravat and shoes offruminating on the manifold 
good qualities of his old friendwhen he was interrupted by a knock 
at his chamber doorand the voice of John himself. 
'You're not asleep yetare youTom?' 
'Bless youno! not I. I was thinking of you' replied Tomopening 
the door. 'Come in.' 
'I am not going to detail you' said John; 'but I have forgotten all 
the evening a little commission I took upon myself; and I am afraid 
I may forget it againif I fail to discharge it at once. You know 
a Mr TiggTomI believe?' 
'Tigg!' cried Tom. 'Tigg! The gentleman who borrowed some money of 
me?' 
'Exactly' said John Westlock. 'He begged me to present his 
complimentsand to return it with many thanks. Here it is. I 
suppose it's a good onebut he is rather a doubtful kind of 
customerTom.' 
Mr Pinch received the little piece of gold with a face whose 
brightness might have shamed the metal; and said he had no fear 
about that. He was gladhe addedto find Mr Tigg so prompt and 
honourable in his dealings; very glad. 
'Whyto tell you the truthTom' replied his friend'he is not 
always so. If you'll take my adviceyou'll avoid him as much as 
you canin the event of your encountering him again. And by no 
meansTom--pray bear this in mindfor I am very serious--by no 
means lend him money any more.' 
'Ayeaye!' said Tomwith his eyes wide open. 
'He is very far from being a reputable acquaintance' returned young 
Westlock; 'and the more you let him know you think sothe better 
for youTom.' 
'I sayJohn' quoth Mr Pinchas his countenance felland he shook 
his head in a dejected manner. 'I hope you are not getting into bad 
company.' 
'Nono' he replied laughing. 'Don't be uneasy on that score.' 
'Ohbut I AM uneasy' said Tom Pinch; 'I can't help itwhen I hear 
you talking in that way. If Mr Tigg is what you describe him to be
you have no business to know himJohn. You may laughbut I don't 
consider it by any means a laughing matterI assure you.' 
'Nono' returned his friendcomposing his features. 'Quite 
right. It is notcertainly.' 
'You knowJohn' said Mr Pinch'your very good nature and kindness 
of heart make you thoughtlessand you can't be too careful on such 
a point as this. Upon my wordif I thought you were falling among 
bad companionsI should be quite wretchedfor I know how difficult 
you would find it to shake them off. I would much rather have lost 
this moneyJohnthan I would have had it back again on such 
terms.' 
'I tell youmy dear good old fellow' cried his friendshaking him 
to and fro with both handsand smiling at him with a cheerfulopen 
countenancethat would have carried conviction to a mind much more 
suspicious than Tom's; 'I tell you there is no danger.' 
'Well!' cried Tom'I am glad to hear it; I am overjoyed to hear it. 
I am sure there is notwhen you say so in that manner. You won't 
take it illJohnthat I said what I did just now!' 
'Ill!' said the othergiving his hand a hearty squeeze; 'why what 
do you think I am made of? Mr Tigg and I are not on such an 
intimate footing that you need be at all uneasyI give you my 
solemn assurance of thatTom. You are quite comfortable now?' 
'Quite' said Tom. 
'Then once moregood night!' 
'Good night!' cried Tom; 'and such pleasant dreams to you as should 
attend the sleep of the best fellow in the world!' 
'--Except Pecksniff' said his friendstopping at the door for a 
momentand looking gayly back. 
'Except Pecksniff' answered Tomwith great gravity; 'of course.' 
And thus they parted for the night; John Westlock full of lightheartedness 
and good humourand poor Tom Pinch quite satisfied; 
though stillas he turned over on his side in bedhe muttered to 
himself'I really do wishfor all thatthoughthat he wasn't 
acquainted with Mr Tigg.' 
They breakfasted together very early next morningfor the two young 
men desired to get back again in good season; and John Westlock was 
to return to London by the coach that day. As he had some hours to 
sparehe bore them company for three or four miles on their walk
and only parted from them at last in sheer necessity. The parting 
was an unusually hearty onenot only as between him and Tom Pinch
but on the side of Martin alsowho had found in the old pupil a 
very different sort of person from the milksop he had prepared 
himself to expect. 
Young Westlock stopped upon a rising groundwhen he had gone a 
little distanceand looked back. They were walking at a brisk 
paceand Tom appeared to be talking earnestly. Martin had taken 
off his greatcoatthe wind being now behind themand carried it 
upon his arm. As he lookedhe saw Tom relieve him of itafter a 
faint resistanceandthrowing it upon his ownencumber himself 
with the weight of both. This trivial incident impressed the old 
pupil mightilyfor he stood theregazing after themuntil they 
were hidden from his view; when he shook his headas if he were 
troubled by some uneasy reflectionand thoughtfully retraced his 
steps to Salisbury. 
In the meantimeMartin and Tom pursued their wayuntil they 
haltedsafe and soundat Mr Pecksniff's housewhere a brief 
epistle from that good gentleman to Mr Pinch announced the family's 
return by that night's coach. As it would pass the corner of the 
lane at about six o'clock in the morningMr Pecksniff requested 
that the gig might be in waiting at the finger-post about that time
together with a cart for the luggage. And to the end that he might 
be received with the greater honourthe young men agreed to rise 
earlyand be upon the spot themselves. 
It was the least cheerful day they had yet passed together. Martin 
was out of spirits and out of humourand took every opportunity of 
comparing his condition and prospects with those of young Westlock; 
much to his own disadvantage always. This mood of his depressed 
Tom; and neither that morning's partingnor yesterday's dinner
helped to mend the matter. So the hours dragged on heavily enough; 
and they were glad to go to bed early. 
They were not quite so glad to get up again at half-past four 
o'clockin all the shivering discomfort of a dark winter's morning; 
but they turned out punctuallyand were at the finger-post full 
half-an-hour before the appointed time. It was not by any means a 
lively morningfor the sky was black and cloudyand it rained 
hard; but Martin said there was some satisfaction in seeing that 
brute of a horse (by thishe meant Mr Pecksniff's Arab steed) 
getting very wet; and that he rejoicedon his accountthat it 
rained so fast. From this it may be inferred that Martin's spirits 
had not improvedas indeed they had not; for while he and Mr Pinch 
stood waiting under a hedgelooking at the rainthe gigthe cart
and its reeking driverhe did nothing but grumble; andbut that it 
is indispensable to any dispute that there should be two parties to 
ithe would certainly have picked a quarrel with Tom. 
At length the noise of wheels was faintly audible in the distance 
and presently the coach came splashing through the mud and mire with 
one miserable outside passenger crouching down among wet straw
under a saturated umbrella; and the coachmanguardand horsesin 
a fellowship of dripping wretchedness. Immediately on its stopping
Mr Pecksniff let down the window-glass and hailed Tom Pinch. 
'Dear meMr Pinch! Is it possible that you are out upon this very 
inclement morning?' 
'Yessir' cried Tomadvancing eagerly'Mr Chuzzlewit and I
sir.' 
'Oh!' said Mr Pecksnifflooking not so much at Martin as at the 
spot on which he stood. 'Oh! Indeed. Do me the favour to see to 
the trunksif you pleaseMr Pinch.' 
Then Mr Pecksniff descendedand helped his daughters to alight; but 
neighter he nor the young ladies took the slightest notice of Martin
who had advanced to offer his assistancebut was repulsed by Mr 
Pecksniff's standing immediately before his personwith his back 
towards him. In the same mannerand in profound silenceMr 
Pecksniff handed his daughters into the gig; and following himself 
and taking the reinsdrove off home. 
Lost in astonishmentMartin stood staring at the coachand when 
the coach had driven awayat Mr Pinchand the luggageuntil the 
cart moved off too; when he said to Tom: 
'Now will you have the goodness to tell me what THIS portends?' 
'What?' asked Tom. 
'This fellow's behaviour. Mr Pecksniff'sI mean. You saw it?' 
'No. Indeed I did not' cried Tom. 'I was busy with the trunks.' 
'It is no matter' said Martin. 'Come! Let us make haste back!' 
And without another word started off at such a pacethat Tom 
had some difficulty in keeping up with him. 
He had no care where he wentbut walked through little heaps of mud 
and little pools of water with the utmost indifference; looking 
straight before himand sometimes laughing in a strange manner 
within himself. Tom felt that anything he could say would only 
render him the more obstinateand therefore trusted to Mr 
Pecksniff's manner when they reached the houseto remove the 
mistaken impression under which he felt convinced so great a 
favourite as the new pupil must unquestionably be labouring. But he 
was not a little amazed himselfwhen they did reach itand entered 
the parlour where Mr Pecksniff was sitting alone before the fire
drinking some hot teato find that instead of taking favourable 
notice of his relative and keeping himMr Pinchin the background
he did exactly the reverseand was so lavish in his attentions to 
Tomthat Tom was thoroughly confounded. 
'Take some teaMr Pinch--take some tea' said Pecksniffstirring 
the fire. 'You must be very cold and damp. Pray take some teaand 
come into a warm placeMr Pinch.' 
Tom saw that Martin looked at Mr Pecksniff as though he could have 
easily found it in his heart to give HIM an invitation to a very 
warm place; but he was quite silentand standing opposite that 
gentleman at the tableregarded him attentively. 
'Take a chairPinch' said Pecksniff. 'Take a chairif you 
please. How have things gone on in our absenceMr Pinch?' 
'You--you will be very much pleased with the grammar-schoolsir' 
said Tom. 'It's nearly finished.' 
'If you will have the goodnessMr Pinch' said Pecksniffwaving 
his hand and smiling'we will not discuss anything connected with 
that question at present. What have YOU been doingThomashumph?' 
Mr Pinch looked from master to pupiland from pupil to masterand 
was so perplexed and dismayed that he wanted presence of mind to 
answer the question. In this awkward intervalMr Pecksniff (who 
was perfectly conscious of Martin's gazethough he had never once 
glanced towards him) poked the fire very muchand when he couldn't 
do that any moredrank tea assiduously. 
'NowMr Pecksniff' said Martin at lastin a very quiet voice'if 
you have sufficiently refreshed and recovered yourselfI shall be 
glad to hear what you mean by this treatment of me.' 
'And what' said Mr Pecksniffturning his eyes on Tom Pincheven 
more placidly and gently than before'what have YOU been doing
Thomashumph?' 
When he had repeated this inquiryhe looked round the walls of the 
room as if he were curious to see whether any nails had been left 
there by accident in former times. 
Tom was almost at his wit's end what to say between the twoand had 
already made a gesture as if he would call Mr Pecksniff's attention 
to the gentleman who had last addressed himwhen Martin saved him 
further troubleby doing so himself. 
'Mr Pecksniff' he saidsoftly rapping the table twice or thrice
and moving a step or two nearerso that he could have touched him 
with his hand; 'you heard what I said just now. Do me the favour to 
replyif you please. I ask you'--he raised his voice a little 
here--'what you mean by this?' 
'I will talk to yousir' said Mr Pecksniff in a severe voiceas 
he looked at him for the first time'presently.' 
'You are very obliging' returned Martin; 'presently will not do. I 
must trouble you to talk to me at once.' 
Mr Pecksniff made a feint of being deeply interested in his 
pocketbookbut it shook in his hands; he trembled so. 
'Now' retorted Martinrapping the table again. 'Now. Presently 
will not do. Now!' 
'Do you threaten mesir?' cried Mr Pecksniff. 
Martin looked at himand made no answer; but a curious observer 
might have detected an ominous twitching at his mouthand perhaps 
an involuntary attraction of his right hand in the direction of Mr 
Pecksniff's cravat. 
'I lament to be obliged to saysir' resumed Mr Pecksniff'that it 
would be quite in keeping with your character if you did threaten 
me. You have deceived me. You have imposed upon a nature which you 
knew to be confiding and unsuspicious. You have obtained admission
sir' said Mr Pecksniffrising'to this houseon perverted 
statements and on false pretences.' 
'Go on' said Martinwith a scornful smile. 'I understand you now. 
What more?' 
'Thus much moresir' cried Mr Pecksnifftrembling from head to 
footand trying to rub his handsas though he were only cold. 
'Thus much moreif you force me to publish your shame before a 
third partywhich I was unwilling and indisposed to do. This lowly 
roofsirmust not be contaminated by the presence of one who has 
deceivedand cruelly deceivedan honourablebelovedvenerated
and venerable gentleman; and who wisely suppressed that deceit from 
me when he sought my protection and favourknowing thathumble as 
I amI am an honest manseeking to do my duty in this carnal 
universeand setting my face against all vice and treachery. I 
weep for your depravitysir' said Mr Pecksniff; 'I mourn over your 
corruptionI pity your voluntary withdrawal of yourself from the 
flowery paths of purity and peace;' here he struck himself upon his 
breastor moral garden; 'but I cannot have a leper and a serpent 
for an inmate. Go forth' said Mr Pecksniffstretching out his 
hand: 'go forthyoung man! Like all who know youI renounce you!' 
With what intention Martin made a stride forward at these wordsit 
is impossible to say. It is enough to know that Tom Pinch caught 
him in his armsand thatat the same momentMr Pecksniff stepped 
back so hastilythat he missed his footingtumbled over a chair
and fell in a sitting posture on the ground; where he remained 
without an effort to get up againwith his head in a corner
perhaps considering it the safest place. 
'Let me goPinch!' cried Martinshaking him away. 'Why do you 
hold me? Do you think a blow could make him a more abject creature 
than he is? Do you think that if I spat upon himI could degrade 
him to a lower level than his own? Look at him. Look at him
Pinch!' 
Mr Pinch involuntarily did so. Mr Pecksniff sittingas has been 
already mentionedon the carpetwith his head in an acute angle of 
the wainscotand all the damage and detriment of an uncomfortable 
journey about himwas not exactly a model of all that is 
prepossessing and dignified in mancertainly. Still he WAS 
Pecksniff; it was impossible to deprive him of that unique and 
paramount appeal to Tom. And he returned Tom's glanceas if he 
would have said'AyeMr Pinchlook at me! Here I am! You know 
what the Poet says about an honest man; and an honest man is one of 
the few great works that can be seen for nothing! Look at me!' 
'I tell you' said Martin'that as he lies theredisgraced
boughtused; a cloth for dirty handsa mat for dirty feeta 
lyingfawningservile houndhe is the very last and worst among 
the vermin of the world. And mark mePinch! The day will come--he 
knows it; see it written on his facewhile I speak!--when even you 
will find him outand will know him as I doand as he knows I do. 
HE renounce ME! Cast your eyes on the RenouncerPinchand be the 
wiser for the recollection!' 
He pointed at him as he spokewith unutterable contemptand 
flinging his hat upon his headwalked from the room and from the 
house. He went so rapidly that he was already clear of the village
when he heard Tom Pinch calling breathlessly after him in the 
distance. 
'Well! what now?' he saidwhen Tom came up. 
'Deardear!' cried Tom'are you going?' 
'Going!' he echoed. 'Going!' 
'I didn't so much mean thatas were you going now at once--in this 
bad weather--on foot--without your clothes--with no money?' cried 
Tom. 
'Yes' he answered sternly'I am.' 
'And where?' cried Tom. 'Oh where will you go?' 
'I don't know' he said. 'YesI do. I'll go to America!' 
'Nono' cried Tomin a kind of agony. 'Don't go there. Pray 
don't. Think better of it. Don't be so dreadfully regardless of 
yourself. Don't go to America!' 
'My mind is made up' he said. 'Your friend was right. I'll go to 
America. God bless youPinch!' 
'Take this!' cried Tompressing a book upon him in great agitation. 
'I must make haste backand can't say anything I would. Heaven be 
with you. Look at the leaf I have turned down. Good-byegood-bye!' 
The simple fellow wrung him by the handwith tears stealing down 
his cheeks; and they parted hurriedly upon their separate ways. 
CHAPTER THIRTEEN 
SHOWING WHAT BECAME OF MARTIN AND HIS DESPARATE RESOLVEAFTER HE 
LEFT MR PECKSNIFF'S HOUSE; WHAT PERSONS HE ENCOUNTERED; WHAT 
ANXIETIES HE SUFFERED; AND WHAT NEWS HE HEARD 
Carrying Tom Pinch's book quite unconsciously under his armand not 
even buttoning his coat as a protection against the heavy rain
Martin went doggedly forward at the same quick paceuntil he had 
passed the finger-postand was on the high road to London. He 
slackened very little in his speed even thenbut he began to think
and look about himand to disengage his senses from the coil of 
angry passions which hitherto had held them prisoner. 
It must be confessed thatat that momenthe had no very agreeable 
employment either for his moral or his physical perceptions. The 
day was dawning from a patch of watery light in the eastand sullen 
clouds came driving up before itfrom which the rain descended in a 
thickwet mist. It streamed from every twig and bramble in the 
hedge; made little gullies in the path; ran down a hundred channels 
in the road; and punched innumerable holes into the face of every 
pond and gutter. It fell with an oozyslushy sound among the 
grass; and made a muddy kennel of every furrow in the ploughed 
fields. No living creature was anywhere to be seen. The prospect 
could hardly have been more desolate if animated nature had been 
dissolved in waterand poured down upon the earth again in that 
form. 
The range of view within the solitary traveller was quite as 
cheerless as the scene without. Friendless and penniless; incensed 
to the last degree; deeply wounded in his pride and self-love; full 
of independent schemesand perfectly destitute of any means of 
realizing them; his most vindictive enemy might have been satisfied 
with the extent of his troubles. To add to his other miserieshe 
was by this time sensible of being wet to the skinand cold at his 
very heart. 
In this deplorable condition he remembered Mr Pinch's book; more 
because it was rather troublesome to carrythan from any hope of 
being comforted by that parting gift. He looked at the dingy 
lettering on the backand finding it to be an odd volume of the 
'Bachelor of Salamanca' in the French tonguecursed Tom Pinch's 
folly twenty times. He was on the point of throwing it awayin his 
ill-humour and vexationwhen he bethought himself that Tom had 
referred him to a leafturned down; and opening it at that place
that he might have additional cause of complaint against him for 
supposing that any cold scrap of the Bachelor's wisdom could cheer 
him in such circumstancesfound!--
Wellwell! not muchbut Tom's all. The half-sovereign. He had 
wrapped it hastily in a piece of paperand pinned it to the leaf. 
These words were scrawled in pencil on the inside: 'I don't want it 
indeed. I should not know what to do with it if I had it.' 
There are some falsehoodsTomon which men mountas on bright 
wingstowards Heaven. There are some truthscold bitter taunting 
truthswherein your worldly scholars are very apt and punctual
which bind men down to earth with leaden chains. Who would not 
rather have to fan himin his dying hourthe lightest feather of a 
falsehood such as thinethan all the quills that have been plucked 
from the sharp porcupinereproachful truthsince time began! 
Martin felt keenly for himselfand he felt this good deed of Tom's 
keenly. After a few minutes it had the effect of raising his 
spiritsand reminding him that he was not altogether destituteas 
he had left a fair stock of clothes behind himand wore a gold 
hunting-watch in his pocket. He found a curious gratificationtoo
in thinking what a winning fellow he must be to have made such an 
impression on Tom; and in reflecting how superior he was to Tom; and 
how much more likely to make his way in the world. Animated by 
these thoughtsand strengthened in his design of endeavouring to 
push his fortune in another countryhe resolved to get to London as 
a rallying-pointin the best way he could; and to lose no time 
about it. 
He was ten good miles from the village made illustrious by being the 
abiding-place of Mr Pecksniffwhen he stopped to breakfast at a 
little roadside alehouse; and resting upon a high-backed settle 
before the firepulled off his coatand hung it before the 
cheerful blaze to dry. It was a very different place from the last 
tavern in which he had regaled; boasting no greater extent of 
accommodation than the brick-floored kitchen yielded; but the mind 
so soon accommodates itself to the necessities of the bodythat 
this poor waggoner's house-of-callwhich he would have despised 
yesterdaybecame now quite a choice hotel; while his dish of eggs 
and baconand his mug of beerwere not by any means the coarse 
fare he had supposedbut fully bore out the inscription on the 
window-shutterwhich proclaimed those viands to be 'Good 
entertainment for Travellers.' 
He pushed away his empty plate; and with a second mug upon the 
hearth before himlooked thoughtfully at the fire until his eyes 
ached. Then he looked at the highly-coloured scripture pieces on 
the wallsin little black frames like common shaving-glassesand 
saw how the Wise Men (with a strong family likeness among them) 
worshipped in a pink manger; and how the Prodigal Son came home in 
red rags to a purple fatherand already feasted his imagination on 
a sea-green calf. Then he glanced through the window at the falling 
raincoming down aslant upon the sign-post over against the house
and overflowing the horse-trough; and then he looked at the fire 
againand seemed to descry a double distant Londonretreating 
among the fragments of the burning wood. 
He had repeated this process in just the same ordermany timesas 
if it were a matter of necessitywhen the sound of wheels called 
his attention to the window out of its regular turn; and there he 
beheld a kind of light van drawn by four horsesand ladenas well 
as he could see (for it was covered in)with corn and straw. The 
driverwho was alonestopped at the door to water his teamand 
presently came stamping and shaking the wet off his hat and coat
into the room where Martin sat. 
He was a red-faced burly young fellow; smart in his wayand with a 
good-humoured countenance. As he advanced towards the fire he 
touched his shining forehead with the forefinger of his stiff 
leather gloveby way of salutation; and said (rather unnecessarily) 
that it was an uncommon wet day. 
'Very wet' said Martin. 
'I don't know as ever I see a wetter.' 
'I never felt one' said Martin. 
The driver glanced at Martin's soiled dressand his damp shirtsleeves
and his coat hung up to dry; and saidafter a pauseas he 
warmed his hands: 
'You have been caught in itsir?' 
'Yes' was the short reply. 
'Out ridingmaybe?' said the driver 
'I should have beenif I owned a horse; but I don't' returned 
Martin. 
'That's bad' said the driver. 
'And may be worse' said Martin. 
Now the driver said 'That's bad' not so much because Martin didn't 
own a horseas because he said he didn't with all the reckless 
desperation of his mood and circumstancesand so left a great deal 
to be inferred. Martin put his hands in his pockets and whistled 
when he had retorted on the driver; thus giving him to understand 
that he didn't care a pin for Fortune; that he was above pretending 
to be her favourite when he was not; and that he snapped his fingers 
at herthe driverand everybody else. 
The driver looked at him stealthily for a minute or so; and in the 
pauses of his warming whistled too. At length he askedas he 
pointed his thumb towards the road. 
'Up or down?' 
'Which IS up?' said Martin. 
'Londonof course' said the driver. 
'Up then' said Martin. He tossed his head in a careless manner 
afterwardsas if he would have added'Now you know all about it.' 
put his hands deeper into his pockets; changed his tuneand 
whistled a little louder. 
'I'm going up' observed the driver; 'Hounslowten miles this side 
London.' 
'Are you?' cried Martinstopping short and looking at him. 
The driver sprinkled the fire with his wet hat until it hissed again 
and answered'Ayeto be sure he was.' 
'Whythen' said Martin'I'll be plain with you. You may suppose 
from my dress that I have money to spare. I have not. All I can 
afford for coach-hire is a crownfor I have but two. If you can 
take me for thatand my waistcoator this silk handkerchiefdo. 
If you can'tleave it alone.' 
'Short and sweet' remarked the driver. 
'You want more?' said Martin. 'Then I haven't got moreand I can't 
get itso there's an end of that.' Whereupon he began to whistle 
again. 
'I didn't say I wanted moredid I?' asked the driverwith 
something like indignation. 
'You didn't say my offer was enough' rejoined Martin. 
'Whyhow could Iwhen you wouldn't let me? In regard to the 
waistcoatI wouldn't have a man's waistcoatmuch less a 
gentleman's waistcoaton my mindfor no consideration; but the 
silk handkerchief's another thing; and if you was satisfied when we 
got to HounslowI shouldn't object to that as a gift.' 
'Is it a bargainthen?' said Martin. 
'Yesit is' returned the other. 
'Then finish this beer' said Martinhanding him the mugand 
pulling on his coat with great alacrity; 'and let us be off as soon 
as you like.' 
In two minutes more he had paid his billwhich amounted to a 
shilling; was lying at full length on a truss of strawhigh and dry 
at the top of the vanwith the tilt a little open in front for the 
convenience of talking to his new friend; and was moving along in 
the right direction with a most satisfactory and encouraging 
briskness. 
The driver's nameas he soon informed Martinwas William Simmons
better known as Bill; and his spruce appearance was sufficiently 
explained by his connection with a large stage-coaching establishment 
at Hounslowwhither he was conveying his load from a farm belonging 
to the concern in Wiltshire. He was frequently up and down the road 
on such errandshe saidand to look after the sick and rest 
horsesof which animals he had much to relate that occupied a long 
time in the telling. He aspired to the dignity of the regular box
and expected an appointment on the first vacancy. He was musical 
besidesand had a little key-bugle in his pocketon which
whenever the conversation flaggedhe played the first part of a 
great many tunesand regularly broke down in the second. 
'Ah!' said Billwith a sighas he drew the back of his hand across 
his lipsand put this instrument in his pocketafter screwing off 
the mouth-piece to drain it; 'Lummy Ned of the Light SalisburyHE 
was the one for musical talents. He WAS a guard. What you may call 
a Guard'an Angelwas Ned.' 
'Is he dead?' asked Martin. 
'Dead!' replied the otherwith a contemptuous emphasis. 'Not he. 
You won't catch Ned a-dying easy. Nono. He knows better than 
that.' 
'You spoke of him in the past tense' observed Martin'so I 
supposed he was no more. 
'He's no more in England' said Bill'if that's what you mean. He 
went to the U-nited States.' 
'Did he?' asked Martinwith sudden interest. 'When?' 
'Five year agoor then about' said Bill. 'He had set up in the 
public line hereand couldn't meet his engagementsso he cut off 
to Liverpool one daywithout saying anything about itand went and 
shipped himself for the U-nited States.' 
'Well?' said Martin. 
'Well! as he landed there without a penny to bless himself withof 
course they wos very glad to see him in the U-nited States.' 
'What do you mean?' asked Martinwith some scorn. 
'What do I mean?' said Bill. 'WhyTHAT. All men are alike in the 
U-nited Statesan't they? It makes no odds whether a man has a 
thousand poundor nothingthere. Particular in New YorkI'm 
toldwhere Ned landed.' 
'New Yorkwas it?' asked Martinthoughtfully. 
'Yes' said Bill. 'New York. I know thatbecause he sent word 
home that it brought Old York to his mindquite vividin 
consequence of being so exactly unlike it in every respect. I don't 
understand what particular business Ned turned his mind towhen he 
got there; but he wrote home that him and his friends was always asinging
Ale Columbiaand blowing up the Presidentso I suppose it 
was something in the public line; or free-and-easy way again. 
Anyhowhe made his fortune.' 
'No!' cried Martin. 
'Yeshe did' said Bill. 'I know thatbecause he lost it all the 
day afterin six-and-twenty banks as broke. He settled a lot of 
the notes on his fatherwhen it was ascertained that they was 
really stopped and sent 'em over with a dutiful letter. I know 
thatbecause they was shown down our yard for the old gentleman's 
benefitthat he might treat himself with tobacco in the workus.' 
'He was a foolish fellow not to take care of his money when he had 
it' said Martinindignantly. 
'There you're right' said Bill'especially as it was all in paper
and he might have took care of it so very easyby folding it up in a 
small parcel.' 
Martin said nothing in replybut soon afterwards fell asleepand 
remained so for an hour or more. When he awokefinding it had 
ceased to rainhe took his seat beside the driverand asked him 
several questions; as how long had the fortunate guard of the Light 
Salisbury been in crossing the Atlantic; at what time of the year 
had he sailed; what was the name of the ship in which he made the 
voyage; how much had he paid for passage-money; did he suffer 
greatly from sea-sickness? and so forth. But on these points of 
detail his friend was possessed of little or no information; either 
answering obviously at random or acknowledging that he had never 
heardor had forgotten; noralthough he returned to the charge 
very oftencould he obtain any useful intelligence on these 
essential particulars. 
They jogged on all dayand stopped so often--now to refreshnow to 
change their team of horsesnow to exchange or bring away a set of 
harnessnow on one point of businessand now upon another
connected with the coaching on that line of road--that it was 
midnight when they reached Hounslow. A little short of the stables 
for which the van was boundMartin got downpaid his crownand 
forced his silk handkerchief upon his honest friendnotwithstanding 
the many protestations that he didn't wish to deprive him of it
with which he tried to give the lie to his longing looks. That 
donethey parted company; and when the van had driven into its own 
yard and the gates were closedMartin stood in the dark street
with a pretty strong sense of being shut outaloneupon the dreary 
worldwithout the key of it. 
But in this moment of despondencyand often afterwardsthe 
recollection of Mr Pecksniff operated as a cordial to him; awakening 
in his breast an indignation that was very wholesome in nerving him 
to obstinate endurance. Under the influence of this fiery dram he 
started off for London without more ado. Arriving there in the 
middle of the nightand not knowing where to find a tavern openhe 
was fain to stroll about the streets and market-places until 
morning. 
He found himselfabout an hour before dawnin the humbler regions 
of the Adelphi; and addressing himself to a man in a fur-capwho was 
taking down the shutters of an obscure public-houseinformed him 
that he was a strangerand inquired if he could have a bed there. 
It happened by good luck that he could. Though none of the 
gaudiestit was tolerably cleanand Martin felt very glad and 
grateful when he crept into itfor warmthrestand forgetfulness. 
It was quite late in the afternoon when he awoke; and by the time he 
had washed and dressedand broken his fastit was growing dusk 
again. This was all the betterfor it was now a matter of absolute 
necessity that he should part with his watch to some obliging pawnbroker. 
He would have waited until after dark for this purpose
though it had been the longest day in the yearand he had begun it 
without a breakfast. 
He passed more Golden Balls than all the jugglers in Europe have 
juggled within the course of their united performancesbefore he 
could determine in favour of any particular shop where those symbols 
were displayed. In the end he came back to one of the first he had 
seenand entering by a side-door in a courtwhere the three balls
with the legend 'Money Lent' were repeated in a ghastly 
transparencypassed into one of a series of little closetsor 
private boxeserected for the accommodation of the more bashful and 
uninitiated customers. He bolted himself in; pulled out his watch; 
and laid it on the counter. 
'Upon my life and soul!' said a low voice in the next box to the 
shopman who was in treaty with him'you must make it more; you must 
make it a trifle moreyou must indeed! You must dispense with one 
half-quarter of an ounce in weighing out your pound of fleshmy 
best of friendsand make it two-and-six.' 
Martin drew back involuntarilyfor he knew the voice at once. 
'You're always full of your chaff' said the shopmanrolling up the 
article (which looked like a shirt) quite as a matter of courseand 
nibbing his pen upon the counter. 
'I shall never be full of my wheat' said Mr Tigg'as long as I 
come here. Haha! Not bad! Make it two-and-sixmy dear friend
positively for this occasion only. Half-a-crown is a delightful 
coin. Two-and-six. Going at two-and-six! For the last time at 
two-and-six!' 
'It'll never be the last time till it's quite worn out' rejoined 
the shopman. 'It's grown yellow in the service as it is.' 
'Its master has grown yellow in the serviceif you mean thatmy 
friend' said Mr Tigg; 'in the patriotic service of an ungrateful 
country. You are making it two-and-sixI think?' 
'I'm making it' returned the shopman'what it always has been--two 
shillings. Same name as usualI suppose?' 
'Still the same name' said Mr Tigg; 'my claim to the dormant 
peerage not being yet established by the House of Lords.' 
'The old address?' 
'Not at all' said Mr Tigg; 'I have removed my town establishment 
from thirty-eightMayfairto number fifteen-hundred-and-forty-two
Park Lane.' 
'ComeI'm not going to put down thatyou know' said the shopman 
with a grin. 
'You may put down what you pleasemy friend' quoth Mr Tigg. 'The 
fact is still the same. The apartments for the under-butler and the 
fifth footman being of a most confounded low and vulgar kind at 
thirty-eightMayfairI have been compelledin my regard for the 
feelings which do them so much honourto take on lease for seven
fourteenor twenty-one yearsrenewable at the option of the 
tenantthe elegant and commodious family mansionnumber fifteenhundred-
and-forty-two Park Lane. Make it two-and-sixand come and 
see me!' 
The shopman was so highly entertained by this piece of humour that 
Mr Tigg himself could not repress some little show of exultation. 
It vented itselfin partin a desire to see how the occupant of 
the next box received his pleasantry; to ascertain which he glanced 
round the partitionand immediatelyby the gaslightrecognized 
Martin. 
'I wish I may die' said Mr Tiggstretching out his body so far 
that his head was as much in Martin's little cell as Martin's own 
head was'but this is one of the most tremendous meetings in 
Ancient or Modern History! How are you? What is the news from the 
agricultural districts? How are our friends the P.'s? Haha! 
Davidpay particular attention to this gentleman immediatelyas a 
friend of mineI beg.' 
'Here! Please to give me the most you can for this' said Martin
handing the watch to the shopman. 'I want money sorely.' 
'He wants moneysorely!' cried Mr Tigg with excessive sympathy. 
'Davidwill you have the goodness to do your very utmost for my 
friendwho wants money sorely. You will deal with my friend as if 
he were myself. A gold hunting-watchDavidengine-turnedcapped 
and jewelled in four holesescape movementhorizontal leverand 
warranted to perform correctlyupon my personal reputationwho 
have observed it narrowly for many yearsunder the most trying 
circumstances'--here he winked at Martinthat he might understand 
this recommendation would have an immense effect upon the shopman; 
'what do you sayDavidto my friend? Be very particular to 
deserve my custom and recommendationDavid.' 
'I can lend you three pounds on thisif you like' said the shopman 
to Martinconfidentially. 'It is very old-fashioned. I couldn't 
say more.' 
'And devilish handsometoo' cried Mr Tigg. 'Two-twelve-six for 
the watchand seven-and-six for personal regard. I am gratified; 
it may be weaknessbut I am. Three pounds will do. We take it. 
The name of my friend is Smivey: Chicken Smiveyof Holborntwentysix-
and-a-half B: lodger.' Here he winked at Martin againto 
apprise him that all the forms and ceremonies prescribed by law were 
now complied withand nothing remained but the receipt for the 
money. 
In point of factthis proved to be the casefor Martinwho had no 
resource but to take what was offered himsignified his 
acquiescence by a nod of his headand presently came out with the 
cash in his pocket. He was joined in the entry by Mr Tiggwho 
warmly congratulated himas he took his arm and accompanied him 
into the streeton the successful issue of the negotiation. 
'As for my part in the same' said Mr Tigg'don't mention it. 
Don't compliment mefor I can't bear it!' 
'I have no such intentionI assure you' retorted Martinreleasing 
his arm and stopping. 
'You oblige me very much' said Mr Tigg. 'Thank you.' 
'Nowsir' observed Martinbiting his lip'this is a large town
and we can easily find different ways in it. If you will show me 
which is your wayI will take another.' 
Mr Tigg was about to speakbut Martin interposed: 
'I need scarcely tell youafter what you have just seenthat I 
have nothing to bestow upon your friend Mr Slyme. And it is quite 
as unnecessary for me to tell you that I don't desire the honour of 
your company.' 
'Stop' cried Mr Tiggholding out his hand. 'Hold! There is a most 
remarkably long-headedflowing-beardedand patriarchal proverb
which observes that it is the duty of a man to be just before he is 
generous. Be just nowand you can be generous presently. Do not 
confuse me with the man Slyme. Do not distinguish the man Slyme as 
a friend of minefor he is no such thing. I have been compelled
sirto abandon the party whom you call Slyme. I have no knowledge 
of the party whom you call Slyme. I amsir' said Mr Tigg
striking himself upon the breast'a premium tulipof a very 
different growth and cultivation from the cabbage Slymesir.' 
'It matters very little to me' said Martin coolly'whether you 
have set up as a vagabond on your own accountor are still trading 
on behalf of Mr Slyme. I wish to hold no correspondence with you. 
In the devil's nameman' said Martinscarcely abledespite his 
vexationto repress a smile as Mr Tigg stood leaning his back 
against the shutters of a shop windowadjusting his hair with great 
composure'will you go one way or other?' 
'You will allow me to remind yousir' said Mr Tiggwith sudden 
dignity'that you--not I--that you--I say emphaticallyYOU--have 
reduced the proceedings of this evening to a cold and distant matter 
of businesswhen I was disposed to place them on a friendly 
footing. It being made a matter of businesssirI beg to say that 
I expect a trifle (which I shall bestow in charity) as commission 
upon the pecuniary advancein which I have rendered you my humble 
services. After the terms in which you have addressed mesir' 
concluded Mr Tigg'you will not insult meif you pleaseby 
offering more than half-a-crown.' 
Martin drew that piece of money from his pocketand tossed it 
towards him. Mr Tigg caught itlooked at it to assure himself of 
its goodnessspun it in the air after the manner of a piemanand 
buttoned it up. Finallyhe raised his hat an inch or two from his 
head with a military airandafter pausing a moment with deep 
gravityas to decide in which direction he should goand to what 
Earl or Marquis among his friends he should give the preference in 
his next callstuck his hands in his skirt-pockets and swaggered 
round the corner. Martin took the directly opposite course; and so
to his great contentthey parted company. 
It was with a bitter sense of humiliation that he cursedagain and 
againthe mischance of having encountered this man in the pawnbroker's 
shop. The only comfort he had in the recollection wasMr 
Tigg's voluntary avowal of a separation between himself and Slyme
that would at least prevent his circumstances (so Martin argued) 
from being known to any member of his familythe bare possibility 
of which filled him with shame and wounded pride. Abstractedly 
there was greater reasonperhapsfor supposing any declaration of 
Mr Tigg's to be falsethan for attaching the least credence to it; 
but remembering the terms on which the intimacy between that 
gentleman and his bosom friend had subsistedand the strong 
probability of Mr Tigg's having established an independent business 
of his own on Mr Slyme's connectionit had a reasonable appearance 
of probability; at all eventsMartin hoped so; and that went a long 
way. 
His first stepnow that he had a supply of ready money for his 
present necessitieswasto retain his bed at the public-house 
until further noticeand to write a formal note to Tom Pinch (for 
he knew Pecksniff would see it) requesting to have his clothes 
forwarded to London by coachwith a direction to be left at the 
office until called for. These measures takenhe passed the 
interval before the box arrived--three days--in making inquiries 
relative to American vesselsat the offices of various shippingagents 
in the city; and in lingering about the docks and wharves
with the faint hope of stumbling upon some engagement for the 
voyageas clerk or supercargoor custodian of something or 
somebodywhich would enable him to procure a free passage. But 
findingsoonthat no such means of employment were likely to 
present themselvesand dreading the consequences of delayhe drew 
up a short advertisementstating what he wantedand inserted it in 
the leading newspapers. Pending the receipt of the twenty or thirty 
answers which he vaguely expectedhe reduced his wardrobe to the 
narrowest limits consistent with decent respectabilityand carried 
the overplus at different times to the pawnbroker's shopfor 
conversion into money. 
And it was strangevery strangeeven to himselfto find howby 
quick though almost imperceptible degreeshe lost his delicacy and 
self-respectand gradually came to do that as a matter of course
without the least compunctionwhich but a few short days before had 
galled him to the quick. The first time he visited the 
pawnbroker'she felt on his way there as if every person whom he 
passed suspected whither he was going; and on his way back againas 
if the whole human tide he stemmedknew well where he had come 
from. When did he care to think of their discernment now! In his 
first wanderings up and down the weary streetshe counterfeited the 
walk of one who had an object in his view; but soon there came upon 
him the saunteringslipshod gait of listless idlenessand the 
lounging at street-cornersand plucking and biting of stray bits of 
strawand strolling up and down the same placeand looking into 
the same shop-windowswith a miserable indifferencefifty times a 
day. At firsthe came out from his lodging with an uneasy sense of 
being observed--even by those chance passers-byon whom he had 
never looked beforeand hundreds to one would never see again-issuing 
in the morning from a public-house; but nowin his comingsout 
and goings-in he did not mind to lounge about the dooror to 
stand sunning himself in careless thought beside the wooden stem
studded from head to heel with pegson which the beer-pots dangled 
like so many boughs upon a pewter-tree. And yet it took but five 
weeks to reach the lowest round of this tall ladder! 
Ohmoralistswho treat of happiness and self-respectinnate in 
every sphere of lifeand shedding light on every grain of dust in 
God's highwayso smooth below your carriage-wheelsso rough 
beneath the tread of naked feetbethink yourselves in looking on 
the swift descent of men who HAVE lived in their own esteemthat 
there are scores of thousands breathing nowand breathing thick 
with painful toilwho in that high respect have never lived at all
nor had a chance of life! Go yewho rest so placidly upon the 
sacred Bard who had been youngand when he strung his harp was old
and had never seen the righteous forsakenor his seed begging their 
bread; goTeachers of content and honest prideinto the minethe 
millthe forgethe squalid depths of deepest ignoranceand 
uttermost abyss of man's neglectand say can any hopeful plant 
spring up in air so foul that it extinguishes the soul's bright 
torch as fast as it is kindled! Andoh! ye Pharisees of the 
nineteen hundredth year of Christian Knowledgewho soundingly 
appeal to human naturesee that it be human first. Take heed it 
has not been transformedduring your slumber and the sleep of 
generationsinto the nature of the Beasts! 
Five weeks! Of all the twenty or thirty answersnot one had come. 
His money--even the additional stock he had raised from the disposal 
of his spare clothes (and that was not muchfor clothesthough 
dear to buyare cheap to pawn)--was fast diminishing. Yet what 
could he do? At times an agony came over him in which he darted 
forth againthough he was but newly homeandreturning to some 
place where he had been already twenty timesmade some new attempt 
to gain his endbut always unsuccessfully. He was years and years 
too old for a cabin-boyand years upon years too inexperienced to 
be accepted as a common seaman. His dress and mannertoo
militated fatally against any such proposal as the latter; and yet 
he was reduced to making it; for even if he could have contemplated 
the being set down in America totally without moneyhe had not 
enough left now for a steerage passage and the poorest provisions 
upon the voyage. 
It is an illustration of a very common tendency in the mind of man
that all this time he never once doubtedone may almost say the 
certainty of doing great things in the New Worldif he could only 
get there. In proportion as he became more and more dejected by his 
present circumstancesand the means of gaining America receded from 
his graspthe more he fretted himself with the conviction that that 
was the only place in which he could hope to achieve any high end
and worried his brain with the thought that men going there in the 
meanwhile might anticipate him in the attainment of those objects 
which were dearest to his heart. He often thought of John Westlock
and besides looking out for him on all occasionsactually walked 
about London for three days together for the express purpose of 
meeting with him. But although he failed in this; and although he 
would not have scrupled to borrow money of him; and although he 
believed that John would have lent it; yet still he could not bring 
his mind to write to Pinch and inquire where he was to be found. 
For althoughas we have seenhe was fond of Tom after his own 
fashionhe could not endure the thought (feeling so superior to 
Tom) of making him the stepping-stone to his fortuneor being 
anything to him but a patron; and his pride so revolted from the 
idea that it restrained him even now. 
It might have yieldedhowever; and no doubt must have yielded soon
but for a very strange and unlooked-for occurrence. 
The five weeks had quite run outand he was in a truly desperate 
plightwhen one eveninghaving just returned to his lodgingand 
being in the act of lighting his candle at the gas jet in the bar 
before stalking moodily upstairs to his own roomhis landlord 
called him by his name. Now as he had never told it to the manbut 
had scrupulously kept it to himselfhe was not a little startled by 
this; and so plainly showed his agitation that the landlordto 
reassure himsaid 'it was only a letter.' 
'A letter!' cried Martin. 
'For Mr Martin Chuzzlewit' said the landlordreading the 
superscription of one he held in his hand. 'Noon. Chief office. 
Paid.' 
Martin took it from himthanked himand walked upstairs. It was 
not sealedbut pasted close; the handwriting was quite unknown to 
him. He opened it and found enclosedwithout any nameaddressor 
other inscription or explanation of any kind whatevera Bank of 
England note for Twenty Pounds. 
To say that he was perfectly stunned with astonishment and delight; 
that he looked again and again at the note and the wrapper; that he 
hurried below stairs to make quite certain that the note was a good 
note; and then hurried up again to satisfy himself for the fiftieth 
time that he had not overlooked some scrap of writing on the 
wrapper; that he exhausted and bewildered himself with conjectures; 
and could make nothing of it but that there the note wasand he was 
suddenly enriched; would be only to relate so many matters of course 
to no purpose. The final upshot of the business at that time was
that he resolved to treat himself to a comfortable but frugal meal 
in his own chamber; and having ordered a fire to be kindledwent 
out to purchase it forthwith. 
He bought some cold beefand hamand French breadand butterand 
came back with his pockets pretty heavily laden. It was somewhat of 
a damping circumstance to find the room full of smokewhich was 
attributable to two causes; firstlyto the flue being naturally 
vicious and a smoker; and secondlyto their having forgottenin 
lighting the firean odd sack or two and some trifleswhich had 
been put up the chimney to keep the rain out. They had already 
remedied this oversighthowever; and propped up the window-sash 
with a bundle of firewood to keep it open; so that except in being 
rather inflammatory to the eyes and choking to the lungsthe 
apartment was quite comfortable. 
Martin was in no vein to quarrel with itif it had been in less 
tolerable orderespecially when a gleaming pint of porter was set 
upon the tableand the servant-girl withdrewbearing with her 
particular instructions relative to the production of something hot 
when he should ring the bell. The cold meat being wrapped in a 
playbillMartin laid the cloth by spreading that document on the 
little round table with the print downwardsand arranging the 
collation upon it. The foot of the bedwhich was very close to the 
fireanswered for a sideboard; and when he had completed these 
preparationshe squeezed an old arm-chair into the warmest corner
and sat down to enjoy himself. 
He had begun to eat with great appetiteglancing round the room 
meanwhile with a triumphant anticipation of quitting it for ever on 
the morrowwhen his attention was arrested by a stealthy footstep 
on the stairsand presently by a knock at his chamber doorwhich
although it was a gentle knock enoughcommunicated such a start to 
the bundle of firewoodthat it instantly leaped out of windowand 
plunged into the street. 
'More coalsI suppose' said Martin. 'Come in!' 
'It an't a libertysirthough it seems so' rejoined a man's 
voice. 'Your servantsir. Hope you're pretty wellsir.' 
Martin stared at the face that was bowing in the doorwayperfectly 
remembering the features and expressionbut quite forgetting to 
whom they belonged. 
'Tapleysir' said his visitor. 'Him as formerly lived at the 
Dragonsirand was forced to leave in consequence of a want of 
jollitysir.' 
'To be sure!' cried Martin. 'Whyhow did you come here?' 
'Right through the passageand up the stairssir' said Mark. 
'How did you find me outI mean?' asked Martin. 
'Whysir' said Mark'I've passed you once or twice in the street
if I'm not mistaken; and when I was a-looking in at the beef-and-ham 
shop just nowalong with a hungry sweepas was very much 
calculated to make a man jollysir--I see you a-buying that.' 
Martin reddened as he pointed to the tableand saidsomewhat 
hastily: 
'Well! What then?' 
'Whythensir' said Mark'I made bold to foller; and as I told 
'em downstairs that you expected meI was let up.' 
'Are you charged with any messagethat you told them you were 
expected?' inquired Martin. 
'NosirI an't' said Mark. 'That was what you may call a pious 
fraudsirthat was.' 
Martin cast an angry look at him; but there was something in the 
fellow's merry faceand in his manner--which with all its 
cheerfulness was far from being obtrusive or familiar--that quite 
disarmed him. He had lived a solitary life toofor many weeksand 
the voice was pleasant in his ear. 
'Tapley' he said'I'll deal openly with you. From all I can judge 
and from all I have heard of you through Pinchyou are not a likely 
kind of fellow to have been brought here by impertinent curiosity or 
any other offensive motive. Sit down. I'm glad to see you.' 
'Thankeesir' said Mark. 'I'd as lieve stand.' 
If you don't sit down,' retorted Martin, 'I'll not talk to you.' 
'Very good, sir,' observed Mark. 'Your will's a law, sir. Down it 
is;' and he sat down accordingly upon the bedstead. 
'Help yourself,' said Martin, handing him the only knife. 
'Thankee, sir,' rejoined Mark. 'After you've done.' 
'If you don't take it now, you'll not have any,' said Martin. 
'Very good, sir,' rejoined Mark. 'That being your desire--now it 
is.' With which reply he gravely helped himself and went on eating. 
Martin having done the like for a short time in silence, said 
abruptly: 
'What are you doing in London?' 
'Nothing at all, sir,' rejoined Mark. 
'How's that?' asked Martin. 
'I want a place,' said Mark. 
'I'm sorry for you,' said Martin. 
'--To attend upon a single gentleman,' resumed Mark. 'If from the 
country the more desirable. Makeshifts would be preferred. Wages 
no object.' 
He said this so pointedly, that Martin stopped in his eating, and 
said: 
'If you mean me--' 
'Yes, I do, sir,' interposed Mark. 
'Then you may judge from my style of living here, of my means of 
keeping a man-servant. Besides, I am going to America immediately.' 
'Well, sir,' returned Mark, quite unmoved by this intelligence 'from 
all that ever I heard about it, I should say America is a very 
likely sort of place for me to be jolly in!' 
Again Martin looked at him angrily; and again his anger melted away 
in spite of himself. 
'Lord bless you, sir,' said Mark, 'what is the use of us a-going 
round and round, and hiding behind the corner, and dodging up and 
down, when we can come straight to the point in six words? I've had 
my eye upon you any time this fortnight. I see well enough there's 
a screw loose in your affairs. I know'd well enough the first time 
I see you down at the Dragon that it must be so, sooner or later. 
Now, sir here am I, without a sitiwation; without any want of wages 
for a year to come; for I saved up (I didn't mean to do it, but I 
couldn't help it) at the Dragon--here am I with a liking for what's 
wentersome, and a liking for you, and a wish to come out strong 
under circumstances as would keep other men down; and will you take 
me, or will you leave me?' 
'How can I take you?' cried Martin. 
'When I say take,' rejoined Mark, 'I mean will you let me go? and 
when I say will you let me go, I mean will you let me go along with 
you? for go I will, somehow or another. Now that you've said 
America, I see clear at once, that that's the place for me to be 
jolly in. Therefore, if I don't pay my own passage in the ship you 
go in, sir, I'll pay my own passage in another. And mark my words, 
if I go alone it shall be, to carry out the principle, in the 
rottenest, craziest, leakingest tub of a wessel that a place can be 
got in for love or money. So if I'm lost upon the way, sir, 
there'll be a drowned man at your door--and always a-knocking double 
knocks at it, too, or never trust me!' 
'This is mere folly,' said Martin. 
'Very good, sir,' returned Mark. 'I'm glad to hear it, because if 
you don't mean to let me go, you'll be more comfortable, perhaps, on 
account of thinking so. Therefore I contradict no gentleman. But 
all I say is, that if I don't emigrate to America in that case, in 
the beastliest old cockle-shell as goes out of port, I'm--' 
'You don't mean what you say, I'm sure,' said Martin. 
'Yes I do,' cried Mark. 
'I tell you I know better,' rejoined Martin. 
'Very good, sir,' said Mark, with the same air of perfect 
satisfaction. 'Let it stand that way at present, sir, and wait and 
see how it turns out. Why, love my heart alive! the only doubt I 
have is, whether there's any credit in going with a gentleman like 
you, that's as certain to make his way there as a gimlet is to go 
through soft deal.' 
This was touching Martin on his weak point, and having him at a 
great advantage. He could not help thinking, either, what a brisk 
fellow this Mark was, and how great a change he had wrought in the 
atmosphere of the dismal little room already. 
'Why, certainly, Mark,' he said, 'I have hopes of doing well there, 
or I shouldn't go. I may have the qualifications for doing well, 
perhaps.' 
'Of course you have, sir,' returned Mark Tapley. 'Everybody knows 
that.' 
'You see,' said Martin, leaning his chin upon his hand, and looking 
at the fire, 'ornamental architecture applied to domestic purposes, 
can hardly fail to be in great request in that country; for men are 
constantly changing their residences there, and moving further off; 
and it's clear they must have houses to live in.' 
'I should say, sir,' observed Mark, 'that that's a state of things 
as opens one of the jolliest look-outs for domestic architecture 
that ever I heerd tell on.' 
Martin glanced at him hastily, not feeling quite free from a 
suspicion that this remark implied a doubt of the successful issue 
of his plans. But Mr Tapley was eating the boiled beef and bread 
with such entire good faith and singleness of purpose expressed in 
his visage that he could not but be satisfied. Another doubt arose 
in his mind however, as this one disappeared. He produced the blank 
cover in which the note had been enclosed, and fixing his eyes on 
Mark as he put it in his hands, said: 
'Now tell me the truth. Do you know anything about that?' 
Mark turned it over and over; held it near his eyes; held it away 
from him at arm's length; held it with the superscription upwards 
and with the superscription downwards; and shook his head with such 
a genuine expression of astonishment at being asked the question, 
that Martin said, as he took it from him again: 
'No, I see you don't. How should you! Though, indeed, your knowing 
about it would not be more extraordinary than its being here. Come, 
Tapley,' he added, after a moment's thought, 'I'll trust you with my 
history, such as it is, and then you'll see more clearly what sort 
of fortunes you would link yourself to, if you followed me.' 
'I beg your pardon, sir,' said Mark; 'but afore you enter upon it 
will you take me if I choose to go? Will you turn off me--Mark 
Tapley--formerly of the Blue Dragon, as can be well recommended by Mr 
Pinch, and as wants a gentleman of your strength of mind to look up 
to; or will you, in climbing the ladder as you're certain to get to 
the top of, take me along with you at a respectful dutance? Now, 
sir,' said Mark, 'it's of very little importance to you, I know. 
there's the difficulty; but it's of very great importance to me, and 
will you be so good as to consider of it?' 
If this were meant as a second appeal to Martin's weak side, founded 
on his observation of the effect of the first, Mr Tapley was a 
skillful and shrewd observer. Whether an intentional or an 
accidental shot, it hit the mark fully for Martin, relenting more 
and more, said with a condescension which was inexpressibly 
delicious to him, after his recent humiliation: 
'We'll see about it, Tapley. You shall tell me in what disposition 
you find yourself to-morrow.' 
'Then, sir,' said Mark, rubbing his hands, 'the job's done. Go on, 
sir, if you please. I'm all attention.' 
Throwing himself back in his arm-chair, and looking at the fire, with 
now and then a glance at Mark, who at such times nodded his head 
sagely, to express his profound interest and attention. Martin ran 
over the chief points in his history, to the same effect as he had 
related them, weeks before, to Mr Pinch. But he adapted them, 
according to the best of his judgment, to Mr Tapley's comprehension; 
and with that view made as light of his love affair as he could, and 
referred to it in very few words. But here he reckoned without his 
host; for Mark's interest was keenest in this part of the business, 
and prompted him to ask sundry questions in relation to it; for 
which he apologised as one in some measure privileged to do so, from 
having seen (as Martin explained to him) the young lady at the Blue 
Dragon. 
'And a young lady as any gentleman ought to feel more proud of being 
in love with,' said Mark, energetically, 'don't draw breath.' 
'Aye! You saw her when she was not happy,' said Martin, gazing at 
the fire again. 'If you had seen her in the old times, indeed--' 
'Why, she certainly was a little down-hearted, sir, and something 
paler in her colour than I could have wished,' said Mark, 'but none 
the worse in her looks for that. I think she seemed better, sir, 
after she come to London.' 
Martin withdrew his eyes from the fire; stared at Mark as if he 
thought he had suddenly gone mad; and asked him what he meant. 
'No offence intended, sir,' urged Mark. 'I don't mean to say she 
was any the happier without you; but I thought she was a-looking 
better, sir.' 
'Do you mean to tell me she has been in London?' asked Martin, 
rising hurriedly, and pushing back his chair. 
'Of course I do,' said Mark, rising too, in great amazement from the 
bedstead. 
'Do you mean to tell me she is in London now?' 
'Most likely, sir. I mean to say she was a week ago.' 
'And you know where?' 
'Yes!' cried Mark. 'What! Don't you?' 
'My good fellow!' exclaimed Martin, clutching him by both arms, 'I 
have never seen her since I left my grandfather's house.' 
'Why, then!' cried Mark, giving the little table such a blow with 
his clenched fist that the slices of beef and ham danced upon it, 
while all his features seemed, with delight, to be going up into his 
forehead, and never coming back again any more, 'if I an't your 
nat'ral born servant, hired by Fate, there an't such a thing in 
natur' as a Blue Dragon. What! when I was a-rambling up and down a 
old churchyard in the City, getting myself into a jolly state, 
didn't I see your grandfather a-toddling to and fro for pretty nigh 
a mortal hour! Didn't I watch him into Todgers's commercial 
boarding-house, and watch him out, and watch him home to his hotel, 
and go and tell him as his was the service for my money, and I had 
said so, afore I left the Dragon! Wasn't the young lady a-sitting 
with him then, and didn't she fall a-laughing in a manner as was 
beautiful to see! Didn't your grandfather say, Come back again next 
week and didn't I go next week; and didn't he say that he 
couldn't make up his mind to trust nobody no more; and therefore 
wouldn't engage me, but at the same time stood something to drink as 
was handsome! Why,' cried Mr Tapley, with a comical mixture of 
delight and chagrin, 'where's the credit of a man's being jolly 
under such circumstances! Who could help it, when things come about 
like this!' 
For some moments Martin stood gazing at him, as if he really doubted 
the evidence of his senses, and could not believe that Mark stood 
there, in the body, before him. At length he asked him whether, if 
the young lady were still in London, he thought he could contrive to 
deliver a letter to her secretly. 
'Do I think I can?' cried Mark. 'THINK I can? Here, sit down, sir. 
Write it out, sir!' 
With that he cleared the table by the summary process of tilting 
everything upon it into the fireplace; snatched some writing 
materials from the mantel-shelf; set Martin's chair before them; 
forced him down into it; dipped a pen into the ink; and put it in 
his hand. 
'Cut away, sir!' cried Mark. 'Make it strong, sir. Let it be wery 
pinted, sir. Do I think so? I should think so. Go to work, sir!' 
Martin required no further adjuration, but went to work at a great 
rate; while Mr Tapley, installing himself without any more 
formalities into the functions of his valet and general attendant, 
divested himself of his coat, and went on to clear the fireplace 
and arrange the room; talking to himself in a low voice the whole 
time. 
'Jolly sort of lodgings,' said Mark, rubbing his nose with the knob 
at the end of the fire-shovel, and looking round the poor chamber; 
'that's a comfort. The rain's come through the roof too. That an't 
bad. A lively old bedstead, I'll be bound; popilated by lots of 
wampires, no doubt. Come! my spirits is a-getting up again. An 
uncommon ragged nightcap this. A very good sign. We shall do yet! 
Here, Jane, my dear,' calling down the stairs, 'bring up that there 
hot tumbler for my master as was a-mixing when I come in. That's 
right, sir,' to Martin. 'Go at it as if you meant it, sir. Be very 
tender, sir, if you please. You can't make it too strong, sir!' 
CHAPTER FOURTEEN 
IN WHICH MARTIN BIDS ADIEU TO THE LADY OF HIS LOVE; AND HONOURS AN 
OBSCURE INDIVIDUAL WHOSE FORTUNE HE INTENDS TO MAKE BY COMMENDING 
HER TO HIS PROTECTION 
The letter being duly signed, sealed, and delivered, was handed to 
Mark Tapley, for immediate conveyance if possible. And he succeeded 
so well in his embassy as to be enabled to return that same night, 
just as the house was closing, with the welcome intelligence that he 
had sent it upstairs to the young lady, enclosed in a small 
manuscript of his own, purporting to contain his further petition to 
be engaged in Mr Chuzzlewit's service; and that she had herself come 
down and told him, in great haste and agitation, that she would meet 
the gentleman at eight o'clock to-morrow morning in St. James's 
Park. It was then agreed between the new master and the new man, 
that Mark should be in waiting near the hotel in good time, to 
escort the young lady to the place of appointment; and when they had 
parted for the night with this understanding, Martin took up his pen 
again; and before he went to bed wrote another letter, whereof more 
will be seen presently. 
He was up before daybreak, and came upon the Park with the morning, 
which was clad in the least engaging of the three hundred and sixtyfive 
dresses in the wardrobe of the year. It was raw, damp, dark, 
and dismal; the clouds were as muddy as the ground; and the short 
perspective of every street and avenue was closed up by the mist as 
by a filthy curtain. 
'Fine weather indeed,' Martin bitterly soliloquised, 'to be 
wandering up and down here in, like a thief! Fine weather indeed, 
for a meeting of lovers in the open air, and in a public walk! I 
need be departing, with all speed, for another country; for I have 
come to a pretty pass in this!' 
He might perhaps have gone on to reflect that of all mornings in the 
year, it was not the best calculated for a young lady's coming forth 
on such an errand, either. But he was stopped on the road to this 
reflection, if his thoughts tended that way, by her appearance at a 
short distance, on which he hurried forward to meet her. Her 
squire, Mr Tapley, at the same time fell discreetly back, and 
surveyed the fog above him with an appearance of attentive interest. 
'My dear Martin,' said Mary. 
'My dear Mary,' said Martin; and lovers are such a singular kind of 
people that this is all they did say just then, though Martin took 
her arm, and her hand too, and they paced up and down a short walk 
that was least exposed to observation, half-a-dozen times. 
'If you have changed at all, my love, since we parted,' said Martin 
at length, as he looked upon her with a proud delight, 'it is only 
to be more beautiful than ever!' 
Had she been of the common metal of love-worn young ladies, she 
would have denied this in her most interesting manner; and would 
have told him that she knew she had become a perfect fright; or that 
she had wasted away with weeping and anxiety; or that she was 
dwindling gently into an early grave; or that her mental sufferings 
were unspeakable; or would, either by tears or words, or a mixture 
of both, have furnished him with some other information to that 
effect, and made him as miserable as possible. But she had been 
reared up in a sterner school than the minds of most young girls are 
formed in; she had had her nature strengthened by the hands of hard 
endurance and necessity; had come out from her young trials 
constant, self-denying, earnest, and devoted; had acquired in her 
maidenhood--whether happily in the end, for herself or him, is 
foreign to our present purpose to inquire--something of that nobler 
quality of gentle hearts which is developed often by the sorrows and 
struggles of matronly years, but often by their lessons only. 
Unspoiled, unpampered in her joys or griefs; with frank and full, 
and deep affection for the object of her early love; she saw in him 
one who for her sake was an outcast from his home and fortune, and 
she had no more idea of bestowing that love upon him in other than 
cheerful and sustaining words, full of high hope and grateful 
trustfulness, than she had of being unworthy of it, in her lightest 
thought or deed, for any base temptation that the world could offer. 
'What change is there in YOU, Martin,' she replied; 'for that 
concerns me nearest? You look more anxious and more thoughtful than 
you used.' 
'Why, as to that, my love,' said Martin as he drew her waist within 
his arm, first looking round to see that there were no observers 
near, and beholding Mr Tapley more intent than ever on the fog; 'it 
would be strange if I did not; for my life--especially of late--has 
been a hard one.' 
'I know it must have been,' she answered. 'When have I forgotten to 
think of it and you?' 
'Not often, I hope,' said Martin. 'Not often, I am sure. Not 
often, I have some right to expect, Mary; for I have undergone a 
great deal of vexation and privation, and I naturally look for that 
return, you know.' 
'A very, very poor return,' she answered with a fainter smile. 'But 
you have it, and will have it always. You have paid a dear price 
for a poor heart, Martin; but it is at least your own, and a true 
one.' 
'Of course I feel quite certain of that,' said Martin, 'or I 
shouldn't have put myself in my present position. And don't say a 
poor heart, Mary, for I say a rich one. Now, I am about to break a 
design to you, dearest, which will startle you at first, but which is 
undertaken for your sake. I am going,' he added slowly, looking far 
into the deep wonder of her bright dark eyes, 'abroad.' 
'Abroad, Martin!' 
'Only to America. See now. How you droop directly!' 
'If I do, or, I hope I may say, if I did,' she answered, raising her 
head after a short silence, and looking once more into his face, 'it 
was for grief to think of what you are resolved to undergo for me. 
I would not venture to dissuade you, Martin; but it is a long, long 
distance; there is a wide ocean to be crossed; illness and want are 
sad calamities in any place, but in a foreign country dreadful to 
endure. Have you thought of all this?' 
'Thought of it!' cried Martin, abating, in his fondness--and he WAS 
very fond of her--hardly an iota of his usual impetuosity. 'What am 
I to do? It's very well to say, Have I thought of it?" my love; but 
you should ask me in the same breathhave I thought of starving at 
home; have I thought of doing porter's work for a living; have I 
thought of holding horses in the streets to earn my roll of bread 
from day to day? Comecome' he addedin a gentler tone'do not 
hang down your headmy dearfor I need the encouragement that your 
sweet face alone can give me. Whythat's well! Now you are brave 
again.' 
'I am endeavouring to be' she answeredsmiling through her tears. 
'Endeavouring to be anything that's goodand being itiswith 
youall one. Don't I know that of old?' cried Martingayly. 
'So! That's famous! Now I can tell you all my plans as cheerfully 
as if you were my little wife alreadyMary.' 
She hung more closely on his armand looking upwards in his face
bade him speak on. 
'You see' said Martinplaying with the little hand upon his wrist
'that my attempts to advance myself at home have been baffled and 
rendered abortive. I will not say by whomMaryfor that would 
give pain to us both. But so it is. Have you heard him speak of 
late of any relative of mine or hiscalled Pecksniff? Only tell me 
what I ask youno more.' 
'I have heardto my surprisethat he is a better man than was 
supposed.' 
'I thought so' interrupted Martin. 
'And that it is likely we may come to know himif not to visit and 
reside with him and--I think--his daughters. He HAS daughtershas 
helove?' 
'A pair of them' Martin answered. 'A precious pair! Gems of the 
first water!' 
'Ah! You are jesting!' 
'There is a sort of jesting which is very much in earnestand 
includes some pretty serious disgust' said Martin. 'I jest in 
reference to Mr Pecksniff (at whose house I have been living as his 
assistantand at whose hands I have received insult and injury)in 
that vein. Whatever betidesor however closely you may be brought 
into communication with this familynever forget thatMary; and 
never for an instantwhatever appearances may seem to contradict 
melose sight of this assurance--Pecksniff is a scoundrel.' 
'Indeed!' 
'In thoughtand in deedand in everything else. A scoundrel from 
the topmost hair of his headto the nethermost atom of his heel. 
Of his daughters I will only say thatto the best of my knowledge 
and beliefthey are dutiful young ladiesand take after their 
father closely. This is a digression from the main pointand yet 
it brings me to what I was going to say.' 
He stopped to look into her eyes againand seeingin a hasty 
glance over his shoulderthat there was no one nearand that Mark 
was still intent upon the fognot only looked at her lipstoobut 
kissed them into the bargain. 
'Now I am going to Americawith great prospects of doing welland 
of returning home myself very soon; it may be to take you there for 
a few yearsbutat all eventsto claim you for my wife; which
after such trialsI should do with no fear of your still thinking 
it a duty to cleave to him who will not suffer me to live (for this 
is true)if he can help itin my own land. How long I may be 
absent isof courseuncertain; but it shall not be very long. 
Trust me for that.' 
'In the meantimedear Martin--' 
'That's the very thing I am coming to. In the meantime you shall 
hearconstantlyof all my goings-on. Thus.' 
He paused to take from his pocket the letter he had written 
overnightand then resumed: 
'In this fellow's employmentand living in this fellow's house (by 
fellowI mean Mr Pecksniffof course)there is a certain person 
of the name of Pinch. Don't forget; a poorstrangesimple oddity
Mary; but thoroughly honest and sincere; full of zeal; and with a 
cordial regard for me. Which I mean to return one of these daysby 
setting him up in life in some way or other.' 
'Your old kind natureMartin!' 
'Oh!' said Martin'that's not worth speaking ofmy love. He's 
very grateful and desirous to serve me; and I am more than repaid. 
Now one night I told this Pinch my historyand all about myself and 
you; in which he was not a little interestedI can tell youfor he 
knows you! Ayeyou may look surprised--and the longer the better for 
it becomes you--but you have heard him play the organ in the church 
of that village before now; and he has seen you listening to his 
music; and has caught his inspiration from youtoo!' 
'Was HE the organist?' cried Mary. 'I thank him from my heart!' 
'Yeshe was' said Martin'and isand gets nothing for it either. 
There never was such a simple fellow! Quite an infant! But a very 
good sort of creatureI assure you.' 
'I am sure of that' she said with great earnestness. 'He must be!' 
'Ohyesno doubt at all about it' rejoined Martinin his usual 
careless way. 'He is. Well! It has occurred to me--but stay. If I 
read you what I have written and intend sending to him by post to-
night it will explain itself. "My dear Tom Pinch." That's rather 
familiar perhaps' said Martinsuddenly remembering that he was 
proud when they had last met'but I call him my dear Tom Pinch 
because he likes itand it pleases him.' 
'Very rightand very kind' said Mary. 
'Exactly so!' cried Martin. 'It's as well to be kind whenever one 
can; andas I said beforehe really is an excellent fellow. "My 
dear Tom Pinch--I address this under cover to Mrs Lupinat the 
Blue Dragonand have begged her in a short note to deliver it to 
you without saying anything about it elsewhere; and to do the same 
with all future letters she may receive from me. My reason for so 
doing will be at once apparent to you"--I don't know that it will 
beby the bye' said Martinbreaking off'for he's slow of 
comprehensionpoor fellow; but he'll find it out in time. My 
reason simply isthat I don't want my letters to be read by other 
people; and particularly by the scoundrel whom he thinks an angel.' 
'Mr Pecksniff again?' asked Mary. 
'The same' said Martin '--will be at once apparent to you. I have 
completed my arrangements for going to America; and you will be 
surprised to hear that I am to be accompanied by Mark Tapleyupon 
whom I have stumbled strangely in Londonand who insists on putting 
himself under my protection'--meaningmy love' said Martin
breaking off again'our friend in the rearof course.' 
She was delighted to hear thisand bestowed a kind glance upon 
Markwhich he brought his eyes down from the fog to encounter and 
received with immense satisfaction. She said in his hearingtoo
that he was a good soul and a merry creatureand would be faithful
she was certain; commendations which Mr Tapley inwardly resolved to 
deservefrom such lipsif he died for it. 
'"Nowmy dear Pinch' resumed Martin, proceeding with his letter; 
'I am going to repose great trust in youknowing that I may do so 
with perfect reliance on your honour and secrecyand having nobody 
else just now to trust in."' 
'I don't think I would say thatMartin.' 
'Wouldn't you? Well! I'll take that out. It's perfectly true
though.' 
'But it might seem ungraciousperhaps.' 
'OhI don't mind Pinch' said Martin. 'There's no occasion to 
stand on any ceremony with HIM. HoweverI'll take it outas you 
wish itand make the full stop at "secrecy." Very well! "I shall 
not only"--this is the letter againyou know.' 
'I understand.' 
'"I shall not only enclose my letters to the young lady of whom I 
have told youto your chargeto be forwarded as she may request; 
but I most earnestly commit herthe young lady herselfto your 
care and regardin the event of your meeting in my absence. I have 
reason to think that the probabilities of your encountering each 
other--perhaps very frequently--are now neither remote nor few; and 
although in our position you can do very little to lessen the 
uneasiness of hersI trust to you implicitly to do that muchand 
so deserve the confidence I have reposed in you." You seemy dear 
Mary' said Martin'it will be a great consolation to you to have 
anybodyno matter how simplewith whom you can speak about ME; and 
the very first time you talk to Pinchyou'll feel at once that 
there is no more occasion for any embarrassment or hesitation in 
talking to himthan if he were an old woman.' 
'However that may be' she returnedsmiling'he is your friend
and that is enough.' 
'Ohyeshe's my friend' said Martin'certainly. In factI have 
told him in so many words that we'll always take notice of himand 
protect him; and it's a good trait in his character that he's 
grateful--very grateful indeed. You'll like him of all thingsmy 
loveI know. You'll observe very much that's comical and oldfashioned 
about Pinchbut you needn't mind laughing at him; for 
he'll not care about it. He'll rather like it indeed!' 
'I don't think I shall put that to the testMartin.' 
'You won't if you can help itof course' he said'but I think 
you'll find him a little too much for your gravity. Howeverthat's 
neither here nor thereand it certainly is not the letter; which 
ends thus: "Knowing that I need not impress the nature and extent of 
that confidence upon you at any greater lengthas it is already 
sufficiently established in your mindI will only sayin bidding 
you farewell and looking forward to our next meetingthat I shall 
charge myself from this timethrough all changes for the better
with your advancement and happinessas if they were my own. You 
may rely upon that. And always believe memy dear Tom Pinch
faithfully your friendMartin Chuzzlewit. P.S.--I enclose the 
amount which you so kindly"--Oh' said Martinchecking himselfand 
folding up the letter'that's nothing!' 
At this crisis Mark Tapley interposedwith an apology for remarking 
that the clock at the Horse Guards was striking. 
'Which I shouldn't have said nothing aboutsir' added Mark'if 
the young lady hadn't begged me to be particular in mentioning it.' 
'I did' said Mary. 'Thank you. You are quite right. In another 
minute I shall be ready to return. We have time for a very few 
words moredear Martinand although I had much to sayit must 
remain unsaid until the happy time of our next meeting. Heaven send 
it may come speedily and prosperously! But I have no fear of that.' 
'Fear!' cried Martin. 'Whywho has? What are a few months? What 
is a whole year? When I come gayly backwith a road through life 
hewn out before methen indeedlooking back upon this partingit 
may seem a dismal one. But now! I swear I wouldn't have it happen 
under more favourable auspicesif I could; for then I should be 
less inclined to goand less impressed with the necessity.' 
'Yesyes. I feel that too. When do you go?' 
'To-night. We leave for Liverpool to-night. A vessel sails from 
that portas I hearin three days. In a monthor lesswe shall 
be there. Whywhat's a month! How many months have flown bysince 
our last parting!' 
'Long to look back upon' said Maryechoing his cheerful tone'but 
nothing in their course!' 
'Nothing at all!' cried Martin. 'I shall have change of scene and 
change of place; change of peoplechange of mannerschange of 
cares and hopes! Time will wear wings indeed! I can bear anything
so that I have swift actionMary.' 
Was he thinking solely of her care for himwhen he took so little 
heed of her share in the separation; of her quiet monotonous 
enduranceand her slow anxiety from day to day? Was there nothing 
jarring and discordant even in his tone of couragewith this one 
note 'self' for ever audiblehowever high the strain? Not in her 
ears. It had been better otherwiseperhapsbut so it was. She 
heard the same bold spirit which had flung away as dross all gain 
and profit for her sakemaking light of peril and privation that 
she might be calm and happy; and she heard no more. That heart 
where self has found no place and raised no throneis slow to 
recognize its ugly presence when it looks upon it. As one possessed 
of an evil spirit was held in old time to be alone conscious of the 
lurking demon in the breasts of other menso kindred vices know 
each other in their hiding-places every daywhen Virtue is 
incredulous and blind. 
'The quarter's gone!' cried Mr Tapleyin a voice of admonition. 
'I shall be ready to return immediately' she said. 'One thing
dear MartinI am bound to tell you. You entreated me a few minutes 
since only to answer what you asked me in reference to one theme
but you should and must know (otherwise I could not be at ease) that 
since that separation of which I was the unhappy occasionhe has 
never once uttered your name; has never coupled itor any faint 
allusion to itwith passion or reproach; and has never abated in 
his kindness to me.' 
'I thank him for that last act' said Martin'and for nothing else. 
Though on consideration I may thank him for his other forbearance 
alsoinasmuch as I neither expect nor desire that he will mention 
my name again. He may onceperhaps--to couple it with reproach--in 
his will. Let himif he please! By the time it reaches mehe will 
be in his grave; a satire on his own angerGod help him!' 
'Martin! If you would but sometimesin some quiet hour; beside the 
winter fire; in the summer air; when you hear gentle musicor think 
of Deathor Homeor Childhood; if you would at such a season 
resolve to thinkbut once a monthor even once a yearof himor 
any one who ever wronged youyou would forgive him in your heartI 
know!' 
'If I believed that to be trueMary' he replied'I would resolve 
at no such time to bear him in my mind; wishing to spare myself the 
shame of such a weakness. I was not born to be the toy and puppet 
of any manfar less his; to whose pleasure and capricein return 
for any good he did memy whole youth was sacrificed. It became 
between us two a fair exchange--a barter--and no more; and there is 
no such balance against me that I need throw in a mawkish 
forgiveness to poise the scale. He has forbidden all mention of me 
to youI know' he added hastily. 'Come! Has he not?' 
'That was long ago' she returned; 'immediately after your parting; 
before you had left the house. He has never done so since.' 
'He has never done so since because he has seen no occasion' said 
Martin; 'but that is of little consequenceone way or other. Let 
all allusion to him between you and me be interdicted from this time 
forth. And thereforelove'--he drew her quickly to himfor the 
time of parting had now come--'in the first letter that you write to 
me through the Post Officeaddressed to New York; and in all the 
others that you send through Pinch; remember he has no existence
but has become to us as one who is dead. NowGod bless you! This 
is a strange place for such a meeting and such a parting; but our 
next meeting shall be in a betterand our next and last parting in 
a worse.' 
'One other questionMartinI must ask. Have you provided money 
for this journey?' 
'Have I?' cried Martin; it might have been in his pride; it might 
have been in his desire to set her mind at ease: 'Have I provided 
money? Whythere's a question for an emigrant's wife! How could I 
move on land or sea without itlove?' 
'I meanenough.' 
'Enough! More than enough. Twenty times more than enough. A 
pocket-full. Mark and Ifor all essential endsare quite as rich 
as if we had the purse of Fortunatus in our baggage.' 
'The half-hour's a-going!' cried Mr Tapley. 
'Good-bye a hundred times!' cried Maryin a trembling voice. 
But how cold the comfort in Good-bye! Mark Tapley knew it perfectly. 
Perhaps he knew it from his readingperhaps from his experience
perhaps from intuition. It is impossible to say; but however he 
knew ithis knowledge instinctively suggested to him the wisest 
course of proceeding that any man could have adopted under the 
circumstances. He was taken with a violent fit of sneezingand was 
obliged to turn his head another way. In doing whichhein a 
manner fenced and screened the lovers into a corner by themselves. 
There was a short pausebut Mark had an undefined sensation that it 
was a satisfactory one in its way. Then Marywith her veil 
loweredpassed him with a quick stepand beckoned him to follow. 
She stopped once more before they lost that corner; looked back; and 
waved her hand to Martin. He made a start towards them at the 
moment as if he had some other farewell words to say; but she only 
hurried off the fasterand Mr Tapley followed as in duty bound. 
When he rejoined Martin again in his own chamberhe found that 
gentleman seated moodily before the dusty gratewith his two feet 
on the fenderhis two elbows on his kneesand his chin supported
in a not very ornamental manneron the palms of his hands. 
'WellMark!' 
'Wellsir' said Marktaking a long breath'I see the young lady 
safe homeand I feel pretty comfortable after it. She sent a lot 
of kind wordssirand this' handing him a ring'for a parting 
keepsake.' 
'Diamonds!' said Martinkissing it--let us do him justiceit was 
for her sake; not for theirs--and putting it on his little finger. 
'Splendid diamonds! My grandfather is a singular characterMark. 
He must have given her this now.' 
Mark Tapley knew as well that she had bought itto the end that 
that unconscious speaker might carry some article of sterling value 
with him in his necessity; as he knew that it was dayand not 
night. Though he had no more acquaintance of his own knowledge with 
the history of the glittering trinket on Martin's outspread finger
than Martin himself hadhe was as certain that in its purchase she 
had expended her whole stock of hoarded moneyas if he had seen it 
paid down coin by coin. Her lover's strange obtuseness in relation 
to this little incidentpromptly suggested to Mark's mind its real 
cause and root; and from that moment he had a clear and perfect 
insight into the one absorbing principle of Martin's character. 
'She is worthy of the sacrifices I have made' said Martinfolding 
his armsand looking at the ashes in the stoveas if in resumption 
of some former thoughts. 'Well worthy of them. No riches'--here he 
stroked his chin and mused--'could have compensated for the loss of 
such a nature. Not to mention that in gaining her affection I have 
followed the bent of my own wishesand baulked the selfish schemes 
of others who had no right to form them. She is quite worthy--more 
than worthy--of the sacrifices I have made. Yesshe is. No doubt 
of it.' 
These ruminations might or might not have reached Mark Tapley; for 
though they were by no means addressed to himyet they were softly 
uttered. In any casehe stood therewatching Martin with an 
indescribable and most involved expression on his visageuntil that 
young man roused himself and looked towards him; when he turned 
awayas being suddenly intent upon certain preparations for the 
journeyandwithout giving vent to any articulate soundsmiled 
with surpassing ghastlinessand seemed by a twist of his features 
and a motion of his lipsto release himself of this word: 
'Jolly!' 
CHAPTER FIFTEEN 
THE BURDEN WHEREOFIS HAIL COLUMBIA! 
A dark and dreary night; people nestling in their beds or circling 
late about the fire; Wantcolder than Charityshivering at the 
street corners; church-towers humming with the faint vibration of 
their own tonguesbut newly resting from the ghostly preachment 
'One!' The earth covered with a sable pall as for the burial of 
yesterday; the clumps of dark treesits giant plumes of funeral 
featherswaving sadly to and fro: all hushedall noiselessand in 
deep reposesave the swift clouds that skim across the moonand 
the cautious windascreeping after them upon the groundit stops 
to listenand goes rustling onand stops againand followslike 
a savage on the trail. 
Whither go the clouds and wind so eagerly? Iflike guilty spirits
they repair to some dread conference with powers like themselvesin 
what wild regions do the elements hold councilor where unbend in 
terrible disport? 
Here! Free from that cramped prison called the earthand out upon 
the waste of waters. Hereroaringragingshriekinghowlingall 
night long. Hither come the sounding voices from the caverns on the 
coast of that small islandsleepinga thousand miles awayso 
quietly in the midst of angry waves; and hitherto meet themrush 
the blasts from unknown desert places of the world. Herein the 
fury of their unchecked libertythey storm and buffet with each 
otheruntil the sealashed into passion like their ownleaps up
in ravings mightier than theirsand the whole scene is madness. 
Onononover the countless miles of angry space roll the long 
heaving billows. Mountains and caves are hereand yet are not; for 
what is now the oneis now the other; then all is but a boiling 
heap of rushing water. Pursuitand flightand mad return of wave 
on waveand savage struggleending in a spouting-up of foam that 
whitens the black night; incessant change of placeand formand 
hue; constancy in nothingbut eternal strife; onononthey 
rolland darker grows the nightand louder howls the windand 
more clamorous and fierce become the million voices in the seawhen 
the wild cry goes forth upon the storm 'A ship!' 
Onward she comesin gallant combat with the elementsher tall 
masts tremblingand her timbers starting on the strain; onward she 
comesnow high upon the curling billowsnow low down in the 
hollows of the seaas hiding for the moment from its fury; and 
every storm-voice in the air and water cries more loudly yet'A 
ship!' 
Still she comes striving on; and at her boldness and the spreading 
crythe angry waves rise up above each other's hoary heads to look; 
and round about the vesselfar as the mariners on the decks can 
pierce into the gloomthey press upon herforcing each other down 
and starting upand rushing forward from afarin dreadful 
curiosity. High over her they break; and round her surge and roar; 
and giving place to othersmoaningly departand dash themselves to 
fragments in their baffled anger. Still she comes onward bravely. 
And though the eager multitude crowd thick and fast upon her all the 
nightand dawn of day discovers the untiring train yet bearing down 
upon the ship in an eternity of troubled wateronward she comes
with dim lights burning in her hulland people thereasleep; as if 
no deadly element were peering in at every seam and chinkand no 
drowned seaman's gravewith but a plank to cover itwere yawning 
in the unfathomable depths below. 
Among these sleeping voyagers were Martin and Mark Tapleywho
rocked into a heavy drowsiness by the unaccustomed motionwere 
as insensible to the foul air in which they layas to the uproar 
without. It was broad day when the latter awoke with a dim idea 
that he was dreaming of having gone to sleep in a four-post bedstead 
which had turned bottom upwards in the course of the night. There 
was more reason in this toothan in the roasting of eggs; for the 
first objects Mr Tapley recognized when he opened his eyes were his 
own heels--looking down to himas he afterwards observedfrom 
a nearly perpendicular elevation. 
'Well!' said Markgetting himself into a sitting postureafter 
various ineffectual struggles with the rolling of the ship. 'This 
is the first time as ever I stood on my head all night.' 
'You shouldn't go to sleep upon the ground with your head to leeward 
then' growled a man in one of the berths. 
'With my head to WHERE?' asked Mark. 
The man repeated his previous sentiment. 
'NoI won't another time' said Mark'when I know whereabouts on 
the map that country is. In the meanwhile I can give you a better 
piece of advice. Don't you nor any other friend of mine never go to 
sleep with his head in a ship any more.' 
The man gave a grunt of discontented acquiescenceturned over in 
his berthand drew his blanket over his head. 
'--For' said Mr Tapleypursuing the theme by way of soliloquy in 
a low tone of voice; 'the sea is as nonsensical a thing as any 
going. It never knows what to do with itself. It hasn't got no 
employment for its mindand is always in a state of vacancy. Like 
them Polar bears in the wild-beast shows as is constantly a-nodding 
their heads from side to sideit never CAN be quiet. Which is 
entirely owing to its uncommon stupidity.' 
'Is that youMark?' asked a faint voice from another berth. 
'It's as much of me as is leftsirafter a fortnight of this 
work' Mr Tapley replied'What with leading the life of a flyever 
since I've been aboard--for I've been perpetually holding-on to 
something or other in a upside-down position--what with thatsir
and putting a very little into myselfand taking a good deal out of 
myselfthere an't too much of me to swear by. How do you find 
yourself this morningsir?' 
'Very miserable' said Martinwith a peevish groan. 'Ugh. This is 
wretchedindeed!' 
'Creditable' muttered Markpressing one hand upon his aching head 
and looking round him with a rueful grin. 'That's the great 
comfort. It IS creditable to keep up one's spirits here. Virtue's 
its own reward. So's jollity.' 
Mark was so far right that unquestionably any man who retained his 
cheerfulness among the steerage accommodations of that noble and 
fast-sailing line-of-packet ship'THE SCREW' was solely indebted 
to his own resourcesand shipped his good humourlike his 
provisionswithout any contribution or assistance from the owners. 
A darklowstifling cabinsurrounded by berths all filled to 
overflowing with menwomenand childrenin various stages of 
sickness and miseryis not the liveliest place of assembly at any 
time; but when it is so crowded (as the steerage cabin of the 
Screw wasevery passage out)that mattresses and beds are heaped 
upon the floorto the extinction of everything like comfort
cleanlinessand decencyit is liable to operate not only as a 
pretty strong banner against amiability of temperbut as a positive 
encourager of selfish and rough humours. Mark felt thisas he sat 
looking about him; and his spirits rose proportionately. 
There were English peopleIrish peopleWelsh peopleand Scotch 
people there; all with their little store of coarse food and shabby 
clothes; and nearly all with their families of children. There were 
children of all ages; from the baby at the breastto the slatterngirl 
who was as much a grown woman as her mother. Every kind of 
domestic suffering that is bred in povertyillnessbanishment
sorrowand long travel in bad weatherwas crammed into the little 
space; and yet was there infinitely less of complaint and 
querulousnessand infinitely more of mutual assistance and general 
kindness to be found in that unwholesome arkthan in many brilliant 
ballrooms. 
Mark looked about him wistfullyand his face brightened as he 
looked. Here an old grandmother was crooning over a sick childand 
rocking it to and froin arms hardly more wasted than its own young 
limbs; here a poor woman with an infant in her lapmended another 
little creature's clothesand quieted another who was creeping up 
about her from their scanty bed upon the floor. Here were old men 
awkwardly engaged in little household officeswherein they would 
have been ridiculous but for their good-will and kind purpose; and 
here were swarthy fellows--giants in their way--doing such little 
acts of tenderness for those about themas might have belonged to 
gentlest-hearted dwarfs. The very idiot in the corner who sat 
mowing thereall dayhad his faculty of imitation roused by what 
he saw about him; and snapped his fingers to amuse a crying child. 
'Nowthen' said Marknodding to a woman who was dressing her 
three children at no great distance from him--and the grin upon his 
face had by this time spread from ear to ear--'Hand over one of them 
young 'uns according to custom.' 
'I wish you'd get breakfastMarkinstead of worrying with people 
who don't belong to you' observed Martinpetulantly. 
'All right' said Mark. 'SHE'll do that. It's a fair division of 
laboursir. I wash her boysand she makes our tea. I never COULD 
make teabut any one can wash a boy.' 
The womanwho was delicate and illfelt and understood his 
kindnessas well she mightfor she had been covered every night 
with his greatcoatwhile he had for his own bed the bare boards 
and a rug. But Martinwho seldom got up or looked about himwas 
quite incensed by the folly of this speechand expressed his 
dissatisfaction by an impatient groan. 
'So it iscertainly' said Markbrushing the child's hair as 
coolly as if he had been born and bred a barber. 
'What are you talking aboutnow?' asked Martin. 
'What you said' replied Mark; 'or what you meantwhen you gave 
that there dismal vent to your feelings. I quite go along with it
sir. It IS very hard upon her.' 
'What is?' 
'Making the voyage by herself along with these young impediments 
hereand going such a way at such a time of the year to join her 
husband. If you don't want to be driven mad with yellow soap in 
your eyeyoung man' said Mr Tapley to the second urchinwho was 
by this time under his hands at the basin'you'd better shut it.' 
'Where does she join her husband?' asked Martinyawning. 
'WhyI'm very much afraid' said Mr Tapleyin a low voice'that 
she don't know. I hope she mayn't miss him. But she sent her last 
letter by handand it don't seem to have been very clearly 
understood between 'em without itand if she don't see him a-waving 
his pocket-handkerchief on the shorelike a pictur out of a songbook
my opinion isshe'll break her heart.' 
'Whyhowin Folly's namedoes the woman come to be on board ship 
on such a wild-goose venture!' cried Martin. 
Mr Tapley glanced at him for a moment as he lay prostrate in his 
berthand then saidvery quietly: 
'Ah! How indeed! I can't think! He's been away from her for two 
year; she's been very poor and lonely in her own country; and has 
always been a-looking forward to meeting him. It's very strange she 
should be here. Quite amazing! A little mad perhaps! There can't 
be no other way of accounting for it.' 
Martin was too far gone in the lassitude of sea-sickness to make any 
reply to these wordsor even to attend to them as they were spoken. 
And the subject of their discourse returning at this crisis with 
some hot teaeffectually put a stop to any resumption of the theme 
by Mr Tapley; whowhen the meal was over and he had adjusted 
Martin's bedwent up on deck to wash the breakfast servicewhich 
consisted of two half-pint tin mugsand a shaving-pot of the same 
metal. 
It is due to Mark Tapley to state that he suffered at least as much 
from sea-sickness as any manwomanor childon board; and that he 
had a peculiar faculty of knocking himself about on the smallest 
provocationand losing his legs at every lurch of the ship. But 
resolvedin his usual phraseto 'come out strong' under 
disadvantageous circumstanceshe was the life and soul of the 
steerageand made no more of stopping in the middle of a facetious 
conversation to go away and be excessively ill by himselfand 
afterwards come back in the very best and gayest of tempers to 
resume itthan if such a course of proceeding had been the 
commonest in the world. 
It cannot be said that as his illness wore offhis cheerfulness and 
good nature increasedbecause they would hardly admit of 
augmentation; but his usefulness among the weaker members of the 
party was much enlarged; and at all times and seasons there he was 
exerting it. If a gleam of sun shone out of the dark skydown Mark 
tumbled into the cabinand presently up he came again with a woman 
in his armsor half-a-dozen childrenor a manor a bedor a 
saucepanor a basketor something animate or inanimatethat he 
thought would be the better for the air. If an hour or two of fine 
weather in the middle of the day tempted those who seldom or never 
came on deck at other times to crawl into the long-boator lie down 
upon the spare sparsand try to eattherein the centre of the 
groupwas Mr Tapleyhanding about salt beef and biscuitor 
dispensing tastes of grogor cutting up the children's provisions 
with his pocketknifefor their greater ease and comfortor reading 
aloud from a venerable newspaperor singing some roaring old song 
to a select partyor writing the beginnings of letters to their 
friends at home for people who couldn't writeor cracking jokes 
with the crewor nearly getting blown over the sideor emerging
half-drownedfrom a shower of sprayor lending a hand somewhere or 
other; but always doing something for the general entertainment. At 
nightwhen the cooking-fire was lighted on the deckand the 
driving sparks that flew among the riggingand the clouds of sails
seemed to menace the ship with certain annihilation by firein case 
the elements of air and water failed to compass her destruction; 
thereagainwas Mr Tapleywith his coat off and his shirt-sleeves 
turned up to his elbowsdoing all kinds of culinary offices; 
compounding the strangest dishes; recognized by every one as an 
established authority; and helping all parties to achieve something 
whichleft to themselvesthey never could have doneand never 
would have dreamed of. In shortthere never was a more popular 
character than Mark Tapley becameon board that noble and fastsailing 
line-of-packet shipthe Screw; and he attained at last to 
such a pitch of universal admirationthat he began to have grave 
doubts within himself whether a man might reasonably claim any 
credit for being jolly under such exciting circumstances. 
'If this was going to last' said Tapley'there'd be no great 
difference as I can perceivebetween the Screw and the Dragon. 
never am to get creditI think. I begin to be afraid that the 
Fates is determined to make the world easy to me.' 
'WellMark' said Martinnear whose berth he had ruminated to this 
effect. 'When will this be over?' 
'Another weekthey saysir' returned Mark'will most likely 
bring us into port. The ship's a-going along at presentas 
sensible as a ship cansir; though I don't mean to say as that's 
any very high praise.' 
'I don't think it isindeed' groaned Martin. 
'You'd feel all the better for itsirif you was to turn out' 
observed Mark. 
'And be seen by the ladies and gentlemen on the after-deck' 
returned Martinwith a scronful emphasis upon the words'mingling 
with the beggarly crowd that are stowed away in this vile hole. I 
should be greatly the better for thatno doubt.' 
'I'm thankful that I can't say from my own experience what the 
feelings of a gentleman may be' said Mark'but I should have 
thoughtsiras a gentleman would feel a deal more uncomfortable 
down here than up in the fresh airespecially when the ladies and 
gentlemen in the after-cabin know just as much about him as he does 
about themand are likely to trouble their heads about him in the 
same proportion. I should have thought thatcertainly.' 
'I tell youthen' rejoined Martin'you would have thought wrong
and do think wrong.' 
'Very likelysir' said Markwith imperturbable good temper. 'I 
often do.' 
'As to lying here' cried Martinraising himself on his elbowand 
looking angrily at his follower. 'Do you suppose it's a pleasure to 
lie here?' 
'All the madhouses in the world' said Mr Tapley'couldn't produce 
such a maniac as the man must be who could think that.' 
'Then why are you forever goading and urging me to get up?' asked 
Martin'I lie here because I don't wish to be recognizedin the 
better days to which I aspireby any purse-proud citizenas the 
man who came over with him among the steerage passengers. I lie 
here because I wish to conceal my circumstances and myselfand not 
to arrive in a new world badged and ticketed as an utterly povertystricken 
man. If I could have afforded a passage in the after-cabin 
I should have held up my head with the rest. As I couldn't I hide 
it. Do you understand that?' 
'I am very sorrysir' said Mark. 'I didn't know you took it so 
much to heart as this comes to.' 
'Of course you didn't know' returned his master. 'How should you 
knowunless I told you? It's no trial to youMarkto make 
yourself comfortable and to bustle about. It's as natural for you 
to do so under the circumstances as it is for me not to do so. Why
you don't suppose there is a living creature in this ship who can by 
possibility have half so much to undergo on board of her as I have? 
Do you?' he askedsitting upright in his berth and looking at Mark
with an expression of great earnestness not unmixed with wonder. 
Mark twisted his face into a tight knotand with his head very much 
on one sidepondered upon this question as if he felt it an 
extremely difficult one to answer. He was relieved from his 
embarrassment by Martin himselfwho saidas he stretched himself 
upon his back again and resumed the book he had been reading: 
'But what is the use of my putting such a case to youwhen the very 
essence of what I have been saying isthat you cannot by 
possibility understand it! Make me a little brandy-and-water--cold 
and very weak--and give me a biscuitand tell your friendwho is a 
nearer neighbour of ours than I could wishto try and keep her 
children a little quieter to-night than she did last night; that's a 
good fellow.' 
Mr Tapley set himself to obey these orders with great alacrityand 
pending their executionit may be presumed his flagging spirits 
revived; inasmuch as he several times observedbelow his breath
that in respect of its power of imparting a credit to jollitythe 
Screw unquestionably had some decided advantages over the Dragon. 
He also remarked that it was a high gratification to him to reflect 
that he would carry its main excellence ashore with himand have it 
constantly beside him wherever he went; but what he meant by these 
consolatory thoughts he did not explain. 
And now a general excitement began to prevail on board; and various 
predictions relative to the precise dayand even the precise hour 
at which they would reach New Yorkwere freely broached. There was 
infinitely more crowding on deck and looking over the ship's side 
than there had been before; and an epidemic broke out for packing up 
things every morningwhich required unpacking again every night. 
Those who had any letters to deliveror any friends to meetor any 
settled plans of going anywhere or doing anythingdiscussed their 
prospects a hundred times a day; and as this class of passengers was 
very smalland the number of those who had no prospects whatever 
was very largethere were plenty of listeners and few talkers. 
Those who had been ill all alonggot well nowand those who had 
been wellgot better. An American gentleman in the after-cabin
who had been wrapped up in fur and oilskin the whole passage
unexpectedly appeared in a very shinytallblack hatand 
constantly overhauled a very little valise of pale leatherwhich 
contained his clotheslinenbrushesshaving apparatusbooks
trinketsand other baggage. He likewise stuck his hands deep into 
his pocketsand walked the deck with his nostrils dilatedas 
already inhaling the air of Freedom which carries death to all 
tyrantsand can never (under any circumstances worth mentioning) be 
breathed by slaves. An English gentleman who was strongly suspected 
of having run away from a bankwith something in his possession 
belonging to its strong box besides the keygrew eloquent upon the 
subject of the rights of manand hummed the Marseillaise Hymn 
constantly. In a wordone great sensation pervaded the whole ship
and the soil of America lay close before them; so close at last
thatupon a certain starlight night they took a pilot on boardand 
within a few hours afterwards lay to until the morningawaiting the 
arrival of a steamboat in which the passengers were to be conveyed 
ashore. 
Off she camesoon after it was light next morningand lying 
alongside an hour or more--during which period her very firemen were 
objects of hardly less interest and curiosity than if they had been 
so many angelsgood or bad--took all her living freight aboard. 
Among them Markwho still had his friend and her three children 
under his close protection; and Martinwho had once more dressed 
himself in his usual attirebut wore a soiledold cloak above his 
ordinary clothesuntil such time as he should separate for ever 
from his late companions. 
The steamer--whichwith its machinery on decklookedas it worked 
its long slim legslike some enormously magnified insect or 
antediluvian monster--dashed at great speed up a beautiful bay; and 
presently they saw some heightsand islandsand a longflat
straggling city. 
'And this' said Mr Tapleylooking far ahead'is the Land of 
Libertyis it? Very well. I'm agreeable. Any land will do for 
meafter so much water!' 
CHAPTER SIXTEEN 
MARTIN DISEMBARKS FROM THAT NOBLE AND FAST-SAILING LINE-OF-PACKET 
SHIP'THE SCREW'AT THE PORT OF NEW YORKIN THE UNITED STATES OF 
AMERICA. HE MAKES SOME ACQUAINTANCESAND DINES AT A BOARDINGHOUSE. 
THE PARTICULARS OF THOSE TRANSACTIONS 
Some trifling excitement prevailed upon the very brink and margin of 
the land of liberty; for an alderman had been elected the day 
before; and Party Feeling naturally running rather high on such an 
exciting occasionthe friends of the disappointed candidate had 
found it necessary to assert the great principles of Purity of 
Election and Freedom of opinion by breaking a few legs and armsand 
furthermore pursuing one obnoxious gentleman through the streets 
with the design of hitting his nose. These good-humoured little 
outbursts of the popular fancy were not in themselves sufficiently 
remarkable to create any great stirafter the lapse of a whole 
night; but they found fresh life and notoriety in the breath of the 
newsboyswho not only proclaimed them with shrill yells in all the 
highways and byways of the townupon the wharves and among the 
shippingbut on the deck and down in the cabins of the steamboat; 
whichbefore she touched the shorewas boarded and overrun by a 
legion of those young citizens. 
'Here's this morning's New York Sewer!' cried one. 'Here's this 
morning's New York Stabber! Here's the New York Family Spy! Here's 
the New York Private Listener! Here's the New York Peeper! Here's 
the New York Plunderer! Here's the New York Keyhole Reporter! Here's 
the New York Rowdy Journal! Here's all the New York papers! Here's 
full particulars of the patriotic locofoco movement yesterdayin 
which the whigs was so chawed up; and the last Alabama gouging case; 
and the interesting Arkansas dooel with Bowie knives; and all the 
PoliticalCommercialand Fashionable News. Here they are! Here 
they are! Here's the papershere's the papers!' 
'Here's the Sewer!' cried another. 'Here's the New York Sewer! 
Here's some of the twelfth thousand of to-day's Sewerwith the best 
accounts of the marketsand all the shipping newsand four whole 
columns of country correspondenceand a full account of the Ball at 
Mrs White's last nightwhere all the beauty and fashion of New York 
was assembled; with the Sewer's own particulars of the private lives 
of all the ladies that was there! Here's the Sewer! Here's some of 
the twelfth thousand of the New York Sewer! Here's the Sewer's 
exposure of the Wall Street Gangand the Sewer's exposure of the 
Washington Gangand the Sewer's exclusive account of a flagrant act 
of dishonesty committed by the Secretary of State when he was eight 
years old; now communicatedat a great expenseby his own nurse. 
Here's the Sewer! Here's the New York Sewerin its twelfth 
thousandwith a whole column of New Yorkers to be shown upand all 
their names printed! Here's the Sewer's article upon the Judge that 
tried himday afore yesterdayfor libeland the Sewer's tribute 
to the independent Jury that didn't convict himand the Sewer's 
account of what they might have expected if they had! Here's the 
Sewerhere's the Sewer! Here's the wide-awake Sewer; always on the 
lookout; the leading Journal of the United Statesnow in its 
twelfth thousandand still a-printing off:--Here's the New York 
Sewer!' 
'It is in such enlightened means' said a voice almost in Martin's 
ear'that the bubbling passions of my country find a vent.' 
Martin turned involuntarilyand sawstanding close at his sidea 
sallow gentlemanwith sunken cheeksblack hairsmall twinkling 
eyesand a singular expression hovering about that region of his 
facewhich was not a frownnor a leerand yet might have been 
mistaken at the first glance for either. Indeed it would have been 
difficulton a much closer acquaintanceto describe it in any more 
satisfactory terms than as a mixed expression of vulgar cunning and 
conceit. This gentleman wore a rather broad-brimmed hat for the 
greater wisdom of his appearance; and had his arms folded for the 
greater impressiveness of his attitude. He was somewhat shabbily 
dressed in a blue surtout reaching nearly to his anklesshort loose 
trousers of the same colourand a faded buff waistcoatthrough 
which a discoloured shirt-frill struggled to force itself into 
noticeas asserting an equality of civil rights with the other 
portions of his dressand maintaining a declaration of Independence 
on its own account. His feetwhich were of unusually large 
proportionswere leisurely crossed before him as he half leaned 
againsthalf sat uponthe steamboat's bulwark; and his thick cane
shod with a mighty ferule at one end and armed with a great metal 
knob at the otherdepended from a line-and-tassel on his wrist. 
Thus attiredand thus composed into an aspect of great profundity
the gentleman twitched up the right-hand corner of his mouth and his 
right eye simultaneouslyand saidonce more: 
'It is in such enlightened means that the bubbling passions of my 
country find a vent.' 
As he looked at Martinand nobody else was byMartin inclined his 
headand said: 
'You allude to--?' 
'To the Palladium of rational Liberty at homesirand the dread of 
Foreign oppression abroad' returned the gentlemanas he pointed 
with his cane to an uncommonly dirty newsboy with one eye. 'To the 
Envy of the worldsirand the leaders of Human Civilization. Let 
me ask you sir' he addedbringing the ferule of his stick heavily 
upon the deck with the air of a man who must not be equivocated 
with'how do you like my Country?' 
'I am hardly prepared to answer that question yet' said Martin 
'seeing that I have not been ashore.' 
'WellI should expect you were not preparedsir' said the 
gentleman'to behold such signs of National Prosperity as those?' 
He pointed to the vessels lying at the wharves; and then gave a 
vague flourish with his stickas if he would include the air and 
watergenerallyin this remark. 
'Really' said Martin'I don't know. Yes. I think I was.' 
The gentleman glanced at him with a knowing lookand said he liked 
his policy. It was naturalhe saidand it pleased him as a 
philosopher to observe the prejudices of human nature. 
'You have broughtI seesir' he saidturning round towards 
Martinand resting his chin on the top of his stick'the usual 
amount of misery and poverty and ignorance and crimeto be located 
in the bosom of the great Republic. Wellsir! let 'em come on in 
shiploads from the old country. When vessels are about to founder
the rats are said to leave 'em. There is considerable of truthI 
findin that remark.' 
'The old ship will keep afloat a year or two longer yetperhaps' 
said Martin with a smilepartly occasioned by what the gentleman 
saidand partly by his manner of saying itwhich was odd enough 
for he emphasised all the small words and syllables in his 
discourseand left the others to take care of themselves; as if he 
thought the larger parts of speech could be trusted alonebut the 
little ones required to be constantly looked after. 
'Hope is said by the poetsir' observed the gentleman'to be the 
nurse of young Desire.' 
Martin signified that he had heard of the cardinal virtue in 
question serving occasionally in that domestic capacity. 
'She will not rear her infant in the present instancesiryou'll 
find' observed the gentleman. 
'Time will show' said Martin. 
The gentleman nodded his head gravely; and said'What is your name
sir?' 
Martin told him. 
'How old are yousir?' 
Martin told him. 
'What is your professionsir?' 
Martin told him that also. 
'What is your destinationsir?' inquired the gentleman. 
'Really' said Martin laughing'I can't satisfy you in that 
particularfor I don't know it myself.' 
'Yes?' said the gentleman. 
'No' said Martin. 
The gentleman adjusted his cane under his left armand took a more 
deliberate and complete survey of Martin than he had yet had leisure 
to make. When he had completed his inspectionhe put out his right 
handshook Martin's handand said: 
'My name is Colonel Diversir. I am the Editor of the New York 
Rowdy Journal.' 
Martin received the communication with that degree of respect which 
an announcement so distinguished appeared to demand. 
'The New York Rowdy Journalsir' resumed the colonel'isas I 
expect you knowthe organ of our aristocracy in this city.' 
'Oh! there IS an aristocracy herethen?' said Martin. 'Of what is 
it composed?' 
'Of intelligencesir' replied the colonel; 'of intelligence and 
virtue. And of their necessary consequence in this republic-dollars
sir.' 
Martin was very glad to hear thisfeeling well assured that if 
intelligence and virtue ledas a matter of courseto the 
acquisition of dollarshe would speedily become a great capitalist. 
He was about to express the gratification such news afforded him
when he was interrupted by the captain of the shipwho came up at 
the moment to shake hands with the colonel; and whoseeing a 
well-dressed stranger on the deck (for Martin had thrown aside his 
cloak)shook hands with him also. This was an unspeakable relief 
to Martinwhoin spite of the acknowledged supremacy of 
Intelligence and virtue in that happy countrywould have been 
deeply mortified to appear before Colonel Diver in the poor 
character of a steerage passenger. 
'Well cap'en!' said the colonel. 
'Well colonel' cried the captain. 'You're looking most uncommon 
brightsir. I can hardly realise its being youand that's a 
fact.' 
'A good passagecap'en?' inquired the coloneltaking him aside
'Well now! It was a pretty spanking runsir' saidor rather sung
the captainwho was a genuine New Englander; 'con-siderin' the 
weather.' 
'Yes?' said the colonel. 
'Well! It wassir' said the captain. 'I've just now sent a boy up 
to your office with the passenger-listcolonel.' 
'You haven't got another boy to sparep'rapscap'en?' said the 
colonelin a tone almost amounting to severity. 
'I guess there air a dozen if you want 'emcolonel' said the 
captain. 
'One moderate big 'un could convey a dozen champagneperhaps' 
observed the colonelmusing'to my office. You said a spanking 
runI think?' 
'Wellso I did' was the reply. 
'It's very nighyou know' observed the colonel. 'I'm glad it was 
a spanking runcap'en. Don't mind about quarts if you're short of 
'em. The boy can as well bring four-and-twenty pintsand travel 
twice as once.--A first-rate spankercap'enwas it? Yes?' 
'A most e--tarnal spanker' said the skipper. 
'I admire at your good fortuncap'en. You might loan me a 
corkscrew at the same timeand half-a-dozen glasses if you liked. 
However bad the elements combine against my country's noble 
packet-shipthe Screwsir' said the colonelturning to Martin
and drawing a flourish on the surface of the deck with his cane
'her passage either way is almost certain to eventuate a spanker!' 
The captainwho had the Sewer below at that momentlunching 
expensively in one cabinwhile the amiable Stabber was drinking 
himself into a state of blind madness in anothertook a cordial 
leave of his friend the coloneland hurried away to dispatch the 
champagne; well knowing (as it afterwards appeared) that if he 
failed to conciliate the editor of the Rowdy Journalthat potentate 
would denounce him and his ship in large capitals before he was a 
day older; and would probably assault the memory of his mother also
who had not been dead more than twenty years. The colonel being 
again left alone with Martinchecked him as he was moving awayand 
offered in consideration of his being an Englishmanto show him the 
town and to introduce himif such were his desireto a genteel 
boarding-house. But before they entered on these proceedings (he 
said)he would beseech the honour of his company at the office of 
the Rowdy Journalto partake of a bottle of champagne of his own 
importation. 
All this was so extremely kind and hospitablethat Martinthough 
it was quite early in the morningreadily acquiesced. So
instructing Markwho was deeply engaged with his friend and her 
three childrenthat when he had done assisting themand had cleared 
the baggagehe was to wait for further orders at the Rowdy Journal 
OfficeMartin accompanied his new friend on shore. 
They made their way as they best could through the melancholy crowd 
of emigrants upon the wharfwhogrouped about their beds and 
boxeswith the bare ground below them and the bare sky abovemight 
have fallen from another planetfor anything they knew of the 
country; and walked for some short distance along a busy street
bounded on one side by the quays and shipping; and on the other by a 
long row of staring red-brick storehouses and officesornamented 
with more black boards and white lettersand more white boards and 
black lettersthan Martin had ever seen beforein fifty times the 
space. Presently they turned up a narrow streetand presently into 
other narrow streetsuntil at last they stopped before a house 
whereon was painted in great characters'ROWDY JOURNAL.' 
The colonelwho had walked the whole way with one hand in his 
breasthis head occasionally wagging from side to sideand his hat 
thrown back upon his earslike a man who was oppressed to 
inconvenience by a sense of his own greatnessled the way up a dark 
and dirty flight of stairs into a room of similar characterall 
littered and bestrewn with odds and ends of newspapers and other 
crumpled fragmentsboth in proof and manuscript. Behind a mangy 
old writing-table in this apartment sat a figure with a stump of a 
pen in its mouth and a great pair of scissors in its right hand
clipping and slicing at a file of Rowdy Journals; and it was such a 
laughable figure that Martin had some difficulty in preserving his 
gravitythough conscious of the close observation of Colonel Diver. 
The individual who sat clipping and slicing as aforesaid at the 
Rowdy Journalswas a small young gentleman of very juvenile 
appearanceand unwholesomely pale in the face; partlyperhaps
from intense thoughtbut partlythere is no doubtfrom the 
excessive use of tobaccowhich he was at that moment chewing 
vigorously. He wore his shirt-collar turned down over a black 
ribbon; and his lank haira fragile cropwas not only smoothed and 
parted back from his browthat none of the Poetry of his aspect 
might be lostbut hadhere and therebeen grubbed up by the 
roots; which accounted for his loftiest developments being somewhat 
pimply. He had that order of nose on which the envy of mankind has 
bestowed the appellation 'snub' and it was very much turned up at 
the endas with a lofty scorn. Upon the upper lip of this young 
gentleman were tokens of a sandy down; so veryvery smooth and 
scantthatthough encouraged to the utmostit looked more like a 
recent trace of gingerbread than the fair promise of a moustache; 
and this conjecturehis apparently tender age went far to 
strengthen. He was intent upon his work. Every time he snapped the 
great pair of scissorshe made a corresponding motion with his 
jawswhich gave him a very terrible appearance. 
Martin was not long in determining within himself that this must be 
Colonel Diver's son; the hope of the familyand future mainspring 
of the Rowdy Journal. Indeed he had begun to say that he presumed 
this was the colonel's little boyand that it was very pleasant to 
see him playing at Editor in all the guilelessness of childhood
when the colonel proudly interposed and said: 
'My War Correspondentsir--Mr Jefferson Brick!' 
Martin could not help starting at this unexpected announcementand 
the consciousness of the irretrievable mistake he had nearly made. 
Mr Brick seemed pleased with the sensation he produced upon the 
strangerand shook hands with himwith an air of patronage 
designed to reassure himand to let him blow that there was no 
occasion to be frightenedfor he (Brick) wouldn't hurt him. 
'You have heard of Jefferson BrickI seesir' quoth the colonel
with a smile. 'England has heard of Jefferson Brick. Europe has 
heard of Jefferson Brick. Let me see. When did you leave England
sir?' 
'Five weeks ago' said Martin. 
'Five weeks ago' repeated the colonelthoughtfully; as he took his 
seat upon the tableand swung his legs. 'Now let me ask yousir 
which of Mr Brick's articles had become at that time the most 
obnoxious to the British Parliament and the Court of Saint James's?' 
'Upon my word' said Martin'I--' 
'I have reason to knowsir' interrupted the colonel'that the 
aristocratic circles of your country quail before the name of 
Jefferson Brick. I should like to be informedsirfrom your lips
which of his sentiments has struck the deadliest blow--' 
'At the hundred heads of the Hydra of Corruption now grovelling in 
the dust beneath the lance of Reasonand spouting up to the 
universal arch above usits sanguinary gore' said Mr Brick
putting on a little blue cloth cap with a glazed frontand quoting 
his last article. 
'The libation of freedomBrick'--hinted the colonel. 
'--Must sometimes be quaffed in bloodcolonel' cried Brick. And 
when he said 'blood' he gave the great pair of scissors a sharp 
snapas if THEY said blood tooand were quite of his opinion. 
This donethey both looked at Martinpausing for a reply. 
'Upon my life' said Martinwho had by this time quite recovered 
his usual coolness'I can't give you any satisfactory information 
about it; for the truth is that I--' 
'Stop!' cried the colonelglancing sternly at his war correspondent 
and giving his head one shake after every sentence. 'That you never 
heard of Jefferson Bricksir. That you never read Jefferson Brick
sir. That you never saw the Rowdy Journalsir. That you never 
knewsirof its mighty influence upon the cabinets of Europe. 
Yes?' 
'That's what I was about to observecertainly' said Martin. 
'Keep coolJefferson' said the colonel gravely. 'Don't bust! oh 
you Europeans! After thatlet's have a glass of wine!' So saying
he got down from the tableand producedfrom a basket outside the 
doora bottle of champagneand three glasses. 
'Mr Jefferson Bricksir' said the colonelfilling Martin's glass 
and his ownand pushing the bottle to that gentleman'will give us 
a sentiment.' 
'Wellsir!' cried the war correspondent'Since you have concluded 
to call upon meI will respond. I will give yousirThe Rowdy 
Journal and its brethren; the well of Truthwhose waters are black 
from being composed of printers' inkbut are quite clear enough for 
my country to behold the shadow of her Destiny reflected in.' 
'Hearhear!' cried the colonelwith great complacency. 'There are 
flowery componentssirin the language of my friend?' 
'Very much soindeed' said Martin. 
'There is to-day's Rowdysir' observed the colonelhanding him a 
paper. 'You'll find Jefferson Brick at his usual post in the van of 
human civilization and moral purity.' 
The colonel was by this time seated on the table again. Mr Brick 
also took up a position on that same piece of furniture; and they 
fell to drinking pretty hard. They often looked at Martin as he 
read the paperand then at each other. When he laid it downwhich 
was not until they had finished a second bottlethe colonel asked 
him what he thought of it. 
'Whyit's horribly personal' said Martin. 
The colonel seemed much flattered by this remark; and said he hoped 
it was. 
'We are independent heresir' said Mr Jefferson Brick. 'We do as 
we like.' 
'If I may judge from this specimen' returned Martin'there must be 
a few thousands hererather the reverse of independentwho do as 
they don't like.' 
'Well! They yield to the popular mind of the Popular Instructor
sir' said the colonel. 'They rile upsometimes; but in general we 
have a hold upon our citizensboth in public and in private life
which is as much one of the ennobling institutions of our happy 
country as--' 
'As nigger slavery itself' suggested Mr Brick. 
'En--tirely so' remarked the colonel. 
'Pray' said Martinafter some hesitation'may I venture to ask
with reference to a case I observe in this paper of yourswhether 
the Popular Instructor often deals in--I am at a loss to express it 
without giving you offence--in forgery? In forged lettersfor 
instance' he pursuedfor the colonel was perfectly calm and quite 
at his ease'solemnly purporting to have been written at recent 
periods by living men?' 
'Wellsir!' replied the colonel. 'It doesnow and then.' 
'And the popular instructed--what do they do?' asked Martin. 
'Buy 'em:' said the colonel. 
Mr Jefferson Brick expectorated and laughed; the former copiously
the latter approvingly. 
'Buy 'em by hundreds of thousands' resumed the colonel. 'We are a 
smart people hereand can appreciate smartness.' 
'Is smartness American for forgery?' asked Martin. 
'Well!' said the colonel'I expect it's American for a good many 
things that you call by other names. But you can't help yourself in 
Europe. We can.' 
'And dosometimes' thought Martin. 'You help yourselves with very 
little ceremonytoo!' 
'At all eventswhatever name we choose to employ' said the 
colonelstooping down to roll the third empty bottle into a corner 
after the other two'I suppose the art of forgery was not invented 
here sir?' 
'I suppose not' replied Martin. 
'Nor any other kind of smartness I reckon?' 
'Invented! NoI presume not.' 
'Well!' said the colonel; 'then we got it all from the old country
and the old country's to blame for itand not the new 'un. There's 
an end of THAT. Nowif Mr Jefferson Brick and you will be so good 
as to clearI'll come out lastand lock the door.' 
Rightly interpreting this as the signal for their departureMartin 
walked downstairs after the war correspondentwho preceded him 
with great majesty. The colonel followingthey left the Rowdy 
Journal Office and walked forth into the streets; Martin feeling 
doubtful whether he ought to kick the colonel for having presumed to 
speak to himor whether it came within the bounds of possibility 
that he and his establishment could be among the boasted usages of 
that regenerated land. 
It was clear that Colonel Diverin the security of his strong 
positionand in his perfect understanding of the public sentiment
cared very little what Martin or anybody else thought about him. 
His high-spiced wares were made to selland they sold; and his 
thousands of readers could as rationally charge their delight in 
filth upon himas a glutton can shift upon his cook the 
responsibility of his beastly excess. Nothing would have delighted 
the colonel more than to be told that no such man as he could walk 
in high success the streets of any other country in the world; for 
that would only have been a logical assurance to him of the correct 
adaptation of his labours to the prevailing tasteand of his being 
strictly and peculiarly a national feature of America. 
They walked a mile or more along a handsome street which the colonel 
said was called Broadwayand which Mr Jefferson Brick said 'whipped 
the universe.' Turningat lengthinto one of the numerous streets 
which branched from this main thoroughfarethey stopped before a 
rather mean-looking house with jalousie blinds to every window; a 
flight of steps before the green street-door; a shining white 
ornament on the rails on either side like a petrified pineapple
polished; a little oblong plate of the same material over the 
knocker whereon the name of 'Pawkins' was engraved; and four 
accidental pigs looking down the area. 
The colonel knocked at this house with the air of a man who lived 
there; and an Irish girl popped her head out of one of the top 
windows to see who it was. Pending her journey downstairsthe 
pigs were joined by two or three friends from the next streetin 
company with whom they lay down sociably in the gutter. 
'Is the major indoors?' inquired the colonelas he entered. 
'Is it the mastersir?' returned the girlwith a hesitation which 
seemed to imply that they were rather flush of majors in that 
establishment. 
'The master!' said Colonel Diverstopping short and looking round 
at his war correspondent. 
'Oh! The depressing institutions of that British empirecolonel!' 
said Jefferson Brick. 'Master!' 
'What's the matter with the word?' asked Martin. 
'I should hope it was never heard in our countrysir; that's all' 
said Jefferson Brick; 'except when it is used by some degraded Help
as new to the blessings of our form of governmentas this Help is. 
There are no masters here.' 
'All "owners are they?' said Martin. 
Mr Jefferson Brick followed in the Rowdy Journal's footsteps without 
returning any answer. Martin took the same course, thinking as he 
went, that perhaps the free and independent citizens, who in their 
moral elevation, owned the colonel for their master, might render 
better homage to the goddess, Liberty, in nightly dreams upon the 
oven of a Russian Serf. 
The colonel led the way into a room at the back of the house upon 
the ground-floor, light, and of fair dimensions, but exquisitely 
uncomfortable; having nothing in it but the four cold white walls 
and ceiling, a mean carpet, a dreary waste of dining-table reaching 
from end to end, and a bewildering collection of cane-bottomed 
chairs. In the further region of this banqueting-hall was a stove, 
garnished on either side with a great brass spittoon, and shaped in 
itself like three little iron barrels set up on end in a fender, and 
joined together on the principle of the Siamese Twins. Before it, 
swinging himself in a rocking-chair, lounged a large gentleman with 
his hat on, who amused himself by spitting alternately into the 
spittoon on the right hand of the stove, and the spittoon on the 
left, and then working his way back again in the same order. A 
negro lad in a soiled white jacket was busily engaged in placing on 
the table two long rows of knives and forks, relieved at intervals 
by jugs of water; and as he travelled down one side of this festive 
board, he straightened with his dirty hands the dirtier cloth, which 
was all askew, and had not been removed since breakfast. The 
atmosphere of this room was rendered intensely hot and stifling by 
the stove; but being further flavoured by a sickly gush of soup from 
the kitchen, and by such remote suggestions of tobacco as lingered 
within the brazen receptacles already mentioned, it became, to a 
stranger's senses, almost insupportable. 
The gentleman in the rocking-chair having his back towards them, and 
being much engaged in his intellectual pastime, was not aware of 
their approach until the colonel, walking up to the stove, 
contributed his mite towards the support of the left-hand spittoon, 
just as the major--for it was the major--bore down upon it. Major 
Pawkins then reserved his fire, and looking upward, said, with a 
peculiar air of quiet weariness, like a man who had been up all 
night--an air which Martin had already observed both in the colonel 
and Mr Jefferson Brick-
'Well, colonel!' 
'Here is a gentleman from England, major,' the colonel replied, 'who 
has concluded to locate himself here if the amount of compensation 
suits him.' 
'I am glad to see you, sir,' observed the major, shaking hands with 
Martin, and not moving a muscle of his face. 'You are pretty 
bright, I hope?' 
'Never better,' said Martin. 
'You are never likely to be,' returned the major. 'You will see the 
sun shine HERE.' 
'I think I remember to have seen it shine at home sometimes,' said 
Martin, smiling. 
'I think not,' replied the major. He said so with a stoical 
indifference certainly, but still in a tone of firmness which 
admitted of no further dispute on that point. When he had thus 
settled the question, he put his hat a little on one side for the 
greater convenience of scratching his head, and saluted Mr Jefferson 
Brick with a lazy nod. 
Major Pawkins (a gentleman of Pennsylvanian origin) was 
distinguished by a very large skull, and a great mass of yellow 
forehead; in deference to which commodities it was currently held in 
bar-rooms and other such places of resort that the major was a man 
of huge sagacity. He was further to be known by a heavy eye and a 
dull slow manner; and for being a man of that kind who--mentally 
speaking--requires a deal of room to turn himself in. But, in 
trading on his stock of wisdom, he invariably proceeded on the 
principle of putting all the goods he had (and more) into his 
window; and that went a great way with his constituency of admirers. 
It went a great way, perhaps, with Mr Jefferson Brick, who took 
occasion to whisper in Martin's ear: 
'One of the most remarkable men in our country, sir!' 
It must not be supposed, however, that the perpetual exhibition in 
the market-place of all his stock-in-trade for sale or hire, was the 
major's sole claim to a very large share of sympathy and support. 
He was a great politician; and the one article of his creed, in 
reference to all public obligations involving the good faith and 
integrity of his country, was, 'run a moist pen slick through 
everything, and start fresh.' This made him a patriot. In 
commercial affairs he was a bold speculator. In plainer words he 
had a most distinguished genius for swindling, and could start a 
bank, or negotiate a loan, or form a land-jobbing company (entailing 
ruin, pestilence, and death, on hundreds of families), with any 
gifted creature in the Union. This made him an admirable man of 
business. He could hang about a bar-room, discussing the affairs of 
the nation, for twelve hours together; and in that time could hold 
forth with more intolerable dulness, chew more tobacco, smoke more 
tobacco, drink more rum-toddy, mint-julep, gin-sling, and cocktail, 
than any private gentleman of his acquaintance. This made him an 
orator and a man of the people. In a word, the major was a rising 
character, and a popular character, and was in a fair way to be sent 
by the popular party to the State House of New York, if not in the 
end to Washington itself. But as a man's private prosperity does 
not always keep pace with his patriotic devotion to public affairs; 
and as fraudulent transactions have their downs as well as ups, the 
major was occasionally under a cloud. Hence, just now Mrs Pawkins 
kept a boarding-house, and Major Pawkins rather 'loafed' his time 
away than otherwise. 
'You have come to visit our country, sir, at a season of great 
commercial depression,' said the major. 
'At an alarming crisis,' said the colonel. 
'At a period of unprecedented stagnation,' said Mr Jefferson Brick. 
'I am sorry to hear that,' returned Martin. 'It's not likely to 
last, I hope?' 
Martin knew nothing about America, or he would have known perfectly 
well that if its individual citizens, to a man, are to be believed, 
it always IS depressed, and always IS stagnated, and always IS at an 
alarming crisis, and never was otherwise; though as a body they are 
ready to make oath upon the Evangelists at any hour of the day or 
night, that it is the most thriving and prosperous of all countries 
on the habitable globe. 
'It's not likely to last, I hope?' said Martin. 
'Well!' returned the major, 'I expect we shall get along somehow, 
and come right in the end.' 
'We are an elastic country,' said the Rowdy Journal. 
'We are a young lion,' said Mr Jefferson Brick. 
'We have revivifying and vigorous principles within ourselves,' 
observed the major. 'Shall we drink a bitter afore dinner, 
colonel?' 
The colonel assenting to this proposal with great alacrity, Major 
Pawkins proposed an adjournment to a neighbouring bar-room, which, 
as he observed, was 'only in the next block.' He then referred 
Martin to Mrs Pawkins for all particulars connected with the rate of 
board and lodging, and informed him that he would have the pleasure 
of seeing that lady at dinner, which would soon be ready, as the 
dinner hour was two o'clock, and it only wanted a quarter now. This 
reminded him that if the bitter were to be taken at all, there was 
no time to lose; so he walked off without more ado, and left them to 
follow if they thought proper. 
When the major rose from his rocking-chair before the stove, and so 
disturbed the hot air and balmy whiff of soup which fanned their 
brows, the odour of stale tobacco became so decidedly prevalent as 
to leave no doubt of its proceeding mainly from that gentleman's 
attire. Indeed, as Martin walked behind him to the bar-room, he 
could not help thinking that the great square major, in his 
listlessness and langour, looked very much like a stale weed himself; 
such as might be hoed out of the public garden, with great advantage 
to the decent growth of that preserve, and tossed on some congenial 
dunghill. 
They encountered more weeds in the bar-room, some of whom (being 
thirsty souls as well as dirty) were pretty stale in one sense, and 
pretty fresh in another. Among them was a gentleman who, as Martin 
gathered from the conversation that took place over the bitter, 
started that afternoon for the Far West on a six months' business 
tour, and who, as his outfit and equipment for this journey, had 
just such another shiny hat and just such another little pale valise 
as had composed the luggage of the gentleman who came from England 
in the Screw. 
They were walking back very leisurely; Martin arm-in-arm with Mr 
Jefferson Brick, and the major and the colonel side-by-side before 
them; when, as they came within a house or two of the major's 
residence, they heard a bell ringing violently. The instant this 
sound struck upon their ears, the colonel and the major darted off, 
dashed up the steps and in at the street-door (which stood ajar) 
like lunatics; while Mr Jefferson Brick, detaching his arm from 
Martin's, made a precipitate dive in the same direction, and 
vanished also. 
'Good Heaven!' thought Martin. 'The premises are on fire! It was an 
alarm bell!' 
But there was no smoke to be seen, nor any flame, nor was there any 
smell of fire. As Martin faltered on the pavement, three more 
gentlemen, with horror and agitation depicted in their faces, came 
plunging wildly round the street corner; jostled each other on the 
steps; struggled for an instant; and rushed into the house, a 
confused heap of arms and legs. Unable to bear it any longer, 
Martin followed. Even in his rapid progress he was run down, thrust 
aside, and passed, by two more gentlemen, stark mad, as it appeared, 
with fierce excitement. 
'Where is it?' cried Martin, breathlessly, to a negro whom he 
encountered in the passage. 
'In a eatin room, sa. Kernell, sa, him kep a seat 'side himself, 
sa.' 
'A seat!' cried Martin. 
'For a dinnar, sa.' 
Martin started at him for a moment, and burst into a hearty laugh; 
to which the negro, out of his natural good humour and desire to 
please, so heartily responded, that his teeth shone like a gleam of 
light. 'You're the pleasantest fellow I have seen yet,' said Martin 
clapping him on the back, 'and give me a better appetite than 
bitters.' 
With this sentiment he walked into the dining-room and slipped into 
a chair next the colonel, which that gentleman (by this time nearly 
through his dinner) had turned down in reserve for him, with its 
back against the table. 
It was a numerous company--eighteen or twenty perhaps. Of these 
some five or six were ladies, who sat wedged together in a little 
phalanx by themselves. All the knives and forks were working away 
at a rate that was quite alarming; very few words were spoken; and 
everybody seemed to eat his utmost in self-defence, as if a famine 
were expected to set in before breakfast time to-morrow morning, and 
it had become high time to assert the first law of nature. The 
poultry, which may perhaps be considered to have formed the staple 
of the entertainment--for there was a turkey at the top, a pair of 
ducks at the bottom, and two fowls in the middle--disappeared as 
rapidly as if every bird had had the use of its wings, and had flown 
in desperation down a human throat. The oysters, stewed and 
pickled, leaped from their capacious reservoirs, and slid by scores 
into the mouths of the assembly. The sharpest pickles vanished, 
whole cucumbers at once, like sugar-plums, and no man winked his 
eye. Great heaps of indigestible matter melted away as ice before 
the sun. It was a solemn and an awful thing to see. Dyspeptic 
individuals bolted their food in wedges; feeding, not themselves, 
but broods of nightmares, who were continually standing at livery 
within them. Spare men, with lank and rigid cheeks, came out 
unsatisfied from the destruction of heavy dishes, and glared with 
watchful eyes upon the pastry. What Mrs Pawkins felt each day at 
dinner-time is hidden from all human knowledge. But she had one 
comfort. It was very soon over. 
When the colonel had finished his dinner, which event took place 
while Martin, who had sent his plate for some turkey, was waiting to 
begin, he asked him what he thought of the boarders, who were from 
all parts of the Union, and whether he would like to know any 
particulars concerning them. 
'Pray,' said Martin, 'who is that sickly little girl opposite, with 
the tight round eyes? I don't see anybody here, who looks like her 
mother, or who seems to have charge of her.' 
'Do you mean the matron in blue, sir?' asked the colonel, with 
emphasis. 'That is Mrs Jefferson Brick, sir.' 
'No, no,' said Martin, 'I mean the little girl, like a doll; 
directly opposite.' 
'Well, sir!' cried the colonel. 'THAT is Mrs Jefferson Brick.' 
Martin glanced at the colonel's face, but he was quite serious. 
'Bless my soul! I suppose there will be a young Brick then, one of 
these days?' said Martin. 
'There are two young Bricks already, sir,' returned the colonel. 
The matron looked so uncommonly like a child herself, that Martin 
could not help saying as much. 'Yes, sir,' returned the colonel, 
'but some institutions develop human natur; others re--tard it.' 
'Jefferson Brick,' he observed after a short silence, in 
commendation of his correspondent, 'is one of the most remarkable 
men in our country, sir!' 
This had passed almost in a whisper, for the distinguished gentleman 
alluded to sat on Martin's other hand. 
'Pray, Mr Brick,' said Martin, turning to him, and asking a question 
more for conversation's sake than from any feeling of interest in 
its subject, 'who is that;' he was going to say 'young' but thought 
it prudent to eschew the word--'that very short gentleman yonder, 
with the red nose?' 
'That is Pro--fessor Mullit, sir,' replied Jefferson. 
'May I ask what he is professor of?' asked Martin. 
'Of education, sir,' said Jefferson Brick. 
'A sort of schoolmaster, possibly?' Martin ventured to observe. 
'He is a man of fine moral elements, sir, and not commonly endowed,' 
said the war correspondent. 'He felt it necessary, at the last 
election for President, to repudiate and denounce his father, who 
voted on the wrong interest. He has since written some powerful 
pamphlets, under the signature of Suturb or Brutus reversed. He 
is one of the most remarkable men in our country, sir.' 
'There seem to be plenty of 'em,' thought Martin, 'at any rate.' 
Pursuing his inquiries Martin found that there were no fewer than 
four majors present, two colonels, one general, and a captain, so 
that he could not help thinking how strongly officered the American 
militia must be; and wondering very much whether the officers 
commanded each other; or if they did not, where on earth the 
privates came from. There seemed to be no man there without a 
title; for those who had not attained to military honours were 
either doctors, professors, or reverends. Three very hard and 
disagreeable gentlemen were on missions from neighbouring States; 
one on monetary affairs, one on political, one on sectarian. Among 
the ladies, there were Mrs Pawkins, who was very straight, bony, and 
silent; and a wiry-faced old damsel, who held strong sentiments 
touching the rights of women, and had diffused the same in lectures; 
but the rest were strangely devoid of individual traits of 
character, insomuch that any one of them might have changed minds 
with the other, and nobody would have found it out. These, by the 
way, were the only members of the party who did not appear to be 
among the most remarkable people in the country. 
Several of the gentlemen got up, one by one, and walked off as they 
swallowed their last morsel; pausing generally by the stove for a 
minute or so to refresh themselves at the brass spittoons. A few 
sedentary characters, however, remained at table full a quarter of 
an hour, and did not rise until the ladies rose, when all stood up. 
'Where are they going?' asked Martin, in the ear of Mr Jefferson 
Brick. 
'To their bedrooms, sir.' 
'Is there no dessert, or other interval of conversation?' asked 
Martin, who was disposed to enjoy himself after his long voyage. 
'We are a busy people here, sir, and have no time for that,' was the 
reply. 
So the ladies passed out in single file; Mr Jefferson Brick and such 
other married gentlemen as were left, acknowledging the departure of 
their other halves by a nod; and there was an end of THEM. Martin 
thought this an uncomfortable custom, but he kept his opinion to 
himself for the present, being anxious to hear, and inform himself 
by, the conversation of the busy gentlemen, who now lounged about the 
stove as if a great weight had been taken off their minds by the 
withdrawal of the other sex; and who made a plentiful use of the 
spittoons and their toothpicks. 
It was rather barren of interest, to say the truth; and the greater 
part of it may be summed up in one word. Dollars. All their cares, 
hopes, joys, affections, virtues, and associations, seemed to be 
melted down into dollars. Whatever the chance contributions that 
fell into the slow cauldron of their talk, they made the gruel thick 
and slab with dollars. Men were weighed by their dollars, measures 
gauged by their dollars; life was auctioneered, appraised, put up, 
and knocked down for its dollars. The next respectable thing to 
dollars was any venture having their attainment for its end. The 
more of that worthless ballast, honour and fair-dealing, which any 
man cast overboard from the ship of his Good Name and Good Intent, 
the more ample stowage-room he had for dollars. Make commerce one 
huge lie and mighty theft. Deface the banner of the nation for an 
idle rag; pollute it star by star; and cut out stripe by stripe as 
from the arm of a degraded soldier. Do anything for dollars! What 
is a flag to THEM! 
One who rides at all hazards of limb and life in the chase of a fox, 
will prefer to ride recklessly at most times. So it was with these 
gentlemen. He was the greatest patriot, in their eyes, who brawled 
the loudest, and who cared the least for decency. He was their 
champion who, in the brutal fury of his own pursuit, could cast no 
stigma upon them for the hot knavery of theirs. Thus, Martin learned 
in the five minutes' straggling talk about the stove, that to carry 
pistols into legislative assemblies, and swords in sticks, and other 
such peaceful toys; to seize opponents by the throat, as dogs or 
rats might do; to bluster, bully, and overbear by personal 
assailment; were glowing deeds. Not thrusts and stabs at Freedom, 
striking far deeper into her House of Life than any sultan's 
scimitar could reach; but rare incense on her altars, having a 
grateful scent in patriotic nostrils, and curling upward to the 
seventh heaven of Fame. 
Once or twice, when there was a pause, Martin asked such questions 
as naturally occurred to him, being a stranger, about the national 
poets, the theatre, literature, and the arts. But the information 
which these gentlemen were in a condition to give him on such 
topics, did not extend beyond the effusions of such master-spirits 
of the time as Colonel Diver, Mr Jefferson Brick, and others; 
renowned, as it appeared, for excellence in the achievement of a 
peculiar style of broadside essay called 'a screamer.' 
'We are a busy people, sir,' said one of the captains, who was from 
the West, 'and have no time for reading mere notions. We don't mind 
'em if they come to us in newspapers along with almighty strong 
stuff of another sort, but darn your books.' 
Here the general, who appeared to grow quite faint at the bare 
thought of reading anything which was neither mercantile nor 
political, and was not in a newspaper, inquired 'if any gentleman 
would drink some?' Most of the company, considering this a very 
choice and seasonable idea, lounged out, one by one, to the bar-room 
in the next block. Thence they probably went to their stores and 
counting-houses; thence to the bar-room again, to talk once more of 
dollars, and enlarge their minds with the perusal and discussion of 
screamers; and thence each man to snore in the bosom of his own 
family. 
'Which would seem,' said Martin, pursuing the current of his own 
thoughts, 'to be the principal recreation they enjoy in common.' 
With that, he fell a-musing again on dollars, demagogues, and barrooms; 
debating within himself whether busy people of this class 
were really as busy as they claimed to be, or only had an inaptitude 
for social and domestic pleasure. 
It was a difficult question to solve; and the mere fact of its being 
strongly presented to his mind by all that he had seen and heard, 
was not encouraging. He sat down at the deserted board, and 
becoming more and more despondent, as he thought of all the 
uncertainties and difficulties of his precarious situation, sighed 
heavily. 
Now, there had been at the dinner-table a middle-aged man with a 
dark eye and a sunburnt face, who had attracted Martin's attention 
by having something very engaging and honest in the expression of 
his features; but of whom he could learn nothing from either of his 
neighbours, who seemed to consider him quite beneath their notice. 
He had taken no part in the conversation round the stove, nor had he 
gone forth with the rest; and now, when he heard Martin sigh for the 
third or fourth time, he interposed with some casual remark, as if 
he desired, without obtruding himself upon a stranger's notice, to 
engage him in cheerful conversation if he could. His motive was so 
obvious, and yet so delicately expressed, that Martin felt really 
grateful to him, and showed him so in the manner of his reply. 
'I will not ask you,' said this gentleman with a smile, as he rose 
and moved towards him, 'how you like my country, for I can quite 
anticipate your feeling on that point. But, as I am an American, 
and consequently bound to begin with a question, I'll ask you how 
you like the colonel?' 
'You are so very frank,' returned Martin, 'that I have no hesitation 
in saying I don't like him at all. Though I must add that I am 
beholden to him for his civility in bringing me here--and arranging 
for my stay, on pretty reasonable terms, by the way,' he added, 
remembering that the colonel had whispered him to that effect, 
before going out. 
'Not much beholden,' said the stranger drily. 'The colonel 
occasionally boards packet-ships, I have heard, to glean the latest 
information for his journal; and he occasionally brings strangers to 
board here, I believe, with a view to the little percentage which 
attaches to those good offices; and which the hostess deducts from 
his weekly bill. I don't offend you, I hope?' he added, seeing that 
Martin reddened. 
'My dear sir,' returned Martin, as they shook hands, 'how is that 
possible! to tell you the truth, I--am--' 
'Yes?' said the gentleman, sitting down beside him. 
'I am rather at a loss, since I must speak plainly,' said Martin, 
getting the better of his hesitation, 'to know how this colonel 
escapes being beaten.' 
'Well! He has been beaten once or twice,' remarked the gentleman 
quietly. 'He is one of a class of men, in whom our own Franklin, so 
long ago as ten years before the close of the last century, foresaw 
our danger and disgrace. Perhaps you don't know that Franklin, in 
very severe terms, published his opinion that those who were 
slandered by such fellows as this colonel, having no sufficient 
remedy in the administration of this country's laws or in the decent 
and right-minded feeling of its people, were justified in retorting 
on such public nuisances by means of a stout cudgel?' 
'I was not aware of that,' said Martin, 'but I am very glad to know 
it, and I think it worthy of his memory; especially'--here he 
hesitated again. 
'Go on,' said the other, smiling as if he knew what stuck in 
Martin's throat. 
'Especially,' pursued Martin, 'as I can already understand that it 
may have required great courage, even in his time, to write freely 
on any question which was not a party one in this very free 
country.' 
'Some courage, no doubt,' returned his new friend. 'Do you think it 
would require any to do so, now?' 
'Indeed I think it would; and not a little,' said Martin. 
'You are right. So very right, that I believe no satirist could 
breathe this air. If another Juvenal or Swift could rise up among 
us to-morrow, he would be hunted down. If you have any knowledge of 
our literature, and can give me the name of any man, American born 
and bred, who has anatomized our follies as a people, and not as 
this or that party; and who has escaped the foulest and most brutal 
slander, the most inveterate hatred and intolerant pursuit; it will 
be a strange name in my ears, believe me. In some cases I could 
name to you, where a native writer has ventured on the most harmless 
and good-humoured illustrations of our vices or defects, it has been 
found necessary to announce, that in a second edition the passage 
has been expunged, or altered, or explained away, or patched into 
praise.' 
'And how has this been brought about?' asked Martin, in dismay. 
'Think of what you have seen and heard to-day, beginning with the 
colonel,' said his friend, 'and ask yourself. How THEY came about, 
is another question. Heaven forbid that they should be samples of 
the intelligence and virtue of America, but they come uppermost, and 
in great numbers, and too often represent it. Will you walk?' 
There was a cordial candour in his manner, and an engaging 
confidence that it would not be abused; a manly bearing on his own 
part, and a simple reliance on the manly faith of a stranger; which 
Martin had never seen before. He linked his arm readily in that of 
the American gentleman, and they walked out together. 
It was perhaps to men like this, his new companion, that a traveller 
of honoured name, who trod those shores now nearly forty years ago, 
and woke upon that soil, as many have done since, to blots and 
stains upon its high pretensions, which in the brightness of his 
distant dreams were lost to view, appealed in these words-
'Oh, but for such, Columbia's days were done; 
Rank without ripeness, quickened without sun, 
Crude at the surface, rotten at the core, 
Her fruits would fall before her spring were o'er!'
CHAPTER SEVENTEEN 
MARTIN ENLARGES HIS CIRCLE OF AQUAINTANCE; INCREASES HIS STOCK OF 
WISDOM; AND HAS AN EXCELLENT OPPORTUNITY OF COMPARING HIS OWN 
EXPERIENCES WITH THOSE OF LUMMY NED OF THE LIGHT SALISBURY, AS 
RELATED BY HIS FRIEND MR WILLIAM SIMMONS 
It was characteristic of Martin, that all this while he had either 
forgotten Mark Tapley as completely as if there had been no such 
person in existence, or, if for a moment the figure of that 
gentleman rose before his mental vision, had dismissed it as 
something by no means of a pressing nature, which might be attended 
to by-and-bye, and could wait his perfect leisure. But, being now 
in the streets again, it occurred to him as just coming within the 
bare limits of possibility that Mr Tapley might, in course of time, 
grow tired of waiting on the threshold of the Rowdy Journal Office, 
so he intimated to his new friend, that if they could conveniently 
walk in that direction, he would be glad to get this piece of 
business off his mind. 
'And speaking of business,' said Martin, 'may I ask, in order that I 
may not be behind-hand with questions either, whether your 
occupation holds you to this city, or like myself, you are a visitor 
here?' 
'A visitor,' replied his friend. 'I was raised" in the State of 
Massachusettsand reside there still. My home is in a quiet 
country town. I am not often in these busy places; and my 
inclination to visit them does not increase with our better 
acquaintanceI assure you.' 
'You have been abroad?' asked Martin
'Oh yes.' 
'Andlike most people who travelhave become more than ever 
attached to your home and native country' said Martineyeing him 
curiously. 
'To my home--yes' rejoined his friend. 'To my native country AS my 
home--yesalso.' 
'You imply some reservation' said Martin. 
'Well' returned his new friend'if you ask me whether I came back 
here with a greater relish for my country's faults; with a greater 
fondness for those who claim (at the rate of so many dollars a day) 
to be her friends; with a cooler indifference to the growth of 
principles among us in respect of public matters and of private 
dealings between man and manthe advocacy of whichbeyond the foul 
atmosphere of a criminal trialwould disgrace your own old Bailey 
lawyers; whythen I answer plainlyNo.' 
'Oh!' said Martin; in so exactly the same key as his friend's No
that it sounded like an echo. 
'If you ask me' his companion pursued'whether I came back here 
better satisfied with a state of things which broadly divides 
society into two classes--whereof onethe great massasserts a 
spurious independencemost miserably dependent for its mean 
existence on the disregard of humanizing conventionalities of manner 
and social customso that the coarser a man isthe more distinctly 
it shall appeal to his taste; while the otherdisgusted with the 
low standard thus set up and made adaptable to everythingtakes 
refuge among the graces and refinements it can bring to bear on 
private lifeand leaves the public weal to such fortune as may 
betide it in the press and uproar of a general scramble--then again 
I answerNo.' 
And again Martin said 'Oh!' in the same odd way as beforebeing 
anxious and disconcerted; not so muchto say the truthon public 
groundsas with reference to the fading prospects of domestic 
architecture. 
'In a word' resumed the other'I do not find and cannot believe 
and therefore will not allowthat we are a model of wisdomand an 
example to the worldand the perfection of human reasonand a 
great deal more to the same purposewhich you may hear any hour in 
the day; simply because we began our political life with two 
inestimable advantages.' 
'What were they?' asked Martin. 
'Onethat our history commenced at so late a period as to escape 
the ages of bloodshed and cruelty through which other nations have 
passed; and so had all the light of their probationand none of its 
darkness. The otherthat we have a vast territoryand not--as 
yet--too many people on it. These facts consideredwe have done 
little enoughI think.' 
'Education?' suggested Martinfaintly. 
'Pretty well on that head' said the othershrugging his shoulders
'still no mighty matter to boast of; for old countriesand despotic 
countries toohave done as muchif not moreand made less noise 
about it. We shine out brightly in comparison with England
certainly; but hers is a very extreme case. You complimented me on 
my franknessyou know' he addedlaughing. 
'Oh! I am not at all astonished at your speaking thus openly when my 
country is in question' returned Martin. 'It is your plainspeaking 
in reference to your own that surprises me.' 
'You will not find it a scarce quality hereI assure yousaving 
among the Colonel Diversand Jefferson Bricksand Major Pawkinses; 
though the best of us are something like the man in Goldsmith's 
comedywho wouldn't suffer anybody but himself to abuse his master. 
Come!' he added. 'Let us talk of something else. You have come 
here on some design of improving your fortuneI dare say; and I 
should grieve to put you out of heart. I am some years older than 
youbesides; and mayon a few trivial pointsadvise youperhaps.' 
There was not the least curiosity or impertinence in the manner of 
this offerwhich was open-heartedunaffectedand good-natured. 
As it was next to impossible that he should not have his confidence 
awakened by a deportment so prepossessing and kindMartin plainly 
stated what had brought him into those partsand even made the very 
difficult avowal that he was poor. He did not say how poorit must 
be admittedrather throwing off the declaration with an air which 
might have implied that he had money enough for six monthsinstead 
of as many weeks; but poor he said he wasand grateful he said he 
would befor any counsel that his friend would give him. 
It would not have been very difficult for any one to see; but it was 
particularly easy for Martinwhose perceptions were sharpened by 
his circumstancesto discern; that the stranger's face grew 
infinitely longer as the domestic-architecture project was 
developed. Noralthough he made a great effort to be as 
encouraging as possiblecould he prevent his head from shaking once 
involuntarilyas if it said in the vulgar tongueupon its own 
account'No go!' But he spoke in a cheerful toneand saidthat 
although there was no such opening as Martin wishedin that city
he would make it matter of immediate consideration and inquiry where 
one was most likely to exist; and then he made Martin acquainted 
with his namewhich was Bevan; and with his professionwhich was 
physicthough he seldom or never practiced; and with other 
circumstances connected with himself and familywhich fully 
occupied the timeuntil they reached the Rowdy Journal Office. 
Mr Tapley appeared to be taking his ease on the landing of the first 
floor; for sounds as of some gentleman established in that region 
whistling 'Rule Britannia' with all his might and maingreeted 
their ears before they reached the house. On ascending to the spot 
from whence this music proceededthey found him recumbent in the 
midst of a fortification of luggageapparently performing his 
national anthem for the gratification of a grey-haired black man
who sat on one of the outworks (a portmanteau)staring intently at 
Markwhile Markwith his head reclining on his handreturned the 
compliment in a thoughtful mannerand whistled all the time. He 
seemed to have recently dinedfor his knifea casebottleand 
certain broken meats in a handkerchieflay near at hand. He had 
employed a portion of his leisure in the decoration of the Rowdy 
Journal doorwhereon his own initials now appeared in letters 
nearly half a foot longtogether with the day of the month in 
smaller type; the whole surrounded by an ornamental borderand 
looking very fresh and bold. 
'I was a'most afraid you was lostsir!' cried Markrisingand 
stopping the tune at that point where Britons generally are supposed 
to declare (when it is whistled) that they nevernevernever-
'Nothing gone wrongI hopesir?' 
'NoMark. Where's your friend?' 
'The mad womansir?' said Mr Tapley. 'Oh! she's all rightsir.' 
'Did she find her husband?' 
'Yessir. Leastways she's found his remains' said Mark
correcting himself. 
'The man's not deadI hope?' 
'Not altogether deadsir' returned Mark; 'but he's had more fevers 
and agues than is quite reconcilable with being alive. When she 
didn't see him a-waiting for herI thought she'd have died herself
I did!' 
'Was he not herethen?' 
'HE wasn't here. There was a feeble old shadow come a-creeping down 
at lastas much like his substance when she know'd himas your 
shadow when it's drawn out to its very finest and longest by the 
sunis like you. But it was his remainsthere's no doubt about 
that. She took on with joypoor thingas much as if it had been 
all of him!' 
'Had he bought land?' asked Mr Bevan. 
'Ah! He'd bought land' said Markshaking his head'and paid for 
it too. Every sort of nateral advantage was connected with itthe 
agents said; and there certainly was ONEquite unlimited. No end 
to the water!' 
'It's a thing he couldn't have done withoutI suppose' observed 
Martinpeevishly. 
'Certainly notsir. There it wasany way; always turned onand 
no water-rate. Independent of three or four slimy old rivers close 
byit varied on the farm from four to six foot deep in the dry 
season. He couldn't say how deep it was in the rainy timefor he 
never had anything long enough to sound it with.' 
'Is this true?' asked Martin of his companion. 
'Extremely probable' he answered. 'Some Mississippi or Missouri 
lotI dare say.' 
'However' pursued Mark'he came from I-don't-know-where-and-all
down to New York hereto meet his wife and children; and they 
started off again in a steamboat this blessed afternoonas happy 
to be along with each other as if they were going to Heaven. I 
should think they waspretty straightif I may judge from the poor 
man's looks.' 
'And may I ask' said Martinglancingbut not with any 
displeasurefrom Mark to the negro'who this gentleman is? 
Another friend of yours?' 
'Why sir' returned Marktaking him asideand speaking 
confidentially in his ear'he's a man of coloursir!' 
'Do you take me for a blind man' asked Martinsomewhat 
impatiently'that you think it necessary to tell me thatwhen his 
face is the blackest that ever was seen?' 
'Nono; when I say a man of colour' returned Mark'I mean that 
he's been one of them as there's picters of in the shops. A man and 
a brotheryou knowsir' said Mr Tapleyfavouring his master with 
a significant indication of the figure so often represented in 
tracts and cheap prints. 
'A slave!' cried Martinin a whisper. 
'Ah!' said Mark in the same tone. 'Nothing else. A slave. Why
when that there man was young--don't look at him while I'm a-telling 
it--he was shot in the leg; gashed in the arm; scored in his live 
limbslike crimped fish; beaten out of shape; had his neck galled 
with an iron collarand wore iron rings upon his wrists and ankles. 
The marks are on him to this day. When I was having my dinner just 
nowhe stripped off his coatand took away my appetite.' 
'Is THIS true?' asked Martin of his friendwho stood beside them. 
'I have no reason to doubt it' he answeredshaking his head 'It 
very often is.' 
'Bless you' said Mark'I know it isfrom hearing his whole story. 
That master died; so did his second master from having his head cut 
open with a hatchet by another slavewhowhen he'd done itwent 
and drowned himself; then he got a better one; in years and years 
he saved up a little moneyand bought his freedomwhich he got 
pretty cheap at laston account of his strength being nearly gone
and he being ill. Then he come here. And now he's a-saving up to 
treat himselfafore he diesto one small purchase--it's nothing to 
speak of. Only his own daughter; that's all!' cried Mr Tapley
becoming excited. 'Liberty for ever! Hurrah! HailColumbia!' 
'Hush!' cried Martinclapping his hand upon his mouth; 'and don't 
be an idiot. What is he doing here?' 
'Waiting to take our luggage off upon a truck' said Mark. 'He'd 
have come for it by-and-byebut I engaged him for a very reasonable 
charge (out of my own pocket) to sit along with me and make me 
jolly; and I am jolly; and if I was rich enough to contract with him 
to wait upon me once a dayto be looked atI'd never be anything 
else.' 
The fact may cause a solemn impeachment of Mark's veracitybut it 
must be admitted neverthelessthat there was that in his face and 
manner at the momentwhich militated strongly against this emphatic 
declaration of his state of mind. 
'Lord love yousir' he added'they're so fond of Liberty in this 
part of the globethat they buy her and sell her and carry her to 
market with 'em. They've such a passion for Libertythat they 
can't help taking liberties with her. That's what it's owing to.' 
'Very well' said Martinwishing to change the theme. 'Having come 
to that conclusionMarkperhaps you'll attend to me. The place to 
which the luggage is to go is printed on this card. Mrs Pawkins's 
Boarding House.' 
'Mrs Pawkins's boarding-house' repeated Mark. 'NowCicero.' 
'Is that his name?' asked Martin 
'That's his namesir' rejoined Mark. And the negro grinning 
assent from under a leathern portmanteauthan which his own face 
was many shades deeperhobbled downstairs with his portion of 
their worldly goods; Mark Tapley having already gone before with his 
share. 
Martin and his friend followed them to the door belowand were 
about to pursue their walkwhen the latter stoppedand askedwith 
some hesitationwhether that young man was to be trusted? 
'Mark! oh certainly! with anything.' 
'You don't understand me--I think he had better go with us. He is 
an honest fellowand speaks his mind so very plainly.' 
'Whythe fact is' said Martinsmiling'that being unaccustomed 
to a free republiche is used to do so.' 
'I think he had better go with us' returned the other. 'He may get 
into some trouble otherwise. This is not a slave State; but I am 
ashamed to say that a spirit of Tolerance is not so common anywhere 
in these latitudes as the form. We are not remarkable for behaving 
very temperately to each other when we differ; but to strangers! 
noI really think he had better go with us.' 
Martin called to him immediately to be of their party; so Cicero and 
the truck went one wayand they three went another. 
They walked about the city for two or three hours; seeing it from 
the best points of viewand pausing in the principal streetsand 
before such public buildings as Mr Bevan pointed out. Night then 
coming on apaceMartin proposed that they should adjourn to Mrs 
Pawkins's establishment for coffee; but in this he was overruled by 
his new acquaintancewho seemed to have set his heart on carrying 
himthough it were only for an hourto the house of a friend of 
his who lived hard by. Feeling (however disinclined he wasbeing 
weary) that it would be in bad tasteand not very graciousto 
object that he was unintroducedwhen this open-hearted gentleman 
was so ready to be his sponsorMartin--for once in his lifeat all 
events--sacrificed his own will and pleasure to the wishes of 
anotherand consented with a fair grace. So travelling had done 
him that much goodalready. 
Mr Bevan knocked at the door of a very neat house of moderate size
from the parlour windows of whichlights were shining brightly into 
the now dark street. It was quickly opened by a man with such a 
thoroughly Irish facethat it seemed as if he oughtas a matter of 
right and principleto be in ragsand could have no sort of 
business to be looking cheerfully at anybody out of a whole suit of 
clothes. 
Commending Mark to the care of this phenomenon--for such he may be 
said to have been in Martin's eyes--Mr Bevan led the way into the 
room which had shed its cheerfulness upon the streetto whose 
occupants he introduced Mr Chuzzlewit as a gentleman from England
whose acquaintance he had recently had the pleasure to make. They 
gave him welcome in all courtesy and politeness; and in less than 
five minutes' time he found himself sitting very much at his ease by 
the firesideand becoming vastly well acquainted with the whole 
family. 
There were two young ladies--one eighteen; the other twenty--both 
very slenderbut very pretty; their motherwho lookedas Martin 
thought much older and more faded than she ought to have looked; and 
their grandmothera little sharp-eyedquick old womanwho seemed 
to have got past that stageand to have come all right again. 
Besides thesethere were the young ladies' fatherand the young 
ladies' brother; the first engaged in mercantile affairs; the 
seconda student at college; bothin a certain cordiality of 
mannerlike his own friendand not unlike him in face. Which was 
no great wonderfor it soon appeared that he was their near 
relation. Martin could not help tracing the family pedigree from 
the two young ladiesbecause they were foremost in his thoughts; 
not only from beingas aforesaidvery prettybut by reason of 
their wearing miraculously small shoesand the thinnest possible 
silk stockings; the which their rocking-chairs developed to a 
distracting extent. 
There is no doubt that it was a monstrous comfortable circumstance 
to be sitting in a snugwell-furnished roomwarmed by a cheerful 
fireand full of various pleasant decorationsincluding four small 
shoesand the like amount of silk stockingsand--yeswhy not?--the 
feet and legs therein enshrined. And there is no doubt that Martin 
was monstrous well-disposed to regard his position in that light
after his recent experience of the Screwand of Mrs Pawkins's 
boarding-house. The consequence was that he made himself very 
agreeable indeed; and by the time the tea and coffee arrived (with 
sweet preservesand cunning tea-cakes in its train)was in a 
highly genial stateand much esteemed by the whole family. 
Another delightful circumstance turned up before the first cup of 
tea was drunk. The whole family had been in England. There was a 
pleasant thing! But Martin was not quite so glad of thiswhen he 
found that they knew all the great dukeslordsviscounts
marquessesduchessesknightsand baronetsquite affectionately
and were beyond everything interested in the least particular 
concerning them. Howeverwhen they askedafter the wearer of this 
or that coronetand said'Was he quite well?' Martin answered
'Yesoh yes. Never better;' and when they said'his lordship's 
motherthe duchesswas she much changed?' Martin said'Oh dear 
nothey would know her anywhereif they saw her to-morrow;' and 
so got on pretty well. In like manner when the young ladies 
questioned him touching the Gold Fish in that Grecian fountain in 
such and such a nobleman's conservatoryand whether there were as 
many as there used to behe gravely reportedafter mature 
considerationthat there must be at least twice as many; and as to 
the exotics'Oh! well! it was of no use talking about THEM; they 
must be seen to be believed;' which improved state of circumstances 
reminded the family of the splendour of that brilliant festival 
(comprehending the whole British Peerage and Court Calendar) to 
which they were specially invitedand which indeed had been partly 
given in their honour; and recollections of what Mr Norris the 
father had said to the marquessand of what Mrs Norris the mother 
had said to the marchionessand of what the marquess and 
marchioness had both saidwhen they said that upon their words and 
honours they wished Mr Norris the father and Mrs Norris the mother
and the Misses Norris the daughtersand Mr Norris Juniorthe son
would only take up their permanent residence in Englandand give 
them the pleasure of their everlasting friendshipoccupied a very 
considerable time. 
Martin thought it rather stangeand in some sort inconsistentthat 
during the whole of these narrationsand in the very meridian of 
their enjoyment thereofboth Mr Norris the fatherand Mr Norris 
Juniorthe son (who correspondedevery postwith four members of 
the English Peerage)enlarged upon the inestimable advantage of 
having no such arbitrary distinctions in that enlightened land
where there were no noblemen but nature's noblemenand where all 
society was based on one broad level of brotherly love and natural 
equality. IndeedMr Norris the father gradually expanding into an 
oration on this swelling themewas becoming tediouswhen Mr Bevan 
diverted his thoughts by happening to make some causal inquiry 
relative to the occupier of the next house; in reply to whichthis 
same Mr Norris the father observedthat 'that person entertained 
religious opinions of which he couldn't approve; and therefore he 
hadn't the honour of knowing the gentleman.' Mrs Norris the mother 
added another reason of her ownthe same in effectbut varying in 
words; to witthat she believed the people were well enough in 
their waybut they were not genteel. 
Another little trait came outwhich impressed itself on Martin 
forcibly. Mr Bevan told them about Mark and the negroand then it 
appeared that all the Norrises were abolitionists. It was a great 
relief to hear thisand Martin was so much encouraged on finding 
himself in such companythat he expressed his sympathy with the 
oppressed and wretched blacks. Nowone of the young ladies--the 
prettiest and most delicate--was mightily amused at the earnestness 
with which he spoke; and on his craving leave to ask her whywas 
quite unable for a time to speak for laughing. As soon however as 
she couldshe told him that the negroes were such a funny people
so excessively ludicrous in their manners and appearancethat it 
was wholly impossible for those who knew them wellto associate any 
serious ideas with such a very absurd part of the creation. Mr 
Norris the fatherand Mrs Norris the motherand Miss Norris the 
sisterand Mr Norris Junior the brotherand even Mrs Norris Senior 
the grandmotherwere all of this opinionand laid it down as an 
absolute matter of fact--as if there were nothing in suffering and 
slaverygrim enough to cast a solemn air on any human animal; 
though it were as ridiculousphysicallyas the most grotesque of 
apesor morallyas the mildest Nimrod among tuft-hunting 
republicans! 
'In short' said Mr Norris the fathersettling the question 
comfortably'there is a natural antipathy between the races.' 
'Extending' said Martin's friendin a low voice'to the cruellest 
of torturesand the bargain and sale of unborn generations.' 
Mr Norris the son said nothingbut he made a wry faceand dusted 
his fingers as Hamlet might after getting rid of Yorick's skull; 
just as though he had that moment touched a negroand some of the 
black had come off upon his hands. 
In order that their talk might fall again into its former pleasant 
channelMartin dropped the subjectwith a shrewd suspicion that it 
would be a dangerous theme to revive under the best of 
circumstances; and again addressed himself to the young ladieswho 
were very gorgeously attired in very beautiful coloursand had 
every article of dress on the same extensive scale as the little 
shoes and the thin silk stockings. This suggested to him that they 
were great proficients in the French fashionswhich soon turned out 
to be the casefor though their information appeared to be none of 
the newestit was very extensive; and the eldest sister in 
particularwho was distinguished by a talent for metaphysicsthe 
laws of hydraulic pressureand the rights of human kindhad a 
novel way of combining these acquirements and bringing them to bear 
on any subject from Millinery to the Millenniumboth inclusive
which was at once improving and remarkable; so much soin short
that it was usually observed to reduce foreigners to a state of 
temporary insanity in five minutes. 
Martin felt his reason going; and as a means of saving himself
besought the other sister (seeing a piano in the room) to sing. 
With this request she willingly complied; and a bravura concert
solely sustained by the Misses Norisspresently began. They sang 
in all languages--except their own. GermanFrenchItalian
SpanishPortugueseSwiss; but nothing native; nothing so low as 
native. Forin this respectlanguages are like many other 
travellers--ordinary and commonplace enough at homebut 'specially 
genteel abroad. 
There is little doubt that in course of time the Misses Norris would 
have come to Hebrewif they had not been interrupted by an 
announcement from the Irishmanwhoflinging open the doorcried in 
a loud voice-
'Jiniral Fladdock!' 
'My!' cried the sistersdesisting suddenly. 'The general come 
back!' 
As they made the exclamationthe generalattired in full uniform 
for a ballcame darting in with such precipitancy thathitching 
his boot in the carpetand getting his sword between his legshe 
came down headlongand presented a curious little bald place on the 
crown of his head to the eyes of the astonished company. Nor was 
this the worst of it; for being rather corpulent and very tightthe 
general being downcould not get up againbut lay there writing 
and doing such things with his bootsas there is no other instance 
of in military history. 
Of course there was an immediate rush to his assistance; and the 
general was promptly raised. But his uniform was so fearfully and 
wonderfully madethat he came up stiff and without a bend in him 
like a dead Clownand had no command whatever of himself until he 
was put quite flat upon the soles of his feetwhen he became 
animated as by a miracleand moving edgewise that he might go in a 
narrower compass and be in less danger of fraying the gold lace on 
his epaulettes by brushing them against anythingadvanced with a 
smiling visage to salute the lady of the house. 
To be sureit would have been impossible for the family to testify 
purer delight and joy than at this unlooked-for appearance of 
General Fladdock! The general was as warmly received as if New York 
had been in a state of siege and no other general was to be got for 
love or money. He shook hands with the Norrises three times all 
roundand then reviewed them from a little distance as a brave 
commander mightwith his ample cloak drawn forward over the right 
shoulder and thrown back upon the left side to reveal his manly 
breast. 
'And do I then' cried the general'once again behold the choicest 
spirits of my country!' 
'Yes' said Mr Norris the father. 'Here we aregeneral.' 
Then all the Norrises pressed round the generalinquiring how and 
where he had been since the date of his letterand how he had 
enjoyed himself in foreign partsand particularly and above allto 
what extent he had become acquainted with the great dukeslords
viscountsmarquessesduchessesknightsand baronetsin whom the 
people of those benighted countries had delight. 
'Wellthendon't ask me' said the generalholding up his hand. 
'I was among 'em all the timeand have got public journals in my 
trunk with my name printed'--he lowered his voice and was very 
impressive here--'among the fashionable news. Butohthe 
conventionalities of that a-mazing Europe!' 
'Ah!' cried Mr Norris the fathergiving his head a melancholy 
shakeand looking towards Martin as though he would say'I can't 
deny itsir. I would if I could.' 
'The limited diffusion of a moral sense in that country!' exclaimed 
the general. 'The absence of a moral dignity in man!' 
'Ah!' sighed all the Norrisesquite overwhelmed with despondency. 
'I couldn't have realised it' pursued the general'without being 
located on the spot. Norrisyour imagination is the imagination of 
a strong manbut YOU couldn't have realised itwithout being 
located on the spot!' 
'Never' said Mr Norris. 
'The ex-clusivenessthe pridethe formthe ceremony' exclaimed 
the generalemphasizing the article more vigorously at every 
repetition. 'The artificial barriers set up between man and man; 
the division of the human race into court cards and plain cardsof 
every denomination--into clubsdiamondsspades--anything but 
heart!' 
'Ah!' cried the whole family. 'Too truegeneral!' 
'But stay!' cried Mr Norris the fathertaking him by the arm. 
'Surely you crossed in the Screwgeneral?' 
'Well! so I did' was the reply. 
'Possible!' cried the young ladies. 'Only think!' 
The general seemed at a loss to understand why his having come home 
in the Screw should occasion such a sensationnor did he seem at 
all clearer on the subject when Mr Norrisintroducing him to 
Martinsaid: 
'A fellow-passenger of yoursI think?' 
'Of mine?' exclaimed the general; 'No!' 
He had never seen Martinbut Martin had seen himand recognized 
himnow that they stood face to faceas the gentleman who had 
stuck his hands in his pockets towards the end of the voyageand 
walked the deck with his nostrils dilated. 
Everybody looked at Martin. There was no help for it. The truth 
must out. 
'I came over in the same ship as the general' said Martin'but not 
in the same cabin. It being necessary for me to observe strict 
economyI took my passage in the steerage.' 
If the general had been carried up bodily to a loaded cannonand 
required to let it off that momenthe could not have been in a 
state of greater consternation than when he heard these words. He
Fladdock--Fladdock in full militia uniformFladdock the General
Fladdockthe caressed of foreign noblemen--expected to know a 
fellow who had come over in the steerage of line-of-packet shipat 
the cost of four pound ten! And meeting that fellow in the very 
sanctuary of New York fashionand nestling in the bosom of the New 
York aristocracy! He almost laid his hand upon his sword. 
A death-like stillness fell upon the Norisses. If this story should 
get windtheir country relation hadby his imprudencefor ever 
disgraced them. They were the bright particular stars of an exalted 
New York sphere. There were other fashionable spheres above them
and other fashionable spheres belowand none of the stars in any 
one of these spheres had anything to say to the stars in any other 
of these spheres. Butthrough all the spheres it would go forth 
that the Norrisesdeceived by gentlemanly manners and appearances
hadfalling from their high estate'received' a dollarless and 
unknown man. O guardian eagle of the pure Republichad they lived 
for this! 
'You will allow me' said Martinafter a terrible silence'to take 
my leave. I feel that I am the cause of at least as much 
embarrassment hereas I have brought upon myself. But I am bound
before I goto exonerate this gentlemanwhoin introducing me to 
such societywas quite ignorant of my unworthinessI assure you.' 
With that he made his bow to the Norrisesand walked out like a man 
of snow; very cool externallybut pretty hot within. 
'Comecome' said Mr Norris the fatherlooking with a pale face on 
the assembled circle as Martin closed the door'the young man has 
this night beheld a refinement of social mannerand an easy 
magnificence of social decorationto which he is a stranger in his 
own country. Let us hope it may awake a moral sense within him.' 
If that peculiarly transatlantic articlea moral sense--forif 
native statesmenoratorsand pamphleteersare to be believed
America quite monopolises the commodity--if that peculiarly 
transatlantic article be supposed to include a benevolent love of 
all mankindcertainly Martin's would have bornejust thena deal 
of waking. As he strode along the streetwith Mark at his heels
his immoral sense was in active operation; prompting him to the 
utterance of some rather sanguinary remarkswhich it was well for 
his own credit that nobody overheard. He had so far cooled down
howeverthat he had begun to laugh at the recollection of these 
incidentswhen he heard another step behind himand turning round 
encountered his friend Bevanquite out of breath. 
He drew his arm through Martin'sand entreating him to walk slowly
was silent for some minutes. At length he said: 
'I hope you exonerate me in another sense?' 
'How do you mean?' asked Martin. 
'I hope you acquit me of intending or foreseeing the termination of 
our visit. But I scarcely need ask you that.' 
'Scarcely indeed' said Martin. 'I am the more beholden to you for 
your kindnesswhen I find what kind of stuff the good citizens here 
are made of.' 
'I reckon' his friend returned'that they are made of pretty much 
the same stuff as other folksif they would but own itand not set 
up on false pretences.' 
'In good faiththat's true' said Martin. 
'I dare say' resumed his friend'you might have such a scene as 
that in an English comedyand not detect any gross improbability or 
anomaly in the matter of it?' 
'Yesindeed!' 
'Doubtless it is more ridiculous here than anywhere else' said his 
companion; 'but our professions are to blame for that. So far as I 
myself am concernedI may add that I was perfectly aware from the 
first that you came over in the steeragefor I had seen the list of 
passengersand knew it did not comprise your name.' 
'I feel more obliged to you than before' said Martin. 
'Norris is a very good fellow in his way' observed Mr Bevan. 
'Is he?' said Martin drily. 
'Oh yes! there are a hundred good points about him. If you or 
anybody else addressed him as another order of beingand sued to 
him IN FORMA PAUPERIShe would be all kindness and consideration.' 
'I needn't have travelled three thousand miles from home to find 
such a character as THAT' said Martin. Neither he nor his friend 
said anything more on the way back; each appearing to find 
sufficient occupation in his own thoughts. 
The teaor the supperor whatever else they called the evening 
mealwas over when they reached the Major's; but the cloth
ornamented with a few additional smears and stainswas still upon 
the table. At one end of the board Mrs Jefferson Brick and two 
other ladies were drinking tea; out of the ordinary course
evidentlyfor they were bonneted and shawledand seemed to have 
just come home. By the light of three flaring candles of different 
lengthsin as many candlesticks of different patternsthe room 
showed to almost as little advantage as in broad day. 
These ladies were all three talking together in a very loud tone 
when Martin and his friend entered; but seeing those gentlementhey 
stopped directlyand became excessively genteelnot to say frosty. 
As they went on to exchange some few remarks in whispersthe very 
water in the teapot might have fallen twenty degrees in temperature 
beneath their chilling coldness. 
'Have you been to meetingMrs Brick?' asked Martin's friendwith 
something of a roguish twinkle in his eye. 
'To lecturesir.' 
'I beg your pardon. I forgot. You don't go to meetingI think?' 
Here the lady on the right of Mrs Brick gave a pious cough as much 
as to say 'I do!'--asindeedshe did nearly every night in the 
week. 
'A good discoursema'am?' asked Mr Bevanaddressing this lady. 
The lady raised her eyes in a pious mannerand answered 'Yes.' She 
had been much comforted by some goodstrongpeppery doctrine
which satisfactorily disposed of all her friends and acquaintances
and quite settled their business. Her bonnettoohad far outshone 
every bonnet in the congregation; so she was tranquil on all 
accounts. 
'What course of lectures are you attending nowma'am?' said 
Martin's friendturning again to Mrs Brick. 
'The Philosophy of the Soulon Wednesdays.' 
'On Mondays?' 
'The Philosophy of Crime.' 
'On Fridays?' 
'The Philosophy of Vegetables.' 
'You have forgotten Thursdays; the Philosophy of Governmentmy 
dear' observed the third lady. 
'No' said Mrs Brick. 'That's Tuesdays.' 
'So it is!' cried the lady. 'The Philosophy of Matter on Thursdays
of course.' 
'You seeMr Chuzzlewitour ladies are fully employed' said Bevan. 
'Indeed you have reason to say so' answered Martin. 'Between these 
very grave pursuits abroadand family duties at hometheir time 
must be pretty well engrossed.' 
Martin stopped herefor he saw that the ladies regarded him with no 
very great favourthough what he had done to deserve the disdainful 
expression which appeared in their faces he was at a loss to divine. 
But on their going upstairs to their bedrooms--which they very 
soon did--Mr Bevan informed him that domestic drudgery was far 
beneath the exalted range of these Philosophersand that the 
chances were a hundred to one that not one of the three could 
perform the easiest woman's work for herselfor make the simplest 
article of dress for any of her children. 
'Though whether they might not be better employed with such blunt 
instruments as knitting-needles than with these edge-tools' he 
said'is another question; but I can answer for one thing--they 
don't often cut themselves. Devotions and lectures are our balls 
and concerts. They go to these places of resortas an escape from 
monotony; look at each other's clothes; and come home again.' 
'When you say "home do you mean a house like this?' 
'Very often. But I see you are tired to death, and will wish you 
good night. We will discuss your projects in the morning. You 
cannot but feel already that it is useless staying here, with any 
hope of advancing them. You will have to go further.' 
'And to fare worse?' said Martin, pursuing the old adage. 
'Well, I hope not. But sufficient for the day, you know--good 
night' 
They shook hands heartily and separated. As soon as Martin was left 
alone, the excitement of novelty and change which had sustained him 
through all the fatigues of the day, departed; and he felt so 
thoroughly dejected and worn out, that he even lacked the energy to 
crawl upstairs to bed. 
In twelve or fifteen hours, how great a change had fallen on his 
hopes and sanguine plans! New and strange as he was to the ground 
on which he stood, and to the air he breathed, he could not-recalling 
all that he had crowded into that one day--but entertain a 
strong misgiving that his enterprise was doomed. Rash and illconsidered 
as it had often looked on shipboard, but had never seemed 
on shore, it wore a dismal aspect, now, that frightened him. 
Whatever thoughts he called up to his aid, they came upon him in 
depressing and discouraging shapes, and gave him no relief. Even 
the diamonds on his finger sparkled with the brightness of tears, 
and had no ray of hope in all their brilliant lustre. 
He continued to sit in gloomy rumination by the stove, unmindful of 
the boarders who dropped in one by one from their stores and 
counting-houses, or the neighbouring bar-rooms, and, after taking 
long pulls from a great white waterjug upon the sideboard, and 
lingering with a kind of hideous fascination near the brass 
spittoons, lounged heavily to bed; until at length Mark Tapley came 
and shook him by the arm, supposing him asleep. 
'Mark!' he cried, starting. 
'All right, sir,' said that cheerful follower, snuffing with his 
fingers the candle he bore. 'It ain't a very large bed, your'n, 
sir; and a man as wasn't thirsty might drink, afore breakfast, all 
the water you've got to wash in, and afterwards eat the towel. But 
you'll sleep without rocking to-night, sir.' 
'I feel as if the house were on the sea' said Martin, staggering 
when he rose; 'and am utterly wretched.' 
'I'm as jolly as a sandboy, myself, sir,' said Mark. 'But, Lord, I 
have reason to be! I ought to have been born here; that's my 
opinion. Take care how you go'--for they were now ascending the 
stairs. 'You recollect the gentleman aboard the Screw as had the 
very small trunk, sir?' 
'The valise? Yes.' 
'Well, sir, there's been a delivery of clean clothes from the wash 
to-night, and they're put outside the bedroom doors here. If you 
take notice as we go up, what a very few shirts there are, and what 
a many fronts, you'll penetrate the mystery of his packing.' 
But Martin was too weary and despondent to take heed of anything, so 
had no interest in this discovery. Mr Tapley, nothing dashed by his 
indifference, conducted him to the top of the house, and into the 
bed-chamber prepared for his reception; which was a very little 
narrow room, with half a window in it; a bedstead like a chest 
without a lid; two chairs; a piece of carpet, such as shoes are 
commonly tried upon at a ready-made establishment in England; a 
little looking-glass nailed against the wall; and a washing-table, 
with a jug and ewer, that might have been mistaken for a milk-pot and 
slop-basin. 
'I suppose they polish themselves with a dry cloth in this country,' 
said Mark. 'They've certainly got a touch of the 'phoby, sir.' 
'I wish you would pull off my boots for me,' said Martin, dropping 
into one of the chairs 'I am quite knocked up--dead beat, Mark.' 
'You won't say that to-morrow morning, sir,' returned Mr Tapley; 
'nor even to-night, sir, when you've made a trial of this.' With 
which he produced a very large tumbler, piled up to the brim with 
little blocks of clear transparent ice, through which one or two 
thin slices of lemon, and a golden liquid of delicious appearance, 
appealed from the still depths below, to the loving eye of the 
spectator. 
'What do you call this?' said Martin. 
But Mr Tapley made no answer; merely plunging a reed into the 
mixture--which caused a pleasant commotion among the pieces of ice-and 
signifying by an expressive gesture that it was to be pumped up 
through that agency by the enraptured drinker. 
Martin took the glass with an astonished look; applied his lips to 
the reed; and cast up his eyes once in ecstasy. He paused no more 
until the goblet was drained to the last drop. 
'There, sir!' said Mark, taking it from him with a triumphant face; 
'if ever you should happen to be dead beat again, when I ain't in 
the way, all you've got to do is to ask the nearest man to go and 
fetch a cobbler.' 
'To go and fetch a cobbler?' repeated Martin. 
'This wonderful invention, sir,' said Mark, tenderly patting the 
empty glass, 'is called a cobbler. Sherry cobbler when you name it 
long; cobbler, when you name it short. Now you're equal to having 
your boots took off, and are, in every particular worth mentioning, 
another man.' 
Having delivered himself of this solemn preface, he brought the 
bootjack. 
'Mind! I am not going to relapse, Mark,' said Martin; 'but, good 
Heaven, if we should be left in some wild part of this country 
without goods or money!' 
'Well, sir!' replied the imperturbable Tapley; 'from what we've seen 
already, I don't know whether, under those circumstances, we 
shouldn't do better in the wild parts than in the tame ones.' 
'Oh, Tom Pinch, Tom Pinch!' said Martin, in a thoughtful tone; 'what 
would I give to be again beside you, and able to hear your voice, 
though it were even in the old bedroom at Pecksniff's!' 
'Oh, Dragon, Dragon!' echoed Mark, cheerfully, 'if there warn't any 
water between you and me, and nothing faint-hearted-like in going 
back, I don't know that I mightn't say the same. But here am I, 
Dragon, in New York, America; and there are you in Wiltshire, 
Europe; and there's a fortune to make, Dragon, and a beautiful young 
lady to make it for; and whenever you go to see the Monument, 
Dragon, you mustn't give in on the doorsteps, or you'll never get 
up to the top!' 
'Wisely said, Mark,' cried Martin. 'We must look forward.' 
'In all the story-books as ever I read, sir, the people as looked 
backward was turned into stones,' replied Mark; 'and my opinion 
always was, that they brought it on themselves, and it served 'em 
right. I wish you good night, sir, and pleasant dreams!' 
'They must be of home, then,' said Martin, as he lay down in bed. 
'So I say, too,' whispered Mark Tapley, when he was out of hearing 
and in his own room; 'for if there don't come a time afore we're 
well out of this, when there'll be a little more credit in keeping 
up one's jollity, I'm a United Statesman!' 
Leaving them to blend and mingle in their sleep the shadows of 
objects afar off, as they take fantastic shapes upon the wall in the 
dim light of thought without control, be it the part of this slight 
chronicle--a dream within a dream--as rapidly to change the scene, 
and cross the ocean to the English shore. 
CHAPTER EIGHTEEN 
DOES BUSINESS WITH THE HOUSE OF ANTHONY CHUZZLEWIT AND SON, FROM 
WHICH ONE OF THE PARTNERS RETIRES UNEXPECTEDLY 
Change begets change. Nothing propagates so fast. If a man 
habituated to a narrow circle of cares and pleasures, out of which 
he seldom travels, step beyond it, though for never so brief a 
space, his departure from the monotonous scene on which he has been 
an actor of importance, would seem to be the signal for instant 
confusion. As if, in the gap he had left, the wedge of change were 
driven to the head, rending what was a solid mass to fragments, 
things cemented and held together by the usages of years, burst 
asunder in as many weeks. The mine which Time has slowly dug 
beneath familiar objects is sprung in an instant; and what was rock 
before, becomes but sand and dust. 
Most men, at one time or other, have proved this in some degree. The 
extent to which the natural laws of change asserted their supremacy 
in that limited sphere of action which Martin had deserted, shall be 
faithfully set down in these pages. 
'What a cold spring it is!' whimpered old Anthony, drawing near the 
evening fire, 'It was a warmer season, sure, when I was young!' 
'You needn't go scorching your clothes into holes, whether it was or 
not,' observed the amiable Jonas, raising his eyes from yesterday's 
newspaper, 'Broadcloth ain't so cheap as that comes to.' 
'A good lad!' cried the father, breathing on his cold hands, and 
feebly chafing them against each other. 'A prudent lad! He never 
delivered himself up to the vanities of dress. No, no!' 
'I don't know but I would, though, mind you, if I could do it for 
nothing,' said his son, as he resumed the paper. 
'Ah!' chuckled the old man. 'IF, indeed!--But it's very cold.' 
'Let the fire be!' cried Mr Jonas, stopping his honoured parent's 
hand in the use of the poker. 'Do you mean to come to want in your 
old age, that you take to wasting now?' 
'There's not time for that, Jonas,' said the old man. 
'Not time for what?' bawled his heir. 
'For me to come to want. I wish there was!' 
'You always were as selfish an old blade as need be,' said Jonas in 
a voice too low for him to hear, and looking at him with an angry 
frown. 'You act up to your character. You wouldn't mind coming to 
want, wouldn't you! I dare say you wouldn't. And your own flesh and 
blood might come to want too, might they, for anything you cared? 
Oh you precious old flint!' 
After this dutiful address he took his tea-cup in his hand--for that 
meal was in progress, and the father and son and Chuffey were 
partakers of it. Then, looking steadfastly at his father, and 
stopping now and then to carry a spoonful of tea to his lips, he 
proceeded in the same tone, thus: 
'Want, indeed! You're a nice old man to be talking of want at this 
time of day. Beginning to talk of want, are you? Well, I declare! 
There isn't time? No, I should hope not. But you'd live to be a 
couple of hundred if you could; and after all be discontented. I 
know you!' 
The old man sighed, and still sat cowering before the fire. Mr 
Jonas shook his Britannia-metal teaspoon at him, and taking a 
loftier position, went on to argue the point on high moral grounds. 
'If you're in such a state of mind as that,' he grumbled, but in the 
same subdued key, 'why don't you make over your property? Buy an 
annuity cheap, and make your life interesting to yourself and 
everybody else that watches the speculation. But no, that wouldn't 
suit YOU. That would be natural conduct to your own son, and you 
like to be unnatural, and to keep him out of his rights. Why, I 
should be ashamed of myself if I was you, and glad to hide my head 
in the what you may call it.' 
Possibly this general phrase supplied the place of grave, or tomb, 
or sepulchre, or cemetery, or mausoleum, or other such word which 
the filial tenderness of Mr Jonas made him delicate of pronouncing. 
He pursued the theme no further; for Chuffey, somehow discovering, 
from his old corner by the fireside, that Anthony was in the 
attitude of a listener, and that Jonas appeared to be speaking, 
suddenly cried out, like one inspired: 
'He is your own son, Mr Chuzzlewit. Your own son, sir!' 
Old Chuffey little suspected what depth of application these words 
had, or that, in the bitter satire which they bore, they might have 
sunk into the old man's very soul, could he have known what words 
here hanging on his own son's lips, or what was passing in his 
thoughts. But the voice diverted the current of Anthony's 
reflections, and roused him. 
'Yes, yes, Chuffey, Jonas is a chip of the old block. It is a very 
old block, now, Chuffey,' said the old man, with a strange look of 
discomposure. 
'Precious old,' assented Jonas 
'No, no, no,' said Chuffey. 'No, Mr Chuzzlewit. Not old at all, 
sir.' 
'Oh! He's worse than ever, you know!' cried Jonas, quite disgusted. 
'Upon my soul, father, he's getting too bad. Hold your tongue, will 
you?' 
'He says you're wrong!' cried Anthony to the old clerk. 
'Tut, tut!' was Chuffey's answer. 'I know better. I say HE'S 
wrong. I say HE'S wrong. He's a boy. That's what he is. So are 
you, Mr Chuzzlewit--a kind of boy. Ha! ha! ha! You're quite a boy 
to many I have known; you're a boy to me; you're a boy to hundreds 
of us. Don't mind him!' 
With which extraordinary speech--for in the case of Chuffey this was 
a burst of eloquence without a parallel--the poor old shadow drew 
through his palsied arm his master's hand, and held it there, with 
his own folded upon it, as if he would defend him. 
'I grow deafer every day, Chuff,' said Anthony, with as much 
softness of manner, or, to describe it more correctly, with as 
little hardness as he was capable of expressing. 
'No, no,' cried Chuffey. 'No, you don't. What if you did? I've 
been deaf this twenty year.' 
'I grow blinder, too,' said the old man, shaking his head. 
'That's a good sign!' cried Chuffey. 'Ha! ha! The best sign in the 
world! You saw too well before.' 
He patted Anthony upon the hand as one might comfort a child, and 
drawing the old man's arm still further through his own, shook his 
trembling fingers towards the spot where Jonas sat, as though he 
would wave him off. But, Anthony remaining quite still and silent, 
he relaxed his hold by slow degrees and lapsed into his usual niche 
in the corner; merely putting forth his hand at intervals and 
touching his old employer gently on the coat, as with the design of 
assuring himself that he was yet beside him. 
Mr Jonas was so very much amazed by these proceedings that he could 
do nothing but stare at the two old men, until Chuffey had fallen 
into his usual state, and Anthony had sunk into a doze; when he gave 
some vent to his emotions by going close up to the former personage, 
and making as though he would, in vulgar parlance, 'punch his head.' 
'They've been carrying on this game,' thought Jonas in a brown 
study, 'for the last two or three weeks. I never saw my father take 
so much notice of him as he has in that time. What! You're legacy 
hunting, are you, Mister Chuff? Eh?' 
But Chuffey was as little conscious of the thought as of the bodily 
advance of Mr Jonas's clenched fist, which hovered fondly about his 
ear. When he had scowled at him to his heart's content, Jonas took 
the candle from the table, and walking into the glass office, 
produced a bunch of keys from his pocket. With one of these he 
opened a secret drawer in the desk; peeping stealthily out, as he 
did so, to be certain that the two old men were still before the 
fire. 
'All as right as ever,' said Jonas, propping the lid of the desk 
open with his forehead, and unfolding a paper. 'Here's the will, 
Mister Chuff. Thirty pound a year for your maintenance, old boy, 
and all the rest to his only son, Jonas. You needn't trouble 
yourself to be too affectionate. You won't get anything by it. 
What's that?' 
It WAS startling, certainly. A face on the other side of the glass 
partition looking curiously in; and not at him but at the paper in 
his hand. For the eyes were attentively cast down upon the writing, 
and were swiftly raised when he cried out. Then they met his own, 
and were as the eyes of Mr Pecksniff. 
Suffering the lid of the desk to fall with a loud noise, but not 
forgetting even then to lock it, Jonas, pale and breathless, gazed 
upon this phantom. It moved, opened the door, and walked in. 
'What's the matter?' cried Jonas, falling back. 'Who is it? Where 
do you come from? What do you want?' 
'Matter!' cried the voice of Mr Pecksniff, as Pecksniff in the flesh 
smiled amiably upon him. 'The matter, Mr Jonas!' 
'What are you prying and peering about here for?' said Jonas, 
angrily. 'What do you mean by coming up to town in this way, and 
taking one unawares? It's precious odd a man can't read the--the 
newspaper--in his own office without being startled out of his wits 
by people coming in without notice. Why didn't you knock at the 
door?' 
'So I did, Mr Jonas,' answered Pecksniff, 'but no one heard me. I 
was curious,' he added in his gentle way as he laid his hand upon 
the young man's shoulder, 'to find out what part of the newspaper 
interested you so much; but the glass was too dim and dirty.' 
Jonas glanced in haste at the partition. Well. It wasn't very 
clean. So far he spoke the truth. 
'Was it poetry now?' said Mr Pecksniff, shaking the forefinger of 
his right hand with an air of cheerful banter. 'Or was it politics? 
Or was it the price of stock? The main chance, Mr Jonas, the main 
chance, I suspect.' 
'You ain't far from the truth,' answered Jonas, recovering himself 
and snuffing the candle; 'but how the deuce do you come to be in 
London again? Ecod! it's enough to make a man stare, to see a 
fellow looking at him all of a sudden, who he thought was sixty or 
seventy mile away.' 
'So it is,' said Mr Pecksniff. 'No doubt of it, my dear Mr Jonas. 
For while the human mind is constituted as it is--' 
'Oh, bother the human mind,' interrupted Jonas with impatience 'what 
have you come up for?' 
'A little matter of business,' said Mr Pecksniff, 'which has arisen 
quite unexpectedly.' 
'Oh!' cried Jonas, 'is that all? Well. Here's father in the next 
room. Hallo father, here's Pecksniff! He gets more addle-pated 
every day he lives, I do believe,' muttered Jonas, shaking his 
honoured parent roundly. 'Don't I tell you Pecksniff's here, 
stupid-head?' 
The combined effects of the shaking and this loving remonstrance 
soon awoke the old man, who gave Mr Pecksniff a chuckling welcome 
which was attributable in part to his being glad to see that 
gentleman, and in part to his unfading delight in the recollection 
of having called him a hypocrite. As Mr Pecksniff had not yet taken 
tea (indeed he had, but an hour before, arrived in London) the 
remains of the late collation, with a rasher of bacon, were served 
up for his entertainment; and as Mr Jonas had a business appointment 
in the next street, he stepped out to keep it; promising to return 
before Mr Pecksniff could finish his repast. 
'And now, my good sir,' said Mr Pecksniff to Anthony; 'now that we 
are alone, pray tell me what I can do for you. I say alone, because 
I believe that our dear friend Mr Chuffey is, metaphysically 
speaking, a--shall I say a dummy?' asked Mr Pecksniff with his 
sweetest smile, and his head very much on one side. 
'He neither hears us,' replied Anthony, 'nor sees us.' 
'Why, then,' said Mr Pecksniff, 'I will be bold to say, with the 
utmost sympathy for his afflictions, and the greatest admiration of 
those excellent qualities which do equal honour to his head and to 
his heart, that he is what is playfully termed a dummy. You were 
going to observe, my dear sir--?' 
'I was not going to make any observation that I know of,' replied 
the old man. 
'I was,' said Mr Pecksniff, mildly. 
'Oh! YOU were? What was it?' 
'That I never,' said Mr Pecksniff, previously rising to see that the 
door was shut, and arranging his chair when he came back, so that it 
could not be opened in the least without his immediately becoming 
aware of the circumstance; 'that I never in my life was so 
astonished as by the receipt of your letter yesterday. That you 
should do me the honour to wish to take counsel with me on any 
matter, amazed me; but that you should desire to do so, to the 
exclusion even of Mr Jonas, showed an amount of confidence in one to 
whom you had done a verbal injury--merely a verbal injury, you were 
anxious to repair--which gratified, which moved, which overcame me.' 
He was always a glib speaker, but he delivered this short address 
very glibly; having been at some pains to compose it outside the 
coach. 
Although he paused for a reply, and truly said that he was there at 
Anthony's request, the old man sat gazing at him in profound silence 
and with a perfectly blank face. Nor did he seem to have the least 
desire or impulse to pursue the conversation, though Mr Pecksniff 
looked towards the door, and pulled out his watch, and gave him many 
other hints that their time was short, and Jonas, if he kept his 
word, would soon return. But the strangest incident in all this 
strange behaviour was, that of a sudden, in a moment, so swiftly 
that it was impossible to trace how, or to observe any process of 
change, his features fell into their old expression, and he cried, 
striking his hand passionately upon the table as if no interval at 
all had taken place: 
'Will you hold your tongue, sir, and let me speak?' 
Mr Pecksniff deferred to him with a submissive bow; and said within 
himself, 'I knew his hand was changed, and that his writing 
staggered. I said so yesterday. Ahem! Dear me!' 
'Jonas is sweet upon your daughter, Pecksniff,' said the old man, in 
his usual tone. 
'We spoke of that, if you remember, sir, at Mrs Todgers's,' replied 
the courteous architect. 
'You needn't speak so loud,' retorted Anthony. 'I'm not so deaf as 
that.' 
Mr Pecksniff had certainly raised his voice pretty high; not so much 
because he thought Anthony was deaf, as because he felt convinced 
that his perceptive faculties were waxing dim; but this quick 
resentment of his considerate behaviour greatly disconcerted him, 
and, not knowing what tack to shape his course upon, he made another 
inclination of the head, yet more submissive that the last. 
'I have said,' repeated the old man, 'that Jonas is sweet upon your 
daughter.' 
'A charming girl, sir,' murmured Mr Pecksniff, seeing that he waited 
for an answer. 'A dear girl, Mr Chuzzlewit, though I say it, who 
should not.' 
'You know better,' cried the old man, advancing his weazen face at 
least a yard, and starting forward in his chair to do it. 'You 
lie! What, you WILL be a hypocrite, will you?' 
'My good sir,' Mr Pecksniff began. 
'Don't call me a good sir,' retorted Anthony, 'and don't claim to be 
one yourself. If your daughter was what you would have me believe, 
she wouldn't do for Jonas. Being what she is, I think she will. He 
might be deceived in a wife. She might run riot, contract debts, 
and waste his substance. Now when I am dead--' 
His face altered so horribly as he said the word, that Mr Pecksniff 
really was fain to look another way. 
'--It will be worse for me to know of such doings, than if I was 
alive; for to be tormented for getting that together, which even 
while I suffer for its acquisition, is flung into the very kennels of 
the streets, would be insupportable torture. No,' said the old man, 
hoarsely, 'let that be saved at least; let there be something 
gained, and kept fast hold of, when so much is lost.' 
'My dear Mr Chuzzlewit,' said Pecksniff, 'these are unwholesome 
fancies; quite unnecessary, sir, quite uncalled for, I am sure. The 
truth is, my dear sir, that you are not well!' 
'Not dying though!' cried Anthony, with something like the snarl of 
a wild animal. 'Not yet! There are years of life in me. Why, look 
at him,' pointing to his feeble clerk. 'Death has no right to leave 
him standing, and to mow me down!' 
Mr Pecksniff was so much afraid of the old man, and so completely 
taken aback by the state in which he found him, that he had not even 
presence of mind enough to call up a scrap of morality from the 
great storehouse within his own breast. Therefore he stammered out 
that no doubt it was, in fairness and decency, Mr Chuffey's turn to 
expire; and that from all he had heard of Mr Chuffey, and the little 
he had the pleasure of knowing of that gentleman, personally, he 
felt convinced in his own mind that he would see the propriety of 
expiring with as little delay as possible. 
'Come here!' said the old man, beckoning him to draw nearer. 'Jonas 
will be my heir, Jonas will be rich, and a great catch for you. You 
know that. Jonas is sweet upon your daughter.' 
'I know that too,' thought Mr Pecksniff, 'for you have said it often 
enough.' 
'He might get more money than with her,' said the old man, 'but she 
will help him to take care of what they have. She is not too young 
or heedless, and comes of a good hard griping stock. But don't you 
play too fine a game. She only holds him by a thread; and if you 
draw it too tight (I know his temper) it'll snap. Bind him when 
he's in the mood, Pecksniff; bind him. You're too deep. In your 
way of leading him on, you'll leave him miles behind. Bah, you man 
of oil, have I no eyes to see how you have angled with him from the 
first?' 
'Now I wonder,' thought Mr Pecksniff, looking at him with a wistful 
face, 'whether this is all he has to say?' 
Old Anthony rubbed his hands and muttered to himself; complained 
again that he was cold; drew his chair before the fire; and, sitting 
with his back to Mr Pecksniff, and his chin sunk down upon his 
breast, was, in another minute, quite regardless or forgetful of his 
presence. 
Uncouth and unsatisfactory as this short interview had been, it had 
furnished Mr Pecksniff with a hint which, supposing nothing further 
were imparted to him, repaid the journey up and home again. For the 
good gentleman had never (for want of an opportunity) dived into the 
depths of Mr Jonas's nature; and any recipe for catching such a sonin-
law (much more one written on a leaf out of his own father's 
book) was worth the having. In order that he might lose no chance 
of improving so fair an opportunity by allowing Anthony to fall 
asleep before he had finished all he had to say, Mr Pecksniff, in 
the disposal of the refreshments on the table, a work to which he 
now applied himself in earnest, resorted to many ingenious 
contrivances for attracting his attention; such as coughing, 
sneezing, clattering the teacups, sharpening the knives, dropping 
the loaf, and so forth. But all in vain, for Mr Jonas returned, and 
Anthony had said no more. 
'What! My father asleep again?' he cried, as he hung up his hat, and 
cast a look at him. 'Ah! and snoring. Only hear!' 
'He snores very deep,' said Mr Pecksniff. 
'Snores deep?' repeated Jonas. 'Yes; let him alone for that. He'll 
snore for six, at any time.' 
'Do you know, Mr Jonas,' said Pecksniff, 'that I think your father 
is--don't let me alarm you--breaking?' 
'Oh, is he though?' replied Jonas, with a shake of the head which 
expressed the closeness of his dutiful observation. 'Ecod, you 
don't know how tough he is. He ain't upon the move yet.' 
'It struck me that he was changed, both in his appearance and 
manner,' said Mr Pecksniff. 
'That's all you know about it,' returned Jonas, seating himself with 
a melancholy air. 'He never was better than he is now. How are 
they all at home? How's Charity?' 
'Blooming, Mr Jonas, blooming.' 
'And the other one; how's she?' 
'Volatile trifler!' said Mr Pecksniff, fondly musing. 'She is well, 
she is well. Roving from parlour to bedroom, Mr Jonas, like a bee, 
skimming from post to pillar, like the butterfly; dipping her young 
beak into our currant wine, like the humming-bird! Ah! were she a 
little less giddy than she is; and had she but the sterling 
qualities of Cherry, my young friend!' 
'Is she so very giddy, then?' asked Jonas. 
'Well, well!' said Mr Pecksniff, with great feeling; 'let me not be 
hard upon my child. Beside her sister Cherry she appears so. A 
strange noise that, Mr Jonas!' 
'Something wrong in the clock, I suppose,' said Jonas, glancing 
towards it. 'So the other one ain't your favourite, ain't she?' 
The fond father was about to reply, and had already summoned into 
his face a look of most intense sensibility, when the sound he had 
already noticed was repeated. 
'Upon my word, Mr Jonas, that is a very extraordinary clock,' said 
Pecksniff. 
It would have been, if it had made the noise which startled them; 
but another kind of time-piece was fast running down, and from that 
the sound proceeded. A scream from Chuffey, rendered a hundred 
times more loud and formidable by his silent habits, made the house 
ring from roof to cellar; and, looking round, they saw Anthony 
Chuzzlewit extended on the floor, with the old clerk upon his knees 
beside him. 
He had fallen from his chair in a fit, and lay there, battling for 
each gasp of breath, with every shrivelled vein and sinew starting 
in its place, as if it were bent on bearing witness to his age, and 
sternly pleading with Nature against his recovery. It was frightful 
to see how the principle of life, shut up within his withered frame, 
fought like a strong devil, mad to be released, and rent its ancient 
prison-house. A young man in the fullness of his vigour, struggling 
with so much strength of desperation, would have been a dismal 
sight; but an old, old, shrunken body, endowed with preternatural 
might, and giving the lie in every motion of its every limb and 
joint to its enfeebled aspect, was a hideous spectacle indeed. 
They raised him up, and fetched a surgeon with all haste, who bled 
the patient and applied some remedies; but the fits held him so long 
that it was past midnight when they got him--quiet now, but quite 
unconscious and exhausted--into bed. 
'Don't go,' said Jonas, putting his ashy lips to Mr Pecksniff's ear 
and whispered across the bed. 'It was a mercy you were present when 
he was taken ill. Some one might have said it was my doing.' 
'YOUR doing!' cried Mr Pecksniff. 
'I don't know but they might,' he replied, wiping the moisture from 
his white face. 'People say such things. How does he look now?' 
Mr Pecksniff shook his head. 
'I used to joke, you know,' said. Jonas: 'but I--I never wished him 
dead. Do you think he's very bad?' 
'The doctor said he was. You heard,' was Mr Pecksniff's answer. 
'Ah! but he might say that to charge us more, in case of his getting 
well' said Jonas. 'You mustn't go away, Pecksniff. Now it's come 
to this, I wouldn't be without a witness for a thousand pound.' 
Chuffey said not a word, and heard not a word. He had sat himself 
down in a chair at the bedside, and there he remained, motionless; 
except that he sometimes bent his head over the pillow, and seemed 
to listen. He never changed in this. Though once in the dreary 
night Mr Pecksniff, having dozed, awoke with a confused impression 
that he had heard him praying, and strangely mingling figures--not 
of speech, but arithmetic--with his broken prayers. 
Jonas sat there, too, all night; not where his father could have 
seen him, had his consciousness returned, but hiding, as it were, 
behind him, and only reading how he looked, in Mr Pecksniff's eyes. 
HE, the coarse upstart, who had ruled the house so long--that 
craven cur, who was afraid to move, and shook so, that his very 
shadow fluttered on the wall! 
It was broad, bright, stirring day when, leaving the old clerk to 
watch him, they went down to breakfast. People hurried up and down 
the street; windows and doors were opened; thieves and beggars took 
their usual posts; workmen bestirred themselves; tradesmen set forth 
their shops; bailiffs and constables were on the watch; all kinds of 
human creatures strove, in their several ways, as hard to live, as 
the one sick old man who combated for every grain of sand in his 
fast-emptying glass, as eagerly as if it were an empire. 
'If anything happens Pecksniff,' said Jonas, 'you must promise me to 
stop here till it's all over. You shall see that I do what's 
right.' 
'I know that you will do what's right, Mr Jonas,' said Pecksniff. 
'Yes, yes, but I won't be doubted. No one shall have it in his 
power to say a syllable against me,' he returned. 'I know how 
people will talk. Just as if he wasn't old, or I had the secret of 
keeping him alive!' 
Mr Pecksniff promised that he would remain, if circumstances should 
render it, in his esteemed friend's opinion, desirable; they were 
finishing their meal in silence, when suddenly an apparition stood 
before them, so ghastly to the view that Jonas shrieked aloud, and 
both recoiled in horror. 
Old Anthony, dressed in his usual clothes, was in the room--beside 
the table. He leaned upon the shoulder of his solitary friend; and 
on his livid face, and on his horny hands, and in his glassy eyes, 
and traced by an eternal finger in the very drops of sweat upon his 
brow, was one word--Death. 
He spoke to them--in something of his own voice too, but sharpened 
and made hollow, like a dead man's face. What he would have said, 
God knows. He seemed to utter words, but they were such as man had 
never heard. And this was the most fearful circumstance of all, to 
see him standing there, gabbling in an unearthly tongue. 
'He's better now,' said Chuffey. 'Better now. Let him sit in his 
old chair, and he'll be well again. I told him not to mind. I said 
so, yesterday.' 
They put him in his easy-chair, and wheeled it near the window; 
then, swinging open the door, exposed him to the free current of 
morning air. But not all the air that is, nor all the winds that 
ever blew 'twixt Heaven and Earth, could have brought new life to 
him. 
Plunge him to the throat in golden pieces now, and his heavy fingers 
shall not close on one! 
CHAPTER NINETEEN 
THE READER IS BROUGHT INTO COMMUNICATION WITH SOME PROFESSIONAL 
PERSONS, AND SHEDS A TEAR OVER THE FILAIL PIETY OF GOOD MR JONAS 
Mr Pecksniff was in a hackney cabriolet, for Jonas Chuzzlewit had 
said 'Spare no expense.' Mankind is evil in its thoughts and in its 
base constructions, and Jonas was resolved it should not have an 
inch to stretch into an ell against him. It never should be charged 
upon his father's son that he had grudged the money for his father's 
funeral. Hence, until the obsequies should be concluded, Jonas had 
taken for his motto 'Spend, and spare not!' 
Mr Pecksniff had been to the undertaker, and was now upon his way to 
another officer in the train of mourning--a female functionary, a 
nurse, and watcher, and performer of nameless offices about the 
persons of the dead--whom he had recommended. Her name, as Mr 
Pecksniff gathered from a scrap of writing in his hand, was Gamp; 
her residence in Kingsgate Street, High Holborn. So Mr Pecksniff, 
in a hackney cab, was rattling over Holborn stones, in quest of Mrs 
Gamp. 
This lady lodged at a bird-fancier's, next door but one to the 
celebrated mutton-pie shop, and directly opposite to the original 
cat's-meat warehouse; the renown of which establishments was duly 
heralded on their respective fronts. It was a little house, and 
this was the more convenient; for Mrs Gamp being, in her highest 
walk of art, a monthly nurse, or, as her sign-board boldly had it, 
'Midwife,' and lodging in the first-floor front, was easily 
assailable at night by pebbles, walking-sticks, and fragments of 
tobacco-pipe; all much more efficacious than the street-door 
knocker, which was so constructed as to wake the street with ease, 
and even spread alarms of fire in Holborn, without making the 
smallest impression on the premises to which it was addressed. 
It chanced on this particular occasion, that Mrs Gamp had been up 
all the previous night, in attendance upon a ceremony to which the 
usage of gossips has given that name which expresses, in two 
syllables, the curse pronounced on Adam. It chanced that Mrs Gamp 
had not been regularly engaged, but had been called in at a crisis, 
in consequence of her great repute, to assist another professional 
lady with her advice; and thus it happened that, all points of 
interest in the case being over, Mrs Gamp had come home again to the 
bird-fancier's and gone to bed. So when Mr Pecksniff drove up in 
the hackney cab, Mrs Gamp's curtains were drawn close, and Mrs Gamp 
was fast asleep behind them. 
If the bird-fancier had been at home, as he ought to have been, 
there would have been no great harm in this; but he was out, and his 
shop was closed. The shutters were down certainly; and in every 
pane of glass there was at least one tiny bird in a tiny bird-cage, 
twittering and hopping his little ballet of despair, and knocking 
his head against the roof; while one unhappy goldfinch who lived 
outside a red villa with his name on the door, drew the water for 
his own drinking, and mutely appealed to some good man to drop a 
farthing's-worth of poison in it. Still, the door was shut. Mr 
Pecksniff tried the latch, and shook it, causing a cracked bell 
inside to ring most mournfully; but no one came. The bird-fancier 
was an easy shaver also, and a fashionable hair-dresser also, and 
perhaps he had been sent for, express, from the court end of the 
town, to trim a lord, or cut and curl a lady; but however that might 
be, there, upon his own ground, he was not; nor was there any more 
distinct trace of him to assist the imagination of an inquirer, than 
a professional print or emblem of his calling (much favoured in the 
trade), representing a hair-dresser of easy manners curling a lady 
of distinguished fashion, in the presence of a patent upright grand 
pianoforte. 
Noting these circumstances, Mr Pecksniff, in the innocence of his 
heart, applied himself to the knocker; but at the first double knock 
every window in the street became alive with female heads; and 
before he could repeat the performance whole troops of married 
ladies (some about to trouble Mrs Gamp themselves very shortly) came 
flocking round the steps, all crying out with one accord, and with 
uncommon interest, 'Knock at the winder, sir, knock at the winder. 
Lord bless you, don't lose no more time than you can help--knock at 
the winder!' 
Acting upon this suggestion, and borrowing the driver's whip for the 
purpose, Mr Pecksniff soon made a commotion among the first floor 
flower-pots, and roused Mrs Gamp, whose voice--to the great 
satisfaction of the matrons--was heard to say, 'I'm coming.' 
'He's as pale as a muffin,' said one lady, in allusion to Mr 
Pecksniff. 
'So he ought to be, if he's the feelings of a man,' observed 
another. 
A third lady (with her arms folded) said she wished he had chosen 
any other time for fetching Mrs Gamp, but it always happened so with 
HER. 
It gave Mr Pecksniff much uneasiness to find, from these remarks, 
that he was supposed to have come to Mrs Gamp upon an errand 
touching--not the close of life, but the other end. Mrs Gamp 
herself was under the same impression, for, throwing open the 
window, she cried behind the curtains, as she hastily attired 
herself-
'Is it Mrs Perkins?' 
'No!' returned Mr Pecksniff, sharply. 'Nothing of the sort.' 
'What, Mr Whilks!' cried Mrs Gamp. 'Don't say it's you, Mr Whilks, 
and that poor creetur Mrs Whilks with not even a pincushion ready. 
Don't say it's you, Mr Whilks!' 
'It isn't Mr Whilks,' said Pecksniff. 'I don't know the man. 
Nothing of the kind. A gentleman is dead; and some person being
wanted in the house, you have been recommended by Mr Mould the
undertaker.'
As she was by this time in a condition to appear, Mrs Gamp, who had
a face for all occasions, looked out of the window with her mourning
countenance, and said she would be down directly. But the matrons
took it very ill that Mr Pecksniff's mission was of so unimportant a
kind; and the lady with her arms folded rated him in good round
terms, signifying that she would be glad to know what he meant by
terrifying delicate females 'with his corpses;' and giving it as her
opinion that he was quite ugly enough to know better. The other
ladies were not at all behind-hand in expressing similar sentiments;
and the children, of whom some scores had now collected, hooted
and defied Mr Pecksniff quite savagely. So when Mrs Gamp appeared,
the unoffending gentleman was glad to hustle her with very little
ceremony into the cabriolet, and drive off, overwhelmed with
popular execration.
Mrs Gamp had a large bundle with her, a pair of pattens, and a
species of gig umbrella; the latter article in colour like a faded
leaf, except where a circular patch of a lively blue had been
dexterously let in at the top. She was much flurried by the haste
she had made, and laboured under the most erroneous views of
cabriolets, which she appeared to confound with mail-coaches or
stage-wagons, inasmuch as she was constantly endeavouring for the
first half mile to force her luggage through the little front
window, and clamouring to the driver to 'put it in the boot.' When
she was disabused of this idea, her whole being resolved itself into
an absorbing anxiety about her pattens, with which she played
innumerable games at quoits on Mr Pecksniff's legs. It was not
until they were close upon the house of mourning that she had enough
composure to observe--
'And so the gentleman's dead, sir! Ah! The more's the pity.'
She didn't even know his name. 'But it's what we must all come to.
It's as certain as being born, except that we can't make our
calculations as exact. Ah! Poor dear!'
She was a fat old woman, this Mrs Gamp, with a husky voice and a
moist eye, which she had a remarkable power of turning up, and only
showing the white of it. Having very little neck, it cost her some
trouble to look over herself, if one may say so, at those to whom
she talked. She wore a very rusty black gown, rather the worse for
snuff, and a shawl and bonnet to correspond. In these dilapidated
articles of dress she had, on principle, arrayed herself, time out
of mind, on such occasions as the present; for this at once
expressed a decent amount of veneration for the deceased, and
invited the next of kin to present her with a fresher suit of weeds;
an appeal so frequently successful, that the very fetch and ghost of
Mrs Gamp, bonnet and all, might be seen hanging up, any hour in the
day, in at least a dozen of the second-hand clothes shops about
Holborn. The face of Mrs Gamp--the nose in particular--was somewhat
red and swollen, and it was difficult to enjoy her society without
becoming conscious of a smell of spirits. Like most persons who
have attained to great eminence in their profession, she took to
hers very kindly; insomuch that, setting aside her natural
predilections as a woman, she went to a lying-in or a laying-out
with equal zest and relish.
'Ah!' repeated Mrs Gamp; for it was always a safe sentiment in cases
of mourning. 'Ah dear! When Gamp was summoned to his long home, and
I see him a-lying in Guy's Hospital with a penny-piece on each eye,
and his wooden leg under his left arm, I thought I should have
fainted away. But I bore up.' 
If certain whispers current in the Kingsgate Street circles had any 
truth in them, she had indeed borne up surprisingly; and had exerted 
such uncommon fortitude as to dispose of Mr Gamp's remains for the 
benefit of science. But it should be added, in fairness, that this 
had happened twenty years before; and that Mr and Mrs Gamp had long 
been separated on the ground of incompatibility of temper in their 
drink. 
'You have become indifferent since then, I suppose?' said Mr 
Pecksniff. 'Use is second nature, Mrs Gamp.' 
'You may well say second nater, sir,' returned that lady. 'One's 
first ways is to find sich things a trial to the feelings, and so is 
one's lasting custom. If it wasn't for the nerve a little sip of 
liquor gives me (I never was able to do more than taste it), I never 
could go through with what I sometimes has to do. Mrs Harris I 
says, at the very last case as ever I acted in, which it was but a 
young person, Mrs Harris I says, leave the bottle on the 
chimley-pieceand don't ask me to take nonebut let me put my lips 
to it when I am so dispogedand then I will do what I'm engaged to 
doaccording to the best of my ability." "Mrs Gamp she says, in 
answer, if ever there was a sober creetur to be got at eighteen 
pence a day for working peopleand three and six for gentlefolks-night 
watching' said Mrs Gamp with emphasis, 'being a extra 
charge--you are that inwallable person." "Mrs Harris I says to 
her, don't name the chargefor if I could afford to lay all my 
feller creeturs out for nothinkI would gladly do itsich is the 
love I bears 'em. But what I always says to them as has the 
management of mattersMrs Harris"'--here she kept her eye on Mr 
Pecksniff--'"be they gents or be they ladiesisdon't ask me 
whether I won't take noneor whether I willbut leave the bottle 
on the chimley-pieceand let me put my lips to it when I am so 
dispoged."' 
The conclusion of this affecting narrative brought them to the 
house. In the passage they encountered Mr Mould the undertaker; a 
little elderly gentlemanbaldand in a suit of black; with a 
notebook in his handa massive gold watch-chain dangling from his 
foband a face in which a queer attempt at melancholy was at odds 
with a smirk of satisfaction; so that he looked as a man mightwho
in the very act of smacking his lips over choice old winetried to 
make believe it was physic. 
'WellMrs Gampand how are YOUMrs Gamp?' said this gentlemanin 
a voice as soft as his step. 
'Pretty wellI thank yousir' dropping a curtsey. 
'You'll be very particular hereMrs Gamp. This is not a common 
caseMrs Gamp. Let everything be very nice and comfortableMrs 
Gampif you please' said the undertakershaking his head with a 
solemn air. 
'It shall besir' she repliedcurtseying again. 'You knows me of 
oldsirI hope.' 
'I hope sotooMrs Gamp' said the undertaker. 'and I think so 
also.' Mrs Gamp curtseyed again. 'This is one of the most 
impressive casessir' he continuedaddressing Mr Pecksniff'that 
I have seen in the whole course of my professional experience.' 
'IndeedMr Mould!' cried that gentleman. 
'Such affectionate regretsirI never saw. There is no 
limitationthere is positively NO limitation'--opening his eyes 
wideand standing on tiptoe--'in point of expense! I have orders
sirto put on my whole establishment of mutes; and mutes come very 
dearMr Pecksniff; not to mention their drink. To provide silverplated 
handles of the very best descriptionornamented with angels' 
heads from the most expensive dies. To be perfectly profuse in 
feathers. In shortsirto turn out something absolutely gorgeous.' 
'My friend Mr Jonas is an excellent man' said Mr Pecksniff. 
'I have seen a good deal of what is filial in my timesir' 
retorted Mould'and what is unfilial too. It is our lot. We come 
into the knowledge of those secrets. But anything so filial as 
this; anything so honourable to human nature; so calculated to 
reconcile all of us to the world we live in; never yet came under my 
observation. It only provessirwhat was so forcibly observed by 
the lamented theatrical poet--buried at Stratford--that there is 
good in everything.' 
'It is very pleasant to hear you say soMr Mould' observed 
Pecksniff. 
'You are very kindsir. And what a man Mr Chuzzlewit wassir! Ah! 
what a man he was. You may talk of your lord mayors' said Mould
waving his hand at the public in general'your sheriffsyour 
common councilmenyour trumpery; but show me a man in this city who 
is worthy to walk in the shoes of the departed Mr Chuzzlewit. No
no' cried Mouldwith bitter sarcasm. 'Hang 'em uphang 'em up; 
sole 'em and heel 'emand have 'em ready for his son against he's 
old enough to wear 'em; but don't try 'em on yourselvesfor they 
won't fit you. We knew him' said Mouldin the same biting vein
as he pocketed his note-book; 'we knew himand are not to be 
caught with chaff. Mr Pecksniffsirgood morning.' 
Mr Pecksniff returned the compliment; and Mouldsensible of having 
distinguished himselfwas going away with a brisk smilewhen he 
fortunately remembered the occasion. Quickly becoming depressed 
againhe sighed; looked into the crown of his hatas if for 
comfort; put it on without finding any; and slowly departed. 
Mrs Gamp and Mr Pecksniff then ascended the staircase; and the 
formerhaving been shown to the chamber in which all that remained 
of Anthony Chuzzlewit lay covered upwith but one loving heartand 
that a halting oneto mourn itleft the latter free to enter the 
darkened room belowand rejoin Mr Jonasfrom whom he had now been 
absent nearly two hours. 
He found that example to bereaved sonsand pattern in the eyes of 
all performers of funeralsmusing over a fragment of writing-paper 
on the deskand scratching figures on it with a pen. The old man's 
chairand hatand walking-stickwere removed from their 
accustomed placesand put out of sight; the window-blinds as yellow 
as November fogswere drawn down close; Jonas himself was so 
subduedthat he could scarcely be heard to speakand only seen to 
walk across the room. 
'Pecksniff' he saidin a whisper'you shall have the regulation 
of it allmind! You shall be able to tell anybody who talks about 
it that everything was correctly and nicely done. There isn't any 
one you'd like to ask to the funeralis there?' 
'NoMr JonasI think not.' 
'Because if there isyou know' said Jonas'ask him. We don't 
want to make a secret of it.' 
'No' repeated Mr Pecksniffafter a little reflection. 'I am not 
the less obliged to you on that accountMr Jonasfor your liberal 
hospitality; but there really is no one.' 
'Very well' said Jonas; 'then youand Iand Chuffeyand the 
doctorwill be just a coachful. We'll have the doctorPecksniff
because he knows what was the matter with himand that it couldn't 
be helped.' 
'Where is our dear friendMr Chuffey?' asked Pecksnifflooking 
round the chamberand winking both his eyes at once--for he was 
overcome by his feelings. 
But here he was interrupted by Mrs Gampwhodivested of her bonnet 
and shawlcame sidling and bridling into the room; and with some 
sharpness demanded a conference outside the door with Mr Pecksniff. 
'You may say whatever you wish to say hereMrs Gamp' said that 
gentlemanshaking his head with a melancholy expression. 
'It is not much as I have to say when people is a-mourning for the 
dead and gone' said Mrs Gamp; 'but what I have to say is TO the 
pint and purposeand no offence intendedmust be so considered. I 
have been at a many places in my timegentlemenand I hope I knows 
what my duties isand how the same should be performed; in course
if I did notit would be very strangeand very wrong in sich a 
gentleman as Mr Mouldwhich has undertook the highest families in 
this landand given every satisfactionso to recommend me as he 
does. I have seen a deal of trouble my own self' said Mrs Gamp
laying greater and greater stress upon her words'and I can feel 
for them as has their feelings triedbut I am not a Rooshan or a 
Prooshanand consequently cannot suffer Spies to be set over me.' 
Before it was possible that an answer could be returnedMrs Gamp
growing redder in the facewent on to say: 
'It is not a easy mattergentlemento live when you are left a 
widder woman; particular when your feelings works upon you to that 
extent that you often find yourself a-going out on terms which is a 
certain lossand never can repay. But in whatever way you earns 
your breadyou may have rules and regulations of your own which 
cannot be broke through. Some people' said Mrs Gampagain 
entrenching herself behind her strong pointas if it were not 
assailable by human ingenuity'may be Rooshansand others may be 
Prooshans; they are born soand will please themselves. Them which 
is of other naturs thinks different.' 
'If I understand this good lady' said Mr Pecksniffturning to 
Jonas'Mr Chuffey is troublesome to her. Shall I fetch him down?' 
'Do' said Jonas. 'I was going to tell you he was up therewhen 
she came in. I'd go myself and bring him downonly--only I'd 
rather you wentif you don't mind.' 
Mr Pecksniff promptly departedfollowed by Mrs Gampwhoseeing 
that he took a bottle and glass from the cupboardand carried it in 
his handwas much softened. 
'I am sure' she said'that if it wasn't for his own happinessI 
should no more mind him being therepoor dearthan if he was a 
fly. But them as isn't used to these thingsthinks so much of 'em 
afterwardsthat it's a kindness to 'em not to let 'em have their 
wish. And even' said Mrs Gampprobably in reference to some 
flowers of speech she had already strewn on Mr Chuffey'even if one 
calls 'em namesit's only done to rouse 'em.' 
Whatever epithets she had bestowed on the old clerkthey had not 
roused HIM. He sat beside the bedin the chair he had occupied all 
the previous nightwith his hands folded before himand his head 
bowed down; and neither looked upon their entrancenor gave any 
sign of consciousnessuntil Mr Pecksniff took him by the armwhen 
he meekly rose. 
'Three score and ten' said Chuffey'ought and carry seven. Some 
men are so strong that they live to four score--four times ought's 
an oughtfour times two's an eight--eighty. Oh! why--why--why 
didn't he live to four times ought's an oughtand four times two's 
an eighteighty?' 
'Ah! what a wale of grief!' cried Mrs Gamppossessing herself of 
the bottle and glass. 
'Why did he die before his poor old crazy servant?' said Chuffey
clasping his hands and looking up in anguish. 'Take him from me
and what remains?' 
'Mr Jonas' returned Pecksniff'Mr Jonasmy good friend.' 
'I loved him' cried the old manweeping. 'He was good to me. We 
learnt Tare and Tret together at school. I took him down oncesix 
boys in the arithmetic class. God forgive me! Had I the heart to 
take him down!' 
'ComeMr Chuffey' said Pecksniff. 'Come with me. Summon up your 
fortitudeMr Chuffey.' 
'YesI will' returned the old clerk. 'Yes. I'll sum up my forty 
--How many times forty--OhChuzzlewit and Son--Your own son Mr 
Chuzzlewit; your own sonsir!' 
He yielded to the hand that guided himas he lapsed into this 
familiar expressionand submitted to be led away. Mrs Gampwith 
the bottle on one kneeand the glass on the othersat upon a 
stoolshaking her head for a long timeuntilin a moment of 
abstractionshe poured out a dram of spiritsand raised it to her 
lips. It was succeeded by a secondand by a thirdand then her 
eyes--either in the sadness of her reflections upon life and death
or in her admiration of the liquor--were so turned upas to be 
quite invisible. But she shook her head still. 
Poor Chuffey was conducted to his accustomed cornerand there he 
remainedsilent and quietsave at long intervalswhen he would 
riseand walk about the roomand wring his handsor raise some 
strange and sudden cry. For a whole week they all three sat about 
the hearth and never stirred abroad. Mr Pecksniff would have walked 
out in the evening timebut Mr Jonas was so averse to his being 
absent for a minutethat he abandoned the ideaand sofrom 
morning until nightthey brooded together in the dark roomwithout 
relief or occupation. 
The weight of that which was stretched outstiff and starkin the 
awful chamber above-stairsso crushed and bore down Jonasthat he 
bent beneath the load. During the whole long seven days and nights
he was always oppressed and haunted by a dreadful sense of its 
presence in the house. Did the door movehe looked towards it with 
a livid face and starting eyeas if he fully believed that ghostly 
fingers clutched the handle. Did the fire fiicker in a draught of 
airhe glanced over his shoulderas almost dreading to behold some 
shrouded figure fanning and flapping at it with its fearful dress. 
The lightest noise disturbed him; and oncein the nightat the 
sound of a footstep overheadhe cried out that the dead man was 
walking--tramptramptramp--about his coffin. 
He lay at night upon a mattress on the floor of the sitting-room; 
his own chamber having been assigned to Mrs Gamp; and Mr Pecksniff 
was similarly accommodated. The howling of a dog before the house
filled him with a terror he could not disguise. He avoided the 
reflection in the opposite windows of the light that burned above
as though it had been an angry eye. He oftenin every nightrose 
up from his fitful sleepand looked and longed for dawn; all 
directions and arrangementseven to the ordering of their daily 
mealshe abandoned to Mr Pecksniff. That excellent gentleman
deeming that the mourner wanted comfortand that high feeding was 
likely to do him infinite serviceavailed himself of these 
opportunities to such good purposethat they kept quite a dainty 
table during this melancholy season; with sweetbreadsstewed 
kidneysoystersand other such light viands for supper every 
night; over whichand sundry jorums of hot punchMr Pecksniff 
delivered such moral reflections and spiritual consolation as might 
have converted a Heathen--especially if he had had but an imperfect 
acquaintance with the English tongue. 
Nor did Mr Pecksniff alone indulge in the creature comforts during 
this sad time. Mrs Gamp proved to be very choice in her eatingand 
repudiated hashed mutton with scorn. In her drinking tooshe was 
very punctual and particularrequiring a pint of mild porter at 
luncha pint at dinnerhalf-a-pint as a species of stay or 
holdfast between dinner and teaand a pint of the celebrated 
staggering aleor Real Old Brighton Tipperat supper; besides the 
bottle on the chimney-pieceand such casual invitations to refresh 
herself with wine as the good breeding of her employers might prompt 
them to offer. In like mannerMr Mould's men found it necessary to 
drown their grieflike a young kitten in the morning of its 
existencefor which reason they generally fuddled themselves before 
they began to do anythinglest it should make head and get the 
better of them. In shortthe whole of that strange week was a 
round of dismal joviality and grim enjoyment; and every oneexcept 
poor Chuffeywho came within the shadow of Anthony Chuzzlewit's 
gravefeasted like a Ghoul. 
At length the day of the funeralpious and truthful ceremony that 
it wasarrived. Mr Mouldwith a glass of generous port between 
his eye and the lightleaned against the desk in the little glass 
office with his gold watch in his unoccupied handand conversed 
with Mrs Gamp; two mutes were at the house-doorlooking as mournful 
as could be reasonably expected of men with such a thriving job in 
hand; the whole of Mr Mould's establishment were on duty within the 
house or without; feathers wavedhorses snortedsilk and velvets 
fluttered; in a wordas Mr Mould emphatically said'Everything 
that money could do was done.' 
'And what can do moreMrs Gamp?' exclaimed the undertaker as he 
emptied his glass and smacked his lips. 
'Nothing in the worldsir.' 
'Nothing in the world' repeated Mr Mould. 'You are right
Mrs.Gamp. Why do people spend more money'--here he filled his glass 
again--'upon a deathMrs Gampthan upon a birth? Comethat's in 
your way; you ought to know. How do you account for that now?' 
'Perhaps it is because an undertaker's charges comes dearer than a 
nurse's chargessir' said Mrs Gamptitteringand smoothing down 
her new black dress with her hands. 
'Haha!' laughed Mr Mould. 'You have been breakfasting at 
somebody's expense this morningMrs Gamp.' But seeingby the aid 
of a little shaving-glass which hung oppositethat he looked merry
he composed his features and became sorrowful. 
'Many's the time that I've not breakfasted at my own expense along 
of your recommendingsir; and many's the time I hope to do the 
same in time to come' said Mrs Gampwith an apologetic curtsey. 
'So be it' replied Mr Mould'please Providence. NoMrs Gamp; 
I'll tell you why it is. It's because the laying out of money with 
a well-conducted establishmentwhere the thing is performed upon the 
very best scalebinds the broken heartand sheds balm upon the 
wounded spirit. Hearts want bindingand spirits want balming when 
people die; not when people are born. Look at this gentleman today; 
look at him.' 
'An open-handed gentleman?' cried Mrs Gampwith enthusiasm. 
'Nono' said the undertaker; 'not an open-handed gentleman in 
generalby any means. There you mistake him; but an afflicted 
gentlemanan affectionate gentlemanwho knows what it is in the 
power of money to doin giving him reliefand in testifying his 
love and veneration for the departed. It can give him' said Mr 
Mouldwaving his watch-chain slowly round and roundso that he 
described one circle after every item; 'it can give him four horses 
to each vehicle; it can give him velvet trappings; it can give him 
drivers in cloth cloaks and top-boots; it can give him the plumage 
of the ostrichdyed black; it can give him any number of walking 
attendantsdressed in the first style of funeral fashionand 
carrying batons tipped with brass; it can give him a handsome tomb; 
it can give him a place in Westminster Abbey itselfif he choose to 
invest it in such a purchase. Oh! do not let us say that gold is 
drosswhen it can buy such things as theseMrs Gamp.' 
'But what a blessingsir' said Mrs Gamp'that there are such as 
youto sell or let 'em out on hire!' 
'AyeMrs Gampyou are right' rejoined the undertaker. 'We should 
be an honoured calling. We do good by stealthand blush to have it 
mentioned in our little bills. How much consolation may I--even I' 
cried Mr Mould'have diffused among my fellow-creatures by means of 
my four long-tailed prancersnever harnessed under ten pund ten!' 
Mrs Gamp had begun to make a suitable replywhen she was 
interrupted by the appearance of one of Mr Mould's assistants--his 
chief mourner in fact--an obese personwith his waistcoat in closer 
connection with his legs than is quite reconcilable with the 
established ideas of grace; with that cast of feature which is 
figuratively called a bottle nose; and with a face covered all over 
with pimples. He had been a tender plant once upon a timebut from 
constant blowing in the fat atmosphere of funeralshad run to seed. 
'WellTacker' said Mr Mould'is all ready below?' 
'A beautiful showsir' rejoined Tacker. 'The horses are prouder 
and fresher than ever I see 'em; and toss their headsthey doas 
if they knowed how much their plumes cost. Onetwothreefour' 
said Mr Tackerheaping that number of black cloaks upon his left 
arm. 
'Is Tom therewith the cake and wine?' asked Mr Mould. 
'Ready to come in at a moment's noticesir' said Tacker. 
'Then' rejoined Mr Mouldputting up his watchand glancing at 
himself in the little shaving-glassthat he might be sure his face 
had the right expression on it; 'then I think we may proceed to 
business. Give me the paper of glovesTacker. Ahwhat a man he 
was! AhTackerTackerwhat a man he was!' 
Mr Tackerwho from his great experience in the performance of 
funeralswould have made an excellent pantomime actorwinked at 
Mrs Gamp without at all disturbing the gravity of his countenance
and followed his master into the next room. 
It was a great point with Mr Mouldand a part of his professional 
tactnot to seem to know the doctor; though in reality they were 
near neighboursand very oftenas in the present instanceworked 
together. So he advanced to fit on his black kid gloves as if he 
had never seen him in all his life; while the doctoron his part
looked as distant and unconscious as if he had heard and read of 
undertakersand had passed their shopsbut had never before been 
brought into communication with one. 
'Gloveseh?' said the doctor. 'Mr Pecksniff after you.' 
'I couldn't think of it' returned Mr Pecksniff. 
'You are very good' said the doctortaking a pair. 'Wellsiras 
I was saying--I was called up to attend that case at about half-past 
one o'clock. Cake and wineeh? Which is port? Thank you.' 
Mr Pecksniff took some also. 
'At about half-past one o'clock in the morningsir' resumed the 
doctor'I was called up to attend that case. At the first pull of 
the night-bell I turned outthrew up the windowand put out my 
head. Cloakeh? Don't tie it too tight. That'll do.' 
Mr Pecksniff having been likewise inducted into a similar garment
the doctor resumed. 
'And put out my head--hateh? My good friendthat is not mine. 
Mr PecksniffI beg your pardonbut I think we have unintentionally 
made an exchange. Thank you. WellsirI was going to tell you--' 
'We are quite ready' interrupted Mould in a low voice. 
'Readyeh?' said the doctor. 'Very goodMr PecksniffI'll take 
an opportunity of relating the rest in the coach. It's rather 
curious. Readyeh? No rainI hope?' 
'Quite fairsir' returned Mould. 
'I was afraid the ground would have been wet' said the doctor'for 
my glass fell yesterday. We may congratulate ourselves upon our 
good fortune.' But seeing by this time that Mr Jonas and Chuffey 
were going out at the doorhe put a white pocket-handkerchief to 
his face as if a violent burst of grief had suddenly come upon him
and walked down side by side with Mr Pecksniff. 
Mr Mould and his men had not exaggerated the grandeur of the 
arrangements. They were splendid. The four hearse-horses
especiallyreared and prancedand showed their highest actionas 
if they knew a man was deadand triumphed in it. 'They break us
drive usride us; ill-treatabuseand maim us for their 
pleasure--But they die; Hurrahthey die!' 
So through the narrow streets and winding city wayswent Anthony 
Chuzzlewit's funeral; Mr Jonas glancing stealthily out of the coachwindow 
now and thento observe its effect upon the crowd; Mr Mould 
as he walked alonglistening with a sober pride to the exclamations 
of the bystanders; the doctor whispering his story to Mr Pecksniff
without appearing to come any nearer the end of it; and poor old 
Chuffey sobbing unregarded in a corner. But he had greatly 
scandalized Mr Mould at an early stage of the ceremony by carrying 
his handkerchief in his hat in a perfectly informal mannerand 
wiping his eyes with his knuckles. And as Mr Mould himself had said 
alreadyhis behaviour was indecentand quite unworthy of such an 
occasion; and he never ought to have been there. 
There he washowever; and in the churchyard there he wasalso
conducting himself in a no less unbecoming mannerand leaning for 
support on Tackerwho plainly told him that he was fit for nothing 
better than a walking funeral. But ChuffeyHeaven help him! heard 
no sound but the echoeslingering in his own heartof a voice for 
ever silent. 
'I loved him' cried the old mansinking down upon the grave when 
all was done. 'He was very good to me. Ohmy dear old friend and 
master!' 
'ComecomeMr Chuffey' said the doctor'this won't do; it's a 
clayey soilMr Chuffey. You mustn'treally.' 
'If it had been the commonest thing we doand Mr Chuffey had been a 
Bearergentlemen' said Mouldcasting an imploring glance upon 
themas he helped to raise him'he couldn't have gone on worse 
than this.' 
'Be a manMr Chuffey' said Pecksniff. 
'Be a gentlemanMr Chuffey' said Mould. 
'Upon my wordmy good friend' murmured the doctorin a tone of 
stately reproofas he stepped up to the old man's side'this is 
worse than weakness. This is badselfishvery wrongMr Chuffey. 
You should take example from othersmy good sir. You forget that 
you were not connected by ties of blood with our deceased friend; 
and that he had a very near and very dear relationMr Chuffey.' 
'Ayehis own son!' cried the old manclasping his hands with 
remarkable passion. 'His ownownonly son!' 
'He's not right in his headyou know' said Jonasturning pale. 
'You're not to mind anything he says. I shouldn't wonder if he was 
to talk some precious nonsense. But don't you mind himany of you. 
I don't. My father left him to my charge; and whatever he says or 
doesthat's enough. I'll take care of him.' 
A hum of admiration rose from the mourners (including Mr Mould and 
his merry men) at this new instance of magnanimity and kind feeling 
on the part of Jonas. But Chuffey put it to the test no farther. 
He said not a word moreand being left to himself for a little 
whilecrept back again to the coach. 
It has been said that Mr Jonas turned pale when the behaviour of the 
old clerk attracted general attention; his discomposurehowever
was but momentaryand he soon recovered. But these were not the 
only changes he had exhibited that day. The curious eyes of Mr 
Pecksniff had observed that as soon as they left the house upon 
their mournful errandhe began to mend; that as the ceremonies 
proceeded he graduallyby little and littlerecovered his old 
conditionhis old lookshis old bearinghis old agreeable 
characteristics of speech and mannerand becamein all respects
his old pleasant self. And now that they were seated in the coach 
on their return home; and more when they got thereand found the 
windows openthe light and air admittedand all traces of the late 
event removed; he felt so well convinced that Jonas was again the 
Jonas he had known a week agoand not the Jonas of the intervening 
timethat he voluntarily gave up his recently-acquired power 
without one faint attempt to exercise itand at once fell back into 
his former position of mild and deferential guest. 
Mrs Gamp went home to the bird-fancier'sand was knocked up again 
that very night for a birth of twins; Mr Mould dined gayly in the 
bosom of his familyand passed the evening facetiously at his club; 
the hearseafter standing for a long time at the door of a 
roistering public-houserepaired to its stables with the feathers 
inside and twelve red-nosed undertakers on the roofeach holding on 
by a dingy pegto whichin times of statea waving plume was 
fitted; the various trappings of sorrow were carefully laid by in 
presses for the next hirer; the fiery steeds were quenched and quiet 
in their stalls; the doctor got merry with wine at a wedding-dinner
and forgot the middle of the story which had no end to it; the 
pageant of a few short hours ago was written nowhere half so legibly 
as in the undertaker's books. 
Not in the churchyard? Not even there. The gates were closed; the 
night was dark and wet; the rain fell silentlyamong the stagnant 
weeds and nettles. One new mound was there which had not been there 
last night. Timeburrowing like a mole below the groundhad 
marked his track by throwing up another heap of earth. And that was 
all. 
CHAPTER TWENTY 
IS A CHAPTER OF LOVE 
'Pecksniff' said Jonastaking off his hatto see that the black 
crape band was all right; and finding that it wasputting it on 
againcomplacently; 'what do you mean to give your daughters when 
they marry?' 
'My dear Mr Jonas' cried the affectionate parentwith an ingenuous 
smile'what a very singular inquiry!' 
'Nowdon't you mind whether it's a singular inquiry or a plural 
one' retorted Jonaseyeing Mr Pecksniff with no great favour'but 
answer itor let it alone. One or the other.' 
'Hum! The questionmy dear friend' said Mr Pecksnifflaying his 
hand tenderly upon his kinsman's knee'is involved with many 
considerations. What would I give them? Eh?' 
'Ah! what would you give 'em?' repeated Jonas. 
'Whythat'said Mr Pecksniff'would naturally depend in a great 
measure upon the kind of husbands they might choosemy dear young 
friend.' 
Mr Jonas was evidently disconcertedand at a loss how to proceed. 
It was a good answer. It seemed a deep onebut such is the wisdom 
of simplicity!' 
'My standard for the merits I would require in a son-in-law' said 
Mr Pecksniffafter a short silence'is a high one. Forgive memy 
dear Mr Jonas' he addedgreatly moved'if I say that you have 
spoiled meand made it a fanciful one; an imaginative one; a 
prismatically tinged oneif I may be permitted to call it so.' 
'What do you mean by that?' growled Jonaslooking at him with 
increased disfavour. 
'Indeedmy dear friend' said Mr Pecksniff'you may well inquire. 
The heart is not always a royal mintwith patent machinery to work 
its metal into current coin. Sometimes it throws it out in strange 
formsnot easily recognized as coin at all. But it is sterling 
gold. It has at least that merit. It is sterling gold.' 
'Is it?' grumbled Jonaswith a doubtful shake of the head. 
'Aye!' said Mr Pecksniffwarming with his subject 'it is. To be 
plain with youMr Jonasif I could find two such sons-in-law as 
you will one day make to some deserving mancapable of appreciating 
a nature such as yoursI would--forgetful of myself--bestow upon my 
daughters portions reaching to the very utmost limit of my means.' 
This was strong languageand it was earnestly delivered. But who 
can wonder that such a man as Mr Pecksniffafter all he had seen 
and heard of Mr Jonasshould be strong and earnest upon such a 
theme; a theme that touched even the worldly lips of undertakers 
with the honey of eloquence! 
Mr Jonas was silentand looked thoughtfully at the landscape. For 
they were seated on the outside of the coachat the backand were 
travelling down into the country. He accompanied Mr Pecksniff home 
for a few days' change of air and scene after his recent trials. 
'Well' he saidat lastwith captivating bluntness'suppose you 
got one such son-in-law as mewhat then?' 
Mr Pecksniff regarded him at first with inexpressible surprise; then 
gradually breaking into a sort of dejected vivacitysaid: 
'Then well I know whose husband he would be!' 
'Whose?' asked Jonasdrily. 
'My eldest girl'sMr Jonas' replied Pecksniffwith moistening 
eyes. 'My dear Cherry's; my staffmy scripmy treasureMr Jonas. 
A hard strugglebut it is in the nature of things! I must one day 
part with her to a husband. I know itmy dear friend. I am 
prepared for it.' 
'Ecod! you've been prepared for that a pretty long timeI should 
think' said Jonas. 
'Many have sought to bear her from me' said Mr Pecksniff. 'All 
have failed. "I never will give my handpapa"--those were her 
words--"unless my heart is won." She has not been quite so happy as 
she used to beof late. I don't know why.' 
Again Mr Jonas looked at the landscape; then at the coachman; then 
at the luggage on the roof; finally at Mr Pecksniff. 
'I suppose you'll have to part with the other onesome of these 
days?' he observedas he caught that gentleman's eye. 
'Probably' said the parent. 'Years will tame down the wildness of 
my foolish birdand then it will be caged. But CherryMr Jonas
Cherry--' 
'Ohah!' interrupted Jonas. 'Years have made her all right enough. 
Nobody doubts that. But you haven't answered what I asked you. Of 
courseyou're not obliged to do ityou knowif you don't like. 
You're the best judge.' 
There was a warning sulkiness in the manner of this speechwhich 
admonished Mr Pecksniff that his dear friend was not to be trifled 
with or fenced offand that he must either return a straightforward 
reply to his questionor plainly give him to understand 
that he declined to enlighten him upon the subject to which it 
referred. Mindful in this dilemma of the caution old Anthony had 
given him almost with his latest breathhe resolved to speak to the 
pointand so told Mr Jonas (enlarging upon the communication as a 
proof of his great attachment and confidence)that in the case he 
had put; to witin the event of such a man as he proposing for his 
daughter's handhe would endow her with a fortune of four thousand 
pounds. 
'I should sadly pinch and cramp myself to do so' was his fatherly 
remark; 'but that would be my dutyand my conscience would reward 
me. For myselfmy conscience is my bank. I have a trifle invested 
there--a mere trifleMr Jonas--but I prize it as a store of value
I assure you.' 
The good man's enemies would have divided upon this question into 
two parties. One would have asserted without scruple that if Mr 
Pecksniff's conscience were his bankand he kept a running account 
therehe must have overdrawn it beyond all mortal means of 
computation. The other would have contended that it was a mere 
fictitious form; a perfectly blank book; or one in which entries 
were only made with a peculiar kind of invisible ink to become 
legible at some indefinite time; and that he never troubled it at 
all. 
'It would sadly pinch and cramp memy dear friend' repeated Mr 
Pecksniff'but Providence--perhaps I may be permitted to say a 
special Providence--has blessed my endeavoursand I could guarantee 
to make the sacrifice.' 
A question of philosophy arises herewhether Mr Pecksniff had or 
had not good reason to say that he was specially patronized and 
encouraged in his undertakings. All his life long he had been 
walking up and down the narrow ways and by-placeswith a hook in 
one hand and a crook in the otherscraping all sorts of valuable 
odds and ends into his pouch. Nowthere being a special Providence 
in the fall of a sparrowit follows (so Mr Pecksniffand only 
such admirable menwould have reasoned)that there must also 
be a special Providence in the alighting of the stone or stick
or other substance which is aimed at the sparrow. And Mr 
Pecksniff's hookor crookhaving invariably knocked the sparrow 
on the head and brought him downthat gentleman may have been 
led to consider himself as specially licensed to bag sparrows
and as being specially seized and possessed of all the birds he 
had got together. That many undertakingsnational as well as 
individual--but especially the former--are held to be specially 
brought to a glorious and successful issuewhich never could be 
so regarded on any other process of reasoningmust be clear to 
all men. Therefore the precedents would seem to show that Mr 
Pecksniff had (as things go) good argument for what he said and 
might be permitted to say itand did not say it presumptuously
vainlyor arrogantlybut in a spirit of high faith and great 
wisdom. 
Mr Jonasnot being much accustomed to perplex his mind with 
theories of this natureexpressed no opinion on the subject. Nor 
did he receive his companion's announcement with one solitary 
syllablegoodbador indifferent. He preserved this taciturnity 
for a quarter of an hour at leastand during the whole of that time 
appeared to be steadily engaged in subjecting some given amount to 
the operation of every known rule in figures; adding to ittaking 
from itmultiplying itreducing it by long and short division; 
working it by the rule-of-three direct and inversed; exchange or 
barter; practice; simple interest; compound interest; and other 
means of arithmetical calculation. The result of these labours 
appeared to be satisfactoryfor when he did break silenceit 
was as one who had arrived at some specific resultand freed 
himself from a state of distressing uncertainty. 
'Comeold Pecksniff!'--Such was his jocose addressas he slapped 
that gentleman on the backat the end of the stage--'let's have 
something!' 
'With all my heart' said Mr Pecksniff. 
'Let's treat the driver' cried Jonas. 
'If you think it won't hurt the manor render him discontented with 
his station--certainly' faltered Mr Pecksniff. 
Jonas only laughed at thisand getting down from the coach-top with 
great alacritycut a cumbersome kind of caper in the road. After 
whichhe went into the public-houseand there ordered spirituous 
drink to such an extentthat Mr Pecksniff had some doubts of his 
perfect sanityuntil Jonas set them quite at rest by sayingwhen 
the coach could wait no longer: 
'I've been standing treat for a whole week and moreand letting you 
have all the delicacies of the season. YOU shall pay for this 
Pecksniff.' It was not a joke eitheras Mr Pecksniff at first 
supposed; for he went off to the coach without further ceremonyand 
left his respected victim to settle the bill. 
But Mr Pecksniff was a man of meek enduranceand Mr Jonas was his 
friend. Moreoverhis regard for that gentleman was foundedas we 
knowon pure esteemand a knowledge of the excellence of his 
character. He came out from the tavern with a smiling faceand 
even went so far as to repeat the performanceon a less expensive 
scaleat the next ale-house. There was a certain wildness in the 
spirits of Mr Jonas (not usually a part of his character) which was 
far from being subdued by these meansandfor the rest of the 
journeyhe was so very buoyant--it may be saidboisterous--that Mr 
Pecksniff had some difficulty in keeping pace with him. 
They were not expected--oh dearno! Mr Pecksniff had proposed in 
London to give the girls a surpriseand had said he wouldn't write 
a word to prepare them on any accountin order that he and Mr Jonas 
might take them unawaresand just see what they were doingwhen 
they thought their dear papa was miles and miles away. As a 
consequence of this playful devicethere was nobody to meet them at 
the finger-postbut that was of small consequencefor they had 
come down by the day coachand Mr Pecksniff had only a carpetbag
while Mr Jonas had only a portmanteau. They took the portmanteau 
between themput the bag upon itand walked off up the lane 
without delay; Mr Pecksniff already going on tiptoe as ifwithout 
this precautionhis fond childrenbeing then at a distance of a 
couple of miles or sowould have some filial sense of his approach. 
It was a lovely evening in the spring-time of the year; and in the 
soft stillness of the twilightall nature was very calm and 
beautiful. The day had been fine and warm; but at the coming on of 
nightthe air grew cooland in the mellowing distance smoke was 
rising gently from the cottage chimneys. There were a thousand 
pleasant scents diffused aroundfrom young leaves and fresh buds; 
the cuckoo had been singing all day longand was but just now 
hushed; the smell of earth newly-upturnedfirst breath of hope to 
the first labourer after his garden witheredwas fragrant in the 
evening breeze. It was a time when most men cherish good resolves
and sorrow for the wasted past; when most menlooking on the 
shadows as they gatherthink of that evening which must close on 
alland that to-morrow which has none beyond. 
'Precious dull' said Mr Jonaslooking about. 'It's enough to make 
a man go melancholy mad.' 
'We shall have lights and a fire soon' observed Mr Pecksniff. 
'We shall need 'em by the time we get there' said Jonas. 'Why the 
devil don't you talk? What are you thinking of?' 
'To tell you the truthMr Jonas' said Pecksniff with great 
solemnity'my mind was running at that moment on our late dear 
friendyour departed father.' 
Mr Jonas immediately let his burden falland saidthreatening him 
with his hand: 
'Drop thatPecksniff!' 
Mr Pecksniff not exactly knowing whether allusion was made to the 
subject or the portmanteaustared at his friend in unaffected 
surprise. 
'Drop itI say!' cried Jonasfiercely. 'Do you hear? Drop it
now and for ever. You had betterI give you notice!' 
'It was quite a mistake' urged Mr Pecksniffvery much dismayed; 
'though I admit it was foolish. I might have known it was a tender 
string.' 
'Don't talk to me about tender strings' said Jonaswiping his 
forehead with the cuff of his coat. 'I'm not going to be crowed 
over by youbecause I don't like dead company.' 
Mr Pecksniff had got out the words 'Crowed overMr Jonas!' when 
that young manwith a dark expression in his countenancecut him 
short once more: 
'Mind!' he said. 'I won't have it. I advise you not to revive the 
subjectneither to me nor anybody else. You can take a hintif 
you choose as well as another man. There's enough said about it. 
Come along!' 
Taking up his part of the load againwhen he had said these words
he hurried on so fast that Mr Pecksniffat the other end of the 
portmanteaufound himself dragged forwardin a very inconvenient 
and ungraceful mannerto the great detriment of what is called by 
fancy gentlemen 'the bark' upon his shinswhich were most 
unmercifully bumped against the hard leather and the iron buckles. 
In the course of a few minuteshoweverMr Jonas relaxed his speed
and suffered his companion to come up with himand to bring the 
portmanteau into a tolerably straight position. 
It was pretty clear that he regretted his late outbreakand that he 
mistrusted its effect on Mr Pecksniff; for as often as that 
gentleman glanced towards Mr Jonashe found Mr Jonas glancing at 
himwhich was a new source of embarrassment. It was but a shortlived 
onethoughfor Mr Jonas soon began to whistlewhereupon Mr 
Pecksnifftaking his cue from his friendbegan to hum a tune 
melodiously. 
'Pretty nearly thereain't we?' said Jonaswhen this had lasted 
some time. 
'Closemy dear friend' said Mr Pecksniff. 
'What'll they be doingdo you suppose?' asked Jonas. 
'Impossible to say' cried Mr Pecksniff. 'Giddy truants! They may 
be away from homeperhaps. I was going to--he! he! he!--I was 
going to propose' said Mr Pecksniff'that we should enter by the 
back wayand come upon them like a clap of thunderMr Jonas.' 
It might not have been easy to decide in respect of which of their 
manifold propertiesJonasMr Pecksniffthe carpet-bagand the 
portmanteaucould be likened to a clap of thunder. But Mr Jonas 
giving his assent to this proposalthey stole round into the back 
yardand softly advanced towards the kitchen windowthrough which 
the mingled light of fire and candle shone upon the darkening night. 
Truly Mr Pecksniff is blessed in his children--in one of themat 
any rate. The prudent Cherry--staff and scripand treasure of her 
doting father--there she sitsat a little table white as driven 
snowbefore the kitchen firemaking up accounts! See the neat 
maidenas with pen in handand calculating look addressed towards 
the ceiling and bunch of keys within a little basket at her side
she checks the housekeeping expenditure! From flat-irondish-cover
and warming-pan; from pot and kettleface of brass footmanand 
black-leaded stove; bright glances of approbation wink and glow upon 
her. The very onions dangling from the beammantle and shine like 
cherubs' cheeks. Something of the influence of those vegetables 
sinks into Mr Pecksniff's nature. He weeps. 
It is but for a momentand he hides it from the observation of his 
friend--very carefully--by a somewhat elaborate use of his pockethandkerchief
in fact; for he would not have his weakness known. 
'Pleasant' he murmured'pleasant to a father's feelings! My dear 
girl! Shall we let her know we are hereMr Jonas?' 
'WhyI suppose you don't mean to spend the evening in the stable
or the coach-house' he returned. 
'Thatindeedis not such hospitality as I would show to YOUmy 
friend' cried Mr Pecksniffpressing his hand. And then he took a 
long breathand tapping at the windowshouted with stentorian 
blandness: 
'Boh!' 
Cherry dropped her pen and screamed. But innocence is ever boldor 
should be. As they opened the doorthe valiant girl exclaimed in a 
firm voiceand with a presence of mind which even in that trying 
moment did not desert her'Who are you? What do you want? Speak! 
or I will call my Pa.' 
Mr Pecksniff held out his arms. She knew him instantlyand rushed 
into his fond embrace. 
'It was thoughtless of usMr Jonasit was very thoughtless' said 
Pecksniffsmoothing his daugther's hair. 'My darlingdo you see 
that I am not alone!' 
Not she. She had seen nothing but her father until now. She saw Mr 
Jonas nowthough; and blushedand hung her head downas she gave 
him welcome. 
But where was Merry? Mr Pecksniff didn't ask the question in 
reproachbut in a vein of mildness touched with a gentle sorrow. 
She was upstairsreading on the parlour couch. Ah! Domestic 
details had no charms for HER. 'But call her down' said Mr 
Pecksniffwith a placid resignation. 'Call her downmy love.' 
She was called and cameall flushed and tumbled from reposing on 
the sofa; but none the worse for that. Nonot at all. Rather the 
betterif anything. 
'Oh my goodness me!' cried the arch girlturning to her cousin when 
she had kissed her father on both cheeksand in her frolicsome 
nature had bestowed a supernumerary salute upon the tip of his nose
'YOU herefright! WellI'm very thankful that you won't trouble ME 
much!' 
'What! you're as lively as everare you?' said Jonas. 'Oh! You're 
a wicked one!' 
'Therego along!' retorted Merrypushing him away. 'I'm sure I 
don't know what I shall ever doif I have to see much of you. Go 
alongfor gracious' sake!' 
Mr Pecksniff striking in herewith a request that Mr Jonas would 
immediately walk upstairshe so far complied with the young lady's 
adjuration as to go at once. But though he had the fair Cherry on 
his armhe could not help looking back at her sisterand 
exchanging some further dialogue of the same bantering description
as they all four ascended to the parlour; where--for the young 
ladies happenedby good fortuneto be a little later than usual 
that night--the tea-board was at that moment being set out. 
Mr Pinch was not at homeso they had it all to themselvesand were 
very snug and talkativeJonas sitting between the two sistersand 
displaying his gallantry in that engaging manner which was peculiar 
to him. It was a hard thingMr Pecksniff saidwhen tea was done
and cleared awayto leave so pleasant a little partybut having 
some important papers to examine in his own apartmenthe must beg 
them to excuse him for half an hour. With this apology he withdrew
singing a careless strain as he went. He had not been gone five 
minuteswhen Merrywho had been sitting in the windowapart from 
Jonas and her sisterburst into a half-smothered laughand skipped 
towards the door. 
'Hallo!' cried Jonas. 'Don't go.' 
'OhI dare say!' rejoined Merrylooking back. 'You're very 
anxious I should stayfrightain't you?' 
'YesI am' said Jonas. 'Upon my word I am. I want to speak to 
you.' But as she left the room notwithstandinghe ran out after 
herand brought her backafter a short struggle in the passage 
which scandalized Miss Cherry very much. 
'Upon my wordMerry' urged that young lady'I wonder at you! 
There are bounds even to absurditymy dear.' 
'Thank youmy sweet' said Merrypursing up her rosy Lips. 'Much 
obliged to it for its advice. Oh! do leave me aloneyou monster
do!' This entreaty was wrung from her by a new proceeding on the 
part of Mr Jonaswho pulled her downall breathless as she was
into a seat beside him on the sofahaving at the same time Miss 
Cherry upon the other side. 
'Now' said Jonasclasping the waist of each; 'I have got both arms 
fullhaven't I?' 
'One of them will be black and blue to-morrowif you don't let me 
go' cried the playful Merry. 
'Ah! I don't mind YOUR pinching' grinned Jonas'a bit.' 
'Pinch him for meCherrypray' said Mercy. 'I never did hate 
anybody so much as I hate this creatureI declare!' 
'Nonodon't say that' urged Jonas'and don't pinch either
because I want to be serious. I say--Cousin Charity--' 
'Well! what?' she answered sharply. 
'I want to have some sober talk' said Jonas; 'I want to prevent any 
mistakesyou knowand to put everything upon a pleasant 
understanding. That's desirable and properain't it?' 
Neither of the sisters spoke a word. Mr Jonas paused and cleared 
his throatwhich was very dry. 
'She'll not believe what I am going to saywill shecousin?' said 
Jonastimidly squeezing Miss Charity. 
'ReallyMr JonasI don't knowuntil I hear what it is. It's 
quite impossible!' 
'Whyyou see' said Jonas'her way always being to make game of 
peopleI know she'll laughor pretend to--I know thatbeforehand. 
But you can tell her I'm in earnestcousin; can't you? You'll 
confess you knowwon't you? You'll be honourableI'm sure' 
he added persuasively. 
No answer. His throat seemed to grow hotter and hotterand to be 
more and more difficult of control. 
'You seeCousin Charity' said Jonas'nobody but you can tell her 
what pains I took to get into her company when you were both at the 
boarding-house in the citybecause nobody's so well aware of ityou 
know. Nobody else can tell her how hard I tried to get to know you 
betterin order that I might get to know her without seeming to 
wish it; can they? I always asked you about herand said where 
had she goneand when would she comeand how lively she wasand 
all that; didn't Icousin? I know you'll tell her soif you 
haven't told her so alreadyand--and--I dare say you havebecause 
I'm sure you're honourableain't you?' 
Still not a word. The right arm of Mr Jonas--the elder sister sat 
upon his right--may have been sensible of some tumultuous throbbing 
which was not within itself; but nothing else apprised him that his 
words had had the least effect. 
'Even if you kept it to yourselfand haven't told her' resumed 
Jonas'it don't much matterbecause you'll bear honest witness 
now; won't you? We've been very good friends from the first; 
haven't we? and of course we shall be quite friends in futureand 
so I don't mind speaking before you a bit. Cousin Mercyyou've 
heard what I've been saying. She'll confirm itevery word; she 
must. Will you have me for your husband? Eh?' 
As he released his hold of Charityto put this question with better 
effectshe started up and hurried away to her own roommarking her 
progress as she went by such a train of passionate and incoherent 
soundas nothing but a slighted woman in her anger could produce. 
'Let me go away. Let me go after her' said Merrypushing him off
and giving him--to tell the truth--more than one sounding slap upon 
his outstretched face. 
'Not till you say yes. You haven't told me. Will you have me for 
your husband?' 
'NoI won't. I can't bear the sight of you. I have told you so a 
hundred times. You are a fright. BesidesI always thought you 
liked my sister best. We all thought so.' 
'But that wasn't my fault' said Jonas. 
'Yes it was; you know it was.' 
'Any trick is fair in love' said Jonas. 'She may have thought I 
liked her bestbut you didn't.' 
'I did!' 
'Noyou didn't. You never could have thought I liked her best
when you were by.' 
'There's no accounting for tastes' said Merry; 'at least I didn't 
mean to say that. I don't know what I mean. Let me go to her.' 
'Say "Yes and then I will.' 
'If I ever brought myself to say so, it should only be that I might 
hate and tease you all my life.' 
'That's as good,' cried Jonas, 'as saying it right out. It's a 
bargain, cousin. We're a pair, if ever there was one.' 
This gallant speech was succeeded by a confused noise of kissing and 
slapping; and then the fair but much dishevelled Merry broke away, 
and followed in the footsteps of her sister. 
Now whether Mr Pecksniff had been listening--which in one of his 
character appears impossible; or divined almost by inspiration what 
the matter was--which, in a man of his sagacity is far more 
probable; or happened by sheer good fortune to find himself in 
exactly the right place, at precisely the right time--which, under 
the special guardianship in which he lived might very reasonably 
happen; it is quite certain that at the moment when the sisters came 
together in their own room, he appeared at the chamber door. And a 
marvellous contrast it was--they so heated, noisy, and vehement; he 
so calm, so self-possessed, so cool and full of peace, that not a 
hair upon his head was stirred. 
'Children!' said Mr Pecksniff, spreading out his hands in wonder, 
but not before he had shut the door, and set his back against it. 
'Girls! Daughters! What is this?' 
'The wretch; the apostate; the false, mean, odious villain; has 
before my very face proposed to Mercy!' was his eldest daughter's 
answer. 
'Who has proposed to Mercy!' asked Mr Pecksniff. 
'HE has. That thing, Jonas, downstairs.' 
'Jonas proposed to Mercy?' said Mr Pecksniff. 'Aye, aye! Indeed!' 
'Have you nothing else to say?' cried Charity. 'Am I to be driven 
mad, papa? He has proposed to Mercy, not to me.' 
'Oh, fie! For shame!' said Mr Pecksniff, gravely. 'Oh, for shame! 
Can the triumph of a sister move you to this terrible display, my 
child? Oh, really this is very sad! I am sorry; I am surprised and 
hurt to see you so. Mercy, my girl, bless you! See to her. Ah, 
envy, envy, what a passion you are!' 
Uttering this apostrophe in a tone full of grief and lamentation, Mr 
Pecksniff left the room (taking care to shut the door behind him), 
and walked downstairs into the parlour. There he found his 
intended son-in-law, whom he seized by both hands. 
'Jonas!' cried Mr Pecksniff. 'Jonas! the dearest wish of my heart 
is now fulfilled!' 
'Very well; I'm glad to hear it,' said Jonas. 'That'll do. I say! 
As it ain't the one you're so fond of, you must come down with 
another thousand, Pecksniff. You must make it up five. It's worth 
that, to keep your treasure to yourself, you know. You get off very 
cheap that way, and haven't a sacrifice to make.' 
The grin with which he accompanied this, set off his other 
attractions to such unspeakable advantage, that even Mr Pecksniff 
lost his presence of mind for a moment, and looked at the young man 
as if he were quite stupefied with wonder and admiration. But he 
quickly regained his composure, and was in the very act of changing 
the subject, when a hasty step was heard without, and Tom Pinch, in 
a state of great excitement, came darting into the room. 
On seeing a stranger there, apparently engaged with Mr Pecksniff in 
private conversation, Tom was very much abashed, though he still 
looked as if he had something of great importance to communicate, 
which would be a sufficient apology for his intrusion. 
'Mr Pinch,' said Pecksniff, 'this is hardly decent. You will excuse 
my saying that I think your conduct scarcely decent, Mr Pinch.' 
'I beg your pardon, sir,' replied Tom, 'for not knocking at the 
door.' 
'Rather beg this gentleman's pardon, Mr Pinch,' said Pecksniff. 'I 
know you; he does not.--My young man, Mr Jonas.' 
The son-in-law that was to be gave him a slight nod--not actively 
disdainful or contemptuous, only passively; for he was in a good 
humour. 
'Could I speak a word with you, sir, if you please?' said Tom. 
'It's rather pressing.' 
'It should be very pressing to justify this strange behaviour, Mr 
Pinch,' returned his master. 'Excuse me for one moment, my dear 
friend. Now, sir, what is the reason of this rough intrusion?' 
'I am very sorry, sir, I am sure,' said Tom, standing, cap in hand, 
before his patron in the passage; 'and I know it must have a very 
rude appearance--' 
'It HAS a very rude appearance, Mr Pinch.' 
'Yes, I feel that, sir; but the truth is, I was so surprised to see 
them, and knew you would be too, that I ran home very fast indeed, 
and really hadn't enough command over myself to know what I was 
doing very well. I was in the church just now, sir, touching the 
organ for my own amusement, when I happened to look round, and saw a 
gentleman and lady standing in the aisle listening. They seemed to 
be strangers, sir, as well as I could make out in the dusk; and I 
thought I didn't know them; so presently I left off, and said, would 
they walk up into the organ-loft, or take a seat? No, they said, 
they wouldn't do that; but they thanked me for the music they had 
heard. In fact,' observed Tom, blushing, 'they said, Delicious 
music!" at leastSHE did; and I am sure that was a greater pleasure 
and honour to me than any compliment I could have had. I--I--beg 
your pardon sir;' he was all in a trembleand dropped his hat for 
the second time 'but I--I'm rather flurriedand I fear I've 
wandered from the point.' 
'If you will come back to itThomas' said Mr Pecksniffwith an 
icy look'I shall feel obliged.' 
'Yessir' returned Tom'certainly. They had a posting carriage 
at the porchsirand had stopped to hear the organthey said. 
And then they said--SHE saidI meanI believe you live with Mr 
Pecksniff, sir?I said I had that honourand I took the liberty
sir' added Tomraising his eyes to his benefactor's face'of 
sayingas I always will and mustwith your permissionthat I was 
under great obligations to youand never could express my sense of 
them sufficiently.' 
'That' said Mr Pecksniff'was veryvery wrong. Take your time
Mr Pinch.' 
'Thank yousir' cried Tom. 'On that they asked me--she askedI 
mean--"Wasn't there a bridle road to Mr Pecksniff's house?"' 
Mr Pecksniff suddenly became full of interest. 
'"Without going by the Dragon?" When I said there wasand said how 
happy I should be to show it 'emthey sent the carriage on by the 
roadand came with me across the meadows. I left 'em at the 
turnstile to run forward and tell you they were comingand they'll 
be heresirin--in less than a minute's timeI should say' added 
Tomfetching his breath with difficulty. 
'Nowwho' said Mr Pecksniffpondering'who may these people be?' 
'Bless my soulsir!' cried Tom'I meant to mention that at first
I thought I had. I knew them--herI mean--directly. The gentleman 
who was ill at the Dragonsirlast winter; and the young lady who 
attended him.' 
Tom's teeth chattered in his headand he positively staggered with 
amazementat witnessing the extraordinary effect produced on Mr 
Pecksniff by these simple words. The dread of losing the old man's 
favour almost as soon as they were reconciledthrough the mere fact 
of having Jonas in the house; the impossibility of dismissing Jonas
or shutting him upor tying him hand and foot and putting him in 
the coal-cellarwithout offending him beyond recall; the horrible 
discordance prevailing in the establishmentand the impossibility 
of reducing it to decent harmony with Charity in loud hysterics
Mercy in the utmost disorderJonas in the parlourand Martin 
Chuzzlewit and his young charge upon the very doorsteps; the total 
hopelessness of being able to disguise or feasibly explain this 
state of rampant confusion; the sudden accumulation over his devoted 
head of every complicated perplexity and entanglement for his 
extrication from which he had trusted to timegood fortunechance
and his own plottingso filled the entrapped architect with dismay
that if Tom could have been a Gorgon staring at Mr Pecksniffand Mr 
Pecksniff could have been a Gorgon staring at Tomthey could not 
have horrified each other half so much as in their own bewildered 
persons. 
'Deardear!' cried Tom'what have I done? I hoped it would be a 
pleasant surprisesir. I thought you would like to know.' 
But at that moment a loud knocking was heard at the hall door. 
CHAPTER TWENTY-ONE 
MORE AMERICAN EXPERIENCESMARTIN TAKES A PARTNERAND MAKES A 
PURCHASE. SOME ACCOUNT OF EDENAS IT APPEARED ON PAPER. ALSO OF 
THE BRITISH LION. ALSO OF THE KIND OF SYMPATHY PROFESSED AND 
ENTERTAINED BY THE WATERTOAST ASSOCIATION OF UNITED SYMPATHISERS 
The knocking at Mr Pecksniff's doorthough loud enoughbore no 
resemblance whatever to the noise of an American railway train at 
full speed. It may be well to begin the present chapter with this 
frank admissionlest the reader should imagine that the sounds now 
deafening this history's ears have any connection with the knocker on 
Mr Pecksniff's dooror with the great amount of agitation pretty 
equally divided between that worthy man and Mr Pinchof which its 
strong performance was the cause. 
Mr Pecksniff's house is more than a thousand leagues away; and again 
this happy chronicle has Liberty and Moral Sensibility for its high 
companions. Again it breathes the blessed air of Independence; 
again it contemplates with pious awe that moral sense which renders 
unto Ceasar nothing that is his; again inhales that sacred 
atmosphere which was the life of him--oh noble patriotwith many 
followers!--who dreamed of Freedom in a slave's embraceand waking 
sold her offspring and his own in public markets. 
How the wheels clank and rattleand the tram-road shakesas the 
train rushes on! And now the engine yellsas it were lashed and 
tortured like a living labourerand writhed in agony. A poor 
fancy; for steel and iron are of infinitely greater accountin this 
commonwealththan flesh and blood. If the cunning work of man be 
urged beyond its power of enduranceit has within it the elements 
of its own revenge; whereas the wretched mechanism of the Divine 
Hand is dangerous with no such propertybut may be tampered with
and crushedand brokenat the driver's pleasure. Look at that 
engine! It shall cost a man more dollars in the way of penalty and 
fineand satisfaction of the outraged lawto deface in wantonness 
that senseless mass of metalthan to take the lives of twenty human 
creatures! Thus the stars wink upon the bloody stripes; and Liberty 
pulls down her cap upon her eyesand owns Oppression in its vilest 
aspectfor her sister. 
The engine-driver of the train whose noise awoke us to the present 
chapter was certainly troubled with no such reflections as these; 
nor is it very probable that his mind was disturbed by any 
reflections at all. He leaned with folded arms and crossed legs 
against the side of the carriagesmoking; andexcept when he 
expressedby a grunt as short as his pipehis approval of some 
particularly dexterous aim on the part of his colleaguethe 
firemanwho beguiled his leisure by throwing logs of wood from the 
tender at the numerous stray cattle on the linehe preserved a 
composure so immovableand an indifference so completethat if the 
locomotive had been a sucking-pighe could not have been more 
perfectly indifferent to its doings. Notwithstanding the tranquil 
state of this officerand his unbroken peace of mindthe train was 
proceeding with tolerable rapidity; and the rails being but poorly 
laidthe jolts and bumps it met with in its progress were neither 
slight nor few. 
There were three great caravans or cars attached. The ladies' car
the gentlemen's carand the car for negroes; the latter painted 
blackas an appropriate compliment to its company. Martin and Mark 
Tapley were in the firstas it was the most comfortable; andbeing 
far from fullreceived other gentlemen wholike themwere 
unblessed by the society of ladies of their own. They were seated 
side by sideand were engaged in earnest conversation. 
'And soMark' said Martinlooking at him with an anxious 
expression'and so you are glad we have left New York far behind 
usare you?' 
'Yessir' said Mark. 'I am. Precious glad.' 
'Were you not "jolly" there?' asked Martin. 
'On the contrairysir' returned Mark. 'The jolliest week as ever 
I spent in my lifewas that there week at Pawkins's.' 
'What do you think of our prospects?' inquired Martinwith an air 
that plainly said he had avoided the question for some time. 
'Uncommon brightsir' returned Mark. 'Impossible for a place to 
have a better namesirthan the Walley of Eden. No man couldn't 
think of settling in a better place than the Walley of Eden. And 
I'm told' added Markafter a pause'as there's lots of serpents 
thereso we shall come outquite complete and reg'lar.' 
So far from dwelling upon this agreeable piece of information with 
the least dismayMark's face grew radiant as he called it to mind; 
so very radiantthat a stranger might have supposed he had all his 
life been yearning for the society of serpentsand now hailed with 
delight the approaching consummation of his fondest wishes. 
'Who told you that?' asked Martinsternly. 
'A military officer' said Mark. 
'Confound you for a ridiculous fellow!' cried Martinlaughing 
heartily in spite of himself. 'What military officer? You know 
they spring up in every field.' 
'As thick as scarecrows in Englandsir' interposed Mark'which is 
a sort of milita themselvesbeing entirely coat and wescoatwith a 
stick inside. Haha!--Don't mind mesir; it's my way sometimes. I 
can't help being jolly. Why it was one of them inwading conquerors 
at Pawkins'sas told me. "Am I rightly informed he says--not 
exactly through his nose, but as if he'd got a stoppage in it, very 
high up--that you're a-going to the Walley of Eden?" "I heard some 
talk on it I told him. Oh!" says heif you should ever happen 
to go to bed there--you MAY, you know,he saysin course of time 
as civilisation progresses--don't forget to take a axe with you.I 
looks at him tolerable hard. "Fleas?" says I. "And more says he. 
Wampires?" says I. "And more says he. Musquitoesperhaps?" 
says I. "And more says he. What more?" says I. "Snakes more 
says he; rattle-snakes. You're right to a certain extent
stranger. There air some catawampous chawers in the small way too
as graze upon a human pretty strong; but don't mind THEM--they're 
company. It's snakes he says, as you'll object to; and whenever 
you wake and see one in a upright poster on your bed he says, 
like a corkscrew with the handle off a-sittin' on its bottom ring
cut him downfor he means wenom."' 
'Why didn't you tell me this before!' cried Martinwith an 
expression of face which set off the cheerfulness of Mark's visage 
to great advantage. 
'I never thought on itsir' said Mark. 'It come in at one ear
and went out at the other. But Lord love ushe was one of another 
CompanyI dare sayand only made up the story that we might go to 
his Edenand not the opposition one' 
'There's some probability in that' observed Martin. 'I can 
honestly say that I hope sowith all my heart.' 
'I've not a doubt about itsir' returned Markwhofull of the 
inspiriting influence of the anecodote upon himselfhad for the 
moment forgotten its probable effect upon his master; 'anyhowwe 
must liveyou knowsir.' 
'Live!' cried Martin. 'Yesit's easy to say live; but if we should 
happen not to wake when rattlesnakes are making corkscrews of 
themselves upon our bedsit may be not so easy to do it.' 
'And that's a fact' said a voice so close in his ear that it 
tickled him. 'That's dreadful true.' 
Martin looked roundand found that a gentlemanon the seat behind
had thrust his head between himself and Markand sat with his chin 
resting on the back rail of their little benchentertaining himself 
with their conversation. He was as languid and listless in his 
looks as most of the gentlemen they had seen; his cheeks were so 
hollow that he seemed to be always sucking them in; and the sun had 
burnt himnot a wholesome red or brownbut dirty yellow. He had 
bright dark eyeswhich he kept half closed; only peeping out of the 
cornersand even then with a glance that seemed to say'Now you 
won't overreach me; you want tobut you won't.' His arms rested 
carelessly on his knees as he leant forward; in the palm of his left 
handas English rustics have their slice of cheesehe had a cake 
of tobacco; in his right a penknife. He struck into the dialogue 
with as little reserve as if he had been specially called indays 
beforeto hear the arguments on both sidesand favour them with 
his opinion; and he no more contemplated or cared for the 
possibility of their not desiring the honour of his acquaintance or 
interference in their private affairs than if he had been a bear or 
a buffalo. 
'That' he repeatednodding condescendingly to Martinas to an 
outer barbarian and foreigner'is dreadful true. Darn all manner 
of vermin.' 
Martin could not help frowning for a momentas if he were disposed 
to insinuate that the gentleman had unconsciously 'darned' himself. 
But remembering the wisdom of doing at Rome as Romans dohe smiled 
with the pleasantest expression he could assume upon so short a 
notice. 
Their new friend said no more just thenbeing busily employed in 
cutting a quid or plug from his cake of tobaccoand whistling 
softly to himself the while. When he had shaped it to his liking
he took out his old plugand deposited the same on the back of the 
seat between Mark and Martinwhile he thrust the new one into the 
hollow of his cheekwhere it looked like a large walnutor 
tolerable pippin. Finding it quite satisfactoryhe stuck the point 
of his knife into the old plugand holding it out for their 
inspectionremarked with the air of a man who had not lived in 
vainthat it was 'used up considerable.' Then he tossed it away; 
put his knife into one pocket and his tobacco into another; rested 
his chin upon the rail as before; and approving of the pattern on 
Martin's waistcoatreached out his hand to feel the texture of that 
garment. 
'What do you call this now?' he asked. 
'Upon my word' said Martin'I don't know what it's called.' 
'It'll cost a dollar or more a yardI reckon?' 
'I really don't know.' 
'In my country' said the gentleman'we know the cost of our own 
pro-duce.' 
Martin not discussing the questionthere was a pause. 
'Well!' resumed their new friendafter staring at them intently 
during the whole interval of silence; 'how's the unnat'ral old 
parent by this time?' 
Mr Tapley regarding this inquiry as only another version of the 
impertinent English question'How's your mother?' would have 
resented it instantlybut for Martin's prompt interposition. 
'You mean the old country?' he said. 
'Ah!' was the reply. 'How's she? Progressing back'ardsI expect
as usual? Well! How's Queen Victoria?' 
'In good healthI believe' said Martin. 
'Queen Victoria won't shake in her royal shoes at allwhen she 
hears to-morrow named' observed the stranger'No.' 
'Not that I am aware of. Why should she?' 
'She won't be taken with a cold chillwhen she realises what is 
being done in these diggings' said the stranger. 'No.' 
'No' said Martin. 'I think I could take my oath of that.' 
The strange gentleman looked at him as if in pity for his ignorance 
or prejudiceand said: 
'WellsirI tell you this--there ain't a engine with its biler 
bustin God A'mighty's free U-nited Statesso fixedand nipped
and frizzled to a most e-tarnal smashas that young critterin her 
luxurious location in the Tower of London will bewhen she reads 
the next double-extra Watertoast Gazette.' 
Several other gentlemen had left their seats and gathered round 
during the foregoing dialogue. They were highly delighted with this 
speech. One very lank gentlemanin a loose limp white cravatlong 
white waistcoatand a black great-coatwho seemed to be in 
authority among themfelt called upon to acknowledge it. 
'Hem! Mr La Fayette Kettle' he saidtaking off his hat. 
There was a grave murmur of 'Hush!' 
'Mr La Fayette Kettle! Sir!' 
Mr Kettle bowed. 
'In the name of this companysirand in the name of our common 
countryand in the name of that righteous cause of holy sympathy in 
which we are engagedI thank you. I thank yousirin the name of 
the Watertoast Sympathisers; and I thank yousirin the name of 
the Watertoast Gazette; and I thank yousirin the name of the 
star-spangled banner of the Great United Statesfor your eloquent 
and categorical exposition. And ifsir' said the speakerpoking 
Martin with the handle of his umbrella to bespeak his attentionfor 
he was listening to a whisper from Mark; 'ifsirin such a place
and at such a timeI might venture to con-clude with a sentiment
glancing--however slantin'dicularly--at the subject in handI 
would saysirmay the British Lion have his talons eradicated by 
the noble bill of the American Eagleand be taught to play upon the 
Irish Harp and the Scotch Fiddle that music which is breathed in 
every empty shell that lies upon the shores of green Co-lumbia!' 
Here the lank gentleman sat down againamidst a great sensation; 
and every one looked very grave. 
'General Choke' said Mr La Fayette Kettle'you warm my heart; sir
you warm my heart. But the British Lion is not unrepresented here
sir; and I should be glad to hear his answer to those remarks.' 
'Upon my word' cried Martinlaughing'since you do me the honour 
to consider me his representativeI have only to say that I never 
heard of Queen Victoria reading the What's-his-name Gazette and that 
I should scarcely think it probable.' 
General Choke smiled upon the restand saidin patient and 
benignant explanation: 
'It is sent to hersir. It is sent to her. Her mail.' 
'But if it is addressed to the Tower of Londonit would hardly come 
to handI fear' returned Martin; 'for she don't live there.' 
'The Queen of Englandgentlemen' observed Mr Tapleyaffecting the 
greatest politenessand regarding them with an immovable face
'usually lives in the Mint to take care of the money. She HAS 
lodgingsin virtue of her officewith the Lord Mayor at the 
Mansion House; but don't often occupy themin consequence of the 
parlour chimney smoking.' 
'Mark' said Martin'I shall be very much obliged to you if you'll 
have the goodness not to interfere with preposterous statements
however jocose they may appear to you. I was merely remarking 
gentlemen--though it's a point of very little import--that the 
Queen of England does not happen to live in the Tower of London.' 
'General!' cried Mr La Fayette Kettle. 'You hear?' 
'General!' echoed several others. 'General!' 
'Hush! Praysilence!' said General Chokeholding up his handand 
speaking with a patient and complacent benevolence that was quite 
touching. 'I have always remarked it as a very extraordinary 
circumstancewhich I impute to the natur' of British Institutions 
and their tendency to suppress that popular inquiry and information 
which air so widely diffused even in the trackless forests of this 
vast Continent of the Western Ocean; that the knowledge of 
Britishers themselves on such points is not to be compared with that 
possessed by our intelligent and locomotive citizens. This is 
interestingand confirms my observation. When you saysir' he 
continuedaddressing Martin'that your Queen does not reside in 
the Tower of Londonyou fall into an errornot uncommon to your 
countrymeneven when their abilities and moral elements air such as 
to command respect. Butsiryou air wrong. She DOES live there--' 
'When she is at the Court of Saint James's' interposed Kettle. 
'When she is at the Court of Saint James'sof course' returned the 
Generalin the same benignant way; 'for if her location was in 
Windsor Pavilion it couldn't be in London at the same time. Your 
Tower of Londonsir' pursued the Generalsmiling with a mild 
consciousness of his knowledge'is nat'rally your royal residence. 
Being located in the immediate neighbourhood of your Parksyour 
Drivesyour Triumphant Archesyour Operaand your Royal Almacks
it nat'rally suggests itself as the place for holding a luxurious 
and thoughtless court. Andconsequently' said the General
'consequentlythe court is held there.' 
'Have you been in England?' asked Martin. 
'In print I havesir' said the General'not otherwise. We air a 
reading people heresir. You will meet with much information among 
us that will surprise yousir.' 
'I have not the least doubt of it' returned Martin. But here he 
was interrupted by Mr La Fayette Kettlewho whispered in his ear: 
'You know General Choke?' 
'No' returned Martinin the same tone. 
'You know what he is considered?' 
'One of the most remarkable men in the country?' said Martinat a 
venture. 
'That's a fact' rejoined Kettle. 'I was sure you must have heard 
of him!' 
'I think' said Martinaddressing himself to the General again
'that I have the pleasure of being the bearer of a letter of 
introduction to yousir. From Mr Bevanof Massachusetts' he 
addedgiving it to him. 
The General took it and read it attentively; now and then stopping 
to glance at the two strangers. When he had finished the notehe 
came over to Martinsat down by himand shook hands. 
'Well!' he said'and you think of settling in Eden?' 
'Subject to your opinionand the agent's advice' replied Martin. 
'I am told there is nothing to be done in the old towns.' 
'I can introduce you to the agentsir' said the General. 'I know 
him. In factI am a member of the Eden Land Corporation myself.' 
This was serious news to Martinfor his friend had laid great 
stress upon the General's having no connectionas he thoughtwith 
any land companyand therefore being likely to give him 
disinterested advice. The General explained that he had joined the 
Corporation only a few weeks agoand that no communication had 
passed between himself and Mr Bevan since. 
'We have very little to venture' said Martin anxiously--'only a few 
pounds--but it is our all. Nowdo you think that for one of my 
professionthis would be a speculation with any hope or chance in 
it?' 
'Well' observed the Generalgravely'if there wasn't any hope or 
chance in the speculationit wouldn't have engaged my dollarsI 
opinionate.' 
'I don't mean for the sellers' said Martin. 'For the buyers--for 
the buyers!' 
'For the buyerssir?' observed the Generalin a most impressive 
manner. 'Well! you come from an old country; from a countrysir
that has piled up golden calves as high as Babeland worshipped 'em 
for ages. We are a new countrysir; man is in a more primeval 
state heresir; we have not the excuse of having lapsed in the 
slow course of time into degenerate practices; we have no false 
gods; mansirhereis man in all his dignity. We fought for that 
or nothing. Here am Isir' said the Generalsetting up his 
umbrella to represent himselfand a villanous-looking umbrella it 
was; a very bad counter to stand for the sterling coin of his 
benevolence'here am I with grey hairs sirand a moral sense. 
Would Iwith my principlesinvest capital in this speculation if I 
didn't think it full of hopes and chances for my brother man?' 
Martin tried to look convincedbut he thought of New Yorkand 
found it difficult. 
'What are the Great United States forsir' pursued the General 'if 
not for the regeneration of man? But it is nat'ral in you to make 
such an enquerryfor you come from Englandand you do not know my 
country.' 
'Then you think' said Martin'that allowing for the hardships we 
are prepared to undergothere is a reasonable--Heaven knows we 
don't expect much--a reasonable opening in this place?' 
'A reasonable opening in Edensir! But see the agentsee the 
agent; see the maps and planssir; and conclude to go or stay
according to the natur' of the settlement. Eden hadn't need to go 
a-begging yetsir' remarked the General. 
'It is an awful lovely placesure-ly. And frightful wholesome
likewise!' said Mr Kettlewho had made himself a party to this 
conversation as a matter of course. 
Martin felt that to dispute such testimonyfor no better reason 
than because he had his secret misgivings on the subjectwould be 
ungentlemanly and indecent. So he thanked the General for his 
promise to put him in personal communication with the agent; and 
'concluded' to see that officer next morning. He then begged the 
General to inform him who the Watertoast Sympathisers wereof whom 
he had spoken in addressing Mr La Fayette Kettleand on what 
grievances they bestowed their Sympathy. To which the General
looking very seriousmade answerthat he might fully enlighten 
himself on those points to-morrow by attending a Great Meeting of 
the Bodywhich would then be held at the town to which they were 
travelling; 'over whichsir' said the General'my fellow-citizens 
have called on me to preside.' 
They came to their journey's end late in the evening. Close to the 
railway was an immense white edificelike an ugly hospitalon 
which was painted 'NATIONAL HOTEL.' There was a wooden gallery or 
verandah in frontin which it was rather startlingwhen the train 
stoppedto behold a great many pairs of boots and shoesand the 
smoke of a great many cigarsbut no other evidences of human 
habitation. By slow degreeshoweversome heads and shoulders 
appearedand connecting themselves with the boots and shoesled to 
the discovery that certain gentlemen boarderswho had a fancy for 
putting their heels where the gentlemen boarders in other countries 
usually put their headswere enjoying themselves after their own 
manner in the cool of the evening. 
There was a great bar-room in this hoteland a great public room in 
which the general table was being set out for supper. There were 
interminable whitewashed staircaseslong whitewashed galleries 
upstairs and downstairsscores of little whitewashed bedroomsand 
a four-sided verandah to every story in the housewhich formed a 
large brick square with an uncomfortable courtyard in the centre
where some clothes were drying. Here and theresome yawning 
gentlemen lounged up and down with their hands in their pockets; but 
within the house and withoutwherever half a dozen people were 
collected togethertherein their looksdressmoralsmanners
habitsintellectand conversationwere Mr Jefferson Brick
Colonel DiverMajor PawkinsGeneral Chokeand Mr La Fayette 
Kettleoverand overand over again. They did the same things; 
said the same things; judged all subjects byand reduced all 
subjects tothe same standard. Observing how they livedand how 
they were always in the enchanting company of each otherMartin 
even began to comprehend their being the socialcheerfulwinning
airy men they were. 
At the sounding of a dismal gongthis pleasant company went 
trooping down from all parts of the house to the public room; while 
from the neighbouring stores other guests came flocking inin 
shoals; for half the townmarried folks as well as singleresided 
at the National Hotel. Teacoffeedried meatstongueham
picklescaketoastpreservesand bread and butterwere 
swallowed with the usual ravaging speed; and thenas beforethe 
company dropped off by degreesand lounged away to the deskthe 
counteror the bar-room. The ladies had a smaller ordinary of 
their ownto which their husbands and brothers were admitted if 
they chose; and in all other respects they enjoyed themselves as at 
Pawkins's. 
'NowMarkmy good fellowsaid Martinclosing the door of his 
little chamber'we must hold a solemn councilfor our fate is 
decided to-morrow morning. You are determined to invest these 
savings of yours in the common stockare you?' 
'If I hadn't been determined to make that wentursir' answered Mr 
Tapley'I shouldn't have come.' 
'How much is there heredid you say' asked Martinholding up a 
little bag. 
'Thirty-seven pound ten and sixpence. The Savings' Bank said so at 
least. I never counted it. But THEY knowbless you!' said Mark
with a shake of the head expressive of his unbounded confidence in 
the wisdom and arithmetic of those Institutions. 
'The money we brought with us' said Martin'is reduced to a few 
shillings less than eight pounds.' 
Mr Tapley smiledand looked all manner of waysthat he might not 
be supposed to attach any importance to this fact. 
'Upon the ring--HER ringMark' said Martinlooking ruefully at 
his empty finger-
'Ah!' sighed Mr Tapley. 'Beg your pardonsir.' 
'--We raisedin English moneyfourteen pounds. Soeven with 
thatyour share of the stock is still very much the larger of the 
two you see. NowMark' said Martinin his old wayjust as he 
might have spoken to Tom Pinch'I have thought of a means of making 
this up to you--more than making it up to youI hope--and very 
materially elevating your prospects in life.' 
'Oh! don't talk of thatyou knowsir' returned Mark. 'I don't 
want no elevatingsir. I'm all right enoughsirI am.' 
'Nobut hear me' said Martin'because this is very important to 
youand a great satisfaction to me. Markyou shall be a partner 
in the business; an equal partner with myself. I will put inas my 
additional capitalmy professional knowledge and ability; and half 
the annual profitsas long as it is carried onshall be yours.' 
Poor Martin! For ever building castles in the air. For everin his 
very selfishnessforgetful of all but his own teeming hopes and 
sanguine plans. Swellingat that instantwith the consciousness 
of patronizing and most munificently rewarding Mark! 
'I don't knowsir' Mark rejoinedmuch more sadly than his custom 
wasthough from a very different cause than Martin supposed'what 
I can say to thisin the way of thanking you. I'll stand by you
sirto the best of my abilityand to the last. That's all.' 
'We quite understand each othermy good fellow' said Martin rising 
in self-approval and condescension. 'We are no longer master and 
servantbut friends and partners; and are mutually gratified. If 
we determine on Edenthe business shall be commenced as soon as we 
get there. Under the name' said Martinwho never hammered upon an 
idea that wasn't red hot'under the name of Chuzzlewit and Tapley.' 
'Lord love yousir' cried Mark'don't have my name in it. I 
ain't acquainted with the businesssir. I must be Co.I must. 
I've often thought' he addedin a low voice'as I should like to 
know a Co.; but I little thought as ever I should live to be one.' 
'You shall have your own wayMark.' 
'Thank'eesir. If any country gentleman thereaboutsin the public 
wayor otherwisewanted such a thing as a skittle-ground madeI 
could take that part of the bis'nesssir.' 
'Against any architect in the States' said Martin. 'Get a couple 
of sherry-cobblersMarkand we'll drink success to the firm.' 
Either he forgot already (and often afterwards)that they were no 
longer master and servantor considered this kind of duty to be 
among the legitimate functions of the Co. But Mark obeyed with his 
usual alacrity; and before they parted for the nightit was agreed 
between them that they should go together to the agent's in the 
morningbut that Martin should decide the Eden questionon his own 
sound judgment. And Mark made no meriteven to himself in his 
jollityof this concession; perfectly well knowing that the matter 
would come to that in the endany way. 
The General was one of the party at the public table next dayand 
after breakfast suggested that they should wait upon the agent 
without loss of time. Theydesiring nothing moreagreed; so off 
they all four started for the office of the Eden Settlementwhich 
was almost within rifle-shot of the National Hotel. 
It was a small place--something like a turnpike. But a great deal 
of land may be got into a dice-boxand why may not a whole 
territory be bargained for in a shed? It was but a temporary office 
too; for the Edeners were 'going' to build a superb establishment 
for the transaction of their businessand had already got so far as 
to mark out the site. Which is a great way in America. The officedoor 
was wide openand in the doorway was the agent; no doubt a 
tremendous fellow to get through his workfor he seemed to have no 
arrearsbut was swinging backwards and forwards in a rocking-chair
with one of his legs planted high up against the door-postand the 
other doubled up under himas if he were hatching his foot. 
He was a gaunt man in a huge straw hatand a coat of green stuff. 
The weather being hothe had no cravatand wore his shirt collar 
wide open; so that every time he spoke something was seen to twitch 
and jerk up in his throatlike the little hammers in a harpsichord 
when the notes are struck. Perhaps it was the Truth feebly 
endeavouring to leap to his lips. If soit never reached them. 
Two grey eyes lurked deep within this agent's headbut one of them 
had no sight in itand stood stock still. With that side of his 
face he seemed to listen to what the other side was doing. Thus 
each profile had a distinct expression; and when the movable side 
was most in actionthe rigid one was in its coldest state of 
watchfulness. It was like turning the man inside outto pass to 
that view of his features in his liveliest moodand see how 
calculating and intent they were. 
Each long black hair upon his head hung down as straight as any 
plummet line; but rumpled tufts were on the arches of his eyesas 
if the crow whose foot was deeply printed in the corners had pecked 
and torn them in a savage recognition of his kindred nature as a 
bird of prey. 
Such was the man whom they now approachedand whom the General 
saluted by the name of Scadder. 
'WellGen'ral' he returned'and how are you?' 
'Ac-tive and sprysirin my country's service and the sympathetic 
cause. Two gentlemen on businessMr Scadder.' 
He shook hands with each of them--nothing is done in America without 
shaking hands--then went on rocking. 
'I think I know what bis'ness you have brought these strangers here 
uponthenGen'ral?' 
'Wellsir. I expect you may.' 
'You air a tongue-y personGen'ral. For you talk too muchand 
that's fact' said Scadder. 'You speak a-larming well in public
but you didn't ought to go ahead so fast in private. Now!' 
'If I can realise your meaningride me on a rail!' returned the 
Generalafter pausing for consideration. 
'You know we didn't wish to sell the lots off right away to any 
loafer as might bid' said Scadder; 'but had con-cluded to reserve 
'em for Aristocrats of Natur'. Yes!' 
'And they are heresir!' cried the General with warmth. 'They 
are heresir!' 
'If they air here' returned the agentin reproachful accents
'that's enough. But you didn't ought to have your dander ris with 
MEGen'ral.' 
The General whispered Martin that Scadder was the honestest fellow 
in the worldand that he wouldn't have given him offence 
designedlyfor ten thousand dollars. 
'I do my duty; and I raise the dander of my feller crittersas I 
wish to serve' said Scadder in a low voicelooking down the road 
and rocking still. 'They rile up roughalong of my objecting to 
their selling Eden off too cheap. That's human natur'! Well!' 
'Mr Scadder' said the Generalassuming his oratorical deportment. 
'Sir! Here is my handand here my heart. I esteem yousirand 
ask your pardon. These gentlemen air friends of mineor I would 
not have brought 'em heresirbeing well awaresirthat the lots 
at present go entirely too cheap. But these air friendssir; these 
air partick'ler friends.' 
Mr Scadder was so satisfied by this explanationthat he shook the 
General warmly by the handand got out of the rocking-chair to do 
it. He then invited the General's particular friends to accompany 
him into the office. As to the Generalhe observedwith his usual 
benevolencethat being one of the companyhe wouldn't interfere in 
the transaction on any account; so he appropriated the rocking-chair 
to himselfand looked at the prospectlike a good Samaritan 
waiting for a traveller. 
'Heyday!' cried Martinas his eye rested on a great plan which 
occupied one whole side of the office. Indeedthe office had 
little else in itbut some geological and botanical specimensone 
or two rusty ledgersa homely deskand a stool. 'Heyday! what's 
that?' 
'That's Eden' said Scadderpicking his teeth with a sort of young 
bayonet that flew out of his knife when he touched a spring. 
'WhyI had no idea it was a city.' 
'Hadn't you? Ohit's a city.' 
A flourishing citytoo! An architectural city! There were banks
churchescathedralsmarket-placesfactorieshotelsstores
mansionswharves; an exchangea theatre; public buildings of all 
kindsdown to the office of the Eden Stingera daily journal; all 
faithfully depicted in the view before them. 
'Dear me! It's really a most important place!' cried Martin turning 
round. 
'Oh! it's very important' observed the agent. 
'ButI am afraid' said Martinglancing again at the Public 
Buildings'that there's nothing left for me to do.' 
'Well! it ain't all built' replied the agent. 'Not quite.' 
This was a great relief. 
'The market-placenow' said Martin. 'Is that built?' 
'That?' said the agentsticking his toothpick into the weathercock 
on the top. 'Let me see. No; that ain't built.' 
'Rather a good job to begin with--ehMark?' whispered Martin 
nudging him with his elbow. 
Markwhowith a very stolid countenance had been eyeing the plan 
and the agent by turnsmerely rejoined 'Uncommon!' 
A dead silence ensuedMr Scadder in some short recesses or 
vacations of his toothpickwhistled a few bars of Yankee Doodle
and blew the dust off the roof of the Theatre. 
'I suppose' said Martinfeigning to look more narrowly at the 
planbut showing by his tremulous voice how much dependedin his 
mindupon the answer; 'I suppose there are--several architects 
there?' 
'There ain't a single one' said Scadder. 
'Mark' whispered Martinpulling him by the sleeve'do you hear 
that? But whose work is all this before usthen?' he asked aloud. 
'The soil being very fruitfulpublic buildings grows spontaneous
perhaps' said Mark. 
He was on the agent's dark side as he said it; but Scadder instantly 
changed his placeand brought his active eye to bear upon him. 
'Feel of my handsyoung man' he said. 
'What for?' asked Markdeclining. 
'Air they dirtyor air they cleansir?' said Scadderholding them 
out. 
In a physical point of view they were decidedly dirty. But it being 
obvious that Mr Scadder offered them for examination in a figurative 
senseas emblems of his moral characterMartin hastened to 
pronounce them pure as the driven snow. 
'I entreatMark' he saidwith some irritation'that you will not 
obtrude remarks of that naturewhichhowever harmless and 
well-intentionedare quite out of placeand cannot be expected to 
be very agreeable to strangers. I am quite surprised.' 
'The Co.'s a-putting his foot in it already' thought Mark. 'He 
must be a sleeping partner--fast asleep and snoring--Co. must; I 
see.' 
Mr Scadder said nothingbut he set his back against the planand 
thrust his toothpick into the desk some twenty times; looking at 
Mark all the while as if he were stabbing him in effigy. 
'You haven't said whose work it is' Martin ventured to observe at 
lengthin a tone of mild propitiation. 
'Wellnever mind whose work it isor isn't' said the agent 
sulkily. 'No matter how it did eventuate. P'raps he cleared off
handsomewith a heap of dollars; p'raps he wasn't worth a cent. 
P'raps he was a loafin' rowdy; p'raps a ring-tailed roarer. Now!' 
'All your doingMark!' said Martin. 
'P'raps' pursued the agent'them ain't plants of Eden's raising. 
No! P'raps that desk and stool ain't made from Eden lumber. No! 
P'raps no end of squatters ain't gone out there. No! P'raps there 
ain't no such location in the territoary of the Great U-nited 
States. Ohno!' 
'I hope you're satisfied with the success of your jokeMark' said 
Martin. 
But hereat a most opportune and happy timethe General 
interposedand called out to Scadder from the doorway to give his 
friends the particulars of that little lot of fifty acres with the 
house upon it; whichhaving belonged to the company formerlyhad 
lately lapsed again into their hands. 
'You air a deal too open-handedGen'ral' was the answer. 'It is a 
lot as should be rose in price. It is.' 
He grumblingly opened his books notwithstandingand always keeping 
his bright side towards Markno matter at what amount of 
inconvenience to himselfdisplayed a certain leaf for their 
perusal. Martin read it greedilyand then inquired: 
'Now where upon the plan may this place be?' 
'Upon the plan?' said Scadder. 
'Yes.' 
He turned towards itand reflected for a short timeas ifhaving 
been put upon his mettlehe was resolved to be particular to the 
very minutest hair's breadth of a shade. At lengthafter wheeling 
his toothpick slowly round and round in the airas if it were a 
carrier pigeon just thrown uphe suddenly made a dart at the 
drawingand pierced the very centre of the main wharfthrough and 
through. 
'There!' he saidleaving his knife quivering in the wall; 'that's 
where it is!' 
Martin glanced with sparkling eyes upon his Co.and his Co. saw 
that the thing was done. 
The bargain was not concluded as easily as might have been expected 
thoughfor Scadder was caustic and ill-humouredand cast much 
unnecessary opposition in the way; at one time requesting them to 
think of itand call again in a week or a fortnight; at another
predicting that they wouldn't like it; at anotheroffering to 
retract and let them offand muttering strong imprecations upon the 
folly of the General. But the whole of the astoundingly small sum 
total of purchase-money--it was only one hundred and fifty dollars
or something more than thirty pounds of the capital brought by Co. 
into the architectural concern--was ultimately paid down; and 
Martin's head was two inches nearer the roof of the little wooden 
officewith the consciousness of being a landed proprietor in the 
thriving city of Eden. 
'If it shouldn't happen to fit' said Scadderas he gave Martin the 
necessary credentials on recepit of his money'don't blame me.' 
'Nono' he replied merrily. 'We'll not blame you. Generalare 
you going?' 
'I am at your servicesir; and I wish you' said the General
giving him his hand with grave cordiality'joy of your po-ssession. 
You air nowsira denizen of the most powerful and highlycivilised 
dominion that has ever graced the world; a do-minionsir
where man is bound to man in one vast bond of equal love and truth. 
May yousirbe worthy of your a-dopted country!' 
Martin thanked himand took leave of Mr Scadder; who had resumed 
his post in the rocking-chairimmediately on the General's rising 
from itand was once more swinging away as if he had never been 
disturbed. Mark looked back several times as they went down the 
road towards the National Hotelbut now his blighted profile was 
towards themand nothing but attentive thoughtfulness was written 
on it. Strangely different to the other side! He was not a man much 
given to laughingand never laughed outright; but every line in the 
print of the crow's footand every little wiry vein in that 
division of his headwas wrinkled up into a grin! The compound 
figure of Death and the Lady at the top of the old ballad was not 
divided with a greater nicetyand hadn't halves more monstrously 
unlike each otherthan the two profiles of Zephaniah Scadder. 
The General posted along at a great ratefor the clock was on the 
stroke of twelve; and at that hour preciselythe Great Meeting of 
the Watertoast Sympathisers was to be holden in the public room of 
the National Hotel. Being very curious to witness the 
demonstrationand know what it was all aboutMartin kept close to 
the General; andkeeping closer than ever when they entered the 
Hallgot by that means upon a little platform of tables at the 
upper end; where an armchair was set for the Generaland Mr La 
Fayette Kettleas secretarywas making a great display of some 
foolscap documents. Screamersno doubt. 
'Wellsir!' he saidas he shook hands with Martin'here is a 
spectacle calc'lated to make the British Lion put his tail between 
his legsand howl with anguishI expect!' 
Martin certainly thought it possible that the British Lion might 
have been rather out of his element in that Ark; but he kept the 
idea to himself. The General was then voted to the chairon the 
motion of a pallid lad of the Jefferson Brick school; who forthwith 
set in for a high-spiced speechwith a good deal about hearths and 
homes in itand unriveting the chains of Tyranny. 
Oh but it was a clincher for the British Lionit was! The 
indignation of the glowing young Columbian knew no bounds. If he 
could only have been one of his own forefathershe saidwouldn't 
he have peppered that same Lionand been to him as another Brute 
Tamer with a wire whipteaching him lessons not easily forgotten. 
'Lion! (cried that young Columbian) where is he? Who is he? What 
is he? Show him to me. Let me have him here. Here!' said the 
young Columbianin a wrestling attitude'upon this sacred altar. 
Here!' cried the young Columbianidealising the dining-table'upon 
ancestral ashescemented with the glorious blood poured out like 
water on our native plains of Chickabiddy Lick! Bring forth that 
Lion!' said the young Columbian. 'AloneI dare him! I taunt that 
Lion. I tell that Lionthat Freedom's hand once twisted in his 
manehe rolls a corse before meand the Eagles of the Great 
Republic laugh haha!' 
When it was found that the Lion didn't comebut kept out of the 
way; that the young Columbian stood therewith folded armsalone 
in his glory; and consequently that the Eagles were no doubt 
laughing wildly on the mountain tops; such cheers arose as might 
have shaken the hands upon the Horse-Guards' clockand changed the 
very mean time of the day in England's capital. 
'Who is this?' Martin telegraphed to La Fayette. 
The Secretary wrote somethingvery gravelyon a piece of paper
twisted it upand had it passed to him from hand to hand. It was 
an improvement on the old sentiment: 'Perhaps as remarkable a man as 
any in our country.' 
This young Columbian was succeeded by anotherto the full as 
eloquent as hewho drew down storms of cheers. But both remarkable 
youthsin their great excitement (for your true poetry can never 
stoop to details)forgot to say with whom or what the Watertoasters 
sympathizedand likewise why or wherefore they were sympathetic. 
Thus Martin remained for a long time as completely in the dark as 
ever; until at length a ray of light broke in upon him through the 
medium of the Secretarywhoby reading the minutes of their past 
proceedingsmade the matter somewhat clearer. He then learned that 
the Watertoast Association sympathized with a certain Public Man in 
Irelandwho held a contest upon certain points with England; and 
that they did sobecause they didn't love England at all--not by 
any means because they loved Ireland much; being indeed horribly 
jealous and distrustful of its people alwaysand only tolerating 
them because of their working hardwhich made them very useful; 
labour being held in greater indignity in the simple republic than 
in any other country upon earth. This rendered Martin curious to 
see what grounds of sympathy the Watertoast Association put forth; 
nor was he long in suspensefor the General rose to read a letter 
to the Public Manwhich with his own hands he had written. 
'Thus' said the General'thusmy friends and fellow-citizensit 
runs: 
'"SIR--I address you on behalf of the Watertoast Association of 
United Sympathisers. It is foundedsirin the great republic 
of America! and now holds its breathand swells the blue veins 
in its forehead nigh to burstingas it watchessirwith feverish 
intensity and sympathetic ardouryour noble efforts in the cause 
of Freedom."' 
At the name of Freedomand at every repetition of that nameall 
the Sympathisers roared aloud; cheering with nine times nineand 
nine times over. 
'"In Freedom's namesir--holy Freedom--I address you. In 
Freedom's nameI send herewith a contribution to the funds of your 
society. In Freedom's namesirI advert with indignation and 
disgust to that accursed animalwith gore-stained whiskerswhose 
rampant cruelty and fiery lust have ever been a scourgea torment 
to the world. The naked visitors to Crusoe's Islandsir; the 
flying wives of Peter Wilkins; the fruit-smeared children of the 
tangled bush; nayeven the men of large statureanciently bred in 
the mining districts of Cornwall; alike bear witness to its savage 
nature. Wheresirare the Cormoransthe Blunderboresthe Great 
Feefofumsnamed in History? Allallexterminated by its 
destroying hand. 
'"I alludesirto the British Lion. 
'"Devotedmind and bodyheart and soulto Freedomsir--to 
Freedomblessed solace to the snail upon the cellar-doorthe 
oyster in his pearly bedthe still mite in his home of cheesethe 
very winkle of your country in his shelly lair--in her unsullied 
namewe offer you our sympathy. Ohsirin this our cherished and 
our happy landher fires burn bright and clear and smokeless; once 
lighted up in yoursthe lion shall be roasted whole. 
'"I amsirin Freedom's name
'"Your affectionate friend and faithful Sympathiser
'"CYRUS CHOKE
'"GeneralU.S.M."' 
It happened that just as the General began to read this letterthe 
railroad train arrivedbringing a new mail from England; and a 
packet had been handed in to the Secretarywhich during its perusal 
and the frequent cheerings in homage to freedomhe had opened. 
Nowits contents disturbed him very muchand the moment the 
General sat downhe hurried to his sideand placed in his hand a 
letter and several printed extracts from English newspapers; to 
whichin a state of infinite excitementhe called his immediate 
attention. 
The Generalbeing greatly heated by his own compositionwas in a 
fit state to receive any inflammable influence; but he had no sooner 
possessed himself of the contents of these documentsthan a change 
came over his faceinvolving such a huge amount of choler and 
passionthat the noisy concourse were silent in a momentin very 
wonder at the sight of him. 
'My friends!' cried the Generalrising; 'my friends and fellow 
citizenswe have been mistaken in this man.' 
'In what man?' was the cry. 
'In this' panted the Generalholding up the letter he had read 
aloud a few minutes before. 'I find that he has beenand isthe 
advocate--consistent in it always too--of Nigger emancipation!' 
If anything beneath the sky be realthose Sons of Freedom would 
have pistolledstabbed--in some way slain--that man by coward hands 
and murderous violenceif he had stood among them at that time. 
The most confiding of their own countrymen would not have wagered 
then--nonor would they ever peril--one dunghill strawupon the 
life of any man in such a strait. They tore the lettercast the 
fragments in the airtrod down the pieces as they fell; and yelled
and groanedand hissedtill they could cry no longer. 
'I shall move' said the Generalwhen he could make himself heard
'that the Watertoast Association of United Sympathisers be 
immediately dissolved!' 
Down with it! Away with it! Don't hear of it! Burn its records! 
Pull the room down! Blot it out of human memory! 
'Butmy fellow-countrymen!' said the General'the contributions. 
We have funds. What is to be done with the funds?' 
It was hastily resolved that a piece of plate should be presented to 
a certain constitutional Judgewho had laid down from the Bench the 
noble principle that it was lawful for any white mob to murder any 
black man; and that another piece of plateof similar value should 
be presented to a certain Patriotwho had declared from his high 
place in the Legislaturethat he and his friends would hang without 
trialany Abolitionist who might pay them a visit. For the 
surplusit was agreed that it should be devoted to aiding the 
enforcement of those free and equal lawswhich render it 
incalculably more criminal and dangerous to teach a negro to read 
and write than to roast him alive in a public city. These points 
adjustedthe meeting broke up in great disorderand there was an 
end of the Watertoast Sympathy. 
As Martin ascended to his bedroomhis eye was attracted by the 
Republican bannerwhich had been hoisted from the house-top in 
honour of the occasionand was fluttering before a window which he 
passed. 
'Tut!' said Martin. 'You're a gay flag in the distance. But let a 
man be near enough to get the light upon the other side and see 
through you; and you are but sorry fustian!' 
CHAPTER TWENTY-TWO 
FROM WHICH IT WILL BE SEEN THAT MARTIN BECAME A LION OF HIS OWN 
ACCOUNT. TOGETHER WITH THE REASON WHY 
As soon as it was generally known in the National Hotelthat the 
young EnglishmanMr Chuzzlewithad purchased a 'lo-cation' in the 
Valley of Edenand intended to betake himself to that earthly 
Paradise by the next steamboathe became a popular character. Why 
this should beor how it had come to passMartin no more knew than 
Mrs Gampof Kingsgate StreetHigh Holborndid; but that he was 
for the time being the lionby popular electionof the Watertoast 
communityand that his society was in rather inconvenient request 
there could be no kind of doubt. 
The first notification he received of this change in his position
was the following epistlewritten in a thin running hand--with 
here and there a fat letter or twoto make the general effect more 
striking--on a sheet of paperruled with blue lines. 
'NATIONAL HOTEL
'MONDAY MORNING. 
'Dear Sir--'When I had the privillidge of being your fellow-traveller 
in the carsthe day before yesterdayyou offered some remarks 
upon the subject of the tower of Londonwhich (in common with my 
fellow-citizens generally) I could wish to hear repeated to a public 
audience. 
'As secretary to the Young Men's Watertoast Association of this 
townI am requested to inform you that the Society will be proud to 
hear you deliver a lecture upon the Tower of Londonat their Hall 
to-morrow eveningat seven o'clock; and as a large issue of 
quarter-dollar tickets may be expectedyour answer and consent by 
bearer will be considered obliging. 
'Dear Sir
'Yours truly
'LA FAYETTE KETTLE. 
'The Honourable M. Chuzzlewit. 
'P.S.--The Society would not be particular in limiting you to the 
Tower of London. Permit me to suggest that any remarks upon the 
Elements of Geologyor (if more convenient) upon the Writings of 
your talented and witty countrymanthe honourable Mr Millerwould 
be well received.' 
Very much aghast at this invitationMartin wrote backcivilly 
declining it; and had scarcely done sowhen he received another 
letter. 
'No. 47Bunker Hill Street
'Monday Morning. 
'(Private). 
'Sir--I was raised in those interminable solitudes where our mighty 
Mississippi (or Father of Waters) rolls his turbid flood. 
'I am youngand ardent. For there is a poetry in wildnessand 
every alligator basking in the slime is in himself an Epicselfcontained. 
I aspirate for fame. It is my yearning and my thirst. 
'Are yousiraware of any member of Congress in Englandwho would 
undertake to pay my expenses to that countryand for six months 
after my arrival? 
'There is something within me which gives me the assurance that this 
enlightened patronage would not be thrown away. In literature or 
art; the barthe pulpitor the stage; in one or otherif not all
I feel that I am certain to succeed. 
'If too much engaged to write to any such yourselfplease let me 
have a list of three or four of those most likely to respondand I 
will address them through the Post Office. May I also ask you to 
favour me with any critical observations that have ever presented 
themselves to your reflective facultieson "Caina Mystery by 
the Right Honourable Lord Byron? 
'I am, Sir, 
'Yours (forgive me if I add, soaringly), 
'PUTNAM SMIF 
'P.S.--Address your answer to America Junior, Messrs. Hancock & 
Floby, Dry Goods Store, as above.' 
Both of which letters, together with Martin's reply to each, were, 
according to a laudable custom, much tending to the promotion of 
gentlemanly feeling and social confidence, published in the next 
number of the Watertoast Gazette. 
He had scarcely got through this correspondence when Captain 
Kedgick, the landlord, kindly came upstairs to see how he was 
getting on. The Captain sat down upon the bed before he spoke; and 
finding it rather hard, moved to the pillow. 
'Well, sir!' said the Captain, putting his hat a little more on one 
side, for it was rather tight in the crown: 'You're quite a public 
man I calc'late.' 
'So it seems,' retorted Martin, who was very tired. 
'Our citizens, sir,' pursued the Captain, 'intend to pay their 
respects to you. You will have to hold a sort of le-vee, sir, while 
you're here.' 
'Powers above!' cried Martin, 'I couldn't do that, my good fellow!' 
'I reckon you MUST then,' said the Captain. 
'Must is not a pleasant word, Captain,' urged Martin. 
'Well! I didn't fix the mother language, and I can't unfix it,' said 
the Captain coolly; 'else I'd make it pleasant. You must re-ceive. 
That's all.' 
'But why should I receive people who care as much for me as I care 
for them?' asked Martin. 
'Well! because I have had a muniment put up in the bar,' returned 
the Captain. 
'A what?' cried Martin. 
'A muniment,' rejoined the Captain. 
Martin looked despairingly at Mark, who informed him that the 
Captain meant a written notice that Mr Chuzzlewit would receive the 
Watertoasters that day, at and after two o'clock which was in effect 
then hanging in the bar, as Mark, from ocular inspection of the 
same, could testify. 
'You wouldn't be unpop'lar, I know,' said the Captain, paring his 
nails. 'Our citizens an't long of riling up, I tell you; and our 
Gazette could flay you like a wild cat.' 
Martin was going to be very wroth, but he thought better of it, and 
said: 
'In Heaven's name let them come, then.' 
'Oh, THEY'll come,' returned the Captain. 'I have seen the big room 
fixed a'purpose, with my eyes.' 
'But will you,' said Martin, seeing that the Captain was about to 
go; 'will you at least tell me this? What do they want to see me 
for? what have I done? and how do they happen to have such a sudden 
interest in me?' 
Captain Kedgick put a thumb and three fingers to each side of the 
brim of his hat; lifted it a little way off his head; put it on 
again carefully; passed one hand all down his face, beginning at the 
forehead and ending at the chin; looked at Martin; then at Mark; 
then at Martin again; winked, and walked out. 
'Upon my life, now!' said Martin, bringing his hand heavily upon the 
table; 'such a perfectly unaccountable fellow as that, I never saw. 
Mark, what do you say to this?' 
'Why, sir,' returned his partner, 'my opinion is that we must have 
got to the MOST remarkable man in the country at last. So I hope 
there's an end to the breed, sir.' 
Although this made Martin laugh, it couldn't keep off two o'clock. 
Punctually, as the hour struck, Captain Kedgick returned to hand him 
to the room of state; and he had no sooner got him safe there, than 
he bawled down the staircase to his fellow-citizens below, that Mr 
Chuzzlewit was 'receiving.' 
Up they came with a rush. Up they came until the room was full, 
and, through the open door, a dismal perspective of more to come, 
was shown upon the stairs. One after another, one after another, 
dozen after dozen, score after score, more, more, more, up they 
came; all shaking hands with Martin. Such varieties of hands, the 
thick, the thin, the short, the long, the fat, the lean, the coarse, 
the fine; such differences of temperature, the hot, the cold, the 
dry, the moist, the flabby; such diversities of grasp, the tight, 
the loose, the short-lived, and the lingering! Still up, up, up, 
more, more, more; and ever and anon the Captain's voice was heard 
above the crowd--'There's more below! there's more below. Now, 
gentlemen you that have been introduced to Mr Chuzzlewit, will you 
clear gentlemen? Will you clear? Will you be so good as clear, 
gentlemen, and make a little room for more?' 
Regardless of the Captain's cries, they didn't clear at all, but 
stood there, bolt upright and staring. Two gentlemen connected with 
the Watertoast Gazette had come express to get the matter for an 
article on Martin. They had agreed to divide the labour. One of 
them took him below the waistcoat. One above. Each stood directly 
in front of his subject with his head a little on one side, intent 
on his department. If Martin put one boot before the other, the 
lower gentleman was down upon him; he rubbed a pimple on his nose, 
and the upper gentleman booked it. He opened his mouth to speak, 
and the same gentleman was on one knee before him, looking in at his 
teeth, with the nice scrutiny of a dentist. Amateurs in the 
physiognomical and phrenological sciences roved about him with 
watchful eyes and itching fingers, and sometimes one, more daring 
than the rest, made a mad grasp at the back of his head, and 
vanished in the crowd. They had him in all points of view: in 
front, in profile, three-quarter face, and behind. Those who were 
not professional or scientific, audibly exchanged opinions on his 
looks. New lights shone in upon him, in respect of his nose. 
Contradictory rumours were abroad on the subject of his hair. And 
still the Captain's voice was heard--so stifled by the concourse, 
that he seemed to speak from underneath a feather-bed--exclaiming-'
Gentlemen, you that have been introduced to Mr Chuzzlewit, WILL you 
clear?' 
Even when they began to clear it was no better; for then a stream of 
gentlemen, every one with a lady on each arm (exactly like the 
chorus to the National Anthem when Royalty goes in state to the 
play), came gliding in--every new group fresher than the last, and 
bent on staying to the latest moment. If they spoke to him, which 
was not often, they invariably asked the same questions, in the same 
tone; with no more remorse, or delicacy, or consideration, than if 
he had been a figure of stone, purchased, and paid for, and set up 
there for their delight. Even when, in the slow course of time, 
these died off, it was as bad as ever, if not worse; for then the 
boys grew bold, and came in as a class of themselves, and did 
everything that the grown-up people had done. Uncouth stragglers, 
too, appeared; men of a ghostly kind, who being in, didn't know how 
to get out again; insomuch that one silent gentleman with glazed and 
fishy eyes and only one button on his waistcoat (which was a very 
large metal one, and shone prodigiously), got behind the door, and 
stood there, like a clock, long after everybody else was gone. 
Martin felt, from pure fatigue, and heat, and worry, as if he could 
have fallen on the ground and willingly remained there, if they 
would but have had the mercy to leave him alone. But as letters and 
messages, threatening his public denouncement if he didn't see the 
senders, poured in like hail; and as more visitors came while he 
took his coffee by himself; and as Mark, with all his vigilance, was 
unable to keep them from the door; he resolved to go to bed--not 
that he felt at all sure of bed being any protection, but that he 
might not leave a forlorn hope untried. 
He had communicated this design to Mark, and was on the eve of 
escaping, when the door was thrown open in a great hurry, and an 
elderly gentleman entered; bringing with him a lady who certainly 
could not be considered young--that was matter of fact; and probably 
could not be considered handsome--but that was matter of opinion. 
She was very straight, very tall, and not at all flexible in face or 
figure. On her head she wore a great straw bonnet, with trimmings 
of the same, in which she looked as if she had been thatched by an 
unskillful labourer; and in her hand she held a most enormous fan. 
'Mr Chuzzlewit, I believe?' said the gentleman. 
'That is my name.' 
'Sir,' said the gentleman, 'I am pressed for time.' 
'Thank God!' thought Martin. 
'I go back Toe my home, sir,' pursued the gentleman, 'by the return 
train, which starts immediate. Start is not a word you use in your 
country, sir.' 
'Oh yes, it is,' said Martin. 
'You air mistaken, sir,' returned the gentleman, with great 
decision: 'but we will not pursue the subject, lest it should awake 
your preju--dice. Sir, Mrs Hominy.' 
Martin bowed. 
'Mrs Hominy, sir, is the lady of Major Hominy, one of our chicest 
spirits; and belongs Toe one of our most aristocratic families. You 
air, p'raps, acquainted, sir, with Mrs Hominy's writings.' 
Martin couldn't say he was. 
'You have much Toe learn, and Toe enjoy, sir,' said the gentleman. 
'Mrs Hominy is going Toe stay until the end of the Fall, sir, with 
her married daughter at the settlement of New Thermopylae, three 
days this side of Eden. Any attention, sir, that you can show Toe 
Mrs Hominy upon the journey, will be very grateful Toe the Major and 
our fellow-citizens. Mrs Hominy, I wish you good night, ma'am, and 
a pleasant pro-gress on your route!' 
Martin could scarcely believe it; but he had gone, and Mrs Hominy 
was drinking the milk. 
'A'most used-up I am, I do declare!' she observed. 'The jolting in 
the cars is pretty nigh as bad as if the rail was full of snags and 
sawyers.' 
'Snags and sawyers, ma'am?' said Martin. 
'Well, then, I do suppose you'll hardly realise my meaning, sir,' 
said Mrs Hominy. 'My! Only think! DO tell!' 
It did not appear that these expressions, although they seemed to 
conclude with an urgent entreaty, stood in need of any answer; for 
Mrs Hominy, untying her bonnet-strings, observed that she would 
withdraw to lay that article of dress aside, and would return 
immediately. 
'Mark!' said Martin. 'Touch me, will you. Am I awake?' 
'Hominy is, sir,' returned his partner--'Broad awake! Just the sort 
of woman, sir, as would be discovered with her eyes wide open, and 
her mind a-working for her country's good, at any hour of the day or 
night.' 
They had no opportunity of saying more, for Mrs Hominy stalked in 
again--very erect, in proof of her aristocratic blood; and holding 
in her clasped hands a red cotton pocket-handkerchief, perhaps a 
parting gift from that choice spirit, the Major. She had laid aside 
her bonnet, and now appeared in a highly aristocratic and classical 
cap, meeting beneath her chin: a style of headdress so admirably 
adapted to her countenance, that if the late Mr Grimaldi had 
appeared in the lappets of Mrs Siddons, a more complete effect could 
not have been produced. 
Martin handed her to a chair. Her first words arrested him before 
he could get back to his own seat. 
'Pray, sir!' said Mrs Hominy, 'where do you hail from?' 
'I am afraid I am dull of comprehension,' answered Martin, 'being 
extremely tired; but upon my word I don't understand you.' 
Mrs Hominy shook her head with a melancholy smile that said, not 
inexpressively, 'They corrupt even the language in that old 
country!' and added then, as coming down a step or two to meet his 
low capacity, 'Where was you rose?' 
'Oh!' said Martin 'I was born in Kent.' 
'And how do you like our country, sir?' asked Mrs Hominy. 
'Very much indeed,' said Martin, half asleep. 'At least--that is-pretty 
well, ma'am.' 
'Most strangers--and partick'larly Britishers--are much surprised by 
what they see in the U-nited States,' remarked Mrs Hominy. 
'They have excellent reason to be so, ma'am,' said Martin. 'I never 
was so much surprised in all my life.' 
'Our institutions make our people smart much, sir,' Mrs Hominy 
remarked. 
'The most short-sighted man could see that at a glance, with his 
naked eye,' said Martin. 
Mrs Hominy was a philosopher and an authoress, and consequently had 
a pretty strong digestion; but this coarse, this indecorous phrase, 
was almost too much for her. For a gentleman sitting alone with a 
lady--although the door WAS open--to talk about a naked eye! 
A long interval elapsed before even she--woman of masculine and 
towering intellect though she was--could call up fortitude enough to 
resume the conversation. But Mrs Hominy was a traveller. Mrs 
Hominy was a writer of reviews and analytical disquisitions. Mrs 
Hominy had had her letters from abroad, beginning 'My ever dearest 
blank,' and signed 'The Mother of the Modern Gracchi' (meaning the 
married Miss Hominy), regularly printed in a public journal, with 
all the indignation in capitals, and all the sarcasm in italics. 
Mrs Hominy had looked on foreign countries with the eye of a perfect 
republican hot from the model oven; and Mrs Hominy could talk (or 
write) about them by the hour together. So Mrs Hominy at last came 
down on Martin heavily, and as he was fast asleep, she had it all 
her own way, and bruised him to her heart's content. 
It is no great matter what Mrs Hominy said, save that she had learnt 
it from the cant of a class, and a large class, of her fellow 
countrymen, who in their every word, avow themselves to be as 
senseless to the high principles on which America sprang, a nation, 
into life, as any Orson in her legislative halls. Who are no more 
capable of feeling, or of caring if they did feel, that by reducing 
their own country to the ebb of honest men's contempt, they put in 
hazard the rights of nations yet unborn, and very progress of the 
human race, than are the swine who wallow in their streets. Who 
think that crying out to other nations, old in their iniquity, 'We 
are no worse than you!' (No worse!) is high defence and 'vantageground 
enough for that Republic, but yesterday let loose upon her 
noble course, and but to-day so maimed and lame, so full of sores 
and ulcers, foul to the eye and almost hopeless to the sense, that 
her best friends turn from the loathsome creature with disgust. 
Who, having by their ancestors declared and won their Independence, 
because they would not bend the knee to certain Public vices and 
corruptions, and would not abrogate the truth, run riot in the Bad, 
and turn their backs upon the Good; and lying down contented with 
the wretched boast that other Temples also are of glass, and stones 
which batter theirs may be flung back; show themselves, in that 
alone, as immeasurably behind the import of the trust they hold, and 
as unworthy to possess it as if the sordid hucksterings of all their 
little governments--each one a kingdom in its small depravity--were 
brought into a heap for evidence against them. 
Martin by degrees became so far awake, that he had a sense of a 
terrible oppression on his mind; an imperfect dream that he had 
murdered a particular friend, and couldn't get rid of the body. 
When his eyes opened it was staring him full in the face. There was 
the horrible Hominy talking deep truths in a melodious snuffle, and 
pouring forth her mental endowments to such an extent that the 
Major's bitterest enemy, hearing her, would have forgiven him from 
the bottom of his heart. Martin might have done something desperate 
if the gong had not sounded for supper; but sound it did most 
opportunely; and having stationed Mrs Hominy at the upper end of the 
table he took refuge at the lower end himself; whence, after a hasty 
meal he stole away, while the lady was yet busied with dried beef 
and a saucer-full of pickled fixings. 
It would be difficult to give an adequate idea of Mrs Hominy's 
freshness next day, or of the avidity with which she went headlong 
into moral philosophy at breakfast. Some little additional degree 
of asperity, perhaps, was visible in her features, but not more than 
the pickles would have naturally produced. All that day she clung 
to Martin. She sat beside him while he received his friends (for 
there was another Reception, yet more numerous than the former), 
propounded theories, and answered imaginary objections, so that 
Martin really began to think he must be dreaming, and speaking for 
two; she quoted interminable passages from certain essays on 
government, written by herself; used the Major's pocket-handkerchief 
as if the snuffle were a temporary malady, of which she was 
determined to rid herself by some means or other; and, in short, was 
such a remarkable companion, that Martin quite settled it between 
himself and his conscience, that in any new settlement it would be 
absolutely necessary to have such a person knocked on the head for 
the general peace of society. 
In the meantime Mark was busy, from early in the morning until late 
at night, in getting on board the steamboat such provisions, tools 
and other necessaries, as they had been forewarned it would be wise 
to take. The purchase of these things, and the settlement of their 
bill at the National, reduced their finances to so low an ebb, that 
if the captain had delayed his departure any longer, they would have 
been in almost as bad a plight as the unfortunate poorer emigrants, 
who (seduced on board by solemn advertisement) had been living on 
the lower deck a whole week, and exhausting their miserable stock of 
provisions before the voyage commenced. There they were, all 
huddled together with the engine and the fires. Farmers who had 
never seen a plough; woodmen who had never used an axe; builders who 
couldn't make a box; cast out of their own land, with not a hand to 
aid them: newly come into an unknown world, children in 
helplessness, but men in wants--with younger children at their 
backs, to live or die as it might happen! 
The morning came, and they would start at noon. Noon came, and they 
would start at night. But nothing is eternal in this world; not 
even the procrastination of an American skipper; and at night all 
was ready. 
Dispirited and weary to the last degree, but a greater lion than 
ever (he had done nothing all the afternoon but answer letters from 
strangers; half of them about nothing; half about borrowing money, 
and all requiring an instantaneous reply), Martin walked down to the 
wharf, through a concourse of people, with Mrs Hominy upon his arm; 
and went on board. But Mark was bent on solving the riddle of this 
lionship, if he could; and so, not without the risk of being left 
behind, ran back to the hotel. 
Captain Kedgick was sitting in the colonnade, with a julep on his 
knee, and a cigar in his mouth. He caught Mark's eye, and said: 
'Why, what the 'Tarnal brings you here?' 
'I'll tell you plainly what it is, Captain,' said Mark. 'I want to 
ask you a question.' 
'A man may ASK a question, so he may,' returned Kedgick; strongly 
implying that another man might not answer a question, so he 
mightn't. 
'What have they been making so much of him for, now?' said Mark, 
slyly. 'Come!' 
'Our people like ex-citement,' answered Kedgick, sucking his cigar. 
'But how has he excited 'em?' asked Mark. 
The Captain looked at him as if he were half inclined to unburden 
his mind of a capital joke. 
'You air a-going?' he said. 
'Going!' cried Mark. 'Ain't every moment precious?' 
'Our people like ex-citement,' said the Captain, whispering. 'He 
ain't like emigrants in gin'ral; and he excited 'em along of this;' 
he winked and burst into a smothered laugh; 'along of this. Scadder 
is a smart man, and--and--nobody as goes to Eden ever comes back 
alive!' 
The wharf was close at hand, and at that instant Mark could hear 
them shouting out his name; could even hear Martin calling to him to 
make haste, or they would be separated. It was too late to mend the 
matter, or put any face upon it but the best. He gave the Captain a 
parting benediction, and ran off like a race-horse. 
'Mark! Mark!' cried Martin. 
'Here am I, sir!' shouted Mark, suddenly replying from the edge of 
the quay, and leaping at a bound on board. 'Never was half so 
jolly, sir. All right. Haul in! Go ahead!' 
The sparks from the wood fire streamed upward from the two chimneys, 
as if the vessel were a great firework just lighted; and they roared 
away upon the dark water. 
CHAPTER TWENTY-THREE 
MARTIN AND HIS PARTNER TAKE POSSESSION OF THEIR ESTATE. THE JOYFUL 
OCCASION INVOLVES SOME FURTHER ACCOUNT OF EDEN 
There happened to be on board the steamboat several gentlemen 
passengers, of the same stamp as Martin's New York friend Mr Bevan; 
and in their society he was cheerful and happy. They released him 
as well as they could from the intellectual entanglements of Mrs 
Hominy; and exhibited, in all they said and did, so much good sense 
and high feeling, that he could not like them too well. 'If this 
were a republic of Intellect and Worth,' he said, 'instead of 
vapouring and jobbing, they would not want the levers to keep it in 
motion.' 
'Having good tools, and using bad ones,' returned Mr Tapley, 'would 
look as if they was rather a poor sort of carpenters, sir, wouldn't 
it?' 
Martin nodded. 'As if their work were infinitely above their powers 
and purpose, Mark; and they botched it in consequence.' 
'The best on it is,' said Mark, 'that when they do happen to make a 
decent stroke; such as better workmen, with no such opportunities, 
make every day of their lives and think nothing of--they begin to 
sing out so surprising loud. Take notice of my words, sir. If ever 
the defaulting part of this here country pays its debts--along of 
finding that not paying 'em won't do in a commercial point of view, 
you see, and is inconvenient in its consequences--they'll take such a 
shine out of it, and make such bragging speeches, that a man might 
suppose no borrowed money had ever been paid afore, since the world 
was first begun. That's the way they gammon each other, sir. Bless 
you, I know 'em. Take notice of my words, now!' 
'You seem to be growing profoundly sagacious!' cried Martin, 
laughing. 
'Whether that is,' thought Mark, 'because I'm a day's journey nearer 
Eden, and am brightening up afore I die, I can't say. P'rhaps by 
the time I get there I shall have growed into a prophet.' 
He gave no utterance to these sentiments; but the excessive 
joviality they inspired within him, and the merriment they brought 
upon his shining face, were quite enough for Martin. Although he 
might sometimes profess to make light of his partner's inexhaustible 
cheerfulness, and might sometimes, as in the case of Zephaniah 
Scadder, find him too jocose a commentator, he was always sensible 
of the effect of his example in rousing him to hopefulness and 
courage. Whether he were in the humour to profit by it, mattered 
not a jot. It was contagious, and he could not choose but be 
affected. 
At first they parted with some of their passengers once or twice a 
day, and took in others to replace them. But by degrees, the towns 
upon their route became more thinly scattered; and for many hours 
together they would see no other habitations than the huts of the 
wood-cutters, where the vessel stopped for fuel. Sky, wood, and 
water all the livelong day; and heat that blistered everything it 
touched. 
On they toiled through great solitudes, where the trees upon the 
banks grew thick and close; and floatad in the stream; and held up 
shrivelled arms from out the river's depths; and slid down from the 
margin of the land, half growing, half decaying, in the miry water. 
On through the weary day and melancholy night; beneath the burning 
sun, and in the mist and vapour of the evening; on, until return 
appeared impossible, and restoration to their home a miserable 
dream. 
They had now but few people on board, and these few were as flat, as 
dull, and stagnant, as the vegetation that oppressed their eyes. No 
sound of cheerfulness or hope was heard; no pleasant talk beguiled 
the tardy time; no little group made common cause against the full 
depression of the scene. But that, at certain periods, they 
swallowed food together from a common trough, it might have been old 
Charon's boat, conveying melancholy shades to judgment. 
At length they drew near New Thermopylae; where, that same evening, 
Mrs Hominy would disembark. A gleam of comfort sunk into Martin's 
bosom when she told him this. Mark needed none; but he was not 
displeased. 
It was almost night when they came alongside the landing-place. A 
steep bank with an hotel like a barn on the top of it; a wooden 
store or two; and a few scattered sheds. 
'You sleep here to-night, and go on in the morning, I suppose, 
ma'am?' said Martin. 
'Where should I go on to?' cried the mother of the modern Gracchi. 
'To New Thermopylae.' 
'My! ain't I there?' said Mrs Hominy. 
Martin looked for it all round the darkening panorama; but he 
couldn't see it, and was obliged to say so. 
'Why that's it!' cried Mrs Hominy, pointing to the sheds just 
mentioned. 
'THAT!' exclaimed Martin. 
'Ah! that; and work it which way you will, it whips Eden,' said Mrs 
Hominy, nodding her head with great expression. 
The married Miss Hominy, who had come on board with her husband, 
gave to this statement her most unqualified support, as did that 
gentleman also. Martin gratefully declined their invitation to 
regale himself at their house during the half hour of the vessel's 
stay; and having escorted Mrs Hominy and the red pocket-handkerchief 
(which was still on active service) safely across the gangway, 
returned in a thoughtful mood to watch the emigrants as they removed 
their goods ashore. 
Mark, as he stood beside him, glanced in his face from time to time; 
anxious to discover what effect this dialogue had had upon him, and 
not unwilling that his hopes should be dashed before they reached 
their destination, so that the blow he feared might be broken in its 
fall. But saving that he sometimes looked up quickly at the poor 
erections on the hill, he gave him no clue to what was passing in 
his mind, until they were again upon their way. 
'Mark,' he said then, 'are there really none but ourselves on board 
this boat who are bound for Eden?' 
'None at all, sir. Most of 'em, as you know, have stopped short; 
and the few that are left are going further on. What matters that! 
More room there for us, sir.' 
'Oh, to be sure!' said Martin. 'But I was thinking--' and there he 
paused. 
'Yes, sir?' observed Mark. 
'How odd it was that the people should have arranged to try their 
fortune at a wretched hole like that, for instance, when there is 
such a much better, and such a very different kind of place, near at 
hand, as one may say.' 
He spoke in a tone so very different from his usual confidence, and 
with such an obvious dread of Mark's reply, that the good-natured 
fellow was full of pity. 
'Why, you know, sir,' said Mark, as gently as he could by any means 
insinuate the observation, 'we must guard against being too 
sanguine. There's no occasion for it, either, because we're 
determined to make the best of everything, after we know the worst 
of it. Ain't we, sir?' 
Martin looked at him, but answered not a word. 
'Even Eden, you know, ain't all built,' said Mark. 
'In the name of Heaven, man,' cried Martin angrily, 'don't talk of 
Eden in the same breath with that place. Are you mad? There--God 
forgive me!--don't think harshly of me for my temper!' 
After that, he turned away, and walked to and fro upon the deck full 
two hours. Nor did he speak again, except to say 'Good night,' 
until next day; nor even then upon this subject, but on other topics 
quite foreign to the purpose. 
As they proceeded further on their track, and came more and more 
towards their journey's end, the monotonous desolation of the scene 
increased to that degree, that for any redeeming feature it 
presented to their eyes, they might have entered, in the body, on 
the grim domains of Giant Despair. A flat morass, bestrewn with 
fallen timber; a marsh on which the good growth of the earth seemed 
to have been wrecked and cast away, that from its decomposing ashes 
vile and ugly things might rise; where the very trees took the 
aspect of huge weeds, begotten of the slime from which they sprung, 
by the hot sun that burnt them up; where fatal maladies, seeking 
whom they might infect, came forth at night in misty shapes, and 
creeping out upon the water, hunted them like spectres until day; 
where even the blessed sun, shining down on festering elements of 
corruption and disease, became a horror; this was the realm of Hope 
through which they moved. 
At last they stopped. At Eden too. The waters of the Deluge might 
have left it but a week before; so choked with slime and matted 
growth was the hideous swamp which bore that name. 
There being no depth of water close in shore, they landed from the 
vessel's boat, with all their goods beside them. There were a few 
log-houses visible among the dark trees; the best, a cow-shed or a 
rude stable; but for the wharves, the market-place, the public 
buildings-
'Here comes an Edener,' said Mark. 'He'll get us help to carry 
these things up. Keep a good heart, sir. Hallo there!' 
The man advanced toward them through the thickening gloom, very 
slowly; leaning on a stick. As he drew nearer, they observed that 
he was pale and worn, and that his anxious eyes were deeply sunken 
in his head. His dress of homespun blue hung about him in rags; his 
feet and head were bare. He sat down on a stump half-way, and 
beckoned them to come to him. When they complied, he put his hand 
upon his side as if in pain, and while he fetched his breath stared 
at them, wondering. 
'Strangers!' he exclaimed, as soon as he could speak. 
'The very same,' said Mark. 'How are you, sir?' 
'I've had the fever very bad,' he answered faintly. 'I haven't 
stood upright these many weeks. Those are your notions I see,' 
pointing to their property. 
'Yes, sir,' said Mark, 'they are. You couldn't recommend us some 
one as would lend a hand to help carry 'em up to the--to the town, 
could you, sir?' 
'My eldest son would do it if he could,' replied the man; 'but today 
he has his chill upon him, and is lying wrapped up in the blankets. 
My youngest died last week.' 
'I'm sorry for it, governor, with all my heart,' said Mark, shaking 
him by the hand. 'Don't mind us. Come along with me, and I'll give 
you an arm back. The goods is safe enough, sir'--to Martin--'there 
ain't many people about, to make away with 'em. What a comfort that 
is!' 
'No,' cried the man. 'You must look for such folk here,' knocking 
his stick upon the ground, 'or yonder in the bush, towards the 
north. We've buried most of 'em. The rest have gone away. Them 
that we have here, don't come out at night.' 
'The night air ain't quite wholesome, I suppose?' said Mark. 
'It's deadly poison,' was the settler's answer. 
Mark showed no more uneasiness than if it had been commended to him 
as ambrosia; but he gave the man his arm, and as they went along 
explained to him the nature of their purchase, and inquired where it 
lay. Close to his own log-house, he said; so close that he had used 
their dwelling as a store-house for some corn; they must excuse it 
that night, but he would endeavour to get it taken out upon the 
morrow. He then gave them to understand, as an additional scrap of 
local chit-chat, that he had buried the last proprietor with his own 
hands; a piece of information which Mark also received without the 
least abatement of his equanimity. 
In a word, he conducted them to a miserable cabin, rudely 
constructed of the trunks of trees; the door of which had either 
fallen down or been carried away long ago; and which was 
consequently open to the wild landscape and the dark night. Saving 
for the little store he had mentioned, it was perfectly bare of all 
furniture; but they had left a chest upon the landing-place, and he 
gave them a rude torch in lieu of candle. This latter acquisition 
Mark planted in the earth, and then declaring that the mansion 
'looked quite comfortable,' hurried Martin off again to help bring 
up the chest. And all the way to the landing-place and back, Mark 
talked incessantly; as if he would infuse into his partner's breast 
some faint belief that they had arrived under the most auspicious 
and cheerful of all imaginable circumstances. 
But many a man who would have stood within a home dismantled, strong 
in his passion and design of vengeance, has had the firmness of his 
nature conquered by the razing of an air-built castle. When the 
log-hut received them for the second time, Martin laid down upon the 
ground, and wept aloud. 
'Lord love you, sir!' cried Mr Tapley, in great terror; 'Don't do 
that! Don't do that, sir! Anything but that! It never helped man, 
woman, or child, over the lowest fence yet, sir, and it never will. 
Besides its being of no use to you, it's worse than of no use to me, 
for the least sound of it will knock me flat down. I can't stand up 
agin it, sir. Anything but that!' 
There is no doubt he spoke the truth, for the extraordinary alarm 
with which he looked at Martin as he paused upon his knees before 
the chest, in the act of unlocking it, to say these words, 
sufficiently confirmed him. 
'I ask your forgiveness a thousand times, my dear fellow,' said 
Martin. 'I couldn't have helped it, if death had been the penalty.' 
'Ask my forgiveness!' said Mark, with his accustomed cheerfulness, 
as he proceeded to unpack the chest. 'The head partner a-asking 
forgiveness of Co., eh? There must be something wrong in the firm 
when that happens. I must have the books inspected and the accounts 
gone over immediate. Here we are. Everything in its proper place. 
Here's the salt pork. Here's the biscuit. Here's the whiskey. 
Uncommon good it smells too. Here's the tin pot. This tin pot's a 
small fortun' in itself! Here's the blankets. Here's the axe. Who 
says we ain't got a first-rate fit out? I feel as if I was a cadet 
gone out to Indy, and my noble father was chairman of the Board of 
Directors. Now, when I've got some water from the stream afore the 
door and mixed the grog,' cried Mark, running out to suit the action 
to the word, 'there's a supper ready, comprising every delicacy of 
the season. Here we are, sir, all complete. For what we are going 
to receive, et cetrer. Lord bless you, sir, it's very like a gipsy 
party!' 
It was impossible not to take heart, in the company of such a man as 
this. Martin sat upon the ground beside the box; took out his 
knife; and ate and drank sturdily. 
'Now you see,' said Mark, when they had made a hearty meal; 'with 
your knife and mine, I sticks this blanket right afore the door. Or 
where, in a state of high civilization, the door would be. And very 
neat it looks. Then I stops the aperture below, by putting the 
chest agin it. And very neat THAT looks. Then there's your 
blanket, sir. Then here's mine. And what's to hinder our passing a 
good night?' 
For all his light-hearted speaking, it was long before he slept 
himself. He wrapped his blanket round him, put the axe ready to his 
hand, and lay across the threshold of the door; too anxious and too 
watchful to close his eyes. The novelty of their dreary situation, 
the dread of some rapacious animal or human enemy, the terrible 
uncertainty of their means of subsistence, the apprehension of 
death, the immense distance and the hosts of obstacles between 
themselves and England, were fruitful sources of disquiet in the 
deep silence of the night. Though Martin would have had him think 
otherwise, Mark felt that he was waking also, and a prey to the same 
reflections. This was almost worse than all, for if he began to 
brood over their miseries instead of trying to make head against 
them there could be little doubt that such a state of mind would 
powerfully assist the influence of the pestilent climate. Never had 
the light of day been half so welcome to his eyes, as when awaking 
from a fitful doze, Mark saw it shining through the blanket in the 
doorway. 
He stole out gently, for his companion was sleeping now; and having 
refreshed himself by washing in the river, where it snowed before 
the door, took a rough survey of the settlement. There were not 
above a score of cabins in the whole; half of these appeared 
untenanted; all were rotten and decayed. The most tottering, 
abject, and forlorn among them was called, with great propriety, the 
Bank, and National Credit Office. It had some feeble props about 
it, but was settling deep down in the mud, past all recovery. 
Here and there an effort had been made to clear the land, and 
something like a field had been marked out, where, among the stumps 
and ashes of burnt trees, a scanty crop of Indian corn was growing. 
In some quarters, a snake or zigzag fence had been begun, but in no 
instance had it been completed; and the felled logs, half hidden in 
the soil, lay mouldering away. Three or four meagre dogs, wasted 
and vexed with hunger; some long-legged pigs, wandering away into 
the woods in search of food; some children, nearly naked, gazing at 
him from the huts; were all the living things he saw. A fetid 
vapour, hot and sickening as the breath of an oven, rose up from the 
earth, and hung on everything around; and as his foot-prints sunk 
into the marshy ground, a black ooze started forth to blot them out. 
Their own land was mere forest. The trees had grown so think and 
close that they shouldered one another out of their places, and the 
weakest, forced into shapes of strange distortion, languished like 
cripples. The best were stunted, from the pressure and the want of 
room; and high about the stems of all grew long rank grass, dank 
weeds, and frowsy underwood; not divisible into their separate 
kinds, but tangled all together in a heap; a jungle deep and dark, 
with neither earth nor water at its roots, but putrid matter, formed 
of the pulpy offal of the two, and of their own corruption. 
He went down to the landing-place where they had left their goods 
last night; and there he found some half-dozen men--wan and forlorn 
to look at, but ready enough to assist--who helped him to carry them 
to the log-house. They shook their heads in speaking of the 
settlement, and had no comfort to give him. Those who had the means 
of going away had all deserted it. They who were left had lost 
their wives, their children, friends, or brothers there, and 
suffered much themselves. Most of them were ill then; none were the 
men they had been once. They frankly offered their assistance and 
advice, and, leaving him for that time, went sadly off upon their 
several tasks. 
Martin was by this time stirring; but he had greatly changed, even 
in one night. He was very pale and languid; he spoke of pains and 
weakness in his limbs, and complained that his sight was dim, and 
his voice feeble. Increasing in his own briskness as the prospect 
grew more and more dismal, Mark brought away a door from one of the 
deserted houses, and fitted it to their own habitation; then went 
back again for a rude bench he had observed, with which he presently 
returned in triumph; and having put this piece of furniture outside 
the house, arranged the notable tin pot and other such movables upon 
it, that it might represent a dresser or a sideboard. Greatly 
satisfied with this arrangement, he next rolled their cask of flour 
into the house and set it up on end in one corner, where it served 
for a side-table. No better dining-table could be required than the 
chest, which he solemnly devoted to that useful service thenceforth. 
Their blankets, clothes, and the like, he hung on pegs and nails. 
And lastly, he brought forth a great placard (which Martin in the 
exultation of his heart had prepared with his own hands at the 
National Hotel) bearing the inscription, CHUZZLEWIT & CO., 
ARCHITECTS AND SURVEYORS, which he displayed upon the most 
conspicuous part of the premises, with as much gravity as if the 
thriving city of Eden had a real existence, and they expected to be 
overwhelmed with business. 
'These here tools,' said Mark, bringing forward Martin's case of 
instruments and sticking the compasses upright in a stump before the 
door, 'shall be set out in the open air to show that we come 
provided. And now, if any gentleman wants a house built, he'd 
better give his orders, afore we're other ways bespoke.' 
Considering the intense heat of the weather, this was not a bad 
morning's work; but without pausing for a moment, though he was 
streaming at every pore, Mark vanished into the house again, and 
presently reappeared with a hatchet; intent on performing some 
impossibilities with that implement. 
'Here's ugly old tree in the way, sir,' he observed, 'which'll be 
all the better down. We can build the oven in the afternoon. There 
never was such a handy spot for clay as Eden is. That's convenient, 
anyhow.' 
But Martin gave him no answer. He had sat the whole time with his 
head upon his hands, gazing at the current as it rolled swiftly by; 
thinking, perhaps, how fast it moved towards the open sea, the high 
road to the home he never would behold again. 
Not even the vigorous strokes which Mark dealt at the tree awoke him 
from his mournful meditation. Finding all his endeavours to rouse 
him of no use, Mark stopped in his work and came towards him. 
'Don't give in, sir,' said Mr Tapley. 
'Oh, Mark,' returned his friend, 'what have I done in all my life 
that has deserved this heavy fate?' 
'Why, sir,' returned Mark, 'for the matter of that, everybody as is 
here might say the same thing; many of 'em with better reason p'raps 
than you or me. Hold up, sir. Do something. Couldn't you ease 
your mind, now, don't you think, by making some personal 
obserwations in a letter to Scadder?' 
'No,' said Martin, shaking his head sorrowfully: 'I am past that.' 
'But if you're past that already,' returned Mark, 'you must be ill, 
and ought to be attended to.' 
'Don't mind me,' said Martin. 'Do the best you can for yourself. 
You'll soon have only yourself to consider. And then God speed you 
home, and forgive me for bringing you here! I am destined to die in 
this place. I felt it the instant I set foot upon the shore. 
Sleeping or waking, Mark, I dreamed it all last night.' 
'I said you must be ill,' returned Mark, tenderly, 'and now I'm sure 
of it. A touch of fever and ague caught on these rivers, I dare 
say; but bless you, THAT'S nothing. It's only a seasoning, and we 
must all be seasoned, one way or another. That's religion that is, 
you know,' said Mark. 
He only sighed and shook his head. 
'Wait half a minute,' said Mark cheerily, 'till I run up to one of 
our neighbours and ask what's best to be took, and borrow a little 
of it to give you; and to-morrow you'll find yourself as strong as 
ever again. I won't be gone a minute. Don't give in while I'm 
away, whatever you do!' 
Throwing down his hatchet, he sped away immediately, but stopped 
when he had got a little distance, and looked back; then hurried on 
again. 
'Now, Mr Tapley,' said Mark, giving himself a tremendous blow in the 
chest by way of reviver, 'just you attend to what I've got to say. 
Things is looking about as bad as they CAN look, young man. You'll 
not have such another opportunity for showing your jolly 
disposition, my fine fellow, as long as you live. And therefore, 
Tapley, Now's your time to come out strong; or Never!' 
CHAPTER TWENTY-FOUR 
REPORTS PROGRESS IN CERTAIN HOMELY MATTERS OF LOVE, HATRED, 
JEALOUSY, AND REVENGE 
'Hallo, Pecksniff!' cried Mr Jonas from the parlour. 'Isn't 
somebody a-going to open that precious old door of yours?' 
'Immediately, Mr Jonas. Immediately.' 
'Ecod,' muttered the orphan, 'not before it's time neither. Whoever 
it is, has knocked three times, and each one loud enough to wake 
the--' he had such a repugnance to the idea of waking the Dead, that 
he stopped even then with the words upon his tongue, and said, 
instead, 'the Seven Sleepers.' 
'Immediately, Mr Jonas; immediately,' repeated Pecksniff. 'Thomas 
Pinch'--he couldn't make up his mind, in his great agitation, 
whether to call Tom his dear friend or a villain, so he shook his 
fist at him PRO TEM--'go up to my daughters' room, and tell them 
who is here. Say, Silence. Silence! Do you hear me, sir? 
'Directly, sir!cried Tomdepartingin a state of much amazement
on his errand. 
'You'll--hahaha!--you'll excuse meMr Jonasif I close this 
door a momentwill you?' said Pecksniff. 'This may be a 
professional call. Indeed I am pretty sure it is. Thank you.' Then 
Mr Pecksniffgently warbling a rustic staveput on his garden hat
seized a spadeand opened the street door; calmly appearing on the 
thresholdas if he thought he hadfrom his vineyardheard a 
modest rapbut was not quite certain. 
Seeing a gentleman and lady before himhe started back in as much 
confusion as a good man with a crystal conscience might betray in 
mere surprise. Recognition came upon him the next momentand he 
cried: 
'Mr Chuzzlewit! Can I believe my eyes! My dear sir; my good sir! A 
joyful houra happy hour indeed. Praymy dear sirwalk in. You 
find me in my garden-dress. You will excuse itI know. It is an 
ancient pursuitgardening. Primitivemy dear sir. Orif I am 
not mistakenAdam was the first of our calling. MY EveI grieve 
to say is no moresir; but'--here he pointed to his spadeand 
shook his head as if he were not cheerful without an effort--'but I 
do a little bit of Adam still.' 
He had by this time got them into the best parlourwhere the 
portrait by Spillerand the bust by Spokerwere. 
'My daughters' said Mr Pecksniff'will be overjoyed. If I could 
feel weary upon such a themeI should have been worn out long ago
my dear sirby their constant anticipation of this happiness and 
their repeated allusions to our meeting at Mrs Todgers's. Their 
fair young friendtoo' said Mr Pecksniff'whom they so desire to 
know and love--indeed to know heris to love--I hope I see her 
well. I hope in sayingWelcome to my humble roof!I find some 
echo in her own sentiments. If features are an index to the heart
I have no fears of that. An extremely engaging expression of 
countenanceMr Chuzzlewitmy dear sir--very much so!' 
'Mary' said the old man'Mr Pecksniff flatters you. But flattery 
from him is worth the having. He is not a dealer in itand it 
comes from his heart. We thought Mr--' 
'Pinch' said Mary. 
'Mr Pinch would have arrived before usPecksniff.' 
'He did arrive before youmy dear sir' retorted Pecksniffraising 
his voice for the edification of Tom upon the stairs'and was 
aboutI dare sayto tell me of your comingwhen I begged him 
first to knock at my daughters' chamberand inquire after Charity
my dear childwho is not so well as I could wish. No' said Mr 
Pecksniffanswering their looks'I am sorry to sayshe is not. 
It is merely an hysterical affection; nothing moreI am not uneasy. 
Mr Pinch! Thomas!' exclaimed Pecksniffin his kindest accents. 
'Pray come in. I shall make no stranger of you. Thomas is a friend 
of mineof rather long-standingMr Chuzzlewityou must know.' 
'Thank yousir' said Tom. 'You introduce me very kindlyand 
speak of me in terms of which I am very proud' 
'Old Thomas!' cried his masterpleasantly 'God bless you!' 
Tom reported that the young ladies would appear directlyand that 
the best refreshments which the house afforded were even then in 
preparationunder their joint superintendence. While he was 
speakingthe old man looked at him intentlythough with less 
harshness than was common to him; nor did the mutual embarrassment 
of Tom and the young ladyto whatever cause he attributed itseem 
to escape his observation. 
'Pecksniff' he said after a pauserising and taking him aside 
towards the window'I was much shocked on hearing of my brother's 
death. We had been strangers for many years. My only comfort is 
that he must have lived the happier and better man for having 
associated no hopes or schemes with me. Peace to his memory! We 
were play-fellows once; and it would have been better for us both if 
we had died then.' 
Finding him in this gentle moodMr Pecksniff began to see another 
way out of his difficultiesbesides the casting overboard of Jonas. 
'That any manmy dear sircould possibly be the happier for not 
knowing you' he returned'you will excuse my doubting. But that 
Mr Anthonyin the evening of his lifewas happier in the affection 
of his excellent son--a patternmy dear sira pattern to all sons 
--and in the care of a distant relation whohowever lowly in his 
means of serving himhad no bounds to his inclination; I can inform 
you.' 
'How's this?' said the old man. 'You are not a legatee?' 
'You don't' said Mr Pecksniffwith a melancholy pressure of his 
hand'quite understand my nature yetI find. NosirI am not a 
legatee. I am proud to say I am not a legatee. I am proud to say 
that neither of my children is a legatee. And yetsirI was with 
him at his own request. HE understood me somewhat bettersir. He 
wrote and saidI am sick. I am sinking. Come to me!I went to 
him. I sat beside his bedsirand I stood beside his grave. Yes
at the risk of offending even youI did itsir. Though the avowal 
should lead to our instant separationand to the severing of those 
tender ties between us which have recently been formedI make it. 
But I am not a legatee' said Mr Pecksniffsmiling dispassionately; 
'and I never expected to be a legatee. I knew better!' 
'His son a pattern!' cried old Martin. 'How can you tell me that? 
My brother had in his wealth the usual doom of wealthand root of 
misery. He carried his corrupting influence with himgo where he 
would; and shed it round himeven on his hearth. It made of his 
own child a greedy expectantwho measured every day and hour the 
lessening distance between his father and the graveand cursed his 
tardy progress on that dismal road.' 
'No!' cried Mr Pecksniffboldly. 'Not at allsir!' 
'But I saw that shadow in his house' said Martin Chuzzlewit'the 
last time we metand warned him of its presence. I know it when I 
see itdo I not? Iwho have lived within it all these years!' 
'I deny it' Mr Pecksniff answeredwarmly. 'I deny it altogether. 
That bereaved young man is now in this housesirseeking in change 
of scene the peace of mind he has lost. Shall I be backward in 
doing justice to that young manwhen even undertakers and 
coffin-makers have been moved by the conduct he has exhibited; when 
even mutes have spoken in his praiseand the medical man hasn't 
known what to do with himself in the excitement of his feelings! 
There is a person of the name of Gampsir--Mrs Gamp--ask her. She 
saw Mr Jonas in a trying time. Ask HERsir. She is respectable
but not sentimentaland will state the fact. A line addressed to 
Mrs Gampat the BirdShopKingsgate StreetHigh HolbornLondon
will meet with every attentionI have no doubt. Let her be 
examinedmy good sir. Strikebut hear! LeapMr Chuzzlewitbut 
look! Forgive memy dear sir' said Mr Pecksnifftaking both his 
hands'if I am warm; but I am honestand must state the truth.' 
In proof of the character he gave himselfMr Pecksniff suffered 
tears of honesty to ooze out of his eyes. 
The old man gazed at him for a moment with a look of wonder
repeating to himself'Here now! In this house!' But he mastered 
his surpriseand saidafter a pause: 
'Let me see him.' 
'In a friendly spiritI hope?' said Mr Pecksniff. 'Forgive mesir 
but he is in the receipt of my humble hospitality.' 
'I said' replied the old man'let me see him. If I were disposed 
to regard him in any other than a friendly spiritI should have 
said keep us apart.' 
'Certainlymy dear sir. So you would. You are frankness itselfI 
know. I will break this happiness to him' said Mr Pecksniffas he 
left the room'if you will excuse me for a minute--gently.' 
He paved the way to the disclosure so very gentlythat a quarter of 
an hour elapsed before he returned with Mr Jonas. In the meantime 
the young ladies had made their appearanceand the table had been 
set out for the refreshment of the travellers. 
Nowhowever well Mr Pecksniffin his moralityhad taught Jonas 
the lesson of dutiful behaviour to his uncleand however perfectly 
Jonasin the cunning of his naturehad learnt itthat young man's 
bearingwhen presented to his father's brotherwas anything but 
manly or engaging. Perhapsindeedso singular a mixture of 
defiance and obsequiousnessof fear and hardihoodof dogged 
sullenness and an attempt at enraging and propitiationnever was 
expressed in any one human figure as in that of Jonaswhenhaving 
raised his downcast eyes to Martin's facehe let them fall again
and uneasily closing and unclosing his hands without a moment's 
intermissionstood swinging himself from side to sidewaiting to 
be addressed. 
'Nephew' said the old man. 'You have been a dutiful sonI hear.' 
'As dutiful as sons in generalI suppose' returned Jonaslooking 
up and down once more. 'I don't brag to have been any better than 
other sons; but I haven't been any worseI dare say.' 
'A pattern to all sonsI am told' said the old manglancing 
towards Mr Pecksniff. 
'Ecod!' said Jonaslooking up again for a momentand shaking his 
head'I've been as good a son as ever you were a brother. It's the 
pot and the kettleif you come to that.' 
'You speak bitterlyin the violence of your regret' said Martin
after a pause. 'Give me your hand.' 
Jonas did soand was almost at his ease. 'Pecksniff' he 
whisperedas they drew their chairs about the table; 'I gave him as 
good as he broughteh? He had better look at homebefore he looks 
out of windowI think?' 
Mr Pecksniff only answered by a nudge of the elbowwhich might 
either be construed into an indignant remonstrance or a cordial 
assent; but whichin any casewas an emphatic admonition to his 
chosen son-in-law to be silent. He then proceeded to do the honours 
of the house with his accustomed ease and amiability. 
But not even Mr Pecksniff's guileless merriment could set such a 
party at their easeor reconcile materials so utterly discordant 
and conflicting as those with which he had to deal. The unspeakable 
jealously and hatred which that night's explanation had sown in 
Charity's breastwas not to be so easily kept down; and more than 
once it showed itself in such intensityas seemed to render a full 
disclosure of all the circumstances then and thereimpossible to be 
avoided. The beauteous Merrytoowith all the glory of her 
conquest fresh upon herso probed and lanced the rankling 
disappointment of her sister by her capricious airs and thousand 
little trials of Mr Jonas's obediencethat she almost goaded her 
into a fit of madnessand obliged her to retire from table in a 
burst of passionhardly less vehement than that to which she had 
abandoned herself in the first tumult of her wrath. The constraint 
imposed upon the family by the presence among them for the first 
time of Mary Graham (for by that name old Martin Chuzzlewit had 
introduced her) did not at all improve this state of things; gentle 
and quiet though her manner was. Mr Pecksniff's situation was 
peculiarly trying; forwhat with having constantly to keep the 
peace between his daughters; to maintain a reasonable show of 
affection and unity in his household; to curb the growing ease and 
gaiety of Jonaswhich vented itself in sundry insolences towards Mr 
Pinchand an indefinable coarseness of manner in reference to Mary 
(they being the two dependants); to make no mention at all of his 
having perpetually to conciliate his rich old relativeand to 
smooth downor explain awaysome of the ten thousand bad 
appearances and combinations of bad appearancesby which they were 
surrounded on that unlucky evening--what with having to do thisand 
it would be difficult to sum up how much morewithout the least 
relief or assistance from anybodyit may be easily imagined that Mr 
Pecksniff had in his enjoyment something more than that usual 
portion of alloy which is mixed up with the best of men's delights. 
Perhaps he had never in his life felt such relief as when old 
Martinlooking at his watchannounced that it was time to go. 
'We have rooms' he said'at the Dragonfor the present. I have a 
fancy for the evening walk. The nights are dark just now; perhaps 
Mr Pinch would not object to light us home?' 
'My dear sir!' cried Pecksniff'I shall be delighted. Merrymy 
childthe lantern.' 
'The lanternif you pleasemy dear' said Martin; 'but I couldn't 
think of taking your father out of doors to-night; andto be brief
I won't.' 
Mr Pecksniff already had his hat in his handbut it was so 
emphatically said that he paused. 
'I take Mr Pinchor go alone' said Martin. 'Which shall it be?' 
'It shall be Thomassir' cried Pecksniff'since you are so 
resolute upon it. Thomasmy friendbe very carefulif you 
please.' 
Tom was in some need of this injunctionfor he felt so nervousand 
trembled to such a degreethat he found it difficult to hold the 
lantern. How much more difficult whenat the old man's bidding she 
drew her hand through his--Tom Pinch's--arm! 
'And soMr Pinch' said Martinon the way'you are very 
comfortably situated here; are you?' 
Tom answeredwith even more than his usual enthusiasmthat he was 
under obligations to Mr Pecksniff which the devotion of a lifetime 
would but imperfectly repay. 
'How long have you known my nephew?' asked Martin. 
'Your nephewsir?' faltered Tom. 
'Mr Jonas Chuzzlewit' said Mary. 
'Oh dearyes' cried Tomgreatly relievedfor his mind was 
running upon Martin. 'Certainly. I never spoke to him before to-
nightsir!' 
'Perhaps half a lifetime will suffice for the acknowledgment of HIS 
kindness' observed the old man. 
Tom felt that this was a rebuff for himand could not but 
understand it as a left-handed hit at his employer. So he was 
silent. Mary felt that Mr Pinch was not remarkable for presence of 
mindand that he could not say too little under existing 
circumstances. So SHE was silent. The old mandisgusted by what 
in his suspicious nature he considered a shameless and fulsome puff 
of Mr Pecksniffwhich was a part of Tom's hired service and in 
which he was determined to persevereset him down at once for a 
deceitfulservilemiserable fawner. So HE was silent. And though 
they were all sufficiently uncomfortableit is fair to say that 
Martin was perhaps the most so; for he had felt kindly towards Tom 
at firstand had been interested by his seeming simplicity. 
'You're like the rest' he thoughtglancing at the face of the 
unconscious Tom. 'You had nearly imposed upon mebut you have lost 
your labour. You are too zealous a toad-eaterand betray yourself
Mr Pinch.' 
During the whole remainder of the walknot another word was spoken. 
First among the meetings to which Tom had long looked forward with a 
beating heartit was memorable for nothing but embarrassment and 
confusion. They parted at the Dragon door; and sighing as he 
extinguished the candle in the lanternTom turned back again over 
the gloomy fields. 
As he approached the first stilewhich was in a lonely partmade 
very dark by a plantation of young firsa man slipped past him and 
went on before. Coming to the stile he stoppedand took his seat 
upon it. Tom was rather startledand for a moment stood stillbut 
he stepped forward again immediatelyand went close up to him. 
It was Jonas; swinging his legs to and frosucking the head of a 
stickand looking with a sneer at Tom. 
'Good gracious me!' cried Tom'who would have thought of its being 
you! You followed usthen?' 
'What's that to you?' said Jonas. 'Go to the devil!' 
'You are not very civilI think' remarked Tom. 
'Civil enough for YOU' retorted Jonas. 'Who are you?' 
'One who has as good a right to common consideration as another' 
said Tom mildly. 
'You're a liar' said Jonas. 'You haven't a right to any 
consideration. You haven't a right to anything. You're a pretty 
sort of fellow to talk about your rightsupon my soul! Haha!--
Rightstoo!' 
'If you proceed in this way' returned Tomreddening'you will 
oblige me to talk about my wrongs. But I hope your joke is over.' 
'It's the way with you curs' said Mr Jonas'that when you know a 
man's in real earnestyou pretend to think he's jokingso that you 
may turn it off. But that won't do with me. It's too stale. Now 
just attend to me for a bitMr Pitchor Witchor Stitchor 
whatever your name is.' 
'My name is Pinch' observed Tom. 'Have the goodness to call me by 
it.' 
'What! You mustn't even be called out of your namemustn't you!' 
cried Jonas. 'Pauper' prentices are looking upI think. Ecodwe 
manage 'em a little better in the city!' 
'Never mind what you do in the city' said Tom. 'What have you got 
to say to me?' 
'Just thisMister Pinch' retorted Jonasthrusting his face so 
close to Tom's that Tom was obliged to retreat a step. 'I advise 
you to keep your own counseland to avoid title-tattleand not to 
cut in where you're not wanted. I've heard something of youmy 
friendand your meek ways; and I recommend you to forget 'em till I 
am married to one of Pecksniff's galsand not to curry favour among 
my relationsbut to leave the course clear. You knowwhen curs 
won't leave the course clearthey're whipped off; so this is kind 
advice. Do you understand? Eh? Dammewho are you' cried Jonas
with increased contempt'that you should walk home with THEM
unless it was behind 'emlike any other servant out of livery?' 
'Come!' cried Tom'I see that you had better get off the stileand 
let me pursue my way home. Make room for meif you please.' 
'Don't think it!' said Jonasspreading out his legs. 'Not till I 
choose. And I don't choose now. What! You're afraid of my making 
you split upon some of your babbling just noware youSneak?' 
'I am not afraid of many thingsI hope' said Tom; 'and certainly 
not of anything that you will do. I am not a tale-bearerand I 
despise all meanness. You quite mistake me. Ah!' cried Tom
indignantly. 'Is this manly from one in your position to one in 
mine? Please to make room for me to pass. The less I saythe 
better.' 
'The less you say!' retorted Jonasdangling his legs the moreand 
taking no heed of this request. 'You say very littledon't you? 
EcodI should like to know what goes on between you and a vagabond 
member of my family. There's very little in that tooI dare say!' 
'I know no vagabond member of your family' cried Tomstoutly
'You do!' said Jonas. 
'I don't' said Tom. 'Your uncle's namesakeif you mean himis no 
vagabond. Any comparison between you and him'--Tom snapped his 
fingers at himfor he was rising fast in wrath--'is immeasurably to 
your disadvantage.' 
'Oh indeed!' sneered Jonas. 'And what do you think of his deary-his 
beggarly leavingsehMister Pinch?' 
'I don't mean to say another wordor stay here another instant' 
replied Tom. 
'As I told you beforeyou're a liar' said Jonascoolly. 'You'll 
stay here till I give you leave to go. Nowkeep where you are
will you?' 
He flourished his stick over Tom's head; but in a moment it was 
spinning harmlessly in the airand Jonas himself lay sprawling in 
the ditch. In the momentary struggle for the stickTom had brought 
it into violent contact with his opponent's forehead; and the blood 
welled out profusely from a deep cut on the temple. Tom was first 
apprised of this by seeing that he pressed his handkerchief to the 
wounded partand staggered as he rosebeing stunned. 
'Are you hurt?' said Tom. 'I am very sorry. Lean on me for a 
moment. You can do that without forgiving meif you still bear me 
malice. But I don't know why; for I never offended you before we 
met on this spot.' 
He made him no answer; not appearing at first to understand himor 
even to know that he was hurtthough he several times took his 
handkerchief from the cut to look vacantly at the blood upon it. 
After one of these examinationshe looked at Tomand then there 
was an expression in his featureswhich showed that he understood 
what had taken placeand would remember it. 
Nothing more passed between them as they went home. Jonas kept a 
little in advanceand Tom Pinch sadly followedthinking of the 
grief which the knowledge of this quarrel must occasion his 
excellent benefactor. When Jonas knocked at the doorTom's heart 
beat high; higher when Miss Mercy answered itand seeing her 
wounded lovershireked aloud; higherwhen he followed them into 
the family parlour; higher than at any other timewhen Jonas spoke. 
'Don't make a noise about it' he said. 'It's nothing worth 
mentioning. I didn't know the road; the night's very dark; and just 
as I came up with Mr Pinch'--he turned his face towards Tombut not 
his eyes--'I ran against a tree. It's only skin deep.' 
'Cold waterMerrymy child!' cried Mr Pecksniff. 'Brown paper! 
Scissors! A piece of old linen! Charitymy dearmake a bandage. 
Bless meMr Jonas!' 
'Ohbother YOUR nonsense' returned the gracious son-in-law elect. 
'Be of some use if you can. If you can'tget out!' 
Miss Charitythough called upon to lend her aidsat upright in one 
cornerwith a smile upon her faceand didn't move a finger. 
Though Mercy laved the wound herself; and Mr Pecksniff held the 
patient's head between his two handsas if without that assistance 
it must inevitably come in half; and Tom Pinchin his guilty 
agitationshook a bottle of Dutch Drops until they were nothing but 
English Frothand in his other hand sustained a formidable carvingknife
really intended to reduce the swellingbut apparently 
designed for the ruthless infliction of another wound as soon as 
that was dressed; Charity rendered not the least assistancenor 
uttered a word. But when Mr Jonas's head was bound upand he had 
gone to bedand everybody else had retiredand the house was 
quietMr Pinchas he sat mournfully on his bedsteadruminating
heard a gentle tap at his door; and opening itsaw herto his 
great astonishmentstanding before him with her finger on her lip. 
'Mr Pinch' she whispered. 'Dear Mr Pinch! Tell me the truth! 
You did that? There was some quarrel between youand you struck 
him? I am sure of it!' 
It was the first time she had ever spoken kindly to Tomin all 
the many years they had passed together. He was stupefied with 
amazement. 
'Was it soor not?' she eagerly demanded. 
'I was very much provoked' said Tom. 
'Then it was?' cried Charitywith sparkling eyes. 
'Ye-yes. We had a struggle for the path' said Tom. 'But I didn't 
mean to hurt him so much.' 
'Not so much!' she repeatedclenching her hand and stamping her 
footto Tom's great wonder. 'Don't say that. It was brave of you. 
I honour you for it. If you should ever quarrel againdon't spare 
him for the worldbut beat him down and set your shoe upon him. 
Not a word of this to anybody. Dear Mr PinchI am your friend from 
tonight. I am always your friend from this time.' 
She turned her flushed face upon Tom to confirm her words by its 
kindling expression; and seizing his right handpressed it to her 
breastand kissed it. And there was nothing personal in this to 
render it at all embarrassingfor even Tomwhose power of 
observation was by no means remarkableknew from the energy with 
which she did it that she would have fondled any handno matter how 
bedaubed or dyedthat had broken the head of Jonas Chuzzlewit. 
Tom went into his roomand went to bedfull of uncomfortable 
thoughts. That there should be any such tremendous division in the 
family as he knew must have taken place to convert Charity Pecksniff 
into his friendfor any reasonbutabove allfor that which was 
clearly the real one; that Jonaswho had assailed him with such 
exceeding coarsenessshould have been sufficiently magnanimous to 
keep the secret of their quarrel; and that any train of 
circumstances should have led to the commission of an assault and 
battery by Thomas Pinch upon any man calling himself the friend of 
Seth Pecksniff; were matters of such deep and painful cogitation 
that he could not close his eyes. His own violencein particular
so preyed upon the generous mind of Tomthat coupling it with the 
many former occasions on which he had given Mr Pecksniff pain and 
anxiety (occasions of which that gentleman often reminded him)he 
really began to regard himself as destined by a mysterious fate to 
be the evil genius and bad angel of his patron. But he fell asleep 
at lastand dreamed--new source of waking uneasiness--that he had 
betrayed his trustand run away with Mary Graham. 
It must be acknowledged thatasleep or awakeTom's position in 
reference to this young lady was full of uneasiness. The more he 
saw of herthe more he admired her beautyher intelligencethe 
amiable qualities that even won on the divided house of Pecksniff
and in a few days restoredat all eventsthe semblance of harmony 
and kindness between the angry sisters. When she spokeTom held 
his breathso eagerly he listened; when she sanghe sat like one 
entranced. She touched his organand from that bright epoch even 
itthe old companion of his happiest hoursincapable as he had 
thought of elevationbegan a new and deified existence. 
God's love upon thy patienceTom! Whothat had beheld theefor 
three summer weeksporing through half the deadlong night over the 
jingling anatomy of that inscrutable old harpsichord in the back 
parlourcould have missed the entrance to thy secret heart: albeit 
it was dimly known to thee? Who that had seen the glow upon thy 
cheek when leaning down to listenafter hours of labourfor the 
sound of one incorrigible notethou foundest that it had a voice at 
lastand wheezed out a flat somethingdistantly akin to what it 
ought to bewould not have known that it was destined for no common 
touchbut one that smotethough gently as an angel's handupon 
the deepest chord within thee! And if a friendly glance--ayeeven 
though it were as guileless as thine ownDear Tom--could have but 
pierced the twilight of that eveningwhenin a voice well tempered 
to the timesadsweetand lowyet hopefulshe first sang to the 
altered instrumentand wondered at the change; and thousitting 
apart at the open windowkept a glad silence and a swelling heart-must 
not that glance have read perforce the dawning of a storyTom
that it were well for thee had never been begun! 
Tom Pinch's situation was not made the less dangerous or difficult 
by the fact of no one word passing between them in reference to 
Martin. Honourably mindful of his promiseTom gave her 
opportunities of all kinds. Early and late he was in the church; in 
her favourite walks; in the villagein the gardenin the meadows; 
and in any or all of these places he might have spoken freely. But 
no; at all such times she carefully avoided himor never came in 
his way unaccompanied. It could not be that she disliked or 
distrusted himfor by a thousand little delicate meanstoo slight 
for any notice but his ownshe singled him out when others were 
presentand showed herself the very soul of kindness. Could it be 
that she had broken with Martinor had never returned his 
affectionsave in his own bold and heightened fancy? Tom's cheek 
grew red with self-reproach as he dismissed the thought. 
All this time old Martin came and went in his own strange manneror 
sat among the rest absorbed within himselfand holding little 
intercourse with any one. Although he was unsocialhe was not 
willful in other thingsor troublesomeor morose; being never 
better pleased than when they left him quite unnoticed at his book
and pursued their own amusements in his presenceunreserved. It 
was impossible to discern in whom he took an interestor whether he 
had an interest in any of them. Unless they spoke to him directly
he never showed that he had ears or eyes for anything that passed. 
One day the lively Merrysitting with downcast eyes under a shady 
tree in the churchyardwhither she had retired after fatiguing 
herself by the imposition of sundry trials on the temper of Mr 
Jonasfelt that a new shadow came between her and the sun. Raising 
her eyes in the expectation of seeing her betrothedshe was not a 
little surprised to see old Martin instead. Her surprise was not 
diminished when he took his seat upon the turf beside herand 
opened a conversation thus: 
'When are you to be married?' 
'Oh! dear Mr Chuzzlewitmy goodness me! I'm sure I don't know. Not 
yet awhileI hope.' 
'You hope?' said the old man. 
It was very gravely saidbut she took it for banterand giggled 
excessively. 
'Come!' said the old manwith unusual kindness'you are young
good-lookingand I think good-natured! Frivolous you areand love 
to beundoubtedly; but you must have some heart.' 
'I have not given it all awayI can tell you' said Merrynodding 
her head shrewdlyand plucking up the grass. 
'Have you parted with any of it?' 
She threw the grass aboutand looked another waybut said nothing. 
Martin repeated his question. 
'Lormy dear Mr Chuzzlewit! really you must excuse me! How very odd 
you are.' 
'If it be odd in me to desire to know whether you love the young man 
whom I understand you are to marryI AM very odd' said Martin. 
'For that is certainly my wish.' 
'He's such a monsteryou know' said Merrypouting. 
'Then you don't love him?' returned the old man. 'Is that your 
meaning?' 
'Whymy dear Mr ChuzzlewitI'm sure I tell him a hundred times a 
day that I hate him. You must have heard me tell him that.' 
'Often' said Martin. 
'And so I do' cried Merry. 'I do positively.' 
'Being at the same time engaged to marry him' observed the old man. 
'Oh yes' said Merry. 'But I told the wretch--my dear Mr 
ChuzzlewitI told him when he asked me--that if I ever did marry 
himit should only be that I might hate and tease him all my life.' 
She had a suspicion that the old man regarded Jonas with anything 
but favourand intended these remarks to be extremely captivating. 
He did not appearhoweverto regard them in that light by any 
means; for when he spoke againit was in a tone of severity. 
'Look about you' he saidpointing to the graves; 'and remember 
that from your bridal hour to the day which sees you brought as low 
as theseand laid in such a bedthere will be no appeal against 
him. Thinkand speakand actfor oncelike an accountable 
creature. Is any control put upon your inclinations? Are you 
forced into this match? Are you insidiously advised or tempted to 
contract itby any one? I will not ask by whom; by any one?' 
'No' said Merryshrugging her shoulders. 'I don't know that I 
am.' 
'Don't know that you are! Are you?' 
'No' replied Merry. 'Nobody ever said anything to me about it. If 
any one had tried to make me have himI wouldn't have had him at 
all.' 
'I am told that he was at first supposed to be your sister's 
admirer' said Martin. 
'Ohgood gracious! My dear Mr Chuzzlewitit would be very hard to 
make himthough he IS a monsteraccountable for other people's 
vanity' said Merry. 'And poor dear Cherry is the vainest darling!' 
'It was her mistakethen?' 
'I hope it was' cried Merry; 'butall alongthe dear child has 
been so dreadfully jealousand SO crossthatupon my word and 
honourit's impossible to please herand it's of no use trying.' 
'Not forcedpersuadedor controlled' said Martinthoughtfully. 
'And that's trueI see. There is one chance yet. You may have 
lapsed into this engagement in very giddiness. It may have been the 
wanton act of a light head. Is that so?' 
'My dear Mr Chuzzlewit' simpered Merry'as to light-headedness
there never was such a feather of a head as mine. It's perfect 
balloonI declare! You never DIDyou know!' 
He waited quietly till she had finishedand then saidsteadily and 
slowlyand in a softened voiceas if he would still invite her 
confidence: 
'Have you any wish--or is there anything within your breast that 
whispers you may form the wishif you have time to think--to be 
released from this engagement?' 
Again Miss Merry poutedand looked downand plucked the grassand 
shrugged her shoulders. No. She didn't know that she had. She was 
pretty sure she hadn't. Quite sureshe might say. She 'didn't 
mind it.' 
'Has it ever occurred to you' said Martin'that your married life 
may perhaps be miserablefull of bitternessand most unhappy?' 
Merry looked down again; and now she tore the grass up by the roots. 
'My dear Mr Chuzzlewitwhat shocking words! Of courseI shall 
quarrel with him. I should quarrel with any husband. Married 
people always quarrelI believe. But as to being miserableand 
bitterand all those dreadful thingsyou knowwhy I couldn't be 
absolutely thatunless he always had the best of it; and I mean to 
have the best of it myself. I always do now' cried Merrynodding 
her head and giggling very much; 'for I make a perfect slave of the 
creature.' 
'Let it go on' said Martinrising. 'Let it go on! I sought to 
know your mindmy dearand you have shown it me. I wish you joy. 
Joy!' he repeatedlooking full upon herand pointing to the 
wicket-gate where Jonas entered at the moment. And thenwithout 
waiting for his nephewhe passed out at another gateand went 
away. 
'Ohyou terrible old man!' cried the facetious Merry to herself. 
'What a perfectly hideous monster to be wandering about churchyards 
in the broad daylightfrightening people out of their wits! Don't 
come hereGriffinor I'll go away directly.' 
Mr Jonas was the Griffin. He sat down upon the grass at her side
in spite of this warningand sulkily inquired: 
'What's my uncle been a-talking about?' 
'About you' rejoined Merry. 'He says you're not half good enough 
for me.' 
'OhyesI dare say! We all know that. He means to give you some 
present worth havingI hope. Did he say anything that looked like 
it?' 
'THAT he didn't!' cried Merrymost decisively. 
'A stingy old dog he is' said Jonas. 'Well?' 
'Griffin!' cried Miss Mercyin counterfeit amazement; 'what are you 
doingGriffin?' 
'Only giving you a squeeze' said the discomfited Jonas. 'There's 
no harm in thatI suppose?' 
'But there is great deal of harm in itif I don't consider it 
agreeable' returned his cousin. 'Do go alongwill you? You make 
me so hot!' 
Mr Jonas withdrew his armand for a moment looked at her more like 
a murderer than a lover. But he cleared his brow by degreesand 
broke silence with: 
'I sayMel!' 
'What do you sayyou vulgar thing--you low savage?' cried his fair 
betrothed. 
'When is it to be? I can't afford to go on dawdling about here half 
my lifeI needn't tell youand Pecksniff says that father's being 
so lately dead makes very little odds; for we can be married as 
quiet as we please down hereand my being lonely is a good reason 
to the neighbours for taking a wife home so soonespecially one 
that he knew. As to crossbones (my uncleI mean)he's sure not to 
put a spoke in the wheelwhatever we settle onfor he told 
Pecksniff only this morningthat if YOU liked it he'd nothing at 
all to say. SoMel' said Jonasventuring on another squeeze; 
'when shall it be?' 
'Upon my word!' cried Merry. 
'Upon my soulif you like' said Jonas. 'What do you say to next 
weeknow?' 
'To next week! If you had said next quarterI should have wondered 
at your impudence.' 
'But I didn't say next quarter' retorted Jonas. 'I said next 
week.' 
'ThenGriffin' cried Miss Merrypushing him offand rising. 'I 
say no! not next week. It shan't be till I chooseand I may not 
choose it to be for months. There!' 
He glanced up at her from the groundalmost as darkly as he had 
looked at Tom Pinch; but held his peace. 
'No fright of a Griffin with a patch over his eye shall dictate to 
me or have a voice in the matter' said Merry. 'There!' 
Still Mr Jonas held his peace. 
'If it's next monththat shall be the very earliest; but I won't 
say when it shall be till to-morrow; and if you don't like thatit 
shall never be at all' said Merry; 'and if you follow me about and 
won't leave me aloneit shall never be at all. There!v And if you 
don't do everything I order you to doit shall never be at all. So 
don't follow me. ThereGriffin!' 
And with thatshe skipped awayamong the trees. 
'Ecodmy lady!' said Jonaslooking after herand biting a piece 
of strawalmost to powder; 'you'll catch it for thiswhen you ARE 
married. It's all very well now--it keeps one onsomehowand you 
know it--but I'll pay you off scot and lot by-and-bye. This is a 
plaguey dull sort of a place for a man to be sitting by himself in. 
I never could abide a mouldy old churchyard.' 
As he turned into the avenue himselfMiss Merrywho was far ahead
happened to look back. 
'Ah!' said Jonaswith a sullen smileand a nod that was not 
addressed to her. 'Make the most of it while it lasts. Get in your 
hay while the sun shines. Take your own way as long as it's in your 
powermy lady!' 
CHAPTER TWENTY-FIVE 
IS IN PART PROFESSIONALAND FURNISHES THE READER WITH SOME VALUABLE 
HINTS IN RELATION TO THE MANAGEMENT OF A SICK CHAMBER 
Mr Mould was surrounded by his household gods. He was enjoying 
the sweets of domestic reposeand gazing on them with a calm 
delight. The day being sultryand the window openthe legs of Mr 
Mould were on the window-seatand his back reclined against the 
shutter. Over his shining head a handkerchief was drawnto guard 
his baldness from the flies. The room was fragrant with the smell 
of puncha tumbler of which grateful compound stood upon a small 
round tableconvenient to the hand of Mr Mould; so deftly mixed 
that as his eye looked down into the cool transparent drinkanother 
eyepeering brightly from behind the crisp lemon-peellooked up at 
himand twinkled like a star. 
Deep in the Cityand within the ward of Cheapstood Mr Mould's 
establishment. His Haremorin other wordsthe common sitting 
room of Mrs Mould and familywas at the backover the little 
counting-house behind the shop; abutting on a churchyard small and 
shady. In this domestic chamber Mr Mould now sat; gazinga placid 
manupon his punch and home. Iffor a moment at a timehe sought 
a wider prospectwhence he might return with freshened zest to 
these enjoymentshis moist glance wandered like a sunbeam through a 
rural screen of scarlet runnerstrained on strings before the 
windowand he looked downwith an artist's eyeupon the graves. 
The partner of his lifeand daughters twainwere Mr Mould's 
companions. Plump as any partridge was each Miss Mouldand Mrs M. 
was plumper than the two together. So round and chubby were their 
fair proportionsthat they might have been the bodies once 
belonging to the angels' faces in the shop belowgrown upwith 
other heads attached to make them mortal. Even their peachy cheeks 
were puffed out and distendedas though they ought of right to be 
performing on celestial trumpets. The bodiless cherubs in the shop
who were depicted as constantly blowing those instruments for ever 
and ever without any lungsplayedit is to be presumedentirely 
by ear. 
Mr Mould looked lovingly at Mrs Mouldwho sat hard byand was a 
helpmate to him in his punch as in all other things. Each seraph 
daughtertooenjoyed her share of his regardsand smiled upon him 
in return. So bountiful were Mr Mould's possessionsand so large 
his stock in tradethat even therewithin his household sanctuary
stood a cumbrous presswhose mahogany maw was filled with shrouds
and winding-sheetsand other furniture of funerals. Butthough 
the Misses Mould had been brought upas one may saybeneath his 
eyeit had cast no shadow on their timid infancy or blooming youth. 
Sporting behind the scenes of death and burial from cradlehoodthe 
Misses Mould knew better. Hat-bandsto themwere but so many yards 
of silk or crape; the final robe but such a quantity of linen. The 
Misses Mould could idealise a player's habitor a court-lady's 
petticoator even an act of parliament. But they were not to be 
taken in by palls. They made them sometimes. 
The premises of Mr Mould were hard of hearing to the boisterous 
noises in the great main streetsand nestled in a quiet corner
where the City strife became a drowsy humthat sometimes rose and 
sometimes fell and sometimes altogether ceased; suggesting to a 
thoughtful mind a stoppage in Cheapside. The light came sparkling 
in among the scarlet runnersas if the churchyard winked at Mr 
Mouldand said'We understand each other;' and from the distant 
shop a pleasant sound arose of coffin-making with a low melodious 
hammerrattattattatalike promoting slumber and digestion. 
'Quite the buzz of insects' said Mr Mouldclosing his eyes in a 
perfect luxury. 'It puts one in mind of the sound of animated 
nature in the agricultural districts. It's exactly like the 
woodpecker tapping.' 
'The woodpecker tapping the hollow ELM tree' observed Mrs Mould
adapting the words of the popular melody to the description of wood 
commonly used in the trade. 
'Haha!' laughed Mr Mould. 'Not at all badmy dear. We shall be 
glad to hear from you againMrs M. Hollow elm treeeh! Haha! 
Very good indeed. I've seen worse than that in the Sunday papers
my love.' 
Mrs Mouldthus encouragedtook a little more of the punchand 
handed it to her daughterswho dutifully followed the example of 
their mother. 
'Hollow ELM treeeh?' said Mr Mouldmaking a slight motion with 
his legs in his enjoyment of the joke. 'It's beech in the song. 
Elmeh? Yesto be sure. Hahaha! Upon my soulthat's one of 
the best things I know?' He was so excessively tickled by the jest 
that he couldn't forget itbut repeated twenty times'Elmeh? 
Yesto be sure. Elmof course. Hahaha! Upon my lifeyou 
knowthat ought to be sent to somebody who could make use of it. 
It's one of the smartest things that ever was said. Hollow ELM 
treeeh? of course. Very hollow. Hahaha!' 
Here a knock was heard at the room door. 
'That's TackerI know' said Mrs Mould'by the wheezing he makes. 
Who that hears him nowwould suppose he'd ever had wind enough to 
carry the feathers on his head! Come inTacker.' 
'Beg your pardonma'am' said Tackerlooking in a little way. 'I 
thought our Governor was here.' 
'Well! so he is' cried Mould. 
'Oh! I didn't see youI'm sure' said Tackerlooking in a little 
farther. 'You wouldn't be inclined to take a walking one of two
with the plain wood and a tin plateI suppose?' 
'Certainly not' replied Mr Mould'much too common. Nothing to say 
to it.' 
'I told 'em it was precious low' observed Mr Tacker. 
'Tell 'em to go somewhere else. We don't do that style of business 
here' said Mr Mould. 'Like their impudence to propose it. Who is 
it?' 
'Why' returned Tackerpausing'that's where it isyou see. It's 
the beadle's son-in-law.' 
'The beadle's son-in-laweh?' said Mould. 'Well! I'll do it if the 
beadle follows in his cocked hat; not else. We carry it off that 
wayby looking officialbut it'll be low enoughthen. His cocked 
hatmind!' 
'I'll take caresir' rejoined Tacker. 'Oh! Mrs Gamp's belowand 
wants to speak to you.' 
'Tell Mrs Gamp to come upstairs' said Mould. 'Now Mrs Gamp
what's YOUR news?' 
The lady in question was by this time in the doorwaycurtseying to 
Mrs Mould. At the same moment a peculiar fragrance was borne upon 
the breezeas if a passing fairy had hiccoughedand had previously 
been to a wine-vaults. 
Mrs Gamp made no response to Mr Mouldbut curtseyed to Mrs Mould 
againand held up her hands and eyesas in a devout thanksgiving 
that she looked so well. She was neatlybut not gaudily attired
in the weeds she had worn when Mr Pecksniff had the pleasure of 
making her acquaintance; and was perhaps the turning of a scale more 
snuffy. 
'There are some happy creeturs' Mrs Gamp observed'as time runs 
back'ards withand you are oneMrs Mould; not that he need do 
nothing except use you in his most owldacious way for years to come
I'm sure; for young you are and will be. I says to Mrs Harris' Mrs 
Gamp continued'only t'other day; the last Monday evening fortnight 
as ever dawned upon this Piljian's Projiss of a mortal wale; I says 
to Mrs Harris when she says to meYears and our trials, Mrs Gamp, 
sets marks upon us all.--"Say not the wordsMrs Harrisif you and 
me is to be continual friendsfor sech is not the case. Mrs 
Mould I says, making so free, I will confess, as use the name,' 
(she curtseyed here), 'is one of them that goes agen the 
obserwation straight; and neverMrs Harriswhilst I've a drop of 
breath to drawwill I set byand not stand updon't think it."-"
I ast your pardonma'am says Mrs Harris, and I humbly grant 
your grace; for if ever a woman lived as would see her feller 
creeturs into fits to serve her friendswell do I know that woman's 
name is Sairey Gamp."' 
At this point she was fain to stop for breath; and advantage may be 
taken of the circumstanceto state that a fearful mystery 
surrounded this lady of the name of Harriswhom no one in the 
circle of Mrs Gamp's acquaintance had ever seen; neither did any 
human being know her place of residencethough Mrs Gamp appeared on 
her own showing to be in constant communication with her. There 
were conflicting rumours on the subject; but the prevalent opinion 
was that she was a phantom of Mrs Gamp's brain--as Messrs. Doe and 
Roe are fictions of the law--created for the express purpose of 
holding visionary dialogues with her on all manner of subjectsand 
invariably winding up with a compliment to the excellence of her 
nature. 
'And likeways what a pleasure' said Mrs Gampturning with a 
tearful smile towards the daughters'to see them two young ladies 
as I know'd afore a tooth in their pretty heads was cutand have 
many a day seen--ahthe sweet creeturs!--playing at berryins down 
in the shopand follerin' the order-book to its long home in the 
iron safe! But that's all past and overMr Mould;' as she thus got 
in a carefully regulated routine to that gentlemanshe shook her 
head waggishly; 'That's all past and over nowsiran't it?' 
'ChangesMrs Gampchanges!' returned the undertaker. 
'More changes tooto comeafore we've done with changessir' 
said Mrs Gampnodding yet more waggishly than before. 'Young 
ladies with such faces thinks of something else besides berryins
don't theysir?' 
'I am sure I don't knowMrs Gamp' said Mouldwith a chuckle--'Not 
bad in Mrs Gampmy dear?' 
'Oh yesyou do knowsir!' said Mrs Gamp'and so does Mrs Mould
your 'ansome pardner toosir; and so do Ialthough the blessing of 
a daughter was deniged me; whichif we had had oneGamp would 
certainly have drunk its little shoes right off its feetas with 
our precious boy he didand arterward send the child a errand to 
sell his wooden leg for any money it would fetch as matches in the 
roughand bring it home in liquor; which was truly done beyond his 
yearsfor ev'ry individgle penny that child lost at toss or buy for 
kidney ones; and come home arterwards quite boldto break the news
and offering to drown himself if sech would be a satisfaction to his 
parents.--Oh yesyou do knowsir' said Mrs Gampwiping her eye 
with her shawland resuming the thread of her discourse. 'There's 
something besides births and berryins in the newspapersan't there
Mr Mould?' 
Mr Mould winked at Mrs Mouldwhom he had by this time taken on his 
kneeand said: 'No doubt. A good deal moreMrs Gamp. Upon my 
lifeMrs Gamp is very far from badmy dear!' 
'There's marryingsan't theresir?' said Mrs Gampwhile both the 
daughters blushed and tittered. 'Bless their precious heartsand 
well they knows it! Well you know'd it tooand well did Mrs Mould
when you was at their time of life! But my opinion isyou're all of 
one age now. For as to you and Mrs Mouldsirever having 
grandchildren--' 
'Oh! Fiefie! NonsenseMrs Gamp' replied the undertaker. 
'Devilish smartthough. Ca-pi-tal!'--this was in a whisper. 'My 
dear'--aloud again--'Mrs Gamp can drink a glass of rumI dare say. 
Sit downMrs Gampsit down.' 
Mrs Gamp took the chair that was nearest the doorand casting up 
her eyes towards the ceilingfeigned to be wholly insensible to the 
fact of a glass of rum being in preparationuntil it was placed in 
her hand by one of the young ladieswhen she exhibited the greatest 
surprise. 
'A thing' she said'as hardly everMrs Mouldoccurs with me 
unless it is when I am indispogedand find my half a pint of porter 
settling heavy on the chest. Mrs Harris often and often says to me
Sairey Gamp,she saysyou raly do amaze me!Mrs Harris,I 
says to herwhy so? Give it a name, I beg.Telling the truth 
then, ma'am,says Mrs Harrisand shaming him as shall be nameless 
betwixt you and me, never did I think till I know'd you, as any 
woman could sick-nurse and monthly likeways, on the little that you 
takes to drink.Mrs Harris,I says to hernone on us knows what 
we can do till we tries; and wunst, when me and Gamp kept 'ouse, I 
thought so too. But now,I saysmy half a pint of porter fully 
satisfies; perwisin', Mrs Harris, that it is brought reg'lar, and 
draw'd mild. Whether I sicks or monthlies, ma'am, I hope I does my 
duty, but I am but a poor woman, and I earns my living hard; 
therefore I DO require it, which I makes confession, to be brought 
reg'lar and draw'd mild.' 
The precise connection between these observations and the glass of 
rumdid not appear; for Mrs Gamp proposing as a toast 'The best of 
lucks to all!' took off the dram in quite a scientific manner
without any further remarks. 
'And what's your newsMrs Gamp?' asked Mould againas that lady 
wiped her lips upon her shawland nibbled a corner off a soft 
biscuitwhich she appeared to carry in her pocket as a provision 
against contingent drams. 'How's Mr Chuffey?' 
'Mr Chuffeysir' she replied'is jest as usual; he an't no better 
and he an't no worse. I take it very kind in the gentleman to have 
wrote up to you and saidlet Mrs Gamp take care of him till I come 
home;but ev'rythink he does is kind. There an't a many like him. 
If there waswe shouldn't want no churches.' 
'What do you want to speak to me aboutMrs Gamp?' said Mould
coming to the point. 
'Jest thissir' Mrs Gamp returned'with thanks to you for asking. 
There IS a gentsirat the Bull in Holbornas has been took ill 
thereand is bad abed. They have a day nurse as was recommended 
from Bartholomew's; and well I knows herMr Mouldher name bein' 
Mrs Prigthe best of creeturs. But she is otherways engaged at 
nightand they are in wants of night-watching; consequent she says 
to themhaving reposed the greatest friendliness in me for twenty 
yearThe soberest person going, and the best of blessings in a 
sick room, is Mrs Gamp. Send a boy to Kingsgate Street,she says
and snap her up at any price, for Mrs Gamp is worth her weight and 
more in goldian guineas.My landlord brings the message down to me
and saysbein' in a light place where you are, and this job 
promising so well, why not unite the two?No, sir,I saysnot 
unbeknown to Mr Mould, and therefore do not think it. But I will go 
to Mr Mould,I saysand ast him, if you like.' Here she looked 
sideways at the undertakerand came to a stop. 
'Night-watchingeh?' said Mouldrubbing his chin. 
'From eight o'clock till eightsir. I will not deceive you' Mrs 
Gamp rejoined. 
'And then go backeh?' said would. 
'Quite freethensirto attend to Mr Chuffey. His ways bein' 
quietand his hours earlyhe'd be abedsirnearly all the time. 
I will not deny' said Mrs Gamp with meekness'that I am but a poor 
womanand that the money is a object; but do not let that act upon 
youMr Mould. Rich folks may ride on camelsbut it an't so easy 
for 'em to see out of a needle's eye. That is my comfortand I 
hope I knows it.' 
'WellMrs Gamp' observed Mould'I don't see any particular 
objection to your earning an honest penny under such circumstances. 
I should keep it quietI thinkMrs Gamp. I wouldn't mention it to 
Mr Chuzzlewit on his returnfor instanceunless it were necessary
or he asked you pointblank.' 
'The very words was on my lipssir' Mrs Gamp rejoined. 'Suppoging 
that the gent should dieI hope I might take the liberty of saying 
as I know'd some one in the undertaking lineand yet give no 
offence to yousir?' 
'CertainlyMrs Gamp' said Mouldwith much condescension. 'You 
may casually remarkin such a casethat we do the thing pleasantly 
and in a great variety of stylesand are generally considered to 
make it as agreeable as possible to the feelings of the survivors. 
But don't obtrude itdon't obtrude it. Easyeasy! My dearyou 
may as well give Mrs Gamp a card or twoif you please.' 
Mrs Gamp received themand scenting no more rum in the wind (for 
the bottle was locked up again) rose to take her departure. 
'Wishing ev'ry happiness to this happy family' said Mrs Gamp 'with 
all my heart. Good arternoonMrs Mould! If I was Mr would I should 
be jealous of youma'am; and I'm sureif I was youI should be 
jealous of Mr Mould.' 
'Tuttut! Bahbah! Go alongMrs Gamp!' cried the delighted 
undertaker. 
'As to the young ladies' said Mrs Gampdropping a curtsey'bless 
their sweet looks--how they can ever reconsize it with their duties 
to be so grown up with such young parentsit an't for sech as me to 
give a guess at.' 
'Nonsensenonsense. Be offMrs Gamp!' cried Mould. But in the 
height of his gratification he actually pinched Mrs Mould as he said 
it. 
'I'll tell you whatmy dear' he observedwhen Mrs Gamp had at 
last withdrawn and shut the door'that's a ve-ry shrewd woman. 
That's a woman whose intellect is immensely superior to her station 
in life. That's a woman who observes and reflects in an uncommon 
manner. She's the sort of woman now' said Moulddrawing his silk 
handkerchief over his head againand composing himself for a nap 
'one would almost feel disposed to bury for nothing; and do it 
neatlytoo!' 
Mrs Mould and her daughters fully concurred in these remarks; the 
subject of which had by this time reached the streetwhere she 
experienced so much inconvenience from the airthat she was obliged 
to stand under an archway for a short timeto recover herself. 
Even after this precautionshe walked so unsteadily as to attract 
the compassionate regards of divers kind-hearted boyswho took the 
liveliest interest in her disorder; and in their simple language 
bade her be of good cheerfor she was 'only a little screwed.' 
Whatever she wasor whatever name the vocabulary of medical science 
would have bestowed upon her maladyMrs Gamp was perfectly 
acquainted with the way home again; and arriving at the house of 
Anthony Chuzzlewit & Sonlay down to rest. Remaining there until 
seven o'clock in the eveningand then persuading poor old Chuffey 
to betake himself to bedshe sallied forth upon her new engagement. 
Firstshe went to her private lodgings in Kingsgate Streetfor a 
bundle of robes and wrappings comfortable in the night season; and 
then repaired to the Bull in Holbornwhich she reached as the 
clocks were striking eight. 
As she turned into the yardshe stopped; for the landlord
landladyand head chambermaidwere all on the threshold together 
talking earnestly with a young gentleman who seemed to have just 
come or to be just going away. The first words that struck upon Mrs 
Gamp's ear obviously bore reference to the patient; and it being 
expedient that all good attendants should know as much as possible 
about the case on which their skill is brought to bearMrs Gamp 
listened as a matter of duty. 
'No betterthen?' observed the gentleman. 
'Worse!' said the landlord. 
'Much worse' added the landlady. 
'Oh! a deal badder' cried the chambermaid from the background
opening her eyes very wideand shaking her head. 
'Poor fellow!' said the gentleman'I am sorry to hear it. The 
worst of it isthat I have no idea what friends or relations he 
hasor where they liveexcept that it certainly is not in London.' 
The landlord looked at the landlady; the landlady looked at the 
landlord; and the chambermaid remarkedhysterically'that of all 
the many wague directions she had ever seen or heerd of (and they 
wasn't few in an hotel)THAT was the waguest.' 
'The fact isyou see' pursued the gentleman'as I told you 
yesterday when you sent to meI really know very little about him. 
We were school-fellows together; but since that time I have only met 
him twice. On both occasions I was in London for a boy's holiday 
(having come up for a week or so from Wiltshire)and lost sight of 
him again directly. The letter bearing my name and address which 
you found upon his tableand which led to your applying to meis 
in answeryou will observeto one he wrote from this house the 
very day he was taken illmaking an appointment with him at his own 
request. Here is his letterif you wish to see it.' 
The landlord read it; the landlady looked over him. The 
chambermaidin the backgroundmade out as much of it as she could
and invented the rest; believing it all from that time forth as a 
positive piece of evidence. 
'He has very little luggageyou say?' observed the gentlemanwho 
was no other than our old friendJohn Westlock. 
'Nothing but a portmanteau' said the landlord; 'and very little in 
it.' 
'A few pounds in his pursethough?' 
'Yes. It's sealed upand in the cash-box. I made a memorandum of 
the amountwhich you're welcome to see.' 
'Well!' said John'as the medical gentleman says the fever must 
take its courseand nothing can be done just now beyond giving him 
his drinks regularly and having him carefully attended tonothing 
more can be said that I know ofuntil he is in a condition to give 
us some information. Can you suggest anything else?' 
'N-no' replied the landlord'except--' 
'Exceptwho's to payI suppose?' said John. 
'Why' hesitated the landlord'it would be as well.' 
'Quite as well' said the landlady. 
'Not forgetting to remember the servants' said the chambermaid in a 
bland whisper. 
'It is but reasonableI fully admit' said John Westlock. 'At all 
eventsyou have the stock in hand to go upon for the present; and I 
will readily undertake to pay the doctor and the nurses.' 
'Ah!' cried Mrs Gamp. 'A rayal gentleman!' 
She groaned her admiration so audiblythat they all turned round. 
Mrs Gamp felt the necessity of advancingbundle in handand 
introducing herself. 
'The night-nurse' she observed'from Kingsgate Streetwell 
beknown to Mrs Prig the day-nurseand the best of creeturs. How is 
the poor dear gentleman to-night? If he an't no better yetstill 
that is what must be expected and prepared for. It an't the fust 
time by a many scorema'am' dropping a curtsey to the landlady
'that Mrs Prig and me has nussed togetherturn and turn aboutone 
offone on. We knows each other's waysand often gives relief 
when others fail. Our charges is but lowsir'--Mrs Gamp 
addressed herself to John on this head--'considerin' the nater of 
our painful dooty. If they wos made accordin' to our wishesthey 
would be easy paid.' 
Regarding herself as having now delivered her inauguration address
Mrs Gamp curtseyed all roundand signified her wish to be conducted 
to the scene of her official duties. The chambermaid led her
through a variety of intricate passagesto the top of the house; 
and pointing at length to a solitary door at the end of a gallery
informed her that yonder was the chamber where the patient lay. 
That doneshe hurried off with all the speed she could make. 
Mrs Gamp traversed the gallery in a great heat from having carried 
her large bundle up so many stairsand tapped at the door which was 
immediately opened by Mrs Prigbonneted and shawled and all 
impatience to be gone. Mrs Prig was of the Gamp buildbut not so 
fat; and her voice was deeper and more like a man's. She had also a 
beard. 
'I began to think you warn't a-coming!' Mrs Prig observedin some 
displeasure. 
'It shall be made good to-morrow night' said Mrs Gamp 'Honorable. 
I had to go and fetch my things.' She had begun to make signs of 
inquiry in reference to the position of the patient and his 
overhearing them--for there was a screen before the door--when 
Mrs Prig settled that point easily. 
'Oh!' she said aloud'he's quietbut his wits is gone. It an't no 
matter wot you say.' 
'Anythin' to tell afore you goesmy dear?' asked Mrs Gampsetting 
her bundle down inside the doorand looking affectionately at her 
partner. 
'The pickled salmon' Mrs Prig replied'is quite delicious. I can 
partlck'ler recommend it. Don't have nothink to say to the cold 
meatfor it tastes of the stable. The drinks is all good.' 
Mrs Gamp expressed herself much gratified. 
'The physic and them things is on the drawers and mankleshelf' said 
Mrs Prigcursorily. 'He took his last slime draught at seven. The 
easy-chair an't soft enough. You'll want his piller.' 
Mrs Gamp thanked her for these hintsand giving her a friendly good 
nightheld the door open until she had disappeared at the other end 
of the gallery. Having thus performed the hospitable duty of seeing 
her safely offshe shut itlocked it on the insidetook up her 
bundlewalked round the screenand entered on her occupation of 
the sick chamber. 
'A little dullbut not so bad as might be' Mrs Gamp remarked. 
'I'm glad to see a parapidgein case of fireand lots of roofs and 
chimley-pots to walk upon.' 
It will be seen from these remarks that Mrs Gamp was looking out of 
window. When she had exhausted the prospectshe tried the 
easy-chairwhich she indignantly declared was 'harder than a 
brickbadge.' Next she pursued her researches among the 
physic-bottlesglassesjugsand tea-cups; and when she had 
entirely satisfied her curiosity on all these subjects of 
investigationshe untied her bonnet-strings and strolled up to the 
bedside to take a look at the patient. 
A young man--dark and not ill-looking--with long black hairthat 
seemed the blacker for the whiteness of the bed-clothes. His eyes 
were partly openand he never ceased to roll his head from side to 
side upon the pillowkeeping his body almost quiet. He did not 
utter words; but every now and then gave vent to an expression of 
impatience or fatiguesometimes of surprise; and still his restless 
head--ohwearyweary hour!--went to and fro without a moment's 
intermission. 
Mrs Gamp solaced herself with a pinch of snuffand stood looking at 
him with her head inclined a little sidewaysas a connoisseur might 
gaze upon a doubtful work of art. By degreesa horrible 
remembrance of one branch of her calling took possession of the 
woman; and stooping downshe pinned his wandering arms against his 
sidesto see how he would look if laid out as a dead man. Her 
fingers itched to compose his limbs in that last marble attitude. 
'Ah!' said Mrs Gampwalking away from the bed'he'd make a lovely 
corpse.' 
She now proceeded to unpack her bundle; lighted a candle with the 
aid of a fire-box on the drawers; filled a small kettleas a 
preliminary to refreshing herself with a cup of tea in the course of 
the night; laid what she called 'a little bit of fire' for the same 
philanthropic purpose; and also set forth a small tea-boardthat 
nothing might be wanting for her comfortable enjoyment. These 
preparations occupied so longthat when they were brought to a 
conclusion it was high time to think about supper; so she rang the 
bell and ordered it. 
'I thinkyoung woman' said Mrs Gamp to the assistant chambermaid
in a tone expressive of weakness'that I could pick a little bit of 
pickled salmonwith a nice little sprig of fenneland a sprinkling 
of white pepper. I takes new breadmy dearwith just a little pat 
of fresh butterand a mossel of cheese. In case there should be 
such a thing as a cowcumber in the 'ousewill you be so kind as 
bring itfor I'm rather partial to 'emand they does a world of 
good in a sick room. If they draws the Brighton Old Tipper hereI 
takes THAT ale at nightmy loveit bein' considered wakeful by the 
doctors. And whatever you doyoung womandon't bring more than a 
shilling's-worth of gin and water-warm when I rings the bell a 
second time; for that is always my allowanceand I never takes a 
drop beyond!' 
Having preferred these moderate requestsMrs Gamp observed that she 
would stand at the door until the order was executedto the end 
that the patient might not be disturbed by her opening it a second 
time; and therefore she would thank the young woman to 'look sharp.' 
A tray was brought with everything upon iteven to the cucumber and 
Mrs Gamp accordingly sat down to eat and drink in high good humour. 
The extent to which she availed herself of the vinegarand supped 
up that refreshing fluid with the blade of her knifecan scarcely 
be expressed in narrative. 
'Ah!' sighed Mrs Gampas she meditated over the warm shilling'sworth
'what a blessed thing it is--living in a wale--to be 
contented! What a blessed thing it is to make sick people happy in 
their bedsand never mind one's self as long as one can do a 
service! I don't believe a finer cowcumber was ever grow'd. I'm sure 
I never see one!' 
She moralised in the same vein until her glass was emptyand then 
admistered the patient's medicineby the simple process of 
clutching his windpipe to make him gaspand immediately pouring it 
down his throat. 
'I a'most forgot the pillerI declare!' said Mrs Gampdrawing it 
away. 'There! Now he's comfortable as he can beI'm sure! I must 
try to make myself as much so as I can.' 
With this viewshe went about the construction of an extemporaneous 
bed in the easy-chairwith the addition of the next easy one for 
her feet. Having formed the best couch that the circumstances 
admitted ofshe took out of her bundle a yellow night-capof 
prodigious sizein shape resembling a cabbage; which article of 
dress she fixed and tied on with the utmost carepreviously 
divesting herself of a row of bald old curls that could scarcely be 
called falsethey were so very innocent of anything approaching to 
deception. From the same repository she brought forth a night-jacket
in which she also attired herself. Finallyshe produced a 
watchman's coat which she tied round her neck by the sleevesso 
that she become two people; and lookedbehindas if she were in 
the act of being embraced by one of the old patrol. 
All these arrangements madeshe lighted the rush-lightcoiled 
herself up on her couchand went to sleep. Ghostly and dark the 
room becameand full of lowering shadows. The distant noises in 
the streets were gradually hushed; the house was quiet as a 
sepulchre; the dead of might was coffined in the silent city. 
Ohwearyweary hour! Ohhaggard mindgroping darkly through the 
past; incapable of detaching itself from the miserable present; 
dragging its heavy chain of care through imaginary feasts and 
revelsand scenes of awful pomp; seeking but a moment's rest among 
the long-forgotten haunts of childhoodand the resorts of 
yesterday; and dimly finding fear and horror everywhere! Ohweary
weary hour! What were the wanderings of Cainto these! 
Stillwithout a moment's intervalthe burning head tossed to and 
fro. Stillfrom time to timefatigueimpatiencesufferingand 
surprisefound utterance upon that rackand plainly toothough 
never once in words. At lengthin the solemn hour of midnighthe 
began to talk; waiting awfully for answers sometimes; as though 
invisible companions were about his bed; and so replying to their 
speech and questioning again. 
Mrs Gamp awokeand sat up in her bed; presenting on the wall the 
shadow of a gigantic night constablestruggling with a prisoner. 
'Come! Hold your tongue!' she criedin sharp reproof. 'Don't make 
none of that noise here.' 
There was no alteration in the faceor in the incessant motion of 
the headbut he talked on wildly. 
'Ah!' said Mrs Gampcoming out of the chair with an impatient 
shiver; 'I thought I was a-sleepin' too pleasant to last! The 
devil's in the nightI thinkit's turned so chilly!' 
'Don't drink so much!' cried the sick man. 'You'll ruin us all. 
Don't you see how the fountain sinks? Look at the mark where the 
sparkling water was just now!' 
'Sparkling waterindeed!' said Mrs Gamp. 'I'll have a sparkling 
cup o' teaI think. I wish you'd hold your noise!' 
He burst into a laughwhichbeing prolongedfell off into a 
dismal wail. Checking himselfwith fierce inconstancy he began 
to count--fast. 
'One--two--three--four--five--six.' 
One, two, buckle my shoe,' said Mrs Gampwho was now on her 
kneeslighting the firethree, four, shut the door,--I wish 
you'd shut your mouthyoung man--"fivesixpicking up sticks." 
If I'd got a few handyI should have the kettle boiling all the 
sooner.' 
Awaiting this desirable consummationshe sat down so close to the 
fender (which was a high one) that her nose rested upon it; and for 
some time she drowsily amused herself by sliding that feature 
backwards and forwards along the brass topas far as she could
without changing her position to do it. She maintainedall the 
whilea running commentary upon the wanderings of the man in bed. 
'That makes five hundred and twenty-one menall dressed alikeand 
with the same distortion on their facesthat have passed in at the 
windowand out at the door' he criedanxiously. 'Look there! 
Five hundred and twenty-two--twenty-three--twenty-four. Do you see 
them?' 
'Ah! I see 'em' said Mrs Gamp; 'all the whole kit of 'em numbered 
like hackney-coachesan't they?' 
'Touch me! Let me be sure of this. Touch me!' 
'You'll take your next draught when I've made the kettle bile' 
retorted Mrs Gampcomposedly'and you'll be touched then. You'll 
be touched uptooif you don't take it quiet.' 
'Five hundred and twenty-eightfive hundred and twenty-ninefive 
hundred and thirty.--Look here!' 
'What's the matter now?' said Mrs Gamp. 
'They're coming four abreasteach man with his arm entwined in the 
next man'sand his hand upon his shoulder. What's that upon the 
arm of every manand on the flag?' 
'Spidersp'raps' said Mrs Gamp. 
'Crape! Black crape! Good God! why do they wear it outside?' 
'Would you have 'em carry black crape in their insides?' Mrs Gamp 
retorted. 'Hold your noisehold your noise.' 
The fire beginning by this time to impart a grateful warmthMrs 
Gamp became silent; gradually rubbed her nose more and more slowly 
along the top of the fender; and fell into a heavy doze. She was 
awakened by the room ringing (as she fancied) with a name she knew: 
'Chuzzlewit!' 
The sound was so distinct and realand so full of agonised 
entreatythat Mrs Gamp jumped up in terrorand ran to the door. 
She expected to find the passage filled with peoplecome to tell 
her that the house in the city had taken fire. But the place was 
empty; not a soul was there. She opened the windowand looked out. 
Darkdulldingyand desolate house-tops. As she passed to her 
seat againshe glanced at the patient. Just the same; but silent. 
Mrs Gamp was so warm nowthat she threw off the watchman's coat
and fanned herself. 
'It seemed to make the wery bottles ring' she said. 'What could I 
have been a-dreaming of? That dratted ChuffeyI'll be bound.' 
The supposition was probable enough. At any ratea pinch of snuff
and the song of the steaming kettlequite restored the tone of Mrs 
Gamp's nerveswhich were none of the weakest. She brewed her tea; 
made some buttered toast; and sat down at the tea-boardwith her 
face to the fire. 
When once againin a tone more terrible than that which had 
vibrated in her slumbering earthese words were shrieked out: 
'Chuzzlewit! Jonas! No!' 
Mrs Gamp dropped the cup she was in the act of raising to her lips
and turned round with a start that made the little tea-board leap. 
The cry had come from the bed. 
It was bright morning the next time Mrs Gamp looked out of the 
windowand the sun was rising cheerfully. Lighter and lighter grew 
the skyand noisier the streets; and high into the summer air 
uprose the smoke of newly kindled firesuntil the busy day was 
broad awake. 
Mrs Prig relieved punctuallyhaving passed a good night at her 
other patient's. Mr Westlock came at the same timebut he was not 
admittedthe disorder being infectious. The doctor came too. The 
doctor shook his head. It was all he could dounder the 
circumstancesand he did it well. 
'What sort of a nightnurse?' 
'Restlesssir' said Mrs Gamp. 
'Talk much?' 
'Middlingsir' said Mrs Gamp. 
'Nothing to the purposeI suppose?' 
'Oh bless younosir. Only jargon.' 
'Well!' said the doctor'we must keep him quiet; keep the room 
cool; give him his draughts regularly; and see that he's carefully 
looked to. That's all!' 
'And as long as Mrs Prig and me waits upon himsirno fear of 
that' said Mrs Gamp. 
'I suppose' observed Mrs Prigwhen they had curtseyed the doctor 
out; 'there's nothin' new?' 
'Nothin' at allmy dear' said Mrs Gamp. 'He's rather wearin' in 
his talk from making up a lot of names; elseways you needn't mind 
him.' 
'OhI shan't mind him' Mrs Prig returned. 'I have somethin' else 
to think of.' 
'I pays my debts to-nightyou knowmy dearand comes afore my 
time' said Mrs Gamp. 'ButBetsy Prig'--speaking with great 
feelingand laying her hand upon her arm--'try the cowcumbersGod 
bless you!' 
CHAPTER TWENTY-SIX 
AN UNEXPECTED MEETINGAND A PROMISING PROSPECT 
The laws of sympathy between beards and birdsand the secret source 
of that attraction which frequently impels a shaver of the one to be 
a dealer in the otherare questions for the subtle reasoning of 
scientific bodies; not the less sobecause their investigation 
would seem calculated to lead to no particular result. It is enough 
to know that the artist who had the honour of entertaining Mrs Gamp 
as his first-floor lodgerunited the two pursuits of barbering and 
bird-fancying; and that it was not an original idea of hisbut one 
in which he haddispersed about the by-streets and suburbs of the 
towna host of rivals. 
The name of the householder was Paul Sweedlepipe. But he was 
commonly called Poll Sweedlepipe; and was not uncommonly believed to 
have been so christenedamong his friends and neighbours. 
With the exception of the staircaseand his lodger's private 
apartmentPoll Sweedlepipe's house was one great bird's nest. 
Gamecocks resided in the kitchen; pheasants wasted the brightness of 
their golden plumage on the garret; bantams roosted in the cellar; 
owls had possession of the bedroom; and specimens of all the smaller 
fry of birds chirrupped and twittered in the shop. The staircase 
was sacred to rabbits. There in hutches of all shapes and kinds
made from old packing-casesboxesdrawersand tea-cheststhey 
increased in a prodigious degreeand contributed their share 
towards that complicated whiff whichquite impartiallyand without 
distinction of personssaluted every nose that was put into 
Sweedlepipe's easy shaving-shop. 
Many noses found their way therefor all thatespecially on Sunday 
morningbefore church-time. Even archbishops shaveor must be 
shavedon a Sundayand beards WILL grow after twelve o'clock on 
Saturday nightthough it be upon the chins of base mechanics; who
not being able to engage their valets by the quarterhire them by 
the joband pay them--ohthe wickedness of copper coin!--in dirty 
pence. Poll Sweedlepipethe sinnershaved all comers at a penny 
eachand cut the hair of any customer for twopence; and being a 
lone unmarried manand having some connection in the bird linePoll 
got on tolerably well. 
He was a little elderly manwith a clammy cold right handfrom 
which even rabbits and birds could not remove the smell of shavingsoap. 
Poll had something of the bird in his nature; not of the 
hawk or eaglebut of the sparrowthat builds in chimney-stacks and 
inclines to human company. He was not quarrelsomethoughlike the 
sparrow; but peacefullike the dove. In his walk he strutted; and
in this respecthe bore a faint resemblance to the pigeonas well 
as in a certain prosiness of speechwhich mightin its monotony
be likened to the cooing of that bird. He was very inquisitive; and 
when he stood at his shop-door in the evening-tidewatching the 
neighbourswith his head on one sideand his eye cocked knowingly
there was a dash of the raven in him. Yet there was no more 
wickedness in Poll than in a robin. Happilytoowhen any of his 
ornithological properties were on the verge of going too farthey 
were quencheddissolvedmelted downand neutralised in the barber; 
just as his bald head--otherwiseas the head of a shaved magpie-lost 
itself in a wig of curly black ringletsparted on one side
and cut away almost to the crownto indicate immense capacity of 
intellect. 
Poll had a very smallshrill treble voicewhich might have led the 
wags of Kingsgate Street to insist the more upon his feminine 
designation. He had a tender hearttoo; forwhen he had a good 
commission to provide three or four score sparrows for a shootingmatch
he would observein a compassionate tonehow singular it 
was that sparrows should have been made expressly for such purposes. 
The questionwhether men were made to shoot themnever entered 
into Poll's philosophy. 
Poll worein his sporting charactera velveteen coata great deal 
of blue stockingankle bootsa neckerchief of some bright colour
and a very tall hat. Pursuing his more quiet occupation of barber
he generally subsided into an apron not over-cleana flannel 
jacketand corduroy knee-shorts. It was in this latter costume
but with his apron girded round his waistas a token of his having 
shut up shop for the nightthat he closed the door one evening
some weeks after the occurrences detailed in the last chapterand 
stood upon the steps in Kingsgate Streetlistening until the little 
cracked bell within should leave off ringing. For until it did-this 
was Mr Sweedlepipe's reflection--the place never seemed quiet 
enough to be left to itself. 
'It's the greediest little bell to ring' said Poll'that ever was. 
But it's quiet at last.' 
He rolled his apron up a little tighter as he said these wordsand 
hastened down the street. Just as he was turning into Holbornhe 
ran against a young gentleman in a livery. This youth was bold
though smalland with several lively expressions of displeasure
turned upon him instantly. 
'NowSTOO-PID!' cried the young gentleman. 'Can't you look where 
you're a-going to--eh? Can't you mind where you're a-coming to--eh? 
What do you think your eyes was made for--eh? Ah! Yes. Oh! Now 
then!' 
The young gentleman pronounced the two last words in a very loud 
tone and with frightful emphasisas though they contained within 
themselves the essence of the direst aggravation. But he had 
scarcely done sowhen his anger yielded to surpriseand he cried
in a milder tone: 
'What! Polly!' 
'Whyit an't yousure!' cried Poll. 'It can't be you!' 
'No. It an't me' returned the youth. 'It's my sonmy oldest 
one. He's a credit to his fatheran't hePolly?' With this 
delicate little piece of banterhe halted on the pavementand went 
round and round in circlesfor the better exhibition of his figure; 
rather to the inconvenience of the passengers generallywho were 
not in an equal state of spirits with himself. 
'I wouldn't have believed it' said Poll. 'What! You've left your 
old placethen? Have you?' 
'Have I!' returned his young friendwho had by this time stuck his 
hands into the pockets of his white cord breechesand was 
swaggering along at the barber's side. 'D'ye know a pair of topboots 
when you see 'emPolly?--look here!' 
'Beau-ti-ful' cried Mr Sweedlepipe. 
'D'ye know a slap-up sort of buttonwhen you see it?' said the 
youth. 'Don't look at mineif you ain't a judgebecause these 
lions' heads was made for men of taste; not snobs.' 
'Beau-ti-ful!' cried the barber again. 'A grass-green frock-coat
toobound with gold; and a cockade in your hat!' 
'I should hope so' replied the youth. 'Blow the cockadethough; 
forexcept that it don't turn roundit's like the wentilator that 
used to be in the kitchen winder at Todgers's. You ain't seen the 
old lady's name in the Gazettehave you?' 
'No' returned the barber. 'Is she a bankrupt?' 
'If she ain'tshe will be' retorted Bailey. 'That bis'ness never 
can be carried on without ME. Well! How are you?' 
'Oh! I'm pretty well' said Poll. 'Are you living at this end of 
the townor were you coming to see me? Was that the bis'ness that 
brought you to Holborn?' 
'I haven't got no bis'ness in Holborn' returned Baileywith some 
displeasure. 'All my bis'ness lays at the West End. I've got the 
right sort of governor now. You can't see his face for his 
whiskersand can't see his whiskers for the dye upon 'em. That's a 
gentleman ain't it? You wouldn't like a ride in a cabwould you? 
Whyit wouldn't be safe to offer it. You'd faint awayonly to see 
me a-comin' at a mild trot round the corner.' 
To convey a slight idea of the effect of this approachMr Bailey 
counterfeited in his own person the action of a high-trotting horse 
and threw up his head so highin backing against a pumpthat he 
shook his hat off. 
'Whyhe's own uncle to Capricorn' said Bailey'and brother to 
Cauliflower. He's been through the winders of two chaney shops 
since we've had himand was sold for killin' his missis. That's a 
horseI hope?' 
'Ah! you'll never want to buy any more red pollsnow' observed 
Polllooking on his young friend with an air of melancholy. 
'You'll never want to buy any more red polls nowto hang up over 
the sinkwill you?' 
'I should think not' replied Bailey. 'Reether so. I wouldn't have 
nothin' to say to any bird below a Peacock; and HE'd be wulgar. 
Wellhow are you?' 
'Oh! I'm pretty well' said Poll. He answered the question again 
because Mr Bailey asked it again; Mr Bailey asked it againbecause 
--accompanied with a straddling action of the white cordsa bend of 
the kneesand a striking forth of the top-boots--it was an easy 
horse-fleshyturfy sort of thing to do. 
'Wot are you up toold feller?' added Mr Baileywith the same 
graceful rakishness. He was quite the man-about-town of the 
conversationwhile the easy-shaver was the child. 
'WhyI am going to fetch my lodger home' said Paul. 
'A woman!' cried Mr Bailey'for a twenty-pun' note!' 
The little barber hastened to explain that she was neither a young 
womannor a handsome womanbut a nursewho had been acting as a 
kind of house-keeper to a gentleman for some weeks pastand left 
her place that nightin consequence of being superseded by another 
and a more legitimate house-keeper--to witthe gentleman's bride. 
'He's newly marriedand he brings his young wife home to-night' 
said the barber. 'So I'm going to fetch my lodger away--Mr 
Chuzzlewit'sclose behind the Post Office--and carry her box for 
her.' 
'Jonas Chuzzlewit's?' said Bailey. 
'Ah!' returned Paul: 'that's the name sure enough. Do you know 
him?' 
'Ohno!' cried Mr Bailey; 'not at all. And I don't know her! Not 
neither! Whythey first kept company through mea'most.' 
'Ah?' said Paul. 
'Ah!' said Mr Baileywith a wink; 'and she ain't bad looking mind 
you. But her sister was the best. SHE was the merry one. I often 
used to have a bit of fun with herin the hold times!' 
Mr Bailey spoke as if he already had a leg and three-quarters in the 
graveand this had happened twenty or thirty years ago. Paul 
Sweedlepipethe meekwas so perfectly confounded by his precocious 
self-possessionand his patronizing manneras well as by his 
bootscockadeand liverythat a mist swam before his eyesand he 
saw--not the Bailey of acknowledged juvenility from Todgers's 
Commercial Boarding Housewho had made his acquaintance within a 
twelvemonthby purchasingat sundry timessmall birds at twopence 
each--but a highly-condensed embodiment of all the sporting grooms 
in London; an abstract of all the stable-knowledge of the time; a 
something at a high-pressure that must have had existence many 
yearsand was fraught with terrible experiences. And trulythough 
in the cloudy atmosphere of Todgers'sMr Bailey's genius had ever 
shone out brightly in this particular respectit now eclipsed both 
time and spacecheated beholders of their sensesand worked on 
their belief in defiance of all natural laws. He walked along the 
tangible and real stones of Holborn Hillan undersized boy; and 
yet he winked the winksand thought the thoughtsand did the 
deedsand said the sayings of an ancient man. There was an old 
principle within himand a young surface without. He became an 
inexplicable creature; a breeched and booted Sphinx. There was no 
course open to the barberbut to go distracted himselfor to take 
Bailey for granted; and he wisely chose the latter. 
Mr Bailey was good enough to continue to bear him companyand to 
entertain himas they wentwith easy conversation on various 
sporting topics; especially on the comparative meritsas a general 
principleof horses with white stockingsand horses without. In 
regard to the style of tail to be preferredMr Bailey had opinions 
of his ownwhich he explainedbut begged they might by no means 
influence his friend'sas here he knew he had the misfortune to 
differ from some excellent authorities. He treated Mr Sweedlepipe 
to a dramcompounded agreeably to his own directionswhich he 
informed him had been invented by a member of the Jockey Club; and
as they were by this time near the barber's destinationhe observed 
thatas he had an hour to spareand knew the partieshe wouldif 
quite agreeablebe introduced to Mrs Gamp. 
Paul knocked at Jonas Chuzzlewit's; andon the door being opened by 
that ladymade the two distinguished persons known to one another. 
It was a happy feature in Mrs Gamp's twofold professionthat it 
gave her an interest in everything that was young as well as in 
everything that was old. She received Mr Bailey with much kindness. 
'It's very goodI'm sureof you to come' she said to her 
landlord'as well as bring so nice a friend. But I'm afraid 
that I must trouble you so far as to step infor the young couple 
has not yet made appearance.' 
'They're lateain't they?' inquired her landlordwhen she had 
conducted them downstairs into the kitchen. 
'Wellsirconsidern' the Wings of Lovethey are' said Mrs Gamp. 
Mr Bailey inquired whether the Wings of Love had ever won a plate
or could be backed to do anything remarkable; and being informed 
that it was not a horsebut merely a poetical or figurative 
expressionevinced considerable disgust. Mrs Gamp was so very much 
astonished by his affable manners and great easethat she was about 
to propound to her landlord in a whisper the staggering inquiry
whether he was a man or a boywhen Mr Sweedlepipeanticipating her 
designmade a timely diversion. 
'He knows Mrs Chuzzlewit' said Paul aloud. 
'There's nothin' he don't know; that's my opinion' observed Mrs 
Gamp. 'All the wickedness of the world is Print to him.' 
Mr Bailey received this as a complimentand saidadjusting his 
cravat'reether so.' 
'As you knows Mrs Chuzzlewityou knowsp'rapswhat her chris'en 
name is?' Mrs Gamp observed. 
'Charity' said Bailey. 
'That it ain't!' cried Mrs Gamp. 
'Cherrythen' said Bailey. 'Cherry's short for it. It's all the 
same.' 
'It don't begin with a C at all' retorted Mrs Gampshaking her 
head. 'It begins with a M.' 
'Whew!' cried Mr Baileyslapping a little cloud of pipe-clay out of 
his left leg'then he's been and married the merry one!' 
As these words were mysteriousMrs Gamp called upon him to explain
which Mr Bailey proceeded to do; that lady listening greedily to 
everything he said. He was yet in the fullness of his narrative when 
the sound of wheelsand a double knock at the street door
announced the arrival of the newly married couple. Begging him to 
reserve what more he had to say for her hearing on the way home
Mrs Gamp took up the candleand hurried away to receive and welcome 
the young mistress of the house. 
'Wishing you appiness and joy with all my art' said Mrs Gamp
dropping a curtsey as they entered the hall; 'and youtoosir. 
Your lady looks a little tired with the journeyMr Chuzzlewita 
pretty dear!' 
'She has bothered enough about it' grumbled Mr Jonas. 'Nowshow a 
lightwill you?' 
'This wayma'amif you please' said Mrs Gampgoing upstairs 
before them. 'Things has been made as comfortable as they could be
but there's many things you'll have to alter your own self when you 
gets time to look about you! Ah! sweet thing! But you don't' added 
Mrs Gampinternally'you don't look much like a merry oneI must 
say!' 
It was true; she did not. The death that had gone before the bridal 
seemed to have left its shade upon the house. The air was heavy and 
oppressive; the rooms were dark; a deep gloom filled up every chink 
and corner. Upon the hearthstonelike a creature of ill omensat 
the aged clerkwith his eyes fixed on some withered branches in the 
stove. He rose and looked at her. 
'So there you areMr Chuff' said Jonas carelesslyas he dusted 
his boots; 'still in the land of the livingeh?' 
'Still in the land of the livingsir' retorted Mrs Gamp. 'And Mr 
Chuffey may thank you for itas many and many a time I've told 
him.' 
Mr Jonas was not in the best of humoursfor he merely saidas he 
looked round'We don't want you any moreyou knowMrs Gamp.' 
'I'm a-going immediatesir' returned the nurse; 'unless there's 
nothink I can do for youma'am. Ain't there' said Mrs Gampwith 
a look of great sweetnessand rummaging all the time in her pocket; 
'ain't there nothink I can do for youmy little bird?' 
'No' said Merryalmost crying. 'You had better go awayplease!' 
With a leer of mingled sweetness and slyness; with one eye on the 
futureone on the brideand an arch expression in her facepartly 
spiritualpartly spirituousand wholly professional and peculiar 
to her art; Mrs Gamp rummaged in her pocket againand took from it 
a printed cardwhereon was an inscription copied from her signboard. 
'Would you be so goodmy darling dovey of a dear young married 
lady' Mrs Gamp observedin a low voice'as put that somewheres 
where you can keep it in your mind? I'm well beknown to many 
ladiesand it's my card. Gamp is my nameand Gamp my nater. 
Livin' quite handyI will make so bold as call in now and thenand 
make inquiry how your health and spirits ismy precious chick!' 
And with innumerable leerswinkscoughsnodssmilesand 
curtseysall leading to the establishment of a mysterious and 
confidential understanding between herself and the brideMrs Gamp
invoking a blessing upon the houseleeredwinkedcoughednodded
smiledand curtseyed herself out of the room. 
'But I will sayand I would if I was led a Martha to the Stakes for 
it' Mrs Gamp remarked below stairsin a whisper'that she don't 
look much like a merry one at this present moment of time.' 
'Ah! wait till you hear her laugh!' said Bailey. 
'Hem!' cried Mrs Gampin a kind of groan. 'I willchild.' 
They said no more in the housefor Mrs Gamp put on her bonnetMr 
Sweedlepipe took up her box; and Mr Bailey accompanied them towards 
Kingsgate Street; recounting to Mrs Gamp as they went alongthe 
origin and progress of his acquaintance with Mrs Chuzzlewit and her 
sister. It was a pleasant instance of this youth's precocitythat 
he fancied Mrs Gamp had conceived a tenderness for himand was much 
tickled by her misplaced attachment. 
As the door closed heavily behind themMrs Jonas sat down in a 
chairand felt a strange chill creep upon herwhilst she looked 
about the room. It was pretty much as she had known itbut 
appeared more dreary. She had thought to see it brightened to 
receive her. 
'It ain't good enough for youI suppose?' said Jonaswatching her 
looks. 
'Whyit IS dull' said Merrytrying to be more herself. 
'It'll be duller before you're done with it' retorted Jonas'if 
you give me any of your airs. You're a nice articleto turn sulky 
on first coming home! Ecodyou used to have life enoughwhen you 
could plague me with it. The gal's downstairs. Ring the bell for 
supperwhile I take my boots off!' 
She roused herself from looking after him as he left the roomto do 
what he had desired; when the old man Chuffey laid his hand softly 
on her arm. 
'You are not married?' he said eagerly. 'Not married?' 
'Yes. A month ago. Good Heavenwhat is the matter?' 
He answered nothing was the matter; and turned from her. But in her 
fear and wonderturning alsoshe saw him raise his trembling hands 
above his headand heard him say: 
'Oh! woewoewoeupon this wicked house!' 
It was her welcome--HOME. 
CHAPTER TWENTY-SEVEN 
SHOWING THAT OLD FRIENDS MAY NOT ONLY APPEAR WITH NEW FACESBUT IN 
FALSE COLOURS. THAT PEOPLE ARE PRONE TO BITEAND THAT BITERS MAY 
SOMETIMES BE BITTEN. 
Mr BaileyJunior--for the sporting characterwhilom of general 
utility at Todgers'shad now regularly set up in life under that 
namewithout troubling himself to obtain from the legislature a 
direct licence in the form of a Private Billwhich of all kinds and 
classes of bills is without exception the most unreasonable in its 
charges--Mr BaileyJuniorjust tall enough to be seen by an 
inquiring eyegazing indolently at society from beneath the apron 
of his master's cabdrove slowly up and down Pall Mallabout the 
hour of noonin waiting for his 'Governor.' The horse of 
distinguished familywho had Capricorn for his nephewand 
Cauliflower for his brothershowed himself worthy of his high 
relations by champing at the bit until his chest was white with 
foamand rearing like a horse in heraldry; the plated harness and 
the patent leather glittered in the sun; pedestrians admired; Mr 
Bailey was complacentbut unmoved. He seemed to say'A barrow
good peoplea mere barrow; nothing to what we could doif we 
chose!' and on he wentsquaring his short green arms outside the 
apronas if he were hooked on to it by his armpits. 
Mr Bailey had a great opinion of Brother to Cauliflowerand 
estimated his powers highly. But he never told him so. On the 
contraryit was his practicein driving that animalto assail him 
with disrespectfulif not injuriousexpressionsas'Ah! would 
you!' 'Did you think itthen?' 'Where are you going to now?' 'No
you won'tmy lad!' and similar fragmentary remarks. These being 
usually accompanied by a jerk of the reinor a crack of the whip
led to many trials of strength between themand to many contentions 
for the upper-handterminatingnow and thenin china-shopsand 
other unusual goalsas Mr Bailey had already hinted to his friend 
Poll Sweedlepipe. 
On the present occasion Mr Baileybeing in spiritswas more than 
commonly hard upon his charge; in consequence of which that fiery 
animal confined himself almost entirely to his hind legs in 
displaying his pacesand constantly got himself into positions with 
reference to the cabriolet that very much amazed the passengers in 
the street. But Mr Baileynot at all disturbedhad still a shower 
of pleasantries to bestow on any one who crossed his path; as
calling to a full-grown coal-heaver in a wagonwho for a moment 
blocked the way'Nowyoung 'unwho trusted YOU with a cart?' 
inquiring of elderly ladies who wanted to crossand ran back again
'Why they didn't go to the workhouse and get an order to be buried?' 
tempting boyswith friendly wordsto get up behindand 
immediately afterwards cutting them down; and the like flashes of a 
cheerful humourwhich he would occasionally relieve by going round 
St. James's Square at a hand gallopand coming slowly into Pall 
Mall by another entryas ifin the intervalhis pace had been a 
perfect crawl. 
It was not until these amusements had been very often repeatedand 
the apple-stall at the corner had sustained so many miraculous 
escapes as to appear impregnablethat Mr Bailey was summoned to the 
door of a certain house in Pall Malland turning shortobeyed the 
call and jumped out. It was not until he had held the bridle for 
some minutes longerevery jerk of Cauliflower's brother's headand 
every twitch of Cauliflower's brother's nostriltaking him off his 
legs in the meanwhilethat two persons entered the vehicleone of 
whom took the reins and drove rapidly off. Nor was it until Mr 
Bailey had run after it some hundreds of yards in vainthat he 
managed to lift his short leg into the iron stepand finally to get 
his boots upon the little footboard behind. Thenindeedhe became 
a sight to see; and--standing now on one foot and now upon the other
now trying to look round the cab on this sidenow on thatand now 
endeavouring to peep over the top of itas it went dashing in among 
the carts and coaches--was from head to heel Newmarket. 
The appearance of Mr Bailey's governor as he drove along fully 
justified that enthusiastic youth's description of him to the 
wondering Poll. He had a world of jet-black shining hair upon his 
headupon his cheeksupon his chinupon his upper lip. His 
clothessymmetrically madewere of the newest fashion and the 
costliest kind. Flowers of gold and blueand green and blushing 
redwere on his waistcoat; precious chains and jewels sparkled on 
his breast; his fingersclogged with brilliant ringswere as 
unwieldly as summer flies but newly rescued from a honey-pot. The 
daylight mantled in his gleaming hat and boots as in a polished 
glass. And yetthough changed his nameand changed his outward 
surfaceit was Tigg. Though turned and twisted upside downand 
inside outas great men have been sometimes known to be; though no 
longer Montague Tiggbut Tigg Montague; still it was Tigg; the same 
Satanicgallantmilitary Tigg. The brass was burnished
lacquerednewly stamped; yet it was the true Tigg metal 
notwithstanding. 
Beside him sat a smiling gentlemanof less pretensions and of 
business lookswhom he addressed as David. Surely not the David of 
the--how shall it be phrased?--the triumvirate of golden balls? Not 
Davidtapster at the Lombards' Arms? Yes. The very man. 
'The secretary's salaryDavid' said Mr Montague'the office being 
now establishedis eight hundred pounds per annumwith his houserent
coalsand candles free. His five-and-twenty shares he holds
of course. Is that enough?' 
David smiled and noddedand coughed behind a little locked 
portfolio which he carried; with an air that proclaimed him to be 
the secretary in question. 
'If that's enough' said Montague'I will propose it at the Board 
to-dayin my capacity as chairman.' 
The secretary smiled again; laughedindeedthis time; and said
rubbing his nose slily with one end of the portfolio: 
'It was a capital thoughtwasn't it?' 
'What was a capital thoughtDavid?' Mr Montague inquired. 
'The Anglo-Bengalee' tittered the secretary. 
'The Anglo-Bengalee Disinterested Loan and Life Assurance Company is 
rather a capital concernI hopeDavid' said Montague. 
'Capital indeed!' cried the secretarywith another laugh--' in one 
sense.' 
'In the only important one' observed the chairman; 'which is number 
oneDavid.' 
'What' asked the secretarybursting into another laugh'what will 
be the paid up capitalaccording to the next prospectus?' 
'A figure of twoand as many oughts after it as the printer can get 
into the same line' replied his friend. 'Haha!' 
At this they both laughed; the secretary so vehementlythat in 
kicking up his feethe kicked the apron openand nearly started 
Cauliflower's brother into an oyster shop; not to mention Mr 
Bailey's receiving such a sudden swingthat he held on for a 
moment quite a young Fameby one strap and no legs. 
'What a chap you are!' exclaimed David admiringlywhen this little 
alarm had subsided. 
'SaygeniusDavidgenius.' 
'"Wellupon my soulyou ARE a genius then' said David. 'I always 
knew you had the gift of the gabof course; but I never believed 
you were half the man you are. How could I?' 
'I rise with circumstancesDavid. That's a point of genius in 
itself' said Tigg. 'If you were to lose a hundred pound wager to 
me at this minute Davidand were to pay it (which is most 
confoundedly improbable)I should risein a mental point of view
directly.' 
It is due to Mr Tigg to say that he had really risen with his 
opportunities; andpeculating on a grander scalehe had become 
a grander man altogether. 
'Haha' cried the secretarylaying his handwith growing 
familiarityupon the chairman's arm. 'When I look at youand 
think of your property in Bengal being--hahaha!--' 
The half-expressed idea seemed no less ludicrous to Mr Tigg than to 
his friendfor he laughed tooheartily. 
'--Being' resumed David'being amenable--your property in Bengal 
being amenable--to all claims upon the company; when I look at you 
and think of thatyou might tickle me into fits by waving the 
feather of a pen at me. Upon my soul you might!' 
'It a devilish fine property' said Tigg Montague'to be amenable 
to any claims. The preserve of tigers alone is worth a mint of 
moneyDavid.' 
David could only reply in the intervals of his laughter'Ohwhat a 
chap you are!' and so continued to laughand hold his sidesand 
wipe his eyesfor some timewithout offering any other 
observation. 
'A capital idea?' said Tiggreturning after a time to his 
companion's first remark; 'no doubt it was a capital idea. It was 
my idea.' 
'Nono. It was my idea' said David. 'Hang itlet a man have 
some credit. Didn't I say to you that I'd saved a few pounds?--' 
'You said! Didn't I say to you' interposed Tigg'that I had come 
into a few pounds?' 
'Certainly you did' returned Davidwarmly'but that's not the 
idea. Who saidthat if we put the money together we could furnish 
an officeand make a show?' 
'And who said' retorted Mr Tigg'thatprovided we did it on a 
sufficiently large scalewe could furnish an office and make a 
showwithout any money at all? Be rationaland justand calm
and tell me whose idea was that.' 
'Whythere' David was obliged to confess'you had the advantage 
of meI admit. But I don't put myself on a level with you. I only 
want a little credit in the business.' 
'All the credit you deserve to have' said Tigg. 
'The plain work of the companyDavid--figuresbookscirculars
advertisementspeninkand papersealing-wax and wafers--is 
admirably done by you. You are a first-rate groveller. I don't 
dispute it. But the ornamental departmentDavid; the inventive 
and poetical department--' 
'Is entirely yours' said his friend. 'No question of it. But with 
such a swell turnout as thisand all the handsome things you've 
got about youand the life you leadI mean to say it's a precious 
comfortable department too.' 
'Does it gain the purpose? Is it Anglo-Bengalee?' asked Tigg. 
'Yes' said David. 
'Could you undertake it yourself?' demanded Tigg. 
'No' said David. 
'Haha!' laughed Tigg. 'Then be contented with your station and 
your profitsDavidmy fine fellowand bless the day that made us 
acquainted across the counter of our common unclefor it was a 
golden day to you.' 
It will have been already gathered from the conversation of these 
worthiesthat they were embarked in an enterprise of some 
magnitudein which they addressed the public in general from the 
strong position of having everything to gain and nothing at all to 
lose; and whichbased upon this great principlewas thriving 
pretty comfortably. 
The Anglo-Bengalee Disinterested Loan and Life Assurance Company 
started into existence one morningnot an Infant Institutionbut a 
Grown-up Company running alone at a great paceand doing business 
right and left: with a 'branch' in a first floor over a tailor's at 
the west-end of the townand main offices in a new street in the 
Citycomprising the upper part of a spacious house resplendent in 
stucco and plate-glasswith wire-blinds in all the windowsand 
'Anglo-Bengalee' worked into the pattern of every one of them. On 
the doorpost was painted again in large letters'offices of the 
Anglo-Bengalee Disinterested Loan and Life Assurance Company' and 
on the door was a large brass plate with the same inscription; 
always kept very brightas courting inquiry; staring the City out 
of countenance after office hours on working daysand all day long 
on Sundays; and looking bolder than the Bank. Withinthe offices 
were newly plasterednewly paintednewly paperednewly countered
newly floor-clothednewly tablednewly chairednewly fitted up in 
every waywith goods that were substantial and expensiveand 
designed (like the company) to last. Business! Look at the green 
ledgers with red backslike strong cricket-balls beaten flat; the 
court-guides directoriesday-booksalmanacksletter-boxes
weighing-machines for lettersrows of fire-buckets for dashing out 
a conflagration in its first sparkand saving the immense wealth in 
notes and bonds belonging to the company; look at the iron safes
the clockthe office seal--in its capacious selfsecurity for 
anything. Solidity! Look at the massive blocks of marble in the 
chimney-piecesand the gorgeous parapet on the top of the house! 
Publicity! WhyAnglo-Bengalee Disinterested Loan and Life Assurance 
company is painted on the very coal-scuttles. It is repeated at 
every turn until the eyes are dazzled with itand the head is 
giddy. It is engraved upon the top of all the letter paperand it 
makes a scroll-work round the sealand it shines out of the 
porter's buttonsand it is repeated twenty times in every circular 
and public notice wherein one David CrimpleEsquireSecretary and 
resident Directortakes the liberty of inviting your attention to 
the accompanying statement of the advantages offered by the Anglo-
Bengalee Disinterested Loan and Life Assurance Company; and fully 
proves to you that any connection on your part with that 
establishment must result in a perpetual Christmas Box and 
constantly increasing Bonus to yourselfand that nobody can run any 
risk by the transaction except the officewhichin its great 
liberality is pretty sure to lose. And thisDavid Crimple
Esquiresubmits to you (and the odds are heavy you believe him)is 
the best guarantee that can reasonably be suggested by the Board of 
Management for its permanence and stability. 
This gentleman's nameby the wayhad been originally Crimp; but as 
the word was susceptible of an awkward construction and might be 
misrepresentedhe had altered it to Crimple. 
Lest with all these proofs and confirmationsany man should be 
suspicious of the Anglo-Bengalee Disinterested Loan and Life 
Assurance company; should doubt in tigercabor personTigg 
MontagueEsquire(of Pall Mall and Bengal)or any other name in 
the imaginative List of Directors; there was a porter on the 
premises--a wonderful creaturein a vast red waistcoat and a shorttailed 
pepper-and-salt coat--who carried more conviction to the 
minds of sceptics than the whole establishment without him. No 
confidences existed between him and the Directorship; nobody knew 
where he had served last; no character or explanation had been given 
or required. No questions had been asked on either side. This 
mysterious beingrelying solely on his figurehad applied for the 
situationand had been instantly engaged on his own terms. They 
were high; but he knewdoubtlessthat no man could carry such an 
extent of waistcoat as himselfand felt the full value of his 
capacity to such an institution. When he sat upon a seat erected 
for him in a corner of the officewith his glazed hat hanging on a 
peg over his headit was impossible to doubt the respectability of 
the concern. It went on doubling itself with every square inch of 
his red waistcoat untillike the problem of the nails in the 
horse's shoesthe total became enormous. People had been known to 
apply to effect an insurance on their lives for a thousand pounds
and looking at himto begbefore the form of proposal was filled 
upthat it might be made two. And yet he was not a giant. His 
coat was rather small than otherwise. The whole charm was in his 
waistcoat. Respectabilitycompetenceproperty in Bengal or 
anywhere elseresponsibility to any amount on the part of the 
company that employed himwere all expressed in that one garment. 
Rival offices had endeavoured to lure him away; Lombard Street 
itself had beckoned to him; rich companies had whispered 'Be a 
Beadle!' but he still continued faithful to the Anglo-Bengalee. 
Whether he was a deep rogueor a stately simpletonit was 
impossible to make outbut he appeared to believe in the Anglo-
Bengalee. He was grave with imaginary cares of office; and having 
nothing whatever to doand something less to take care ofwould 
look as if the pressure of his numerous dutiesand a sense of the 
treasure in the company's strong-roommade him a solemn and a 
thoughtful man. 
As the cabriolet drove up to the doorthis officer appeared 
bare-headed on the pavementcrying aloud 'Room for the chairman
room for the chairmanif you please!' much to the admiration of the 
bystanderswhoit is needless to sayhad their attention directed 
to the Anglo-Bengalee Company thenceforthby that means. Mr Tigg 
leaped gracefully outfollowed by the Managing Director (who was by 
this time very distant and respectful)and ascended the stairs
still preceded by the porterwho cried as he went'By your leave 
there! by your leave! The Chairman of the BoardGentle--MEN! In 
like mannerbut in a still more stentorian voicehe ushered the 
chairman through the public officewhere some humble clients were 
transacting businessinto an awful chamberlabelled Board-room; 
the door of which sanctuary immediately closedand screened the 
great capitalist from vulgar eyes. 
The board-room had a Turkey carpet in ita sideboarda portrait of 
Tigg MontagueEsquireas chairman; a very imposing chair of 
officegarnished with an ivory hammer and a little hand-bell; and a 
long tableset out at intervals with sheets of blotting-paper
foolscapclean pensand inkstands. The chairman having taken his 
seat with great solemnitythe secretary supported him on his right 
handand the porter stood bolt upright behind themforming a warm 
background of waistcoat. This was the board: everything else being 
a light-hearted little fiction. 
'Bullamy!' said Mr Tigg. 
'Sir!' replied the porter. 
'Let the Medical Officer knowwith my complimentsthat I wish to 
see him.' 
Bullamy cleared his throatand bustled out into the officecrying 
'The Chairman of the Board wishes to see the Medical Officer. By 
your leave there! By your leave!' He soon returned with the 
gentleman in question; and at both openings of the board-room door-at 
his coming in and at his going out--simple clients were seen to 
stretch their necks and stand upon their toesthirsting to catch 
the slightest glimpse of that mysterious chamber. 
'Joblingmy dear friend!' said Mr Tigg'how are you? Bullamy
wait outside. Crimpledon't leave us. Joblingmy good fellowI 
am glad to see you.' 
'And how are youMr Montagueeh?' said the Medical Officer
throwing himself luxuriously into an easy-chair (they were all easychairs 
in the board-room)and taking a handsome gold snuff-box from 
the pocket of his black satin waistcoat. 'How are you? A little 
worn with businesseh? If sorest. A little feverish from wine
humph? If sowater. Nothing at all the matterand quite 
comfortable? Then take some lunch. A very wholesome thing at this 
time of day to strengthen the gastric juices with lunchMr 
Montague.' 
The Medical Officer (he was the same medical officer who had 
followed poor old Anthony Chuzzlewit to the graveand who had 
attended Mrs Gamp's patient at the Bull) smiled in saying these 
words; and casually addedas he brushed some grains of snuff from 
his shirt-frill'I always take it myself about this time of daydo 
you know!' 
'Bullamy!' said the Chairmanringing the little bell. 
'Sir!' 
'Lunch.' 
'Not on my accountI hope?' said the doctor. 'You are very good. 
Thank you. I'm quite ashamed. Haha! if I had been a sharp 
practitionerMr MontagueI shouldn't have mentioned it without a 
fee; for you may depend upon itmy dear sirthat if you don't make 
a point of taking lunchyou'll very soon come under my hands. 
Allow me to illustrate this. In Mr Crimple's leg--' 
The resident Director gave an involuntary startfor the doctorin 
the heat of his demonstrationcaught it up and laid it across his 
ownas if he were going to take it offthen and there. 
'In Mr Crimple's legyou'll observe' pursued the doctorturning 
back his cuffs and spanning the limb with both hands'where Mr 
Crimple's knee fits into the socketherethere is--that is to say
between the bone and the socket--a certain quantity of animal oil.' 
'What do you pick MY leg out for?' said Mr Crimplelooking with 
something of an anxious expression at his limb. 'It's the same with 
other legsain't it?' 
'Never you mindmy good sir' returned the doctorshaking his 
head'whether it is the same with other legsor not the same.' 
'But I do mind' said David. 
'I take a particular caseMr Montague' returned the doctor'as 
illustrating my remarkyou observe. In this portion of Mr 
Crimple's legsirthere is a certain amount of animal oil. In 
every one of Mr Crimple's jointssirthere is more or less of the 
same deposit. Very good. If Mr Crimple neglects his mealsor 
fails to take his proper quantity of restthat oil wanesand 
becomes exhausted. What is the consequence? Mr Crimple's bones 
sink down into their socketssirand Mr Crimple becomes a weazen
punystuntedmiserable man!' 
The doctor let Mr Crimple's leg fall suddenlyas if he were already 
in that agreeable condition; turned down his wristbands againand 
looked triumphantly at the chairman. 
'We know a few secrets of nature in our professionsir' said the 
doctor. 'Of course we do. We study for that; we pass the Hall and 
the College for that; and we take our station in society BY that. 
It's extraordinary how little is known on these subjects generally. 
Where do you supposenow'--the doctor closed one eyeas he leaned 
back smilingly in his chairand formed a triangle with his hands
of which his two thumbs composed the base--'where do you suppose Mr 
Crimple's stomach is?' 
Mr Crimplemore agitated than beforeclapped his hand immediately 
below his waistcoat. 
'Not at all' cried the doctor; 'not at all. Quite a popular 
mistake! My good siryou're altogether deceived.' 
'I feel it therewhen it's out of order; that's all I know' said 
Crimple. 
'You think you do' replied the doctor; 'but science knows better. 
There was a patient of mine once' touching one of the many mourning 
rings upon his fingersand slightly bowing his head'a gentleman 
who did me the honour to make a very handsome mention of me in his 
will--"in testimony as he was pleased to say, of the unremitting 
zealtalentand attention of my friend and medical attendantJohn 
JoblingEsquireM.R.C.S.--who was so overcome by the idea of 
having all his life laboured under an erroneous view of the locality 
of this important organ, that when I assured him on my professional 
reputation, he was mistaken, he burst into tears, put out his hand, 
and said, JoblingGod bless you!" Immediately afterwards he became 
speechlessand was ultimately buried at Brixton.' 
'By your leave there!' cried Bullamywithout. 'By your leave! 
Refreshment for the Board-room!' 
'Ha!' said the doctorjocularlyas he rubbed his handsand drew 
his chair nearer to the table. 'The true Life AssuranceMr 
Montague. The best Policy in the worldmy dear sir. We should be 
providentand eat and drink whenever we can. EhMr Crimple?' 
The resident Director acquiesced rather sulkilyas if the 
gratification of replenishing his stomach had been impaired by the 
unsettlement of his preconceived opinions in reference to its 
situation. But the appearance of the porter and under-porter with a 
tray covered with a snow-white clothwhichbeing thrown back
displayed a pair of cold roast fowlsflanked by some potted meats 
and a cool saladquickly restored his good humour. It was enhanced 
still further by the arrival of a bottle of excellent madeiraand 
another of champagne; and he soon attacked the repast with an 
appetite scarcely inferior to that of the medical officer. 
The lunch was handsomely servedwith a profusion of rich glass 
plateand china; which seemed to denote that eating and drinking on 
a showy scale formed no unimportant item in the business of the 
Anglo-Bengalee Directorship. As it proceededthe Medical Officer 
grew more and more joyous and red-facedinsomuch that every 
mouthful he ateand every drop of wine he swallowedseemed to 
impart new lustre to his eyesand to light up new sparks in his 
nose and forehead. 
In certain quarters of the City and its neighbourhoodMr Jobling 
wasas we have already seen in some measurea very popular 
character. He had a portentously sagacious chinand a pompous 
voicewith a rich huskiness in some of its tones that went directly 
to the heartlike a ray of light shining through the ruddy medium 
of choice old burgundy. His neckerchief and shirt-frill were ever 
of the whitesthis clothes of the blackest and sleekesthis gold 
watch-chain of the heaviestand his seals of the largest. His 
bootswhich were always of the brightestcreaked as he walked. 
Perhaps he could shake his headrub his handsor warm himself 
before a firebetter than any man alive; and he had a peculiar way 
of smacking his lips and saying'Ah!' at intervals while patients 
detailed their symptomswhich inspired great confidence. It seemed 
to express'I know what you're going to say better than you do; but 
go ongo on.' As he talked on all occasions whether he had anything 
to say or notit was unanimously observed of him that he was 'full 
of anecdote;' and his experience and profit from it were considered
for the same reasonto be something much too extensive for 
description. His female patients could never praise him too highly; 
and the coldest of his male admirers would always say this for him 
to their friends'that whatever Jobling's professional skill might 
be (and it could not be denied that he had a very high reputation)
he was one of the most comfortable fellows you ever saw in your 
life!' 
Jobling was for many reasonsand not last in the list because his 
connection lay principally among tradesmen and their families
exactly the sort of person whom the Anglo-Bengalee Company wanted 
for a medical officer. But Jobling was far too knowing to connect 
himself with the company in any closer ties than as a paid (and well 
paid) functionaryor to allow his connection to be misunderstood 
abroadif he could help it. Hence he always stated the case to an 
inquiring patientafter this manner: 
'Whymy dear sirwith regard to the Anglo-Bengaleemy 
informationyou seeis limited; very limited. I am the medical 
officerin consideration of a certain monthly payment. The 
labourer is worthy of his hire; BIS DAT QUI CITO DAT'--('classical 
scholarJobling!' thinks the patient'well-read man!')--'and I 
receive it regularly. Therefore I am boundso far as my own 
knowledge goesto speak well of the establishment.' ('Nothing can 
be fairer than Jobling's conduct' thinks the patientwho has just 
paid Jobling's bill himself.) 'If you put any question to memy 
dear friend' says the doctor'touching the responsibility or 
capital of the companythere I am at fault; for I have no head for 
figuresand not being a shareholderam delicate of showing any 
curiosity whatever on the subject. Delicacy--your amiable lady will 
agree with me I am sure--should be one of the first characteristics 
of a medical man.' ('Nothing can be finer or more gentlemanly than 
Jobling's feeling' thinks the patient.) 'Very goodmy dear sirso 
the matter stands. You don't know Mr Montague? I'm sorry for it. 
A remarkably handsome manand quite the gentleman in every respect. 
PropertyI am toldin India. House and everything belonging to 
himbeautiful. Costly furniture on the most elegant and lavish 
scale. And pictureswhicheven in an anatomical point of view
are per-fection. In case you should ever think of doing anything 
with the companyI'll pass youyou may depend upon it. I can 
conscientiously report you a healthy subject. If I understand any 
man's constitutionit is yours; and this little indisposition has 
done him more goodma'am' says the doctorturning to the 
patient's wife'than if he had swallowed the contents of half the 
nonsensical bottles in my surgery. For they ARE nonsense--to tell 
the honest truthone half of them are nonsense--compared with such 
a constitution as his!' ('Jobling is the most friendly creature I 
ever met with in my life' thinks the patient; 'and upon my word and 
honourI'll consider of it!') 
'Commission to youdoctoron four new policiesand a loan this 
morningeh?' said Crimplelookingwhen they had finished lunch
over some papers brought in by the porter. 'Well done!' 
'Joblingmy dear friend' said Tigg'long life to you.' 
'Nono. Nonsense. Upon my word I've no right to draw the 
commission' said the doctor'I haven't really. It's picking your 
pocket. I don't recommend anybody here. I only say what I know. 
My patients ask me what I knowand I tell 'em what I know. Nothing 
else. Caution is my weak sidethat's the truth; and always was 
from a boy. That is' said the doctorfilling his glass'caution 
in behalf of other people. Whether I would repose confidence in 
this company myselfif I had not been paying money elsewhere for 
many years--that's quite another question.' 
He tried to look as if there were no doubt about it; but feeling 
that he did it but indifferentlychanged the theme and praised the 
wine. 
'Talking of wine' said the doctor'reminds me of one of the finest 
glasses of light old port I ever drank in my life; and that was at a 
funeral. You have not seen anything of--of THAT partyMr Montague
have you?' handing him a card. 
'He is not buriedI hope?' said Tiggas he took it. 'The honour 
of his company is not requested if he is.' 
'Haha!' laughed the doctor. 'No; not quite. He was honourably 
connected with that very occasion though.' 
'Oh!' said Tiggsmoothing his moustacheas he cast his eyes upon 
the name. 'I recollect. No. He has not been here.' 
The words were on his lipswhen Bullamy enteredand presented a 
card to the Medical Officer. 
'Talk of the what's his name--' observed the doctor rising. 
'And he's sure to appeareh?' said Tigg. 
'WhynoMr Montagueno' returned the doctor. 'We will not say 
that in the present casefor this gentleman is very far from it.' 
'So much the better' retorted Tigg. 'So much the more adaptable to 
the Anglo-Bengalee. Bullamyclear the table and take the things 
out by the other door. Mr Crimplebusiness.' 
'Shall I introduce him?' asked Jobling. 
'I shall be eternally delighted' answered Tiggkissing his hand 
and smiling sweetly. 
The doctor disappeared into the outer officeand immediately 
returned with Jonas Chuzzlewit. 
'Mr Montague' said Jobling. 'Allow me. My friend Mr Chuzzlewit. 
My dear friend--our chairman. Now do you know' he added checking 
himself with infinite policyand looking round with a smile; 
'that's a very singular instance of the force of example. It really 
is a very remarkable instance of the force of example. I say OUR 
chairman. Why do I say our chairman? Because he is not MY 
chairmanyou know. I have no connection with the companyfarther 
than giving themfor a certain fee and rewardmy poor opinion as a 
medical manprecisely as I may give it any day to Jack Noakes or 
Tom Styles. Then why do I say our chairman? Simply because I hear 
the phrase constantly repeated about me. Such is the involuntary 
operation of the mental faculty in the imitative biped man. Mr 
CrimpleI believe you never take snuff? Injudicious. You should.' 
Pending these remarks on the part of the doctorand the lengthened 
and sonorous pinch with which he followed them upJonas took a seat 
at the board; as ungainly a man as ever he has been within the 
reader's knowledge. It is too common with all of usbut it is 
especially in the nature of a mean mindto be overawed by fine 
clothes and fine furniture. They had a very decided influence on 
Jonas. 
'Now you two gentlemen have business to discussI know' said the 
doctor'and your time is precious. So is mine; for several lives 
are waiting for me in the next roomand I have a round of visits to 
make after--after I have taken 'em. Having had the happiness to 
introduce you to each otherI may go about my business. Good-bye. 
But allow meMr Montaguebefore I goto say this of my friend who 
sits beside you: That gentleman has done moresir' rapping his 
snuff-box solemnly'to reconcile me to human naturethan any man 
alive or dead. Good-bye!' 
With these words Jobling bolted abruptly out of the roomand 
proceeded in his own official departmentto impress the lives in 
waiting with a sense of his keen conscientiousness in the discharge 
of his dutyand the great difficulty of getting into the Anglo-
Bengalee; by feeling their pulseslooking at their tongues
listening at their ribspoking them in the chestand so forth; 
thoughif he didn't well know beforehand that whatever kind of 
lives they werethe Anglo-Bengalee would accept them readilyhe 
was far from being the Jobling that his friend considered him; and 
was not the original Joblingbut a spurious imitation. 
Mr Crimple also departed on the business of the morning; and Jonas 
Chuzzlewit and Tigg were left alone. 
'I learn from our friend' said Tiggdrawing his chair towards 
Jonas with a winning ease of manner'that you have been thinking--' 
'Oh! Ecod then he'd no right to say so' cried Jonasinterrupting. 
'I didn't tell HIM my thoughts. If he took it into his head that I 
was coming here for such or such a purposewhythat's his 
lookout. I don't stand committed by that.' 
Jonas said this offensively enough; for over and above the habitual 
distrust of his characterit was in his nature to seek to revenge 
himself on the fine clothes and the fine furniturein exact 
proportion as he had been unable to withstand their influence. 
'If I come here to ask a question or twoand get a document or two 
to consider ofI don't bind myself to anything. Let's understand 
thatyou know' said Jonas. 
'My dear fellow!' cried Tiggclapping him on the shoulder'I 
applaud your frankness. If men like you and I speak openly at 
firstall possible misunderstanding is avoided. Why should I 
disguise what you know so wellbut what the crowd never dream of? 
We companies are all birds of prey; mere birds of prey. The only 
question iswhether in serving our own turnwe can serve yours 
too; whether in double-lining our own nestwe can put a single 
living into yours. Ohyou're in our secret. You're behind the 
scenes. We'll make a merit of dealing plainly with youwhen we 
know we can't help it.' 
It was remarkedon the first introduction of Mr Jonas into these 
pagesthat there is a simplicity of cunning no less than a 
simplicity of innocenceand that in all matters involving a faith 
in knaveryhe was the most credulous of men. If Mr Tigg had 
preferred any claim to high and honourable dealingJonas would have 
suspected him though he had been a very model of probity; but when 
he gave utterance to Jonas's own thoughts of everything and 
everybodyJonas began to feel that he was a pleasant fellowand 
one to be talked to freely. 
He changed his position in the chairnot for a less awkwardbut 
for a more boastful attitude; and smiling in his miserable conceit 
rejoined: 
'You an't a bad man of businessMr Montague. You know how to 
set about itI WILL say.' 
'Tuttut' said Tiggnodding confidentiallyand showing his white 
teeth; 'we are not childrenMr Chuzzlewit; we are grown menI 
hope.' 
Jonas assentedand said after a short silencefirst spreading out 
his legsand sticking one arm akimbo to show how perfectly at home 
he was
'The truth is--' 
'Don't saythe truth' interposed Tiggwith another grin. 'It's 
so like humbug.' 
Greatly charmed by thisJonas began again. 
'The long and the short of it is--' 
'Better' muttered Tigg. 'Much better!' 
'--That I didn't consider myself very well used by one or two of the 
old companies in some negotiations I have had with 'em--once hadI 
mean. They started objections they had no right to startand put 
questions they had no right to putand carried things much too high 
for my taste.' 
As he made these observations he cast down his eyesand looked 
curiously at the carpet. Mr Tigg looked curiously at him. 
He made so long a pausethat Tigg came to the rescueand saidin 
his pleasantest manner: 
'Take a glass of wine.' 
'Nono' returned Jonaswith a cunning shake of the head; 'none of 
thatthankee. No wine over business. All very well for youbut 
it wouldn't do for me.' 
'What an old hand you areMr Chuzzlewit!' said Tiggleaning back in 
his chairand leering at him through his half-shut eyes. 
Jonas shook his head againas much as to say'You're right there;' 
And then resumedjocosely: 
'Not such an old handeitherbut that I've been and got married. 
That's rather greenyou'll say. Perhaps it isespecially as she's 
young. But one never knows what may happen to these womenso I'm 
thinking of insuring her life. It is but fairyou knowthat a man 
should secure some consolation in case of meeting with such a loss.' 
'If anything can console him under such heart-breaking 
circumstances' murmured Tiggwith his eyes shut up as before. 
'Exactly' returned Jonas; 'if anything can. Nowsupposing I did 
it hereI should do it cheapI knowand easywithout bothering 
her about it; which I'd much rather not dofor it's just in a 
woman's way to take it into her headif you talk to her about 
such thingsthat she's going to die directly.' 
'So it is' cried Tiggkissing his hand in honour of the sex. 
'You're quite right. Sweetsillyfluttering little simpletons!' 
'Well' said Jonas'on that accountyou knowand because offence 
has been given me in other quartersI wouldn't mind patronizing 
this Company. But I want to know what sort of security there is for 
the Company's going on. That's the--' 
'Not the truth?' cried Tiggholding up his jewelled hand. 'Don't 
use that Sunday School expressionplease!' 
'The long and the short of it' said Jonas. 'The long and the short 
of it iswhat's the security?' 
'The paid-up capitalmy dear sir' said Tiggreferring to some 
papers on the table'isat this present moment--' 
'Oh! I understand all about paid-up capitalsyou know' said Jonas. 
'You do?' cried Tiggstopping short. 
'I should hope so.' 
He turned the papers down againand moving nearer to himsaid in 
his ear: 
'I know you do. I know you do. Look at me!' 
It was not much in Jonas's way to look straight at anybody; but thus 
requestedhe made shift to take a tolerable survey of the 
chairman's features. The chairman fell back a littleto give him 
the better opportunity. 
'You know me?' he inquiredelevating his eyebrows. 'You recollect? 
You've seen me before?' 
'WhyI thought I remembered your face when I first came in' said 
Jonasgazing at it; 'but I couldn't call to mind where I had seen 
it. No. I don't remembereven now. Was it in the street?' 
'Was it in Pecksniff's parlour?' said Tigg 
'In Pecksniff's parlour!' echoed Jonasfetching a long breath. 
'You don't mean when--' 
'Yes' cried Tigg'when there was a very charming and delightful 
little family partyat which yourself and your respected father 
assisted.' 
'Wellnever mind HIM' said Jonas. 'He's deadand there's no help 
for it.' 
'Deadis he!' cried Tigg'Venerable old gentlemanis he dead! 
You're very like him.' 
Jonas received this compliment with anything but a good grace
perhaps because of his own private sentiments in reference to the 
personal appearance of his deceased parent; perhaps because he was 
not best pleased to find that Montague and Tigg were one. That 
gentleman perceived itand tapping him familiarly on the sleeve
beckoned him to the window. From this momentMr Montague's 
jocularity and flow of spirits were remarkable. 
'Do you find me at all changed since that time?' he asked. 'Speak 
plainly.' 
Jonas looked hard at his waistcoat and jewels; and said 'Rather
ecod!' 
'Was I at all seedy in those days?' asked Montague. 
'Precious seedy' said Jonas. 
Mr Montague pointed down into the streetwhere Bailey and the cab 
were in attendance. 
'Neat; perhaps dashing. Do you know whose it is?' 
'No.' 
'Mine. Do you like this room?' 
'It must have cost a lot of money' said Jonas. 
'You're right. Mine too. Why don't you'--he whispered thisand 
nudged him in the side with his elbow--'why don't you take premiums
instead of paying 'em? That's what a man like you should do. Join 
us!' 
Jonas stared at him in amazement. 
'Is that a crowded street?' asked Montaguecalling his attention to 
the multitude without. 
'Very' said Jonasonly glancing at itand immediately afterwards 
looking at him again. 
'There are printed calculations' said his companion'which will 
tell you pretty nearly how many people will pass up and down that 
thoroughfare in the course of a day. I can tell you how many of 'em 
will come in heremerely because they find this office here; 
knowing no more about it than they do of the Pyramids. Haha! 
Join us. You shall come in cheap.' 
Jonas looked at him harder and harder. 
'I can tell you' said Tigg in his ear'how many of 'em will buy 
annuitieseffect insurancesbring us their money in a hundred 
shapes and waysforce it upon ustrust us as if we were the Mint; 
yet know no more about us than you do of that crossing-sweeper at 
the corner. Not so much. Haha!' 
Jonas gradually broke into a smile. 
'Yah!' said Montaguegiving him a pleasant thrust in the breast; 
'you're too deep for usyou dogor I wouldn't have told you. Dine 
with me to-morrowin Pall Mall!' 
'I will' said Jonas. 
'Done!' cried Montague. 'Wait a bit. Take these papers with you 
and look 'em over. See' he saidsnatching some printed forms from 
the table. 'B is a little tradesmanclerkparsonartistauthor
any common thing you like.' 
'Yes' said Jonaslooking greedily over his shoulder. 'Well!' 
'B wants a loan. Say fifty or a hundred pound; perhaps more; no 
matter. B proposes self and two securities. B is accepted. Two 
securities give a bond. B assures his own life for double the 
amountand brings two friends' lives also--just to patronize the 
office. Ha haha! Is that a good notion?' 
'Ecodthat's a capital notion!' cried Jonas. 'But does he really 
do it?' 
'Do it!' repeated the chairman. 'B's hard upmy good fellowand 
will do anything. Don't you see? It's my idea.' 
'It does you honour. I'm blest if it don't' said Jonas. 
'I think it does' replied the chairman'and I'm proud to hear you 
say so. B pays the highest lawful interest--' 
'That an't much' interrupted Jonas. 
'Right! quite right!' retorted Tigg. 'And hard it is upon the part 
of the law that it should be so confoundedly down upon us 
unfortunate victims; when it takes such amazing good interest for 
itself from all its clients. But charity begins at homeand 
justice begins next door. Well! The law being hard upon uswe're 
not exactly soft upon B; for besides charging B the regular 
interestwe get B's premiumand B's friends' premiumsand we 
charge B for the bondandwhether we accept him or notwe charge 
B for "inquiries" (we keep a manat a pound a weekto make 'em)
and we charge B a trifle for the secretary; and in shortmy good 
fellowwe stick it into Bup hill and down daleand make a 
devilish comfortable little property out of him. Hahaha! I 
drive Bin point of fact' said Tiggpointing to the cabriolet
'and a thoroughbred horse he is. Hahaha!' 
Jonas enjoyed this joke very much indeed. It was quite in his 
peculiar vein of humour. 
'Then' said Tigg Montague'we grant annuities on the very lowest 
and most advantageous terms known in the money market; and the old 
ladies and gentlemen down in the country buy 'em. Hahaha! And 
we pay 'em too--perhaps. Hahaha!' 
'But there's responsibility in that' said Jonaslooking doubtful. 
'I take it all myself' said Tigg Montague. 'Here I am responsible 
for everything. The only responsible person in the establishment! 
Hahaha! Then there are the Life Assurances without loans; the 
common policies. Very profitablevery comfortable. Money down
you know; repeated every year; capital fun!' 
'But when they begin to fall in' observed Jonas. 'It's all very 
wellwhile the office is youngbut when the policies begin to 
die--that's what I am thinking of.' 
'At the first startmy dear fellow' said Montague'to show you 
how correct your judgment iswe had a couple of unlucky deaths that 
brought us down to a grand piano.' 
'Brought you down where?' cried Jonas. 
'I give you my sacred word of honour' said Tigg Montague'that I 
raised money on every other individual piece of propertyand was 
left alone in the world with a grand piano. And it was an uprightgrand 
tooso that I couldn't even sit upon it. Butmy dear 
fellowwe got over it. We granted a great many new policies that 
week (liberal allowance to solicitorsby the bye)and got over it 
in no time. Whenever they should chance to fall in heavilyas you 
very justly observe they mayone of these days; then--' he finished 
the sentence in so low a whisperthat only one disconnected word 
was audibleand that imperfectly. But it sounded like 'Bolt.' 
'Whyyou're as bold as brass!' said Jonasin the utmost 
admiration. 
'A man can well afford to be as bold as brassmy good fellowwhen 
he gets gold in exchange!' cried the chairmanwith a laugh that 
shook him from head to foot. 'You'll dine with me to-morrow?' 
'At what time?' asked Jonas. 
'Seven. Here's my card. Take the documents. I see you'll join 
us!' 
'I don't know about that' said Jonas. 'There's a good deal to be 
looked into first.' 
'You shall look' said Montagueslapping him on the back'into 
anything and everything you please. But you'll join usI am 
convinced. You were made for it. Bullamy!' 
Obedient to the summons and the little bellthe waistcoat appeared. 
Being charged to show Jonas outit went before; and the voice 
within it criedas usual'By your leave thereby your leave! 
Gentleman from the board-roomby your leave!' 
Mr Montague being left alonepondered for some momentsand then 
saidraising his voice: 
'Is Nadgett in the office there?' 
'Here he issir.' And he promptly entered; shutting the board-room 
door after himas carefully as if he were about to plot a murder. 
He was the man at a pound a week who made the inquiries. It was no 
virtue or merit in Nadgett that he transacted all his Anglo-Bengalee 
business secretly and in the closest confidence; for he was born to 
be a secret. He was a shortdried-upwithered old manwho seemed 
to have secreted his very blood; for nobody would have given him 
credit for the possession of six ounces of it in his whole body. 
How he lived was a secret; where he lived was a secret; and even 
what he waswas a secret. In his musty old pocket-book he carried 
contradictory cardsin some of which he called himself a coalmerchant
in others a wine-merchantin others a commission-agent
in others a collectorin others an accountant; as if he really 
didn't know the secret himself. He was always keeping appointments 
in the Cityand the other man never seemed to come. He would sit 
on 'Change for hourslooking at everybody who walked in and out
and would do the like at Garraway'sand in other business coffeerooms
in some of which he would be occasionally seen drying a very 
damp pocket-handkerchief before the fireand still looking over his 
shoulder for the man who never appeared. He was mildewed
threadbareshabby; always had flue upon his legs and back; and kept 
his linen so secretly buttoning up and wrapping overthat he might 
have had none--perhaps he hadn't. He carried one stained beaver 
glovewhich he dangled before him by the forefinger as he walked or 
sat; but even its fellow was a secret. Some people said he had been 
a bankruptothers that he had gone an infant into an ancient 
Chancery suit which was still dependingbut it was all a secret. 
He carried bits of sealing-wax and a hieroglyphical old copper seal 
in his pocketand often secretly indited letters in corner boxes of 
the trysting-places before mentioned; but they never appeared to go 
to anybodyfor he would put them into a secret place in his coat
and deliver them to himself weeks afterwardsvery much to his own 
surprisequite yellow. He was that sort of man that if he had died 
worth a million of moneyor had died worth twopence halfpenny
everybody would have been perfectly satisfiedand would have said 
it was just as they expected. And yet he belonged to a class; a 
race peculiar to the City; who are secrets as profound to one 
anotheras they are to the rest of mankind. 
'Mr Nadgett' said Montaguecopying Jonas Chuzzlewit's address upon 
a piece of paperfrom the card which was still lying on the table
'any information about this nameI shall be glad to have myself. 
Don't you mind what it is. Any you can scrape togetherbring me. 
Bring it to meMr Nadgett.' 
Nadgett put on his spectaclesand read the name attentively; then 
looked at the chairman over his glassesand bowed; then took them 
offand put them in their case; and then put the case in his 
pocket. When he had done sohe lookedwithout his spectaclesat 
the paper as it lay before himand at the same time produced his 
pocket-book from somewhere about the middle of his spine. Large as 
it wasit was very full of documentsbut he found a place for this 
one; and having clasped it carefullypassed it by a kind of solemn 
legerdemain into the same region as before. 
He withdrew with another bow and without a word; opening the door no 
wider than was sufficient for his passage out; and shutting it as 
carefully as before. The chairman of the board employed the rest of 
the morning in affixing his sign-manual of gracious acceptance to 
various new proposals of annuity-purchase and assurance. The 
Company was looking upfor they flowed in gayly. 
CHAPTER TWENTY-EIGHT 
MR MONTAGUE AT HOME. AND MR JONAS CHUZZLEWIT AT HOME 
There were many powerful reasons for Jonas Chuzzlewit being strongly 
prepossessed in favour of the scheme which its great originator had 
so boldly laid open to him; but three among them stood prominently 
forward. Firstlythere was money to be made by it. Secondlythe 
money had the peculiar charm of being sagaciously obtained at other 
people's cost. Thirdlyit involved much outward show of homage and 
distinction: a board being an awful institution in its own sphere
and a director a mighty man. 'To make a swingeing profithave a 
lot of chaps to order aboutand get into regular good society by 
one and the same meansand them so easy to one's handain't such a 
bad look-out' thought Jonas. The latter considerations were only 
second to his avarice; forconscious that there was nothing in his 
personconductcharacteror accomplishmentsto command respect
he was greedy of powerand wasin his heartas much a tyrant as 
any laureled conqueror on record. 
But he determined to proceed with cunning and cautionand to be 
very keen on his observation of the gentility of Mr Montague's 
private establishment. For it no more occurred to this shallow 
knave that Montague wanted him to be soor he wouldn't have invited 
him while his decision was yet in abeyancethan the possibility of 
that genius being able to overreach him in any waypierced through 
his self-deceit by the inlet of a needle's point. He had saidin 
the outsetthat Jonas was too sharp for him; and Jonaswho would 
have been sharp enough to believe him in nothing elsethough he had 
solemnly sworn itbelieved him in thatinstantly. 
It was with a faltering handand yet with an imbecile attempt at 
a swaggerthat he knocked at his new friend's door in Pall Mall 
when the appointed hour arrived. Mr Bailey quickly answered to 
the summons. He was not proud and was kindly disposed to take 
notice of Jonas; but Jonas had forgotten him. 
'Mr Montague at home?' 
'I should hope he wos at homeand waiting dinnertoo' said 
Baileywith the ease of an old acquaintance. 'Will you take your 
hat up along with youor leave it here?' 
Mr Jonas preferred leaving it there. 
'The hold nameI suppose?' said Baileywith a grin. 
Mr Jonas stared at him in mute indignation. 
'Whatdon't you remember hold mother Todgers's?' said Mr Bailey
with his favourite action of the knees and boots. 'Don't you 
remember my taking your name up to the young ladieswhen you came 
a-courting there? A reg'lar scaly old shopwarn't it? Times is 
changed ain't they. I say how you've growed!' 
Without pausing for any acknowledgement of this complimenthe 
ushered the visitor upstairsand having announced himretired 
with a private wink. 
The lower story of the house was occupied by a wealthy tradesman
but Mr Montague had all the upper portionand splendid lodging it 
was. The room in which he received Jonas was a spacious and elegant 
apartmentfurnished with extreme magnificence; decorated with 
picturescopies from the antique in alabaster and marblechina 
vaseslofty mirrorscrimson hangings of the richest silkgilded 
carvingsluxurious couchesglistening cabinets inlaid with 
precious woods; costly toys of every sort in negligent abundance. 
The only guests besides Jonas were the doctorthe resident 
Directorand two other gentlemenwhom Montague presented in due 
form. 
'My dear friendI am delighted to see you. Jobling you knowI 
believe?' 
'I think so' said the doctor pleasantlyas he stepped out of the 
circle to shake hands. 'I trust I have the honour. I hope so. My 
dear sirI see you well. Quite well? THAT'S well!' 
'Mr Wolf' said Montagueas soon as the doctor would allow him to 
introduce the two others'Mr Chuzzlewit. Mr PipMr Chuzzlewit.' 
Both gentlemen were exceedingly happy to have the honour of making 
Mr Chuzzlewit's acquaintance. The doctor drew Jonas a little apart
and whispered behind his hand: 
'Men of the worldmy dear sir--men of the world. Hem! Mr Wolf 
--literary character--you needn't mention it--remarkably clever 
weekly paper--ohremarkably clever! Mr Pip--theatrical man-capital 
man to know--ohcapital man!' 
'Well!' said Wolffolding his arms and resuming a conversation 
which the arrival of Jonas had interrupted. 'And what did Lord 
Nobley say to that?' 
'Why' returned Pipwith an oath. 'He didn't know what to say. 
Samesirif he wasn't as mute as a poker. But you know what a 
good fellow Nobley is!' 
'The best fellow in the world!' cried Wolf. 'It as only last week 
that Nobley said to meBy Gad, Wolf, I've got a living to bestow, 
and if you had but been brought up at the University, strike me 
blind if I wouldn't have made a parson of you!' 
'Just like him' said Pip with another oath. 'And he'd have done 
it!' 
'Not a doubt of it' said Wolf. 'But you were going to tell us--' 
'Ohyes!' cried Pip. 'To be sure. So I was. At first he was 
dumb--sewn updeadsir--but after a minute he said to the Duke
Here's Pip. Ask Pip. Pip's our mutual friend. Ask Pip. He 
knows.Damme!said the DukeI appeal to Pip then. Come, Pip. 
Bandy or not bandy? Speak out!Bandy, your Grace, by the Lord 
Harry!said I. "Haha!" laughed the Duke. "To be sure she is. 
BravoPip. Well said Pip. I wish I may die if you're not a trump
Pip. Pop me down among your fashionable visitors whenever I'm in 
townPip." And so I doto this day.' 
The conclusion of this story gave immense satisfactionwhich was in 
no degree lessened by the announcement of dinner. Jonas repaired to 
the dining roomalong with his distinguished hostand took his 
seat at the board between that individual and his friend the doctor. 
The rest fell into their places like men who were well accustomed to 
the house; and dinner was done full justice toby all parties. 
It was a good a one as money (or creditno matter which) could 
produce. The disheswinesand fruits were of the choicest kind. 
Everything was elegantly served. The plate was gorgeous. Mr Jonas 
was in the midst of a calculation of the value of this item alone
when his host disturbed him. 
'A glass of wine?' 
'Oh!' said Jonaswho had had several glasses already. 'As much of 
that as you like! It's too good to refuse.' 
'Well saidMr Chuzzlewit!' cried Wolf. 
'Tom Gagupon my soul!' said Pip. 
'Positivelyyou knowthat's--hahaha!' observed the doctor
laying down his knife and fork for one instantand then going to work 
againpell-mell--'that's epigrammatic; quite!' 
'You're tolerably comfortableI hope?' said Tiggapart to Jonas. 
'Oh! You needn't trouble your head about ME' he replied'Famous!' 
'I thought it best not to have a party' said Tigg. 'You feel 
that?' 
'Whywhat do you call this?' retorted Jonas. 'You don't mean to 
say you do this every daydo you?' 
'My dear fellow' said Montagueshrugging his shoulders'every day 
of my lifewhen I dine at home. This is my common style. It was 
of no use having anything uncommon for you. You'd have seen through 
it. "You'll have a party?" said Crimple. "NoI won't I said. 
he shall take us in the rough!" 
'And pretty smoothtooecod!' said Jonasglancing round the 
table. 'This don't cost a trifle.' 
'Whyto be candid with youit does not' returned the other. 'But 
I like this sort of thing. It's the way I spend my money.' 
Jonas thrust his tongue into his cheekand said'Was it?' 
'When you join usyou won't get rid of your share of the profits in 
the same way?' said Tigg. 
'Quite different' retorted Jonas. 
'Welland you're right' said Tiggwith friendly candour. 'You 
needn't. It's not necessary. One of a Company must do it to hold the 
connection together; butas I take a pleasure in itthat's my 
department. You don't mind dining expensively at another man's 
expenseI hope?' 
'Not a bit' said Jonas. 
'Then I hope you'll often dine with me?' 
'Ah!' said Jonas'I don't mind. On the contrary.' 
'And I'll never attempt to talk business to you over wineI take my 
oath' said Tigg. 'Oh deepdeepdeep of you this morning! I must 
tell 'em that. They're the very men to enjoy it. Pipmy good 
fellowI've a splendid little trait to tell you of my friend 
Chuzzlewit who is the deepest dog I know; I give you my sacred word 
of honour he is the deepest dog I knowPip!' 
Pip swore a frightful oath that he was sure of it already; and the 
anecdotebeing toldwas received with loud applauseas an 
incontestable proof of Mr Jonas's greatness. Pipin a natural 
spirit of emulationthen related some instances of his own depth; 
and Wolf not to be left behind-handrecited the leading points of 
one or two vastly humorous articles he was then preparing. These 
lucubrations being of what he called 'a warm complexion' were 
highly approved; and all the company agreed that they were full of 
point. 
'Men of the worldmy dear sir' Jobling whispered to Jonas; 
'thorough men of the world! To a professional person like myself 
it's quite refreshing to come into this kind of society. It's not 
only agreeable--and nothing CAN be more agreeable--but it's 
philosophically improving. It's charactermy dear sir; character!' 
It is so pleasant to find real merit appreciatedwhatever its 
particular walk in life may bethat the general harmony of the 
company was doubtless much promoted by their knowing that the two 
men of the world were held in great esteem by the upper classes of 
societyand by the gallant defenders of their country in the army 
and navybut particularly the former. The least of their stories 
had a colonel in it; lords were as plentiful as oaths; and even the 
Blood Royal ran in the muddy channel of their personal recollections. 
'Mr Chuzzlewit didn't know himI'm afraid' said Wolfin reference 
to a certain personage of illustrious descentwho had previously 
figured in a reminiscence. 
'No' said Tigg. 'But we must bring him into contact with this sort 
of fellows.' 
'He was very fond of literature' observed Wolf. 
'Was he?' said Tigg. 
'Ohyes; he took my paper regularly for many years. Do you know he 
said some good things now and then? He asked a certain Viscount
who's a friend of mine--Pip knows him--"What's the editor's name
what's the editor's name?" "Wolf." "Wolfeh? Sharp biterWolf. 
We must keep the Wolf from the dooras the proverb says. It was 
very well. And being complimentaryI printed it.' 
'But the Viscount's the boy!' cried Pipwho invented a new oath for 
the introduction of everything he said. 'The Viscount's the boy! He 
came into our place one night to take Her home; rather sluedbut 
not much; and saidWhere's Pip? I want to see Pip. Produce 
Pip!--"What's the rowmy lord?"--"Shakspeare's an infernal humbug
Pip! What's the good of ShakspearePip? I never read him. What 
the devil is it all aboutPip? There's a lot of feet in 
Shakspeare's versebut there an't any legs worth mentioning in 
Shakspeare's playsare therePip? JulietDesdemonaLady 
Macbethand all the rest of 'emwhatever their names aremight as 
well have no legs at allfor anything the audience know about it
Pip. Whyin that respect they're all Miss Biffins to the audience
Pip. I'll tell you what it is. What the people call dramatic 
poetry is a collection of sermons. Do I go to the theatre to be 
lectured? NoPip. If I wanted thatI'd go to church. What's the 
legitimate object of the dramaPip? Human nature. What are legs? 
Human nature. Then let us have plenty of leg piecesPipand I'll 
stand by youmy buck!" and I am proud to say' added Pip'that he 
DID stand by mehandsomely.' 
The conversation now becoming generalMr Jonas's opinion was 
requested on this subject; and as it was in full accordance with the 
sentiments of Mr Pipthat gentleman was extremely gratified. 
Indeedboth himself and Wolf had so much in common with Jonasthat 
they became very amicable; and between their increasing friendship 
and the fumes of wineJonas grew talkative. 
It does not follow in the case of such a person that the more 
talkative he becomesthe more agreeable he is; on the contraryhis 
merits show to most advantageperhapsin silence. Having no 
meansas he thoughtof putting himself on an equality with the 
restbut by the assertion of that depth and sharpness on which he 
had been complimentedJonas exhibited that faculty to the utmost; 
and was so deep and sharp that he lost himself in his own 
profundityand cut his fingers with his own edge-tools. 
It was especially in his way and character to exhibit his quality at 
his entertainer's expense; and while he drank of his sparkling 
winesand partook of his monstrous profusionto ridicule the 
extravagance which had set such costly fare before him. Even at 
such a wanton boardand in such more than doubtful companythis 
might have proved a disagreeable experimentbut that Tigg and 
Crimplestudying to understand their man thoroughlygave him what 
license he chose: knowing that the more he tookthe better for 
their purpose. And thus while the blundering cheat--gull that he 
wasfor all his cunning--thought himself rolled up hedgehog 
fashionwith his sharpest points towards themhe wasin fact
betraying all his vulnerable parts to their unwinking watchfulness. 
Whether the two gentlemen who contributed so much to the doctor's 
philosophical knowledge (by the waythe doctor slipped off quietly
after swallowing his usual amount of wine) had had their cue 
distinctly from the hostor took it from what they saw and heard
they acted their parts very well. They solicited the honour of 
Jonas's better acquaintance; trusted that they would have the 
pleasure of introducing him into that elevated society in which he 
was so well qualified to shine; and informed himin the most 
friendly manner that the advantages of their respective 
establishments were entirely at his control. In a wordthey said 
'Be one of us!' And Jonas said he was infinitely obliged to them
and he would be; adding within himselfthat so long as they 'stood 
treat' there was nothing he would like better. 
After coffeewhich was served in the drawing-roomthere was a 
short interval (mainly sustained by Pip and Wolf) of conversation; 
rather highly spiced and strongly seasoned. When it flaggedJonas 
took it up and showed considerable humour in appraising the 
furniture; inquiring whether such an article was paid for; what it 
had originally costand the like. In all of thishe wasas he 
considereddesperately hard on Montagueand very demonstrative of 
his own brilliant parts. 
Some Champagne Punch gave a new though temporary fillip to the 
entertainments of the evening. For after leading to some noisy 
proceedingswhich were not intelligibleit ended in the unsteady 
departure of the two gentlemen of the worldand the slumber of Mr 
Jonas upon one of the sofas. 
As he could not be made to understand where he wasMr Bailey 
received orders to call a hackney-coachand take him home; which 
that young gentleman roused himself from an uneasy sleep in the 
hall to do. It being now almost three o'clock in the morning. 
'Is he hookeddo you think?' whispered Crimpleas himself and 
partner stood in a distant part of the room observing him as he lay. 
'Aye!' said Tiggin the same tone. 'With a strong ironperhaps. 
Has Nadgett been here to-night?' 
'Yes. I went out to him. Hearing you had companyhe went away.' 
'Why did he do that?' 
'He said he would come back early in the morningbefore you were 
out of bed.' 
'Tell them to be sure and send him up to my bedside. Hush! Here's 
the boy! Now Mr Baileytake this gentleman homeand see him safely 
in. Hallohere! Why Chuzzlewithalloa!' 
They got him upright with some difficultyand assisted him 
downstairswhere they put his hat upon his headand tumbled him 
into the coach. Mr Baileyhaving shut him inmounted the box 
beside the coachmanand smoked his cigar with an air of particular 
satisfaction; the undertaking in which he was engaged having a free 
and sporting character about itwhich was quite congenial to his 
taste. 
Arriving in due time at the house in the CityMr Bailey jumped 
downand expressed the lively nature of his feelings in a knock the 
like of which had probably not been heard in that quarter since the 
great fire of London. Going out into the road to observe the effect 
of this feathe saw that a dim lightpreviously visible at an 
upper windowhad been already removed and was travelling 
downstairs. To obtain a foreknowledge of the bearer of this 
taperMr Bailey skipped back to the door againand put his eye 
to the keyhole. 
It was the merry one herself. But sadlystrangely altered! So 
careworn and dejectedso faltering and full of fear; so fallen
humbledbroken; that to have seen her quiet in her coffin would 
have been a less surprise. 
She set the light upon a bracket in the halland laid her hand upon 
her heart; upon her eyes; upon her burning head. Then she came on 
towards the door with such a wild and hurried step that Mr Bailey 
lost his self-possessionand still had his eye where the keyhole 
had beenwhen she opened it. 
'Aha!' said Mr Baileywith an effort. 'There you areare you? 
What's the matter? Ain't you wellthough?' 
In the midst of her astonishment as she recognized him in his 
altered dressso much of her old smile came back to her face that 
Bailey was glad. But next moment he was sorry againfor he saw 
tears standing in her poor dim eyes. 
'Don't be frightened' said Bailey. 'There ain't nothing the matter. 
I've brought home Mr Chuzzlewit. He ain't ill. He's only a little 
swipeyyou know.' Mr Bailey reeled in his bootsto express 
intoxication. 
'Have you come from Mrs Todgers's?' asked Merrytrembling. 
'Todgers'sbless you! No!' cried Mr Bailey. 'I haven't got nothin
to do with Todgers's. I cut that connection long ago. He's been adining 
with my governor at the west-end. Didn't you know he was acoming 
to see us?' 
'No' she saidfaintly. 
'Oh yes! We're heavy swells tooand so I tell you. Don't you come 
outa-catching cold in your head. I'll wake him!' Mr Bailey 
expressing in his demeanour a perfect confidence that he could carry 
him in with easeif necessaryopened the coach doorlet down the 
stepsand giving Jonas a shakecried 'We've got homemy flower! 
Tumble upthen!' 
He was so far recovered as to be able to respond to this appealand 
to come stumbling out of the coach in a heapto the great hazard of 
Mr Bailey's person. When he got upon the pavementMr Bailey first 
butted at him in frontand then dexterously propped him up behind; 
and having steadied him by these meanshe assisted him into the 
house. 
'You go up first with the light' said Bailey to Mr Jonas'and 
we'll foller. Don't tremble so. He won't hurt you. When I've had 
a drop too muchI'm full of good natur myself.' 
She went on before; and her husband and Baileyby dint of tumbling 
over each otherand knocking themselves aboutgot at last into the 
sitting-room above stairswhere Jonas staggered into a seat. 
'There!' said Mr Bailey. 'He's all right now. You ain't got 
nothing to cry forbless you! He's righter than a trivet!' 
The ill-favoured brutewith dress awryand sodden faceand 
rumpled hairsat blinking and droopingand rolling his idiotic 
eyes aboutuntilbecoming conscious by degreeshe recognized his 
wifeand shook his fist at her. 
'Ah!' cried Mr Baileysquaring his arms with a sudden emotion. 
'Whatyou're wiciousare you? Would you though! You'd better 
not!' 
'Praygo away!' said Merry. 'Baileymy good boygo home. 
Jonas!' she said; timidly laying her hand upon his shoulderand 
bending her head down over him. 'Jonas!' 
'Look at her!' cried Jonaspushing her off with his extended arm. 
'Look here! Look at her! Here's a bargain for a man!' 
'Dear Jonas!' 
'Dear Devil!' he repliedwith a fierce gesture. 'You're a pretty 
clog to be tied to a man for lifeyou mewlingwhite-faced cat! 
Get out of my sight!' 
'I know you don't mean itJonas. You wouldn't say it if you were 
sober.' 
With affected gayety she gave Bailey a piece of moneyand again 
implored him to be gone. Her entreaty was so earnestthat the boy 
had not the heart to stay there. But he stopped at the bottom of 
the stairsand listened. 
'I wouldn't say it if I was sober!' retorted Jonas. 'You know 
better. Have I never said it when I was sober?' 
'Oftenindeed!' she answered through her tears. 
'Hark ye!' cried Jonasstamping his foot upon the ground. 'You 
made me bear your pretty humours onceand ecod I'll make you bear 
mine now. I always promised myself I would. I married you that I 
might. I'll know who's masterand who's slave!' 
'Heaven knows I am obedient!' said the sobbing girl. 'Much more so 
than I ever thought to be!' 
Jonas laughed in his drunken exultation. 'What! you're finding it 
outare you! Patienceand you will in time! Griffins have claws
my girl. There's not a pretty slight you ever put upon menor a 
pretty trick you ever played menor a pretty insolence you ever 
showed methat I won't pay back a hundred-fold. What else did I 
marry you for? YOUtoo!' he saidwith coarse contempt. 
It might have softened him--indeed it might--to hear her turn a 
little fragment of a song he used to say he liked; tryingwith 
a heart so fullto win him back. 
'Oho!' he said'you're deafare you? You don't hear meeh? So 
much the better for you. I hate you. I hate myselffor having
been fool enough to strap a pack upon my back for the pleasure of 
treading on it whenever I choose. Whythings have opened to me
nowso that I might marry almost where I liked. But I wouldn't; 
I'd keep single. I ought to be singleamong the friends I know. 
Instead of thathere I amtied like a log to you. Pah! Why do 
you show your pale face when I come home? Am I never to forget you?' 
'How late it is!' she said cheerfullyopening the shutter after an 
interval of silence. 'Broad dayJonas!' 
'Broad day or black nightwhat do I care!' was the kind rejoinder. 
'The night passed quicklytoo. I don't mind sitting upat all.' 
'Sit up for me againif you dare!' growled Jonas. 
'I was reading' she proceeded'all night long. I began when you 
went outand read till you came home again. The strangest story
Jonas! And truethe book says. I'll tell it you to-morrow.' 
'Truewas it?' said Jonasdoggedly. 
'So the book says.' 
'Was there anything in itabout a man's being determined to conquer 
his wifebreak her spiritbend her tempercrush all her humours 
like so many nut-shells--kill herfor aught I know?' said Jonas. 
'No. Not a word' she answered quickly. 
'Oh!' he returned. 'That'll be a true story thoughbefore long; 
for all the book says nothing about it. It's a lying bookI see. 
A fit book for a lying reader. But you're deaf. I forgot that.' 
There was another interval of silence; and the boy was stealing 
awaywhen he heard her footstep on the floorand stopped. She 
went up to himas it seemedand spoke lovingly; saying that she 
would defer to him in everything and would consult his wishes and 
obey themand they might be very happy if he would be gentle with 
her. He answered with an imprecationand--
Not with a blow? Yes. Stern truth against the base-souled villain; 
with a blow. 
No angry cries; no loud reproaches. Even her weeping and her sobs 
were stifled by her clinging round him. She only saidrepeating 
it in agony of hearthow could hecould hecould he--and lost 
utterance in tears. 
Oh womanGod beloved in old Jerusalem! The best among us need 
deal lightly with thy faultsif only for the punishment thy nature 
will endurein bearing heavy evidence against uson the Day of 
Judgment! 
CHAPTER TWENTY-NINE 
IN WHICH SOME PEOPLE ARE PRECOCIOUSOTHERS PROFESSIONALAND OTHERS 
MYSTERIOUS; ALL IN THEIR SEVERAL WAYS 
It may have been the restless remembrance of what he had seen and 
heard overnightor it may have been no deeper mental operation than 
the discovery that he had nothing to dowhich caused Mr Baileyon 
the following afternoonto feel particularly disposed for agreeable 
societyand prompted him to pay a visit to his friend Poll 
Sweedlepipe. 
On the little bell giving clamorous notice of a visitor's approach 
(for Mr Bailey came in at the door with a lungeto get as much 
sound out of the bell as possible)Poll Sweedlepipe desisted from 
the contemplation of a favourite owland gave his young friend 
hearty welcome. 
'Whyyou look smarter by day' said Poll'than you do by candlelight. 
I never see such a tight young dasher.' 
'Reether soPolly. How's our fair friendSairah?' 
'Ohshe's pretty well' said Poll. 'She's at home.' 
'There's the remains of a fine woman about SairahPoll' observed 
Mr Baileywith genteel indifference. 
'Oh!' thought Poll'he's old. He must be very old!' 
'Too much crumbyou know' said Mr Bailey; 'too fatPoll. But 
there's many worse at her time of life' 
'The very owl's a-opening his eyes!' thought Poll. 'I don't wonder 
at it in a bird of his opinions.' 
He happened to have been sharpening his razorswhich were lying 
open in a rowwhile a huge strop dangled from the wall. Glancing 
at these preparationsMr Bailey stroked his chinand a thought 
appeared to occur to him. 
'Poll' he said'I ain't as neat as I could wish about the gills. 
Being hereI may as well have a shaveand get trimmed close.' 
The barber stood aghast; but Mr Bailey divested himself of his neckcloth
and sat down in the easy shaving chair with all the dignity 
and confidence in life. There was no resisting his manner. The 
evidence of sight and touch became as nothing. His chin was as 
smooth as a new-laid egg or a scraped Dutch cheese; but Poll 
Sweedlepipe wouldn't have ventured to denyon affidavitthat he 
had the beard of a Jewish rabbi. 
'Go WITH the grainPollall roundplease' said Mr Bailey
screwing up his face for the reception of the lather. 'You may do 
wot you like with the bits of whisker. I don't care for 'em.' 
The meek little barber stood gazing at him with the brush and soapdish 
in his handstirring them round and round in a ludicrous 
uncertaintyas if he were disabled by some fascination from 
beginning. At last he made a dash at Mr Bailey's cheek. Then he 
stopped againas if the ghost of a beard had suddenly receded from 
his touch; but receiving mild encouragement from Mr Baileyin the 
form of an adjuration to 'Go in and win' he lathered him 
bountifully. Mr Bailey smiled through the suds in his satisfaction. 
'Gently over the stonesPoll. Go a tip-toe over the pimples!' 
Poll Sweedlepipe obeyedand scraped the lather off again with 
particular care. Mr Bailey squinted at every successive dabas it 
was deposited on a cloth on his left shoulderand seemedwith a 
microscopic eyeto detect some bristles in it; for he murmured more 
than once 'Reether redder than I could wishPoll.' The operation 
being concludedPoll fell back and stared at him againwhile Mr 
Baileywiping his face on the jack-towelremarked'that arter 
late hours nothing freshened up a man so much as a easy shave.' 
He was in the act of tying his cravat at the glasswithout his 
coatand Poll had wiped his razorready for the next customer
when Mrs Gampcoming downstairslooked in at the shop-door to 
give the barber neighbourly good day. Feeling for her unfortunate 
situationin having conceived a regard for himself which it was not 
in the nature of things that he could returnMr Bailey hastened to 
soothe her with words of kindness. 
'Hallo!' he said'Sairah! I needn't ask you how you've been this 
long timefor you're in full bloom. All a-blowin and a-growin; 
ain't shePolly?' 
'Whydrat the Bragian boldness of that boy!' cried Mrs Gampthough 
not displeased. 'What a imperent young sparrow it is! I wouldn't be 
that creetur's mother not for fifty pound!' 
Mr Bailey regarded this as a delicate confession of her attachment
and a hint that no pecuniary gain could recompense her for its being 
rendered hopeless. He felt flattered. Disinterested affection is 
always flattering. 
'Ahdear!' moaned Mrs Gampsinking into the shaving chair'that 
there blessed BullMr Sweedlepipehas done his wery best to conker 
me. Of all the trying inwalieges in this walley of the shadder
that one beats 'em black and blue.' 
It was the practice of Mrs Gamp and her friends in the profession
to say this of all the easy customers; as having at once the effect 
of discouraging competitors for officeand accounting for the 
necessity of high living on the part of the nurses. 
'Talk of constitooshun!' Mrs Gamp observed. 'A person's 
constitooshun need be made of bricks to stand it. Mrs Harris jestly 
says to mebut t'other dayOh! Sairey Gamp,she sayshow is it 
done?Mrs Harris, ma'am,I says to herwe gives no trust 
ourselves, and puts a deal o'trust elsevere; these is our religious 
feelins, and we finds 'em answer.Sairey,says Mrs Harrissech 
is life. Vich likeways is the hend of all things!' 
The barber gave a soft murmuras much as to say that Mrs Harris's 
remarkthough perhaps not quite so intelligible as could be desired 
from such an authoritydid equal honour to her head and to her 
heart. 
'And here' continued Mrs Gamp'and here am I a-goin twenty mile in 
distanton as wentersome a chance as ever any one as monthlied ever 
runI do believe. Says Mrs Harriswith a woman's and a mother's 
art a-beatin in her human breastshe says to meYou're not agoin, 
Sairey, Lord forgive you!Why am I not a-goin, Mrs Harris?
I replies. "Mrs Gill I says, wos never wrong with six; and is it 
likelyma'am--I ast you as a mother--that she will begin to be 
unreg'lar now? Often and often have I heerd him say I says to Mrs 
Harris, meaning Mr Gill, that he would back his wife agen Moore's 
almanackto name the very day and hourfor ninepence farden. IS 
it likelyma'am I says, as she will fail this once?" Says Mrs 
Harris "Noma'amnot in the course of natur. But she says, the 
tears a-fillin in her eyes, you knows much betterer than mewith 
your experiengehow little puts us out. A Punch's show she says, 
a chimbley sweepa newfundlan dogor a drunkin man a-comin round 
the corner sharp may do it." So it mayMr Sweedlepipes' said Mrs 
Gamp'there's no deniging of it; and though my books is clear for a 
full weekI takes a anxious art along with meI do assure you
sir.' 
'You're so full of zealyou see!' said Poll. 'You worrit yourself 
so.' 
'Worrit myself!' cried Mrs Gampraising her hands and turning up 
her eyes. 'You speak truth in thatsirif you never speaks no 
more 'twixt this and when two Sundays jines together. I feels the 
sufferins of other people more than I feels my ownthough no one 
mayn't suppoge it. The families I've had' said Mrs Gamp'if all 
was knowd and credit done where credit's doowould take a week to 
chris'en at Saint Polge's fontin!' 
'Where's the patient goin?' asked Sweedlepipe. 
'Into Har'fordshirewhich is his native air. But native airs nor 
native graces neither' Mrs Gamp observed'won't bring HIM round.' 
'So bad as that?' inquired the wistful barber. 'Indeed!' 
Mrs Gamp shook her head mysteriouslyand pursed up her lips. 
'There's fevers of the mind' she said'as well as body. You may 
take your slime drafts till you files into the air with 
efferwescence; but you won't cure that.' 
'Ah!' said the barberopening his eyesand putting on his raven 
aspect; 'Lor!' 
'No. You may make yourself as light as any gash balloon' said Mrs 
Gamp. 'But talkwhen you're wrong in your head and when you're in 
your sleepof certain things; and you'll be heavy in your mind.' 
'Of what kind of things now?' inquired Pollgreedily biting his 
nails in his great interest. 'Ghosts?' 
Mrs Gampwho perhaps had been already tempted further than she had 
intended to goby the barber's stimulating curiositygave a sniff 
of uncommon significanceand saidit didn't signify. 
'I'm a-goin down with my patient in the coach this arternoon' she 
proceeded. 'I'm a-goin to stop with him a day or sotill he gets a 
country nuss (drat them country nussesmuch the orkard hussies 
knows about their bis'ness); and then I'm a-comin back; and that's 
my troubleMr Sweedlepipes. But I hope that everythink'll only go 
on right and comfortable as long as I'm away; perwisin whichas Mrs 
Harris saysMrs Gill is welcome to choose her own time; all times 
of the day and night bein' equally the same to me.' 
During the progress of the foregoing remarkswhich Mrs Gamp had 
addressed exclusively to the barberMr Bailey had been tying his 
cravatgetting on his coatand making hideous faces at himself in 
the glass. Being now personally addressed by Mrs Gamphe turned 
roundand mingled in the conversation. 
'You ain't been in the CityI supposesirsince we was all three 
there together' said Mrs Gamp'at Mr Chuzzlewit's?' 
'YesI haveSairah. I was there last night.' 
'Last night!' cried the barber. 
'YesPollreether so. You can call it this morningif you like 
to be particular. He dined with us.' 
'Who does that young Limb mean by "hus?"' said Mrs Gampwith most 
impatient emphasis. 
'Me and my GovernorSairah. He dined at our house. We wos very 
merrySairah. So much sothat I was obliged to see him home in a 
hackney coach at three o'clock in the morning.' It was on the tip of 
the boy's tongue to relate what had followed; but remembering how 
easily it might be carried to his master's earsand the repeated 
cautions he had had from Mr Crimple 'not to chatter' he checked 
himself; addingonly'She was sitting upexpecting him.' 
'And all things considered' said Mrs Gamp sharply'she might have 
know'd better than to go a-tirin herself outby doin' anythink of 
the sort. Did they seem pretty pleasant togethersir?' 
'Ohyes' answered Bailey'pleasant enough.' 
'I'm glad on it' said Mrs Gampwith a second sniff of significance. 
'They haven't been married so long' observed Pollrubbing his 
hands'that they need be anything but pleasant yet awhile.' 
'No' said Mrs Gampwith a third significant signal. 
'Especially' pursued the barber'when the gentleman bears such a 
character as you gave him.' 
'I speak; as I findMr Sweedlepipes' said Mrs Gamp. 'Forbid it 
should be otherways! But we never knows wot's hidden in each other's 
hearts; and if we had glass winders therewe'd need keep the 
shetters upsome on usI do assure you!' 
'But you don't mean to say--' Poll Sweedlepipe began. 
'No' said Mrs Gampcutting him very short'I don't. Don't think 
I do. The torters of the Imposition shouldn't make me own I did. 
All I says is' added the good womanrising and folding her shawl 
about her'that the Bull's a-waitinand the precious moments is 
a-flyin' fast.' 
The little barber having in his eager curiosity a great desire to 
see Mrs Gamp's patientproposed to Mr Bailey that they should 
accompany her to the Bulland witness the departure of the coach. 
That young gentleman assentingthey all went out together. 
Arriving at the tavernMrs Gamp (who was full-dressed for the 
journeyin her latest suit of mourning) left her friends to 
entertain themselves in the yardwhile she ascended to the sick 
roomwhere her fellow-labourer Mrs Prig was dressing the invalid. 
He was so wastedthat it seemed as if his bones would rattle when 
they moved him. His cheeks were sunkenand his eyes unnaturally 
large. He lay back in the easy-chair like one more dead than 
living; and rolled his languid eyes towards the door when Mrs Gamp 
appearedas painfully as if their weight alone were burdensome to 
move. 
'And how are we by this time?' Mrs Gamp observed. 'We looks 
charming.' 
'We looks a deal charminger than we arethen' returned Mrs Priga 
little chafed in her temper. 'We got out of bed back'ardsI think
for we're as cross as two sticks. I never see sich a man. He 
wouldn't have been washedif he'd had his own way.' 
'She put the soap in my mouth' said the unfortunate patient feebly. 
'Couldn't you keep it shut then?' retorted Mrs Prig. 'Who do you 
think's to wash one featerand miss anotherand wear one's eyes 
out with all manner of fine work of that descriptionfor half-acrown 
a day! If you wants to be tittivatedyou must pay accordin'.' 
'Oh dear me!' cried the patient'oh deardear!' 
'There!' said Mrs Prig'that's the way he's been a-conductin of 
himselfSarahever since I got him out of bedif you'll believe 
it.' 
'Instead of being grateful' Mrs Gamp observed'for all our little 
ways. Ohfie for shamesirfie for shame!' 
Here Mrs Prig seized the patient by the chinand began to rasp his 
unhappy head with a hair-brush. 
'I suppose you don't like thatneither!' she observedstopping to 
look at him. 
It was just possible that he didn't for the brush was a specimen of 
the hardest kind of instrument producible by modern art; and his 
very eyelids were red with the friction. Mrs Prig was gratified to 
observe the correctness of her suppositionand said triumphantly 
'she know'd as much.' 
When his hair was smoothed down comfortably into his eyesMrs Prig 
and Mrs Gamp put on his neckerchief; adjusting his shirt collar with 
great nicetyso that the starched points should also invade those 
organsand afflict them with an artificial ophthalmia. His 
waistcoat and coat were next arranged; and as every button was 
wrenched into a wrong button-holeand the order of his boots was 
reversedhe presented on the whole rather a melancholy appearance. 
'I don't think it's right' said the poor weak invalid. 'I feel as 
if I was in somebody else's clothes. I'm all on one side; and 
you've made one of my legs shorter than the other. There's a bottle 
in my pocket too. What do you make me sit upon a bottle for?' 
'Deuce take the man!' cried Mrs Gampdrawing it forth. 'If he 
ain't been and got my night-bottle here. I made a little cupboard 
of his coat when it hung behind the doorand quite forgot it
Betsey. You'll find a ingun or twoand a little tea and sugar in 
his t'other pocketmy dearif you'll just be good enough to take 
'em out.' 
Betsey produced the property in questiontogether with some other 
articles of general chandlery; and Mrs Gamp transferred them to her 
own pocketwhich was a species of nankeen pannier. Refreshment 
then arrived in the form of chops and strong ale for the ladiesand 
a basin of beef-tea for the patient; which refection was barely at 
an end when John Westlock appeared. 
'Up and dressed!' cried Johnsitting down beside him. 'That's 
brave. How do you feel?' 
'Much better. But very weak.' 
'No wonder. You have had a hard bout of it. But country airand 
change of scene' said John'will make another man of you! WhyMrs 
Gamp' he addedlaughingas he kindly arranged the sick man's 
garments'you have odd notions of a gentleman's dress!' 
'Mr Lewsome an't a easy gent to get into his clothessir' Mrs Gamp 
replied with dignity; 'as me and Betsey Prig can certify afore the 
Lord Mayor and Uncommon Counsellorsif needful!' 
John at that moment was standing close in front of the sick manin 
the act of releasing him from the torture of the collars before 
mentionedwhen he said in a whisper: 
'Mr Westlock! I don't wish to be overheard. I have something very 
particular and strange to say to you; something that has been a 
dreadful weight on my mindthrough this long illness.' 
Quick in all his motionsJohn was turning round to desire the women 
to leave the room; when the sick man held him by the sleeve. 
'Not now. I've not the strength. I've not the courage. May I tell 
it when I have? May I write itif I find that easier and better?' 
'May you!' cried John. 'WhyLewsomewhat is this!' 
'Don't ask me what it is. It's unnatural and cruel. Frightful to 
think of. Frightful to tell. Frightful to know. Frightful to have 
helped in. Let me kiss your hand for all your goodness to me. Be 
kinder stilland don't ask me what it is!' 
At firstJohn gazed at him in great surprise; but remembering how 
very much reduced he wasand how recently his brain had been on 
fire with feverbelieved that he was labouring under some imaginary 
horror or despondent fancy. For farther information on this point
he took an opportunity of drawing Mrs Gamp asidewhile Betsey Prig 
was wrapping him in cloaks and shawlsand asked her whether he was 
quite collected in his mind. 
'Oh bless youno!' said Mrs Gamp. 'He hates his nusses to this 
hour. They always does itsir. It's a certain sign. If you could 
have heerd the poor dear soul a-findin fault with me and Betsey 
Prignot half an hour agoyou would have wondered how it is we 
don't get fretted to the tomb.' 
This almost confirmed John in his suspicion; sonot taking what had 
passed into any serious accounthe resumed his former cheerful 
mannerand assisted by Mrs Gamp and Betsey Prigconducted Lewsome 
downstairs to the coach; just then upon the point of starting. 
Poll Sweedlepipe was at the door with his arms tight folded and his 
eyes wide openand looked on with absorbing interestwhile the 
sick man was slowly moved into the vehicle. His bony hands and 
haggard face impressed Poll wonderfully; and he informed Mr Bailey 
in confidencethat he wouldn't have missed seeing him for a pound. 
Mr Baileywho was of a different constitutionremarked that he 
would have stayed away for five shillings. 
It was a troublesome matter to adjust Mrs Gamp's luggage to her 
satisfaction; for every package belonging to that lady had the 
inconvenient property of requiring to be put in a boot by itself
and to have no other luggage near iton pain of actions at law for 
heavy damages against the proprietors of the coach. The umbrella 
with the circular patch was particularly hard to be got rid ofand 
several times thrust out its battered brass nozzle from improper 
crevices and chinksto the great terror of the other passengers. 
Indeedin her intense anxiety to find a haven of refuge for this 
chattelMrs Gamp so often moved itin the course of five minutes
that it seemed not one umbrella but fifty. At length it was lost
or said to be; and for the next five minutes she was face to face 
with the coachmango wherever he mightprotesting that it should 
be 'made good' though she took the question to the House of 
Commons. 
At lasther bundleand her pattensand her basketand 
everything elsebeing disposed ofshe took a friendly leave of 
Poll and Mr Baileydropped a curtsey to John Westlockand parted 
as from a cherished member of the sisterhood with Betsey Prig. 
'Wishin you lots of sicknessmy darlin creetur' Mrs Gamp observed
'and good places. It won't be longI hopeafore we works 
togetheroff and onagainBetsey; and may our next meetin' be at 
a large family'swhere they all takes it reg'larone from another
turn and turn aboutand has it business-like.' 
'I don't care how soon it is' said Mrs Prig; 'nor how many weeks it 
lasts.' 
Mrs Gamp with a reply in a congenial spirit was backing to the 
coachwhen she came in contact with a lady and gentleman who were 
passing along the footway. 
'Take caretake care here!' cried the gentleman. 'Halloo! 
My dear! Whyit's Mrs Gamp!' 
'WhatMr Mould!' exclaimed the nurse. 'And Mrs Mould! who would 
have thought as we should ever have a meetin' hereI'm sure!' 
'Going out of townMrs Gamp?' cried Mould. 'That's unusualisn't 
it?' 
'It IS unusualsir' said Mrs Gamp. 'But only for a day or two at 
most. The gent' she whispered'as I spoke about.' 
'Whatin the coach!' cried Mould. 'The one you thought of 
recommending? Very odd. My dearthis will interest you. The 
gentleman that Mrs Gamp thought likely to suit us is in the coach
my love.' 
Mrs Mould was greatly interested. 
'Heremy dear. You can stand upon the door-step' said Mould'and 
take a look at him. Ha! There he is. Where's my glass? Oh! all 
right. I've got it. Do you see himmy dear?' 
'Quite plain' said Mrs Mould. 
'Upon my lifeyou knowthis is a very singular circumstance' said 
Mouldquite delighted. 'This is the sort of thingmy dearI 
wouldn't have missed on any account. It tickles one. It's 
interesting. It's almost a little playyou know. Ah! There 
he is! To be sure. Looks poorlyMrs M.don't he?' 
Mrs Mould assented. 
'He's coming our wayperhapsafter all' said Mould. 'Who knows! 
I feel as if I ought to show him some little attentionreally. He 
don't seem a stranger to me. I'm very much inclined to move my hat
my dear.' 
'He's looking hard this way' said Mrs Mould. 
'Then I will!' cried Mould. 'How d'ye dosir! I wish you good day. 
Ha! He bows too. Very gentlemanly. Mrs Gamp has the cards in her 
pocketI have no doubt. This is very singularmy dear--and very 
pleasant. I am not superstitiousbut it really seems as if one was 
destined to pay him those little melancholy civilities which belong 
to our peculiar line of business. There can be no kind of objection 
to your kissing your hand to himmy dear.' 
Mrs Mould did so. 
'Ha!' said Mould. 'He's evidently gratified. Poor fellow! I am 
quite glad you did itmy love. Bye byeMrs Gamp!' waving his 
hand. 'There he goes; there he goes!' 
So he did; for the coach rolled off as the words were spoken. Mr 
and Mrs Mouldin high good humourwent their merry way. Mr Bailey 
retired with Poll Sweedlepipe as soon as possible; but some little 
time elapsed before he could remove his friend from the ground
owing to the impression wrought upon the barber's nerves by Mrs 
Prigwhom he pronouncedin admiration of her beardto be a woman 
of transcendent charms. 
When the light cloud of bustle hanging round the coach was thus 
dispersedNadgett was seen in the darkest box of the Bull coffeeroom
looking wistfully up at the clock--as if the man who never 
appeared were a little behind his time. 
CHAPTER THIRTY 
PROVES THAT CHANGES MAY BE RUNG IN THE BEST-REGULATED FAMILIESAND 
THAT MR PECKNIFF WAS A SPECIAL HAND AT A TRIPLE-BOB-MAJOR 
As the surgeon's first care after amputating a limbis to take up 
the arteries the cruel knife has severedso it is the duty of this 
historywhich in its remorseless course has cut from the 
Pecksniffian trunk its right armMercyto look to the parent stem
and see how in all its various ramifications it got on without her. 
And first of Mr Pecksniff it may be observedthat having provided 
for his youngest daughter that choicest of blessingsa tender and 
indulgent husband; and having gratified the dearest wish of his 
parental heart by establishing her in life so happily; he renewed 
his youthand spreading the plumage of his own bright conscience
felt himself equal to all kinds of flights. It is customary with 
fathers in stage-playsafter giving their daughters to the men of 
their heartsto congratulate themselves on having no other business 
on their hands but to die immediately; though it is rarely found 
that they are in a hurry to do it. Mr Pecksniffbeing a father of 
a more sage and practical classappeared to think that his 
immediate business was to live; and having deprived himself of one 
comfortto surround himself with others. 
But however much inclined the good man was to be jocose and playful
and in the garden of his fancy to disport himself (if one may say 
so) like an architectural kittenhe had one impediment constantly 
opposed to him. The gentle Cherrystung by a sense of slight and 
injurywhich far from softening down or wearing outrankled and 
festered in her heart--the gentle Cherry was in flat rebellion. 
She waged fierce war against her dear papashe led her parent 
what is usually calledfor want of a better figure of speech
the life of a dog. But never did that dog livein kennel
stable-yardor housewhose life was half as hard as Mr Pecksniff's 
with his gentle child. 
The father and daughter were sitting at their breakfast. Tom had 
retiredand they were alone. Mr Pecksniff frowned at first; but 
having cleared his browlooked stealthily at his child. Her nose 
was very red indeedand screwed up tightwith hostile preparation. 
'Cherry' cried Mr Pecksniff'what is amiss between us? My child
why are we disunited?' 
Miss Pecksniff's answer was scarcely a response to this gush of 
affectionfor it was simply'BotherPa!' 
'Bother!' repeated Mr Pecksniffin a tone of anguish. 
'Oh! 'tis too latePa' said his daughtercalmly 'to talk to me 
like this. I know what it meansand what its value is.' 
'This is hard!' cried Mr Pecksniffaddressing his breakfast-cup. 
'This is very hard! She is my child. I carried her in my arms when 
she wore shapeless worsted shoes--I might saymufflers--many years 
ago!' 
'You needn't taunt me with thatPa' retorted Cherrywith a 
spiteful look. 'I am not so many years older than my sister
eitherthough she IS married to your friend!' 
'Ahhuman naturehuman nature! Poor human nature!' said Mr 
Pecksniffshaking his head at human natureas if he didn't belong 
to it. 'To think that this discord should arise from such a cause! 
oh dearoh dear!' 
'From such a cause indeed!' cried Cherry. 'State the real cause
Paor I'll state it myself. Mind! I will!' 
Perhaps the energy with which she said this was infectious. However 
that may beMr Pecksniff changed his tone and the expression of his 
face for one of angerif not downright violencewhen he said: 
'You will! you have. You did yesterday. You do always. You have 
no decency; you make no secret of your temper; you have exposed 
yourself to Mr Chuzzlewit a hundred times.' 
'Myself!' cried Cherrywith a bitter smile. 'Oh indeed! I don't 
mind that.' 
'Metoothen' said Mr Pecksniff. 
His daughter answered with a scornful laugh. 
'And since we have come to an explanationCharity' said Mr 
Pecksniffrolling his head portentously'let me tell you that I 
won't allow it. None of your nonsenseMiss! I won't permit it to 
be done.' 
'I shall do' said Charityrocking her chair backwards and 
forwardsand raising her voice to a high pitch'I shall doPa
what I please and what I have done. I am not going to be crushed in 
everythingdepend upon it. I've been more shamefully used than 
anybody ever was in this world' here she began to cry and sob'and 
may expect the worse treatment from youI know. But I don't care 
for that. NoI don't!' 
Mr Pecksniff was made so desperate by the loud tone in which she 
spokethatafter looking about him in frantic uncertainty for some 
means of softening ithe rose and shook her until the ornamental 
bow of hair upon her head nodded like a plume. She was so very much 
astonished by this assaultthat it really had the desired effect. 
'I'll do it again!' cried Mr Pecksniffas he resumed his seat and 
fetched his breath'if you dare to talk in that loud manner. How 
do you mean about being shamefully used? If Mr Jonas chose your 
sister in preference to youwho could help itI should wish to 
know? What have I to do with it?' 
'Wasn't I made a convenience of? Weren't my feelings trifled with? 
Didn't he address himself to me first?' sobbed Cherryclasping her 
hands; 'and ohgood graciousthat I should live to be shook!' 
'You'll live to be shaken again' returned her parent'if you drive 
me to that means of maintaining the decorum of this humble roof. 
You surprise me. I wonder you have not more spirit. If Mr Jonas 
didn't care for youhow could you wish to have him?' 
'I wish to have him!' exclaimed Cherry. 'I wish to have himPa!' 
'Then what are you making all this piece of work for' retorted her 
father'if you didn't wish to have him?' 
'Because I was treated with duplicity' said Cherry; 'and because my 
own sister and my own father conspired against me. I am not angry 
with HER' said Cherry; looking much more angry than ever. 'I pity 
her. I'm sorry for her. I know the fate that's in store for her
with that Wretch.' 
'Mr Jonas will survive your calling him a wretchmy childI dare 
say' said Mr Pecksniffwith returning resignation; 'but call him 
what you like and make an end of it.' 
'Not an endPa' said Charity. 'Nonot an end. That's not the 
only point on which we're not agreed. I won't submit to it. It's 
better you should know that at once. No; I won't submit to it 
indeedPa! I am not quite a fooland I am not blind. All I have 
got to say isI won't submit to it.' 
Whatever she meantshe shook Mr Pecksniff now; for his lame attempt 
to seem composed was melancholy in the last degree. His anger 
changed to meeknessand his words were mild and fawning. 
'My dear' he said; 'if in the short excitement of an angry moment I 
resorted to an unjustifiable means of suppressing a little outbreak 
calculated to injure you as well as myself--it's possible I may have 
done so; perhaps I did--I ask your pardon. A father asking pardon 
of his child' said Mr Pecksniff'isI believea spectacle to 
soften the most rugged nature.' 
But it didn't at all soften Miss Pecksniff; perhaps because her 
nature was not rugged enough. On the contraryshe persisted in 
sayingover and over againthat she wasn't quite a fooland 
wasn't blindand wouldn't submit to it. 
'You labour under some mistakemy child!' said Mr Pecksniff. 'but 
I will not ask you what it is; I don't desire to know. Nopray!' 
he addedholding out his hand and colouring again'let us avoid 
the subjectmy dearwhatever it is!' 
'It's quite right that the subject should be avoided between us
sir' said Cherry. 'But I wish to be able to avoid it altogether
and consequently must beg you to provide me with a home.' 
Mr Pecksniff looked about the roomand said'A homemy child!' 
'Another homepapa' said Cherrywith increasing stateliness 
'Place me at Mrs Todgers's or somewhereon an independent footing; 
but I will not live hereif such is to be the case.' 
It is possible that Miss Pecksniff saw in Mrs Todgers's a vision of 
enthusiastic menpining to fall in adoration at her feet. It is 
possible that Mr Pecksniffin his new-born juvenilitysawin the 
suggestion of that same establishmentan easy means of relieving 
himself from an irksome charge in the way of temper and 
watchfulness. It is undoubtedly a fact that in the attentive ears 
of Mr Pecksniffthe proposition did not sound quite like the dismal 
knell of all his hopes. 
But he was a man of great feeling and acute sensibility; and he 
squeezed his pocket-handkerchief against his eyes with both hands-as 
such men always doespecially when they are observed. 'One of 
my birds' Mr Pecksniff said'has left me for the stranger's 
breast; the other would take wing to Todgers's! Wellwellwhat am 
I? I don't know what I amexactly. Never mind!' 
Even this remarkmade more pathetic perhaps by his breaking down in 
the middle of ithad no effect upon Charity. She was grimrigid
and inflexible. 
'But I have ever' said Mr Pecksniff'sacrificed my children's 
happiness to my own--I mean my own happiness to my children's--and I 
will not begin to regulate my life by other rules of conduct now. 
If you can be happier at Mrs Todgers's than in your father's house
my deargo to Mrs Todgers's! Do not think of memy girl!' said Mr 
Pecksniff with emotion; 'I shall get on pretty wellno doubt.' 
Miss Charitywho knew he had a secret pleasure in the contemplation 
of the proposed changesuppressed her ownand went on to negotiate 
the terms. His views upon this subject were at first so very 
limited that another differenceinvolving possibly another shaking
threatened to ensue; but by degrees they came to something like an 
understandingand the storm blew over. IndeedMiss Charity's idea 
was so agreeable to boththat it would have been strange if they 
had not come to an amicable agreement. It was soon arranged between 
them that the project should be triedand that immediately; and 
that Cherry's not being welland needing change of sceneand 
wishing to be near her sistershould form the excuse for her 
departure to Mr Chuzzlewit and Maryto both of whom she had pleaded 
indisposition for some time past. These premises agreed onMr 
Pecksniff gave her his blessingwith all the dignity of a selfdenying 
man who had made a hard sacrificebut comforted himself 
with the reflection that virtue is its own reward. Thus they were 
reconciled for the first time since that not easily forgiven night
when Mr Jonasrepudiating the elderhad confessed his passion for 
the younger sisterand Mr Pecksniff had abetted him on moral 
grounds. 
But how happened it--in the name of an unexpected addition to that 
small familythe Seven Wonders of the Worldwhatever and wherever 
they may behow happened it--that Mr Pecksniff and his daughter 
were about to part? How happened it that their mutual relations 
were so greatly altered? Why was Miss Pecksniff so clamorous to 
have it understood that she was neither blind nor foolishand she 
wouldn't bear it? It is not possible that Mr Pecksniff had any 
thoughts of marrying again; or that his daughterwith the sharp eye 
of a single womanfathomed his design! 
Let us inquire into this. 
Mr Pecksniffas a man without reproachfrom whom the breath of 
slander passed like common breath from any other polished surface
could afford to do what common men could not. He knew the purity of 
his own motives; and when he had a motive worked at it as only a 
very good man (or a very bad one) can. Did he set before himself 
any strong and palpable motives for taking a second wife? Yes; and 
not one or two of thembut a combination of very many. 
Old Martin Chuzzlewit had gradually undergone an important change. 
Even upon the night when he made such an ill-timed arrival at Mr 
Pecksniff's househe was comparatively subdued and easy to deal 
with. This Mr Pecksniff attributedat the timeto the effect his 
brother's death had had upon him. But from that hour his character 
seemed to have modified by regular degreesand to have softened 
down into a dull indifference for almost every one but Mr Pecksniff. 
His looks were much the same as everbut his mind was singularly 
altered. It was not that this or that passion stood out in brighter 
or in dimmer hues; but that the colour of the whole man was faded. 
As one trait disappearedno other trait sprung up to take its 
place. His senses dwindled too. He was less keen of sight; was 
deaf sometimes; took little notice of what passed before him; and 
would be profoundly taciturn for days together. The process of this 
alteration was so easy that almost as soon as it began to be 
observed it was complete. But Mr Pecksniff saw it firstand having 
Anthony Chuzzlewit fresh in his recollectionsaw in his brother 
Martin the same process of decay. 
To a gentleman of Mr Pecksniff's tendernessthis was a very 
mournful sight. He could not but foresee the probability of his 
respected relative being made the victim of designing personsand 
of his riches falling into worthless hands. It gave him so much 
pain that he resolved to secure the property to himself; to keep bad 
testamentary suitors at a distance; to wall up the old gentlemanas 
it werefor his own use. By little and littlethereforehe began 
to try whether Mr Chuzzlewit gave any promise of becoming an 
instrument in his handsand finding that he didand indeed that he 
was very supple in his plastic fingershe made it the business of 
his life--kind soul!--to establish an ascendancy over him; and every 
little test he durst apply meeting with a success beyond his hopes
he began to think he heard old Martin's cash already chinking in his 
own unworldly pockets. 
But when Mr Pecksniff pondered on this subject (asin his zealous 
wayhe often did)and thought with an uplifted heart of the train 
of circumstances which had delivered the old gentleman into his 
hands for the confusion of evil-doers and the triumph of a righteous 
naturehe always felt that Mary Graham was his stumbling-block. 
Let the old man say what he wouldMr Pecksniff knew he had a strong 
affection for her. He knew that he showed it in a thousand little 
ways; that he liked to have her near himand was never quite at 
ease when she was absent long. That he had ever really sworn to 
leave her nothing in his willMr Pecksniff greatly doubted. That 
even if he hadthere were many ways by which he could evade the 
oath and satisfy his conscienceMr Pecksniff knew. That her 
unprotected state was no light burden on the old man's mindhe also 
knewfor Mr Chuzzlewit had plainly told him so. 'Then' said Mr 
Pecksniff 'what if I married her! What' repeated Mr Pecksniff
sticking up his hair and glancing at his bust by Spoker; 'what if
making sure of his approval first--he is nearly imbecilepoor 
gentleman--I married her!' 
Mr Pecksniff had a lively sense of the Beautiful; especially in 
women. His manner towards the sex was remarkable for its 
insinuating character. It is recorded of him in another part of 
these pagesthat he embraced Mrs Todgers on the smallest 
provocation; and it was a way he had; it was a part of the gentle 
placidity of his disposition. Before any thought of matrimony was 
in his mindhe had bestowed on Mary many little tokens of his 
spiritual admiration. They had been indignantly receivedbut that 
was nothing. Trueas the idea expanded within himthese had 
become too ardent to escape the piercing eye of Cherrywho read his 
scheme at once; but he had always felt the power of Mary's charms. 
So Interest and Inclination made a pairand drew the curricle of Mr 
Pecksniff's plan. 
As to any thought of revenging himself on young Martin for his 
insolent expressions when they partedand of shutting him out still 
more effectually from any hope of reconciliation with his 
grandfatherMr Pecksniff was much too meek and forgiving to be 
suspected of harbouring it. As to being refused by MaryMr 
Pecksniff was quite satisfied that in her position she could never 
hold out if he and Mr Chuzzlewit were both against her. As to 
consulting the wishes of her heart in such a caseit formed no part 
of Mr Pecksniff's moral code; for he knew what a good man he was
and what a blessing he must be to anybody. His daughter having 
broken the iceand the murder being out between themMr Pecksniff 
had now only to pursue his design as cleverly as he couldand by 
the craftiest approaches. 
'Wellmy good sir' said Mr Pecksniffmeeting old Martin in the 
gardenfor it was his habit to walk in and out by that wayas the 
fancy took him; 'and how is my dear friend this delicious morning?' 
'Do you mean me?' asked the old man. 
'Ah!' said Mr Pecksniff'one of his deaf daysI see. Could I mean 
any one elsemy dear sir?' 
'You might have meant Mary' said the old man. 
'Indeed I might. Quite true. I might speak of her as a deardear 
friendI hope?' observed Mr Pecksniff. 
'I hope so' returned old Martin. 'I think she deserves it.' 
'Think!' cried Pecksniff'thinkMr Chuzzlewit!' 
'You are speakingI know' returned Martin'but I don't catch what 
you say. Speak up!' 
'He's getting deafer than a flint' said Pecksniff. 'I was saying
my dear sirthat I am afraid I must make up my mind to part with 
Cherry.' 
'What has SHE been doing?' asked the old man. 
'He puts the most ridiculous questions I ever heard!' muttered Mr 
Pecksniff. 'He's a child to-day.' After which he addedin a mild 
roar: 'She hasn't been doing anythingmy dear friend.' 
'What are you going to part with her for?' demanded Martin. 
'She hasn't her health by any means' said Mr Pecksniff. 'She 
misses her sistermy dear sir; they doted on each other from the 
cradle. And I think of giving her a run in London for a change. A 
good long runsirif I find she likes it.' 
'Quite right' cried Martin. 'It's judicious.' 
'I am glad to hear you say so. I hope you mean to bear me company 
in this dull partwhile she's away?' said Mr Pecksniff. 
'I have no intention of removing from it' was Martin's answer. 
'Then why' said Mr Pecksnifftaking the old man's arm in hisand 
walking slowly on; 'Whymy good sircan't you come and stay with 
me? I am sure I could surround you with more comforts--lowly as is 
my Cot--than you can obtain at a village house of entertainment. 
And pardon meMr Chuzzlewitpardon me if I say that such a place 
as the Dragonhowever well-conducted (andas far as I knowMrs 
Lupin is one of the worthiest creatures in this county)is hardly a 
home for Miss Graham.' 
Martin mused a moment; and then saidas he shook him by the hand: 
'No. You're quite right; it is not.' 
'The very sight of skittles' Mr Pecksniff eloquently pursued'is 
far from being congenial to a delicate mind.' 
'It's an amusement of the vulgar' said old Martin'certainly.' 
'Of the very vulgar' Mr Pecksniff answered. 'Then why not bring 
Miss Graham heresir? Here is the house. Here am I alone in it
for Thomas Pinch I do not count as any one. Our lovely friend shall 
occupy my daughter's chamber; you shall choose your own; we shall 
not quarrelI hope!' 
'We are not likely to do that' said Martin. 
Mr Pecksniff pressed his hand. 'We understand each othermy dear 
sirI see!--I can wind him' he thoughtwith exultation'round my 
little finger.' 
'You leave the recompense to me?' said the old manafter a minute's 
silence. 
'Oh! do not speak of recompense!' cried Pecksniff. 
'I say' repeated Martinwith a glimmer of his old obstinacy'you 
leave the recompense to me. Do you?' 
'Since you desire itmy good sir.' 
'I always desire it' said the old man. 'You know I always desire 
it. I wish to pay as I goeven when I buy of you. Not that I do 
not leave a balance to be settled one dayPecksniff.' 
The architect was too much overcome to speak. He tried to drop a 
tear upon his patron's handbut couldn't find one in his dry 
distillery. 
'May that day be very distant!' was his pious exclamation. 'Ah
sir! If I could say how deep an interest I have in you and yours! 
I allude to our beautiful young friend.' 
'True' he answered. 'True. She need have some one interested in 
her. I did her wrong to train her as I did. Orphan though she was
she would have found some one to protect her whom she might have 
loved again. When she was a childI pleased myself with the 
thought that in gratifying my whim of placing her between me and 
false-hearted knavesI had done her a kindness. Now she is a 
womanI have no such comfort. She has no protector but herself. I 
have put her at such odds with the worldthat any dog may bark or 
fawn upon her at his pleasure. Indeed she stands in need of 
delicate consideration. Yes; indeed she does!' 
'If her position could be altered and definedsir?' Mr Pecksniff 
hinted. 
'How can that be done? Should I make a seamstress of heror a 
governess?' 
'Heaven forbid!' said Mr Pecksniff. 'My dear sirthere are other 
ways. There are indeed. But I am much excited and embarrassed at 
presentand would rather not pursue the subject. I scarcely know 
what I mean. Permit me to resume it at another time.' 
'You are not unwell?' asked Martin anxiously. 
'Nono!' cried Pecksniff. 'No. Permit me to resume it at another 
time. I'll walk a little. Bless you!' 
Old Martin blessed him in returnand squeezed his hand. As he 
turned awayand slowly walked towards the houseMr Pecksniff stood 
gazing after him; being pretty well recovered from his late emotion
whichin any other manone might have thought had been assumed as 
a machinery for feeling Martin's pulse. The change in the old man 
found such a slight expression in his figurethat Mr Pecksniff
looking after himcould not help saying to himself: 
'And I can wind him round my little finger! Only think!' 
Old Martin happening to turn his headsaluted him affectionately. 
Mr Pecksniff returned the gesture. 
'Whythe time was' said Mr Pecksniff; 'and not long agowhen he 
wouldn't look at me! How soothing is this change. Such is the 
delicate texture of the human heart; so complicated is the process 
of its being softened! Externally he looks the sameand I can wind 
him round my little finger. Only think!' 
In sober truththere did appear to be nothing on which Mr Pecksniff 
might not have ventured with Martin Chuzzlewit; for whatever Mr 
Pecksniff said or did was rightand whatever he advised was done. 
Martin had escaped so many snares from needy fortune-huntersand 
had withered in the shell of his suspicion and distrust for so many 
yearsbut to become the good man's tool and plaything. With the 
happiness of this conviction painted on his facethe architect went 
forth upon his morning walk. 
The summer weather in his bosom was reflected in the breast of 
Nature. Through deep green vistas where the boughs arched overhead
and showed the sunlight flashing in the beautiful perspective; 
through dewy fern from which the startled hares leaped upand fled 
at his approach; by mantled poolsand fallen treesand down in 
hollow placesrustling among last year's leaves whose scent woke 
memory of the past; the placid Pecksniff strolled. By meadow gates 
and hedges fragrant with wild roses; and by thatched-roof cottages 
whose inmates humbly bowed before him as a man both good and wise; 
the worthy Pecksniff walked in tranquil meditation. The bee passed 
onwardhumming of the work he had to do; the idle gnats for ever 
going round and round in one contracting and expanding ringyet 
always going on as fast as hedanced merrily before him; the colour 
of the long grass came and wentas if the light clouds made it 
timid as they floated through the distant air. The birdsso many 
Pecksniff consciencessang gayly upon every branch; and Mr 
Pecksniff paid HIS homage to the day by ruminating on his projects 
as he walked along. 
Chancing to tripin his abstractionover the spreading root of an 
old treehe raised his pious eyes to take a survey of the ground 
before him. It startled him to see the embodied image of his 
thoughts not far ahead. Mary herself. And alone. 
At first Mr Pecksniff stopped as if with the intention of avoiding 
her; but his next impulse was to advancewhich he did at a brisk 
pace; caroling as he went so sweetly and with so much innocence 
that he only wanted feathers and wings to be a bird. 
Hearing notes behind hernot belonging to the songsters of the 
groveshe looked round. Mr Pecksniff kissed his handand was at 
her side immediately. 
'Communing with nature?' said Mr Pecksniff. 'So am I.' 
She said the morning was so beautiful that she had walked further 
than she intendedand would return. Mr Pecksniff said it was 
exactly his caseand he would return with her. 
'Take my armsweet girl' said Mr Pecksniff. 
Mary declined itand walked so very fast that he remonstrated. 
'You were loitering when I came upon you' Mr Pecksniff said. 'Why 
be so cruel as to hurry now? You would not shun mewould you?' 
'YesI would' she answeredturning her glowing cheek indignantly 
upon him'you know I would. Release meMr Pecksniff. Your touch 
is disagreeable to me.' 
His touch! What? That chaste patriarchal touch which Mrs Todgers-surely 
a discreet lady--had endurednot only without complaintbut 
with apparent satisfaction! This was positively wrong. Mr Pecksniff 
was sorry to hear her say it. 
'If you have not observed' said Mary'that it is sopray take 
assurance from my lipsand do notas you are a gentleman
continue to offend me.' 
'Wellwell!' said Mr Pecksniffmildly'I feel that I might 
consider this becoming in a daughter of my ownand why should I 
object to it in one so beautiful! It's harsh. It cuts me to the 
soul' said Mr Pecksniff; 'but I cannot quarrel with youMary.' 
She tried to say she was sorry to hear itbut burst into tears. Mr 
Pecksniff now repeated the Todgers performance on a comfortable 
scaleas if he intended it to last some time; and in his disengaged 
handcatching hersemployed himself in separating the fingers with 
his ownand sometimes kissing themas he pursued the conversation 
thus: 
'I am glad we met. I am very glad we met. I am able now to ease my 
bosom of a heavy loadand speak to you in confidence. Mary' said 
Mr Pecksniff in his tenderest tonesindeed they were so very 
tender that he almost squeaked: 'My soul! I love you!' 
A fantastic thingthat maiden affectation! She made believe to 
shudder. 
'I love you' said Mr Pecksniff'my gentle lifewith a devotion 
which is quite surprisingeven to myself. I did suppose that the 
sensation was buried in the silent tomb of a ladyonly second to 
you in qualities of the mind and form; but I find I am mistaken.' 
She tried to disengage her handbut might as well have tried to 
free herself from the embrace of an affectionate boa-constrictor; if 
anything so wily may be brought into comparison with Pecksniff. 
'Although I am a widower' said Mr Pecksniffexamining the rings 
upon her fingersand tracing the course of one delicate blue vein 
with his fat thumb'a widower with two daughtersstill I am not 
encumberedmy love. One of themas you knowis married. The 
otherby her own desirebut with a viewI will confess--why not? 
--to my altering my conditionis about to leave her father's house. 
I have a characterI hope. People are pleased to speak well of me
I think. My person and manner are not absolutely those of a 
monsterI trust. Ah! naughty Hand!' said Mr Pecksniff
apostrophizing the reluctant prize'why did you take me prisoner? 
Gogo!' 
He slapped the hand to punish it; but relentingfolded it in his 
waistcoat to comfort it again. 
'Blessed in each otherand in the society of our venerable friend
my darling' said Mr Pecksniff'we shall be happy. When he is 
wafted to a haven of restwe will console each other. My pretty 
primrosewhat do you say?' 
'It is possible' Mary answeredin a hurried manner'that I ought 
to feel grateful for this mark of your confidence. I cannot say 
that I dobut I am willing to suppose you may deserve my thanks. 
Take them; and pray leave meMr Pecksniff.' 
The good man smiled a greasy smile; and drew her closer to him. 
'Praypray release meMr Pecksniff. I cannot listen to your 
proposal. I cannot receive it. There are many to whom it may be 
acceptablebut it is not so to me. As an act of kindness and an 
act of pityleave me!' 
Mr Pecksniff walked on with his arm round her waistand her hand in 
hisas contentedly as if they had been all in all to each other
and were joined in the bonds of truest love. 
'If you force me by your superior strength' said Marywho finding 
that good words had not the least effect upon himmade no further 
effort to suppress her indignation; 'if you force me by your 
superior strength to accompany you backand to be the subject of 
your insolence upon the wayyou cannot constrain the expression of 
my thoughts. I hold you in the deepest abhorrence. I know your 
real nature and despise it.' 
'Nono' said Mr Pecksniffsweetly. 'Nonono!' 
'By what arts or unhappy chances you have gained your influence over 
Mr ChuzzlewitI do not know' said Mary; 'it may be strong enough 
to soften even thisbut he shall know of thistrust mesir.' 
Mr Pecksniff raised his heavy eyelids languidlyand let them fall 
again. It was saying with perfect coolness'Ayeaye! Indeed!' 
'Is it not enough' said Mary'that you warp and change his nature
adapt his every prejudice to your bad endsand harden a heart 
naturally kind by shutting out the truth and allowing none but false 
and distorted views to reach it; is it not enough that you have the 
power of doing thisand that you exercise itbut must you also be 
so coarseso crueland so cowardly to me?' 
Still Mr Pecksniff led her calmly onand looked as mild as any lamb 
that ever pastured in the fields. 
'Will nothing move yousir?' cried Mary. 
'My dear' observed Mr Pecksniffwith a placid leer'a habit of 
self-examinationand the practice of--shall I say of virtue?' 
'Of hypocrisy' said Mary. 
'Nono' resumed Mr Pecksniffchafing the captive hand 
reproachfully'of virtue--have enabled me to set such guards upon 
myselfthat it is really difficult to ruffle me. It is a curious 
factbut it is difficultdo you knowfor any one to ruffle me. 
And did she think' said Mr Pecksniffwith a playful tightening of 
his grasp 'that SHE could! How little did she know his heart!' 
Littleindeed! Her mind was so strangely constituted that she would 
have preferred the caresses of a toadan adderor a serpent--nay
the hug of a bear--to the endearments of Mr Pecksniff. 
'Comecome' said that good gentleman'a word or two will set this 
matter rightand establish a pleasant understanding between us. I 
am not angrymy love.' 
'YOU angry!' 
'No' said Mr Pecksniff'I am not. I say so. Neither are you.' 
There was a beating heart beneath his hand that told another story 
though. 
'I am sure you are not' said Mr Pecksniff: 'and I will tell you 
why. There are two Martin Chuzzlewitsmy dear; and your carrying 
your anger to one might have a serious effect--who knows!--upon the 
other. You wouldn't wish to hurt himwould you?' 
She trembled violentlyand looked at him with such a proud disdain 
that he turned his eyes away. No doubt lest he should be offended 
with her in spite of his better self. 
'A passive quarrelmy love' said Mr Pecksniff'may be changed 
into an active oneremember. It would be sad to blight even a 
disinherited young man in his already blighted prospects; but how 
easy to do it. Ahhow easy! HAVE I influence with our venerable 
frienddo you think? Wellperhaps I have. Perhaps I have.' 
He raised his eyes to hers; and nodded with an air of banter that 
was charming. 
'No' he continuedthoughtfully. 'Upon the wholemy sweetif I 
were you I'd keep my secret to myself. I am not at all sure--very 
far from it--that it would surprise our friend in any wayfor he 
and I have had some conversation together only this morningand he 
is anxiousvery anxiousto establish you in some more settled 
manner. But whether he was surprised or not surprisedthe 
consequence of your imparting it might be the same. Martin junior 
might suffer severely. I'd have compassion on Martin juniordo you 
know?' said Mr Pecksniffwith a persuasive smile. 'Yes. He don't 
deserve itbut I would.' 
She wept so bitterly nowand was so much distressedthat he 
thought it prudent to unclasp her waistand hold her only by the 
hand. 
'As to our own share in the precious little mystery' said Mr 
Pecksniff'we will keep it to ourselvesand talk of it between 
ourselvesand you shall think it over. You will consentmy love; 
you will consentI know. Whatever you may think; you will. I seem 
to remember to have heard--I really don't know whereor how'--he 
addedwith bewitching frankness'that you and Martin juniorwhen 
you were childrenhad a sort of childish fondness for each other. 
When we are marriedyou shall have the satisfaction of thinking 
that it didn't last to ruin himbut passed away to do him good; for 
we'll see then what we can do to put some trifling help in Martin 
junior's way. HAVE I any influence with our venerable friend? 
Well! Perhaps I have. Perhaps I have.' 
The outlet from the wood in which these tender passages occurred
was close to Mr Pecksniff's house. They were now so near it that he 
stoppedand holding up her little fingersaid in playful accents
as a parting fancy: 
'Shall I bite it?' 
Receiving no reply he kissed it instead; and then stooping down
inclined his flabby face to hers--he had a flabby facealthough he 
WAS a good man--and with a blessingwhich from such a source was 
quite enough to set her up in lifeand prosper her from that time 
forth permitted her to leave him. 
Gallantry in its true sense is supposed to ennoble and dignify a 
man; and love has shed refinements on innumerable Cymons. But Mr 
Pecksniff--perhaps because to one of his exalted nature these were 
mere grossnesses--certainly did not appear to any unusual advantage
now that he was left alone. On the contraryhe seemed to be shrunk 
and reduced; to be trying to hide himself within himself; and to be 
wretched at not having the power to do it. His shoes looked too 
large; his sleeve looked too long; his hair looked too limp; his 
features looked too mean; his exposed throat looked as if a halter 
would have done it good. For a minute or twoin facthe was hot
and paleand meanand shyand slinkingand consequently not at 
all Pecksniffian. But after thathe recovered himselfand went 
home with as beneficent an air as if he had been the High Priest of 
the summer weather. 
'I have arranged to goPapa' said Charity'to-morrow.' 
'So soonmy child!' 
'I can't go too soon' said Charity'under the circumstances. I 
have written to Mrs Todgers to propose an arrangementand have 
requested her to meet me at the coachat all events. You'll be 
quite your own master nowMr Pinch!' 
Mr Pecksniff had just gone out of the roomand Tom had just come 
into it. 
'My own master!' repeated Tom. 
'Yesyou'll have nobody to interfere with you' said Charity. 'At 
least I hope you won't. Hem! It's a changing world.' 
'What! are YOU going to be marriedMiss Pecksniff?' asked Tom in 
great surprise. 
'Not exactly' faltered Cherry. 'I haven't made up my mind to be. 
I believe I could beif I choseMr Pinch.' 
'Of course you could!' said Tom. And he said it in perfect good 
faith. He believed it from the bottom of his heart. 
'No' said Cherry'I am not going to be married. Nobody isthat I 
know of. Hem! But I am not going to live with Papa. I have my 
reasonsbut it's all a secret. I shall always feel very kindly 
towards youI assure youfor the boldness you showed that night. 
As to you and meMr PinchWE part the best friends possible!' 
Tom thanked her for her confidenceand for her friendshipbut 
there was a mystery in the former which perfectly bewildered him. 
In his extravagant devotion to the familyhe had felt the loss of 
Merry more than any one but those who knew that for all the slights 
he underwent he thought his own demerits were to blamecould 
possibly have understood. He had scarcely reconciled himself to 
that when here was Charity about to leave them. She had grown up
as it wereunder Tom's eye. The sisters were a part of Pecksniff
and a part of Tom; items in Pecksniff's goodnessand in Tom's 
service. He couldn't bear it; not two hours' sleep had Tom that 
nightthrough dwelling in his bed upon these dreadful changes. 
When morning dawned he thought he must have dreamed this piece of 
ambiguity; but noon going downstairs he found them packing trunks 
and cording boxesand making other preparations for Miss Charity's 
departurewhich lasted all day long. In good time for the evening 
coachMiss Charity deposited her housekeeping keys with much 
ceremony upon the parlour table; took a gracious leave of all the 
house; and quitted her paternal roof--a blessing for which the 
Pecksniffian servant was observed by some profane persons to be 
particularly active in the thanksgiving at church next Sunday. 
CHAPTER THIRTY-ONE 
MR PINCH IS DISCHARGED OF A DUTY WHICH HE NEVER OWED TO ANYBODYAND 
MR PECKSNIFF DISCHARGES A DUTY WHICH HE OWES TO SOCIETY 
The closing words of the last chapter lead naturally to the 
commencement of thisits successor; for it has to do with a church. 
With the churchso often mentioned heretoforein which Tom Pinch 
played the organ for nothing. 
One sultry afternoonabout a week after Miss Charity's departure 
for LondonMr Pecksniff being out walking by himselftook it into 
his head to stray into the churchyard. As he was lingering among 
the tombstonesendeavouring to extract an available sentiment or 
two from the epitaphs--for he never lost an opportunity of making up 
a few moral crackersto be let off as occasion served--Tom Pinch 
began to practice. Tom could run down to the church and do so 
whenever he had time to spare; for it was a simple little organ
provided with wind by the action of the musician's feet; and he was 
independenteven of a bellows-blower. Though if Tom had wanted one 
at any timethere was not a man or boy in all the villageand away 
to the turnpike (tollman included)but would have blown away for 
him till he was black in the face. 
Mr Pecksniff had no objection to music; not the least. He was 
tolerant of everything; he often said so. He considered it a 
vagabond kind of triflingin generaljust suited to Tom's 
capacity. But in regard to Tom's performance upon this same organ
he was remarkably lenientsingularly amiable; for when Tom played 
it on SundaysMr Pecksniff in his unbounded sympathy felt as if he 
played it himselfand were a benefactor to the congregation. So 
whenever it was impossible to devise any other means of taking the 
value of Tom's wages out of himMr Pecksniff gave him leave to 
cultivate this instrument. For which mark of his consideration Tom 
was very grateful. 
The afternoon was remarkably warmand Mr Pecksniff had been 
strolling a long way. He had not what may be called a fine ear for 
musicbut he knew when it had a tranquilizing influence on his 
soul; and that was the case nowfor it sounded to him like a 
melodious snore. He approached the churchand looking through the 
diamond lattice of a window near the porchsaw Tomwith the 
curtains in the loft drawn backplaying away with great expression 
and tenderness. 
The church had an inviting air of coolness. The old oak roof 
supported by cross-beamsthe hoary wallsthe marble tabletsand 
the cracked stone pavementwere refreshing to look at. There were 
leaves of ivy tapping gently at the opposite windows; and the sun 
poured in through only one; leaving the body of the church in 
tempting shade. But the most tempting spot of allwas one redcurtained 
and soft-cushioned pewwherein the official dignitaries 
of the place (of whom Mr Pecksniff was the head and chief) enshrined 
themselves on Sundays. Mr Pecksniff's seat was in the corner; a 
remarkably comfortable corner; where his very large Prayer-Book was 
at that minute making the most of its quarto self upon the desk. He 
determined to go in and rest. 
He entered very softly; in part because it was a church; in part 
because his tread was always soft; in part because Tom played a 
solemn tune; in part because he thought he would surprise him when 
he stopped. Unbolting the door of the high pew of statehe glided 
in and shut it after him; then sitting in his usual placeand 
stretching out his legs upon the hassockshe composed himself to 
listen to the music. 
It is an unaccountable circumstance that he should have felt drowsy 
therewhere the force of association might surely have been enough 
to keep him wide awake; but he did. He had not been in the snug 
little corner five minutes before he began to nod. He had not 
recovered himself one minute before he began to nod again. In the 
very act of opening his eyes indolentlyhe nodded again. In the 
very act of shutting themhe nodded again. So he fell out of one 
nod into another until at last he ceased to nod at alland was as 
fast as the church itself. 
He had a consciousness of the organlong after he fell asleep
though as to its being an organ he had no more idea of that than he 
had of its being a bull. After a while he began to have at 
intervals the same dreamy impressions of voices; and awakening to an 
indolent curiosity upon the subjectopened his eyes. 
He was so indolentthat after glancing at the hassocks and the pew
he was already half-way off to sleep againwhen it occurred to him 
that there really were voices in the church; low voicestalking 
earnestly hard by; while the echoes seemed to mutter responses. He 
roused himselfand listened. 
Before he had listened half a dozen secondshe became as broad 
awake as ever he had been in all his life. With eyesand earsand 
mouthwide openhe moved himself a very little with the utmost 
cautionand gathering the curtain in his handpeeped out. 
Tom Pinch and Mary. Of course. He had recognized their voicesand 
already knew the topic they discussed. Looking like the small end 
of a guillotined manwith his chin on a level with the top of the 
pewso that he might duck down immediately in case of either of 
them turning roundhe listened. Listened with such concentrated 
eagernessthat his very hair and shirt-collar stood bristling up to 
help him. 
'No' cried Tom. 'No letters have ever reached meexcept that one 
from New York. But don't be uneasy on that accountfor it's very 
likely they have gone away to some far-off placewhere the posts 
are neither regular nor frequent. He said in that very letter that 
it might be soeven in that city to which they thought of 
travelling--Edenyou know.' 
'It is a great weight upon my mind' said Mary. 
'Ohbut you mustn't let it be' said Tom. 'There's a true saying 
that nothing travels so fast as ill news; and if the slightest harm 
had happened to Martinyou may be sure you would have heard of it 
long ago. I have often wished to say this to you' Tom continued 
with an embarrassment that became him very well'but you have never 
given me an opportunity.' 
'I have sometimes been almost afraid' said Mary'that you might 
suppose I hesitated to confide in youMr Pinch.' 
'No' Tom stammered'I--I am not aware that I ever supposed that. 
I am sure that if I haveI have checked the thought directlyas an 
injustice to you. I feel the delicacy of your situation in having 
to confide in me at all' said Tom'but I would risk my life to 
save you from one day's uneasiness; indeed I would!' 
Poor Tom! 
'I have dreaded sometimes' Tom continued'that I might have 
displeased you by--by having the boldness to try and anticipate your 
wishes now and then. At other times I have fancied that your 
kindness prompted you to keep aloof from me.' 
'Indeed!' 
'It was very foolish; very presumptuous and ridiculousto think 
so' Tom pursued; 'but I feared you might suppose it possible that 
I--I--should admire you too much for my own peace; and so denied 
yourself the slight assistance you would otherwise have accepted 
from me. If such an idea has ever presented itself to you' 
faltered Tom'pray dismiss it. I am easily made happy; and I shall 
live contented here long after you and Martin have forgotten me. I 
am a poorshyawkward creature; not at all a man of the world; and 
you should think no more of mebless youthan if I were an old 
friar!' 
If friars bear such hearts as thineTomlet friars multiply; 
though they have no such rule in all their stern arithmetic. 
'Dear Mr Pinch!' said Marygiving him her hand; 'I cannot tell you 
how your kindness moves me. I have never wronged you by the 
lightest doubtand have never for an instant ceased to feel that 
you were all--much more than all--that Martin found you. Without 
the silent care and friendship I have experienced from youmy life 
here would have been unhappy. But you have been a good angel to me; 
filling me with gratitude of hearthopeand courage.' 
'I am as little like an angelI am afraid' replied Tomshaking 
his head'as any stone cherubim among the grave-stones; and I don't 
think there are many real angels of THAT pattern. But I should like 
to know (if you will tell me) why you have been so very silent about 
Martin.' 
'Because I have been afraid' said Mary'of injuring you.' 
'Of injuring me!' cried Tom. 
'Of doing you an injury with your employer.' 
The gentleman in question dived. 
'With Pecksniff!' rejoined Tomwith cheerful confidence. 'Oh dear
he'd never think of us! He's the best of men. The more at ease you 
werethe happier he would be. Oh dearyou needn't be afraid of 
Pecksniff. He is not a spy.' 
Many a man in Mr Pecksniff's placeif he could have dived through 
the floor of the pew of state and come out at Calcutta or any 
inhabited region on the other side of the earthwould have done it 
instantly. Mr Pecksniff sat down upon a hassockand listening more 
attentively than eversmiled. 
Mary seemed to have expressed some dissent in the meanwhilefor Tom 
went on to saywith honest energy: 
'WellI don't know how it isbut it always happenswhenever I 
express myself in this way to anybody almostthat I find they won't 
do justice to Pecksniff. It is one of the most extraordinary 
circumstances that ever came within my knowledgebut it is so. 
There's John Westlockwho used to be a pupil hereone of the besthearted 
young men in the worldin all other matters--I really 
believe John would have Pecksniff flogged at the cart's tail if he 
could. And John is not a solitary casefor every pupil we have had 
in my time has gone away with the same inveterate hatred of him. 
There was Mark Tapleytooquite in another station of life' said 
Tom; 'the mockery he used to make of Pecksniff when he was at the 
Dragon was shocking. Martin too: Martin was worse than any of 'em. 
But I forgot. He prepared you to dislike Pecksniffof course. So 
you came with a prejudiceyou knowMiss Grahamand are not a fair 
witness.' 
Tom triumphed very much in this discoveryand rubbed his hands with 
great satisfaction. 
'Mr Pinch' said Mary'you mistake him.' 
'Nono!' cried Tom. 'YOU mistake him. But' he addedwith a 
rapid change in his tone'what is the matter? Miss Grahamwhat is 
the matter?' 
Mr Pecksniff brought up to the top of the pewby slow degreeshis 
hairhis foreheadhis eyebrowhis eye. She was sitting on a 
bench beside the door with her hands before her face; and Tom was 
bending over her. 
'What is the matter?' cried Tom. 'Have I said anything to hurt you? 
Has any one said anything to hurt you? Don't cry. Pray tell me 
what it is. I cannot bear to see you so distressed. Mercy on usI 
never was so surprised and grieved in all my life!' 
Mr Pecksniff kept his eye in the same place. He could have moved it 
now for nothing short of a gimlet or a red-hot wire. 
'I wouldn't have told youMr Pinch' said Mary'if I could have 
helped it; but your delusion is so absorbingand it is so necessary 
that we should be upon our guard; that you should not be 
compromised; and to that end that you should know by whom I am 
beset; that no alternative is left me. I came here purposely to 
tell youbut I think I should have wanted courage if you had not 
chanced to lead me so directly to the object of my coming.' 
Tom gazed at her steadfastlyand seemed to say'What else?' But he 
said not a word. 
'That person whom you think the best of men' said Marylooking up
and speaking with a quivering lip and flashing eye. 
'Lord bless me!' muttered Tomstaggering back. 'Wait a moment. 
That person whom I think the best of men! You mean Pecksniffof 
course. YesI see you mean Pecksniff. Good gracious medon't 
speak without authority. What has he done? If he is not the best 
of menwhat is he?' 
'The worst. The falsestcraftiestmeanestcruellestmost 
sordidmost shameless' said the trembling girl--trembling with her 
indignation. 
Tom sat down on a seatand clasped his hands. 
'What is he' said Mary'who receiving me in his house as his 
guest; his unwilling guest; knowing my historyand how defenceless 
and alone I ampresumes before his daughters to affront me sothat 
if I had a brother but a childwho saw ithe would instinctively 
have helped me?' 
'He is a scoundrel!' exclaimed Tom. 'Whoever he may behe is a 
scoundrel.' 
Mr Pecksniff dived again. 
'What is he' said Mary'whowhen my only friend--a dear and kind 
onetoo--was in full health of mindhumbled himself before him
but was spurned away (for he knew him then) like a dog. Whoin his 
forgiving spiritnow that that friend is sunk into a failing state
can crawl about him againand use the influence he basely gains for 
every base and wicked purposeand not for one--not one--that's true 
or good?' 
'I say he is a scoundrel!' answered Tom. 
'But what is he--ohMr Pinchwhat IS he--whothinking he could 
compass these designs the better if I were his wifeassails me with 
the coward's argument that if I marry himMartinon whom I have 
brought so much misfortuneshall be restored to something of his 
former hopes; and if I do notshall be plunged in deeper ruin? 
What is he who makes my very constancy to one I love with all my 
heart a torture to myself and wrong to him; who makes medo what I 
willthe instrument to hurt a head I would heap blessings on! What 
is he whowinding all these cruel snares about meexplains their 
purpose to mewith a smooth tongue and a smiling facein the broad 
light of day; dragging me onthe whilein his embraceand holding 
to his lips a hand' pursued the agitated girlextending it'which 
I would have struck offif with it I could lose the shame and 
degradation of his touch?' 
'I say' cried Tomin great excitement'he is a scoundrel and a 
villain! I don't care who he isI say he is a double-dyed and most 
intolerable villain!' 
Covering her face with her hands againas if the passion which 
had sustained her through these disclosures lost itself in an 
overwhelming sense of shame and griefshe abandoned herself to 
tears. 
Any sight of distress was sure to move the tenderness of Tombut 
this especially. Tears and sobs from her were arrows in his heart. 
He tried to comfort her; sat down beside her; expended all his store 
of homely eloquence; and spoke in words of praise and hope of 
Martin. Ayethough he loved her from his soul with such a selfdenying 
love as woman seldom wins; he spoke from first to last of 
Martin. Not the wealth of the rich Indies would have tempted Tom to 
shirk one mention of her lover's name. 
When she was more composedshe impressed upon Tom that this man she 
had describedwas Pecksniff in his real colours; and word by word 
and phrase by phraseas well as she remembered itrelated what had 
passed between them in the wood: which was no doubt a source of high 
gratification to that gentleman himselfwho in his desire to see 
and his dread of being seenwas constantly diving down into the 
state pewand coming up again like the intelligent householder in 
Punch's Showwho avoids being knocked on the head with a cudgel. 
When she had concluded her accountand had besought Tom to be very 
distant and unconscious in his manner towards her after this 
explanationand had thanked him very muchthey parted on the alarm 
of footsteps in the burial-ground; and Tom was left alone in the 
church again. 
And now the full agitation and misery of the disclosure came rushing 
upon Tom indeed. The star of his whole life from boyhood had 
becomein a momentputrid vapour. It was not that Pecksniff
Tom's Pecksniffhad ceased to existbut that he never had existed. 
In his death Tom would have had the comfort of remembering what he 
used to bebut in this discoveryhe had the anguish of 
recollecting what he never was. Foras Tom's blindness in this 
matter had been total and not partialso was his restored sight. 
HIS Pecksniff could never have worked the wickedness of which he had 
just now heardbut any other Pecksniff could; and the Pecksniff who 
could do that could do anythingand no doubt had been doing 
anything and everything except the right thingall through his 
career. From the lofty height on which poor Tom had placed his idol 
it was tumbled down headlongand
Not all the king's horsesnor all the king's men
Could have set Mr Pecksniff up again. 
Legions of Titans couldn't have got him out of the mud; and serve 
him right! But it was not he who suffered; it was Tom. His compass 
was brokenhis chart destroyedhis chronometer had stoppedhis 
masts were gone by the board; his anchor was adriftten thousand 
leagues away. 
Mr Pecksniff watched him with a lively interestfor he divined the 
purpose of Tom's ruminationsand was curious to see how he 
conducted himself. For some timeTom wandered up and down the 
aisle like a man dementedstopping occasionally to lean against a 
pew and think it over; then he stood staring at a blank old monument 
bordered tastefully with skulls and cross-bonesas if it were the 
finest work of Art he had ever seenalthough at other times he held 
it in unspeakable contempt; then he sat down; then walked to and fro 
again; then went wandering up into the organ-loftand touched the 
keys. But their minstrelsy was changedtheir music gone; and 
sounding one long melancholy chordTom drooped his head upon his 
hands and gave it up as hopeless. 
'I wouldn't have cared' said Tom Pinchrising from his stool and 
looking down into the church as if he had been the Clergyman'I 
wouldn't have cared for anything he might have done to Mefor I 
have tried his patience oftenand have lived upon his sufferance 
and have never been the help to him that others could have been. I 
wouldn't have mindedPecksniff' Tom continuedlittle thinking who 
heard him'if you had done Me any wrong; I could have found plenty 
of excuses for that; and though you might have hurt mecould have 
still gone on respecting you. But why did you ever fall so low as 
this in my esteem! Oh PecksniffPecksniffthere is nothing I would 
not have givento have had you deserve my old opinion of you; 
nothing!' 
Mr Pecksniff sat upon the hassock pulling up his shirt-collarwhile 
Tomtouched to the quickdelivered this apostrophe. After a pause 
he heard Tom coming down the stairsjingling the church keys; and 
bringing his eye to the top of the pew againsaw him go slowly out 
and lock the door. 
Mr Pecksniff durst not issue from his place of concealment; for 
through the windows of the church he saw Tom passing on among the 
gravesand sometimes stopping at a stoneand leaning there as if 
he were a mourner who had lost a friend. Even when he had left the 
churchyardMr Pecksniff still remained shut up; not being at all 
secure but that in his restless state of mind Tom might come 
wandering back. At length he issued forthand walked with a 
pleasant countenance into the vestry; where he knew there was a 
window near the groundby which he could release himself by merely 
stepping out. 
He was in a curious frame of mindMr Pecksniff; being in no hurry 
to gobut rather inclining to a dilatory trifling with the time
which prompted him to open the vestry cupboardand look at himself 
in the parson's little glass that hung within the door. Seeing that 
his hair was rumpledhe took the liberty of borrowing the canonical 
brush and arranging it. He also took the liberty of opening another 
cupboard; but he shut it up again quicklybeing rather startled by 
the sight of a black and a white surplice dangling against the wall; 
which had very much the appearance of two curates who had committed 
suicide by hanging themselves. Remembering that he had seen in the 
first cupboard a port-wine bottle and some biscuitshe peeped into 
it againand helped himself with much deliberation; cogitating all 
the time thoughin a very deep and weighty manneras if his 
thoughts were otherwise employed. 
He soon made up his mindif it had ever been in doubt; and putting 
back the bottle and biscuitsopened the casement. He got out into 
the churchyard without any difficulty; shut the window after him; 
and walked straight home. 
'Is Mr Pinch indoors?' asked Mr Pecksniff of his serving-maid. 
'Just come insir.' 
'Just come ineh?' repeated Mr Pecksniffcheerfully. 'And gone 
upstairsI suppose?' 
'Yes sir. Gone upstairs. Shall I call himsir?' 
'No' said Mr Pecksniff'no. You needn't call himJane. Thank 
youJane. How are your relationsJane?' 
'Pretty wellI thank yousir.' 
'I am glad to hear it. Let them know I asked about themJane. Is 
Mr Chuzzlewit in the wayJane?' 
'Yessir. He's in the parlourreading.' 
'He's in the parlourreadingis heJane?' said Mr Pecksniff. 
'Very well. Then I think I'll go and see himJane.' 
Never had Mr Pecksniff been beheld in a more pleasant humour! 
But when he walked into the parlour where the old man was engaged as 
Jane had said; with pen and ink and paper on a table close at hand 
(for Mr Pecksniff was always very particular to have him well 
supplied with writing materials)he became less cheerful. He was 
not angryhe was not vindictivehe was not crosshe was not 
moodybut he was grieved; he was sorely grieved. As he sat down by 
the old man's sidetwo tears--not tears like those with which 
recording angels blot their entries outbut drops so precious that 
they use them for their ink--stole down his meritorious cheeks. 
'What is the matter?' asked old Martin. 'Pecksniffwhat ails you
man?' 
'I am sorry to interrupt youmy dear sirand I am still more sorry 
for the cause. My goodmy worthy friendI am deceived.' 
'You are deceived!' 
'Ah!' cried Mr Pecksniffin an agony'deceived in the tenderest 
point. Cruelly deceived in that quartersirin which I placed the 
most unbounded confidence. DeceivedMr Chuzzlewitby Thomas 
Pinch.' 
'Oh! badbadbad!' said Martinlaying down his book. 'Very bad! 
I hope not. Are you certain?' 
'Certainmy good sir! My eyes and ears are witnesses. I wouldn't 
have believed it otherwise. I wouldn't have believed itMr 
Chuzzlewitif a Fiery Serpent had proclaimed it from the top of 
Salisbury Cathedral. I would have said' cried Mr Pecksniff'that 
the Serpent lied. Such was my faith in Thomas Pinchthat I would 
have cast the falsehood back into the Serpent's teethand would 
have taken Thomas to my heart. But I am not a Serpentsirmyself
I grieve to sayand no excuse or hope is left me.' 
Martin was greatly disturbed to see him so much agitatedand to 
hear such unexpected news. He begged him to compose himselfand 
asked upon what subject Mr Pinch's treachery had been developed. 
'That is almost the worst of allsir' Mr Pecksniff answered. 'on 
a subject nearly concerning YOU. Oh! is it not enough' said Mr 
Pecksnifflooking upward'that these blows must fall on mebut 
must they also hit my friends!' 
'You alarm me' cried the old manchanging colour. 'I am not so 
strong as I was. You terrify mePecksniff!' 
'Cheer upmy noble sir' said Mr Pecksnifftaking courage'and we 
will do what is required of us. You shall know allsirand shall 
be righted. But first excuse mesirexcuse me. I have a duty to 
dischargewhich I owe to society.' 
He rang the belland Jane appeared. 'Send Mr Pinch hereif you 
pleaseJane.' 
Tom came. Constrained and altered in his mannerdowncast and 
dejectedvisibly confused; not liking to look Pecksniff in the 
face. 
The honest man bestowed a glance on Mr Chuzzlewitas who should say 
'You see!' and addressed himself to Tom in these terms: 
'Mr PinchI have left the vestry-window unfastened. Will you do me 
the favour to go and secure it; then bring the keys of the sacred 
edifice to me!' 
'The vestry-windowsir?' cried Tom. 
'You understand meMr PinchI think' returned his patron. 'Yes
Mr Pinchthe vestry-window. I grieve to say that sleeping in the 
church after a fatiguing rambleI overheard just now some 
fragments' he emphasised that word'of a dialogue between two 
parties; and one of them locking the church when he went outI was 
obliged to leave it myself by the vestry-window. Do me the favour 
to secure that vestry-windowMr Pinchand then come back to me.' 
No physiognomist that ever dwelt on earth could have construed Tom's 
face when he heard these words. Wonder was in itand a mild look 
of reproachbut certainly no fear or guiltalthough a host of 
strong emotions struggled to display themselves. He bowedand 
without saying one wordgood or badwithdrew. 
'Pecksniff' cried Martinin a tremble'what does all this mean? 
You are not going to do anything in hasteyou may regret!' 
'Nomy good sir' said Mr Pecksnifffirmly'No. But I have a 
duty to discharge which I owe to society; and it shall be 
dischargedmy friendat any cost!' 
Ohlate-rememberedmuch-forgottenmouthingbraggart dutyalways 
owedand seldom paid in any other coin than punishment and wrath
when will mankind begin to know thee! When will men acknowledge thee 
in thy neglected cradleand thy stunted youthand not begin their 
recognition in thy sinful manhood and thy desolate old age! Oh
ermined Judge whose duty to society isnowto doom the ragged 
criminal to punishment and deathhadst thou neverMana duty to 
discharge in barring up the hundred open gates that wooed him to the 
felon's dockand throwing but ajar the portals to a decent life! Oh
prelateprelatewhose duty to society it is to mourn in melancholy 
phrase the sad degeneracy of these bad times in which thy lot of 
honours has been castdid nothing go before thy elevation to the 
lofty seatfrom which thou dealest out thy homilies to other 
tarriers for dead men's shoeswhose duty to society has not begun! 
Oh! magistrateso rare a country gentleman and brave a squirehad 
you no duty to societybefore the ricks were blazing and the mob 
were mad; or did it spring uparmed and booted from the eartha 
corps of yeomanry full-grown! 
Mr Pecksniff's duty to society could not be paid till Tom came back. 
The interval which preceded the return of that young manhe 
occupied in a close conference with his friend; so that when Tom did 
arrivehe found the two quite ready to receive him. Mary was in 
her own room abovewhither Mr Pecksniffalways consideratehad 
besought old Martin to entreat her to remain some half-hour longer
that her feelings might be spared. 
When Tom came backhe found old Martin sitting by the windowand 
Mr Pecksniff in an imposing attitude at the table. On one side of 
him was his pocket-handkerchief; and on the other a little heap (a 
very little heap) of gold and silverand odd pence. Tom sawat a 
glancethat it was his own salary for the current quarter. 
'Have you fastened the vestry-windowMr Pinch?' said Pecksniff. 
'Yessir.' 
'Thank you. Put down the keys if you pleaseMr Pinch.' 
Tom placed them on the table. He held the bunch by the key of the 
organ-loft (though it was one of the smallest)and looked hard at 
it as he laid it down. It had been an oldold friend of Tom's; a 
kind companion to himmany and many a day. 
'Mr Pinch' said Pecksniffshaking his head; 'ohMr Pinch! I 
wonder you can look me in the face!' 
Tom did it though; and notwithstanding that he has been described as 
stooping generallyhe stood as upright then as man could stand. 
'Mr Pinch' said Pecksnifftaking up his handkerchiefas if he 
felt that he should want it soon'I will not dwell upon the past. 
I will spare youand I will spare myselfthat pain at least.' 
Tom's was not a very bright eyebut it was a very expressive one 
when he looked at Mr Pecksniffand said: 
'Thank yousir. I am very glad you will not refer to the past.' 
'The present is enough' said Mr Pecksniffdropping a penny'and 
the sooner THAT is pastthe better. Mr PinchI will not dismiss 
you without a word of explanation. Even such a course would be 
quite justifiable under the circumstances; but it might wear an 
appearance of hurryand I will not do it; for I am' said Mr 
Pecksniffknocking down another penny'perfectly self-possessed. 
Therefore I will say to youwhat I have already said to Mr 
Chuzzlewit.' 
Tom glanced at the old gentlemanwho nodded now and then as 
approving of Mr Pecksniff's sentences and sentimentsbut interposed 
between them in no other way. 
'From fragments of a conversation which I overheard in the church
just nowMr Pinch' said Pecksniff'between yourself and Miss 
Graham--I say fragmentsbecause I was slumbering at a considerable 
distance from youwhen I was roused by your voices--and from what I 
sawI ascertained (I would have given a great deal not to have 
ascertainedMr Pinch) that youforgetful of all ties of duty and 
of honoursir; regardless of the sacred laws of hospitalityto 
which you were pledged as an inmate of this house; have presumed to 
address Miss Graham with unreturned professions of attachment and 
proposals of love.' 
Tom looked at him steadily. 
'Do you deny itsir?' asked Mr Pecksniffdropping one pound two 
and fourpenceand making a great business of picking it up again. 
'Nosir' replied Tom. 'I do not.' 
'You do not' said Mr Pecksniffglancing at the old gentleman. 
'Oblige me by counting this moneyMr Pinchand putting your name 
to this receipt. You do not?' 
NoTom did not. He scorned to deny it. He saw that Mr Pecksniff 
having overheard his own disgracecared not a jot for sinking lower 
yet in his contempt. He saw that he had devised this fiction as the 
readiest means of getting rid of him at oncebut that it must end 
in that any way. He saw that Mr Pecksniff reckoned on his not 
denying itbecause his doing so and explaining would incense the 
old man more than ever against Martin and against Mary; while 
Pecksniff himself would only have been mistaken in his 'fragments.' 
Deny it! No. 
'You find the amount correctdo youMr Pinch?' said Pecksniff. 
'Quite correctsir' answered Tom. 
'A person is waiting in the kitchen' said Mr Pecksniff'to carry 
your luggage wherever you please. We partMr Pinchat onceand 
are strangers from this time.' 
Something without a name; compassionsorrowold tenderness
mistaken gratitudehabit; none of theseand yet all of them; smote 
upon Tom's gentle heart at parting. There was no such soul as 
Pecksniff's in that carcase; and yetthough his speaking out had 
not involved the compromise of one he lovedhe couldn't have 
denounced the very shape and figure of the man. Not even then. 
'I will not say' cried Mr Pecksniffshedding tears'what a blow 
this is. I will not say how much it tries me; how it works upon my 
nature; how it grates upon my feelings. I do not care for that. I 
can endure as well as another man. But what I have to hopeand 
what you have to hopeMr Pinch (otherwise a great responsibility 
rests upon you)isthat this deception may not alter my ideas of 
humanity; that it may not impair my freshnessor contractif I may 
use the expressionmy Pinions. I hope it will not; I don't think 
it will. It may be a comfort to youif not nowat some future 
timeto know that I shall endeavour not to think the worse of my 
fellow-creatures in generalfor what has passed between us. 
Farewell!' 
Tom had meant to spare him one little puncturation with a lancet
which he had it in his power to administerbut he changed his mind 
on hearing thisand said: 
'I think you left something in the churchsir.' 
'Thank youMr Pinch' said Pecksniff. 'I am not aware that I did.' 
'This is your double eye-glassI believe?' said Tom. 
'Oh!' cried Pecksniffwith some degree of confusion. 'I am obliged 
to you. Put it downif you please.' 
'I found it' said Tomslowly--'when I went to bolt the vestrywindow--
in the pew.' 
So he had. Mr Pecksniff had taken it off when he was bobbing up and 
downlest it should strike against the panelling; and had forgotten 
it. Going back to the church with his mind full of having been 
watchedand wondering very much from what partTom's attention was 
caught by the door of the state pew standing open. Looking into it 
he found the glass. And thus he knewand by returning it gave Mr 
Pecksniff the information that he knewwhere the listener had been; 
and that instead of overhearing fragments of the conversationhe 
must have rejoiced in every word of it. 
'I am glad he's gone' said Martindrawing a long breath when Tom 
had left the room. 
'It IS a relief' assented Mr Pecksniff. 'It is a great relief. 
But having discharged--I hope with tolerable firmness--the duty 
which I owed to societyI will nowmy dear sirif you will give 
me leaveretire to shed a few tears in the back gardenas an 
humble individual.' 
Tom went upstairs; cleared his shelf of books; packed them up with 
his music and an old fiddle in his trunk; got out his clothes (they 
were not so many that they made his head ache); put them on the top 
of his books; and went into the workroom for his case of 
instruments. There was a ragged stool therewith the horsehair all 
sticking out of the top like a wig: a very Beast of a stool in 
itself; on which he had taken up his daily seatyear after year
during the whole period of his service. They had grown older and 
shabbier in company. Pupils had served their time; seasons had come 
and gone. Tom and the worn-out stool had held together through it 
all. That part of the room was traditionally called 'Tom's Corner.' 
It had been assigned to him at first because of its being situated 
in a strong draughtand a great way from the fire; and he had 
occupied it ever since. There were portraits of him on the walls
with all his weak points monstrously portrayed. Diabolical 
sentimentsforeign to his characterwere represented as issuing 
from his mouth in fat balloons. Every pupil had added something
even unto fancy portraits of his father with one eyeand of his 
mother with a disproportionate noseand especially of his sister; 
who always being presented as extremely beautifulmade full amends 
to Tom for any other jokes. Under less uncommon circumstancesit 
would have cut Tom to the heart to leave these things and think that 
he saw them for the last time; but it didn't now. There was no 
Pecksniff; there never had been a Pecksniff; and all his other 
griefs were swallowed up in that. 
Sowhen he returned into the bedroomandhaving fastened his box 
and a carpet-bagput on his walking gaitersand his great-coat
and his hatand taken his stick in his handlooked round it for 
the last time. Early on summer morningsand by the light of 
private candle-ends on winter nightshe had read himself half blind 
in this same room. He had tried in this same room to learn the 
fiddle under the bedclothesbut yielding to objections from the 
other pupilshad reluctantly abandoned the design. At any other 
time he would have parted from it with a pangthinking of all he 
had learned thereof the many hours he had passed there; for the 
love of his very dreams. But there was no Pecksniff; there never 
had been a Pecksniffand the unreality of Pecksniff extended itself 
to the chamberin whichsitting on one particular bedthe thing 
supposed to be that Great Abstraction had often preached morality 
with such effect that Tom had felt a moisture in his eyeswhile 
hanging breathless on the words. 
The man engaged to bear his box--Tom knew him well: a Dragon man-came 
stamping up the stairsand made a roughish bow to Tom (to whom 
in common times he would have nodded with a grin) as though he were 
aware of what had happenedand wished him to perceive it made no 
difference to HIM. It was clumsily done; he was a mere waterer of 
horses; but Tom liked the man for itand felt it more than going 
away. 
Tom would have helped him with the boxbut he made no more of it
though it was a heavy onethan an elephant would have made of a 
castle; just swinging it on his back and bowling downstairs as if
being naturally a heavy sort of fellowhe could carry a box 
infinitely better than he could go alone. Tom took the carpet-bag
and went downstairs along with him. At the outer door stood Jane
crying with all her might; and on the steps was Mrs Lupinsobbing 
bitterlyand putting out her hand for Tom to shake. 
'You're coming to the DragonMr Pinch?' 
'No' said Tom'no. I shall walk to Salisbury to-night. I 
couldn't stay here. For goodness' sakedon't make me so unhappy
Mrs Lupin.' 
'But you'll come to the DragonMr Pinch. If it's only for tonight. 
To see meyou know; not as a traveller.' 
'God bless my soul!' said Tomwiping his eyes. 'The kindness of 
people is enough to break one's heart! I mean to go to Salisbury 
to-nightmy dear good creature. If you'll take care of my box for 
me till I write for itI shall consider it the greatest kindness 
you can do me.' 
'I wish' cried Mrs Lupin'there were twenty boxesMr Pinchthat 
I might have 'em all.' 
'Thank'ee' said Tom. 'It's like you. Good-bye. Good-bye.' 
There were several peopleyoung and oldstanding about the door
some of whom cried with Mrs Lupin; while others tried to keep up a 
stout heartas Tom did; and others were absorbed in admiration of 
Mr Pecksniff--a man who could build a churchas one may sayby 
squinting at a sheet of paper; and others were divided between that 
feeling and sympathy with Tom. Mr Pecksniff had appeared on the top 
of the stepssimultaneously with his old pupiland while Tom was 
talking with Mrs Lupin kept his hand stretched outas though he 
said 'Go forth!' When Tom went forthand had turned the corner Mr 
Pecksniff shook his headshut his eyesand heaving a deep sigh
shut the door. On whichthe best of Tom's supporters said he must 
have done some dreadful deedor such a man as Mr Pecksniff never 
could have felt like that. If it had been a common quarrel (they 
observed)he would have said somethingbut when he didn'tMr 
Pinch must have shocked him dreadfully. 
Tom was out of hearing of their shrewd opinionsand plodded on as 
steadily as he could gountil he came within sight of the turnpike 
where the tollman's family had cried out 'Mr Pinch!' that frosty 
morningwhen he went to meet young Martin. He had got through the 
villageand this toll-bar was his last trial; but when the infant 
toll-takers came screeching outhe had half a mind to run for it
and make a bolt across the country. 
'Whydeary Mr Pinch! ohdeary sir!' cried the tollman's wife. 'What 
an unlikely time for you to be a-going this way with a bag!' 
'I am going to Salisbury' said Tom. 
'Whygoodnesswhere's the gigthen?' cried the tollman's wife
looking down the roadas if she thought Tom might have been upset 
without observing it. 
'I haven't got it' said Tom. 'I--' he couldn't evade it; he felt 
she would have him in the next questionif he got over this one. 
'I have left Mr Pecksniff.' 
The tollman--a crusty customeralways smoking solitary pipes in a 
Windsor chairinsideset artfully between two little windows that 
looked up and down the roadso that when he saw anything coming up 
he might hug himself on having toll to takeand when he saw it 
going downmight hug himself on having taken it--the tollman was 
out in an instant. 
'Left Mr Pecksniff!' cried the tollman. 
'Yes' said Tom'left him.' 
The tollman looked at his wifeuncertain whether to ask her if she 
had anything to suggestor to order her to mind the children. 
Astonishment making him surlyhe preferred the latterand sent her 
into the toll-house with a flea in her ear. 
'You left Mr Pecksniff!' cried the tollmanfolding his armsand 
spreading his legs. 'I should as soon have thought of his head 
leaving him.' 
'Aye!' said Tom'so should Iyesterday. Good night!' 
If a heavy drove of oxen hadn't come by immediatelythe tollman 
would have gone down to the village straightto inquire into it. 
As things turned outhe smoked another pipeand took his wife into 
his confidence. But their united sagacity could make nothing of it
and they went to bed--metaphorically--in the dark. But several 
times that nightwhen a waggon or other vehicle came throughand 
the driver asked the tollkeeper 'What news?' he looked at the man by 
the light of his lanternto assure himself that he had an interest 
in the subjectand then saidwrapping his watch-coat round his 
legs: 
'You've heerd of Mr Pecksniff down yonder?' 
'Ah! sure-ly!' 
'And of his young man Mr Pinchp'raps?' 
'Ah!' 
'They've parted.' 
After every one of these disclosuresthe tollman plunged into his 
house againand was seen no morewhile the other side went on in 
great amazement. 
But this was long after Tom was abedand Tom was now with his face 
towards Salisburydoing his best to get there. The evening was 
beautiful at firstbut it became cloudy and dull at sunsetand the 
rain fell heavily soon afterwards. For ten long miles he plodded 
onwet throughuntil at last the lights appearedand he came into 
the welcome precincts of the city. 
He went to the inn where he had waited for Martinand briefly 
answering their inquiries after Mr Pecksniffordered a bed. He had 
no heart for tea or suppermeat or drink of any kindbut sat by 
himself before an empty table in the public room while the bed was 
getting readyrevolving in his mind all that had happened that 
eventful dayand wondering what he could or should do for the 
future. It was a great relief when the chambermaid came inand 
said the bed was ready. 
It was a low four-postershelving downward in the centre like a 
troughand the room was crowded with impracticable tables and 
exploded chests of drawersfull of damp linen. A graphic 
representation in oil of a remarkably fat ox hung over the 
fireplaceand the portrait of some former landlord (who might have 
been the ox's brotherhe was so like him) stared roundly inat the 
foot of the bed. A variety of queer smells were partially quenched 
in the prevailing scent of very old lavender; and the window had not 
been opened for such a long space of time that it pleaded immemorial 
usageand wouldn't come open now. 
These were trifles in themselvesbut they added to the strangeness 
of the placeand did not induce Tom to forget his new position. 
Pecksniff had gone out of the world--had never been in it--and it 
was as much as Tom could do to say his prayers without him. But he 
felt happier afterwardsand went to sleepand dreamed about him as 
he Never Was. 
CHAPTER THIRTY-TWO 
TREATS OF TODGER'S AGAIN; AND OF ANOTHER BLIGHTED PLANT BESIDES THE 
PLANTS UPON THE LEADS 
Early on the day next after that on which she bade adieu to the 
halls of her youth and the scenes of her childhoodMiss Pecksniff
arriving safely at the coach-office in Londonwas there received
and conducted to her peaceful home beneath the shadow of the 
Monumentby Mrs Todgers. M. Todgers looked a little worn by cares 
of gravy and other such solicitudes arising out of her 
establishmentbut displayed her usual earnestness and warmth of 
manner. 
'And howmy sweet Miss Pecksniff' said she'how is your princely 
pa?' 
Miss Pecksniff signified (in confidence) that he contemplated the 
introduction of a princely ma; and repeated the sentiment that she 
wasn't blindand wasn't quite a fooland wouldn't bear it. 
Mrs Todgers was more shocked by the intelligence than any one could 
have expected. She was quite bitter. She said there was no truth 
in man and that the warmer he expressed himselfas a general 
principlethe falser and more treacherous he was. She foresaw with 
astonishing clearness that the object of Mr Pecksniff's attachment 
was designingworthlessand wicked; and receiving from Charity the 
fullest confirmation of these viewsprotested with tears in her 
eyes that she loved Miss Pecksniff like a sisterand felt her 
injuries as if they were her own. 
'Your real darling sisterI have not seen her more than once since 
her marriage' said Mrs Todgers'and then I thought her looking 
poorly. My sweet Miss PecksniffI always thought that you was to 
be the lady?' 
'Oh dear no!' cried Cherryshaking her head. 'Oh noMrs Todgers. 
Thank you. No! not for any consideration he could offer.' 
'I dare say you are right' said Mrs Todgers with a sigh. 'I feared 
it all along. But the misery we have had from that matchhere 
among ourselvesin this housemy dear Miss Pecksniffnobody would 
believe.' 
'LorMrs Todgers!' 
'Awfulawful!' repeated Mrs Todgerswith strong emphasis. 'You 
recollect our youngest gentlemanmy dear?' 
'Of course I do' said Cherry. 
'You might have observed' said Mrs Todgers'how he used to watch 
your sister; and that a kind of stony dumbness came over him 
whenever she was in company?' 
'I am sure I never saw anything of the sort' said Cherryin a 
peevish manner. 'What nonsenseMrs Todgers!' 
'My dear' returned that lady in a hollow voice'I have seen him 
again and againsitting over his pie at dinnerwith his spoon a 
perfect fixture in his mouthlooking at your sister. I have seen 
him standing in a corner of our drawing-roomgazing at herin such 
a lonelymelancholy statethat he was more like a Pump than a man
and might have drawed tears.' 
'I never saw it!' cried Cherry; 'that's all I can say.' 
'But when the marriage took place' said Mrs Todgersproceeding 
with her subject'when it was in the paperand was read out here 
at breakfastI thought he had taken leave of his sensesI did 
indeed. The violence of that young manmy dear Miss Pecksniff; the 
frightful opinions he expressed upon the subject of selfdestruction; 
the extraordinary actions he performed with his tea; 
the clenching way in which he bit his bread and butter; the manner 
in which he taunted Mr Jinkins; all combined to form a picture never 
to be forgotten.' 
'It's a pity he didn't destroy himselfI think' observed Miss 
Pecksniff. 
'Himself!' said Mrs Todgers'it took another turn at night. He was 
for destroying other people then. There was a little chaffing going 
on--I hope you don't consider that a low expressionMiss Pecksniff; 
it is always in our gentlemen's mouths--a little chaffing going on
my dearamong 'emall in good naturewhen suddenly he rose up
foaming with his furyand but for being held by three would have 
had Mr Jinkins's life with a bootjack.' 
Miss Pecksniff's face expressed supreme indifference. 
'And now' said Mrs Todgers'now he is the meekest of men. You can 
almost bring the tears into his eyes by looking at him. He sits 
with me the whole day long on Sundaystalking in such a dismal way 
that I find it next to impossible to keep my spirits up equal to the 
accommodation of the boarders. His only comfort is in female 
society. He takes me half-price to the playto an extent which I 
sometimes fear is beyond his means; and I see the tears a-standing 
in his eyes during the whole performance--particularly if it is 
anything of a comic nature. The turn I experienced only yesterday' 
said Mrs Todgers putting her hand to her side'when the house-maid 
threw his bedside carpet out of the window of his roomwhile I was 
sitting hereno one can imagine. I thought it was himand that he 
had done it at last!' 
The contempt with which Miss Charity received this pathetic account 
of the state to which the youngest gentleman in company was reduced
did not say much for her power of sympathising with that unfortunate 
character. She treated it with great levityand went on to inform 
herselfthen and afterwardswhether any other changes had occurred 
in the commercial boarding-house. 
Mr Bailey was goneand had been succeeded (such is the decay of 
human greatness!) by an old woman whose name was reported to be 
Tamaroo--which seemed an impossibility. Indeed it appeared in the 
fullness of time that the jocular boarders had appropriated the word 
from an English balladin which it is supposed to express the bold 
and fiery nature of a certain hackney coachman; and that it was 
bestowed upon Mr Bailey's successor by reason of her having nothing 
fiery about herexcept an occasional attack of that fire which is 
called St. Anthony's. This ancient female had been engagedin 
fulfillment of a vowregistered by Mrs Todgersthat no more boys 
should darken the commercial doors; and she was chiefly remarkable 
for a total absence of all comprehension upon every subject 
whatever. She was a perfect Tomb for messages and small parcels; 
and when dispatched to the Post Office with lettershad been 
frequently seen endeavouring to insinuate them into casual chinks in 
private doorsunder the delusion that any door with a hole in it 
would answer the purpose. She was a very little old womanand 
always wore a very coarse apron with a bib before and a loop behind
together with bandages on her wristswhich appeared to be afflicted 
with an everlasting sprain. She was on all occasions chary of 
opening the street doorand ardent to shut it again; and she waited 
at table in a bonnet. 
This was the only great change over and above the change which had 
fallen on the youngest gentleman. As for himhe more than 
corroborated the account of Mrs Todgers; possessing greater 
sensibility than even she had given him credit for. He entertained 
some terrible notions of Destinyamong other mattersand talked 
much about people's 'Missions'; upon which he seemed to have some 
private information not generally attainableas he knew it had been 
poor Merry's mission to crush him in the bud. He was very frail and 
tearful; for being aware that a shepherd's mission was to pipe to 
his flocksand that a boatswain's mission was to pipe all hands
and that one man's mission was to be a paid piperand another man's 
mission was to pay the piperso he had got it into his head that 
his own peculiar mission was to pipe his eye. Which he did 
perpetually. 
He often informed Mrs Todgers that the sun had set upon him; that 
the billows had rolled over him; that the car of Juggernaut had 
crushed himand also that the deadly Upas tree of Java had blighted 
him. His name was Moddle. 
Towards this most unhappy ModdleMiss Pecksniff conducted herself 
at first with distant haughtinessbeing in no humour to be 
entertained with dirges in honour of her married sister. The poor 
young gentleman was additionally crushed by thisand remonstrated 
with Mrs Todgers on the subject. 
'Even she turns from meMrs Todgers' said Moddle. 
'Then why don't you try and be a little bit more cheerfulsir?' 
retorted Mrs Todgers. 
'CheerfulMrs Todgers! cheerful!' cried the youngest gentleman; 
'when she reminds me of days for ever fledMrs Todgers!' 
'Then you had better avoid her for a short timeif she does' said 
Mrs Todgers'and come to know her againby degrees. That's my 
advice.' 
'But I can't avoid her' replied Moddle'I haven't strength of mind 
to do it. OhMrs Todgersif you knew what a comfort her nose is 
to me!' 
'Her nosesir!' Mrs Todgers cried. 
'Her profilein general' said the youngest gentleman'but 
particularly her nose. It's so like;' here he yielded to a burst of 
grief. 'it's so like hers who is Another'sMrs Todgers!' 
The observant matron did not fail to report this conversation to 
Charitywho laughed at the timebut treated Mr Moddle that very 
evening with increased considerationand presented her side face to 
him as much as possible. Mr Moddle was not less sentimental than 
usual; was rather more soif anything; but he sat and stared at her 
with glistening eyesand seemed grateful. 
'Wellsir!' said the lady of the Boarding-House next day. 'You 
held up your head last night. You're coming roundI think.' 
'Only because she's so like her who is Another'sMrs Todgers' 
rejoined the youth. 'When she talksand when she smilesI think 
I'm looking on HER brow againMrs Todgers.' 
This was likewise carried to Charitywho talked and smiled next 
evening in her most engaging mannerand rallying Mr Moddle on the 
lowness of his spiritschallenged him to play a rubber at cribbage. 
Mr Moddle taking up the gauntletthey played several rubbers for 
sixpencesand Charity won them all. This may have been partially 
attributable to the gallantry of the youngest gentlemanbut it was 
certainly referable to the state of his feelings also; for his eyes 
being frequently dimmed by tearshe thought that aces were tens
and knaves queenswhich at times occasioned some confusion in his 
play. 
On the seventh night of cribbagewhen Mrs Todgerssitting by
proposed that instead of gambling they should play for 'love' Mr 
Moddle was seen to change colour. On the fourteenth nighthe 
kissed Miss Pecksniff's snuffersin the passagewhen she went 
upstairs to bed; meaning to have kissed her handbut missing it. 
In shortMr Moddle began to be impressed with the idea that Miss 
Pecksniff's mission was to comfort him; and Miss Pecksniff began to 
speculate on the probability of its being her mission to become 
ultimately Mrs Moddle. He was a young gentleman (Miss Pecksniff was 
not a very young lady) with rising prospectsand 'almost' enough to 
live on. Really it looked very well. 
Besides--besides--he had been regarded as devoted to Merry. Merry 
had joked about himand had once spoken of it to her sister as a 
conquest. He was better lookingbetter shapedbetter spoken
better temperedbetter mannered than Jonas. He was easy to manage
could be made to consult the humours of his Betrothedand could be 
shown off like a lamb when Jonas was a bear. There was the rub! 
In the meantime the cribbage went onand Mrs Todgers went off; for 
the youngest gentlemandropping her societybegan to take Miss 
Pecksniff to the play. He also beganas Mrs Todgers saidto slip 
home 'in his dinner-times' and to get away from 'the office' at 
unholy seasons; and twiceas he informed Mrs Todgers himselfhe 
received anonymous lettersenclosing cards from Furniture 
Warehouses--clearly the act of that ungentlemanly ruffian Jinkins; 
only he hadn't evidence enough to call him out upon. All of which
so Mrs Todgers told Miss Pecksniffspoke as plain English as the 
shining sun. 
'My dear Miss Pecksniffyou may depend upon it' said Mrs Todgers
'that he is burning to propose.' 
'My goodness mewhy don't he then?' cried Cherry. 
'Men are so much more timid than we think 'emmy dear' returned 
Mrs Todgers. 'They baulk themselves continually. I saw the words 
on Todgers's lips for months and months and monthsbefore he said 
'em.' 
Miss Pecksniff submitted that Todgers might not have been a fair 
specimen. 
'Oh yeshe was. Oh bless youyesmy dear. I was very particular 
in those daysI assure you' said Mrs Todgersbridling. 'Nono. 
You give Mr Moddle a little encouragementMiss Pecksniffif you 
wish him to speak; and he'll speak fast enoughdepend upon it.' 
'I am sure I don't know what encouragement he would haveMrs 
Todgers' returned Charity. 'He walks with meand plays cards with 
meand he comes and sits alone with me.' 
'Quite right' said Mrs Todgers. 'That's indispensablemy dear.' 
'And he sits very close to me.' 
'Also quite correct' said Mrs Todgers. 
'And he looks at me.' 
'To be sure he does' said Mrs Todgers. 
'And he has his arm upon the back of the chair or sofaor whatever 
it is--behind meyou know.' 
'I should think so' said Mrs Todgers. 
'And then he begins to cry!' 
Mrs Todgers admitted that he might do better than that; and might 
undoubtedly profit by the recollection of the great Lord Nelson's 
signal at the battle of Trafalgar. Stillshe saidhe would come 
roundornot to mince the matterwould be brought roundif Miss 
Pecksniff took up a decided positionand plainly showed him that it 
must be done. 
Determining to regulate her conduct by this opinionthe young lady 
received Mr Moddleon the earliest subsequent occasionwith an air 
of constraint; and gradually leading him to inquirein a dejected 
mannerwhy she was so changedconfessed to him that she felt it 
necessary for their mutual peace and happiness to take a decided 
step. They had been much together latelyshe observedmuch 
togetherand had tasted the sweets of a genuine reciprocity of 
sentiment. She never could forget himnor could she ever cease to 
think of him with feelings of the liveliest friendshipbut people 
had begun to talkthe thing had been observedand it was necessary 
that they should be nothing more to each otherthan any gentleman 
and lady in society usually are. She was glad she had had the 
resolution to say thus much before her feelings had been tried too 
far; they had been greatly triedshe would admit; but though she 
was weak and sillyshe would soon get the better of itshe hoped. 
Moddlewho had by this time become in the last degree maudlinand 
wept abundantlyinferred from the foregoing avowalthat it was his 
mission to communicate to others the blight which had fallen on 
himself; and thatbeing a kind of unintentional Vampirehe had had 
Miss Pecksniff assigned to him by the Fatesas Victim Number One. 
Miss Pecksniff controverting this opinion as sinfulModdle was 
goaded on to ask whether she could be contented with a blighted 
heart; and it appearing on further examination that she could be
plighted his dismal trothwhich was accepted and returned. 
He bore his good fortune with the utmost moderation. Instead of 
being triumphanthe shed more tears than he had ever been known to 
shed before; andsobbingsaid: 
'Oh! what a day this has been! I can't go back to the office this 
afternoon. Ohwhat a trying day this has been! Good Gracious!' 
CHAPTER THIRTY-THREE 
FURTHER PROCEEDINGS IN EDENAND A PROCEEDING OUT OF IT. MARTIN 
MAKES A DISCOVERY OF SOME IMPORTANCE 
From Mr Moddle to Eden is an easy and natural transition. Mr 
Moddleliving in the atmosphere of Miss Pecksniff's lovedwelt (if 
he had but known it) in a terrestrial Paradise. The thriving city 
of Eden was also a terrestrial Paradiseupon the showing of its 
proprietors. The beautiful Miss Pecksniff might have been 
poetically described as a something too good for man in his fallen 
and degraded state. That was exactly the character of the thriving 
city of Edenas poetically heightened by Zephaniah ScadderGeneral 
Chokeand other worthies; part and parcel of the talons of that 
great American Eaglewhich is always airing itself sky-high in 
purest aetherand neverno nevernevertumbles down with 
draggled wings into the mud. 
When Mark Tapleyleaving Martin in the architectural and surveying 
officeshad effectually strengthened and encouraged his own spirits 
by the contemplation of their joint misfortuneshe proceededwith 
new cheerfulnessin search of help; congratulating himselfas he 
went alongon the enviable position to which he had at last 
attained. 
'I used to thinksometimes' said Mr Tapley'as a desolate island 
would suit mebut I should only have had myself to provide for 
thereand being naturally a easy man to managethere wouldn't have 
been much credit in THAT. Now here I've got my partner to take care 
onand he's something like the sort of man for the purpose. I want 
a man as is always a-sliding off his legs when he ought to be on 
'em. I want a man as is so low down in the school of life that he's 
always a-making figures of one in his copy-bookand can't get no 
further. I want a man as is his own great coat and cloakand is 
always a-wrapping himself up in himself. And I have got him too' 
said Mr Tapleyafter a moment's silence. 'What a happiness!' 
He paused to look rounduncertain to which of the log-houses he 
should repair. 
'I don't know which to take' he observed; 'that's the truth. 
They're equally prepossessing outsideand equally commodiousno 
doubtwithin; being fitted up with every convenience that a 
Alligatorin a state of natur'could possibly require. Let me 
see! The citizen as turned out last nightlives under waterin the 
right hand dog-kennel at the corner. I don't want to trouble him 
if I can help itpoor manfor he is a melancholy object; a reg'lar 
Settler in every respect. There's house with a winderbut I am 
afraid of their being proud. I don't know whether a door ain't too 
aristocratic; but here goes for the first one!' 
He went up to the nearest cabinand knocked with his hand. Being 
desired to enterhe complied. 
'Neighbour' said Mark; 'for I AM a neighbourthough you don't know 
me; I've come a-begging. Hallo! hal--lo! Am I a-bedand dreaming!' 
He made this exclamation on hearing his own name pronouncedand 
finding himself clasped about the skirts by two little boyswhose 
faces he had often washedand whose suppers he had often cookedon 
board of that noble and fast-sailing line-of-packet shipthe Screw. 
'My eyes is wrong!' said Mark. 'I don't believe 'em. That ain't my 
fellow-passenger youndera-nursing her little girlwhoI am sorry 
to seeis so delicate; and that ain't her husband as come to New 
York to fetch her. Nor these' he addedlooking down upon the 
boys'ain't them two young shavers as was so familiar to me; though 
they are uncommon like 'em. That I must confess.' 
The woman shed tearsin very joy to see him; the man shook both his 
hands and would not let them go; the two boys hugged his legs; the 
sick child in the mother's arms stretched out her burning little 
fingersand mutteredin her hoarsedry throathis wellremembered 
name. 
It was the same familysure enough. Altered by the salubrious air 
of Eden. But the same. 
'This is a new sort of a morning call' said Markdrawing a long 
breath. 'It strikes one all of a heap. Wait a little bit! I'm acoming 
round fast. That'll do! These gentlemen ain't my friends. 
Are they on the visiting list of the house?' 
The inquiry referred to certain gaunt pigswho had walked in after 
himand were much interested in the heels of the family. As they 
did not belong to the mansionthey were expelled by the two little 
boys. 
'I ain't superstitious about toads' said Marklooking round the 
room'but if you could prevail upon the two or three I see in 
companyto step out at the same timemy young friendsI think 
they'd find the open air refreshing. Not that I at all object to 
'em. A very handsome animal is a toad' said Mr Tapleysitting 
down upon a stool; 'very spotted; very like a partickler style of 
old gentleman about the throat; very bright-eyedvery cooland 
very slippy. But one sees 'em to the best advantage out of doors 
perhaps.' 
While pretendingwith such talk as thisto be perfectly at his 
easeand to be the most indifferent and careless of menMark 
Tapley had an eye on all around him. The wan and meagre aspect of 
the familythe changed looks of the poor motherthe fevered child 
she held in her lapthe air of great despondency and little hope on 
everythingwere plain to himand made a deep impression on his 
mind. He saw it all as clearly and as quicklyas with his bodily 
eyes he saw the rough shelves supported by pegs driven between the 
logsof which the house was made; the flour-cask in the corner
serving also for a table; the blanketsspadesand other articles 
against the walls; the damp that blotched the ground; or the crop of 
vegetable rottenness in every crevice of the hut. 
'How is it that you have come here?' asked the manwhen their first 
expressions of surprise were over. 
'Whywe come by the steamer last night' replied Mark. 'Our 
intention is to make our fortuns with punctuality and dispatch; and 
to retire upon our property as soon as ever it's realised. But how 
are you all? You're looking noble!' 
'We are but sickly now' said the poor womanbending over her 
child. 'But we shall do better when we are seasoned to the place.' 
'There are some here' thought Mark 'whose seasoning will last for 
ever.' 
But he said cheerfully'Do better! To be sure you will. We shall 
all do better. What we've got to do isto keep up our spiritsand 
be neighbourly. We shall come all right in the endnever fear. 
That reminds meby the byethat my partner's all wrong just at 
present; and that I looked in to beg for him. I wish you'd come and 
give me your opinion of himmaster.' 
That must have been a very unreasonable request on the part of Mark 
Tapleywith whichin their gratitude for his kind offices on board 
the shipthey would not have complied instantly. The man rose to 
accompany him without a moment's delay. Before they wentMark took 
the sick child in his armsand tried to comfort the mother; but the 
hand of death was on it thenhe saw. 
They found Martin in the houselying wrapped up in his blanket on 
the ground. He wasto all appearancevery ill indeedand shook 
and shivered horribly; not as people do from coldbut in a 
frightful kind of spasm or convulsionthat racked his whole body. 
Mark's friend pronounced his disease an aggravated kind of fever
accompanied with ague; which was very common in those partsand 
which he predicted would be worse to-morrowand for many more 
to-morrows. He had had it himself off and onhe saidfor a 
couple of years or so; but he was thankful thatwhile so many 
he had known had died about himhe had escaped with life. 
'And with not too much of that' thought Marksurveying his 
emaciated form. 'Eden for ever!' 
They had some medicine in their chest; and this man of sad 
experience showed Mark how and when to administer itand how he 
could best alleviate the sufferings of Martin. His attentions did 
not stop there; for he was backwards and forwards constantlyand 
rendered Mark good service in all his brisk attempts to make their 
situation more endurable. Hope or comfort for the future he could 
not bestow. The season was a sickly one; the settlement a grave. 
His child died that night; and Markkeeping the secret from Martin
helped to bury itbeneath a treenext day. 
With all his various duties of attendance upon Martin (who became 
the more exacting in his claimsthe worse he grew)Mark worked out 
of doorsearly and late; and with the assistance of his friend and 
otherslaboured to do something with their land. Not that he had 
the least strength of heart or hopeor steady purpose in so doing
beyond the habitual cheerfulness of his dispositionand his amazing 
power of self-sustainment; for within himselfhe looked on their 
condition as beyond all hopeandin his own words'came out 
strong' in consequence. 
'As to coming out as strong as I could wishsir' he confided to 
Martin in a leisure moment; that is to sayone eveningwhile he 
was washing the linen of the establishmentafter a hard day's work
'that I give up. It's a piece of good fortune as never is to happen 
to meI see!' 
'Would you wish for circumstances stronger than these?' Martin 
retorted with a groanfrom underneath his blanket. 
'Whyonly see how easy they might have been strongersir' said 
Mark'if it wasn't for the envy of that uncommon fortun of mine
which is always after meand tripping me up. The night we landed 
hereI thought things did look pretty jolly. I won't deny it. 
thought they did look pretty jolly.' 
'How do they look now?' groaned Martin. 
'Ah!' said Mark'Ahto be sure. That's the question. How do they 
look now? On the very first morning of my going outwhat do I do? 
Stumble on a family I knowwho are constantly assisting of us in 
all sorts of waysfrom that time to this! That won't doyou know; 
that ain't what I'd a right to expect. If I had stumbled on a 
serpent and got bit; or stumbled on a first-rate patriotand got 
bowie-knifedor stumbled on a lot of Sympathisers with inverted 
shirt-collarsand got made a lion of; I might have distinguished 
myselfand earned some credit. As it isthe great object of my 
voyage is knocked on the head. So it would bewherever I went. 
How do you feel to-nightsir?' 
'Worse than ever' said poor Martin. 
'That's something' returned Mark'but not enough. Nothing but 
being very bad myselfand jolly to the lastwill ever do me 
justice.' 
'In Heaven's namedon't talk of that' said Martin with a thrill 
of terror. 'What should I doMarkif you were taken ill!' 
Mr Tapley's spirits appeared to be stimulated by this remark
although it was not a very flattering one. He proceeded with his 
washing in a brighter mood; and observed 'that his glass was 
arising.' 
'There's one good thing in this placesir' said Mr Tapley
scrubbing away at the linen'as disposes me to be jolly; and that 
is that it's a reg'lar little United States in itself. There's two 
or three American settlers left; and they coolly comes over one
even heresiras if it was the wholesomest and loveliest spot in 
the world. But they're like the cock that went and hid himself to 
save his lifeand was found out by the noise he made. They can't 
help crowing. They was born to do itand do it they mustwhatever 
comes of it.' 
Glancing from his work out at the door as he said these words
Mark's eyes encountered a lean person in a blue frock and a straw 
hatwith a short black pipe in his mouthand a great hickory stick 
studded all over with knotsin his hand; who smoking and chewing as 
he came alongand spitting frequentlyrecorded his progress by a 
train of decomposed tobacco on the ground. 
'Here's one on 'em' cried Mark'Hannibal Chollop.' 
'Don't let him in' said Martinfeebly. 
'He won't want any letting in' replied Mark. 'He'll come insir.' 
Which turned out to be quite truefor he did. His face was almost 
as hard and knobby as his stick; and so were his hands. His head 
was like an old black hearth-broom. He sat down on the chest with 
his hat on; and crossing his legs and looking up at Marksaid
without removing his pipe: 
'WellMr Co.! and how do you git alongsir?' 
It may be necessary to observe that Mr Tapley had gravely introduced 
himself to all strangersby that name. 
'Pretty wellsir; pretty well' said Mark. 
'If this ain't Mr Chuzzlewitain't it!' exclaimed the visitor 'How 
do YOU git alongsir?' 
Martin shook his headand drew the blanket over it involuntarily; 
for he felt that Hannibal was going to spit; and his eyeas the 
song sayswas upon him. 
'You need not regard mesir' observed Mr Chollopcomplacently. 
'I am fever-proofand likewise agur.' 
'Mine was a more selfish motive' said Martinlooking out again. 
'I was afraid you were going to--' 
'I can calc'late my distancesir' returned Mr Chollop'to an 
inch.' 
With a proof of which happy faculty he immediately favoured him. 
'I re-quiresir' said Hannibal'two foot clear in a circ'lar direction
and can engage my-self toe keep within it. I HAVE gone ten 
footin a circ'lar di-rectionbut that was for a wager.' 
'I hope you won itsir' said Mark. 
'WellsirI realised the stakes' said Chollop. 'Yessir.' 
He was silent for a timeduring which he was actively engaged in 
the formation of a magic circle round the chest on which he sat. 
When it was completedhe began to talk again. 
'How do you like our countrysir?' he inquiredlooking at Martin. 
'Not at all' was the invalid's reply. 
Chollop continued to smoke without the least appearance of emotion
until he felt disposed to speak again. That time at length 
arrivinghe took his pipe from his mouthand said: 
'I am not surprised to hear you say so. It re-quires An elevation
and A preparation of the intellect. The mind of man must be 
prepared for FreedomMr Co.' 
He addressed himself to Mark; because he saw that Martinwho wished 
him to gobeing already half-mad with feverish irritationwhich 
the droning voice of this new horror rendered almost insupportable
had closed his eyesand turned on his uneasy bed. 
'A little bodily preparation wouldn't be amisseitherwould it
sir' said Mark'in the case of a blessed old swamp like this?' 
'Do you con-sider this a swampsir?' inquired Chollop gravely. 
'Why yessir' returned Mark. 'I haven't a doubt about it myself.' 
'The sentiment is quite Europian' said the major'and does not 
surprise me; what would your English millions say to such a swamp in 
Englandsir?' 
'They'd say it was an uncommon nasty oneI should thinksaid Mark; 
'and that they would rather be inoculated for fever in some other 
way.' 
'Europian!' remarked Chollopwith sardonic pity. 'Quite Europian!' 
And there he sat. Silent and coolas if the house were his; 
smoking away like a factory chimney. 
Mr Chollop wasof courseone of the most remarkable men in the 
country; but he really was a notorious person besides. He was 
usually described by his friendsin the South and Westas 'a 
splendid sample of our na-tive raw materialsir' and was much 
esteemed for his devotion to rational Liberty; for the better 
propagation whereof he usually carried a brace of revolving pistols 
in his coat pocketwith seven barrels a-piece. He also carried
amongst other trinketsa sword-stickwhich he called his 
'Tickler.' and a great knifewhich (for he was a man of a pleasant 
turn of humour) he called 'Ripper' in allusion to its usefulness as 
a means of ventilating the stomach of any adversary in a close 
contest. He had used these weapons with distinguished effect in 
several instancesall duly chronicled in the newspapers; and was 
greatly beloved for the gallant manner in which he had 'jobbed out' 
the eye of one gentlemanas he was in the act of knocking at his 
own street-door. 
Mr Chollop was a man of a roving disposition; andin any less 
advanced communitymight have been mistaken for a violent vagabond. 
But his fine qualities being perfectly understood and appreciated in 
those regions where his lot was castand where he had many kindred 
spirits to consort withhe may be regarded as having been born 
under a fortunate starwhich is not always the case with a man so 
much before the age in which he lives. Preferringwith a view to 
the gratification of his tickling and ripping fanciesto dwell upon 
the outskirts of societyand in the more remote towns and cities
he was in the habit of emigrating from place to placeand 
establishing in each some business--usually a newspaper--which he 
presently sold; for the most part closing the bargain by challenging
stabbingpistollingor gouging the new editorbefore he had quite 
taken possession of the property. 
He had come to Eden on a speculation of this kindbut had abandoned 
itand was about to leave. He always introduced himself to 
strangers as a worshipper of Freedom; was the consistent advocate of 
Lynch lawand slavery; and invariably recommendedboth in print 
and speechthe 'tarring and feathering' of any unpopular person who 
differed from himself. He called this 'planting the standard of 
civilization in the wilder gardens of My country.' 
There is little doubt that Chollop would have planted this standard 
in Eden at Mark's expensein return for his plainness of speech 
(for the genuine Freedom is dumbsave when she vaunts herself)but 
for the utter desolation and decay prevailing in the settlementand 
his own approaching departure from it. As it washe contented 
himself with showing Mark one of the revolving-pistolsand asking 
him what he thought of that weapon. 
'It ain't long since I shot a man down with thatsirin the State 
of IllinOY' observed Chollop. 
'Did youindeed!' said Markwithout the smallest agitation. 'Very 
free of you. And very independent!' 
'I shot him downsir' pursued Chollop'for asserting in the 
Spartan Porticoa tri-weekly journalthat the ancient Athenians 
went a-head of the present Locofoco Ticket.' 
'And what's that?' asked Mark. 
'Europian not to know' said Chollopsmoking placidly. 'Europian 
quite!' 
After a short devotion to the interests of the magic circlehe 
resumed the conversation by observing: 
'You won't half feel yourself at home in Edennow?' 
'No' said Mark'I don't.' 
'You miss the imposts of your country. You miss the house dues?' 
observed Chollop. 
'And the houses--rather' said Mark. 
'No window dues heresir' observed Chollop. 
'And no windows to put 'em on' said Mark. 
'No stakesno dungeonsno blocksno racksno scaffoldsno 
thumbscrewsno pikesno pillories' said Chollop. 
'Nothing but rewolwers and bowie-knives' returned Mark. 'And what 
are they? Not worth mentioning!' 
The man who had met them on the night of their arrival came crawling 
up at this junctureand looked in at the door. 
'Wellsir' said Chollop. 'How do YOU git along?' 
He had considerable difficulty in getting along at alland said as 
much in reply. 
'Mr Co. And mesir' observed Chollop'are disputating a piece. 
He ought to be slicked up pretty smart to disputate between the Old 
World and the NewI do expect?' 
'Well!' returned the miserable shadow. 'So he had.' 
'I was merely observingsir' said Markaddressing this new 
visitor'that I looked upon the city in which we have the honour to 
liveas being swampy. What's your sentiments?' 
'I opinionate it's moist perhapsat certain times' returned the 
man. 
'But not as moist as Englandsir?' cried Chollopwith a fierce 
expression in his face. 
'Oh! Not as moist as England; let alone its Institutions' said the 
man. 
'I should hope there ain't a swamp in all Americayas don't whip 
THAT small island into mush and molasses' observed Chollop
decisively. 'You bought slickstraightand right awayof 
Scaddersir?' to Mark. 
He answered in the affirmative. Mr Chollop winked at the other 
citizen. 
'Scadder is a smart mansir? He is a rising man? He is a man as 
will come up'ardsright side upsir?' Mr Chollop winked again at 
the other citizen. 
'He should have his right side very high upif I had my way' said 
Mark. 'As high up as the top of a good tall gallowsperhaps.' 
Mr Chollop was so delighted at the smartness of his excellent 
countryman having been too much for the Britisherand at the 
Britisher's resenting itthat he could contain himself no longer
and broke forth in a shout of delight. But the strangest exposition 
of this ruling passion was in the other--the pestilence-stricken
brokenmiserable shadow of a man--who derived so much entertainment 
from the circumstance that he seemed to forget his own ruin in 
thinking of itand laughed outright when he said 'that Scadder was 
a smart manand had draw'd a lot of British capital that wayas 
sure as sun-up.' 
After a full enjoyment of this jokeMr Hannibal Chollop sat smoking 
and improving the circlewithout making any attempts either to 
converse or to take leave; apparently labouring under the not 
uncommon delusion that for a free and enlightened citizen of the 
United States to convert another man's house into a spittoon for two 
or three hours togetherwas a delicate attentionfull of interest 
and politenessof which nobody could ever tire. At last he rose. 
'I am a-going easy' he observed. 
Mark entreated him to take particular care of himself. 
'Afore I go' he said sternly'I have got a leetle word to say to 
you. You are darnation 'cuteyou are.' 
Mark thanked him for the compliment. 
'But you are much too 'cute to last. I can't con-ceive of any 
spotted Painter in the bushas ever was so riddled through and 
through as you will beI bet.' 
'What for?' asked Mark. 
'We must be cracked upsir' retorted Chollopin a tone of menace. 
'You are not now in A despotic land. We are a model to the airth
and must be jist cracked-upI tell you.' 
'What! I speak too freedo I?' cried Mark. 
'I have draw'd upon A manand fired upon A man for less' said 
Chollopfrowning. 'I have know'd strong men obleeged to make 
themselves uncommon skase for less. I have know'd men Lynched for 
lessand beaten into punkin'-sarse for lessby an enlightened 
people. We are the intellect and virtue of the airththe cream of 
human natur'and the flower Of moral force. Our backs is easy ris. 
We must be cracked-upor they risesand we snarls. We shows our 
teethI tell youfierce. You'd better crack us upyou had!' 
After the delivery of this cautionMr Chollop departed; with 
RipperTicklerand the revolversall ready for action on the 
shortest notice. 
'Come out from under the blanketsir' said Mark'he's gone. 
What's this!' he added softly; kneeling down to look into his 
partner's faceand taking his hot hand. 'What's come of all that 
chattering and swaggering? He's wandering in his mind to-nightand 
don't know me!' 
Martin indeed was dangerously ill; very near his death. He lay in 
that state many daysduring which time Mark's poor friends
regardless of themselvesattended him. Markfatigued in mind and 
body; working all the day and sitting up at night; worn with hard 
living and the unaccustomed toil of his new life; surrounded by 
dismal and discouraging circumstances of every kind; never 
complained or yielded in the least degree. If ever he had thought 
Martin selfish or inconsiderateor had deemed him energetic only by 
fits and startsand then too passive for their desperate fortunes
he now forgot it all. He remembered nothing but the better 
qualities of his fellow-wandererand was devoted to himheart and 
hand. 
Many weeks elapsed before Martin was strong enough to move about 
with the help of a stick and Mark's arm; and even then his recovery
for want of wholesome air and proper nourishmentwas very slow. He 
was yet in a feeble and weak conditionwhen the misfourtune he had 
so much dreaded fell upon them. Mark was taken ill. 
Mark fought against it; but the malady fought harderand his 
efforts were in vain. 
'Floored for the presentsir' he said one morningsinking back 
upon his bed; 'but jolly!' 
Floored indeedand by a heavy blow! As any one but Martin might 
have known beforehand. 
If Mark's friends had been kind to Martin (and they had been very)
they were twenty times kinder to Mark. And now it was Martin's turn 
to workand sit beside the bed and watchand listen through the 
longlong nightsto every sound in the gloomy wilderness; and hear 
poor Mr Tapleyin his wandering fancyplaying at skittles in the 
Dragonmaking love-remonstrances to Mrs Lupingetting his sea-legs 
on board the Screwtravelling with old Tom Pinch on English roads
and burning stumps of trees in Edenall at once. 
But whenever Martin gave him drink or medicineor tended him in any 
wayor came into the house returning from some drudgery without
the patient Mr Tapley brightened up and cried: 'I'm jollysir; 'I'm 
jolly!' 
Nowwhen Martin began to think of thisand to look at Mark as he 
lay there; never reproaching him by so much as an expression of 
regret; never murmuring; always striving to be manful and staunch; 
he began to thinkhow was it that this man who had had so few 
advantageswas so much better than he who had had so many? And 
attendance upon a sick bedbut especially the sick bed of one whom 
we have been accustomed to see in full activity and vigourbeing a 
great breeder of reflectionhe began to ask himself in what they 
differed. 
He was assisted in coming to a conclusion on this head by the 
frequent presence of Mark's friendtheir fellow-passenger across 
the oceanwhich suggested to him that in regard to having aided 
herfor examplethey had differed very much. Somehow he coupled 
Tom Pinch with this train of reflection; and thinking that Tom would 
be very likely to have struck up the same sort of acquaintance under 
similar circumstancesbegan to think in what respects two people so 
extremely different were like each otherand were unlike him. At 
first sight there was nothing very distressing in these meditations
but they did undoubtedly distress him for all that. 
Martin's nature was a frank and generous one; but he had been bred 
up in his grandfather's house; and it will usually be found that the 
meaner domestic vices propagate themselves to be their own 
antagonists. Selfishness does this especially; so do suspicion
cunningstealthand covetous propensities. Martin had 
unconsciously reasoned as a child'My guardian takes so much 
thought of himselfthat unless I do the like by MYselfI shall be 
forgotten.' So he had grown selfish. 
But he had never known it. If any one had taxed him with the vice
he would have indignantly repelled the accusationand conceived 
himself unworthily aspersed. He never would have known itbut that 
being newly risen from a bed of dangerous sicknessto watch by such 
another couchhe felt how nearly Self had dropped into the grave
and what a poor dependentmiserable thing it was. 
It was natural for him to reflect--he had months to do it in--upon 
his own escapeand Mark's extremity. This led him to consider 
which of them could be the better sparedand why? Then the curtain 
slowly rose a very little way; and SelfSelfSelfwas shown 
below. 
He asked himselfbesideswhen dreading Mark's decease (as all men 
do and mustat such a time)whether he had done his duty by him
and had deserved and made a good response to his fidelity and zeal. 
No. Short as their companionship had beenhe felt in manymany 
instancesthat there was blame against himself; and still inquiring 
whythe curtain slowly rose a little moreand SelfSelfSelf
dilated on the scene. 
It was long before he fixed the knowledge of himself so firmly in 
his mind that he could thoroughly discern the truth; but in the 
hideous solitude of that most hideous placewith Hope so far 
removedAmbition quenchedand Death beside him rattling at the 
very doorreflection cameas in a plague-beleaguered town; and so 
he felt and knew the failing of his lifeand saw distinctly what an 
ugly spot it was. 
Eden was a hard school to learn so hard a lesson in; but there were 
teachers in the swamp and thicketand the pestilential airwho had 
a searching method of their own. 
He made a solemn resolution that when his strength returned he would 
not dispute the point or resist the convictionbut would look upon 
it as an established factthat selfishness was in his breastand 
must be rooted out. He was so doubtful (and with justice) of his 
own characterthat he determined not to say one word of vain regret 
or good resolve to Markbut steadily to keep his purpose before his 
own eyes solely; and there was not a jot of pride in this; nothing 
but humility and steadfastness; the best armour he could wear. So 
low had Eden brought him down. So high had Eden raised him up. 
After a long and lingering illness (in certain forlorn stages of 
whichwhen too far gone to speakhe had feebly written 'jolly!' on 
a slate)Mark showed some symptoms of returning health. They came 
and wentand flickered for a time; but he began to mend at last 
decidedly; and after that continued to improve from day to day. 
As soon as he was well enough to talk without fatigueMartin 
consulted him upon a project he had in his mindand which a few 
months back he would have carried into execution without troubling 
anybody's head but his own. 
'Ours is a desperate case' said Martin. 'Plainly. The place is 
deserted; its failure must have become known; and selling what we 
have bought to any onefor anythingis hopelesseven if it were 
honest. We left home on a mad enterpriseand have failed. The 
only hope left usthe only one end for which we have now to tryis 
to quit this settlement for everand get back to England. Anyhow! 
by any means! only to get back thereMark.' 
'That's allsir' returned Mr Tapleywith a significant stress 
upon the words; 'only that!' 
'Nowupon this side of the water' said Martin'we have but one 
friend who can help usand that is Mr Bevan.' 
'I thought of him when you was ill' said Mark. 
'But for the time that would be lostI would even write to my 
grandfather' Martin went on to say'and implore him for money to 
free us from this trap into which we were so cruelly decoyed. Shall 
I try Mr Bevan first?' 
'He's a very pleasant sort of a gentleman' said Mark. 'I think 
so.' 
'The few goods we brought hereand in which we spent our money
would produce something if sold' resumed Martin; 'and whatever they 
realise shall be paid him instantly. But they can't be sold here.' 
'There's nobody but corpses to buy 'em' said Mr Tapleyshaking his 
head with a rueful air'and pigs.' 
'Shall I tell him soand only ask him for money enough to enable us 
by the cheapest means to reach New Yorkor any port from which we 
may hope to get a passage homeby serving in any capacity? 
Explaining to him at the same time how I am connectedand that I 
will endeavour to repay himeven through my grandfather
immediately on our arrival in England?' 
'Why to be sure' said Mark: 'he can only say noand he may say 
yes. If you don't mind trying himsir--' 
'Mind!' exclaimed Martin. 'I am to blame for coming hereand I 
would do anything to get away. I grieve to think of the past. If I 
had taken your opinion soonerMarkwe never should have been here
I am certain.' 
Mr Tapley was very much surprised at this admissionbut protested
with great vehemencethat they would have been there all the same; 
and that he had set his heart upon coming to Edenfrom the first 
word he had ever heard of it. 
Martin then read him a letter to Mr Bevanwhich he had already 
prepared. It was frankly and ingenuously writtenand described 
their situation without the least concealment; plainly stated the 
miseries they had undergone; and preferred their request in modest 
but straightforward terms. Mark highly commended it; and they 
determined to dispatch it by the next steamboat going the right way
that might call to take in wood at Eden--where there was plenty of 
wood to spare. Not knowing how to address Mr Bevan at his own place 
of abodeMartin superscribed it to the care of the memorable Mr 
Norris of New Yorkand wrote upon the cover an entreaty that it 
might be forwarded without delay. 
More than a week elapsed before a boat appeared; but at length they 
were awakened very early one morning by the high-pressure snorting 
of the 'Esau Slodge;' named after one of the most remarkable men in 
the countrywho had been very eminent somewhere. Hurrying down to 
the landing-placethey got it safe on board; and waiting anxiously 
to see the boat departstopped up the gangway; an instance of 
neglect which caused the 'Capting' of the Esau Slodge to 'wish he 
might be sifted fine as flourand whittled small as chips; that if 
they didn't come off that there fixing right smart toohe'd spill 
'em in the drink;' whereby the Capting metaphorically said he'd 
throw them in the river. 
They were not likely to receive an answer for eight or ten weeks at 
the earliest. In the meantime they devoted such strength as they 
had to the attempted improvement of their land; to clearing some of 
itand preparing it for useful purposes. Monstrously defective as 
their farming wasstill it was better than their neighbours'; for 
Mark had some practical knowledge of such mattersand Martin 
learned of him; whereas the other settlers who remained upon the 
putrid swamp (a mere handfuland those withered by disease)
appeared to have wandered there with the idea that husbandry was the 
natural gift of all mankind. They helped each other after their own 
manner in these strugglesand in all others; but they worked as 
hopelessly and sadly as a gang of convicts in a penal settlement. 
Often at night when Mark and Martin were aloneand lying down to 
sleepthey spoke of homefamiliar placeshousesroadsand 
people whom they knew; sometimes in the lively hope of seeing them 
againand sometimes with a sorrowful tranquillityas if that hope 
were dead. It was a source of great amazement to Mark Tapley to 
findpervading all these conversationsa singular alteration in 
Martin. 
'I don't know what to make of him' he thought one night'he ain't 
what I supposed. He don't think of himself half as much. I'll try 
him again. Asleepsir?' 
'NoMark.' 
'Thinking of homesir?' 
'YesMark.' 
'So was Isir. I was wondering how Mr Pinch and Mr Pecksniff gets 
on now.' 
'Poor Tom!' said Martinthoughtfully. 
'Weak-minded mansir' observed Mr Tapley. 'Plays the organ for 
nothingsir. Takes no care of himself?' 
'I wish he took a little moreindeed' said Martin. 'Though I 
don't know why I should. We shouldn't like him half as well
perhaps.' 
'He gets put uponsir' hinted Mark. 
'Yes!' said Martinafter a short silence. 'I know thatMark.' 
He spoke so regretfully that his partner abandoned the themeand 
was silent for a short time until he had thought of another. 
'Ahsir!' said Markwith a sigh. 'Dear me! You've ventured a good 
deal for a young lady's love!' 
'I tell you what. I'm not so sure of thatMark' was the reply; so 
hastily and energetically spokenthat Martin sat up in his bed to 
give it. 'I begin to be far from clear upon it. You may depend 
upon it she is very unhappy. She has sacrificed her peace of mind; 
she has endangered her interests very much; she can't run away from 
those who are jealous of herand opposed to heras I have done. 
She has to endureMark; to endure without the possibility of 
actionpoor girl! I begin to think that she has more to bear than 
ever I had. Upon my soul I do!' 
Mr Tapley opened his eyes wide in the dark; but did not interrupt. 
'And I'll tell you a secretMark' said Martin'since we ARE upon 
this subject. That ring--' 
'Which ringsir?' Mark inquiredopening his eyes still wider. 
'That ring she gave me when we partedMark. She bought it; bought 
it; knowing I was poor and proud (Heaven help me! Proud!) and wanted 
money.' 
'Who says sosir?' asked Mark. 
'I say so. I know it. I thought of itmy good fellowhundreds of 
timeswhile you were lying ill. And like a beastI took it from 
her handand wore it on my ownand never dreamed of this even at 
the moment when I parted with itwhen some faint glimmering of the 
truth might surely have possessed me! But it's late' said Martin
checking himself'and you are weak and tiredI know. You only 
talk to cheer me up. Good night! God bless youMark!' 
'God bless yousir! But I'm reg'larly defrauded' thought Mr 
Tapleyturning round with a happy face. 'It's a swindle. I never 
entered for this sort of service. There'll be no credit in being 
jolly with HIM!' 
The time wore onand other steamboats coming from the point on 
which their hopes were fixedarrived to take in wood; but still no 
answer to the letter. Rainheatfoul slimeand noxious vapour
with all the ills and filthy things they bredprevailed. The 
earththe airthe vegetationand the water that they drankall 
teemed with deadly properties. Their fellow-passenger had lost two 
children long before; and buried now her last. Such things are much 
too common to be widely known or cared for. Smart citizens grow 
richand friendless victims smart and dieand are forgotten. That 
is all. 
At last a boat came panting up the ugly riverand stopped at Eden. 
Mark was waiting at the wood hut when it cameand had a letter 
handed to him from on board. He bore it off to Martin. They looked 
at one anothertrembling. 
'It feels heavy' faltered Martin. And opening it a little roll of 
dollar-notes fell out upon the ground. 
What either of them saidor didor feltat firstneither of them 
knew. All Mark could ever tell wasthat he was at the river's bank 
again out of breathbefore the boat had goneinquiring when it 
would retrace its track and put in there. 
The answer wasin ten or twelve days; notwithstanding which they 
began to get their goods together and to tie them up that very 
night. When this stage of excitement was passedeach of them 
believed (they found this outin talking of it afterwards) that he 
would surely die before the boat returned. 
They livedhoweverand it cameafter the lapse of three long 
crawling weeks. At sunriseon an autumn daythey stood upon her 
deck. 
'Courage! We shall meet again!' cried Martinwaving his hand to two 
thin figures on the bank. 'In the Old World!' 
'Or in the next one' added Mark below his breath. 'To see them 
standing side by sideso quietis a'most the worst of all!' 
They looked at one another as the vessel moved awayand then looked 
backward at the spot from which it hurried fast. The log-housewith 
the open doorand drooping trees about it; the stagnant morning 
mistand red sundimly seen beyond; the vapour rising up from land 
and river; the quick stream making the loathsome banks it washed 
more flat and dull; how often they returned in dreams! How often it 
was happiness to wake and find them Shadows that had vanished! 
CHAPTER THIRTY-FOUR 
IN WHICH THE TRAVELLERS MOVE HOMEWARDAND ENCOUNTER SOME 
DISTINGUISHED CHARACTERS UPON THE WAY 
Among the passengers on board the steamboatthere was a faint 
gentleman sitting on a low camp-stoolwith his legs on a high 
barrel of flouras if he were looking at the prospect with his 
ankleswho attracted their attention speedily. 
He had straight black hairparted up the middle of his head and 
hanging down upon his coat; a little fringe of hair upon his chin; 
wore no neckcloth; a white hat; a suit of blacklong in the sleeves 
and short in the legs; soiled brown stockings and laced shoes. His 
complexionnaturally muddywas rendered muddier by too strict an 
economy of soap and water; and the same observation will apply to 
the washable part of his attirewhich he might have changed with 
comfort to himself and gratification to his friends. He was about 
five and thirty; was crushed and jammed up in a heapunder the 
shade of a large green cotton umbrella; and ruminated over his 
tobacco-plug like a cow. 
He was not singularto be surein these respects; for every 
gentleman on board appeared to have had a difference with his 
laundress and to have left off washing himself in early youth. 
Every gentlemantoowas perfectly stopped up with tight plugging
and was dislocated in the greater part of his joints. But about 
this gentleman there was a peculiar air of sagacity and wisdom
which convinced Martin that he was no common character; and this 
turned out to be the case. 
'How do you do sir?' said a voice in Martin's ear 
'How do you do sir?' said Martin. 
It was a tall thin gentleman who spoke to himwith a carpet-cap on
and a long loose coat of green baizeornamented about the pockets 
with black velvet. 
'You air from Europesir?' 
'I am' said Martin. 
'You air fortunatesir.' 
Martin thought so too; but he soon discovered that the gentleman and 
he attached different meanings to this remark. 
'You air fortunatesirin having an opportunity of beholding our 
Elijah Pogramsir.' 
'Your Elijahpogram!' said Martinthinking it was all one wordand 
a building of some sort. 
'Yes sir.' 
Martin tried to look as if he understood himbut he couldn't make 
it out. 
'Yessir' repeated the gentleman. 'our Elijah Pogramsirisat 
this minuteidentically settin' by the en-gine biler.' 
The gentleman under the umbrella put his right forefinger to his 
eyebrowas if he were revolving schemes of state. 
'That is Elijah Pogramis it?' said Martin. 
'Yessir' replied the other. 'That is Elijah Pogram.' 
'Dear me!' said Martin. 'I am astonished.' But he had not the least 
idea who this Elijah Pogram was; having never heard the name in all 
his life. 
'If the biler of this vessel was Toe bustsir' said his new 
acquaintance'and Toe bust nowthis would be a festival day in the 
calendar of despotism; pretty nigh equallin'sirin its effects 
upon the human raceour Fourth of glorious July. Yessirthat is 
the Honourable Elijah PogramMember of Congress; one of the masterminds 
of our countrysir. There is a browsirthere!' 
'Quite remarkable' said Martin. 
'Yessir. Our own immortal Chigglesiris said to have observed
when he made the celebrated Pogram statter in marblewhich rose so 
much con-test and preju-dice in Europethat the brow was more than 
mortal. This was before the Pogram Defianceand wasthereforea 
pre-dictioncruel smart.' 
'What is the Pogram Defiance?' asked Martinthinkingperhapsit 
was the sign of a public-house. 
'An o-rationsir' returned his friend. 
'Oh! to be sure' cried Martin. 'What am I thinking of! It 
defied--' 
'It defied the worldsir' said the othergravely. 'Defied the 
world in general to com-pete with our country upon any hook; and 
devellop'd our internal resources for making war upon the universal 
airth. You would like to know Elijah Pogramsir?' 
'If you please' said Martin. 
'Mr Pogram' said the stranger--Mr Pogram having overheard every 
word of the dialogue--'this is a gentleman from Europesir; from 
Englandsir. But gen'rous ene-mies may meet upon the neutral sile 
of private lifeI think.' 
The languid Mr Pogram shook hands with Martinlike a clock-work 
figure that was just running down. But he made amends by chewing 
like one that was just wound up. 
'Mr Pogram' said the introducer'is a public servantsir. When 
Congress is recessedhe makes himself acquainted with those free 
United Statesof which he is the gifted son.' 
It occurred to Martin that if the Honourable Elijah Pogram had 
stayed at homeand sent his shoes upon a tourthey would have 
answered the same purpose; for they were the only part of him in a 
situation to see anything. 
In course of timehoweverMr Pogram rose; and having ejected 
certain plugging consequences which would have impeded his 
articulationtook up a position where there was something to lean 
againstand began to talk to Martin; shading himself with the green 
umbrella all the time. 
As he began with the words'How do you like--?' Martin took him up 
and said: 
'The countryI presume?' 
'Yessir' said Elijah Pogram. A knot of passengers gathered round 
to hear what followed; and Martin heard his friend sayas he 
whispered to another friendand rubbed his hands'Pogram will 
smash him into sky-blue fitsI know!' 
'Why' said Martinafter a moment's hesitation'I have learned by 
experiencethat you take an unfair advantage of a strangerwhen 
you ask that question. You don't mean it to be answeredexcept in 
one way. NowI don't choose to answer it in that wayfor I cannot 
honestly answer it in that way. And thereforeI would rather not 
answer it at all.' 
But Mr Pogram was going to make a great speech in the next session 
about foreign relationsand was going to write strong articles on 
the subject; and as he greatly favoured the free and independent 
custom (a very harmless and agreeable one) of procuring information 
of any sort in any kind of confidenceand afterwards perverting it 
publicly in any manner that happened to suit himhe had determined 
to get at Martin's opinions somehow or other. For if he could have 
got nothing out of himhe would have had to invent it for himand 
that would have been laborious. He made a mental note of his 
answerand went in again. 
'You are from Edensir? How did you like Eden?' 
Martin said what he thought of that part of the countryin pretty 
strong terms. 
'It is strange' said Pogramlooking round upon the group'this 
hatred of our countryand her Institutions! This national antipathy 
is deeply rooted in the British mind!' 
'Good Heavensir' cried Martin. 'Is the Eden Land Corporation
with Mr Scadder at its headand all the misery it has workedat 
its dooran Institution of America? A part of any form of 
government that ever was known or heard of?' 
'I con-sider the cause of this to be' said Pogramlooking round 
again and taking himself up where Martin had interrupted him
'partly jealousy and pre-judiceand partly the nat'ral unfitness of 
the British people to appreciate the ex-alted Institutions of our 
native land. I expectsir' turning to Martin again'that a 
gentleman named Chollop happened in upon you during your lo-cation 
in the town of Eden?' 
'Yes' answered Martin; 'but my friend can answer this better than I 
canfor I was very ill at the time. Mark! The gentleman is 
speaking of Mr Chollop.' 
'Oh. Yessir. Yes. I see him' observed Mark. 
'A splendid example of our na-tive raw materialsir?' said Pogram
interrogatively. 
'Indeedsir!' cried Mark. 
The Honourable Elijah Pogram glanced at his friends as though he 
would have said'Observe this! See what follows!' and they rendered 
tribute to the Pogram genius by a gentle murmur. 
'Our fellow-countryman is a model of a manquite fresh from Natur's 
mould!' said Pogramwith enthusiasm. 'He is a true-born child of 
this free hemisphere! Verdant as the mountains of our country; 
bright and flowing as our mineral Licks; unspiled by withering 
conventionalities as air our broad and boundless Perearers! Rough he 
may be. So air our Barrs. Wild he may be. So air our Buffalers. 
But he is a child of Natur'and a child of Freedom; and his 
boastful answer to the Despot and the Tyrant isthat his bright 
home is in the Settin Sun.' 
Part of this referred to Chollopand part to a Western postmaster
whobeing a public defaulter not very long before (a character not 
at all uncommon in America)had been removed from office; and on 
whose behalf Mr Pogram (he voted for Pogram) had thundered the last 
sentence from his seat in Congressat the head of an unpopular 
President. It told brilliantly; for the bystanders were delighted
and one of them said to Martin'that he guessed he had now seen 
something of the eloquential aspect of our countryand was chawed 
up pritty small.' 
Mr Pogram waited until his hearers were calm againbefore he said 
to Mark: 
'You do not seem to coincidesir?' 
'Why' said Mark'I didn't like him much; and that's the truth
sir. I thought he was a bully; and I didn't admire his carryin' 
them murderous little persuadersand being so ready to use 'em.' 
'It's singler!' said Pogramlifting his umbrella high enough to 
look all round from under it. 'It's strange! You observe the 
settled opposition to our Institutions which pervades the British 
mind!' 
'What an extraordinary people you are!' cried Martin. 'Are Mr 
Chollop and the class he representsan Institution here? Are 
pistols with revolving barrelssword-sticksbowie-knivesand such 
thingsInstitutions on which you pride yourselves? Are bloody 
duelsbrutal combatssavage assaultsshooting down and stabbing 
in the streetsyour Institutions! WhyI shall hear next that 
Dishonour and Fraud are among the Institutions of the great 
republic!' 
The moment the words passed his lipsthe Honourable Elijah Pogram 
looked round again. 
'This morbid hatred of our Institutions' he observed'is quite a 
study for the psychological observer. He's alludin' to Repudiation 
now!' 
'Oh! you may make anything an Institution if you like' said Martin
laughing'and I confess you had me therefor you certainly have 
made that one. But the greater part of these things are one 
Institution with usand we call it by the generic name of Old 
Bailey!' 
The bell being rung for dinner at this momenteverybody ran away 
into the cabinwhither the Honourable Elijah Pogram fled with such 
precipitation that he forgot his umbrella was upand fixed it so 
tightly in the cabin door that it could neither be let down nor got 
out. For a minute or so this accident created a perfect rebellion 
among the hungry passengers behindwhoseeing the dishesand 
hearing the knives and forks at workwell knew what would happen 
unless they got there instantlyand were nearly mad; while several 
virtuous citizens at the table were in deadly peril of choking 
themselves in their unnatural efforts to get rid of all the meat 
before these others came. 
They carried the umbrella by stormhoweverand rushed in at the 
breach. The Honourable Elijah Pogram and Martin found themselves
after a severe struggleside by sideas they might have come 
together in the pit of a London theatre; and for four whole minutes 
afterwardsPogram was snapping up great blocks of everything he 
could get hold oflike a raven. When he had taken this unusually 
protracted dinnerhe began to talk to Martin; and begged him not to 
have the least delicacy in speaking with perfect freedom to himfor 
he was a calm philosopher. Which Martin was extremely glad to hear; 
for he had begun to speculate on Elijah being a disciple of that 
other school of republican philosophywhose noble sentiments are 
carved with knives upon a pupil's bodyand writtennot with pen 
and inkbut tar and feathers. 
'What do you think of my countrymen who are presentsir?' inquired 
Elijah Pogram. 
'Oh! very pleasant' said Martin. 
They were a very pleasant party. No man had spoken a word; every 
one had been intentas usualon his own private gorging; and the 
greater part of the company were decidedly dirty feeders. 
The Honourable Elijah Pogram looked at Martin as if he thought 'You 
don't mean thatI know!' and he was soon confirmed in this opinion. 
Sitting opposite to them was a gentleman in a high state of tobacco
who wore quite a little beardcomposed of the overflowing of that 
weedas they had dried about his mouth and chin; so common an 
ornament that it would scarcely have attracted Martin's observation
but that this good citizenburning to assert his equality against 
all comerssucked his knife for some momentsand made a cut with 
it at the butterjust as Martin was in the act of taking some. 
There was a juiciness about the deed that might have sickened a 
scavenger. 
When Elijah Pogram (to whom this was an every-day incident) saw that 
Martin put the plate awayand took no butterhe was quite 
delightedand said
'Well! The morbid hatred of you British to the Institutions of our 
country is as-TONishing!' 
'Upon my life!' cried Martinin his turn. 'This is the most 
wonderful community that ever existed. A man deliberately makes a 
hog of himselfand THAT'S an Institution!' 
'We have no time to ac-quire formssir' said Elijah Pogram. 
'Acquire!' cried Martin. 'But it's not a question of acquiring 
anything. It's a question of losing the natural politeness of a 
savageand that instinctive good breeding which admonishes one man 
not to offend and disgust another. Don't you think that man over 
the wayfor instancenaturally knows betterbut considers it a 
very fine and independent thing to be a brute in small matters?' 
'He is a na-tive of our countryand is nat'rally bright and spry
of course' said Mr Pogram. 
'Nowobserve what this comes toMr Pogram' pursued Martin. 'The 
mass of your countrymen begin by stubbornly neglecting little social 
observanceswhich have nothing to do with gentilitycustomusage
governmentor countrybut are acts of commondecentnatural
human politeness. You abet them in thisby resenting all attacks 
upon their social offences as if they were a beautiful national 
feature. From disregarding small obligations they come in regular 
course to disregard great ones; and so refuse to pay their debts. 
What they may door what they may refuse to do nextI don't know; 
but any man may see if he willthat it will be something following 
in natural successionand a part of one great growthwhich is 
rotten at the root.' 
The mind of Mr Pogram was too philosophical to see this; so they 
went on deck againwhereresuming his former posthe chewed until 
he was in a lethargic stateamounting to insensibility. 
After a weary voyage of several daysthey came again to that same 
wharf where Mark had been so nearly left behindon the night of 
starting for Eden. Captain Kedgickthe landlordwas standing 
thereand was greatly surprised to see them coming from the boat. 
'Whywhat the 'tarnal!' cried the Captain. 'Well! I do admire at 
thisI do!' 
'We can stay at your house until to-morrowCaptainI suppose?' 
said Martin. 
'I reckon you can stay there for a twelvemonth if you like' 
retorted Kedgick coolly. 'But our people won't best like your 
coming back.' 
'Won't like itCaptain Kedgick!' said Martin. 
'They did ex-pect you was a-going to settle' Kedgick answeredas 
he shook his head. 'They've been took inyou can't deny!' 
'What do you mean?' cried Martin. 
'You didn't ought to have received 'em' said the Captain. 'No you 
didn't!' 
'My good friend' returned Martin'did I want to receive them? Was 
it any act of mine? Didn't you tell me they would rile upand that 
I should be flayed like a wild cat--and threaten all kinds of 
vengeanceif I didn't receive them?' 
'I don't know about that' returned the Captain. 'But when our 
people's frills is outthey're starched up pretty stiffI tell 
you!' 
With thathe fell into the rear to walk with Markwhile Martin and 
Elijah Pogram went on to the National. 
'We've come back aliveyou see!' said Mark. 
'It ain't the thing I did expect' the Captain grumbled. 'A man 
ain't got no right to be a public manunless he meets the public 
views. Our fashionable people wouldn't have attended his le-veeif 
they had know'd it.' 
Nothing mollified the Captainwho persisted in taking it very ill 
that they had not both died in Eden. The boarders at the National 
felt strongly on the subject too; but it happened by good fortune 
that they had not much time to think about this grievancefor it 
was suddenly determined to pounce upon the Honourable Elijah Pogram
and give HIM a le-vee forthwith. 
As the general evening meal of the house was over before the arrival 
of the boatMartinMarkand Pogram were taking tea and fixings at 
the public table by themselveswhen the deputation entered to 
announce this honour; consisting of six gentlemen boarders and a 
very shrill boy. 
'Sir!' said the spokesman. 
'Mr Pogram!' cried the shrill boy. 
The spokesman thus reminded of the shrill boy's presenceintroduced 
him. 'Doctor Ginery Dunklesir. A gentleman of great poetical 
elements. He has recently jined us heresirand is an acquisition 
to ussirI do assure you. Yessir. Mr Joddsir. Mr Izzard
sir. Mr Julius Bibsir.' 
'Julius Washington Merryweather Bib' said the gentleman himself TO 
himself. 
'I beg your pardonsir. Excuse me. Mr Julius Washington 
Merryweather Bibsir; a gentleman in the lumber linesirand much 
esteemed. Colonel Gropersir. Pro-fessor Pipersir. My own name
siris Oscar Buffum.' 
Each man took one slide forward as he was named; butted at the 
Honourable Elijah Pogram with his head; shook handsand slid back 
again. The introductions being completedthe spokesman resumed. 
'Sir!' 
'Mr Pogram!' cried the shrill boy. 
'Perhaps' said the spokesmanwith a hopeless look'you will be so 
goodDr. Ginery Dunkleas to charge yourself with the execution 
of our little officesir?' 
As there was nothing the shrill boy desired morehe immediately 
stepped forward. 
'Mr Pogram! Sir! A handful of your fellow-citizenssirhearing 
of your arrival at the National Hoteland feeling the patriotic 
character of your public serviceswishsirto have the 
gratification of beholding youand mixing with yousir; and 
unbending with yousirin those moments which--' 
'Air' suggested Buffum. 
'Which air so peculiarly the lotsirof our great and happy 
country.' 
'Hear!' cried Colonel Grouperin a loud voice. 'Good! Hear him! 
Good!' 
'And thereforesir' pursued the Doctor'they request; as A mark 
Of their respect; the honour of your company at a little le-Vee
sirin the ladies' ordinaryat eight o'clock.' 
Mr Pogram bowedand said: 
'Fellow countrymen!' 
'Good!' cried the Colonel. 'Hearhim! Good!' 
Mr Pogram bowed to the Colonel individuallyand then resumed. 
'Your approbation of My labours in the common cause goes to My 
heart. At all times and in all places; in the ladies' ordinaryMy 
friendsand in the Battle Field--' 
'Goodvery good! Hear him! Hear him!' said the Colonel. 
'The name of Pogram will be proud to jine you. And may itMy 
friendsbe written on My tombHe was a member of the Congress of 
our common country, and was ac-Tive in his trust.' 
'The Com-mitteesir' said the shrill boy'will wait upon you at 
five minutes afore eight. I take My leavesir!' 
Mr Pogram shook hands with himand everybody elseonce more; and 
when they came back again at five minutes before eightthey said
one by onein a melancholy voice'How do you dosir?' and shook 
hands with Mr Pogram all over againas if he had been abroad for a 
twelvemonth in the meantimeand they metnowat a funeral. 
But by this time Mr Pogram had freshened himself upand had 
composed his hair and features after the Pogram statueso that any 
one with half an eye might cry out'There he is! as he delivered 
the Defiance!' The Committee were embellished also; and when they 
entered the ladies' ordinary in a bodythere was much clapping of 
hands from ladies and gentlemenaccompanied by cries of 'Pogram! 
Pogram!' and some standing up on chairs to see him. 
The object of the popular caress looked round the room as he walked 
up itand smiled; at the same time observing to the shrill boy
that he knew something of the beauty of the daughters of their 
common countrybut had never seen it in such lustre and perfection 
as at that moment. Which the shrill boy put in the paper next day; 
to Elijah Pogram's great surprise. 
'We will re-quest yousirif you please' said Buffumlaying 
hands on Mr Pogram as if he were taking his measure for a coat'to 
stand up with your back agin the wall right in the furthest corner
that there may be more room for our fellow cit-izens. If you could 
set your back right slap agin that curtain-pegsirkeeping your 
left leg everlastingly behind the stovewe should be fixed quite 
slick.' 
Mr Pogram did as he was toldand wedged himself into such a little 
corner that the Pogram statue wouldn't have known him. 
The entertainments of the evening then began. Gentlemen brought 
ladies upand brought themselves upand brought each other up; and 
asked Elijah Pogram what he thought of this political questionand 
what he thought of that; and looked at himand looked at one 
anotherand seemed very unhappy indeed. The ladies on the chairs 
looked at Elijah Pogram through their glassesand said audibly'I 
wish he'd speak. Why don't he speak? Ohdo ask him to speak!' And 
Elijah Pogram looked sometimes at the ladies and sometimes 
elsewheredelivering senatorial opinionsas he was asked for them. 
But the great end and object of the meeting seemed to benot to let 
Elijah Pogram out of the corner on any account; so there they kept 
himhard and fast. 
A great bustle at the doorin the course of the eveningannounced 
the arrival of some remarkable person; and immediately afterwards an 
elderly gentlemanmuch excitedwas seen to precipitate himself 
upon the crowdand battle his way towards the Honourable Elijah 
Pogram. Martinwho had found a snug place of observation in a 
distant cornerwhere he stood with Mark beside him (for he did not 
so often forget him now as formerlythough he still did sometimes)
thought he knew this gentlemanbut had no doubt of itwhen he 
cried as loud as he couldwith his eyes starting out of his head: 
'SirMrs Hominy!' 
'Lord bless that womanMark. She has turned up again!' 
'Here she comessir' answered Mr Tapley. 'Pogram knows her. A 
public character! Always got her eye upon her countrysir! If that 
there lady's husband is of my opinionwhat a jolly old gentleman he 
must be!' 
A lane was made; and Mrs Hominywith the aristocratic stalkthe 
pocket handkerchiefthe clasped handsand the classical capcame 
slowly up itin a procession of one. Mr Pogram testified emotions 
of delight on seeing herand a general hush prevailed. For it was 
known that when a woman like Mrs Hominy encountered a man like 
Pogramsomething interesting must be said. 
Their first salutations were exchanged in a voice too low to reach 
the impatient ears of the throng; but they soon became audiblefor 
Mrs Hominy felt her positionand knew what was expected of her. 
Mrs H. was hard upon him at first; and put him through a rigid 
catechism in reference to a certain vote he had givenwhich she had 
found it necessaryas the mother of the modern Gracchito 
deprecate in a line by itselfset up expressly for the purpose in 
German text. But Mr Pogram evading it by a well-timed allusion to 
the star-spangled bannerwhichit appearedhad the remarkable 
peculiarity of flouting the breeze whenever it was hoisted where the 
wind blewshe forgave him. They now enlarged on certain questions 
of tariffcommercial treatyboundaryimportation and exportation 
with great effect. And Mrs Hominy not only talkedas the saying 
islike a bookbut actually did talk her own booksword for word. 
'My! what is this!' cried Mrs Hominyopening a little note which 
was handed her by her excited gentleman-usher. 'Do tell! ohwell
now! on'y think!' 
And then she read aloudas follows: 
'Two literary ladies present their compliments to the mother of the 
modern Gracchiand claim her kind introductionas their talented 
countrywomanto the honourable (and distinguished) Elijah Pogram
whom the two L. L.'s have often contemplated in the speaking marble 
of the soul-subduing Chiggle. On a verbal intimation from the 
mother of the M. G.that she will comply with the request of the two 
L. L.'sthey will have the immediate pleasure of joining the galaxy 
assembled to do honour to the patriotic conduct of a Pogram. It may 
be another bond of union between the two L. L.'s and the mother of 
the M. G. to observethat the two L. L.'s are Transcendental.' 
Mrs Hominy promptly roseand proceeded to the doorwhence she 
returnedafter a minute's intervalwith the two L. L.'swhom she 
ledthrough the lane in the crowdwith all that stateliness of 
deportment which was so remarkably her ownup to the great Elijah 
Pogram. It was (as the shrill boy cried out in an ecstasy) quite 
the Last Scene from Coriolanus. One of the L. L.'s wore a brown 
wig of uncommon size. Sticking on the forehead of the other
by invisible meanswas a massive cameoin size and shape like 
the raspberry tart which is ordinarily sold for a penny
representing on its front the Capitol at Washington. 
'Miss Toppitand Miss Codger!' said Mrs Hominy. 
'Codger's the lady so often mentioned in the English newspapers I 
should thinksir' whispered Mark. 'The oldest inhabitant as never 
remembers anything.' 
'To be presented to a Pogram' said Miss Codger'by a Hominy
indeeda thrilling moment is it in its impressiveness on what we 
call our feelings. But why we call them soor why impressed they 
areor if impressed they are at allor if at all we areor if 
there really isoh gasping one! a Pogram or a Hominyor any active 
principle to which we give those titlesis a topicSpirit 
searchinglight abandonedmuch too vast to enter onat this 
unlooked-for crisis.' 
'Mind and matter' said the lady in the wig'glide swift into the 
vortex of immensity. Howls the sublimeand softly sleeps the calm 
Idealin the whispering chambers of Imagination. To hear itsweet 
it is. But thenoutlaughs the stern philosopherand saith to the 
GrotesqueWhat ho! arrest for me that Agency. Go, bring it here!
And so the vision fadeth.' 
After thisthey both took Mr Pogram by the handand pressed it to 
their lipsas a patriotic palm. That homage paidthe mother of 
the modern Gracchi called for chairsand the three literary ladies 
went to work in earnestto bring poor Pogram outand make him show 
himself in all his brilliant colours. 
How Pogram got out of his depth instantlyand how the three L. L.'s 
were never in theirsis a piece of history not worth recording. 
Suffice itthat being all four out of their depthsand all unable 
to swimthey splashed up words in all directionsand floundered 
about famously. On the wholeit was considered to have been the 
severest mental exercise ever heard in the National Hotel. Tears 
stood in the shrill boy's eyes several times; and the whole company 
observed that their heads ached with the effort--as well they might. 
When it at last became necessary to release Elijah Pogram from the 
cornerand the Committee saw him safely back again to the next 
roomthey were fervent in their admiration. 
'Which' said Mr Buffum'must have ventor it will bust. Toe you
Mr PogramI am grateful. Toe-wards yousirI am inspired with 
lofty venerationand with deep e-mo-tion. The sentiment Toe which 
I would propose to give ex-pressionsiris this: "May you ever be 
as firmsiras your marble statter! May it ever be as great a 
terror Toe its ene-mies as you."' 
There is some reason to suppose that it was rather terrible to its 
friends; being a statue of the Elevated or Goblin Schoolin which 
the Honourable Elijah Pogram was represented as in a very high wind
with his hair all standing on endand his nostrils blown wide open. 
But Mr Pogram thanked his friend and countryman for the aspiration 
to which he had given utteranceand the Committeeafter another 
solemn shaking of handsretired to bedexcept the Doctor; who 
immediately repaired to the newspaper-officeand there wrote a 
short poem suggested by the events of the eveningbeginning with 
fourteen starsand headed'A Fragment. Suggested by witnessing 
the Honourable Elijah Pogram engaged in a philosophical disputation 
with three of Columbia's fairest daughters. By Doctor Ginery 
Dunkle. Of Troy.' 
If Pogram was as glad to get to bed as Martin washe must have been 
well rewarded for his labours. They started off again next day 
(Martin and Mark previously disposing of their goods to the 
storekeepers of whom they had purchased themfor anything they 
would bring)and were fellow travellers to within a short distance 
of New York. When Pogram was about to leave them he grew 
thoughtfuland after pondering for some timetook Martin aside. 
'We air going to partsir' said Pogram. 
'Pray don't distress yourself' said Martin; 'we must bear it.' 
'It ain't thatsir' returned Pogram'not at all. But I should 
wish you to accept a copy of My oration.' 
'Thank you' said Martin'you are very good. I shall be most 
happy.' 
'It ain't quite thatsirneither' resumed Pogram; 'air you bold 
enough to introduce a copy into your country?' 
'Certainly' said Martin. 'Why not?' 
'Its sentiments air strongsir' hinted Pogramdarkly. 
'That makes no difference' said Martin. 'I'll take a dozen if you 
like.' 
'Nosir' retorted Pogram. 'Not A dozen. That is more than I 
require. If you are content to run the hazardsirhere is one for 
your Lord Chancellor' producing it'and one for Your principal 
Secretary of State. I should wish them to see itsiras 
expressing what my opinions air. That they may not plead ignorance 
at a future time. But don't get into dangersiron my account!' 
'There is not the least dangerI assure you' said Martin. So he 
put the pamphlets in his pocketand they parted. 
Mr Bevan had written in his letter thatat a certain timewhich 
fell out happily just thenhe would be at a certain hotel in the 
cityanxiously expecting to see them. To this place they repaired 
without a moment's delay. They had the satisfaction of finding him 
within; and of being received by their good friendwith his own 
warmth and heartiness. 
'I am truly sorry and ashamed' said Martin'to have begged of you. 
But look at us. See what we areand judge to what we are reduced!' 
'So far from claiming to have done you any service' returned the 
other'I reproach myself with having beenunwittinglythe 
original cause of your misfortunes. I no more supposed you would go 
to Eden on such representations as you received; orindeedthat 
you would do anything but be dispossessedby the readiest meansof 
your idea that fortunes were so easily made here; than I thought of 
going to Eden myself.' 
'The fact isI closed with the thing in a mad and sanguine manner' 
said Martin'and the less said about it the better for me. Mark
herehadn't a voice in the matter.' 
'Well! but he hadn't a voice in any other matterhad he?' returned 
Mr Bevan; laughing with an air that showed his understanding of Mark 
and Martin too. 
'Not a very powerful oneI am afraid' said Martin with a blush. 
'But live and learnMr Bevan! Nearly die and learn; we learn the 
quicker.' 
'Now' said their friend'about your plans. You mean to return 
home at once?' 
'OhI think so' returned Martin hastilyfor he turned pale at the 
thought of any other suggestion. 'That is your opinion tooI 
hope?' 
'Unquestionably. For I don't know why you ever came here; though 
it's not such an unusual caseI am sorry to saythat we need go 
any farther into that. You don't know that the ship in which you 
came over with our friend General Fladdockis in portof course?' 
'Indeed!' said Martin. 
'Yes. And is advertised to sail to-morrow.' 
This was tempting newsbut tantalising too; for Martin knew that 
his getting any employment on board a ship of that class was 
hopeless. The money in his pocket would not pay one-fourth of the 
sum he had already borrowedand if it had been enough for their 
passage-moneyhe could hardly have resolved to spend it. He 
explained this to Mr Bevanand stated what their project was. 
'Whythat's as wild as Eden every bit' returned his friend. 'You 
must take your passage like a Christian; at leastas like a 
Christian as a fore-cabin passenger can; and owe me a few more 
dollars than you intend. If Mark will go down to the ship and see 
what passengers there areand finds that you can go in her without 
being actually suffocatedmy advice isgo! You and I will look 
about us in the meantime (we won't call at the Norris's unless you 
like)and we will all three dine together in the afternoon.' 
Martin had nothing to express but gratitudeand so it was arranged. 
But he went out of the room after Markand advised him to take 
their passage in the Screwthough they lay upon the bare deck; 
which Mr Tapleywho needed no entreaty on the subject readily 
promised to do. 
When he and Martin met againand were alonehe was in high 
spiritsand evidently had something to communicatein which he 
gloried very much. 
'I've done Mr Bevansir' said Mark. 
'Done Mr Bevan!' repeated Martin. 
'The cook of the Screw went and got married yesterdaysir' said Mr 
Tapley. 
Martin looked at him for farther explanation. 
'And when I got on boardand the word was passed that it was me' 
said Mark'the mate he comes and asks me whether I'd engage to take 
this said cook's place upon the passage home. "For you're used to 
it he says; you were always a-cooking for everybody on your 
passage out." And so I was' said Mark'although I never cooked 
beforeI'll take my oath.' 
'What did you say?' demanded Martin. 
'Say!' cried Mark. 'That I'd take anything I could get. "If that's 
so says the mate, whybring a glass of rum;" which they brought 
according. And my wagessir' said Mark in high glee'pays your 
passage; and I've put the rolling-pin in your berth to take it (it's 
the easy one up in the corner); and there we areRule Britannia
and Britons strike home!' 
'There never was such a good fellow as you are!' cried Martin 
seizing him by the hand. 'But what do you mean by "doing" Mr Bevan
Mark?' 
'Whydon't you see?' said Mark. 'We don't tell himyou know. We 
take his moneybut we don't spend itand we don't keep it. What 
we do iswrite him a little noteexplaining this engagementand 
roll it upand leave it at the barto be given to him after we are 
gone. Don't you see?' 
Martin's delight in this idea was not inferior to Mark's. It was 
all done as he proposed. They passed a cheerful evening; slept at 
the hotel; left the letter as arranged; and went off to the ship 
betimes next morningwith such light hearts as the weight of their 
past miseries engendered. 
'Good-bye! a hundred thousand times good-bye!' said Martin to their 
friend. 'How shall I remember all your kindness! How shall I ever 
thank you!' 
'If you ever become a rich manor a powerful one' returned his 
friend'you shall try to make your Government more careful of its 
subjects when they roam abroad to live. Tell it what you know of 
emigration in your own caseand impress upon it how much suffering 
may be prevented with a little pains!' 
Cheerilyladscheerily! Anchor weighed. Ship in full sail. Her 
sturdy bowsprit pointing true to England. America a cloud upon the 
sea behind them! 
'WhyCook! what are you thinking of so steadily?' said Martin. 
'WhyI was a-thinkingsir' returned Mark'that if I was a 
painter and was called upon to paint the American Eaglehow should 
I do it?' 
'Paint it as like an Eagle as you couldI suppose.' 
'No' said Mark. 'That wouldn't do for mesir. I should want to 
draw it like a Batfor its short-sightedness; like a Bantamfor 
its bragging; like a Magpiefor its honesty; like a Peacockfor 
its vanity; like a ostrichfor its putting its head in the mudand 
thinking nobody sees it--' 
'And like a Phoenixfor its power of springing from the ashes of 
its faults and vicesand soaring up anew into the sky!' said 
Martin. 'WellMark. Let us hope so.' 
CHAPTER THIRTY-FIVE 
ARRIVING IN ENGLANDMARTIN WITNESSES A CEREMONYFROM WHICH HE 
DERIVES THE CHEERING INFORMATION THAT HE HAS NOT BEEN FORGOTTEN IN 
HIS ABSENCE 
It was mid-dayand high water in the English port for which the 
Screw was boundwhenborne in gallantly upon the fullness of the 
tideshe let go her anchor in the river. 
Bright as the scene was; freshand full of motion; airyfreeand 
sparkling; it was nothing to the life and exultation in the breasts 
of the two travellersat sight of the old churchesroofsand 
darkened chimney stacks of Home. The distant roar that swelled up 
hoarsely from the busy streetswas music in their ears; the lines 
of people gazing from the wharveswere friends held dear; the 
canopy of smoke that overhung the town was brighter and more 
beautiful to them than if the richest silks of Persia had been 
waving in the air. And though the water going on its glistening 
trackturnedever and againaside to dance and sparkle round 
great shipsand heave them up; and leaped from off the blades of 
oarsa shower of diving diamonds; and wantoned with the idle boats
and swiftly passedin many a sportive chasethrough obdurate old 
iron ringsset deep into the stone-work of the quays; not even it 
was half so buoyantand so restlessas their fluttering hearts
when yearning to set footonce moreon native ground. 
A year had passed since those same spires and roofs had faded from 
their eyes. It seemed to thema dozen years. Some trifling 
changeshere and therethey called to mind; and wondered that they 
were so few and slight. In health and fortuneprospect and 
resourcethey came back poorer men than they had gone away. But it 
was home. And though home is a namea wordit is a strong one; 
stronger than magician ever spokeor spirit answered toin 
strongest conjuration. 
Being set ashorewith very little money in their pocketsand no 
definite plan of operation in their headsthey sought out a cheap 
tavernwhere they regaled upon a smoking steakand certain flowing 
mugs of beeras only men just landed from the sea can revel in the 
generous dainties of the earth. When they had feastedas two 
grateful-tempered giants might have donethey stirred the fire
drew back the glowing curtain from the windowand making each a 
sofa for himselfby union of the great unwieldy chairsgazed 
blissfully into the street. 
Even the street was made a fairy streetby being half hidden in an 
atmosphere of steakand strongstoutstand-up English beer. For 
on the window-glass hung such a mistthat Mr Tapley was obliged to 
rise and wipe it with his handkerchiefbefore the passengers 
appeared like common mortals. And even thena spiral little cloud 
went curling up from their two glasses of hot grogwhich nearly hid 
them from each other. 
It was one of those unaccountable little rooms which are never seen 
anywhere but in a tavernand are supposed to have got into taverns 
by reason of the facilities afforded to the architect for getting 
drunk while engaged in their construction. It had more corners in 
it than the brain of an obstinate man; was full of mad closetsinto 
which nothing could be put that was not specially invented and made 
for that purpose; had mysterious shelvings and bulkheadsand 
indications of staircases in the ceiling; and was elaborately 
provided with a bell that rung in the room itselfabout two feet 
from the handleand had no connection whatever with any other part 
of the establishment. It was a little below the pavementand 
abutted close upon it; so that passengers grated against the windowpanes 
with their buttonsand scraped it with their baskets; and 
fearful boys suddenly coming between a thoughtful guest and the 
lightderided himor put out their tongues as if he were a 
physician; or made white knobs on the ends of their noses by 
flattening the same against the glassand vanished awfullylike 
spectres. 
Martin and Mark sat looking at the people as they passeddebating 
every now and then what their first step should be. 
'We want to see Miss Maryof course' said Mark. 
'Of course' said Martin. 'But I don't know where she is. Not 
having had the heart to write in our distress--you yourself thought 
silence most advisable--and consequentlynever having heard from 
her since we left New York the first timeI don't know where she 
ismy good fellow.' 
'My opinion issir' returned Mark'that what we've got to do is 
to travel straight to the Dragon. There's no need for you to go 
therewhere you're knownunless you like. You may stop ten mile 
short of it. I'll go on. Mrs Lupin will tell me all the news. Mr 
Pinch will give me every information that we want; and right glad Mr 
Pinch will be to do it. My proposal is: To set off walking this 
afternoon. To stop when we are tired. To get a lift when we can. 
To walk when we can't. To do it at onceand do it cheap.' 
'Unless we do it cheapwe shall have some difficulty in doing it at 
all' said Martinpulling out the bankand telling it over in his 
hand. 
'The greater reason for losing no timesir' replied Mark. 
'Whereaswhen you've seen the young lady; and know what state of 
mind the old gentleman's inand all about it; then you'll know what 
to do next.' 
'No doubt' said Martin. 'You are quite right.' 
They were raising their glasses to their lipswhen their hands 
stopped midwayand their gaze was arrested by a figure which 
slowlyvery slowlyand reflectivelypassed the window at that 
moment. 
Mr Pecksniff. Placidcalmbut proud. Honestly proud. Dressed 
with peculiar caresmiling with even more than usual blandness
pondering on the beauties of his art with a mild abstraction from 
all sordid thoughtsand gently travelling across the discas if he 
were a figure in a magic lantern. 
As Mr Pecksniff passeda person coming in the opposite direction 
stopped to look after him with great interest and respectalmost 
with veneration; and the landlord bouncing out of the houseas if 
he had seen him toojoined this personand spoke to himand shook 
his head gravelyand looked after Mr Pecksniff likewise. 
Martin and Mark sat staring at each otheras if they could not 
believe it; but there stood the landlordand the other man still. 
In spite of the indignation with which this glimpse of Mr Pecksniff 
had inspired himMartin could not help laughing heartily. Neither 
could Mark. 
'We must inquire into this!' said Martin. 'Ask the landlord in
Mark.' 
Mr Tapley retired for that purposeand immediately returned with 
their large-headed host in safe convoy. 
'Praylandlord!' said Martin'who is that gentleman who passed 
just nowand whom you were looking after?' 
The landlord poked the fire as ifin his desire to make the most of 
his answerhe had become indifferent even to the price of coals; 
and putting his hands in his pocketssaidafter inflating himself 
to give still further effect to his reply: 
'Thatgentlemenis the great Mr Pecksniff! The celebrated 
architectgentlemen!' 
He looked from one to the other while he said itas if he were 
ready to assist the first man who might be overcome by the 
intelligence. 
'The great Mr Pecksniffthe celebrated architectgentlemen.' said 
the landlord'has come down hereto help to lay the first stone of 
a new and splendid public building.' 
'Is it to be built from his designs?' asked Martin. 
'The great Mr Pecksniffthe celebrated architectgentlemen' 
returned the landlordwho seemed to have an unspeakable delight in 
the repetition of these words'carried off the First Premiumand 
will erect the building.' 
'Who lays the stone?' asked Martin. 
'Our member has come down express' returned the landlord. 'No 
scrubs would do for no such a purpose. Nothing less would satisfy 
our Directors than our member in the House of Commonswho is 
returned upon the Gentlemanly Interest.' 
'Which interest is that?' asked Martin. 
'Whatdon't you know!' returned the landlord. 
It was quite clear the landlord didn't. They always told him at 
election timethat it was the Gentlemanly sideand he immediately 
put on his top-bootsand voted for it. 
'When does the ceremony take place?' asked Martin. 
'This day' replied the landlord. Then pulling out his watchhe 
addedimpressively'almost this minute.' 
Martin hastily inquired whether there was any possibility of getting 
in to witness it; and finding that there would be no objection to 
the admittance of any decent personunless indeed the ground were 
fullhurried off with Markas hard as they could go. 
They were fortunate enough to squeeze themselves into a famous 
corner on the groundwhere they could see all that passedwithout 
much dread of being beheld by Mr Pecksniff in return. They were not 
a minute too soonfor as they were in the act of congratulating 
each othera great noise was heard at some distanceand everybody 
looked towards the gate. Several ladies prepared their pocket 
handkerchiefs for waving; and a stray teacher belonging to the 
charity school being much cheered by mistakewas immensely groaned 
at when detected. 
'Perhaps he has Tom Pinch with him' Martin whispered Mr Tapley. 
'It would be rather too much of a treat for himwouldn't itsir?' 
whispered Mr Tapley in return. 
There was no time to discuss the probabilities either wayfor the 
charity schoolin clean linencame filing in two and twoso much 
to the self-approval of all the people present who didn't subscribe 
to itthat many of them shed tears. A band of music followedled 
by a conscientious drummer who never left off. Then came a great 
many gentlemen with wands in their handsand bows on their breasts
whose share in the proceedings did not appear to be distinctly laid 
downand who trod upon each otherand blocked up the entry for a 
considerable period. These were followed by the Mayor and 
Corporationall clustering round the member for the Gentlemanly 
Interest; who had the great Mr Pecksniffthe celebrated architect 
on his right handand conversed with him familiarly as they came 
along. Then the ladies waved their handkerchiefsand the gentlemen 
their hatsand the charity children shriekedand the member for 
the Gentlemanly Interest bowed. 
Silence being restoredthe member for the Gentlemanly Interest 
rubbed his handsand wagged his headand looked about him 
pleasantly; and there was nothing this member didat which some 
lady or other did not burst into an ecstatic waving of her pocket 
handkerchief. When he looked up at the stonethey said how 
graceful! when he peeped into the holethey said how condescending! 
when he chatted with the Mayorthey said how easy! when he folded 
his arms they cried with one accordhow statesman-like! 
Mr Pecksniff was observed tooclosely. When he talked to the 
Mayorthey saidOhreallywhat a courtly man he was! When he 
laid his hand upon the mason's shouldergiving him directionshow 
pleasant his demeanour to the working classes; just the sort of man 
who made their toil a pleasure to thempoor dear souls! 
But now a silver trowel was brought; and when the member for the 
Gentlemanly Interesttucking up his coat-sleevedid a little 
sleight of hand with the mortarthe air was rentso loud was the 
applause. The workman-like manner in which he did it was amazing. 
No one could conceive where such a gentlemanly creature could have 
picked the knowledge up. 
When he had made a kind of dirt-pie under the direction of the 
masonthey brought a little vase containing coinsthe which the 
member for the Gentlemanly Interest jingledas if he were going to 
conjure. Whereat they said how drollhow cheerfulwhat a flow of 
spirits! This put into its placean ancient scholar read the 
inscriptionwhich was in Latin; not in English; that would never 
do. It gave great satisfaction; especially every time there was a 
good long substantive in the third declensionablative casewith 
an adjective to match; at which periods the assembly became very 
tenderand were much affected. 
And now the stone was lowered down into its placeamidst the 
shouting of the concourse. When it was firmly fixedthe member for 
the Gentlemanly Interest struck upon it thrice with the handle of 
the trowelas if inquiringwith a touch of humourwhether anybody 
was at home. Mr Pecksniff then unrolled his Plans (prodigious plans 
they were)and people gathered round to look at and admire them. 
Martinwho had been fretting himself--quite unnecessarilyas Mark 
thought--during the whole of these proceedingscould no longer 
restrain his impatience; but stepping forward among several others
looked straight over the shoulder of the unconscious Mr Pecksniff
at the designs and plans he had unrolled. He returned to Mark
boiling with rage. 
'Whywhat's the mattersir?' cried Mark. 
'Matter! This is MY building.' 
'Your buildingsir!' said Mark. 
'My grammar-school. I invented it. I did it all. He has only put 
four windows inthe villainand spoilt it!' 
Mark could hardly believe it at firstbut being assured that it was 
really soactually held him to prevent his interference foolishly
until his temporary heat was past. In the meantimethe member 
addressed the company on the gratifying deed which he had just 
performed. 
He said that since he had sat in Parliament to represent the 
Gentlemanly Interest of that town; and he might addthe Lady 
Interesthe hopedbesides (pocket handkerchiefs); it had been his 
pleasant duty to come among themand to raise his voice on their 
behalf in Another Place (pocket handkerchiefs and laughter)often. 
But he had never come among themand had never raised his voice
with half such puresuch deepsuch unalloyed delightas now. 
'The present occasion' he said'will ever be memorable to me; not 
only for the reasons I have assignedbut because it has afforded me 
an opportunity of becoming personally known to a gentleman--' 
Here he pointed the trowel at Mr Pecksniffwho was greeted with 
vociferous cheeringand laid his hand upon his heart. 
'To a gentleman whoI am happy to believewill reap both 
distinction and profit from this field; whose fame had previously 
penetrated to me--as to whose ears has it not!--but whose 
intellectual countenance I never had the distinguished honour to 
behold until this dayand whose intellectual conversation I had 
never before the improving pleasure to enjoy.' 
Everybody seemed very glad of thisand applauded more than ever. 
'But I hope my Honourable Friend' said the Gentlemanly member--of 
course he added "if he will allow me to call him so and of course 
Mr Pecksniff bowed--'will give me many opportunities of cultivating 
the knowledge of him; and that I may have the extraordinary 
gratification of reflecting in after-time that I laid on this day 
two first stones, both belonging to structures which shall last my 
life!' 
Great cheering again. All this time, Martin was cursing Mr 
Pecksniff up hill and down dale. 
'My friends!' said Mr Pecksniff, in reply. 'My duty is to build, 
not speak; to act, not talk; to deal with marble, stone, and brick; 
not language. I am very much affected. God bless you!' 
This address, pumped out apparently from Mr Pecksniff's very heart, 
brought the enthusiasm to its highest pitch. The pocket 
handkerchiefs were waved again; the charity children were admonished 
to grow up Pecksniffs, every boy among them; the Corporation, 
gentlemen with wands, member for the Gentlemanly Interest, all 
cheered for Mr Pecksniff. Three cheers for Mr Pecksniff! Three more 
for Mr Pecksniff! Three more for Mr Pecksniff, gentlemen, if you 
please! One more, gentlemen, for Mr Pecksniff, and let it be a good 
one to finish with! 
In short, Mr Pecksniff was supposed to have done a great work and 
was very kindly, courteously, and generously rewarded. When the 
procession moved away, and Martin and Mark were left almost alone 
upon the ground, his merits and a desire to acknowledge them formed 
the common topic. He was only second to the Gentlemanly member. 
'Compare the fellow's situation to-day with ours!' said Martin 
bitterly. 
'Lord bless you, sir!' cried Mark, 'what's the use? Some architects 
are clever at making foundations, and some architects are clever at 
building on 'em when they're made. But it'll all come right in the 
end, sir; it'll all come right!' 
'And in the meantime--' began Martin. 
'In the meantime, as you say, sir, we have a deal to do, and far to 
go. So sharp's the word, and Jolly!' 
'You are the best master in the world, Mark,' said Martin, 'and I 
will not be a bad scholar if I can help it, I am resolved! So come! 
Best foot foremost, old fellow!' 
CHAPTER THIRTY-SIX 
TOM PINCH DEPARTS TO SEEK HIS FORTUNE. WHAT HE FINDS AT STARTING 
Oh! What a different town Salisbury was in Tom Pinch's eyes to be 
sure, when the substantial Pecksniff of his heart melted away into 
an idle dream! He possessed the same faith in the wonderful shops, 
the same intensified appreciation of the mystery and wickedness of 
the place; made the same exalted estimate of its wealth, population, 
and resources; and yet it was not the old city nor anything like it. 
He walked into the market while they were getting breakfast ready 
for him at the Inn; and though it was the same market as of old, 
crowded by the same buyers and sellers; brisk with the same 
business; noisy with the same confusion of tongues and cluttering of 
fowls in coops; fair with the same display of rolls of butter, newly 
made, set forth in linen cloths of dazzling whiteness; green with 
the same fresh show of dewy vegetables; dainty with the same array 
in higglers' baskets of small shaving-glasses, laces, braces, 
trouser-straps, and hardware; savoury with the same unstinted show 
of delicate pigs' feet, and pies made precious by the pork that once 
had walked upon them; still it was strangely changed to Tom. For, 
in the centre of the market-place, he missed a statue he had set up 
there as in all other places of his personal resort; and it looked 
cold and bare without that ornament. 
The change lay no deeper than this, for Tom was far from being sage 
enough to know, that, having been disappointed in one man, it would 
have been a strictly rational and eminently wise proceeding to have 
revenged himself upon mankind in general, by mistrusting them one 
and all. Indeed this piece of justice, though it is upheld by the 
authority of divers profound poets and honourable men, bears a 
nearer resemblance to the justice of that good Vizier in the 
Thousand-and-one Nights, who issues orders for the destruction of 
all the Porters in Bagdad because one of that unfortunate fraternity 
is supposed to have misconducted himself, than to any logical, not 
to say Christian, system of conduct, known to the world in later 
times. 
Tom had so long been used to steep the Pecksniff of his fancy in his 
tea, and spread him out upon his toast, and take him as a relish 
with his beer, that he made but a poor breakfast on the first 
morning after his expulsion. Nor did he much improve his appetite 
for dinner by seriously considering his own affairs, and taking 
counsel thereon with his friend the organist's assistant. 
The organist's assistant gave it as his decided opinion that 
whatever Tom did, he must go to London; for there was no place like 
it. Which may be true in the main, though hardly, perhaps, in 
itself, a sufficient reason for Tom's going there. 
But Tom had thought of London before, and had coupled with it 
thoughts of his sister, and of his old friend John Westlock, whose 
advice he naturally felt disposed to seek in this important crisis 
of his fortunes. To London, therefore, he resolved to go; and he 
went away to the coach-office at once, to secure his place. The 
coach being already full, he was obliged to postpone his departure 
until the next night; but even this circumstance had its bright side 
as well as its dark one, for though it threatened to reduce his poor 
purse with unexpected country charges, it afforded him an 
opportunity of writing to Mrs Lupin and appointing his box to be 
brought to the old finger-post at the old time; which would enable 
him to take that treasure with him to the metropolis, and save the 
expense of its carriage. 'So,' said Tom, comforting himself, 'it's 
very nearly as broad as it's long.' 
And it cannot be denied that, when he had made up his mind to even 
this extent, he felt an unaccustomed sense of freedom--a vague and 
indistinct impression of holiday-making--which was very luxurious. 
He had his moments of depression and anxiety, and they were, with 
good reason, pretty numerous; but still, it was wonderfully pleasant 
to reflect that he was his own master, and could plan and scheme for 
himself. It was startling, thrilling, vast, difficult to 
understand; it was a stupendous truth, teeming with responsibility 
and self-distrust; but in spite of all his cares, it gave a curious 
relish to the viands at the Inn, and interposed a dreamy haze 
between him and his prospects, in which they sometimes showed to 
magical advantage. 
In this unsettled state of mind, Tom went once more to bed in the 
low four-poster, to the same immovable surprise of the effigies of 
the former landlord and the fat ox; and in this condition, passed 
the whole of the succeeding day. When the coach came round at last 
with 'London' blazoned in letters of gold upon the boot, it gave Tom 
such a turn, that he was half disposed to run away. But he didn't 
do it; for he took his seat upon the box instead, and looking down 
upon the four greys, felt as if he were another grey himself, or, at 
all events, a part of the turn-out; and was quite confused by the 
novelty and splendour of his situation. 
And really it might have confused a less modest man than Tom to find 
himself sitting next that coachman; for of all the swells that ever 
flourished a whip professionally, he might have been elected 
emperor. He didn't handle his gloves like another man, but put them 
on--even when he was standing on the pavement, quite detached from 
the coach--as if the four greys were, somehow or other, at the ends 
of the fingers. It was the same with his hat. He did things with 
his hat, which nothing but an unlimited knowledge of horses and the 
wildest freedom of the road, could ever have made him perfect in. 
Valuable little parcels were brought to him with particular 
instructions, and he pitched them into this hat, and stuck it on 
again; as if the laws of gravity did not admit of such an event as 
its being knocked off or blown off, and nothing like an accident 
could befall it. The guard, too! Seventy breezy miles a day were 
written in his very whiskers. His manners were a canter; his 
conversation a round trot. He was a fast coach upon a down-hill 
turnpike road; he was all pace. A waggon couldn't have moved 
slowly, with that guard and his key-bugle on the top of it. 
These were all foreshadowings of London, Tom thought, as he sat upon 
the box, and looked about him. Such a coachman, and such a guard, 
never could have existed between Salisbury and any other place. The 
coach was none of your steady-going, yokel coaches, but a 
swaggering, rakish, dissipated London coach; up all night, and lying 
by all day, and leading a devil of a life. It cared no more for 
Salisbury than if it had been a hamlet. It rattled noisily through 
the best streets, defied the Cathedral, took the worst corners 
sharpest, went cutting in everywhere, making everything get out of 
its way; and spun along the open country-road, blowing a lively 
defiance out of its key-bugle, as its last glad parting legacy. 
It was a charming evening. Mild and bright. And even with the 
weight upon his mind which arose out of the immensity and 
uncertainty of London, Tom could not resist the captivating sense of 
rapid motion through the pleasant air. The four greys skimmed 
along, as if they liked it quite as well as Tom did; the bugle was 
in as high spirits as the greys; the coachman chimed in sometimes 
with his voice; the wheels hummed cheerfully in unison; the brass 
work on the harness was an orchestra of little bells; and thus, as 
they went clinking, jingling, rattling smoothly on, the whole 
concern, from the buckles of the leaders' coupling-reins to the 
handle of the hind boot, was one great instrument of music. 
Yoho, past hedges, gates, and trees; past cottages and barns, and 
people going home from work. Yoho, past donkey-chaises, drawn aside 
into the ditch, and empty carts with rampant horses, whipped up at a 
bound upon the little watercourse, and held by struggling carters 
close to the five-barred gate, until the coach had passed the narrow 
turning in the road. Yoho, by churches dropped down by themselves 
in quiet nooks, with rustic burial-grounds about them, where the 
graves are green, and daisies sleep--for it is evening--on the 
bosoms of the dead. Yoho, past streams, in which the cattle cool 
their feet, and where the rushes grow; past paddock-fences, farms, 
and rick-yards; past last year's stacks, cut, slice by slice, away, 
and showing, in the waning light, like ruined gables, old and brown. 
Yoho, down the pebbly dip, and through the merry water-splash and up 
at a canter to the level road again. Yoho! Yoho! 
Was the box there, when they came up to the old finger-post? The 
box! Was Mrs Lupin herself? Had she turned out magnificently as a 
hostess should, in her own chaise-cart, and was she sitting in a 
mahogany chair, driving her own horse Dragon (who ought to have been 
called Dumpling), and looking lovely? Did the stage-coach pull up 
beside her, shaving her very wheel, and even while the guard helped 
her man up with the trunk, did he send the glad echoes of his bugle 
careering down the chimneys of the distant Pecksniff, as if the 
coach expressed its exultation in the rescue of Tom Pinch? 
'This is kind indeed!' said Tom, bending down to shake hands with 
her. 'I didn't mean to give you this trouble.' 
'Trouble, Mr Pinch!' cried the hostess of the Dragon. 
'Well! It's a pleasure to you, I know,' said Tom, squeezing her hand 
heartily. 'Is there any news?' 
The hostess shook her head. 
'Say you saw me,' said Tom, 'and that I was very bold and cheerful, 
and not a bit down-hearted; and that I entreated her to be the same, 
for all is certain to come right at last. Good-bye!' 
'You'll write when you get settled, Mr Pinch?' said Mrs Lupin. 
'When I get settled!' cried Tom, with an involuntary opening of his 
eyes. 'Oh, yes, I'll write when I get settled. Perhaps I had 
better write before, because I may find that it takes a little time 
to settle myself; not having too much money, and having only one 
friend. I shall give your love to the friend, by the way. You were 
always great with Mr Westlock, you know. Good-bye!' 
'Good-bye!' said Mrs Lupin, hastily producing a basket with a long 
bottle sticking out of it. 'Take this. Good-bye!' 
'Do you want me to carry it to London for you?' cried Tom. She was 
already turning the chaise-cart round. 
'No, no,' said Mrs Lupin. 'It's only a little something for 
refreshment on the road. Sit fast, Jack. Drive on, sir. All 
right! Good-bye!' 
She was a quarter of a mile off, before Tom collected himself; and 
then he was waving his hand lustily; and so was she. 
'And that's the last of the old finger-post,' thought Tom, straining 
his eyes, 'where I have so often stood to see this very coach go by, 
and where I have parted with so many companions! I used to compare 
this coach to some great monster that appeared at certain times to 
bear my friends away into the world. And now it's bearing me away, 
to seek my fortune, Heaven knows where and how!' 
It made Tom melancholy to picture himself walking up the lane and 
back to Pecksniff's as of old; and being melancholy, he looked 
downwards at the basket on his knee, which he had for the moment 
forgotten. 
'She is the kindest and most considerate creature in the world,' 
thought Tom. 'Now I KNOW that she particularly told that man of 
hers not to look at me, on purpose to prevent my throwing him a 
shilling! I had it ready for him all the time, and he never once 
looked towards me; whereas that man naturally, (for I know him very 
well,) would have done nothing but grin and stare. Upon my word, 
the kindness of people perfectly melts me.' 
Here he caught the coachman's eye. The coachman winked. 
'Remarkable fine woman for her time of life,' said the coachman. 
'I quite agree with you,' returned Tom. 'So she is.' 
'Finer than many a young 'un, I mean to say,' observed the coachman. 
'Eh?' 
'Than many a young one,' Tom assented. 
'I don't care for 'em myself when they're too young,' remarked the 
coachman. 
This was a matter of taste, which Tom did not feel himself called 
upon to discuss. 
'You'll seldom find 'em possessing correct opinions about 
refreshment, for instance, when they're too young, you know,' said 
the coachman; 'a woman must have arrived at maturity, before her 
mind's equal to coming provided with a basket like that.' 
'Perhaps you would like to know what it contains?' said Tom, 
smiling. 
As the coachman only laughed, and as Tom was curious himself, he 
unpacked it, and put the articles, one by one, upon the footboard. 
A cold roast fowl, a packet of ham in slices, a crusty loaf, a piece 
of cheese, a paper of biscuits, half a dozen apples, a knife, some 
butter, a screw of salt, and a bottle of old sherry. There was a 
letter besides, which Tom put in his pocket. 
The coachman was so earnest in his approval of Mrs Lupin's provident 
habits, and congratulated Torn so warmly on his good fortune, that 
Tom felt it necessary, for the lady's sake, to explain that the 
basket was a strictly Platonic basket, and had merely been presented 
to him in the way of friendship. When he had made the statement 
with perfect gravity; for he felt it incumbent on him to disabuse 
the mind of this lax rover of any incorrect impressions on the 
subject; he signified that he would be happy to share the gifts with 
him, and proposed that they should attack the basket in a spirit of 
good fellowship at any time in the course of the night which the 
coachman's experience and knowledge of the road might suggest, as 
being best adapted to the purpose. From this time they chatted so 
pleasantly together, that although Tom knew infinitely more of 
unicorns than horses, the coachman informed his friend the guard at 
the end of the next stage, 'that rum as the box-seat looked, he was 
as good a one to go, in pint of conversation, as ever he'd wish to 
sit by.' 
Yoho, among the gathering shades; making of no account the deep 
reflections of the trees, but scampering on through light and 
darkness, all the same, as if the light of London fifty miles away, 
were quite enough to travel by, and some to spare. Yoho, beside the 
village green, where cricket-players linger yet, and every little 
indentation made in the fresh grass by bat or wicket, ball or 
player's foot, sheds out its perfume on the night. Away with four 
fresh horses from the Bald-faced Stag, where topers congregate about 
the door admiring; and the last team with traces hanging loose, go 
roaming off towards the pond, until observed and shouted after by a 
dozen throats, while volunteering boys pursue them. Now, with a 
clattering of hoofs and striking out of fiery sparks, across the old 
stone bridge, and down again into the shadowy road, and through the 
open gate, and far away, away, into the wold. Yoho! 
Yoho, behind there, stop that bugle for a moment! Come creeping over 
to the front, along the coach-roof, guard, and make one at this 
basket! Not that we slacken in our pace the while, not we; we rather 
put the bits of blood upon their metal, for the greater glory of the 
snack. Ah! It is long since this bottle of old wine was brought 
into contact with the mellow breath of night, you may depend, and 
rare good stuff it is to wet a bugler's whistle with. Only try it. 
Don't be afraid of turning up your finger, Bill, another pull! Now, 
take your breath, and try the bugle, Bill. There's music! There's a 
tone!' over the hills and far away,' indeed. Yoho! The skittish 
mare is all alive to-night. Yoho! Yoho! 
See the bright moon! High up before we know it; making the earth 
reflect the objects on its breast like water. Hedges, trees, low 
cottages, church steeples, blighted stumps and flourishing young 
slips, have all grown vain upon the sudden, and mean to contemplate 
their own fair images till morning. The poplars yonder rustle that 
their quivering leaves may see themselves upon the ground. Not so 
the oak; trembling does not become HIM; and he watches himself in 
his stout old burly steadfastness, without the motion of a twig. 
The moss-grown gate, ill-poised upon its creaking hinges, crippled 
and decayed swings to and fro before its glass, like some fantastic 
dowager; while our own ghostly likeness travels on, Yoho! Yoho! 
through ditch and brake, upon the ploughed land and the smooth, 
along the steep hillside and steeper wall, as if it were a phantom-
Hunter. 
Clouds too! And a mist upon the Hollow! Not a dull fog that hides 
it, but a light airy gauze-like mist, which in our eyes of modest 
admiration gives a new charm to the beauties it is spread before; as 
real gauze has done ere now, and would again, so please you, though 
we were the Pope. Yoho! Why now we travel like the Moon herself. 
Hiding this minute in a grove of trees; next minute in a patch of 
vapour; emerging now upon our broad clear course; withdrawing now, 
but always dashing on, our journey is a counter-part of hers. Yoho! 
A match against the Moon! 
The beauty of the night is hardly felt, when Day comes rushing up. 
Yoho! Two stages, and the country roads are almost changed to a 
continuous street. Yoho, past market-gardens, rows of houses, 
villas, crescents, terraces, and squares; past waggons, coaches, 
carts; past early workmen, late stragglers, drunken men, and sober 
carriers of loads; past brick and mortar in its every shape; and in 
among the rattling pavements, where a jaunty-seat upon a coach is 
not so easy to preserve! Yoho, down countless turnings, and through 
countless mazy ways, until an old Innyard is gained, and Tom Pinch, 
getting down quite stunned and giddy, is in London! 
'Five minutes before the time, too!' said the driver, as he received 
his fee of Tom. 
'Upon my word,' said Tom, 'I should not have minded very much, if we 
had been five hours after it; for at this early hour I don't know 
where to go, or what to do with myself.' 
'Don't they expect you then?' inquired the driver. 
'Who?' said Tom. 
'Why them,' returned the driver. 
His mind was so clearly running on the assumption of Tom's having 
come to town to see an extensive circle of anxious relations and 
friends, that it would have been pretty hard work to undeceive him. 
Tom did not try. He cheerfully evaded the subject, and going into 
the Inn, fell fast asleep before a fire in one of the public rooms 
opening from the yard. When he awoke, the people in the house were 
all astir, so he washed and dressed himself; to his great 
refreshment after the journey; and, it being by that time eight 
o'clock, went forth at once to see his old friend John. 
John Westlock lived in Furnival's Inn, High Holborn, which was 
within a quarter of an hour's walk of Tom's starting-point, but 
seemed a long way off, by reason of his going two or three miles out 
of the straight road to make a short cut. When at last he arrived 
outside John's door, two stories up, he stood faltering with his 
hand upon the knocker, and trembled from head to foot. For he was 
rendered very nervous by the thought of having to relate what had 
fallen out between himself and Pecksniff; and he had a misgiving 
that John would exult fearfully in the disclosure. 
'But it must be made,' thought Tom, 'sooner or later; and I had 
better get it over.' 
Rat tat. 
'I am afraid that's not a London knock,' thought Tom. 'It didn't 
sound bold. Perhaps that's the reason why nobody answers the door.' 
It is quite certain that nobody came, and that Tom stood looking at 
the knocker; wondering whereabouts in the neighbourhood a certain 
gentleman resided, who was roaring out to somebody 'Come in!' with 
all his might. 
'Bless my soul!' thought Tom at last. 'Perhaps he lives here, and 
is calling to me. I never thought of that. Can I open the door 
from the outside, I wonder. Yes, to be sure I can.' 
To be sure he could, by turning the handle; and to be sure when he 
did turn it the same voice came rushing out, crying 'Why don't you 
come in? Come in, do you hear? What are you standing there for?'-quite 
violently. 
Tom stepped from the little passage into the room from which these 
sounds proceeded, and had barely caught a glimpse of a gentleman in 
a dressing-gown and slippers (with his boots beside him ready to put 
on), sitting at his breakfast with a newspaper in his hand, when the 
said gentleman, at the imminent hazard of oversetting his tea-table, 
made a plunge at Tom, and hugged him. 
'Why, Tom, my boy!' cried the gentleman. 'Tom!' 
'How glad I am to see you, Mr Westlock!' said Tom Pinch, shaking 
both his hands, and trembling more than ever. 'How kind you are!' 
'Mr Westlock!' repeated John, 'what do you mean by that, Pinch? You 
have not forgotten my Christian name, I suppose?' 
'No, John, no. I have not forgotten,' said Thomas Pinch. 'Good 
gracious me, how kind you are!' 
'I never saw such a fellow in all my life!' cried John. 'What do 
you mean by saying THAT over and over again? What did you expect me 
to be, I wonder! Here, sit down, Tom, and be a reasonable creature. 
How are you, my boy? I am delighted to see you!' 
'And I am delighted to see YOU,' said Tom. 
'It's mutual, of course,' returned John. 'It always was, I hope. 
If I had known you had been coming, Tom, I would have had something 
for breakfast. I would rather have such a surprise than the best 
breakfast in the world, myself; but yours is another case, and I 
have no doubt you are as hungry as a hunter. You must make out as 
well as you can, Tom, and we'll recompense ourselves at dinner-time. 
You take sugar, I know; I recollect the sugar at Pecksniff's. Ha, 
ha, ha! How IS Pecksniff? When did you come to town? DO begin at 
something or other, Tom. There are only scraps here, but they are 
not at all bad. Boar's Head potted. Try it, Tom. Make a beginning 
whatever you do. What an old Blade you are! I am delighted to see 
you.' 
While he delivered himself of these words in a state of great 
commotion, John was constantly running backwards and forwards to and 
from the closet, bringing out all sorts of things in pots, scooping 
extraordinary quantities of tea out of the caddy, dropping French 
rolls into his boots, pouring hot water over the butter, and making 
a variety of similar mistakes without disconcerting himself in the 
least. 
'There!' said John, sitting down for the fiftieth time, and 
instantly starting up again to make some other addition to the 
breakfast. 'Now we are as well off as we are likely to be till 
dinner. And now let us have the news, Tom. Imprimis, how's 
Pecksniff?' 
'I don't know how he is,' was Tom's grave answer. 
John Westlock put the teapot down, and looked at him, in 
astonishment. 
'I don't know how he is,' said Thomas Pinch; 'and, saving that I 
wish him no ill, I don't care. I have left him, John. I have left 
him for ever.' 
'Voluntarily?' 
'Why, no, for he dismissed me. But I had first found out that I was 
mistaken in him; and I could not have remained with him under any 
circumstances. I grieve to say that you were right in your estimate 
of his character. It may be a ridiculous weakness, John, but it has 
been very painful and bitter to me to find this out, I do assure 
you.' 
Tom had no need to direct that appealing look towards his friend, in 
mild and gentle deprecation of his answering with a laugh. John 
Westlock would as soon have thought of striking him down upon the 
floor. 
'It was all a dream of mine,' said Tom, 'and it is over. I'll tell 
you how it happened, at some other time. Bear with my folly, John. 
I do not, just now, like to think or speak about it.' 
'I swear to you, Tom,' returned his friend, with great earnestness 
of manner, after remaining silent for a few moments, 'that when I 
see, as I do now, how deeply you feel this, I don't know whether to 
be glad or sorry that you have made the discovery at last. I 
reproach myself with the thought that I ever jested on the subject; 
I ought to have known better.' 
'My dear friend,' said Tom, extending his hand, 'it is very generous 
and gallant in you to receive me and my disclosure in this spirit; 
it makes me blush to think that I should have felt a moment's 
uneasiness as I came along. You can't think what a weight is lifted 
off my mind,' said Tom, taking up his knife and fork again, and 
looking very cheerful. 'I shall punish the Boar's Head dreadfully.' 
The host, thus reminded of his duties, instantly betook himself to 
piling up all kinds of irreconcilable and contradictory viands in 
Tom's plate, and a very capital breakfast Tom made, and very much 
the better for it Tom felt. 
'That's all right,' said John, after contemplating his visitor's 
proceedings with infinite satisfaction. 'Now, about our plans. You 
are going to stay with me, of course. Where's your box?' 
'It's at the Inn,' said Tom. 'I didn't intend--' 
'Never mind what you didn't intend,' John Westlock interposed. 
'What you DID intend is more to the purpose. You intended, in 
coming here, to ask my advice, did you not, Tom?' 
'Certainly.' 
'And to take it when I gave it to you?' 
'Yes,' rejoined Tom, smiling, 'if it were good advice, which, being 
yours, I have no doubt it will be.' 
'Very well. Then don't be an obstinate old humbug in the outset, 
Tom, or I shall shut up shop and dispense none of that invaluable 
commodity. You are on a visit to me. I wish I had an organ for 
you, Tom!' 
'So do the gentlemen downstairs, and the gentlemen overhead I have 
no doubt,' was Tom's reply. 
'Let me see. In the first place, you will wish to see your sister 
this morning,' pursued his friend, 'and of course you will like to 
go there alone. I'll walk part of the way with you; and see about a 
little business of my own, and meet you here again in the afternoon. 
Put that in your pocket, Tom. It's only the key of the door. If 
you come home first you'll want it.' 
'Really,' said Tom, 'quartering one's self upon a friend in this 
way--' 
'Why, there are two keys,' interposed John Westlock. 'I can't open 
the door with them both at once, can I? What a ridiculous fellow 
you are, Tom? Nothing particular you'd like for dinner, is there?' 
'Oh dear no,' said Tom. 
'Very well, then you may as well leave it to me. Have a glass of 
cherry brandy, Tom?' 
'Not a drop! What remarkable chambers these are!' said Pinch 
'there's everything in 'em!' 
'Bless your soul, Tom, nothing but a few little bachelor 
contrivances! the sort of impromptu arrangements that might have 
suggested themselves to Philip Quarll or Robinson Crusoe, that's 
all. What do you say? Shall we walk?' 
'By all means,' cried Tom. 'As soon as you like.' 
Accordingly John Westlock took the French rolls out of his boots, 
and put his boots on, and dressed himself; giving Tom the paper to 
read in the meanwhile. When he returned, equipped for walking, he 
found Tom in a brown study, with the paper in his hand. 
'Dreaming, Tom?' 
'No,' said Mr Pinch, 'No. I have been looking over the advertising 
sheet, thinking there might be something in it which would be likely 
to suit me. But, as I often think, the strange thing seems to be 
that nobody is suited. Here are all kinds of employers wanting all 
sorts of servants, and all sorts of servants wanting all kinds of 
employers, and they never seem to come together. Here is a 
gentleman in a public office in a position of temporary difficulty, 
who wants to borrow five hundred pounds; and in the very next 
advertisement here is another gentleman who has got exactly that sum 
to lend. But he'll never lend it to him, John, you'll find! Here is 
a lady possessing a moderate independence, who wants to board and 
lodge with a quiet, cheerful family; and here is a family describing 
themselves in those very words, a quietcheerful family who want 
exactly such a lady to come and live with them. But she'll never 
go, John! Neither do any of these single gentlemen who want an airy 
bedroom, with the occasional use of a parlour, ever appear to come 
to terms with these other people who live in a rural situation 
remarkable for its bracing atmosphere, within five minutes' walk of 
the Royal Exchange. Even those letters of the alphabet who are 
always running away from their friends and being entreated at the 
tops of columns to come back, never DO come back, if we may judge 
from the number of times they are asked to do it and don't. It 
really seems,' said Tom, relinquishing the paper with a thoughtful 
sigh, 'as if people had the same gratification in printing their 
complaints as in making them known by word of mouth; as if they 
found it a comfort and consolation to proclaim I want such and such 
a thingand I can't get itand I don't expect I ever shall!"' 
John Westlock laughed at the ideaand they went out together. So 
many years had passed since Tom was last in Londonand he had known 
so little of it thenthat his interest in all he saw was very 
great. He was particularly anxiousamong other notorious 
localitiesto have those streets pointed out to him which were 
appropriated to the slaughter of countrymen; and was quite 
disappointed to findafter half-an-hour's walkingthat he hadn't 
had his pocket picked. But on John Westlock's inventing a 
pickpocket for his gratificationand pointing out a highly 
respectable stranger as one of that fraternityhe was much 
delighted. 
His friend accompanied him to within a short distance of Camberwell 
and having put him beyond the possibility of mistaking the wealthy 
brass-and-copper founder'sleft him to make his visit. Arriving 
before the great bell-handleTom gave it a gentle pull. The porter 
appeared. 
'Pray does Miss Pinch live here?' said Tom. 
'Miss Pinch is governess here' replied the porter. 
At the same time he looked at Tom from head to footas if he would 
have said'You are a nice manYOU are; where did YOU come from?' 
'It's the same young lady' said Tom. 'It's quite right. Is she at 
home?' 
'I don't knowI'm sure' rejoined the porter. 
'Do you think you could have the goodness to ascertain?' said Tom. 
He had quite a delicacy in offering the suggestionfor the 
possibility of such a step did not appear to present itself to the 
porter's mind at all. 
The fact was that the porter in answering the gate-bell had
according to usagerung the house-bell (for it is as well to do 
these things in the Baronial style while you are about it)and that 
there the functions of his office had ceased. Being hired to open 
and shut the gateand not to explain himself to strangershe left 
this little incident to be developed by the footman with the tags
whoat this juncturecalled out from the door steps: 
'Hollothere! wot are you up to? This wayyoung man!' 
'Oh!' said Tomhurrying towards him. 'I didn't observe that there 
was anybody else. Pray is Miss Pinch at home?' 
'She's IN' replied the footman. As much as to say to Tom: 'But if 
you think she has anything to do with the proprietorship of this 
place you had better abandon that idea.' 
'I wish to see herif you please' said Tom. 
The footmanbeing a lively young manhappened to have his 
attention caught at that moment by the flight of a pigeonin which 
he took so warm an interest that his gaze was rivetted on the bird 
until it was quite out of sight. He then invited Tom to come in
and showed him into a parlour. 
'Hany neem?' said the young manpausing languidly at the door. 
It was a good thought; because without providing the strangerin 
case he should happen to be of a warm temperwith a sufficient 
excuse for knocking him downit implied this young man's estimate 
of his qualityand relieved his breast of the oppressive burden of 
rating him in secret as a nameless and obscure individual. 
'Say her brotherif you please' said Tom. 
'Mother?' drawled the footman. 
'Brother' repeated Tomslightly raising his voice. 'And if you 
will sayin the first instancea gentlemanand then say her 
brotherI shall be obliged to youas she does not expect me or 
know I am in Londonand I do not wish to startle her.' 
The young man's interest in Tom's observations had ceased long 
before this timebut he kindly waited until now; whenshutting the 
doorhe withdrew. 
'Dear me!' said Tom. 'This is very disrespectful and uncivil 
behaviour. I hope these are new servants hereand that Ruth is 
very differently treated.' 
His cogitations were interrupted by the sound of voices in the 
adjoining room. They seemed to be engaged in high disputeor in 
indignant reprimand of some offender; and gathering strength 
occasionallybroke out into a perfect whirlwind. It was in one of 
these gustsas it appeared to Tomthat the footman announced him; 
for an abrupt and unnatural calm took placeand then a dead 
silence. He was standing before the windowwondering what domestic 
quarrel might have caused these soundsand hoping Ruth had nothing 
to do with itwhen the door openedand his sister ran into his 
arms. 
'Whybless my soul!' said Tomlooking at her with great pride
when they had tenderly embraced each other'how altered you are 
Ruth! I should scarcely have known youmy loveif I had seen you 
anywhere elseI declare! You are so improved' said Tomwith 
inexpressible delight; 'you are so womanly; you are so--positively
you knowyou are so handsome!' 
'If YOU think so Tom--' 
'Ohbut everybody must think soyou know' said Tomgently 
smoothing down her hair. 'It's matter of fact; not opinion. But 
what's the matter?' said Tomlooking at her more intently'how 
flushed you are! and you have been crying.' 
'NoI have notTom.' 
'Nonsense' said her brother stoutly. 'That's a story. Don't tell 
me! I know better. What is itdear? I'm not with Mr Pecksniff 
now. I am going to try and settle myself in London; and if you are 
not happy here (as I very much fear you are notfor I begin to 
think you have been deceiving me with the kindest and most 
affectionate intention) you shall not remain here.' 
Oh! Tom's blood was rising; mind that! Perhaps the Boar's Head had 
something to do with itbut certainly the footman had. So had the 
sight of his pretty sister--a great deal to do with it. Tom could 
bear a good deal himselfbut he was proud of herand pride is a 
sensitive thing. He began to think'there are more Pecksniffs than 
oneperhaps' and by all the pins and needles that run up and down 
in angry veinsTom was in a most unusual tingle all at once! 
'We will talk about itTom' said Ruthgiving him another kiss to 
pacify him. 'I am afraid I cannot stay here.' 
'Cannot!' replied Tom. 'Why thenyou shall notmy love. Heyday! 
You are not an object of charity! Upon my word!' 
Tom was stopped in these exclamations by the footmanwho brought a 
message from his masterimporting that he wished to speak with him 
before he wentand with Miss Pinch also. 
'Show the way' said Tom. 'I'll wait upon him at once.' 
Accordingly they entered the adjoining room from which the noise of 
altercation had proceeded; and there they found a middle-aged 
gentlemanwith a pompous voice and mannerand a middle-aged lady
with what may be termed an excisable faceor one in which starch 
and vinegar were decidedly employed. There was likewise present 
that eldest pupil of Miss Pinchwhom Mrs Todgerson a previous 
occasionhad called a syrupand who was now weeping and sobbing 
spitefully. 
'My brothersir' said Ruth Pinchtimidly presenting Tom. 
'Oh!' cried the gentlemansurveying Tom attentively. 'You really 
are Miss Pinch's brotherI presume? You will excuse my asking. I 
don't observe any resemblance.' 
'Miss Pinch has a brotherI know' observed the lady. 
'Miss Pinch is always talking about her brotherwhen she ought to 
be engaged upon my education' sobbed the pupil. 
'Sophia! Hold your tongue!' observed the gentleman. 'Sit downif 
you please' addressing Tom. 
Tom sat downlooking from one face to anotherin mute surprise. 
'Remain hereif you pleaseMiss Pinch' pursued the gentleman
looking slightly over his shoulder. 
Tom interrupted him hereby rising to place a chair for his sister. 
Having done which he sat down again. 
'I am glad you chance to have called to see your sister to-day
sir' resumed the brass-and-copper founder. 'For although I do not 
approveas a principleof any young person engaged in my family in 
the capacity of a governessreceiving visitorsit happens in this 
case to be well timed. I am sorry to inform you that we are not at 
all satisfied with your sister.' 
'We are very much DISsatisfied with her' observed the lady. 
'I'd never say another lesson to Miss Pinch if I was to be beat to 
death for it!' sobbed the pupil. 
'Sophia!' cried her father. 'Hold your tongue!' 
'Will you allow me to inquire what your ground of dissatisfaction 
is?' asked Tom. 
'Yes' said the gentleman'I will. I don't recognize it as a 
right; but I will. Your sister has not the slightest innate power 
of commanding respect. It has been a constant source of difference 
between us. Although she has been in this family for some timeand 
although the young lady who is now present has almostas it were
grown up under her tuitionthat young lady has no respect for her. 
Miss Pinch has been perfectly unable to command my daughter's 
respector to win my daughter's confidence. Now' said the 
gentlemanallowing the palm of his hand to fall gravely down upon 
the table: 'I maintain that there is something radically wrong in 
that! Youas her brothermay be disposed to deny it--' 
'I beg your pardonsir' said Tom. 'I am not at all disposed to 
deny it. I am sure that there is something radically wrong; 
radically monstrousin that.' 
'Good Heavens!' cried the gentlemanlooking round the room with 
dignity'what do I find to be the case! what results obtrude 
themselves upon me as flowing from this weakness of character on the 
part of Miss Pinch! What are my feelings as a fatherwhenafter my 
desire (repeatedly expressed to Miss Pinchas I think she will not 
venture to deny) that my daughter should be choice in her 
expressionsgenteel in her deportmentas becomes her station in 
lifeand politely distant to her inferiors in societyI find her
only this very morningaddressing Miss Pinch herself as a beggar!' 
'A beggarly thing' observed the ladyin correction. 
'Which is worse' said the gentlemantriumphantly; 'which is worse. 
A beggarly thing. A lowcoarsedespicable expression!' 
'Most despicable' cried Tom. 'I am glad to find that there is a 
just appreciation of it here.' 
'So justsir' said the gentlemanlowering his voice to be the 
more impressive. 'So justthatbut for my knowing Miss Pinch to 
be an unprotected young personan orphanand without friendsI 
wouldas I assured Miss Pinchupon my veracity and personal 
charactera few minutes agoI would have severed the connection 
between us at that moment and from that time.' 
'Bless my soulsir!' cried Tomrising from his seat; for he was 
now unable to contain himself any longer; 'don't allow such 
considerations as those to influence youpray. They don't exist
sir. She is not unprotected. She is ready to depart this instant. 
Ruthmy dearget your bonnet on!' 
'Oha pretty family!' cried the lady. 'Ohhe's her brother! 
There's no doubt about that!' 
'As little doubtmadam' said Tom'as that the young lady yonder 
is the child of your teachingand not my sister's. Ruthmy dear
get your bonnet on!' 
'When you sayyoung man' interposed the brass-and-copper founder
haughtily'with that impertinence which is natural to youand 
which I therefore do not condescend to notice furtherthat the 
young ladymy eldest daughterhas been educated by any one but 
Miss Pinchyou--I needn't proceed. You comprehend me fully. I 
have no doubt you are used to it.' 
'Sir!' cried Tomafter regarding him in silence for some little 
time. 'If you do not understand what I meanI will tell you. If 
you do understand what I meanI beg you not to repeat that mode of 
expressing yourself in answer to it. My meaning isthat no man can 
expect his children to respect what he degrades.' 
'Hahaha!' laughed the gentleman. 'Cant! cant! The common cant!' 
'The common storysir!' said Tom; 'the story of a common mind. 
Your governess cannot win the confidence and respect of your 
childrenforsooth! Let her begin by winning yoursand see what 
happens then.' 
'Miss Pinch is getting her bonnet onI trustmy dear?' said the 
gentleman. 
'I trust she is' said Tomforestalling the reply. 'I have no 
doubt she is. In the meantime I address myself to yousir. You 
made your statement to mesir; you required to see me for that 
purpose; and I have a right to answer it. I am not loud or 
turbulent' said Tomwhich was quite true'though I can scarcely 
say as much for youin your manner of addressing yourself to me. 
And I wishon my sister's behalfto state the simple truth.' 
'You may state anything you likeyoung man' returned the 
gentlemanaffecting to yawn. 'My dearMiss Pinch's money.' 
'When you tell me' resumed Tomwho was not the less indignant for 
keeping himself quiet'that my sister has no innate power of 
commanding the respect of your childrenI must tell you it is not 
so; and that she has. She is as well bredas well taughtas well 
qualified by nature to command respectas any hirer of a governess 
you know. But when you place her at a disadvantage in reference to 
every servant in your househow can you supposeif you have the 
gift of common sensethat she is not in a tenfold worse position in 
reference to your daughters?' 
'Pretty well! Upon my word' exclaimed the gentleman'this is 
pretty well!' 
'It is very illsir' said Tom. 'It is very bad and meanand 
wrong and cruel. Respect! I believe young people are quick enough 
to observe and imitate; and why or how should they respect whom no 
one else respectsand everybody slights? And very partial they 
must grow--ohvery partial!--to their studieswhen they see to 
what a pass proficiency in those same tasks has brought their 
governess! Respect! Put anything the most deserving of respect 
before your daughters in the light in which you place herand you 
will bring it down as lowno matter what it is!' 
'You speak with extreme impertinenceyoung man' observed the 
gentleman. 
'I speak without passionbut with extreme indignation and contempt 
for such a course of treatmentand for all who practice it' said 
Tom. 'Whyhow can youas an honest gentlemanprofess displeasure 
or surprise at your daughter telling my sister she is something 
beggarly and humblewhen you are for ever telling her the same 
thing yourself in fifty plainoutspeaking waysthough not in 
words; and when your very porter and footman make the same delicate 
announcement to all comers? As to your suspicion and distrust of 
her; even of her word; if she is not above their reachyou have no 
right to employ her.' 
'No right!' cried the brass-and-copper founder. 
'Distinctly not' Tom answered. 'If you imagine that the payment of 
an annual sum of money gives it to youyou immensely exaggerate its 
power and value. Your money is the least part of your bargain in 
such a case. You may be punctual in that to half a second on the 
clockand yet be Bankrupt. I have nothing more to say' said Tom
much flushed and flusterednow that it was over'except to crave 
permission to stand in your garden until my sister is ready.' 
Not waiting to obtain itTom walked out. 
Before he had well begun to coolhis sister joined him. She was 
crying; and Tom could not bear that any one about the house should 
see her doing that. 
'They will think you are sorry to go' said Tom. 'You are not sorry 
to go?' 
'NoTomno. I have been anxious to go for a very long time.' 
'Very wellthen! Don't cry!' said Tom. 
'I am so sorry for YOUdear' sobbed Tom's sister. 
'But you ought to be glad on my account' said Tom. 'I shall be 
twice as happy with you for a companion. Hold up your head. There! 
Now we go out as we ought. Not blusteringyou knowbut firm and 
confident in ourselves.' 
The idea of Tom and his sister blusteringunder any circumstances
was a splendid absurdity. But Tom was very far from feeling it to 
be soin his excitement; and passed out at the gate with such 
severe determination written in his face that the porter hardly knew 
him again. 
It was not until they had walked some short distanceand Tom found 
himself getting cooler and more collectedthat he was quite 
restored to himself by an inquiry from his sisterwho said in her 
pleasant little voice: 
'Where are we goingTom?' 
'Dear me!' said Tomstopping'I don't know.' 
'Don't you--don't you live anywheredear?' asked Tom's sister 
looking wistfully in his face. 
'No' said Tom. 'Not at present. Not exactly. I only arrived this 
morning. We must have some lodgings.' 
He didn't tell her that he had been going to stay with his friend 
Johnand could on no account think of billeting two inmates upon 
himof whom one was a young lady; for he knew that would make her 
uncomfortableand would cause her to regard herself as being an 
inconvenience to him. Neither did he like to leave her anywhere 
while he called on Johnand told him of this change in his 
arrangements; for he was delicate of seeming to encroach upon the 
generous and hospitable nature of his friend. Therefore he said 
again'We must have some lodgingsof course;' and said it as 
stoutly as if he had been a perfect Directory and Guide-Book to all 
the lodgings in London. 
'Where shall we go and look for 'em?' said Tom. 'What do you 
think?' 
Tom's sister was not much wiser on such a topic than he was. So she 
squeezed her little purse into his coat-pocketand folding the 
little hand with which she did so on the other little hand with 
which she clasped his armsaid nothing. 
'It ought to be a cheap neighbourhood' said Tom'and not too far 
from London. Let me see. Should you think Islington a good place?' 
'I should think it was an excellent placeTom.' 
'It used to be called Merry Islingtononce upon a time' said Tom. 
'Perhaps it's merry now; if soit's all the better. Eh?' 
'If it's not too dear' said Tom's sister. 
'Of courseif it's not too dear' assented Tom. 'Wellwhere IS 
Islington? We can't do better than go thereI should think. Let's 
go.' 
Tom's sister would have gone anywhere with him; so they walked off
arm in armas comfortably as possible. Findingpresentlythat 
Islington was not in that neighbourhoodTom made inquiries 
respecting a public conveyance thither; which they soon obtained. 
As they rode along they were very full of conversation indeedTom 
relating what had happened to himand Tom's sister relating what 
had happened to herand both finding a great deal more to say than 
time to say it in; for they had only just begun to talkin 
comparison with what they had to tell each otherwhen they reached 
their journey's end. 
'Now' said Tom'we must first look out for some very unpretending 
streetsand then look out for bills in the windows.' 
So they walked off againquite as happily as if they had just 
stepped out of a snug little house of their ownto look for 
lodgings on account of somebody else. Tom's simplicity was 
unabatedHeaven knows; but now that he had somebody to rely upon 
himhe was stimulated to rely a little more upon himselfand was
in his own opinionquite a desperate fellow. 
After roaming up and down for hourslooking at some scores of 
lodgingsthey began to find it rather fatiguingespecially as they 
saw none which were at all adapted to their purpose. At length
howeverin a singular little old-fashioned houseup a blind 
streetthey discovered two small bedrooms and a triangular parlour
which promised to suit them well enough. Their desiring to take 
possession immediately was a suspicious circumstancebut even this 
was surmounted by the payment of their first week's rentand a 
reference to John WestlockEsquireFurnival's InnHigh Holborn. 
Ah! It was a goodly sightwhen this important point was settledto 
behold Tom and his sister trotting round to the baker'sand the 
butcher'sand the grocer'swith a kind of dreadful delight in the 
unaccustomed cares of housekeeping; taking secret counsel together 
as they gave their small ordersand distracted by the least 
suggestion on the part of the shopkeeper! When they got back to the 
triangular parlourand Tom's sisterbustling to and frobusy 
about a thousand pleasant nothingsstopped every now and then to 
give old Tom a kiss or smile upon himTom rubbed his hands as if 
all Islington were his. 
It was late in the afternoon nowthoughand high time for Tom to 
keep his appointment. Soafter agreeing with his sister that in 
consideration of not having dinedthey would venture on the 
extravagance of chops for supper at ninehe walked out again to 
narrate these marvellous occurrences to John. 
'I am quite a family man all at once' thought Tom. 'If I can only 
get something to dohow comfortable Ruth and I may be! Ahthat if! 
But it's of no use to despond. I can but do thatwhen I have tried 
everything and failed; and even then it won't serve me much. Upon 
my word' thought Tomquickening his pace'I don't know what John 
will think has become of me. He'll begin to be afraid I have 
strayed into one of those streets where the countrymen are murdered; 
and that I have been made meat pies ofor some such horrible 
thing.' 
CHAPTER THIRTY-SEVEN 
TOM PINCHGOING ASTRAYFINDS THAT HE IS NOT THE ONLY PERSON IN 
THAT PREDICAMENT. HE RETALIATES UPON A FALLEN FOE 
Tom's evil genius did not lead him into the dens of any of those 
preparers of cannibalic pastrywho are represented in many standard 
country legends as doing a lively retail business in the Metropolis; 
nor did it mark him out as the prey of ring-dropperspea and 
thimble-riggersdufferstoutersor any of those bloodless 
sharperswho areperhapsa little better known to the Police. He 
fell into conversation with no gentleman who took him into a publichouse
where there happened to be another gentleman who swore he had 
more money than any gentlemanand very soon proved he had more 
money than one gentleman by taking his away from him; neither did he 
fall into any other of the numerous man-traps which are set up 
without noticein the public grounds of this city. But he lost his 
way. He very soon did that; and in trying to find it again he lost 
it more and more. 
NowTomin his guileless distrust of Londonthought himself very 
knowing in coming to the determination that he would not ask to be 
directed to Furnival's Innif he could help it; unlessindeedhe 
should happen to find himself near the Mintor the Bank of England; 
in which case he would step inand ask a civil question or two
confiding in the perfect respectability of the concern. So on he 
wentlooking up all the streets he came nearand going up half of 
them; and thusby dint of not being true to Goswell Streetand 
filing off into Aldermanburyand bewildering himself in Barbican
and being constant to the wrong point of the compass in London Wall
and then getting himself crosswise into Thames Streetby an 
instinct that would have been marvellous if he had had the least 
desire or reason to go therehe found himselfat lasthard by the 
Monument. 
The Man in the Monument was quite as mysterious a being to Tom as 
the Man in the Moon. It immediately occurred to him that the lonely 
creature who held himself aloof from all mankind in that pillar like 
some old hermit was the very man of whom to ask his way. Coldhe 
might be; little sympathy he hadperhapswith human passion--the 
column seemed too tall for that; but if Truth didn't live in the 
base of the Monumentnotwithstanding Pope's couplet about the 
outside of itwhere in London (thought Tom) was she likely to be 
found! 
Coming close below the pillarit was a great encouragement to Tom 
to find that the Man in the Monument had simple tastes; that stony 
and artificial as his residence washe still preserved some rustic 
recollections; that he liked plantshung up bird-cageswas not 
wholly cut off from fresh groundseland kept young trees in tubs. 
The Man in the Monumenthimselfwas sitting outside the door--his 
own door: the Monument-door: what a grand idea!--and was actually 
yawningas if there were no Monument to stop his mouthand give 
him a perpetual interest in his own existence. 
Tom was advancing towards this remarkable creatureto inquire the 
way to Furnival's Innwhen two people came to see the Monument. 
They were a gentleman and a lady; and the gentleman said'How much 
a-piece?' 
The Man in the Monument replied'A Tanner.' 
It seemed a low expressioncompared with the Monument. 
The gentleman put a shilling into his handand the Man in the 
Monument opened a dark little door. When the gentleman and lady had 
passed out of viewhe shut it againand came slowly back to his 
chair. 
He sat down and laughed. 
'They don't know what a many steps there is!' he said. 'It's worth 
twice the money to stop here. Ohmy eye!' 
The Man in the Monument was a Cynic; a worldly man! Tom couldn't ask 
his way of HIM. He was prepared to put no confidence in anything he 
said. 
'My gracious!' cried a well-known voice behind Mr Pinch. 'Whyto 
be sure it is!' 
At the same time he was poked in the back by a parasol. Turning 
round to inquire into this salutehe beheld the eldest daughter of 
his late patron. 
'Miss Pecksniff!' said Tom. 
'Whymy goodnessMr Pinch!' cried Cherry. 'What are you doing 
here?' 
'I have rather wandered from my way' said Tom. 'I--' 
'I hope you have run away' said Charity. 'It would be quite 
spirited and proper if you hadwhen my Papa so far forgets 
himself.' 
'I have left him' returned Tom. 'But it was perfectly understood 
on both sides. It was not done clandestinely.' 
'Is he married?' asked Cherrywith a spasmodic shake of her chin. 
'Nonot yet' said Tomcolouring; 'to tell you the truthI don't 
think he is likely to beif--if Miss Graham is the object of his 
passion.' 
'TchaMr Pinch!' cried Charitywith sharp impatience'you're very 
easily deceived. You don't know the arts of which such a creature 
is capable. Oh! it's a wicked world.' 
'You are not married?' Tom hintedto divert the conversation. 
'N--no!' said Cherrytracing out one particular paving-stone in 
Monument Yard with the end of her parasol. 'I--but really it's 
quite impossible to explain. Won't you walk in?' 
'You live herethen?' said Tom 
'Yes' returned Miss Pecksniffpointing with her parasol to 
Todgers's; 'I reside with this ladyAT PRESENT.' 
The great stress on the two last words suggested to Tom that he was 
expected to say something in reference to them. So he said. 
'Only at present! Are you going home again soon?' 
'NoMr Pinch' returned Charity. 'Nothank you. No! A mother-inlaw 
who is younger than--I mean to saywho is as nearly as possible 
about the same age as one's selfwould not quite suit my spirit. 
Not quite!' said Cherrywith a spiteful shiver. 
'I thought from your saying "at present"'--Tom observed. 
'Reallyupon my word! I had no idea you would press me so very 
closely on the subjectMr Pinch' said Charityblushing'or I 
should not have been so foolish as to allude to--oh really!--won't 
you walk in?' 
Tom mentionedto excuse himselfthat he had an appointment in 
Furnival's Innand that coming from Islington he had taken a few 
wrong turningsand arrived at the Monument instead. Miss Pecksniff 
simpered very much when he asked her if she knew the way to 
Furnival's Innand at length found courage to reply. 
'A gentleman who is a friend of mineor at least who is not exactly 
a friend so much as a sort of acquaintance--Oh upon my wordI 
hardly know what I sayMr Pinch; you mustn't suppose there is any 
engagement between us; or at least if there isthat it is at all a 
settled thing as yet--is going to Furnival's Inn immediatelyI 
believe upon a little businessand I am sure he would be very glad 
to accompany youso as to prevent your going wrong again. You had 
better walk in. You will very likely find my sister Merry here' 
she said with a curious toss of her headand anything but an 
agreeable smile. 
'ThenI thinkI'll endeavour to find my way alone' said Tom'for 
I fear she would not be very glad to see me. That unfortunate 
occurrencein relation to which you and I had some amicable words 
togetherin privateis not likely to have impressed her with any 
friendly feeling towards me. Though it really was not my fault.' 
'She has never heard of thatyou may depend' said Cherry
gathering up the corners of her mouthand nodding at Tom. 'I am 
far from sure that she would bear you any mighty ill will for itif 
she had.' 
'You don't say so?' cried Tomwho was really concerned by this 
insinuation. 
'I say nothing' said Charity. 'If I had not already known what 
shocking things treachery and deceit are in themselvesMr PinchI 
might perhaps have learnt it from the success they meet with--from 
the success they meet with.' Here she smiled as before. 'But I 
don't say anything. On the contraryI should scorn it. You had 
better walk in!' 
There was something hidden herewhich piqued Tom's interest and 
troubled his tender heart. Whenin a moment's irresolutionhe 
looked at Charityhe could not but observe a struggle in her face 
between a sense of triumph and a sense of shame; nor could he but 
remark howmeeting even his eyeswhich she cared so little for
she turned away her ownfor all the splenetic defiance in her 
manner. 
An uneasy thought entered Tom's head; a shadowy misgiving that the 
altered relations between himself and Pecksniff were somehow to 
involve an altered knowledge on his part of other peopleand were 
to give him an insight into much of which he had had no previous 
suspicion. And yet he put no definite construction upon Charity's 
proceedings. He certainly had no idea that as he had been the 
audience and spectator of her mortificationshe grasped with eager 
delight at any opportunity of reproaching her sister with his 
presence in HER far deeper misery; for he knew nothing of itand 
only pictured that sister as the same giddycarelesstrivial 
creature she always had beenwith the same slight estimation of 
himself which she had never been at the least pains to conceal. In 
shorthe had merely a confused impression that Miss Pecksniff was 
not quite sisterly or kind; and being curious to set it right
accompanied her as she desired. 
The house-door being openedshe went in before Tomrequesting him 
to follow her; and led the way to the parlour door. 
'OhMerry!' she saidlooking in'I am so glad you have not gone 
home. Who do you think I have met in the streetand brought to see 
you! Mr Pinch! There. Now you ARE surprisedI am sure!' 
Not more surprised than Tom waswhen he looked upon her. Not so 
much. Not half so much. 
'Mr Pinch has left Papamy dear' said Cherry'and his prospects 
are quite flourishing. I have promised that Augustuswho is going 
that wayshall escort him to the place he wants. Augustusmy 
childwhere are you?' 
With these words Miss Pecksniff screamed her way out of the parlour
calling on Augustus Moddle to appear; and left Tom Pinch alone with 
her sister. 
If she had always been his kindest friend; if she had treated him 
through all his servitude with such consideration as was never yet 
received by struggling man; if she had lightened every moment of 
those many yearsand had ever spared and never wounded him; his 
honest heart could not have swelled before her with a deeper pity
or a purer freedom from all base remembrance than it did then. 
'My gracious me! You are really the last person in the world I 
should have thought of seeingI am sure!' 
Tom was sorry to hear her speaking in her old manner. He had not 
expected that. Yet he did not feel it a contradiction that he 
should be sorry to see her so unlike her old selfand sorry at the 
same time to hear her speaking in her old manner. The two things 
seemed quite natural. 
'I wonder you find any gratification in coming to see me. I can't 
think what put it in your head. I never had much in seeing you. 
There was no love lost between usMr Pinchat any timeI think.' 
Her bonnet lay beside her on the sofaand she was very busy with 
the ribbons as she spoke. Much too busy to be conscious of the work 
her fingers did. 
'We never quarrelled' said Tom.--Tom was right in thatfor one 
person can no more quarrel without an adversarythan one person can 
play at chessor fight a duel. 'I hoped you would be glad to shake 
hands with an old friend. Don't let us rake up bygones' said Tom. 
'If I ever offended youforgive me.' 
She looked at him for a moment; dropped her bonnet from her hands; 
spread them before her altered faceand burst into tears. 
'OhMr Pinch!' she said'although I never used you wellI did 
believe your nature was forgiving. I did not think you could be 
cruel.' 
She spoke as little like her old self nowfor certainas Tom could 
possibly have wished. But she seemed to be appealing to him 
reproachfullyand he did not understand her. 
'I seldom showed it--never--I know that. But I had that belief in 
youthat if I had been asked to name the person in the world least 
likely to retort upon meI would have named youconfidently.' 
'Would have named me!' Tom repeated. 
'Yes' she said with energy'and I have often thought so.' 
After a moment's reflectionTom sat himself upon a chair beside 
her. 
'Do you believe' said Tom'ohcan you thinkthat what I said 
just nowI said with any but the true and plain intention which my 
words professed? I mean itin the spirit and the letter. If I 
ever offended youforgive me; I may have done somany times. You 
never injured or offended me. Howthencould I possibly retort
if even I were stern and bad enough to wish to do it!' 
After a little while she thanked himthrough her tears and sobs
and told him she had never been at once so sorry and so comforted
since she left home. Still she wept bitterly; and it was the 
greater pain to Tom to see her weepingfrom her standing in 
especial needjust thenof sympathy and tenderness. 
'Comecome!' said Tom'you used to be as cheerful as the day was 
long.' 
'Ah! used!' she criedin such a tone as rent Tom's heart. 
'And will be again' said Tom. 
'Nonever more. Nonevernever more. If you should talk with 
old Mr Chuzzlewitat any time' she addedlooking hurriedly into 
his face--'I sometimes thought he liked youbut suppressed it--will 
you promise me to tell him that you saw me hereand that I said I 
bore in mind the time we talked together in the churchyard?' 
Tom promised that he would. 
'Many times since thenwhen I have wished I had been carried there 
before that dayI have recalled his words. I wish that he should 
know how true they werealthough the least acknowledgment to that 
effect has never passed my lips and never will.' 
Tom promised thisconditionally too. He did not tell her how 
improbable it was that he and the old man would ever meet again
because he thought it might disturb her more. 
'If he should ever know thisthrough your meansdear Mr Pinch' 
said Mercy'tell him that I sent the messagenot for myselfbut 
that he might be more forbearing and more patientand more trustful 
to some other personin some other time of need. Tell him that if 
he could know how my heart trembled in the balance that dayand 
what a very little would have turned the scalehis own would bleed 
with pity for me.' 
'Yesyes' said Tom'I will.' 
'When I appeared to him the most unworthy of his helpI was--I know 
I wasfor I have oftenoftenthought about it since--the most 
inclined to yield to what he showed me. Oh! if he had relented but 
a little more; if he had thrown himself in my way for but one other 
quarter of an hour; if he had extended his compassion for a vain
unthinkingmiserable girlin but the least degree; he mightand I 
believe he wouldhave saved her! Tell him that I don't blame him
but am grateful for the effort that he made; but ask him for the 
love of Godand youthand in merciful consideration for the 
struggle which an ill-advised and unwakened nature makes to hide the 
strength it thinks its weakness--ask him neverneverto forget 
thiswhen he deals with one again!' 
Although Tom did not hold the clue to her full meaninghe could 
guess it pretty nearly. Touched to the quickhe took her hand and 
saidor meant to saysome words of consolation. She felt and 
understood themwhether they were spoken or no. He was not quite 
certainafterwardsbut that she had tried to kneel down at his 
feetand bless him. 
He found that he was not alone in the room when she had left it. 
Mrs Todgers was thereshaking her head. Tom had never seen Mrs 
Todgersit is needless to saybut he had a perception of her being 
the lady of the house; and he saw some genuine compassion in her 
eyesthat won his good opinion. 
'Ahsir! You are an old friendI see' said Mrs Todgers. 
'Yes' said Tom. 
'And yet' quoth Mrs Todgersshutting the door softly'she hasn't 
told you what her troubles areI'm certain.' 
Tom was struck by these wordsfor they were quite true. 'Indeed' 
he said'she has not.' 
'And never would' said Mrs Todgers'if you saw her daily. She 
never makes the least complaint to meor utters a single word of 
explanation or reproach. But I know' said Mrs Todgersdrawing in 
her breath'I know!' 
Tom nodded sorrowfully'So do I.' 
'I fully believe' said Mrs Todgerstaking her pocket-handkerchief 
from the flat reticule'that nobody can tell one half of what that 
poor young creature has to undergo. But though she comes here
constantlyto ease her poor full heart without his knowing it; and 
sayingMrs Todgers, I am very low to-day; I think that I shall 
soon be dead,sits crying in my room until the fit is past; I know 
no more from her. AndI believe' said Mrs Todgersputting back 
her handkerchief again'that she considers me a good friend too.' 
Mrs Todgers might have said her best friend. Commercial gentlemen 
and gravy had tried Mrs Todgers's temper; the main chance--it was 
such a very small one in her casethat she might have been excused 
for looking sharp after itlest it should entirely vanish from her 
sight--had taken a firm hold on Mrs Todgers's attention. But in 
some odd nook in Mrs Todgers's breastup a great many stepsand in 
a corner easy to be overlookedthere was a secret doorwith 
'Woman' written on the springwhichat a touch from Mercy's hand
had flown wide openand admitted her for shelter. 
When boarding-house accounts are balanced with all other ledgers
and the books of the Recording Angel are made up for everperhaps 
there may be seen an entry to thy creditlean Mrs Todgerswhich 
shall make thee beautiful! 
She was growing beautiful so rapidly in Tom's eyes; for he saw that 
she was poorand that this good had sprung up in her from among the 
sordid strivings of her life; that she might have been a very Venus 
in a minute moreif Miss Pecksniff had not entered with her friend. 
'Mr Thomas Pinch!' said Charityperforming the ceremony of 
introduction with evident pride. 'Mr Moddle. Where's my sister?' 
'GoneMiss Pecksniff' Mrs Todgers answered. 'She had appointed to 
be home.' 
'Ah!' said Charitylooking at Tom. 'Ohdear me!' 
'She's greatly altered since she's been Anoth--since she's been 
marriedMrs Todgers!' observed Moddle. 
'My dear Augustus!' said Miss Pecksniffin a low voice. 'I verily 
believe you have said that fifty thousand timesin my hearing. 
What a Prose you are!' 
This was succeeded by some trifling love passageswhich appeared to 
originate withif not to be wholly carried on by Miss Pecksniff. 
At any rateMr Moddle was much slower in his responses than is 
customary with young loversand exhibited a lowness of spirits 
which was quite oppressive. 
He did not improve at all when Tom and he were in the streetsbut 
sighed so dismally that it was dreadful to hear him. As a means of 
cheering him upTom told him that he wished him joy. 
'Joy!' cried Moddle. 'Haha!' 
'What an extraordinary young man!' thought Tom. 
'The Scorner has not set his seal upon you. YOU care what becomes 
of you?' said Moddle. 
Tom admitted that it was a subject in which he certainly felt some 
interest. 
'I don't' said Mr Moddle. 'The Elements may have me when they 
please. I'm ready.' 
Tom inferred from theseand other expressions of the same nature
that he was jealous. Therefore he allowed him to take his own 
course; which was such a gloomy onethat he felt a load removed 
from his mind when they parted company at the gate of Furnival's 
Inn. 
It was now a couple of hours past John Westlock's dinner-time; and 
he was walking up and down the roomquite anxious for Tom's safety. 
The table was spread; the wine was carefully decanted; and the 
dinner smelt delicious. 
'WhyTomold boywhere on earth have you been? Your box is here. 
Get your boots off instantlyand sit down!' 
'I am sorry to say I can't stayJohn' replied Tom Pinchwho was 
breathless with the haste he had made in running up the stairs. 
'Can't stay!' 
'If you'll go on with your dinner' said Tom'I'll tell you my 
reason the while. I mustn't eat myselfor I shall have no appetite 
for the chops.' 
'There are no chops heremy food fellow.' 
'No. But there are at Islington' said Tom. 
John Westlock was perfectly confounded by this replyand vowed he 
would not touch a morsel until Tom had explained himself fully. So 
Tom sat downand told him all; to which he listened with the 
greatest interest. 
He knew Tom too welland respected his delicacy too muchto ask 
him why he had taken these measures without communicating with him 
first. He quite concurred in the expediency of Tom's immediately 
returning to his sisteras he knew so little of the place in 
which he had left herand good-humouredly proposed to ride back 
with him in a cabin which he might convey his box. Tom's 
proposition that he should sup with them that nighthe flatly 
rejectedbut made an appointment with him for the morrow. 'And now 
Tom' he saidas they rode along'I have a question to ask you to 
which I expect a manly and straightforward answer. Do you want any 
money? I am pretty sure you do.' 
'I don't indeed' said Tom. 
'I believe you are deceiving me.' 
'No. With many thanks to youI am quite in earnest' Tom replied. 
'My sister has some moneyand so have I. If I had nothing else
JohnI have a five-pound notewhich that good creatureMrs Lupin
of the Dragonhanded up to me outside the coachin a letter 
begging me to borrow it; and then drove off as hard as she could 
go.' 
'And a blessing on every dimple in her handsome facesay I!' cried 
John'though why you should give her the preference over meI 
don't know. Never mind. I bide my timeTom.' 
'And I hope you'll continue to bide it' returned Tomgayly. 'For 
I owe you morealreadyin a hundred other waysthan I can ever 
hope to pay.' 
They parted at the door of Tom's new residence. John Westlock
sitting in the cabandcatching a glimpse of a blooming little 
busy creature darting out to kiss Tom and to help him with his box
would not have had the least objection to change places with him. 
Well! she WAS a cheerful little thing; and had a quaintbright 
quietness about her that was infinitely pleasant. Surely she was 
the best sauce for chops ever invented. The potatoes seemed to take 
a pleasure in sending up their grateful steam before her; the froth 
upon the pint of porter pouted to attract her notice. But it was 
all in vain. She saw nothing but Tom. Tom was the first and last 
thing in the world. 
As she sat opposite to Tom at supperfingering one of Tom's pet 
tunes upon the table-clothand smiling in his facehe had never 
been so happy in his life. 
CHAPTER THIRTY-EIGHT 
SECRET SERVICE 
In walking from the city with his sentimental friendTom Pinch had 
looked into the faceand brushed against the threadbare sleeveof 
Mr Nadgettman of mystery to the Anglo-Bengalee Disinterested Loan 
and Life Assurance Company. Mr Nadgett naturally passed away from 
Tom's remembrance as he passed out of his view; for he didn't know 
himand had never heard his name. 
As there are a vast number of people in the huge metropolis of 
England who rise up every morning not knowing where their heads will 
rest at nightso there are a multitude who shooting arrows over 
houses as their daily businessnever know on whom they fall. Mr 
Nadgett might have passed Tom Pinch ten thousand times; might even 
have been quite familiar with his facehis namepursuitsand 
character; yet never once have dreamed that Tom had any interest in 
any act or mystery of his. Tom might have done the like by him of 
course. But the same private man out of all the men alivewas in 
the mind of each at the same moment; was prominently connected 
though in a different mannerwith the day's adventures of both; and 
formedwhen they passed each other in the streetthe one absorbing 
topic of their thoughts. 
Why Tom had Jonas Chuzzlewit in his mind requires no explanation. 
Why Mr Nadgett should have had Jonas Chuzzlewit in hisis quite 
another thing. 
Butsomehow or otherthat amiable and worthy orphan had become a 
part of the mystery of Mr Nadgett's existence. Mr Nadgett took an 
interest in his lightest proceedings; and it never flagged or 
wavered. He watched him in and out of the Assurance Officewhere 
he was now formally installed as a Director; he dogged his footsteps 
in the streets; he stood listening when he talked; he sat in coffeerooms 
entering his name in the great pocket-bookover and over 
again; he wrote letters to himself about him constantly; andwhen 
he found them in his pocketput them in the firewith such 
distrust and caution that he would bend down to watch the crumpled 
tinder while it floated upwardsas if his mind misgave himthat 
the mystery it had contained might come out at the chimney-pot. 
And yet all this was quite a secret. Mr Nadgett kept it to himself
and kept it close. Jonas had no more idea that Mr Nadgett's eyes 
were fixed on himthan he had that he was living under the daily 
inspection and report of a whole order of Jesuits. Indeed Mr 
Nadgett's eyes were seldom fixed on any other objects than the 
groundthe clockor the fire; but every button on his coat might 
have been an eyehe saw so much. 
The secret manner of the man disarmed suspicion in this wise; 
suggestingnot that he was watching any onebut that he thought 
some other man was watching him. He went about so stealthilyand 
kept himself so wrapped up in himselfthat the whole object of his 
life appeared to beto avoid notice and preserve his own mystery. 
Jonas sometimes saw him in the streethovering in the outer office
waiting at the door for the man who never cameor slinking off with 
his immovable face and drooping headand the one beaver glove 
dangling before him; but he would as soon have thought of the cross 
upon the top of St. Paul's Cathedral taking note of what he didor 
slowly winding a great net about his feetas of Nadgett's being 
engaged in such an occupation. 
Mr Nadgett made a mysterious change about this time in his 
mysterious life: for whereas he haduntil nowbeen first seen 
every morning coming down Cornhillso exactly like the Nadgett of 
the day before as to occasion a popular belief that he never went to 
bed or took his clothes offhe was now first seen in Holborn
coming out of Kingsgate Street; and it was soon discovered that he 
actually went every morning to a barber's shop in that street to get 
shaved; and that the barber's name was Sweedlepipe. He seemed to 
make appointments with the man who never cameto meet him at this 
barber's; for he would frequently take long spells of waiting in the 
shopand would ask for pen and inkand pull out his pocket-book
and be very busy over it for an hour at a time. Mrs Gamp and Mr 
Sweedlepipe had many deep discoursings on the subject of this 
mysterious customer; but they usually agreed that he had speculated 
too much and was keeping out of the way. 
He must have appointed the man who never kept his wordto meet him 
at another new place too; for one day he was foundfor the first 
timeby the waiter at the Mourning Coach-Horsethe House-of-call 
for Undertakersdown in the City theremaking figures with a pipestem 
in the sawdust of a clean spittoon; and declining to call for 
anythingon the ground of expecting a gentleman presently. As the 
gentleman was not honourable enough to keep his engagementhe came 
again next daywith his pocket-book in such a state of distention 
that he was regarded in the bar as a man of large property. After 
thathe repeated his visits every dayand had so much writing to 
dothat he made nothing of emptying a capacious leaden inkstand in 
two sittings. Although he never talked muchstillby being there 
among the regular customershe made their acquaintance. and in 
course of time became quite intimate with Mr TackerMr Mould's 
foreman; and even with Mr Mould himselfwho openly said he was a 
long-headed mana dry onea salt fisha deep filea rasper; and 
made him the subject of many other flattering encomiums. 
At the same timetoohe told the people at the Assurance Office
in his own mysterious waythat there was something wrong (secretly 
wrongof course) in his liverand that he feared he must put 
himself under the doctor's hands. He was delivered over to Jobling 
upon this representation; and though Jobling could not find out 
where his liver was wrongwrong Mr Nadgett said it was; observing 
that it was his own liverand he hoped he ought to know. 
Accordinglyhe became Mr Jobling's patient; and detailing his 
symptoms in his slow and secret waywas in and out of that 
gentleman's room a dozen times a day. 
As he pursued all these occupations at once; and all steadily; and 
all secretly; and never slackened in his watchfulness of everything 
that Mr Jonas said and didand left unsaid and undone; it is not 
improbable that they weresecretlyessential parts of some great 
scheme which Mr Nadgett had on foot. 
It was on the morning of this very day on which so much had happened 
to Tom Pinchthat Nadgett suddenly appeared before Mr Montague's 
house in Pall Mall--he always made his appearance as if he had that 
moment come up a trap--when the clocks were striking nine. He rang 
the bell in a covert under-handed wayas though it were a 
treasonable act; and passed in at the doorthe moment it was opened 
wide enough to receive his body. That donehe shut it immediately 
with his own hands. 
Mr Baileytaking up his name without delayreturned with a request 
that he would follow him into his master's chamber. The chairman of 
the Anglo-Bengalee Disinterested Loan and Life Assurance Board was 
dressingand received him as a business person who was often 
backwards and forwardsand was received at all times for his 
business' sake. 
'WellMr Nadgett?' 
Mr Nadgett put his hat upon the ground and coughed. The boy having 
withdrawn and shut the doorhe went to it softlyexamined the 
handleand returned to within a pace or two of the chair in which 
Mr Montague sat. 
'Any newsMr Nadgett?' 
'I think we have some news at lastsir.' 
'I am happy to hear it. I began to fear you were off the scentMr 
Nadgett.' 
'Nosir. It grows cold occasionally. It will sometimes. We can't 
help that.' 
'You are truth itselfMr Nadgett. Do you report a great success?' 
'That depends upon your judgment and construction of it' was his 
answeras he put on his spectacles. 
'What do you think of it yourself? Have you pleased yourself?' 
Mr Nadgett rubbed his hands slowlystroked his chinlooked round 
the roomand said'YesyesI think it's a good case. I am 
disposed to think it's a good case. Will you go into it at once?' 
'By all means.' 
Mr Nadgett picked out a certain chair from among the restand 
having planted it in a particular spotas carefully as if he had 
been going to vault over itplaced another chair in front of it; 
leaving room for his own legs between them. He then sat down in 
chair number twoand laid his pocket-bookvery carefullyon chair 
number one. He then untied the pocket-bookand hung the string 
over the back of chair number one. He then drew both the chairs a 
little nearer Mr Montagueand opening the pocket-book spread out 
its contents. Finally he selected a certain memorandum from the 
restand held it out to his employerwhoduring the whole of 
these preliminary ceremonieshad been making violent efforts to 
conceal his impatience. 
'I wish you wouldn't be so fond of making notesmy excellent 
friend' said Tigg Montague with a ghastly smile. 'I wish you would 
consent to give me their purport by word of mouth.' 
'I don't like word of mouth' said Mr Nadgett gravely. 'We never 
know who's listening.' 
Mr Montague was going to retortwhen Nadgett handed him the paper
and saidwith quiet exultation in his tone'We'll begin at the 
beginningand take that one firstif you pleasesir.' 
The chairman cast his eyes upon itcoldlyand with a smile which 
did not render any great homage to the slow and methodical habits of 
his spy. But he had not read half-a-dozen lines when the expression 
of his face began to changeand before he had finished the perusal 
of the paperit was full of grave and serious attention. 
'Number Two' said Mr Nadgetthanding him anotherand receiving 
back the first. 'Read Number Twosirif you please. There is 
more interest as you go on.' 
Tigg Montague leaned backward in his chairand cast upon his 
emissary such a look of vacant wonder (not unmingled with alarm)
that Mr Nadgett considered it necessary to repeat the request he had 
already twice preferred; with the view to recalling his attention to 
the point in hand. Profiting by the hintMr Montague went on with 
Number Twoand afterwards with Numbers Threeand Fourand Five
and so on. 
These documents were all in Mr Nadgett's writingand were 
apparently a series of memorandajotted down from time to time upon 
the backs of old lettersor any scrap of paper that came first to 
hand. Loose straggling scrawls they wereand of very uninviting 
exterior; but they had weighty purpose in themif the chairman's 
face were any index to the character of their contents. 
The progress of Mr Nadgett's secret satisfaction arising out of the 
effect they madekept pace with the emotions of the reader. At 
firstMr Nadgett sat with his spectacles low down upon his nose
looking over them at his employerand nervously rubbing his hands. 
After a little whilehe changed his posture in his chair for one of 
greater easeand leisurely perused the next document he held ready 
as if an occasional glance at his employer's face were now enough 
and all occasion for anxiety or doubt were gone. And finally he 
rose and looked out of the windowwhere he stood with a triumphant 
air until Tigg Montague had finished. 
'And this is the lastMr Nadgett!' said that gentlemandrawing a 
long breath. 
'Thatsiris the last.' 
'You are a wonderful manMr Nadgett!' 
'I think it is a pretty good case' he returned as he gathered up 
his papers. 'It cost some troublesir.' 
'The trouble shall be well rewardedMr Nadgett.' Nadgett bowed. 
'There is a deeper impression of Somebody's Hoof herethan I had 
expectedMr Nadgett. I may congratulate myself upon your being 
such a good hand at a secret.' 
'Oh! nothing has an interest to me that's not a secret' replied 
Nadgettas he tied the string about his pocket-bookand put it up. 
'It always takes away any pleasure I may have had in this inquiry 
even to make it known to you.' 
'A most invaluable constitution' Tigg retorted. 'A great gift for 
a gentleman employed as you areMr Nadgett. Much better than 
discretion; though you possess that quality also in an eminent 
degree. I think I heard a double knock. Will you put your head out 
of windowand tell me whether there is anybody at the door?' 
Mr Nadgett softly raised the sashand peered out from the very 
corneras a man might who was looking down into a street from 
whence a brisk discharge of musketry might be expected at any 
moment. Drawing in his head with equal cautionhe observednot 
altering his voice or manner: 
'Mr Jonas Chuzzlewit!' 
'I thought so' Tigg retorted. 
'Shall I go?' 
'I think you had better. Stay though! No! remain hereMr Nadgett
if you please.' 
It was remarkable how pale and flurried he had become in an instant. 
There was nothing to account for it. His eye had fallen on his 
razors; but what of them! 
Mr Chuzzlewit was announced. 
'Show him up directly. Nadgett! don't you leave us alone together. 
Mind you don'tnow! By the Lord!' he added in a whisper to himself: 
'We don't know what may happen.' 
Saying thishe hurriedly took up a couple of hair-brushesand 
began to exercise them on his own headas if his toilet had not 
been interrupted. Mr Nadgett withdrew to the stovein which there 
was a small fire for the convenience of heating curling-irons; and 
taking advantage of so favourable an opportunity for drying his 
pocket-handkerchiefproduced it without loss of time. There he 
stoodduring the whole interviewholding it before the barsand 
sometimesbut not oftenglancing over his shoulder. 
'My dear Chuzzlewit!' cried Montagueas Jonas entered. 'You rise 
with the lark. Though you go to bed with the nightingaleyou rise 
with the lark. You have superhuman energymy dear Chuzzlewit!' 
'Ecod!' said Jonaswith an air of langour and ill-humouras he 
took a chair'I should be very glad not to get up with the larkif 
I could help it. But I am a light sleeper; and it's better to be up 
than lying awakecounting the dismal old church-clocksin bed.' 
'A light sleeper!' cried his friend. 'Nowwhat is a light sleeper? 
I often hear the expressionbut upon my life I have not the least 
conception what a light sleeper is.' 
'Hallo!' said Jonas'Who's that? Ohold what's-his-name: looking 
(as usual) as if he wanted to skulk up the chimney.' 
'Haha! I have no doubt he does.' 
'Well! He's not wanted hereI suppose' said Jonas. 'He may go
mayn't he?' 
'Ohlet him staylet him stay!' said Tigg. 'He's a mere piece of 
furniture. He has been making his reportand is waiting for 
further orders. He has been told' said Tiggraising his voice
'not to lose sight of certain friends of oursor to think that he 
has done with them by any means. He understands his business.' 
'He need' replied Jonas; 'for of all the precious old dummies in 
appearance that I ever sawhe's about the worst. He's afraid of 
meI think.' 
'It's my belief' said Tigg'that you are Poison to him. Nadgett! 
give me that towel!' 
He had as little occasion for a towel as Jonas had for a start. But 
Nadgett brought it quickly; andhaving lingered for a momentfell 
back upon his old post by the fire. 
'You seemy dear fellow' resumed Tigg'you are too--what's the 
matter with your lips? How white they are!' 
'I took some vinegar just now' said Jonas. 'I had oysters for my 
breakfast. Where are they white?' he addedmuttering an oathand 
rubbing them upon his handkerchief. 'I don't believe they ARE 
white.' 
'Now I look againthey are not' replied his friend. 'They are 
coming right again.' 
'Say what you were going to say' cried Jonas angrily'and let my 
face be! As long as I can show my teeth when I want to (and I can do 
that pretty well)the colour of my lips is not material.' 
'Quite true' said Tigg. 'I was only going to say that you are too 
quick and active for our friend. He is too shy to cope with such a 
man as youbut does his duty well. Ohvery well! But what is a
light sleeper?'
'Hang a light sleeper!' exclaimed Jonas pettishly.
'Nono' interrupted Tigg. 'No. We'll not do that.'
'A light sleeper ain't a heavy one' said Jonas in his sulky way;
'don't sleep muchand don't sleep welland don't sleep sound.'
'And dreams' said Tigg'and cries out in an ugly manner; and when
the candle burns down in the nightis in an agony; and all that
sort of thing. I see!'
They were silent for a little time. Then Jonas spoke:
'Now we've done with child's talkI want to have a word with you.
I want to have a word with you before we meet up yonder to-day.
I am not satisfied with the state of affairs.'
'Not satisfied!' cried Tigg. 'The money comes in well.'
'The money comes in well enough' retorted Jonas'but it don't come
out well enough. It can't be got at easily enough. I haven't
sufficient power; it is all in your hands. Ecod! what with one of
your by-lawsand another of your by-lawsand your votes in this
capacityand your votes in that capacityand your official rights
and your individual rightsand other people's rights who are only
you againthere are no rights left for me. Everybody else's rights
are my wrongs. What's the use of my having a voice if it's always
drowned? I might as well be dumband it would be much less
aggravating. I'm not a-going to stand thatyou know.'
'No!' said Tigg in an insinuating tone.
'No!' returned Jonas'I'm not indeed. I'll play old Gooseberry
with the officeand make you glad to buy me out at a good high
figureif you try any of your tricks with me.'
'I give you my honour--' Montague began.
'Oh! confound your honour' interrupted Jonaswho became more
coarse and quarrelsome as the other remonstratedwhich may have
been a part of Mr Montague's intention; 'I want a little more
control over the money. You may have all the honourif you like;
I'll never bring you to book for that. But I'm not a-going to stand
itas it is now. If you should take it into your honourable head
to go abroad with the bankI don't see much to prevent you. Well!
That won't do. I've had some very good dinners herebut they'd
come too dear on such terms; and thereforethat won't do.'
'I am unfortunate to find you in this humour' said Tiggwith a
remarkable kind of smile; 'for I was going to propose to you--for
your own advantage; solely for your own advantage--that you should
venture a little more with us.'
'Was youby G--?' said Jonaswith a short laugh.
'Yes. And to suggest' pursued Montague'that surely you have
friends; indeedI know you have; who would answer our purpose
admirablyand whom we should be delighted to receive.'
'How kind of you! You'd be delighted to receive 'emwould you?'
said Jonasbantering.
'I give you my sacred honourquite transported. As your friends
observe!' 
'Exactly' said Jonas; 'as my friendsof course. You'll be very 
much delighted when you get 'emI have no doubt. And it'll be all 
to my advantagewon't it?' 
'It will be very much to your advantage' answered Montague poising 
a brush in each handand looking steadily upon him. 'It will be 
very much to your advantageI assure you.' 
'And you can tell me how' said Jonas'can't you?' 
'SHALL I tell you how?' returned the other. 
'I think you had better' said Jonas. 'Strange things have been 
done in the Assurance way before nowby strange sorts of men
and I mean to take care of myself.' 
'Chuzzlewit!' replied Montagueleaning forwardwith his arms upon 
his kneesand looking full into his face. 'Strange things have 
been doneand are done every day; not only in our waybut in a 
variety of other ways; and no one suspects them. But oursas you 
saymy good friendis a strange way; and we strangely happen
sometimesto come into the knowledge of very strange events.' 
He beckoned to Jonas to bring his chair nearer; and looking slightly 
roundas if to remind him of the presence of Nadgettwhispered in 
his ear. 
From red to white; from white to red again; from red to yellow; then 
to a colddullawfulsweat-bedabbled blue. In that short 
whisperall these changes fell upon the face of Jonas Chuzzlewit; 
and when at last he laid his hand upon the whisperer's mouth
appalledlest any syllable of what he said should reach the ears of 
the third person presentit was as bloodless and as heavy as the 
hand of Death. 
He drew his chair awayand sat a spectacle of terrormiseryand 
rage. He was afraid to speakor lookor moveor sit still. 
Abjectcrouchingand miserablehe was a greater degradation to 
the form he borethan if he had been a loathsome wound from head to 
heel. 
His companion leisurely resumed his dressingand completed it
glancing sometimes with a smile at the transformation he had 
effectedbut never speaking once. 
'You'll not object' he saidwhen he was quite equipped'to 
venture further with usChuzzlewitmy friend?' 
His pale lips faintly stammered out a 'No.' 
'Well said! That's like yourself. Do you know I was thinking 
yesterday that your father-in-lawrelying on your advice as a man 
of great sagacity in money mattersas no doubt you arewould join 
usif the thing were well presented to him. He has money?' 
'Yeshe has money.' 
'Shall I leave Mr Pecksniff to you? Will you undertake for Mr 
Pecksniff.' 
'I'll try. I'll do my best.' 
'A thousand thanks' replied the otherclapping him upon the 
shoulder. 'Shall we walk downstairs? Mr Nadgett! Follow usif 
you please.' 
They went down in that order. Whatever Jonas felt in reference to 
Montague; whatever sense he had of being cagedand barredand 
trappedand having fallen down into a pit of deepest ruin; 
whatever thoughts came crowding on his mind even at that early time
of one terrible chance of escapeof one red glimmer in a sky of 
blackness; he no more thought that the slinking figure half-a-dozen 
stairs behind him was his pursuing Fatethan that the other figure 
at his side was his Good Angel. 
CHAPTER THIRTY-NINE 
CONTAINING SOME FURTHER PARTICULARS OF THE DOMESTIC ECONOMY OF THE 
PINCHES; WITH STRANGE NEWS FROM THE CITYNARROWLY CONCERNING TOM 
Pleasant little Ruth! Cheerfultidybustlingquiet little Ruth! 
No doll's house ever yielded greater delight to its young mistress
than little Ruth derived from her glorious dominion over the 
triangular parlour and the two small bedrooms. 
To be Tom's housekeeper. What dignity! Housekeepingupon the 
commonest termsassociated itself with elevated responsibilities of 
all sorts and kinds; but housekeeping for Tom implied the utmost 
complication of grave trusts and mighty charges. Well might she 
take the keys out of the little chiffonier which held the tea and 
sugar; and out of the two little damp cupboards down by the 
fireplacewhere the very black beetles got mouldyand had the 
shine taken out of their backs by envious mildew; and jingle them 
upon a ring before Tom's eyes when he came down to breakfast! Well 
might shelaughing musicallyput them up in that blessed little 
pocket of hers with a merry pride! For it was such a grand novelty 
to be mistress of anythingthat if she had been the most relentless 
and despotic of all little housekeepersshe might have pleaded just 
that much for her excuseand have been honourably acquitted. 
So far from being despotichoweverthere was a coyness about her 
very way of pouring out the teawhich Tom quite revelled in. And 
when she asked him what he would like to have for dinnerand 
faltered out 'chops' as a reasonably good suggestion after their 
last night's successful supperTom grew quite facetiousand 
rallied her desperately. 
'I don't knowTom' said his sisterblushing'I am not quite 
confidentbut I think I could make a beef-steak puddingif I 
triedTom.' 
'In the whole catalogue of cookerythere is nothing I should like 
so much as a beef-steak pudding!' cried Tomslapping his leg to 
give the greater force to this reply. 
'Yesdearthat's excellent! But if it should happen not to come 
quite right the first time' his sister faltered; 'if it should 
happen not to be a pudding exactlybut should turn out a stewor a 
soupor something of that sortyou'll not be vexedTomwill 
you?' 
The serious way in which she looked at Tom; the way in which Tom 
looked at her; and the way in which she gradually broke into a merry 
laugh at her own expensewould have enchanted you. 
'Why' said Tom 'this is capital. It gives us a newand quite an 
uncommon interest in the dinner. We put into a lottery for a 
beefsteak puddingand it is impossible to say what we may get. We 
may make some wonderful discoveryperhapsand produce such a dish 
as never was known before.' 
'I shall not be at all surprised if we doTom' returned his 
sisterstill laughing merrily'or if it should prove to be such a 
dish as we shall not feel very anxious to produce again; but the 
meat must come out of the saucepan at lastsomehow or otheryou 
know. We can't cook it into nothing at all; that's a great comfort. 
So if you like to ventureI will.' 
'I have not the least doubt' rejoined Tom'that it will come out 
an excellent puddingor at all eventsI am sure that I shall think 
it so. There is naturally something so handy and brisk about you
Ruththat if you said you could make a bowl of faultless turtle 
soupI should believe you.' 
And Tom was right. She was precisely that sort of person. Nobody 
ought to have been able to resist her coaxing manner; and nobody had 
any business to try. Yet she never seemed to know it was her manner 
at all. That was the best of it. 
Well! she washed up the breakfast cupschatting away the whole 
timeand telling Tom all sorts of anecdotes about the brass-andcopper 
founder; put everything in its place; made the room as neat 
as herself;--you must not suppose its shape was half as neat as hers 
thoughor anything like it--and brushed Tom's old hat round and 
round and round againuntil it was as sleek as Mr Pecksniff. Then 
she discoveredall in a momentthat Tom's shirt-collar was frayed 
at the edge; and flying upstairs for a needle and threadcame 
flying down again with her thimble onand set it right with 
wonderful expertness; never once sticking the needle into his face
although she was humming his pet tune from first to lastand 
beating time with the fingers of her left hand upon his neckcloth. 
She had no sooner done thisthan off she was again; and there she 
stood once moreas brisk and busy as a beetying that compact 
little chin of hers into an equally compact little bonnet; intent 
on bustling out to the butcher'swithout a minute's loss of time; 
and inviting Tom to come and see the steak cutwith his own eyes. 
As to Tomhe was ready to go anywhere; so off they trottedarm-inarm
as nimbly as you please; saying to each other what a quiet 
street it was to lodge inand how very cheapand what an airy 
situation. 
To see the butcher slap the steakbefore he laid it on the block
and give his knife a sharpeningwas to forget breakfast instantly. 
It was agreeabletoo--it really was--to see him cut it offso 
smooth and juicy. There was nothing savage in the actalthough the 
knife was large and keen; it was a piece of arthigh art; there was 
delicacy of touchclearness of toneskillful handling of the 
subjectfine shading. It was the triumph of mind over matter; 
quite. 
Perhaps the greenest cabbage-leaf ever grown in a garden was wrapped 
about this steakbefore it was delivered over to Tom. But the 
butcher had a sentiment for his businessand knew how to refine 
upon it. When he saw Tom putting the cabbage-leaf into his pocket 
awkwardlyhe begged to be allowed to do it for him; 'for meat' he 
said with some emotion'must be humourednot drove.' 
Back they went to the lodgings againafter they had bought some 
eggsand flourand such small matters; and Tom sat gravely down to 
write at one end of the parlour tablewhile Ruth prepared to make 
the pudding at the other end; for there was nobody in the house but 
an old woman (the landlord being a mysterious sort of manwho went 
out early in the morningand was scarcely ever seen); and saving in 
mere household drudgerythey waited on themselves. 
'What are you writingTom?' inquired his sisterlaying her hand 
upon his shoulder. 
'Whyyou seemy dear' said Tomleaning back in his chairand 
looking up in her face'I am very anxiousof courseto obtain 
some suitable employment; and before Mr Westlock comes this 
afternoonI think I may as well prepare a little description of 
myself and my qualifications; such as he could show to any friend of 
his.' 
'You had better do the same for meTomalso' said his sister
casting down her eyes. 'I should dearly like to keep house for you 
and take care of you alwaysTom; but we are not rich enough for 
that.' 
'We are not rich' returned Tom'certainly; and we may be much 
poorer. But we will not part if we can help it. Nono; we will 
make up our minds Ruththat unless we are so very unfortunate as to 
render me quite sure that you would be better off away from me than 
with mewe will battle it out together. I am certain we shall be 
happier if we can battle it out together. Don't you think we 
shall?' 
'ThinkTom!' 
'Ohtuttut!' interposed Tomtenderly. 'You mustn't cry.' 
'Nono; I won'tTom. But you can't afford itdear. You can't
indeed.' 
'We don't know that' said Tom. 'How are we to know thatyet 
awhileand without trying? Lord bless my soul!'--Tom's energy 
became quite grand--'there is no knowing what may happenif we try 
hard. And I am sure we can live contentedly upon a very little--if 
we can only get it.' 
'Yes; that I am sure we canTom.' 
'Whythen' said Tom'we must try for it. My friendJohn 
Westlockis a capital fellowand very shrewd and intelligent. 
I'll take his advice. We'll talk it over with him--both of us 
together. You'll like John very muchwhen you come to know himI 
am certain. Don't crydon't cry. YOU make a beef-steak pudding
indeed!' said Tomgiving her a gentle push. 'Whyyou haven't 
boldness enough for a dumpling!' 
'You WILL call it a puddingTom. Mind! I told you not!' 
'I may as well call it thattill it proves to be something else' 
said Tom. 'Ohyou are going to work in earnestare you?' 
Ayeaye! That she was. And in such pleasant earnestmoreover
that Tom's attention wandered from his writing every moment. First
she tripped downstairs into the kitchen for the flourthen for the 
pie-boardthen for the eggsthen for the butterthen for a jug of 
waterthen for the rolling-pinthen for a pudding-basinthen for 
the pepperthen for the salt; making a separate journey for 
everythingand laughing every time she started off afresh. When 
all the materials were collected she was horrified to find she had 
no apron onand so ran UPstairs by way of varietyto fetch it. 
She didn't put it on upstairsbut came dancing down with it in her 
hand; and being one of those little women to whom an apron is a most 
becoming little vanityit took an immense time to arrange; having 
to be carefully smoothed down beneath--Ohheavenwhat a wicked 
little stomacher!--and to be gathered up into little plaits by the 
strings before it could be tiedand to be tappedrebukedand 
wheedledat the pocketsbefore it would set rightwhich at last 
it didand when it did--but never mind; this is a sober chronicle. 
And thenthere were her cuffs to be tucked upfor fear of flour; 
and she had a little ring to pull off her fingerwhich wouldn't 
come off (foolish little ring!); and during the whole of these 
preparations she looked demurely every now and then at Tomfrom 
under her dark eyelashesas if they were all a part of the pudding
and indispensable to its composition. 
For the life and soul of himTom could get no further in his writing 
than'A respectable young managed thirty-five' and this
notwithstanding the show she made of being supernaturally quietand 
going about on tiptoelest she should disturb him; which only 
served as an additional means of distracting his attentionand 
keeping it upon her. 
'Tom' she said at lastin high glee. 'Tom!' 
'What now?' said Tomrepeating to himself'aged thirty-five!' 
'Will you look here a momentplease?' 
As if he hadn't been looking all the time! 
'I am going to beginTom. Don't you wonder why I butter the inside 
of the basin?' said his busy little sister. 
'Not more than you doI dare say' replied Tomlaughing. 'For I 
believe you don't know anything about it.' 
'What an infidel you areTom! How else do you think it would turn 
out easily when it was done! For a civil-engineer and land-surveyor 
not to know that! My goodnessTom!' 
It was wholly out of the question to try to write. Tom lined out 
'respectable young managed thirty-five;' and sat looking onpen 
in handwith one of the most loving smiles imaginable. 
Such a busy little woman as she was! So full of self-importance and 
trying so hard not to smileor seem uncertain about anything! It 
was a perfect treat to Tom to see her with her brows knitand her 
rosy lips pursed upkneading away at the crustrolling it out
cutting it up into stripslining the basin with itshaving it off 
fine round the rimchopping up the steak into small piecesraining 
down pepper and salt upon thempacking them into the basinpouring 
in cold water for gravyand never venturing to steal a look in his 
directionlest her gravity should be disturbed; untilat lastthe 
basin being quite full and only wanting the top crustshe clapped 
her hands all covered with paste and flourat Tomand burst out 
heartily into such a charming little laugh of triumphthat the 
pudding need have had no other seasoning to commend it to the taste 
of any reasonable man on earth. 
'Where's the pudding?' said Tom. For he was cutting his jokesTom 
was. 
'Where!' she answeredholding it up with both hands. 'Look at it!' 
'THAT a pudding!' said Tom. 
'It WILL beyou stupid fellowwhen it's covered in' returned his 
sister. Tom still pretending to look incredulousshe gave him a 
tap on the head with the rolling-pinand still laughing merrily
had returned to the composition of the top crustwhen she started 
and turned very red. Tom startedtoofor following her eyeshe 
saw John Westlock in the room. 
'Whymy goodnessJohn! How did YOU come in?' 
'I beg pardon' said John--' your sister's pardon especially--but I 
met an old lady at the street doorwho requested me to enter here; 
and as you didn't hear me knockand the door was openI made bold 
to do so. I hardly know' said Johnwith a smile'why any of us 
should be disconcerted at my having accidentally intruded upon such 
an agreeable domestic occupationso very agreeably and skillfully 
pursued; but I must confess that I am. Tomwill you kindly come to 
my relief?' 
'Mr John Westlock' said Tom. 'My sister.' 
'I hope thatas the sister of so old a friend' said Johnlaughing 
'you will have the goodness to detach your first impressions of me 
from my unfortunate entrance.' 
'My sister is not indisposed perhaps to say the same to you on her 
own behalf' retorted Tom. 
John saidof coursethat this was quite unnecessaryfor he had 
been transfixed in silent admiration; and he held out his hand to 
Miss Pinch; who couldn't take ithoweverby reason of the flour 
and paste upon her own. Thiswhich might seem calculated to 
increase the general confusion and render matters worsehad in 
reality the best effect in the worldfor neither of them could help 
laughing; and so they both found themselves on easy terms 
immediately. 
'I am delighted to see you' said Tom. 'Sit down.' 
'I can only think of sitting down on one condition' returned his 
friend; 'and that isthat your sister goes on with the puddingas 
if you were still alone.' 
'That I am sure she will' said Tom. 'On one other conditionand 
that isthat you stay and help us to eat it.' 
Poor little Ruth was seized with a palpitation of the heart when Tom 
committed this appalling indiscretionfor she felt that if the dish 
turned out a failureshe never would be able to hold up her head 
before John Westlock again. Quite unconscious of her state of mind
John accepted the invitation with all imaginable heartiness; and 
after a little more pleasantry concerning this same puddingand the 
tremendous expectations he made believe to entertain of itshe 
blushingly resumed her occupationand he took a chair. 
'I am here much earlier than I intendedTom; but I will tell you
what brings meand I think I can answer for your being glad to hear 
it. Is that anything you wish to show me?' 
'Oh dear no!' cried Tomwho had forgotten the blotted scrap of 
paper in his handuntil this inquiry brought it to his 
recollection. '"A respectable young managed thirty-five"--The 
beginning of a description of myself. That's all.' 
'I don't think you will have occasion to finish itTom. But how is 
it you never told me you had friends in London?' 
Tom looked at his sister with all his might; and certainly his 
sister looked with all her might at him. 
'Friends in London!' echoed Tom. 
'Ah!' said Westlock'to be sure.' 
'Have YOU any friends in LondonRuthmy dear!' asked Tom. 
'NoTom.' 
'I am very happy to hear that I have' said Tom'but it's news to 
me. I never knew it. They must be capital people to keep a secret
John.' 
'You shall judge for yourself' returned the other. 'Seriously
Tomhere is the plain state of the case. As I was sitting at 
breakfast this morningthere comes a knock at my door.' 
'On which you cried outvery loudCome in!' suggested Tom. 
'So I did. And the person who knockednot being a respectable 
young managed thirty-fivefrom the countrycame in when he was 
invitedinstead of standing gaping and staring about him on the 
landing. Well! When he came inI found he was a stranger; a grave
business-likesedate-lookingstranger. "Mr Westlock?" said he. 
That is my name,said I. "The favour of a few words with you?" 
said he. "Pray be seatedsir said I.' 
Here John stopped for an instant, to glance towards the table, where 
Tom's sister, listening attentively, was still busy with the basin, 
which by this time made a noble appearance. Then he resumed: 
'The pudding having taken a chair, Tom--' 
'What!' cried Tom. 
'Having taken a chair.' 
'You said a pudding.' 
'No, no,' replied John, colouring rather; 'a chair. The idea of a 
stranger coming into my rooms at half-past eight o'clock in the 
morning, and taking a pudding! Having taken a chair, Tom, a chair-amazed 
me by opening the conversation thus: I believe you are 
acquaintedsirwith Mr Thomas Pinch?" 
'No!' cried Tom. 
'His very wordsI assure you. I told him I was. Did I know where 
you were at present residing? Yes. In London? Yes. He had 
casually heardin a roundabout waythat you had left your 
situation with Mr Pecksniff. Was that the fact? Yesit was. Did 
you want another? Yesyou did.' 
'Certainly' said Tomnodding his head. 
'Just what I impressed upon him. You may rest assured that I set 
that point beyond the possibility of any mistakeand gave him 
distinctly to understand that he might make up his mind about it. 
Very well.' 
Then,said heI think I can accommodate him.' 
Tom's sister stopped short. 
'Lord bless me!' cried Tom. 'Ruthmy dearthink I can 
accommodate him.' 
'Of course I begged him' pursued John Westlockglancing at Tom's 
sisterwho was not less eager in her interest than Tom himself'to 
proceedand said that I would undertake to see you immediately. He 
replied that he had very little to saybeing a man of few words
but such as it wasit was to the purpose--and soindeedit turned 
out--for he immediately went on to tell me that a friend of his was 
in want of a kind of secretary and librarian; and that although the 
salary was smallbeing only a hundred pounds a yearwith neither 
board nor lodgingstill the duties were not heavyand there the 
post was. Vacantand ready for your acceptance.' 
'Good gracious me!' cried Tom; 'a hundred pounds a year! My dear 
John! Ruthmy love! A hundred pounds a year!' 
'But the strangest part of the story' resumed John Westlocklaying 
his hand on Tom's wristto bespeak his attentionand repress his 
ecstasies for the moment; 'the strangest part of the storyMiss 
Pinchis this. I don't know this man from Adam; neither does this 
man know Tom.' 
'He can't' said Tomin great perplexity'if he's a Londoner. 
don't know any one in London.' 
'And on my observing' John resumedstill keeping his hand upon 
Tom's wrist'that I had no doubt he would excuse the freedom I took 
in inquiring who directed him to me; how he came to know of the 
change which had taken place in my friend's position; and how he 
came to be acquainted with my friend's peculiar fitness for such an 
office as he had described; he drily said that he was not at liberty 
to enter into any explanations.' 
'Not at liberty to enter into any explanations!' repeated Tom
drawing a long breath. 
'"I must be perfectly aware he said,' John added, 'that to any 
person who had ever been in Mr Pecksniff's neighbourhoodMr Thomas 
Pinch and his acquirements were as well known as the Church steeple
or the Blue Dragon."' 
'The Blue Dragon!' repeated Tomstaring alternately at his friend 
and his sister. 
'Ayethink of that! He spoke as familiarly of the Blue DragonI 
give you my wordas if he had been Mark Tapley. I opened my eyes
I can tell youwhen he did so; but I could not fancy I had ever 
seen the man beforealthough he said with a smileYou know the 
Blue Dragon, Mr Westlock; you kept it up there, once or twice, 
yourself.Kept it up there! So I did. You rememberTom?' 
Tom nodded with great significanceandfalling into a state of 
deeper perplexity than beforeobserved that this was the most 
unaccountable and extraordinary circumstance he had ever heard of 
in his life. 
'Unaccountable?' his friend repeated. 'I became afraid of the man. 
Though it was broad dayand bright sunshineI was positively 
afraid of him. I declare I half suspected him to be a supernatural 
visitorand not a mortaluntil he took out a common-place 
description of pocket-bookand handed me this card.' 
'Mr Fips' said Tomreading it aloud. 'Austin Friars. Austin 
Friars sounds ghostlyJohn.' 
'Fips don'tI think' was John's reply. 'But there he livesTom
and there he expects us to call this morning. And now you know as 
much of this strange incident as I doupon my honour.' 
Tom's facebetween his exultation in the hundred pounds a yearand 
his wonder at this narrationwas only to be equalled by the face of 
his sisteron which there sat the very best expression of blooming 
surprise that any painter could have wished to see. What the beefsteak 
pudding would have come toif it had not been by this time 
finishedastrology itself could hardly determine. 
'Tom' said Ruthafter a little hesitation'perhaps Mr Westlock
in his friendship for youknows more of this than he chooses to 
tell.' 
'Noindeed!' cried Johneagerly. 'It is not soI assure you. I 
wish it were. I cannot take credit to myselfMiss Pinchfor any 
such thing. All that I knoworso far as I can judgeam likely 
to knowI have told you.' 
'Couldn't you know moreif you thought proper?' said Ruthscraping 
the pie-board industriously. 
'No' retorted John. 'Indeedno. It is very ungenerous in you to 
be so suspicious of me when I repose implicit faith in you. I have 
unbounded confidence in the puddingMiss Pinch.' 
She laughed at thisbut they soon got back into a serious veinand 
discussed the subject with profound gravity. Whatever else was 
obscure in the businessit appeared to be quite plain that Tom was 
offered a salary of one hundred pounds a year; and this being the 
main pointthe surrounding obscurity rather set it off than 
otherwise. 
Tombeing in a great flutterwished to start for Austin Friars 
instantlybut they waited nearly an hourby John's advicebefore 
they departed. Tom made himself as spruce as he could before 
leaving homeand when John Westlockthrough the half-opened 
parlour doorhad glimpses of that brave little sister brushing the 
collar of his coat in the passagetaking up loose stitches in his 
gloves and hovering lightly about and about himtouching him up 
here and there in the height of her quaintlittleold-fashioned 
tidinesshe called to mind the fancy-portraits of her on the wall 
of the Pecksniffian workroomand decided with uncommon indignation 
that they were gross libelsand not half pretty enough; thoughas 
hath been mentioned in its placethe artists always made those 
sketches beautifuland he had drawn at least a score of them with 
his own hands. 
'Tom' he saidas they were walking along'I begin to think you 
must be somebody's son.' 
'I suppose I am' Tom answered in his quiet way. 
'But I mean somebody's of consequence.' 
'Bless your heart' replied Tom'my poor father was of no 
consequencenor my mother either.' 
'You remember them perfectlythen?' 
'Remember them? oh dear yes. My poor mother was the last. She 
died when Ruth was a mere babyand then we both became a charge 
upon the savings of that good old grandmother I used to tell you of. 
You remember! Oh! There's nothing romantic in our historyJohn.' 
'Very well' said John in quiet despair. 'Then there is no way of 
accounting for my visitor of this morning. So we'll not tryTom.' 
They did trynotwithstandingand never left off trying until they 
got to Austin Friarswherein a very dark passage on the first 
flooroddly situated at the back of a houseacross some leads
they found a little blear-eyed glass door up in one cornerwith MR. 
FIPS painted on it in characters which were meant to be transparent. 
There was also a wicked old sideboard hiding in the gloom hard by
meditating designs upon the ribs of visitors; and an old matworn 
into lattice workwhichbeing useless as a mat (even if anybody 
could have seen itwhich was impossible)had for many years 
directed its industry into another channeland regularly tripped up 
every one of Mr Fips's clients. 
Mr Fipshearing a violent concussion between a human hat and his 
office doorwas apprisedby the usual means of communicationthat 
somebody had come to call upon himand giving that somebody 
admissionobserved that it was 'rather dark.' 
'Dark indeed' John whispered in Tom Pinch's ear. 'Not a bad place 
to dispose of a countryman inI should thinkTom.' 
Tom had been already turning over in his mind the possibility of 
their having been tempted into that region to furnish forth a pie; 
but the sight of Mr Fipswho was small and spareand looked 
peaceableand wore black shorts and powderdispelled his doubts. 
'Walk in' said Mr Fips. 
They walked in. And a mighty yellow-jaundiced little office Mr Fips 
had of it; with a greatblacksprawling splash upon the floor in 
one corneras if some old clerk had cut his throat thereyears 
agoand had let out ink instead of blood. 
'I have brought my friend Mr Pinchsir' said John Westlock. 
'Be pleased to sit' said Mr Fips. 
They occupied the two chairsand Mr Fips took the office stool from 
the stuffing whereof he drew forth a piece of horse-hair of immense 
lengthwhich he put into his mouth with a great appearance of 
appetite. 
He looked at Tom Pinch curiouslybut with an entire freedom from 
any such expression as could be reasonably construed into an unusual 
display of interest. After a short silenceduring which Mr Fips 
was so perfectly unembarrassed as to render it manifest that he 
could have broken it sooner without hesitationif he had felt 
inclined to do sohe asked if Mr Westlock had made his offer fully 
known to Mr Pinch. 
John answered in the affirmative. 
'And you think it worth your whilesirdo you?' Mr Fips inquired 
of Tom. 
'I think it a piece of great good fortunesir' said Tom. 'I am 
exceedingly obliged to you for the offer.' 
'Not to me' said Mr Fips. 'I act upon instructions.' 
'To your friendsirthen' said Tom. 'To the gentleman with whom 
I am to engageand whose confidence I shall endeavour to deserve. 
When he knows me bettersirI hope he will not lose his good 
opinion of me. He will find me punctual and vigilantand anxious 
to do what is right. That I think I can answer forand so' 
looking towards him'can Mr Westlock.' 
'Most assuredly' said John. 
Mr Fips appeared to have some little difficulty in resuming the 
conversation. To relieve himselfhe took up the wafer-stampand 
began stamping capital F's all over his legs. 
'The fact is' said Mr Fips'that my friend is notat this present 
momentin town.' 
Tom's countenance fell; for he thought this equivalent to telling 
him that his appearance did not answer; and that Fips must look out 
for somebody else. 
'When do you think he will be in townsir?' he asked. 
'I can't say; it's impossible to tell. I really have no idea. 
But' said Fipstaking off a very deep impression of the waferstamp 
upon the calf of his left legand looking steadily at Tom'I 
don't know that it's a matter of much consequence.' 
Poor Tom inclined his head deferentiallybut appeared to doubt 
that. 
'I say' repeated Mr Fips'that I don't know it's a matter of much 
consequence. The business lies entirely between yourself and meMr 
Pinch. With reference to your dutiesI can set you going; and with 
reference to your salaryI can pay it. Weekly' said Mr Fips
putting down the wafer-stampand looking at John Westlock and Tom 
Pinch by turns'weekly; in this office; at any time between the 
hours of four and five o'clock in the afternoon.' As Mr Fips said 
thishe made up his face as if he were going to whistle. But he 
didn't. 
'You are very good' said Tomwhose countenance was now suffused 
with pleasure; 'and nothing can be more satisfactory or 
straightforward. My attendance will be required--' 
'From half-past nine to four o'clock or soI should say' 
interrupted Mr Fips. 'About that.' 
'I did not mean the hours of attendance' retorted Tom'which are 
light and easyI am sure; but the place.' 
'Ohthe place! The place is in the Temple.' 
Tom was delighted. 
'Perhaps' said Mr Fips'you would like to see the place?' 
'Ohdear!' cried Tom. 'I shall only be too glad to consider myself 
engagedif you will allow me; without any further reference to the 
place.' 
'You may consider yourself engagedby all means' said Mr Fips; 
'you couldn't meet me at the Temple Gate in Fleet Streetin an hour 
from this timeI supposecould you?' 
Certainly Tom could. 
'Good' said Mr Fipsrising. 'Then I will show you the place; and 
you can begin your attendance to-morrow morning. In an hour
thereforeI shall see you. You tooMr Westlock? Very good. Take 
care how you go. It's rather dark.' 
With this remarkwhich seemed superfluoushe shut them out upon 
the staircaseand they groped their way into the street again. 
The interview had done so little to remove the mystery in which 
Tom's new engagement was involvedand had done so much to thicken 
itthat neither could help smiling at the puzzled looks of the 
other. They agreedhoweverthat the introduction of Tom to his 
new office and office companions could hardly fail to throw a light 
upon the subject; and therefore postponed its further consideration 
until after the fulfillment of the appointment they had made with Mr 
Fips. 
After looking at John Westlock's chambersand devoting a few spare 
minutes to the Boar's Headthey issued forth again to the place of 
meeting. The time agreed upon had not quite come; but Mr Fips was 
already at the Temple Gateand expressed his satisfaction at their 
punctuality. 
He led the way through sundry lanes and courtsinto one more quiet 
and more gloomy than the restandsingling out a certain house
ascended a common staircase; taking from his pocketas he wenta 
bunch of rusty keys. Stopping before a door upon an upper story
which had nothing but a yellow smear of paint where custom would 
have placed the tenant's namehe began to beat the dust out of one 
of these keysvery deliberatelyupon the great broad handrail of 
the balustrade. 
'You had better have a little plug made' he saidlooking round at 
Tomafter blowing a shrill whistle into the barrel of the key. 
'It's the only way of preventing them from getting stopped up. 
You'll find the lock go the bettertooI dare sayfor a little 
oil.' 
Tom thanked him; but was too much occupied with his own 
speculationsand John Westlock's looksto be very talkative. In 
the meantime Mr Fips opened the doorwhich yielded to his hand very 
unwillinglyand with a horribly discordant sound. He took the key 
outwhen he had done soand gave it to Tom. 
'Ayeaye!' said Mr Fips. 'The dust lies rather thick here.' 
Trulyit did. Mr Fips might have gone so far as to sayvery 
thick. It had accumulated everywhere; lay deep on everythingand 
in one partwhere a ray of sun shone through a crevice in the 
shutter and struck upon the opposite wallit went twirling round 
and roundlike a gigantic squirrel-cage. 
Dust was the only thing in the place that had any motion about it. 
When their conductor admitted the light freelyand lifting up the 
heavy window-sashlet in the summer airhe showed the mouldering 
furniturediscoloured wainscoting and ceilingrusty stoveand 
ashy hearthin all their inert neglect. Close to the door there 
stood a candlestickwith an extinguisher upon it; as if the last 
man who had been there had pausedafter securing a retreatto take 
a parting look at the dreariness he left behindand then had shut 
out light and life togetherand closed the place up like a tomb. 
There were two rooms on that floor; and in the first or outer one a 
narrow staircaseleading to two more above. These last were fitted 
up as bed-chambers. Neither in themnor in the rooms belowwas 
any scarcity of convenient furniture observablealthough the 
fittings were of a bygone fashion; but solitude and want of use 
seemed to have rendered it unfit for any purposes of comfortand to 
have given it a grislyhaunted air. 
Movables of every kind lay strewn aboutwithout the least attempt 
at orderand were intermixed with boxeshampersand all sorts of 
lumber. On all the floors were piles of booksto the amount
perhapsof some thousands of volumes: thesestill in bales; those
wrapped in paperas they had been purchased; others scattered 
singly or in heaps; not one upon the shelves which lined the walls. 
To these Mr Fips called Tom's attention. 
'Before anything else can be donewe must have them put in order
cataloguedand ranged upon the book-shelvesMr Pinch. That will 
do to begin withI thinksir.' 
Tom rubbed his hands in the pleasant anticipation of a task so 
congenial to his tasteand said: 
'An occupation full of interest for meI assure you. It will 
occupy meperhapsuntil Mr.--' 
'Until Mr.--' repeated Fips; as much as to ask Tom what he was 
stopping for. 
'I forgot that you had not mentioned the gentleman's name' said 
Tom. 
'Oh!' cried Mr Fipspulling on his glove'didn't I? Noby-thebye
I don't think I did. Ah! I dare say he'll be here soon. You 
will get on very well togetherI have no doubt. I wish you success 
I am sure. You won't forget to shut the door? It'll lock of itself 
if you slam it. Half-past nineyou know. Let us say from halfpast 
nine to fouror half-past fouror thereabouts; one day
perhapsa little earlieranother dayperhapsa little later
according as you feel disposedand as you arrange your work. Mr 
FipsAustin Friars of course you'll remember? And you won't forget 
to slam the doorif you please!' 
He said all this in such a comfortableeasy mannerthat Tom could 
only rub his handsand nod his headand smile in acquiescence 
which he was still doingwhen Mr Fips walked coolly out. 
'Whyhe's gone!' cried Tom. 
'And what's moreTom' said John Westlockseating himself upon a 
pile of booksand looking up at his astonished friend'he is 
evidently not coming back again; so here you areinstalled. Under 
rather singular circumstancesTom!' 
It was such an odd affair throughoutand Tom standing there among 
the books with his hat in one hand and the key in the otherlooked 
so prodigiously confoundedthat his friend could not help laughing 
heartily. Tom himself was tickled; no less by the hilarity of his 
friend than by the recollection of the sudden manner in which he had 
been brought to a stopin the very height of his urbane conference 
with Mr Fips; so by degrees Tom burst out laughing too; and each 
making the other laugh morethey fairly roared. 
When they had had their laugh outwhich did not happen very soon
for give John an inch that way and he was sure to take several ells
being a jovialgood-tempered fellowthey looked about them more 
closelygroping among the lumber for any stray means of 
enlightenment that might turn up. But no scrap or shred of 
information could they find. The books were marked with a variety 
of owner's nameshavingno doubtbeen bought at salesand 
collected here and there at different times; but whether any one of 
these names belonged to Tom's employerandif sowhich of them
they had no means whatever of determining. It occurred to John as a 
very bright thought to make inquiry at the steward's officeto whom 
the chambers belongedor by whom they were held; but he came back 
no wiser than he wentthe answer being'Mr Fipsof Austin 
Friars.' 
'After allTomI begin to think it lies no deeper than this. Fips 
is an eccentric man; has some knowledge of Pecksniff; despises him
of course; has heard or seen enough of you to know that you are the 
man he wants; and engages you in his own whimsical manner.' 
'But why in his own whimsical manner?' asked Tom. 
'Oh! why does any man entertain his own whimsical taste? Why does 
Mr Fips wear shorts and powderand Mr Fips's next-door neighbour 
boots and a wig?' 
Tombeing in that state of mind in which any explanation is a great 
reliefadopted this last one (which indeed was quite as feasible as 
any other) readilyand said he had no doubt of it. Nor was his 
faith at all shaken by his having said exactly the same thing to 
each suggestion of his friend's in turnand being perfectly ready 
to say it again if he had any new solution to propose. 
As he had notTom drew down the window-sashand folded the 
shutter; and they left the rooms. He closed the door heavilyas Mr 
Fips had desired him; tried itfound it all safeand put the key 
in his pocket. 
They made a pretty wide circuit in going back to Islingtonas they 
had time to spareand Tom was never tired of looking about him. It 
was well he had John Westlock for his companionfor most people 
would have been weary of his perpetual stoppages at shop-windows
and his frequent dashes into the crowded carriage-way at the peril 
of his lifeto get the better view of church steeplesand other 
public buildings. But John was charmed to see him so much 
interestedand every time Tom came back with a beaming face from 
among the wheels of carts and hackney-coacheswholly unconscious of 
the personal congratulations addressed to him by the driversJohn 
seemed to like him better than before. 
There was no flour on Ruth's hands when she received them in the 
triangular parlourbut there were pleasant smiles upon her face
and a crowd of welcomes shining out of every smileand gleaming in 
her bright eyes. By the byehow bright they were! Looking into 
them for but a momentwhen you took her handyou sawin each
such a capital miniature of yourselfrepresenting you as such a 
restlessflashingeagerbrilliant little fellow-
Ah! if you could only have kept them for your own miniature! But
wickedrovingrestlesstoo impartial eyesit was enough for any 
one to stand before themandstraightwaythere he danced and 
sparkled quite as merrily as you! 
The table was already spread for dinner; and though it was spread 
with nothing very choice in the way of glass or linenand with 
green-handled knivesand very mountebanks of two-pronged forks
which seemed to be trying how far asunder they could possibly 
stretch their legs without converting themselves into double the 
number of iron toothpicksit wanted neither damasksilvergold
nor china; nonor any other garniture at all. There it was; and
being therenothing else would have done as well. 
The success of that initiative dish; that first experiment of hers 
in cookery; was so entireso unalloyed and perfectthat John 
Westlock and Tom agreed she must have been studying the art in 
secret for a long time past; and urged her to make a full confession 
of the fact. They were exceedingly merry over this jestand many 
smart things were said concerning it; but John was not as fair in 
his behaviour as might have been expectedforafter luring Tom 
Pinch on for a long timehe suddenly went over to the enemyand 
swore to everything his sister said. Howeveras Tom observed the 
same night before going to bedit was only in jokeand John had 
always been famous for being polite to ladieseven when he was 
quite a boy. Ruth said'Oh! indeed!' She didn't say anything else. 
It is astonishing how much three people may find to talk about. 
They scarcely left off talking once. And it was not all lively chat 
which occupied them; for when Tom related how he had seen Mr 
Pecksniff's daughtersand what a change had fallen on the younger
they were very serious. 
John Westlock became quite absorbed in her fortunes; asking many 
questions of Tom Pinch about her marriageinquiring whether her 
husband was the gentleman whom Tom had brought to dine with him at 
Salisbury; in what degree of relationship they stood towards each 
otherbeing different persons; and takingin shortthe greatest 
interest in the subject. Tom then went into itat full length; he 
told how Martin had gone abroadand had not been heard of for a 
long time; how Dragon Mark had borne him company; how Mr Pecksniff 
had got the poor old doting grandfather into his power; and how he 
basely sought the hand of Mary Graham. But not a word said Tom of 
what lay hidden in his heart; his heartso deepand trueand full 
of honourand yet with so much room for every gentle and unselfish 
thought; not a word. 
TomTom! The man in all this world most confident in his sagacity 
and shrewdness; the man in all this world most proud of his distrust 
of other menand having most to show in gold and silver as the 
gains belonging to his creed; the meekest favourer of that wise 
doctrineEvery man for himselfand God for us all (there being 
high wisdom in the thought that the Eternal Majesty of Heaven ever 
wasor can beon the side of selfish lust and love!); shall never 
findohnever findbe sure of thatthe time come home to him
when all his wisdom is an idiot's follyweighed against a simple 
heart! 
WellwellTomit was simple toothough simple in a different 
wayto be so eager touching that same theatreof which John said
when tea was donehe had the absolute commandso far as taking 
parties in without the payment of a sixpence was concerned; and 
simpler yetperhapsnever to suspect that when he went in first
alonehe paid the money! Simple in theedear Tomto laugh and cry 
so heartily at such a sorry showso poorly shown; simple to be so 
happy and loquacious trudging home with Ruth; simple to be so 
surprised to find that merry present of a cookery-book awaiting her 
in the parlour next morningwith the beef-steak-pudding-leaf turned 
down and blotted out. There! Let the record stand! Thy quality of 
soul was simplesimplequite contemptibleTom Pinch! 
CHAPTER FORTY 
THE PINCHES MAKE A NEW ACQUAINTANCEAND HAVE FRESH OCCASION FOR 
SURPRISE AND WONDER 
There was a ghostly air about these uninhabited chambers in the 
Templeand attending every circumstance of Tom's employment there
which had a strange charm in it. Every morning when he shut his 
door at Islingtonhe turned his face towards an atmosphere of 
unaccountable fascinationas surely as he turned it to the London 
smoke; and from that moment it thickened round and round him all day 
longuntil the time arrived for going home againand leaving it
like a motionless cloudbehind. 
It seemed to Tomevery morningthat he approached this ghostly 
mistand became enveloped in itby the easiest succession of 
degrees imaginable. Passing from the roar and rattle of the streets 
into the quiet court-yards of the Templewas the first preparation. 
Every echo of his footsteps sounded to him like a sound from the old 
walls and pavementswanting language to relate the histories of the 
dimdismal rooms; to tell him what lost documents were decaying in 
forgotten corners of the shut-up cellarsfrom whose lattices such 
mouldy sighs came breathing forth as he went past; to whisper of 
dark bins of rare old winebricked up in vaults among the old 
foundations of the Halls; or mutter in a lower tone yet darker 
legends of the cross-legged knightswhose marble effigies were in 
the church. With the first planting of his foot upon the staircase 
of his dusty officeall these mysteries increased; untilascending 
step by stepas Tom ascendedthey attained their full growth in 
the solitary labours of the day. 
Every day brought one recurringnever-failing source of 
speculation. This employer; would he come to-dayand what would he 
be like? For Tom could not stop short at Mr Fips; he quite believed 
that Mr Fips had spoken trulywhen he said he acted for another; 
and what manner of man that other wasbecame a full-blown flower of 
wonder in the garden of Tom's fancywhich never faded or got 
trodden down. 
At one timehe conceived that Mr Pecksniffrepenting of his 
falsehoodmightby exertion of his influence with some third 
person have devised these means of giving him employment. He found 
this idea so insupportable after what had taken place between that 
good man and himselfthat he confided it to John Westlock on the 
very same day; informing John that he would rather ply for hire as a 
porterthan fall so low in his own esteem as to accept the smallest 
obligation from the hands of Mr Pecksniff. But John assured him 
that he (Tom Pinch) was far from doing justice to the character of 
Mr Pecksniff yetif he supposed that gentleman capable of 
performing a generous action; and that he might make his mind quite 
easy on that head until he saw the sun turn green and the moon 
blackand at the same time distinctly perceived with the naked eye
twelve first-rate comets careering round those planets. In which 
unusual state of thingshe said (and not before)it might become 
not absolutely lunatic to suspect Mr Pecksniff of anything so 
monstrous. In short he laughed the idea down completely; and Tom
abandoning itwas thrown upon his beam-ends againfor some other 
solution. 
In the meantime Tom attended to his duties dailyand made 
considerable progress with the books; which were already reduced to 
some sort of orderand made a great appearance in his fairlywritten 
catalogue. During his business hourshe indulged himself 
occasionally with snatches of reading; which were oftenindeeda 
necessary part of his pursuit; and as he usually made bold to carry 
one of these goblin volumes home at night (always bringing it back 
again next morningin case his strange employer should appear and 
ask what had become of it)he led a happyquietstudious kind of 
lifeafter his own heart. 
But though the books were never so interestingand never so full of 
novelty to Tomthey could not so enchain himin those mysterious 
chambersas to render him unconsciousfor a momentof the 
lightest sound. Any footstep on the flags without set him listening 
attentively and when it turned into that houseand came upupup 
the stairshe always thought with a beating heart'Now I am coming 
face to face with him at last!' But no footstep ever passed the 
floor immediately below: except his own. 
This mystery and loneliness engendered fancies in Tom's mindthe 
folly of which his common sense could readily discoverbut which 
his common sense was quite unable to keep awaynotwithstanding; 
that quality being with most of usin such a caselike the old 
French Police--quick at detectionbut very weak as a preventive 
power. Misgivingsundefinedabsurdinexplicablethat there was 
some one hiding in the inner room--walking softly overheadpeeping 
in through the door-chinkdoing something stealthyanywhere where 
he was not--came over him a hundred times a daymaking it pleasant 
to throw up the sashand hold communication even with the sparrows 
who had built in the roof and water-spoutand were twittering about 
the windows all day long. 
He sat with the outer door wide openat all timesthat he might 
hear the footsteps as they enteredand turned off into the chambers 
on the lower floor. He formed odd prepossessions tooregarding 
strangers in the streets; and would say within himself of such or 
such a manwho struck him as having anything uncommon in his dress 
or aspect'I shouldn't wondernowif that were he!' But it never 
was. And though he actually turned back and followed more than one 
of these suspected individualsin a singular belief that they were 
going to the place he was then upon his way fromhe never got any 
other satisfaction by itthan the satisfaction of knowing it was 
not the case. 
Mr Fipsof Austin Friarsrather deepened than illumined the 
obscurity of his position; for on the first occasion of Tom's 
waiting on him to receive his weekly payhe said: 
'Oh! by the byeMr Pinchyou needn't mention itif you please!' 
Tom thought he was going to tell him a secret; so he said that he 
wouldn't on any accountand that Mr Fips might entirely depend upon 
him. But as Mr Fips said 'Very good' in replyand nothing more
Tom prompted him: 
'Not on any account' repeated Tom. 
Mr Fips repeated: 'Very good.' 
'You were going to say'--Tom hinted. 
'Oh dear no!' cried Fips. 'Not at all.' Howeverseeing Tom 
confusedhe added'I mean that you needn't mention any particulars 
about your place of employmentto people generally. You'll find it 
better not.' 
'I have not had the pleasure of seeing my employer yetsir' 
observed Tomputting his week's salary in his pocket. 
'Haven't you?' said Fips. 'NoI don't suppose you have though.' 
'I should like to thank himand to know that what I have done so 
faris done to his satisfaction' faltered Tom. 
'Quite right' said Mr Fipswith a yawn. 'Highly creditable. Very 
proper.' 
Tom hastily resolved to try him on another tack. 
'I shall soon have finished with the books' he said. 'I hope that 
will not terminate my engagementsiror render me useless?' 
'Oh dear no!' retorted Fips. 'Plenty to do; plen-ty to do! Be 
careful how you go. It's rather dark.' 
This was the very utmost extent of information Tom could ever get 
out of HIM. So it was dark enough in all conscience; and if Mr Fips 
expressed himself with a double meaninghe had good reason for 
doing so. 
But now a circumstance occurredwhich helped to divert Tom's 
thoughts from even this mysteryand to divide them between it and a 
new channelwhich was a very Nile in itself. 
The way it came about was this. Having always been an early riser 
and having now no organ to engage him in sweet converse every 
morningit was his habit to take a long walk before going to the 
Temple; and naturally incliningas a strangertowards those parts 
of the town which were conspicuous for the life and animation 
pervading themhe became a great frequenter of the market-places
bridgesquaysand especially the steam-boat wharves; for it was 
very lively and fresh to see the people hurrying away upon their 
many schemes of business or pleasureand it made Tom glad to think 
that there was that much change and freedom in the monotonous 
routine of city lives. 
In most of these morning excursions Ruth accompanied him. As their 
landlord was always up and away at his business (whatever that might 
beno one seemed to know) at a very early hourthe habits of the 
people of the house in which they lodged corresponded with their 
own. Thus they had often finished their breakfastand were out in 
the summer airby seven o'clock. After a two hours' stroll they 
parted at some convenient point; Tom going to the Templeand his 
sister returning homeas methodically as you please. 
Many and many a pleasant stroll they had in Covent Garden Market; 
snuffing up the perfume of the fruits and flowerswondering at the 
magnificence of the pineapples and melons; catching glimpses down 
side avenuesof rows and rows of old womenseated on inverted 
basketsshelling peas; looking unutterable things at the fat bundles 
of asparagus with which the dainty shops were fortified as with a 
breastwork; andat the herbalist's doorsgratefully inhaling 
scents as of veal-stuffing yet uncookeddreamily mixed up with 
capsicumsbrown-paperseedseven with hints of lusty snails and 
fine young curly leeches. Many and many a pleasant stroll they had 
among the poultry marketswhere ducks and fowlswith necks 
unnaturally longlay stretched out in pairsready for cooking; 
where there were speckled eggs in mossy basketswhite country 
sausages beyond impeachment by surviving cat or dogor horse or 
donkey; new cheeses to any wild extentlive birds in coops and 
cageslooking much too big to be naturalin consequence of those 
receptacles being much too little; rabbitsalive and dead
innumerable. Many a pleasant stroll they had among the cool
refreshingsilvery fish-stallswith a kind of moonlight effect 
about their stock-in-tradeexcepting always for the ruddy lobsters. 
Many a pleasant stroll among the waggon-loads of fragrant hay
beneath which dogs and tired waggoners lay fast asleepoblivious of 
the pieman and the public-house. But never half so good a stroll as 
down among the steamboats on a bright morning. 
There they layalongside of each other; hard and fast for everto 
all appearancebut designing to get out somehowand quite 
confident of doing it; and in that faith shoals of passengersand 
heaps of luggagewere proceeding hurriedly on board. Little steamboats 
dashed up and down the stream incessantly. Tiers upon tiers 
of vesselsscores of mastslabyrinths of tackleidle sails
splashing oarsgliding row-boatslumbering bargessunken piles
with ugly lodgings for the water-rat within their mud-discoloured 
nooks; church steepleswarehouseshouse-roofsarchesbridges
men and womenchildrencaskscranesboxes horsescoaches
idlersand hard-labourers; there they wereall jumbled up 
togetherany summer morningfar beyond Tom's power of separation. 
In the midst of all this turmoil there was an incessant roar from 
every packet's funnelwhich quite expressed and carried out the 
uppermost emotion of the scene. They all appeared to be perspiring 
and bothering themselvesexactly as their passengers did; they 
never left off fretting and chafingin their own hoarse manner
once; but were always panting outwithout any stops'Come along do 
make haste I'm very nervous come along oh good gracious we shall 
never get there how late you are do make haste I'm off directly come 
along!' 
Even when they had left offand had got safely out into the 
currenton the smallest provocation they began again; for the 
bravest packet of them allbeing stopped by some entanglement in 
the riverwould immediately begin to fume and pant afresh'oh 
here's a stoppage what's the matter do go on there I'm in a hurry 
it's done on purpose did you ever oh my goodness DO go on here!' and 
soin a state of mind bordering on distractionwould be last seen 
drifting slowly through the mist into the summer light beyondthat 
made it red. 
Tom's shiphowever; orat leastthe packet-boat in which Tom and 
his sister took the greatest interest on one particular occasion; 
was not off yetby any means; but was at the height of its 
disorder. The press of passengers was very great; another steamboat 
lay on each side of her; the gangways were choked up; 
distracted womenobviously bound for Gravesendbut turning a deaf 
ear to all representations that this particular vessel was about to 
sail for Antwerppersisted in secreting baskets of refreshments 
behind bulk-headsand water-casksand under seats; and very great 
confusion prevailed. 
It was so amusingthat Tomwith Ruth upon his armstood looking 
down from the wharfas nearly regardless as it was in the nature of 
flesh and blood to beof an elderly lady behind himwho had 
brought a large umbrella with herand didn't know what to do with 
it. This tremendous instrument had a hooked handle; and its 
vicinity was first made known to him by a painful pressure on the 
windpipeconsequent upon its having caught him round the throat. 
Soon after disengaging himself with perfect good humourhe had a 
sensation of the ferule in his back; immediately afterwardsof the 
hook entangling his ankles; then of the umbrella generally
wandering about his hatand flapping at it like a great bird; and
lastlyof a poke or thrust below the ribswhich give him such 
exceeding anguishthat he could not refrain from turning round to 
offer a mild remonstrance. 
Upon his turning roundhe found the owner of the umbrella 
struggling on tip-toewith a countenance expressive of violent 
animosityto look down upon the steam-boats; from which he inferred 
that she had attacked himstanding in the front rowby designand 
as her natural enemy. 
'What a very ill-natured person you must be!' said Tom. 
The lady cried out fiercely'Where's the pelisse!'--meaning the 
constabulary--and went on to sayshaking the handle of the umbrella 
at Tomthat but for them fellers never being in the way when they 
was wantedshe'd have given him in chargeshe would. 
'If they greased their whiskers lessand minded the duties which 
they're paid so heavy fora little more' she observed'no one 
needn't be drove mad by scrouding so!' 
She had been grievously knocked aboutno doubtfor her bonnet was 
bent into the shape of a cocked hat. Being a fat little womantoo
she was in a state of great exhaustion and intense heat. Instead of 
pursuing the altercationthereforeTom civilly inquired what boat 
she wanted to go on board of? 
'I suppose' returned the lady'as nobody but yourself can want to 
look at a steam packagewithout wanting to go a-boarding of itcan 
they! Booby!' 
'Which one do you want to look at then?' said Tom. 'We'll make room 
for you if we can. Don't be so ill-tempered.' 
'No blessed creetur as ever I was with in trying times' returned 
the ladysomewhat softened'and they're a many in their numbers
ever brought it as a charge again myself that I was anythin' but 
mild and equal in my spirits. Never mind a contradicting of meif 
you seem to feel it does you goodma'amI often saysfor well you 
know that Sairey may be trusted not to give it back again. But I 
will not denige that I am worrited and wexed this dayand with good 
reagionLord forbid!' 
By this timeMrs Gamp (for it was no other than that experienced 
practitioner) hadwith Tom's assistancesqueezed and worked 
herself into a small corner between Ruth and the rail; whereafter 
breathing very hard for some little timeand performing a short 
series of dangerous evolutions with her umbrellashe managed to 
establish herself pretty comfortably. 
'And which of all them smoking monsters is the Ankworks boatI 
wonder. Goodness me!' cried Mrs Gamp. 
'What boat did you want?' asked Ruth. 
'The Ankworks package' Mrs Gamp replied. 'I will not deceive you
my sweet. Why should I?' 
'That is the Antwerp packet in the middle' said Ruth. 
'And I wish it was in Jonadge's bellyI do' cried Mrs Gamp; 
appearing to confound the prophet with the whale in this miraculous 
aspiration. 
Ruth said nothing in reply; butas Mrs Gamplaying her chin 
against the cool iron of the railcontinued to look intently at the 
Antwerp boatand every now and then to give a little groanshe 
inquired whether any child of hers was going aboard that morning? 
Or perhaps her husbandshe said kindly. 
'Which shows' said Mrs Gampcasting up her eyes'what a little 
way you've travelled into this wale of lifemy dear young creetur! 
As a good friend of mine has frequent made remark to mewhich her 
namemy loveis HarrisMrs Harris through the square and up the 
steps a-turnin' round by the tobacker shopOh Sairey, Sairey, 
little do we know wot lays afore us!Mrs Harris, ma'am,I says
not much, it's true, but more than you suppoge. Our calcilations, 
ma'am,I saysrespectin' wot the number of a family will be, 
comes most times within one, and oftener than you would suppoge, 
exact.Sairey,says Mrs Harrisin a awful wayTell me wot is 
my indiwidgle number.No, Mrs Harris,I says to herex-cuge me, 
if you please. My own,I sayshas fallen out of three-pair 
backs, and had damp doorsteps settled on their lungs, and one was 
turned up smilin' in a bedstead unbeknown. Therefore, ma'am,I 
saysseek not to proticipate, but take 'em as they come and as 
they go.Mine' says Mrs Gamp'mine is all gonemy dear young 
chick. And as to husbandsthere's a wooden leg gone likeways home 
to its accountwhich in its constancy of walkin' into wine vaults
and never comin' out again 'till fetched by forcewas quite as weak 
as fleshif not weaker.' 
When she had delivered this orationMrs Gamp leaned her chin upon 
the cool iron again; and looking intently at the Antwerp packet
shook her head and groaned. 
'I wouldn't' said Mrs Gamp'I wouldn't be a man and have such a 
think upon my mind!--but nobody as owned the name of mancould do 
it!' 
Tom and his sister glanced at each other; and Ruthafter a moment's 
hesitationasked Mrs Gamp what troubled her so much. 
'My dear' returned that ladydropping her voice'you are single
ain't you?' 
Ruth laughed blushedand said 'Yes.' 
'Worse luck' proceeded Mrs Gamp'for all parties! But others is 
marriedand in the marriage state; and there is a dear young 
creetur a-comin' down this mornin' to that very packagewhich is no 
more fit to trust herself to seathan nothin' is!' 
She paused here to look over the deck of the packet in questionand 
on the steps leading down to itand on the gangways. Seeming to 
have thus assured herself that the object of her commiseration had 
not yet arrivedshe raised her eyes gradually up to the top of the 
escape-pipeand indignantly apostrophised the vessel: 
'Ohdrat you!' said Mrs Gampshaking her umbrella at it'you're a 
nice spluttering nisy monster for a delicate young creetur to go and 
be a passinger by; ain't you! YOU never do no harm in that waydo 
you? With your hammeringand roaringand hissingand lamp-iling
you brute! Them Confugion steamers' said Mrs Gampshaking her 
umbrella again'has done more to throw us out of our reg'lar work 
and bring ewents on at times when nobody counted on 'em (especially 
them screeching railroad ones)than all the other frights that ever 
was took. I have heerd of one young mana guard upon a railway
only three years opened--well does Mrs Harris know himwhich indeed 
he is her own relation by her sister's marriage with a master 
sawyer--as is godfather at this present time to six-and-twenty 
blessed little strangersequally unexpectedand all on 'um named 
after the Ingeines as was the cause. Ugh!' said Mrs Gampresuming 
her apostrophe'one might easy know you was a man's inwention
from your disregardlessness of the weakness of our natursso 
one mightyou brute!' 
It would not have been unnatural to supposefrom the first part of 
Mrs Gamp's lamentationsthat she was connected with the 
stage-coaching or post-horsing trade. She had no means of judging of 
the effect of her concluding remarks upon her young companion; for 
she interrupted herself at this pointand exclaimed: 
'There she identically goes! Poor sweet young creeturthere she 
goeslike a lamb to the sacrifige! If there's any illness when that 
wessel gets to sea' said Mrs Gampprophetically'it's murderand 
I'm the witness for the persecution.' 
She was so very earnest on the subjectthat Tom's sister (being as 
kind as Tom himself) could not help saying something to her in 
reply. 
'Praywhich is the lady' she inquired'in whom you are so much 
interested?' 
'There!' groaned Mrs Gamp. 'There she goes! A-crossin' the little 
wooden bridge at this minute. She's a-slippin' on a bit of 
orangepeel!' tightly clutching her umbrella. 'What a turn it give 
me.' 
'Do you mean the lady who is with that man wrapped up from head to 
foot in a large cloakso that his face is almost hidden?' 
'Well he may hide it!' Mrs Gamp replied. 'He's good call to be 
ashamed of himself. Did you see him a-jerking of her wristthen?' 
'He seems to be hasty with herindeed.' 
'Now he's a-taking of her down into the close cabin!' said Mrs Gamp
impatiently. 'What's the man about! The deuce is in himI think. 
Why can't he leave her in the open air?' 
He did notwhatever his reason wasbut led her quickly down and 
disappeared himselfwithout loosening his cloakor pausing on the 
crowded deck one moment longer than was necessary to clear their way 
to that part of the vessel. 
Tom had not heard this little dialogue; for his attention had been 
engaged in an unexpected manner. A hand upon his sleeve had caused 
him to look roundjust when Mrs Gamp concluded her apostrophe to 
the steam-engine; and on his right armRuth being on his lefthe 
found their landlordto his great surprise. 
He was not so much surprised at the man's being thereas at his 
having got close to him so quietly and swiftly; for another person 
had been at his elbow one instant before; and he had not in the 
meantime been conscious of any change or pressure in the knot of 
people among whom he stood. He and Ruth had frequently remarked how 
noiselessly this landlord of theirs came into and went out of his 
own house; but Tom was not the less amazed to see him at his elbow 
now. 
'I beg your pardonMr Pinch' he said in his ear. 'I am rather 
infirmand out of breathand my eyes are not very good. I am not 
as young as I wassir. You don't see a gentleman in a large cloak 
down yonderwith a lady on his arm; a lady in a veil and a black 
shawl; do you?' 
If HE did notit was curious that in speaking he should have 
singled out from all the crowd the very people whom he described; 
and should have glanced hastily from them to Tomas if he were 
burning to direct his wandering eyes. 
'A gentleman in a large cloak!' said Tom'and a lady in a black 
shawl! Let me see!' 
'Yesyes!' replied the otherwith keen impatience. 'A gentleman 
muffled up from head to foot--strangely muffled up for such a 
morning as this--like an invalidwith his hand to his face at this 
minuteperhaps. Nonono! not there' he addedfollowing Tom's 
gaze; 'the other way; in that direction; down yonder.' Again he 
indicatedbut this time in his hurrywith his outstretched finger
the very spot on which the progress of these persons was checked at 
that moment. 
'There are so many peopleand so much motionand so many objects' 
said Tom'that I find it difficult to--noI really don't see 
a gentleman in a large cloakand a lady in a black shawl. 
There's a lady in a red shawl over there!' 
'Nonono!' cried his landlordpointing eagerly again'not 
there. The other way; the other way. Look at the cabin steps. To 
the left. They must be near the cabin steps. Do you see the cabin 
steps? There's the bell ringing already! DO you see the steps?' 
'Stay!' said Tom'you're right. Look! there they go now. Is that 
the gentleman you mean? Descending at this minutewith the folds 
of a great cloak trailing down after him?' 
'The very man!' returned the othernot looking at what Tom pointed 
outhoweverbut at Tom's own face. 'Will you do me a kindness
sira great kindness? Will you put that letter in his hand? Only 
give him that! He expects it. I am charged to do it by my 
employersbut I am late in finding himandnot being as young as 
I have beenshould never be able to make my way on board and off 
the deck again in time. Will you pardon my boldnessand do me that 
great kindness?' 
His hands shookand his face bespoke the utmost interest and 
agitationas he pressed the letter upon Tomand pointed to its 
destinationlike the Tempter in some grim old carving. 
To hesitate in the performance of a good-natured or compassionate 
office was not in Tom's way. He took the letter; whispered Ruth to 
wait till he returnedwhich would be immediately; and ran down the 
steps with all the expedition he could make. There were so many 
people going downso many others coming upsuch heavy goods in 
course of transit to and frosuch a ringing of bellblowing-off of 
steamand shouting of men's voicesthat he had much ado to force 
his wayor keep in mind to which boat he was going. But he reached 
the right one with good speedand going down the cabin-stairs 
immediatelydescribed the object of his search standing at the 
upper end of the saloonwith his back towards himreading some 
notice which was hung against the wall. As Tom advanced to give him 
the letterhe startedhearing footstepsand turned round. 
What was Tom's astonishment to find in him the man with whom he had 
had the conflict in the field--poor Mercy's husband. Jonas! 
Tom understood him to saywhat the devil did he want; but it was 
not easy to make out what he said; he spoke so indistinctly. 
'I want nothing with you for myself' said Tom; 'I was askeda 
moment sinceto give you this letter. You were pointed out to me
but I didn't know you in your strange dress. Take it!' 
He did soopened itand read the writing on the inside. The 
contents were evidently very brief; not more perhaps than one line; 
but they struck upon him like a stone from a sling. He reeled back 
as he read. 
His emotion was so different from any Tom had ever seen before that 
he stopped involuntarily. Momentary as his state of indecision was
the bell ceased while he stood thereand a hoarse voice calling 
down the stepsinquired if there was any to go ashore? 
'Yes' cried Jonas'I--I am coming. Give me time. Where's that 
woman! Come back; come back here.' 
He threw open another door as he spokeand draggedrather than 
ledher forth. She was pale and frightenedand amazed to see her 
old acquaintance; but had no time to speakfor they were making a 
great stir above; and Jonas drew her rapidly towards the deck. 
'Where are we going? What is the matter?' 
'We are going back' said Jonas. 'I have changed my mind. I can't 
go. Don't question meor I shall be the death of youor some one 
else. Stop there! Stop! We're for the shore. Do you hear? We're 
for the shore!' 
He turnedeven in the madness of his hurryand scowling darkly 
back at Tomshook his clenched hand at him. There are not many 
human faces capable of the expression with which he accompanied that 
gesture. 
He dragged her upand Tom followed them. Across the deckover the 
sidealong the crazy plankand up the stepshe dragged her 
fiercely; not bestowing any look on herbut gazing upwards all the 
while among the faces on the wharf. Suddenly he turned againand 
said to Tom with a tremendous oath: 
'Where is he?' 
Before Tomin his indignation and amazementcould return an answer 
to a question he so little understooda gentleman approached Tom 
behindand saluted Jonas Chuzzlewit by name. He has a gentleman of 
foreign appearancewith a black moustache and whiskers; and 
addressed him with a polite composurestrangely different from his 
own distracted and desperate manner. 
'Chuzzlewitmy good fellow!' said the gentlemanraising his hat in 
compliment to Mrs Chuzzlewit'I ask your pardon twenty thousand 
times. I am most unwilling to interfere between you and a domestic 
trip of this nature (always so very charming and refreshingI know
although I have not the happiness to be a domestic man myselfwhich 
is the great infelicity of my existence); but the beehivemy dear 
friendthe beehive--will you introduce me?' 
'This is Mr Montague' said Jonaswhom the words appeared to choke. 
'The most unhappy and most penitent of menMrs Chuzzlewit' pursued 
that gentleman'for having been the means of spoiling this 
excursion; but as I tell my friendthe beehivethe beehive. You 
projected a short little continental tripmy dear friendof 
course?' 
Jonas maintained a dogged silence. 
'May I die' cried Montague'but I am shocked! Upon my soul I am 
shocked. But that confounded beehive of ours in the city must be 
paramount to every other considerationwhen there is honey to be 
made; and that is my best excuse. Here is a very singular old 
female dropping curtseys on my right' said Montaguebreaking off 
in his discourseand looking at Mrs Gamp'who is not a friend of 
mine. Does anybody know her?' 
'Ah! Well they knows mebless their precious hearts!' said Mrs 
Gamp'not forgettin' your own merry onesirand long may it be 
so! Wishin' as every one' (she delivered this in the form of a toast 
or sentiment) 'was as merryand as handsome-lookin'as a little 
bird has whispered me a certain gent iswhich I will not name for 
fear I give offence where none is doo! My precious lady' here she 
stopped short in her merrimentfor she had until now affected to be 
vastly entertained'you're too pale by half!' 
'YOU are here tooare you?' muttered Jonas. 'Ecodthere are 
enough of you.' 
'I hopesir' returned Mrs Gampdropping an indignant curtsey'as 
no bones is broke by me and Mrs Harris a-walkin' down upon a public 
wharf. Which was the very words she says to me (although they was 
the last I ever had to speak) was these: "Sairey she says, is it 
a public wharf?" Mrs Harris I makes answer, can you doubt it? 
You have know'd me nowma'ameight and thirty year; and did you 
ever know me goor wish to gowhere I was not made welcomesay 
the words." "NoSairey Mrs Harris says, contrairy quite." And 
well she knows it too. I am but a poor womanbut I've been sought 
aftersirthough you may not think it. I've been knocked up at 
all hours of the nightand warned out by a many landlordsin 
consequence of being mistook for Fire. I goes out workin' for my 
bread'tis truebut I maintains my independencywith your kind 
leaveand which I will till death. I has my feelins as a woman
sirand I have been a mother likeways; but touch a pipkin as 
belongs to meor make the least remarks on what I eats or drinks
and though you was the favouritest young for'ard hussy of a servantgal 
as ever come into a houseeither you leaves the placeor me. 
My earnins is not greatsirbut I will not be impoged upon. Bless 
the babeand save the motheris my mortarsir; but I makes so 
free as add to thatDon't try no impogician with the Nussfor she 
will not abear it!' 
Mrs Gamp concluded by drawing her shawl tightly over herself with 
both handsandas usualreferring to Mrs Harris for full 
corroboration of these particulars. She had that peculiar trembling 
of the head whichin ladies of her excitable naturemay be taken 
as a sure indication of their breaking out again very shortly; when 
Jonas made a timely interposition. 
'As you ARE here' he said'you had better see to herand take her 
home. I am otherwise engaged.' He said nothing more; but looked at 
Montague as if to give him notice that he was ready to attend him. 
'I am sorry to take you away' said Montague. 
Jonas gave him a sinister lookwhich long lived in Tom's memory
and which he often recalled afterwards. 
'I amupon my life' said Montague. 'Why did you make it 
necessary?' 
With the same dark glance as beforeJonas repliedafter a moment's 
silence: 
'The necessity is none of my making. You have brought it about 
yourself.' 
He said nothing more. He said even this as if he were boundand in 
the other's powerbut had a sullen and suppressed devil within him
which he could not quite resist. His very gaitas they walked away 
togetherwas like that of a fettered man; butstriving to work out 
at his clenched handsknitted browsand fast-set lipswas the 
same imprisoned devil still. 
They got into a handsome cabriolet which was waiting for them and 
drove away. 
The whole of this extraordinary scene had passed so rapidly and the 
tumult which prevailed around as so unconscious of any impression 
from itthatalthough Tom had been one of the chief actorsit was 
like a dream. No one had noticed him after they had left the 
packet. He had stood behind Jonasand so near himthat he could 
not help hearing all that passed. He had stood therewith his 
sister on his armexpecting and hoping to have an opportunity of 
explaining his strange share in this yet stranger business. But 
Jonas had not raised his eyes from the ground; no one else had even 
looked towards him; and before he could resolve on any course of 
actionthey were all gone. 
He gazed round for his landlord. But he had done that more than 
once alreadyand no such man was to be seen. He was still pursuing 
this search with his eyeswhen he saw a hand beckoning to him from 
a hackney-coach; and hurrying towards itfound it was Merry's. She 
addressed him hurriedlybut bent out of the windowthat she might 
not be overheard by her companionMrs Gamp. 
'What is it?' she said. 'Good heavenwhat is it? Why did he tell 
me last night to prepare for a long journeyand why have you 
brought us back like criminals? Dear Mr Pinch!' she clasped her 
hands distractedly'be merciful to us. Whatever this dreadful 
secret isbe mercifuland God will bless you!' 
'If any power of mercy lay with me' cried Tom'trust meyou 
shouldn't ask in vain. But I am far more ignorant and weak than 
you.' 
She withdrew into the coach againand he saw the hand waving 
towards him for a moment; but whether in reproachfulness or 
incredulity or miseryor griefor sad adieuor what elsehe 
could notbeing so hurriedunderstand. SHE was gone now; and Ruth 
and he were left to walk awayand wonder. 
Had Mr Nadgett appointed the man who never cameto meet him upon 
London Bridge that morning? He was certainly looking over the 
parapetand down upon the steamboat-wharf at that moment. It could 
not have been for pleasure; he never took pleasure. No. He must 
have had some business there. 
CHAPTER FORTY-ONE 
MR JONAS AND HIS FRIENDARRIVING AT A PLEASANT UNDERSTANDINGSET 
FORTH UPON AN ENTERPRISE 
The office of the Anglo-Bengalee Disinterested Loan and Life 
Assurance Company being near at handand Mr Montague driving Jonas 
straight therethey had very little way to go. But the journey 
might have been one of several hours' durationwithout provoking a 
remark from either; for it was clear that Jonas did not mean to break 
the silence which prevailed between themand that it was notas 
yethis dear friend's cue to tempt them into conversation. 
He had thrown aside his cloakas having now no motive for 
concealmentand with that garment huddled on his kneessat as far 
removed from his companion as the limited space in such a carriage 
would allow. There was a striking difference in his manner
compared with what it had beenwithin a few minuteswhen Tom 
encountered him so unexpectedly on board the packetor when the 
ugly change had fallen on him in Mr Montague's dressing-room. He 
had the aspect of a man found out and held at bay; of being baffled
huntedand beset; but there was now a dawning and increasing 
purpose in his facewhich changed it very much. It was gloomy
distrustfullowering; pale with anger and defeat; it still was 
humbledabjectcowardly and mean; butlet the conflict go on 
as it wouldthere was one strong purpose wrestling with every 
emotion of his mindand casting the whole series down as they arose. 
Not prepossessing in appearance at the best of timesit may be 
readily supposed that he was not so now. He had left deep marks of 
his front teeth in his nether lip; and those tokens of the agitation 
he had lately undergone improved his looks as little as the heavy 
corrugations in his forehead. But he was self-possessed now; 
unnaturally self-possessedindeedas men quite otherwise than 
brave are known to be in desperate extremities; and when the carriage 
stoppedhe waited for no invitationbut leapt hardily outand 
went upstairs. 
The chairman followed him; and closing the board-room door as soon 
as they had enteredthrew himself upon a sofa. Jonas stood before 
the windowlooking down into the street; and leaned against the 
sashresting his head upon his arms. 
'This is not handsomeChuzzlewit!' said Montague at length. 'Not 
handsome upon my soul!' 
'What would you have me do?' he answeredlooking round abruptly; 
'What do you expect?' 
'Confidencemy good fellow. Some confidence!' said Montague in an 
injured tone. 
'Ecod! You show great confidence in me' retorted Jonas. 'Don't 
you?' 
'Do I not?' said his companionraising his headand looking at 
himbut he had turned again. 'Do I not? Have I not confided to 
you the easy schemes I have formed for our advantage; OUR advantage
mind; not mine alone; and what is my return? Attempted flight!' 
'How do you know that? Who said I meant to fly?' 
'Who said? Comecome. A foreign boatmy friendan early houra 
figure wrapped up for disguise! Who said? If you didn't mean to 
jilt mewhy were you there? If you didn't mean to jilt mewhy did 
you come back?' 
'I came back' said Jonas'to avoid disturbance.' 
'You were wise' rejoined his friend. 
Jonas stood quite silent; still looking down into the streetand 
resting his head upon his arms. 
'NowChuzzlewit' said Montague'notwithstanding what has passed I 
will be plain with you. Are you attending to me there? I only see 
your back.' 
'I hear you. Go on!' 
'I say that notwithstanding what has passedI will be plain with 
you.' 
'You said that before. And I have told you once I heard you say it. 
Go on.' 
'You are a little chafedbut I can make allowance for thatand am
fortunatelymyself in the very best of tempers. Nowlet us see 
how circumstances stand. A day or two agoI mentioned to youmy 
dear fellowthat I thought I had discovered--' 
'Will you hold your tongue?' said Jonaslooking fiercely roundand 
glancing at the door. 
'Wellwell!' said Montague. 'Judicious! Quite correct! My 
discoveries being publishedwould be like many other men's 
discoveries in this honest world; of no further use to me. You see
Chuzzlewithow ingenuous and frank I am in showing you the weakness 
of my own position! To return. I makeor think I makea certain 
discovery which I take an early opportunity of mentioning in your 
earin that spirit of confidence which I really hoped did prevail 
between usand was reciprocated by you. Perhaps there is something 
in it; perhaps there is nothing. I have my knowledge and opinion on 
the subject. You have yours. We will not discuss the question. 
Butmy good fellowyou have been weak; what I wish to point out to 
you isthat you have been weak. I may desire to turn this little 
incident to my account (indeedI do--I'll not deny it)but my 
account does not lie in probing itor using it against you.' 
'What do you call using it against me?' asked Jonaswho had not yet 
changed his attitude. 
'Oh!' said Montaguewith a laugh. 'We'll not enter into that.' 
'Using it to make a beggar of me. Is that the use you mean?' 
'No.' 
'Ecod' muttered Jonasbitterly. 'That's the use in which your 
account DOES lie. You speak the truth there.' 
'I wish you to venture (it's a very safe venture) a little more with 
uscertainlyand to keep quiet' said Montague. 'You promised me 
you would; and you must. I say it plainlyChuzzlewityou MUST. 
Reason the matter. If you don'tmy secret is worthless to me: and 
being soit may as well become the public property as mine; better
for I shall gain some creditbringing it to light. I want you
besidesto act as a decoy in a case I have already told you of. 
You don't mind thatI know. You care nothing for the man (you care 
nothing for any man; you are too sharp; so am II hope); and could 
bear any loss of his with pious fortitude. Hahaha! You have 
tried to escape from the first consequence. You cannot escape itI 
assure you. I have shown you that to-day. NowI am not a moral 
manyou know. I am not the least in the world affected by anything 
you may have done; by any little indiscretion you may have 
committed; but I wish to profit by it if I can; and to a man of your 
intelligence I make that free confession. I am not at all singular 
in that infirmity. Everybody profits by the indiscretion of his 
neighbour; and the people in the best reputethe most. Why do you 
give me this trouble? It must come to a friendly agreementor an 
unfriendly crash. It must. If the formeryou are very little 
hurt. If the latter--well! you know best what is likely to happen 
then.' 
Jonas left the windowand walked up close to him. He did not look 
him in the face; it was not his habit to do that; but he kept his 
eyes towards him--on his breastor thereabouts--and was at great 
pains to speak slowly and distinctly in reply. Just as a man in a 
state of conscious drunkenness might be. 
'Lying is of no use now' he said. 'I DID think of getting away 
this morningand making better terms with you from a distance.' 
'To be sure! to be sure!' replied Montague. 'Nothing more natural. 
I foresaw thatand provided against it. But I am afraid I am 
interrupting you.' 
'How the devil' pursued Jonaswith a still greater effort'you 
made choice of your messengerand where you found himI'll not ask 
you. I owed him one good turn before to-day. If you are so 
careless of men in generalas you said you were just nowyou are 
quite indifferent to what becomes of such a crop-tailed cur as that
and will leave me to settle my account with him in my own manner.' 
If he had raised his eyes to his companion's facehe would have 
seen that Montague was evidently unable to comprehend his meaning. 
But continuing to stand before himwith his furtive gaze directed 
as beforeand pausing here only to moisten his dry lips with his 
tonguethe fact was lost upon him. It might have struck a close 
observer that this fixed and steady glance of Jonas's was a part of 
the alteration which had taken place in his demeanour. He kept it 
riveted on one spotwith which his thoughts had manifestly nothing 
to do; like as a juggler walking on a cord or wire to any dangerous 
endholds some object in his sight to steady himand never wanders 
from itlest he trip. 
Montague was quick in his rejoinderthough he made it at a 
venture. There was no difference of opinion between him and his 
friend on THAT point. Not the least. 
'Your great discovery' Jonas proceededwith a savage sneer that 
got the better of him for the moment'may be trueand may be 
false. Whichever it isI dare say I'm no worse than other men.' 
'Not a bit' said Tigg. 'Not a bit. We're all alike--or nearly 
so.' 
'I want to know this' Jonas went on to say; 'is it your own? 
You'll not wonder at my asking the question.' 
'My own!' repeated Montague. 
'Aye!' returned the othergruffly. 'Is it known to anybody else? 
Come! Don't waver about that.' 
'No!' said Montaguewithout the smallest hesitation. 'What would 
it be worthdo you thinkunless I had the keeping of it?' 
Nowfor the first timeJonas looked at him. After a pausehe put 
out his handand saidwith a laugh: 
'Come! make things easy to meand I'm yours. I don't know that I 
may not be better off hereafter allthan if I had gone away this 
morning. But here I amand here I'll stay now. Take your oath!' 
He cleared his throatfor he was speaking hoarsely and said in a 
lighter tone: 
'Shall I go to Pecksniff? When? Say when!' 
'Immediately!' cried Montague. 'He cannot be enticed too soon.' 
'Ecod!' cried Jonaswith a wild laugh. 'There's some fun in 
catching that old hypocrite. I hate him. Shall I go to-night?' 
'Aye! This' said Montagueecstatically'is like business! We 
understand each other now! To-nightmy good fellowby all means.' 
'Come with me' cried Jonas. 'We must make a dash; go down in 
stateand carry documentsfor he's a deep file to deal withand 
must be drawn on with an artful handor he'll not follow. I know 
him. As I can't take your lodgings or your dinners downI must 
take you. Will you come to-night?' 
His friend appeared to hesitate; and neither to have anticipated 
this proposalnor to relish it very much. 
'We can concert our plans upon the road' said Jonas. 'We must not 
go direct to himbut cross over from some other placeand turn out 
of our way to see him. I may not want to introduce youbut I must 
have you on the spot. I know the manI tell you.' 
'But what if the man knows me?' said Montagueshrugging his 
shoulders. 
'He know!' cried Jonas. 'Don't you run that risk with fifty men a 
day! Would your father know you? Did I know you? Ecod! You were 
another figure when I saw you first. Hahaha! I see the rents 
and patches now! No false hair thenno black dye! You were another 
sort of joker in those daysyou were! You even spoke different 
then. You've acted the gentleman so seriously sincethat you've 
taken in yourself. If he should know youwhat does it matter? 
Such a change is a proof of your success. You know thator you 
would not have made yourself known to me. Will you come?' 
'My good fellow' said Montaguestill hesitating'I can trust you 
alone.' 
'Trust me! Ecodyou may trust me nowfar enough. I'll try to go 
away no more--no more!' He stoppedand added in a more sober tone
'I can't get on without you. Will you come?' 
'I will' said Montague'if that's your opinion.' And they shook 
hands upon it. 
The boisterous manner which Jonas had exhibited during the latter 
part of this conversationand which had gone on rapidly increasing 
with almost every word he had spokenfrom the time when he looked 
his honourable friend in the face until nowdid not now subside
butremaining at its heightabided by him. Most unusual with him 
at any period; most inconsistent with his temper and constitution; 
especially unnatural it would appear in one so darkly circumstanced; 
it abided by him. It was not like the effect of wineor any ardent 
drinkfor he was perfectly coherent. It even made him proof 
against the usual influence of such means of excitement; for
although he drank deeply several times that daywith no reserve or 
cautionhe remained exactly the same manand his spirits neither 
rose nor fell in the least observable degree. 
Decidingafter some discussionto travel at nightin order that 
the day's business might not be broken in uponthey took counsel 
together in reference to the means. Mr Montague being of opinion 
that four horses were advisableat all events for the first stage
as throwing a great deal of dust into people's eyesin more senses 
than onea travelling chariot and four lay under orders for nine 
o'clock. Jonas did not go home; observingthat his being obliged 
to leave town on business in so great a hurrywould be a good 
excuse for having turned back so unexpectedly in the morning. So he 
wrote a note for his portmanteauand sent it by a messengerwho 
duly brought his luggage backwith a short note from that other 
piece of luggagehis wifeexpressive of her wish to be allowed to 
come and see him for a moment. To this request he sent for answer
'she had better;' and one such threatening affirmative being 
sufficientin defiance of the English grammarto express a 
negativeshe kept away. 
Mr Montague being much engaged in the course of the dayJonas 
bestowed his spirits chiefly on the doctorwith whom he lunched in 
the medical officer's own room. On his way thitherencountering Mr 
Nadgett in the outer roomhe bantered that stealthy gentleman on 
always appearing anxious to avoid himand inquired if he were 
afraid of him. Mr Nadgett slyly answered'Nobut he believed it 
must be his way as he had been charged with much the same kind of 
thing before.' 
Mr Montague was listening toorto speak with greater elegancehe 
overheardthis dialogue. As soon as Jonas was gone he beckoned 
Nadgett to him with the feather of his penand whispered in his 
ear. 
'Who gave him my letter this morning?' 
'My lodgersir' said Nadgettbehind the palm of his hand. 
'How came that about?' 
'I found him on the wharfsir. Being so much hurriedand you not 
arrivedit was necessary to do something. It fortunately occurred 
to methat if I gave it him myself I could be of no further use. I 
should have been blown upon immediately.' 
'Mr Nadgettyou are a jewel' said Montaguepatting him on the 
back. 'What's your lodger's name?' 
'Pinchsir. Thomas Pinch.' 
Montague reflected for a little whileand then asked: 
'From the countrydo you know?' 
'From Wiltshiresirhe told me.' 
They parted without another word. To see Mr Nadgett's bow when 
Montague and he next metand to see Mr Montague acknowledge it
anybody might have undertaken to swear that they had never spoken to 
each other confidentially in all their lives. 
In the meanwhileMr Jonas and the doctor made themselves very 
comfortable upstairsover a bottle of the old Madeira and some 
sandwiches; for the doctor having been already invited to dine below 
at six o'clockpreferred a light repast for lunch. It was 
advisablehe saidin two points of view: Firstas being healthy 
in itself. Secondly as being the better preparation for dinner. 
'And you are bound for all our sakes to take particular care of your 
digestionMr Chuzzlewitmy dear sir' said the doctor smacking his 
lips after a glass of wine; 'for depend upon itit is worth 
preserving. It must be in admirable conditionsir; perfect 
chronometer-work. Otherwise your spirits could not be so 
remarkable. Your bosom's lord sits lightly on its throneMr 
Chuzzlewitas what's-his-name says in the play. I wish he said it 
in a play which did anything like common justice to our profession
by the bye. There is an apothecary in that dramasirwhich is a 
low thing; vulgarsir; out of nature altogether.' 
Mr Jobling pulled out his shirt-frill of fine linenas though he 
would have said'This is what I call nature in a medical mansir;' 
and looked at Jonas for an observation. 
Jonas not being in a condition to pursue the subjecttook up a case 
of lancets that was lying on the tableand opened it. 
'Ah!' said the doctorleaning back in his chair'I always take 'em 
out of my pocket before I eat. My pockets are rather tight. Ha
haha!' 
Jonas had opened one of the shining little instruments; and was 
scrutinizing it with a look as sharp and eager as its own bright 
edge. 
'Good steeldoctor. Good steel! Eh!' 
'Ye-es' replied the doctorwith the faltering modesty of 
ownership. 'One might open a vein pretty dexterously with thatMr 
Chuzzlewit.' 
'It has opened a good many in its timeI suppose?' said Jonas 
looking at it with a growing interest. 
'Not a fewmy dear sirnot a few. It has been engaged in a--in a 
pretty good practiceI believe I may say' replied the doctor
coughing as if the matter-of-fact were so very dry and literal that 
he couldn't help it. 'In a pretty good practice' repeated the 
doctorputting another glass of wine to his lips. 
'Nowcould you cut a man's throat with such a thing as this?' 
demanded Jonas. 
'Oh certainlycertainlyif you took him in the right place' 
returned the doctor. 'It all depends upon that.' 
'Where you have your hand nowhey?' cried Jonasbending forward 
to look at it. 
'Yes' said the doctor; 'that's the jugular.' 
Jonasin his vivacitymade a sudden sawing in the airso close 
behind the doctor's jugular that he turned quite red. Then Jonas 
(in the same strange spirit of vivacity) burst into a loud 
discordant laugh. 
'Nono' said the doctorshaking his head; 'edge toolsedge 
tools; never play with 'em. A very remarkable instance of the 
skillful use of edge-toolsby the wayoccurs to me at this moment. 
It was a case of murder. I am afraid it was a case of murder
committed by a member of our profession; it was so artistically 
done.' 
'Aye!' said Jonas. 'How was that?' 
'Whysir' returned Jobling'the thing lies in a nutshell. A 
certain gentleman was foundone morningin an obscure street
lying in an angle of a doorway--I should rather sayleaningin an 
upright positionin the angle of a doorwayand supported 
consequently by the doorway. Upon his waistcoat there was one 
solitary drop of blood. He was dead and cold; and had been 
murderedsir.' 
'Only one drop of blood!' said Jonas. 
'Sirthat man' replied the doctor'had been stabbed to the heart. 
Had been stabbed to the heart with such dexteritysirthat he had 
died instantlyand had bled internally. It was supposed that a 
medical friend of his (to whom suspicion attached) had engaged him 
in conversation on some pretence; had taken himvery likelyby the 
button in a conversational manner; had examined his ground at 
leisure with his other hand; had marked the exact spot; drawn out 
the instrumentwhatever it waswhen he was quite prepared; and--' 
'And done the trick' suggested Jonas. 
'Exactly so' replied the doctor. 'It was quite an operation in its 
wayand very neat. The medical friend never turned up; andas I 
tell youhe had the credit of it. Whether he did it or not I can't 
say. Buthaving had the honour to be called in with two or three 
of my professional brethren on the occasionand having assisted to 
make a careful examination of the woundI have no hesitation in 
saying that it would have reflected credit on any medical man; and 
that in an unprofessional person it could not but be considered
either as an extraordinary work of artor the result of a still 
more extraordinaryhappyand favourable conjunction of 
circumstances.' 
His hearer was so much interested in this casethat the doctor went 
on to elucidate it with the assistance of his own finger and thumb 
and waistcoat; and at Jonas's requesthe took the further trouble 
of going into a corner of the roomand alternately representing the 
murdered man and the murderer; which he did with great effect. The 
bottle being emptied and the story doneJonas was in precisely the 
same boisterous and unusual state as when they had sat down. Ifas 
Jobling theorizedhis good digestion were the causehe must have 
been a very ostrich. 
At dinner it was just the same; and after dinner too; though wine 
was drunk in abundanceand various rich meats eaten. At nine 
o'clock it was still the same. There being a lamp in the carriage
he swore they would take a pack of cardsand a bottle of wine; and 
with these things under his cloakwent down to the door. 
'Out of the wayTom Thumband get to bed!' 
This was the salutation he bestowed on Mr Baileywhobooted and 
wrapped upstood at the carriage door to help him in. 
'To bedsir! I'm a-goingtoo' said Bailey. 
He alighted quicklyand walked back into the hallwhere Montague 
was lighting a cigar; conducting Mr Bailey with himby the collar. 
'You are not a-going to take this monkey of a boyare you?' 
'Yes' said Montague. 
He gave the boy a shakeand threw him roughly aside. There was 
more of his familiar self in the actionthan in anything he had 
done that day; but he broke out laughing immediately afterwardsand 
making a thrust at the doctor with his handin imitation of his 
representation of the medical friendwent out to the carriage 
againand took his seat. His companion followed immediately. Mr 
Bailey climbed into the rumble. 'It will be a stormy night!' 
exclaimed the doctoras they started. 
CHAPTER FORTY-TWO 
CONTINUATION OF THE ENTERPRISE OF MR JONAS AND HIS FRIEND 
The doctor's prognostication in reference to the weather was 
speedily verified. Although the weather was not a patient of his
and no third party had required him to give an opinion on the case
the quick fulfilment of his prophecy may be taken as an instance of 
his professional tact; forunless the threatening aspect of the 
night had been perfectly plain and unmistakableMr Jobling would 
never have compromised his reputation by delivering any sentiments 
on the subject. He used this principle in Medicine with too much 
success to be unmindful of it in his commonest transactions. 
It was one of those hotsilent nightswhen people sit at windows 
listening for the thunder which they know will shortly break; when 
they recall dismal tales of hurricanes and earthquakes; and of 
lonely travellers on open plainsand lonely ships at seastruck by 
lightning. Lightning flashed and quivered on the black horizon even 
now; and hollow murmurings were in the windas though it had been 
blowing where the thunder rolledand still was charged with its 
exhausted echoes. But the stormthough gathering swiftlyhad not 
yet come up; and the prevailing stillness was the more solemnfrom 
the dull intelligence that seemed to hover in the airof noise and 
conflict afar off. 
It was very dark; but in the murky sky there were masses of cloud 
which shone with a lurid lightlike monstrous heaps of copper that 
had been heated in a furnaceand were growing cold. These had been 
advancing steadily and slowlybut they were now motionlessor 
nearly so. As the carriage clattered round the corners of the 
streetsit passed at every one a knot of persons who had come 
there--many from their houses close at handwithout hats--to look 
up at that quarter of the sky. And now a very few large drops of 
rain began to falland thunder rumbled in the distance. 
Jonas sat in a corner of the carriage with his bottle resting on his 
kneeand gripped as tightly in his hand as if he would have ground 
its neck to powder if he could. Instinctively attracted by the 
nighthe had laid aside the pack of cards upon the cushion; and 
with the same involuntary impulseso intelligible to both of them 
as not to occasion a remark on either sidehis companion had 
extinguished the lamp. The front glasses were down; and they sat 
looking silently out upon the gloomy scene before them. 
They were clear of Londonor as clear of it as travellers can be 
whose way lies on the Western Roadwithin a stage of that enormous 
city. Occasionally they encountered a foot-passengerhurrying to 
the nearest place of shelter; or some unwieldy cart proceeding 
onward at a heavy trotwith the same end in view. Little clusters 
of such vehicles were gathered round the stable-yard or baitingplace 
of every wayside tavern; while their drivers watched the 
weather from the doors and open windowsor made merry within. 
Everywhere the people were disposed to bear each other company 
rather than sit alone; so that groups of watchful faces seemed to be 
looking out upon the night AND THEMfrom almost every house they 
passed. 
It may appear strange that this should have disturbed Jonasor 
rendered him uneasy; but it did. After muttering to himselfand 
often changing his positionhe drew up the blind on his side of the 
carriageand turned his shoulder sulkily towards it. But he 
neither looked at his companionnor broke the silence which 
prevailed between themand which had fallen so suddenly upon 
himselfby addressing a word to him. 
The thunder rolledthe lightning flashed; the rain poured down like 
Heaven's wrath. Surrounded at one moment by intolerable lightand 
at the next by pitchy darknessthey still pressed forward on their 
journey. Even when they arrived at the end of the stageand might 
have tarriedthey did not; but ordered horses out immediately. Nor 
had this any reference to some five minutes' lullwhich at that 
time seemed to promise a cessation of the storm. They held their 
course as if they were impelled and driven by its fury. Although 
they had not exchanged a dozen wordsand might have tarried very 
wellthey seemed to feelby joint consentthat onward they must 
go. 
Louder and louder the deep thunder rolledas through the myriad 
halls of some vast temple in the sky; fiercer and brighter became 
the lightningmore and more heavily the rain poured down. The 
horses (they were travelling now with a single pair) plunged and 
started from the rills of quivering fire that seemed to wind along 
the ground before them; but there these two men satand forward 
they went as if they were led on by an invisible attraction. 
The eyepartaking of the quickness of the flashing lightsaw in 
its every gleam a multitude of objects which it could not see at 
steady noon in fifty times that period. Bells in steepleswith the 
rope and wheel that moved them; ragged nests of birds in cornices 
and nooks; faces full of consternation in the tilted waggons that 
came tearing past; their frightened teams ringing out a warning 
which the thunder drowned; harrows and ploughs left out in fields; 
miles upon miles of hedge-divided countrywith the distant fringe 
of trees as obvious as the scarecrow in the bean-field close at hand; 
in a tremblingvividflickering instanteverything was clear and 
plain; then came a flush of red into the yellow light; a change to 
blue; a brightness so intense that there was nothing else but light; 
and then the deepest and profoundest darkness. 
The lightning being very crooked and very dazzling may have 
presented or assisted a curious optical illusionwhich suddenly 
rose before the startled eyes of Montague in the carriageand as 
rapidly disappeared. He thought he saw Jonas with his hand lifted
and the bottle clenched in it like a hammermaking as if he would 
aim a blow at his head. At the same time he observed (or so 
believed) an expression in his face--a combination of the unnatural 
excitement he had shown all daywith a wild hatred and fear--which 
might have rendered a wolf a less terrible companion. 
He uttered an involuntary exclamationand called to the driverwho 
brought his horses to a stop with all speed. 
It could hardly have been as he supposedfor although he had not 
taken his eyes off his companionand had not seen him movehe sat 
reclining in his corner as before. 
'What's the matter?' said Jonas. 'Is that your general way of 
waking out of your sleep?' 
'I could swear' returned the other'that I have not closed my 
eyes!' 
'When you have sworn it' said Jonascomposedly'we had better go 
on againif you have only stopped for that.' 
He uncorked the bottle with the help of his teeth; and putting it to 
his lipstook a long draught. 
'I wish we had never started on this journey. This is not' said 
Montaguerecoiling instinctivelyand speaking in a voice that 
betrayed his agitation; 'this is not a night to travel in.' 
'Ecod! you're right there' returned Jonas'and we shouldn't be out 
in it but for you. If you hadn't kept me waiting all daywe might 
have been at Salisbury by this time; snug abed and fast asleep. 
What are we stopping for?' 
His companion put his head out of window for a momentand drawing 
it in againobserved (as if that were his cause of anxiety)that 
the boy was drenched to the skin. 
'Serve him right' said Jonas. 'I'm glad of it. What the devil are 
we stopping for? Are you going to spread him out to dry?' 
'I have half a mind to take him inside' observed the other with 
some hesitation. 
'Oh! thankee!' said Jonas. 'We don't want any damp boys here; 
especially a young imp like him. Let him be where he is. He ain't 
afraid of a little thunder and lightningI dare say; whoever else 
is. Go ondriver. We had better have HIM inside perhaps' he 
muttered with a laugh; 'and the horses!' 
'Don't go too fast' cried Montague to the postillion; 'and take 
care how you go. You were nearly in the ditch when I called to 
you.' 
This was not true; and Jonas bluntly said soas they moved forward 
again. Montague took little or no heed of what he saidbut 
repeated that it was not a night for travellingand showed himself
both then and afterwardsunusually anxious. 
From this time Jonas recovered his former spiritsif such a term 
may be employed to express the state in which he had left the city. 
He had his bottle often at his mouth; roared out snatches of songs
without the least regard to time or tune or voiceor anything but 
loud discordance; and urged his silent friend to be merry with him. 
'You're the best company in the worldmy good fellow' said 
Montague with an effort'and in general irresistible; but to-night 
--do you hear it?' 
'Ecod! I hear and see it too' cried Jonasshading his eyesfor 
the momentfrom the lightning which was flashingnot in any one 
directionbut all around them. 'What of that? It don't change 
younor menor our affairs. Choruschorus
It may lighten and storm
Till it hunt the red worm
From the grass where the gibbet is driven;
But it can't hurt the dead
And it won't save the head
That is doom'd to be rifled and riven. 
That must be a precious old song' he added with an oathas he 
stopped short in a kind of wonder at himself. 'I haven't heard it 
since I was a boyand how it comes into my head nowunless the 
lightning put it thereI don't know. "Can't hurt the dead"! No
no. "And won't save the head"! Nono. No! Hahaha!' 
His mirth was of such a savage and extraordinary characterand was
in an inexplicable wayat once so suited to the nightand yet such 
a coarse intrusion on its terrorsthat his fellow-travelleralways 
a cowardshrunk from him in positive fear. Instead of Jonas being 
his tool and instrumenttheir places seemed to be reversed. But 
there was reason for this tooMontague thought; since the sense of 
his debasement might naturally inspire such a man with the wish to 
assert a noisy independenceand in that licence to forget his real 
condition. Being quick enoughin reference to such subjects of 
contemplationhe was not long in taking this argument into account 
and giving it its full weight. But stillhe felt a vague sense of 
alarmand was depressed and uneasy. 
He was certain he had not been asleep; but his eyes might have 
deceived him; forlooking at Jonas now in any interval of darkness
he could represent his figure to himself in any attitude his state 
of mind suggested. On the other handhe knew full well that Jonas 
had no reason to love him; and even taking the piece of pantomime 
which had so impressed his mind to be a real gestureand not the 
working of his fancythe most that could be said of it wasthat it 
was quite in keeping with the rest of his diabolical funand had 
the same impotent expression of truth in it. 'If he could kill me 
with a wish' thought the swindler'I should not live long.' 
He resolved that when he should have had his use of Jonashe would 
restrain him with an iron curb; in the meantimethat he could not 
do better than leave him to take his own wayand preserve his own 
peculiar description of good-humourafter his own uncommon manner. 
It was no great sacrifice to bear with him; 'for when all is got 
that can be got' thought Montague'I shall decamp across the 
waterand have the laugh on my side--and the gains.' 
Such were his reflections from hour to hour; his state of mind being 
one in which the same thoughts constantly present themselves over 
and over again in wearisome repetition; while Jonaswho appeared to 
have dismissed reflection altogetherentertained himself as before. 
They agreed that they would go to Salisburyand would cross to Mr 
Pecksniff's in the morning; and at the prospect of deluding that 
worthy gentlemanthe spirits of his amiable son-in-law became more 
boisterous than ever. 
As the night wore onthe thunder died awaybut still rolled 
gloomily and mournfully in the distance. The lightning toothough 
now comparatively harmlesswas yet bright and frequent. The rain 
was quite as violent as it had ever been. 
It was their ill-fortuneat about the time of dawn and in the last 
stage of their journeyto have a restive pair of horses. These 
animals had been greatly terrified in their stable by the tempest; 
and coming out into the dreary interval between night and morning
when the glare of the lightning was yet unsubdued by dayand the 
various objects in their view were presented in indistinct and 
exaggerated shapes which they would not have worn by nightthey 
gradually became less and less capable of control; untiltaking a 
sudden fright at something by the roadsidethey dashed off wildly 
down a steep hillflung the driver from his saddledrew the 
carriage to the brink of a ditchstumbled headlong downand threw 
it crashing over. 
The travellers had opened the carriage doorand had either jumped 
or fallen out. Jonas was the first to stagger to his feet. He felt 
sick and weakand very giddyand reeling to a five-barred gate
stood holding by it; looking drowsily about as the whole landscape 
swam before his eyes. Butby degreeshe grew more consciousand 
presently observed that Montague was lying senseless in the road
within a few feet of the horses. 
In an instantas if his own faint body were suddenly animated by a 
demonhe ran to the horses' heads; and pulling at their bridles 
with all his forceset them struggling and plunging with such mad 
violence as brought their hoofs at every effort nearer to the skull 
of the prostrate man; and must have led in half a minute to his 
brains being dashed out on the highway. 
As he did thishe fought and contended with them like a man 
possessedmaking them wilder by his cries. 
'Whoop!' cried Jonas. 'Whoop! again! another! A little morea 
little more! Upye devils! Hillo!' 
As he heard the driverwho had risen and was hurrying upcrying to 
him to desisthis violence increased. 
'Hiilo! Hillo!' cried Jonas. 
'For God's sake!' cried the driver. 'The gentleman--in the road-he'll 
be killed!' 
The same shouts and the same struggles were his only answer. But 
the man darting in at the peril of his own lifesaved Montague's
by dragging him through the mire and water out of the reach of 
present harm. That donehe ran to Jonas; and with the aid of his 
knife they very shortly disengaged the horses from the broken 
chariotand got themcut and bleedingon their legs again. The 
postillion and Jonas had now leisure to look at each otherwhich 
they had not had yet. 
'Presence of mindpresence of mind!' cried Jonasthrowing up his 
hands wildly. 'What would you have done without me?' 
'The other gentleman would have done badly without ME' returned the 
manshaking his head. 'You should have moved him first. I gave 
him up for dead.' 
'Presence of mindyou croakerpresence of mind' cried Jonas with a 
harsh loud laugh. 'Was he struckdo you think?' 
They both turned to look at him. Jonas muttered something to 
himselfwhen he saw him sitting up beneath the hedgelooking 
vacantly around. 
'What's the matter?' asked Montague. 'Is anybody hurt?' 
'Ecod!' said Jonas'it don't seem so. There are no bones broken
after all.' 
They raised himand he tried to walk. He was a good deal shaken
and trembled very much. But with the exception of a few cuts and 
bruises this was all the damage he had sustained. 
'Cuts and bruiseseh?' said Jonas. 'We've all got them. Only cuts 
and bruiseseh?' 
'I wouldn't have given sixpence for the gentleman's head in half-adozen 
seconds morefor all he's only cut and bruised' observed the 
post-boy. 'If ever you're in an accident of this sort againsir; 
which I hope you won't be; never you pull at the bridle of a horse 
that's downwhen there's a man's head in the way. That can't be 
done twice without there being a dead man in the case; it would have 
ended in thatthis timeas sure as ever you were bornif I hadn't 
come up just when I did.' 
Jonas replied by advising him with a curse to hold his tongueand 
to go somewherewhither he was not very likely to go of his own 
accord. But Montaguewho had listened eagerly to every word
himself diverted the subjectby exclaiming: 'Where's the boy?' 
'Ecod! I forgot that monkey' said Jonas. 'What's become of him?' A 
very brief search settled that question. The unfortunate Mr Bailey 
had been thrown sheer over the hedge or the five-barred gate; and 
was lying in the neighbouring fieldto all appearance dead. 
'When I said to-nightthat I wished I had never started on this 
journey' cried his master'I knew it was an ill-fated one. Look 
at this boy!' 
'Is that all?' growled Jonas. 'If you call THAT a sign of it--' 
'Whywhat should I call a sign of it?' asked Montaguehurriedly. 
'What do you mean?' 
'I mean' said Jonasstooping down over the body'that I never 
heard you were his fatheror had any particular reason to care much 
about him. Halloa. Hold up there!' 
But the boy was past holding upor being held upor giving any 
other sign of life than a faint and fitful beating of the heart. 
After some discussion the driver mounted the horse which had been 
least injuredand took the lad in his arms as well as he could; 
while Montague and Jonasleading the other horseand carrying a 
trunk between themwalked by his side towards Salisbury. 
'You'd get there in a few minutesand be able to send assistance to 
meet usif you went forwardpost-boy' said Jonas. 'Trot on!' 
'Nono' cried Montague; 'we'll keep together.' 
'Whywhat a chicken you are! You are not afraid of being robbed; 
are you?' said Jonas. 
'I am not afraid of anything' replied the otherwhose looks and 
manner were in flat contradiction to his words. 'But we'll keep 
together.' 
'You were mighty anxious about the boya minute ago' said Jonas. 
'I suppose you know that he may die in the meantime?' 
'Ayeaye. I know. But we'll keep together.' 
As it was clear that he was not to be moved from this determination
Jonas made no other rejoinder than such as his face expressed; and 
they proceeded in company. They had three or four good miles to 
travel; and the way was not made easier by the state of the road
the burden by which they were embarrassedor their own stiff and 
sore condition. After a sufficiently long and painful walkthey 
arrived at the Inn; and having knocked the people up (it being yet 
very early in the morning)sent out messengers to see to the 
carriage and its contentsand roused a surgeon from his bed to tend 
the chief sufferer. All the service he could renderhe rendered 
promptly and skillfully. But he gave it as his opinion that the boy 
was labouring under a severe concussion of the brainand that Mr 
Bailey's mortal course was run. 
If Montague's strong interest in the announcement could have been 
considered as unselfish in any degreeit might have been a 
redeeming trait in a character that had no such lineaments to spare. 
But it was not difficult to see thatfor some unexpressed reason 
best appreciated by himselfhe attached a strange value to the 
company and presence of this mere child. Whenafter receiving some 
assistance from the surgeon himselfhe retired to the bedroom 
prepared for himand it was broad dayhis mind was still dwelling 
on this theme
'I would rather have lost' he said'a thousand pounds than lost 
the boy just now. But I'll return home alone. I am resolved upon 
that. Chuzzlewit shall go forward firstand I will follow in my 
own time. I'll have no more of this' he addedwiping his damp 
forehead. 'Twenty-four hours of this would turn my hair grey!' 
After examining his chamberand looking under the bedand in the 
cupboardsand even behind the curtainswith unusual caution 
(although it wasas has been saidbroad day)he double-locked the 
door by which he had enteredand retired to rest. There was 
another door in the roombut it was locked on the outer side; and 
with what place it communicatedhe knew not. 
His fears or evil conscience reproduced this door in all his dreams. 
He dreamed that a dreadful secret was connected with it; a secret 
which he knewand yet did not knowfor although he was heavily 
responsible for itand a party to ithe was harassed even in his 
vision by a distracting uncertainty in reference to its import. 
Incoherently entwined with this dream was anotherwhich represented 
it as the hiding-place of an enemya shadowa phantom; and made it 
the business of his life to keep the terrible creature closed up
and prevent it from forcing its way in upon him. With this view 
Nadgettand heand a strange man with a bloody smear upon his head 
(who told him that he had been his playfellowand told himtoo
the real name of an old schoolmateforgotten until then)worked 
with iron plates and nails to make the door secure; but though they 
worked never so hardit was all in vainfor the nails brokeor 
changed to soft twigsor what was worseto wormsbetween their 
fingers; the wood of the door splintered and crumbledso that even 
nails would not remain in it; and the iron plates curled up like hot 
paper. All this time the creature on the other side--whether it was 
in the shape of manor beasthe neither knew nor sought to know-was 
gaining on them. But his greatest terror was when the man with 
the bloody smear upon his head demanded of him if he knew this 
creatures nameand said that he would whisper it. At this the 
dreamer fell upon his kneeshis whole blood thrilling with 
inexplicable fearand held his ears. But looking at the speaker's 
lipshe saw that they formed the utterance of the letter 'J'; and 
crying out aloud that the secret was discoveredand they were all 
losthe awoke. 
Awoke to find Jonas standing at his bedside watching him. And that 
very door wide open. 
As their eyes metJonas retreated a few pacesand Montague sprang 
out of bed. 
'Heyday!' said Jonas. 'You're all alive this morning.' 
'Alive!' the other stammeredas he pulled the bell-rope violently. 
'What are you doing here?' 
'It's your room to be sure' said Jonas; 'but I'm almost inclined to 
ask you what YOU are doing here? My room is on the other side of 
that door. No one told me last night not to open it. I thought it 
led into a passageand was coming out to order breakfast. There's 
--there's no bell in my room.' 
Montague had in the meantime admitted the man with his hot water and 
bootswho hearing thissaidyesthere was; and passed into the 
adjoining room to point it outat the head of the bed. 
'I couldn't find itthen' said Jonas; 'it's all the same. Shall I 
order breakfast?' 
Montague answered in the affirmative. When Jonas had retired
whistlingthrough his own roomhe opened the door of 
communicationto take out the key and fasten it on the inner side. 
But it was taken out already. 
He dragged a table against the doorand sat down to collect 
himselfas if his dreams still had some influence upon his mind. 
'An evil journey' he repeated several times. 'An evil journey. 
But I'll travel home alone. I'll have no more of this.' 
His presentimentor superstitionthat it was an evil journeydid 
not at all deter him from doing the evil for which the journey was 
undertaken. With this in viewhe dressed himself more carefully 
than usual to make a favourable impression on Mr Pecksniff; and
reassured by his own appearancethe beauty of the morningand the 
flashing of the wet boughs outside his window in the merry sunshine
was soon sufficiently inspirited to swear a few round oathsand hum 
the fag-end of a song. 
But he still muttered to himself at intervalsfor all that: 'I'll 
travel home alone!' 
CHAPTER FORTY-THREE 
HAS AN INFLUENCE ON THE FORTUNES OF SEVERAL PEOPLE. MR PECKSNIFF IS 
EXHIBITED IN THE PLENITUDE OF POWER; AND WIELDS THE SAME WITH 
FORTITUDE AND MAGNANIMITY 
On the night of the stormMrs Lupinhostess of the Blue Dragon
sat by herself in her little bar. Her solitary conditionor the 
bad weatheror both unitedmade Mrs Lupin thoughtfulnot to say 
sorrowful. As she sat with her chin upon her handlooking out 
through a low back latticerendered dim in the brightest day-time 
by clustering vine-leavesshe shook her head very oftenand said
'Dear me! Ohdeardear me!' 
It was a melancholy timeeven in the snugness of the Dragon bar. 
The rich expanse of corn-fieldpasture-landgreen slopeand 
gentle undulationwith its sparkling brooksits many hedgerows
and its clumps of beautiful treeswas black and drearyfrom the 
diamond panes of the lattice away to the far horizonwhere the 
thunder seemed to roll along the hills. The heavy rain beat down 
the tender branches of vine and jessamineand trampled on them in 
its fury; and when the lightning gleamed it showed the tearful 
leaves shivering and cowering together at the windowand tapping at 
it urgentlyas if beseeching to be sheltered from the dismal night. 
As a mark of her respect for the lightningMrs Lupin had removed 
her candle to the chimney-piece. Her basket of needle-work stood 
unheeded at her elbow; her supperspread on a round table not far 
offwas untasted; and the knives had been removed for fear of 
attraction. She had sat for a long time with her chin upon her 
handsaying to herself at intervals'Dear me! Ahdeardear me!' 
She was on the eve of saying soonce morewhen the latch of the 
house-door (closed to keep the rain out)rattled on its well-worn 
catchand a traveller came inwhoshutting it after himand 
walking straight up to the half-door of the barsaidrather 
gruffly: 
'A pint of the best old beer here.' 
He had some reason to be grufffor if he had passed the day in a 
waterfallhe could scarcely have been wetter than he was. He was 
wrapped up to the eyes in a rough blue sailor's coatand had an 
oil-skin hat onfrom the capacious brim of which the rain fell 
trickling down upon his breastand backand shoulders. Judging 
from a certain liveliness of chin--he had so pulled down his hat
and pulled up his collarto defend himself from the weatherthat 
she could only see his chinand even across that he drew the wet 
sleeve of his shaggy coatas she looked at him--Mrs Lupin set him 
down for a good-natured fellowtoo. 
'A bad night!' observed the hostess cheerfully. 
The traveller shook himself like a Newfoundland dogand said it 
wasrather. 
'There's a fire in the kitchen' said Mrs Lupin'and very good 
company there. Hadn't you better go and dry yourself?' 
'Nothankee' said the manglancing towards the kitchen as he 
spoke; he seemed to know the way. 
'It's enough to give you your death of cold' observed the hostess. 
'I don't take my death easy' returned the traveller; 'or I should 
most likely have took it afore to-night. Your healthma'am!' 
Mrs Lupin thanked him; but in the act of lifting the tankard to his 
mouthhe changed his mindand put it down again. Throwing his 
body backand looking about him stifflyas a man does who is 
wrapped upand has his hat low down over his eyeshe said: 
'What do you call this house? Not the Dragondo you?' 
Mrs Lupin complacently made answer'Yesthe Dragon.' 
'Whythenyou've got a sort of a relation of mine herema'am' 
said the traveller; 'a young man of the name of Tapley. What! Mark
my boy!' apostrophizing the premises'have I come upon you at last
old buck!' 
This was touching Mrs Lupin on a tender point. She turned to trim 
the candle on the chimney-pieceand saidwith her back towards the 
traveller: 
'Nobody should be made more welcome at the Dragonmasterthan any 
one who brought me news of Mark. But it's many and many a long day 
and month since he left here and England. And whether he's alive or 
deadpoor fellowHeaven above us only knows!' 
She shook her headand her voice trembled; her hand must have done 
so toofor the light required a deal of trimming. 
'Where did he goma'am?' asked the travellerin a gentler voice. 
'He went' said Mrs Lupinwith increased distress'to America. He 
was always tender-hearted and kindand perhaps at this moment may 
be lying in prison under sentence of deathfor taking pity on some 
miserable blackand helping the poor runaway creetur to escape. 
How could he ever go to America! Why didn't he go to some of those 
countries where the savages eat each other fairlyand give an equal 
chance to every one!' 
Quite subdued by this timeMrs Lupin sobbedand was retiring to a 
chair to give her grief free ventwhen the traveller caught her in 
his armsand she uttered a glad cry of recognition. 
'YesI will!' cried Mark'another--one more--twenty more! You 
didn't know me in that hat and coat? I thought you would have known 
me anywheres! Ten more!' 
'So I should have known youif I could have seen you; but I 
couldn'tand you spoke so gruff. I didn't think you could speak 
gruff to meMarkat first coming back.' 
'Fifteen more!' said Mr Tapley. 'How handsome and how young you 
look! Six more! The last half-dozen warn't a fair oneand must be 
done over again. Lord bless youwhat a treat it is to see you! One 
more! WellI never was so jolly. Just a few moreon account of 
there not being any credit in it!' 
When Mr Tapley stopped in these calculations in simple additionhe 
did itnot because he was at all tired of the exercisebut because 
he was out of breath. The pause reminded him of other duties. 
'Mr Martin Chuzzlewit's outside' he said. 'I left him under the 
cartshedwhile I came on to see if there was anybody here. We 
want to keep quiet to-nighttill we know the news from youand 
what it's best for us to do.' 
'There's not a soul in the houseexcept the kitchen company' 
returned the hostess. 'If they were to know you had come back
Markthey'd have a bonfire in the streetlate as it is.' 
'But they mustn't know it to-nightmy precious soul' said Mark; 
'so have the house shutand the kitchen fire made up; and when it's 
all readyput a light in the winderand we'll come in. One more! 
I long to hear about old friends. You'll tell me all about 'em
won't you; Mr Pinchand the butcher's dog down the streetand the 
terrier over the wayand the wheelwright'sand every one of 'em. 
When I first caught sight of the church to-nightI thought the 
steeple would have choked meI did. One more! Won't you? Not a 
very little one to finish off with?' 
'You have had plentyI am sure' said the hostess. 'Go along with 
your foreign manners!' 
'That ain't foreignbless you!' cried Mark. 'Native as oysters
that is! One morebecause it's native! As a mark of respect for the 
land we live in! This don't count as between you and meyou 
understand' said Mr Tapley. 'I ain't a-kissing you nowyou'll 
observe. I have been among the patriots; I'm a-kissin' my country.' 
It would have been very unreasonable to complain of the exhibition 
of his patriotism with which he followed up this explanationthat 
it was at all lukewarm or indifferent. When he had given full 
expression to his nationalityhe hurried off to Martin; while Mrs 
Lupinin a state of great agitation and excitementprepared for 
their reception. 
The company soon came tumbling out; insisting to each other that the 
Dragon clock was half an hour too fastand that the thunder must 
have affected it. Impatientwetand weary though they were
Martin and Mark were overjoyed to see these old facesand watched 
them with delighted interest as they departed from the houseand 
passed close by them. 
'There's the old tailorMark!' whispered Martin. 
'There he goessir! A little bandier than he wasI thinksir
ain't he? His figure's so far alteredas it seems to methat you 
might wheel a rather larger barrow between his legs as he walks
than you could have done conveniently when we know'd him. There's 
Sam a-coming outsir.' 
'Ahto be sure!' cried Martin; 'Samthe hostler. I wonder whether 
that horse of Pecksniff's is alive still?' 
'Not a doubt on itsir' returned Mark. 'That's a description of 
animalsiras will go on in a bony way peculiar to himself for a 
long timeand get into the newspapers at last under the title of 
Sing'lar Tenacity of Life in a Quadruped.As if he had ever been 
alive in all his lifeworth mentioning! There's the clerksir-wery 
drunkas usual.' 
'I see him!' said Martinlaughing. 'Butmy lifehow wet you are
Mark!' 
'I am! What do you consider yourselfsir?' 
'Ohnot half as bad' said his fellow-travellerwith an air of 
great vexation. 'I told you not to keep on the windy sideMark
but to let us change and change about. The rain has been beating on 
you ever since it began.' 
'You don't know how it pleases mesir' said Markafter a short 
silence'if I may make so bold as say soto hear you a-going on in 
that there uncommon considerate way of yours; which I don't mean to 
attend toneverbut whichever since that time when I was floored 
in Edenyou have showed.' 
'AhMark!' sighed Martin'the less we say of that the better. Do 
I see the light yonder?' 
'That's the light!' cried Mark. 'Lord bless herwhat briskness she 
possesses! Now for itsir. Neat winesgood bedsand first-rate 
entertainment for man or beast.' 
The kitchen fire burnt clear and redthe table was spread outthe 
kettle boiled; the slippers were therethe boot-jack toosheets of 
ham were therecooking on the gridiron; half-a-dozen eggs were 
therepoaching in the frying-pan; a plethoric cherry-brandy bottle 
was therewinking at a foaming jug of beer upon the table; rare 
provisions were theredangling from the rafters as if you had only 
to open your mouthand something exquisitely ripe and good would be 
glad of the excuse for tumbling into it. Mrs Lupinwho for their 
sakes had dislodged the very cookhigh priestess of the temple
with her own genial hands was dressing their repast. 
It was impossible to help it--a ghost must have hugged her. The 
Atlantic Ocean and the Red Sea beingin that respectall one
Martin hugged her instantly. Mr Tapley (as if the idea were quite 
noveland had never occurred to him before)followedwith much 
gravityon the same side. 
'Little did I ever think' said Mrs Lupinadjusting her cap and 
laughing heartily; yesand blushing too; 'often as I have said that 
Mr Pecksniff's young gentlemen were the life and soul of the Dragon
and that without them it would be too dull to live in--little did I 
ever think I am surethat any one of them would ever make so free 
as youMr Martin! And still less that I shouldn't be angry with 
himbut should be glad with all my heart to be the first to welcome 
him home from Americawith Mark Tapley for his--' 
'For his friendMrs Lupin' interposed Martin. 
'For his friend' said the hostessevidently gratified by this 
distinctionbut at the same time admonishing Mr Tapley with a fork 
to remain at a respectful distance. 'Little did I ever think that! 
But still lessthat I should ever have the changes to relate that I 
shall have to tell you ofwhen you have done your supper!' 
'Good Heaven!' cried Martinchanging colour'what changes?' 
'SHE' said the hostess'is quite welland now at Mr Pecksniff's. 
Don't be at all alarmed about her. She is everything you could 
wish. It's of no use mincing mattersor making secretsis it?' 
added Mrs Lupin. 'I know all about ityou see!' 
'My good creature' returned Martin'you are exactly the person who 
ought to know all about it. I am delighted to think you DO know 
about that! But what changes do you hint at? Has any death 
occurred?' 
'Nono!' said the hostess. 'Not as bad as that. But I declare now 
that I will not be drawn into saying another word till you have had 
your supper. If you ask me fifty questions in the meantimeI won't 
answer one.' 
She was so positivethat there was nothing for it but to get the 
supper over as quickly as possible; and as they had been walking a 
great many milesand had fasted since the middle of the daythey 
did no great violence to their own inclinations in falling on it 
tooth and nail. It took rather longer to get through than might 
have been expected; forhalf-a-dozen timeswhen they thought they 
had finishedMrs Lupin exposed the fallacy of that impression 
triumphantly. But at lastin the course of time and naturethey 
gave in. Thensitting with their slippered feet stretched out upon 
the kitchen hearth (which was wonderfully comfortingfor the night 
had grown by this time raw and chilly)and looking with involuntary 
admiration at their dimpledbuxomblooming hostessas the 
firelight sparkled in her eyes and glimmered in her raven hairthey 
composed themselves to listen to her news. 
Many were the exclamations of surprise which interrupted herwhen 
she told them of the separation between Mr Pecksniff and his 
daughtersand between the same good gentleman and Mr Pinch. But 
these were nothing to the indignant demonstrations of Martinwhen 
she relatedas the common talk of the neighbourhoodwhat entire 
possession he had obtained over the mind and person of old Mr 
Chuzzlewitand what high honour he designed for Mary. On receipt 
of this intelligenceMartin's slippers flew off in a twinklingand 
he began pulling on his wet boots with that indefinite intention of 
going somewhere instantlyand doing something to somebodywhich is 
the first safety-valve of a hot temper. 
'He!' said Martin'smooth-tongued villain that he is! He! Give me 
that other bootMark?' 
'Where was you a-thinking of going tosir?' inquired Mr Tapley 
drying the sole at the fireand looking coolly at it as he spoke
as if it were a slice of toast. 
'Where!' repeated Martin. 'You don't suppose I am going to remain 
heredo you?' 
The imperturbable Mark confessed that he did. 
You do!' retorted Martin angrily. 'I am much obliged to you. What 
do you take me for?' 
'I take you for what you aresir' said Mark; 'andconsequently
am quite sure that whatever you do will be right and sensible. The 
bootsir.' 
Martin darted an impatient look at himwithout taking itand 
walked rapidly up and down the kitchen several timeswith one boot 
and a stocking on. Butmindful of his Eden resolutionhe had 
already gained many victories over himself when Mark was in the case
and he resolved to conquer now. So he came back to the book-jack
laid his hand on Mark's shoulder to steady himselfpulled the boot 
offpicked up his slippersput them onand sat down again. He 
could not help thrusting his hands to the very bottom of his 
pocketsand muttering at intervals'Pecksniff too! That fellow! 
Upon my soul! In-deed! What next?' and so forth; nor could he help 
occasionally shaking his fist at the chimneywith a very 
threatening countenance; but this did not last long; and he heard 
Mrs Lupin outif not with composureat all events in silence. 
'As to Mr Pecksniff himself' observed the hostess in conclusion
spreading out the skirts of her gown with both handsand nodding 
her head a great many times as she did so'I don't know what to 
say. Somebody must have poisoned his mindor influenced him in 
some extraordinary way. I cannot believe that such a noble-spoken 
gentleman would go and do wrong of his own accord!' 
A noble-spoken gentleman! How many people are there in the world
whofor no better reasonuphold their Pecksniffs to the last and 
abandon virtuous menwhen Pecksniffs breathe upon them! 
'As to Mr Pinch' pursued the landlady'if ever there was a dear
goodpleasantworthy soul alivePinchand no otheris his name. 
But how do we know that old Mr Chuzzlewit himself was not the cause 
of difference arising between him and Mr Pecksniff? No one but 
themselves can tell; for Mr Pinch has a proud spiritthough he has 
such a quiet way; and when he left usand was so sorry to gohe 
scorned to make his story goodeven to me.' 
'Poor old Tom!' said Martinin a tone that sounded like remorse. 
'It's a comfort to know' resumed the landlady'that he has his 
sister living with himand is doing well. Only yesterday he sent 
me backby posta little'--here the colour came into her cheeks-'
a little trifle I was bold enough to lend him when he went away; 
sayingwith many thanksthat he had good employmentand didn't 
want it. It was the same note; he hadn't broken it. I never 
thought I could have been so little pleased to see a bank-note come 
back to me as I was to see that.' 
'Kindly saidand heartily!' said Martin. 'Is it notMark?' 
'She can't say anything as does not possess them qualities' 
returned Mr Tapley; 'which as much belongs to the Dragon as its 
licence. And now that we have got quite cool and freshto the 
subject againsir; what will you do? If you're not proudand can 
make up your mind to go through with what you spoke ofcoming along
that's the course for you to take. If you started wrong with your 
grandfather (whichyou'll excuse my taking the liberty of saying
appears to have been the case)up with yousirand tell him so
and make an appeal to his affections. Don't stand out. He's a 
great deal older than youand if he was hastyyou was hasty too. 
Give waysirgive way.' 
The eloquence of Mr Tapley was not without its effect on Martin but 
he still hesitatedand expressed his reason thus: 
'That's all very trueand perfectly correctMark; and if it were 
a mere question of humbling myself before HIMI would not consider 
it twice. But don't you seethat being wholly under this 
hypocrite's governmentand having (if what we hear be true) no mind 
or will of his ownI throw myselfin factnot at his feetbut at 
the feet of Mr Pecksniff? And when I am rejected and spurned away' 
said Martinturning crimson at the thought'it is not by him; my 
own blood stirred against me; but by Pecksniff--PecksniffMark!' 
'Wellbut we know beforehand' returned the politic Mr Tapley
'that Pecksniff is a wagabonda scoundreland a willain.' 
'A most pernicious villain!' said Martin. 
'A most pernicious willain. We know that beforehandsir; and
consequentlyit's no shame to be defeated by Pecksniff. Blow 
Pecksniff!' cried Mr Tapleyin the fervour of his eloquence. 
'Who's he! It's not in the natur of Pecksniff to shame USunless he 
agreed with usor done us a service; andin case he offered any 
audacity of that descriptionwe could express our sentiments in the 
English languageI hope. Pecksniff!' repeated Mr Tapleywith 
ineffable disdain. 'What's Pecksniffwho's Pecksniffwhere's 
Pecksniffthat he's to be so much considered? We're not acalculating 
for ourselves;' he laid uncommon emphasis on the last 
syllable of that wordand looked full in Martin's face; 'we're 
making a effort for a young lady likewise as has undergone her 
share; and whatever little hope we havethis here Pecksniff is not 
to stand in its wayI expect. I never heard of any act of 
Parliamentas was made by Pecksniff. Pecksniff! WhyI wouldn't 
see the man myself; I wouldn't hear him; I wouldn't choose to know 
he was in company. I'd scrape my shoes on the scraper of the door
and call that Pecksniffif you liked; but I wouldn't condescend no 
further.' 
The amazement of Mrs Lupinand indeed of Mr Tapley himself for that 
matterat this impassioned flow of languagewas immense. But 
Martinafter looking thoughtfully at the fire for a short time
said: 
'You are rightMark. Right or wrongit shall be done. I'll do 
it.' 
'One word moresir' returned Mark. 'Only think of him so far as 
not to give him a handle against you. Don't you do anything secret 
that he can report before you get there. Don't you even see Miss 
Mary in the morningbut let this here dear friend of ours'--Mr 
Tapley bestowed a smile upon the hostess--'prepare her for what's agoing 
to happenand carry any little message as may be agreeable. 
She knows how. Don't you?' Mrs Lupin laughed and tossed her head. 
'Then you go inbold and free as a gentleman should. "I haven't 
done nothing under-handed says you. I haven't been skulking 
about the premiseshere I amfor-give meI ask your pardonGod 
Bless You!"' 
Martin smiledbut felt that it was good advice notwithstandingand 
resolved to act upon it. When they had ascertained from Mrs Lupin 
that Pecksniff had already returned from the great ceremonial at 
which they had beheld him in his glory; and when they had fully 
arranged the order of their proceedings; they went to bedintent 
upon the morrow. 
In pursuance of their project as agreed upon at this discussionMr 
Tapley issued forth next morningafter breakfastcharged with a 
letter from Martin to his grandfatherrequesting leave to wait upon 
him for a few minutes. And postponing as he went along the 
congratulations of his numerous friends until a more convenient 
seasonhe soon arrived at Mr Pecksniff's house. At that 
gentleman's door; with a face so immovable that it would have been 
next to an impossibility for the most acute physiognomist to 
determine what he was thinking aboutor whether he was thinking at 
all; he straightway knocked. 
A person of Mr Tapley's observation could not long remain insensible 
to the fact that Mr Pecksniff was making the end of his nose very 
blunt against the glass of the parlour windowin an angular attempt 
to discover who had knocked at the door. Nor was Mr Tapley slow to 
baffle this movement on the part of the enemyby perching himself 
on the top stepand presenting the crown of his hat in that 
direction. But possibly Mr Pecksniff had already seen himfor Mark 
soon heard his shoes creakingas he advanced to open the door with 
his own hands. 
Mr Pecksniff was as cheerful as everand sang a little song in the 
passage. 
'How d'ye dosir?' said Mark. 
'Oh!' cried Mr Pecksniff. 'TapleyI believe? The Prodigal 
returned! We don't want any beermy friend.' 
'Thankeesir' said Mark. 'I couldn't accommodate you if you did. 
A lettersir. Wait for an answer.' 
'For me?' cried Mr Pecksniff. 'And an answereh?' 
'Not for youI thinksir' said Markpointing out the direction. 
'ChuzzlewitI believe the name issir.' 
'Oh!' returned Mr Pecksniff. 'Thank you. Yes. Who's it frommy 
good young man?' 
'The gentleman it comes from wrote his name insidesir' returned 
Mr Tapley with extreme politeness. 'I see him a-signing of it at 
the endwhile I was a-waitin'.' 
'And he said he wanted an answerdid he?' asked Mr Pecksniff in his 
most persuasive manner. 
Mark replied in the affirmative. 
'He shall have an answer. Certainly' said Mr Pecksnifftearing 
the letter into small piecesas mildly as if that were the most 
flattering attention a correspondent could receive. 'Have the 
goodness to give him thatwith my complimentsif you please. Good 
morning!' Whereupon he handed Mark the scraps; retiredand shut the 
door. 
Mark thought it prudent to subdue his personal emotionsand return 
to Martin at the Dragon. They were not unprepared for such a 
receptionand suffered an hour or so to elapse before making 
another attempt. When this interval had gone bythey returned to 
Mr Pecksniff's house in company. Martin knocked this timewhile Mr 
Tapley prepared himself to keep the door open with his foot and 
shoulderwhen anybody cameand by that means secure an enforced 
parley. But this precaution was needlessfor the servant-girl 
appeared almost immediately. Brushing quickly past her as he had 
resolved in such a case to doMartin (closely followed by his 
faithful ally) opened the door of that parlour in which he knew a 
visitor was most likely to be found; passed at once into the room; 
and stoodwithout a word of notice or announcementin the presence 
of his grandfather. 
Mr Pecksniff also was in the room; and Mary. In the swift instant 
of their mutual recognitionMartin saw the old man droop his grey 
headand hide his face in his hands. 
It smote him to the heart. In his most selfish and most careless 
daythis lingering remnant of the old man's ancient lovethis 
buttress of a ruined tower he had built up in the time gone bywith 
so much pride and hopewould have caused a pang in Martin's heart. 
But nowchanged for the better in his worst respect; looking 
through an altered medium on his former friendthe guardian of his 
childhoodso broken and bowed down; resentmentsullenness
self-confidenceand pridewere all swept awaybefore the starting 
tears upon the withered cheeks. He could not bear to see them. He 
could not bear to think they fell at sight of him. He could not 
bear to view reflected in themthe reproachful and irrevocable 
Past. 
He hurriedly advanced to seize the old man's hand in hiswhen Mr 
Pecksniff interposed himself between them. 
'Noyoung man!' said Mr Pecksniffstriking himself upon the 
breastand stretching out his other arm towards his guest as if it 
were a wing to shelter him. 'Nosir. None of that. Strike here
sirhere! Launch your arrows at mesirif you'll have the 
goodness; not at Him!' 
'Grandfather!' cried Martin. 'Hear me! I implore youlet me 
speak!' 
'Would yousir? Would you?' said Mr Pecksniffdodging aboutso 
as to keep himself always between them. 'Is it not enoughsir
that you come into my house like a thief in the nightor I should 
rather sayfor we can never be too particular on the subject of 
Truthlike a thief in the day-time; bringing your dissolute 
companions with youto plant themselves with their backs against 
the insides of parlour doorsand prevent the entrance or issuing 
forth of any of my household'--Mark had taken up this positionand 
held it quite unmoved--'but would you also strike at venerable 
Virtue? Would you? Know that it is not defenceless. I will be its 
shieldyoung man. Assail me. Come onsir. Fire away!' 
'Pecksniff' said the old manin a feeble voice. 'Calm yourself. 
Be quiet.' 
'I can't be calm' cried Mr Pecksniff'and I won't be quiet. My 
benefactor and my friend! Shall even my house be no refuge for your 
hoary pillow!' 
'Stand aside!' said the old manstretching out his hand; 'and let 
me see what it is I used to love so dearly.' 
'It is right that you should see itmy friend' said Mr Pecksniff. 
'It is well that you should see itmy noble sir. It is desirable 
that you should contemplate it in its true proportions. Behold it! 
There it issir. There it is!' 
Martin could hardly be a mortal manand not express in his face 
something of the anger and disdain with which Mr Pecksniff inspired 
him. But beyond this he evinced no knowledge whatever of that 
gentleman's presence or existence. Truehe had onceand that at 
firstglanced at him involuntarilyand with supreme contempt; but 
for any other heed he took of himthere might have been nothing in 
his place save empty air. 
As Mr Pecksniff withdrew from between themagreeably to the wish 
just now expressed (which he did during the delivery of the 
observations last recorded)old Martinwho had taken Mary Graham's 
hand in hisand whispered kindly to heras telling her she had no 
cause to be alarmedgently pushed her from himbehind his chair; 
and looked steadily at his grandson. 
'And that' he said'is he. Ah! that is he! Say what you wish to 
say. But come no nearer' 
'His sense of justice is so fine' said Mr Pecksniff'that he will 
hear even himalthough he knows beforehand that nothing can come of 
it. Ingenuous mind!' Mr Pecksniff did not address himself 
immediately to any person in saying thisbut assuming the position 
of the Chorus in a Greek Tragedydelivered his opinion as a 
commentary on the proceedings. 
'Grandfather!' said Martinwith great earnestness. 'From a painful 
journeyfrom a hard lifefrom a sick-bedfrom privation and 
distressfrom gloom and disappointmentfrom almost hopelessness 
and despairI have come back to you.' 
'Rovers of this sort' observed Mr Pecksniffas Chorus'very 
commonly come back when they find they don't meet with the success 
they expected in their marauding ravages.' 
'But for this faithful man' said Martinturning towards Mark
'whom I first knew in this placeand who went away with me 
voluntarilyas a servantbut has beenthroughoutmy zealous and 
devoted friend; but for himI must have died abroad. Far from 
homefar from any help or consolation; far from the probability 
even of my wretched fate being ever known to any one who cared to 
hear it--ohthat you would let me sayof being known to you!' 
The old man looked at Mr Pecksniff. Mr Pecksniff looked at him. 
'Did you speakmy worthy sir?' said Mr Pecksniffwith a smile. 
The old man answered in the negative. 'I know what you thought' 
said Mr Pecksniffwith another smile. 'Let him go on my friend. 
The development of self-interest in the human mind is always a 
curious study. Let him go onsir.' 
'Go on!' observed the old man; in a mechanical obedienceit 
appearedto Mr Pecksniff's suggestion. 
'I have been so wretched and so poor' said Martin'that I am 
indebted to the charitable help of a strangerin a land of 
strangersfor the means of returning here. All this tells against 
me in your mindI know. I have given you cause to think I have 
been driven here wholly by wantand have not been led onin any 
degreeby affection or regret. When I parted from you
GrandfatherI deserved that suspicionbut I do not now. I do not 
now.' 
The Chorus put its hand in its waistcoatand smiled. 'Let him go 
onmy worthy sir' it said. 'I know what you are thinking ofbut 
don't express it prematurely.' 
Old Martin raised his eyes to Mr Pecksniff's faceand appearing to 
derive renewed instruction from his looks and wordssaidonce 
again: 
'Go on!' 
'I have little more to say' returned Martin. 'And as I say it now
with little or no hopeGrandfather; whatever dawn of hope I had on 
entering the room; believe it to be true. At leastbelieve it to 
be true.' 
'Beautiful Truth!' exclaimed the Choruslooking upward. 'How is 
your name profaned by vicious persons! You don't live in a wellmy 
holy principlebut on the lips of false mankind. It is hard to 
bear with mankinddear sir'--addressing the elder Mr Chuzzlewit; 
'but let us do so meekly. It is our duty so to do. Let us be among 
the Few who do their duty. If' pursued the Chorussoaring up into 
a lofty flight'as the poet informs usEngland expects Every man 
to do his dutyEngland is the most sanguine country on the face of 
the earthand will find itself continually disappointed.' 
'Upon that subject' said Martinlooking calmly at the old man as 
he spokebut glancing once at Marywhose face was now buried in 
her handsupon the back of his easy-chair; 'upon that subject which 
first occasioned a division between usmy mind and heart are 
incapable of change. Whatever influence they have undergonesince 
that unhappy timehas not been one to weaken but to strengthen me. 
I cannot profess sorrow for thatnor irresolution in thatnor 
shame in that. Nor would you wish meI know. But that I might 
have trusted to your loveif I had thrown myself manfully upon it; 
that I might have won you over with easeif I had been more 
yielding and more considerate; that I should have best remembered 
myself in forgetting myselfand recollecting you; reflection
solitudeand miseryhave taught me. I came resolved to say this
and to ask your forgiveness; not so much in hope for the futureas 
in regret for the past; for all that I would ask of you isthat you 
would aid me to live. Help me to get honest work to doand I would 
do it. My condition places me at the disadvantage of seeming to 
have only my selfish ends to servebut try if that be so or not. 
Try if I be self-willedobdurateand haughtyas I was; or have 
been disciplined in a rough school. Let the voice of nature and 
association plead between usGrandfather; and do notfor one 
faulthowever thanklessquite reject me!' 
As he ceasedthe grey head of the old man drooped again; and he 
concealed his face behind his outspread fingers. 
'My dear sir' cried Mr Pecksniffbending over him'you must not 
give way to this. It is very naturaland very amiablebut you 
must not allow the shameless conduct of one whom you long ago cast 
offto move you so far. Rouse yourself. Think' said Pecksniff
'think of Memy friend.' 
'I will' returned old Martinlooking up into his face. 'You 
recall me to myself. I will.' 
'Whywhat' said Mr Pecksniffsitting down beside him in a chair 
which he drew up for the purposeand tapping him playfully on the 
arm'what is the matter with my strong-minded compatriotif I may 
venture to take the liberty of calling him by that endearing 
expression? Shall I have to scold my coadjutoror to reason with 
an intellect like this? I think not.' 
'Nono. There is no occasion' said the old man. 'A momentary 
feeling. Nothing more.' 
'Indignation' observed Mr Pecksniff'WILL bring the scalding tear 
into the honest eyeI know'--he wiped his own elaborately. 'But we 
have highest duties to perform than that. Rouse yourselfMr 
Chuzzlewit. Shall I give expression to your thoughtsmy friend?' 
'Yes' said old Martinleaning back in his chairand looking at 
himhalf in vacancy and half in admirationas if he were 
fascinated by the man. 'Speak for mePecksniffThank you. You 
are true to me. Thank you!' 
'Do not unman mesir' said Mr Pecksniffshaking his hand 
vigorously'or I shall be unequal to the task. It is not agreeable 
to my feelingsmy good sirto address the person who is now before 
usfor when I ejected him from this houseafter hearing of his 
unnatural conduct from your lipsI renounced communication with him 
for ever. But you desire it; and that is sufficient. Young man! 
The door is immediately behind the companion of your infamy. Blush 
if you can; begone without a blushif you can't.' 
Martin looked as steadily at his grandfather as if there had been a 
dead silence all this time. The old man looked no less steadily at 
Mr Pecksniff. 
'When I ordered you to leave this house upon the last occasion of 
your being dismissed from it with disgrace' said Mr Pecksniff; 
'whenstung and stimulated beyond endurance by your shameless 
conduct to this extraordinarily noble-minded individualI exclaimed 
Go forth!I told you that I wept for your depravity. Do not 
suppose that the tear which stands in my eye at this momentis shed 
for you. It is shed for himsir. It is shed for him.' 
Here Mr Pecksniffaccidentally dropping the tear in question on a 
bald part of Mr Chuzzlewit's headwiped the place with his pockethandkerchief
and begged pardon. 
'It is shed for himsirwhom you seek to make the victim of your 
arts' said Mr Pecksniff; 'whom you seek to plunderto deceiveand 
to mislead. It is shed in sympathy with himand admiration of him; 
not in pity for himfor happily he knows what you are. You shall 
not wrong him furthersirin any way' said Mr Pecksniffquite 
transported with enthusiasm'while I have life. You may bestride 
my senseless corsesir. That is very likely. I can imagine a mind 
like yours deriving great satisfaction from any measure of that 
kind. But while I continue to be called upon to existsiryou 
must strike at him through me. Awe!' said Mr Pecksniffshaking his 
head at Martin with indignant jocularity; 'and in such a cause you 
will find memy young siran Ugly Customer!' 
Still Martin looked steadily and mildly at his grandfather. 'Will 
you give me no answer' he saidat length'not a word?' 
'You hear what has been said' replied the old manwithout averting 
his eyes from the face of Mr Pecksniff; who nodded encouragingly. 
'I have not heard your voice. I have not heard your spirit' 
returned Martin. 
'Tell him again' said the old manstill gazing up in Mr 
Pecksniff's face. 
'I only hear' replied Martinstrong in his purpose from the first
and stronger in it as he felt how Pecksniff winced and shrunk 
beneath his contempt; 'I only hear what you say to megrandfather.' 
Perhaps it was well for Mr Pecksniff that his venerable friend found 
in his (Mr Pecksniff's) features an exclusive and engrossing object 
of contemplationfor if his eyes had gone astrayand he had 
compared young Martin's bearing with that of his zealous defender
the latter disinterested gentleman would scarcely have shown to 
greater advantage than on the memorable afternoon when he took Tom 
Pinch's last receipt in full of all demands. One really might have 
thought there was some quality in Mr Pecksniff--an emanation from 
the brightness and purity within him perhaps--which set off and 
adorned his foes; they looked so gallant and so manly beside him. 
'Not a word?' said Martinfor the second time. 
'I remember that I have a word to sayPecksniff' observed the old 
man. 'But a word. You spoke of being indebted to the charitable 
help of some stranger for the means of returning to England. Who is 
he? And what help in money did he render you?' 
Although he asked this question of Martinhe did not look towards 
himbut kept his eyes on Mr Pecksniff as before. It appeared to 
have become a habit with himboth in a literal and figurative 
senseto look to Mr Pecksniff alone. 
Martin took out his penciltore a leaf from his pocket-bookand 
hastily wrote down the particulars of his debt to Mr Bevan. The old 
man stretched out his hand for the paperand took it; but his eyes 
did not wander from Mr Pecksniff's face. 
'It would be a poor pride and a false humility' said Martinin a 
low voice'to sayI do not wish that to be paidor that I have 
any present hope of being able to pay it. But I never felt my 
poverty so deeply as I feel it now.' 
'Read it to mePecksniff' said the old man. 
Mr Pecksniffafter approaching the perusal of the paper as if it 
were a manuscript confession of a murdercomplied. 
'I thinkPecksniff' said old Martin'I could wish that to be 
discharged. I should not like the lenderwho was abroadwho had 
no opportunity of making inquiryand who did (as he thought) a kind 
actionto suffer.' 
'An honourable sentimentmy dear sir. Your own entirely. But a 
dangerous precedent' said Mr Pecksniff'permit me to suggest.' 
'It shall not be a precedent' returned the old man. 'It is the 
only recognition of him. But we will talk of it again. You shall 
advise me. There is nothing else?' 
'Nothing else' said Mr Pecksniff buoyantly'but for you to recover 
this intrusion--this cowardly and indefensible outrage on your 
feelings--with all possible dispatchand smile again.' 
'You have nothing more to say?' inquired the old manlaying his 
hand with unusual earnestness on Mr Pecksniff's sleeve. 
Mr Pecksniff would not say what rose to his lips. For reproaches he 
observedwere useless. 
'You have nothing at all to urge? You are sure of that! If you have
no matter what it isspeak freely. I will oppose nothing that you 
ask of me' said the old man. 
The tears rose in such abundance to Mr Pecksniff's eyes at this 
proof of unlimited confidence on the part of his friendthat he was 
fain to clasp the bridge of his nose convulsively before he could at 
all compose himself. When he had the power of utterance againhe 
said with great emotionthat he hoped he should live to deserve 
this; and addedthat he had no other observation whatever to make. 
For a few moments the old man sat looking at himwith that blank 
and motionless expression which is not uncommon in the faces of 
those whose faculties are on the wanein age. But he rose up 
firmly tooand walked towards the doorfrom which Mark withdrew to 
make way for him. 
The obsequious Mr Pecksniff proffered his arm. The old man took it. 
Turning at the doorhe said to Martinwaving him off with his 
hand
'You have heard him. Go away. It is all over. Go!' 
Mr Pecksniff murmured certain cheering expressions of sympathy and 
encouragement as they retired; and Martinawakening from the stupor 
into which the closing portion of this scene had plunged himto the 
opportunity afforded by their departurecaught the innocent cause 
of all in his embraceand pressed her to his heart. 
'Dear girl!' said Martin. 'He has not changed you. Whywhat an 
impotent and harmless knave the fellow is!' 
'You have restrained yourself so nobly! You have borne so much!' 
'Restrained myself!' cried Martincheerfully. 'You were byand 
were unchangedI knew. What more advantage did I want? The sight 
of me was such a bitterness to the dogthat I had my triumph in his 
being forced to endure it. But tell melove--for the few hasty 
words we can exchange now are precious--what is this which has been 
rumoured to me? Is it true that you are persecuted by this knave's 
addresses?' 
'I wasdear Martinand to some extent am now; but my chief source 
of unhappiness has been anxiety for you. Why did you leave us in 
such terrible suspense?' 
'Sicknessdistance; the dread of hinting at our real condition
the impossibility of concealing it except in perfect silence; the 
knowledge that the truth would have pained you infinitely more than 
uncertainty and doubt' said Martinhurriedly; as indeed everything 
else was done and saidin those few hurried moments'were the 
causes of my writing only once. But Pecksniff? You needn't fear to 
tell me the whole tale; for you saw me with him face to face
hearing him speakand not taking him by the throat; what is the 
history of his pursuit of you? Is it known to my grandfather?' 
'Yes.' 
'And he assists him in it?' 
'No' she answered eagerly. 
'Thank Heaven!' cried Martin'that it leaves his mind unclouded in 
that one respect!' 
'I do not think' said Mary'it was known to him at first. When 
this man had sufficiently prepared his mindhe revealed it to him 
by degrees. I think sobut I only know it from my own impression: 
now from anything they told me. Then he spoke to me alone.' 
'My grandfather did?' said Martin. 
'Yes--spoke to me aloneand told me--' 
'What the hound had said' cried Martin. 'Don't repeat it.' 
'And said I knew well what qualities he possessed; that he was 
moderately rich; in good repute; and high in his favour and 
confidence. But seeing me very much distressedhe said that he 
would not control or force my inclinationsbut would content 
himself with telling me the fact. He would not pain me by dwelling 
on itor reverting to it; nor has he ever done so sincebut has 
truly kept his word.' 
'The man himself?--' asked Martin. 
'He has had few opportunities of pursuing his suit. I have never 
walked out aloneor remained alone an instant in his presence. 
Dear MartinI must tell you' she continued'that the kindness of 
your grandfather to me remains unchanged. I am his companion still. 
An indescribable tenderness and compassion seem to have mingled 
themselves with his old regard; and if I were his only childI 
could not have a gentler father. What former fancy or old habit 
survives in thiswhen his heart has turned so cold to youis a 
mystery I cannot penetrate; but it has beenand it isa happiness 
to methat I remained true to him; that if he should wake from his 
delusioneven at the point of deathI am hereloveto recall you 
to his thoughts.' 
Martin looked with admiration on her glowing faceand pressed his 
lips to hers. 
'I have sometimes heardand read' she said'that those whose 
powers had been enfeebled long agoand whose lives had fadedas it 
wereinto a dreamhave been known to rouse themselves before 
deathand inquire for familiar faces once very dear to them; but 
forgottenunrecognizedhated evenin the meantime. Thinkif 
with his old impressions of this manhe should suddenly resume his 
former selfand find in him his only friend!' 
'I would not urge you to abandon himdearest' said Martin'though 
I could count the years we are to wear out asunder. But the 
influence this fellow exercises over him has steadily increasedI 
fear.' 
She could not help admitting that. Steadilyimperceptiblyand 
surelyuntil it was paramount and supreme. She herself had none; 
and yet he treated her with more affection than at any previous 
time. Martin thought the inconsistency a part of his weakness and 
decay. 
'Does the influence extend to fear?' said Martin. 'Is he timid of 
asserting his own opinion in the presence of this infatuation? I 
fancied so just now.' 
'I have thought sooften. Often when we are sitting alonealmost 
as we used to doand I have been reading a favourite book to him or 
he has been talking quite cheerfullyI have observed that the 
entrance of Mr Pecksniff has changed his whole demeanour. He has 
broken off immediatelyand become what you have seen to-day. When 
we first came here he had his impetuous outbreaksin which it was 
not easy for Mr Pecksniff with his utmost plausibility to appease 
him. But these have long since dwindled away. He defers to him in 
everythingand has no opinion upon any questionbut that which is 
forced upon him by this treacherous man.' 
Such was the accountrapidly furnished in whispersand 
interruptedbrief as it wasby many false alarms of Mr Pecksniff's 
return; which Martin received of his grandfather's declineand of 
that good gentleman's ascendancy. He heard of Tom Pinch tooand 
Jonas toowith not a little about himself into the bargain; for 
though lovers are remarkable for leaving a great deal unsaid on all 
occasionsand very properly desiring to come back and say itthey 
are remarkable also for a wonderful power of condensationand can
in one way or othergive utterance to more language--eloquent 
language--in any given short space of timethan all the six hundred 
and fifty-eight members in the Commons House of Parliament of the 
United Kingdom of Great Britain and Ireland; who are strong lovers 
no doubtbut of their country onlywhich makes all the difference; 
for in a passion of that kind (which is not always returned)it is 
the custom to use as many words as possibleand express nothing 
whatever. 
A caution from Mr Tapley; a hasty interchange of farewellsand of 
something else which the proverb says must not be told of 
afterwards; a white hand held out to Mr Tapley himselfwhich he 
kissed with the devotion of a knight-errant; more farewellsmore 
something else's; a parting word from Martin that he would write 
from London and would do great things there yet (Heaven knows what
but he quite believed it); and Mark and he stood on the outside of 
the Pecksniffian halls. 
'A short interview after such an absence!' said Martinsorrowfully. 
'But we are well out of the house. We might have placed ourselves 
in a false position by remaining thereeven so longMark.' 
'I don't know about ourselvessir' he returned; 'but somebody else 
would have got into a false positionif he had happened to come 
back againwhile we was there. I had the door all readysir. If 
Pecksniff had showed his heador had only so much as listened 
behind itI would have caught him like a walnut. He's the sort of 
man' added Mr Tapleymusing'as would squeeze softI know.' 
A person who was evidently going to Mr Pecksniff's housepassed 
them at this moment. He raised his eyes at the mention of the 
architect's name; and when he had gone on a few yardsstopped and 
gazed at them. Mr Tapleyalsolooked over his shoulderand so 
did Martin; for the strangeras he passedhad looked very sharply 
at them. 
'Who may that beI wonder!' said Martin. 'The face seems familiar 
to mebut I don't know the man.' 
'He seems to have a amiable desire that his face should be tolerable 
familiar to us' said Mr Tapley'for he's a-staring pretty hard. 
He'd better not waste his beautyfor he ain't got much to spare.' 
Coming in sight of the Dragonthey saw a travelling carriage at the 
door. 
'And a Salisbury carriageeh?' said Mr Tapley. 'That's what he 
came in depend upon it. What's in the wind now? A new pupilI 
shouldn't wonder. P'raps it's a order for another grammar-school
of the same pattern as the last.' 
Before they could enter at the doorMrs Lupin came running out; and 
beckoning them to the carriage showed them a portmanteau with the 
name of CHUZZLEWIT upon it. 
'Miss Pecksniff's husband that was' said the good woman to Martin. 
'I didn't know what terms you might be onand was quite in a worry 
till you came back.' 
'He and I have never interchanged a word yet' observed Martin; 'and 
as I have no wish to be better or worse acquainted with himI will 
not put myself in his way. We passed him on the roadI have no 
doubt. I am glad he timed his coming as he did. Upon my word! Miss 
Pecksniff's husband travels gayly!' 
'A very fine-looking gentleman with him--in the best room now' 
whispered Mrs Lupinglancing up at the window as they went into the 
house. 'He has ordered everything that can be got for dinner; and 
has the glossiest moustaches and whiskers ever you saw.' 
'Has he?' cried Martin'why then we'll endeavour to avoid him too
in the hope that our self-denial may be strong enough for the 
sacrifice. It is only for a few hours' said Martindropping 
wearily into a chair behind the little screen in the bar. 'Our 
visit has met with no successmy dear Mrs Lupinand I must go to 
London.' 
'Deardear!' cried the hostess. 
'Yesone foul wind no more makes a winterthan one swallow makes a 
summer. I'll try it again. Tom Pinch has succeeded. With his 
advice to guide meI may do the same. I took Tom under my 
protection onceGod save the mark!' said Martinwith a melancholy 
smile; 'and promised I would make his fortune. Perhaps Tom will 
take me under HIS protection nowand teach me how to earn my 
bread.' 
CHAPTER FORTY-FOUR 
FURTHER CONTINUATION OF THE ENTERPRISE OF MR JONAS AND HIS FRIEND 
It was a special qualityamong the many admirable qualities 
possessed by Mr Pecksniffthat the more he was found outthe more 
hypocrisy he practised. Let him be discomfited in one quarterand 
he refreshed and recompensed himself by carrying the war into 
another. If his workings and windings were detected by Aso much 
the greater reason was there for practicing without loss of time on 
Bif it were only to keep his hand in. He had never been such a 
saintly and improving spectacle to all about himas after his 
detection by Thomas Pinch. He had scarcely ever been at once so 
tender in his humanityand so dignified and exalted in his virtue
as when young Martin's scorn was fresh and hot upon him. 
Having this large stock of superfluous sentiment and morality on 
hand which must positively be cleared off at any sacrificeMr 
Pecksniff no sooner heard his son-in-law announcedthan he regarded 
him as a kind of wholesale or general orderto be immediately 
executed. Descendingthereforeswiftly to the parlourand 
clasping the young man in his armshe exclaimedwith looks and 
gestures that denoted the perturbation of his spirit: 
'Jonas. My child--she is well! There is nothing the matter?' 
'Whatyou're at it againare you?' replied his son-in-law. 'Even 
with me? Get away with youwill you?' 
'Tell me she is well then' said Mr Pecksniff. 'Tell me she is well 
my boy!' 
'She's well enough' retorted Jonasdisengaging himself. 'There's 
nothing the matter with HER.' 
'There is nothing the matter with her!' cried Mr Pecksniffsitting 
down in the nearest chairand rubbing up his hair. 'Fie upon my 
weakness! I cannot help itJonas. Thank you. I am better now. 
How is my other child; my eldest; my Cherrywerrychigo?' said Mr 
Pecksniffinventing a playful little name for herin the restored 
lightness of his heart. 
'She's much about the same as usual' returned Jonas. 'She sticks 
pretty close to the vinegar-bottle. You know she's got a 
sweetheartI suppose?' 
'I have heard of it' said Mr Pecksniff'from headquarters; from my 
child herself I will not deny that it moved me to contemplate the 
loss of my remaining daughterJonas--I am afraid we parents are 
selfishI am afraid we are--but it has ever been the study of my 
life to qualify them for the domestic hearth; and it is a sphere 
which Cherry will adorn.' 
'She need adorn some sphere or other' observed the son-in-lawfor 
she ain't very ornamental in general.' 
'My girls are now provided for' said Mr Pecksniff. 'They are now 
happily provided forand I have not laboured in vain!' 
This is exactly what Mr Pecksniff would have saidif one of his 
daughters had drawn a prize of thirty thousand pounds in the 
lotteryor if the other had picked up a valuable purse in the 
streetwhich nobody appeared to claim. In either of these cases he 
would have invoked a patriarchal blessing on the fortunate head
with great solemnityand would have taken immense credit to 
himselfas having meant it from the infant's cradle. 
'Suppose we talk about something elsenow' observed Jonasdrily. 
'just for a change. Are you quite agreeable?' 
'Quite' said Mr Pecksniff. 'Ahyou wagyou naughty wag! You 
laugh at poor old fond papa. Well! He deserves it. And he don't 
mind it eitherfor his feelings are their own reward. You have 
come to stay with meJonas?' 
'No. I've got a friend with me' said Jonas. 
'Bring your friend!' cried Mr Pecksniffin a gush of hospitality. 
'Bring any number of your friends!' 
'This ain't the sort of man to be brought' said Jonas
contemptuously. 'I think I see myself "bringing" him to your house
for a treat! Thank'ee all the same; but he's a little too near the 
top of the tree for thatPecksniff.' 
The good man pricked up his ears; his interest was awakened. A 
position near the top of the tree was greatnessvirtuegoodness
sensegenius; orit should rather be saida dispensation from 
alland in itself something immeasurably better than all; with Mr 
Pecksniff. A man who was able to look down upon Mr Pecksniff could 
not be looked up atby that gentlemanwith too great an amount of 
deferenceor from a position of too much humility. So it always is 
with great spirits. 
'I'll tell you what you may doif you like' said Jonas; 'you may 
come and dine with us at the Dragon. We were forced to come down to 
Salisbury last nighton some businessand I got him to bring me 
over here this morningin his carriage; at leastnot his own 
carriagefor we had a breakdown in the nightbut one we hired 
instead; it's all the same. Mind what you're aboutyou know. He's 
not used to all sorts; he only mixes with the best!' 
'Some young nobleman who has been borrowing money of you at good 
interesteh?' said Mr Pecksniffshaking his forefinger facetiously. 
'I shall be delighted to know the gay sprig.' 
'Borrowing!' echoed Jonas. 'Borrowing! When you're a twentieth part 
as rich as he isyou may shut up shop! We should be pretty well off 
if we could buy his furnitureand plateand picturesby clubbing 
together. A likely man to borrow: Mr Montague! Why since I was 
lucky enough (come! and I'll saysharp enoughtoo) to get a share 
in the Assurance office that he's President ofI've made--never 
mind what I've made' said Jonasseeming to recover all at once his 
usual caution. 'You know me pretty welland I don't blab about 
such things. ButEcodI've made a trifle.' 
'Reallymy dear Jonas' cried Mr Pecksniffwith much warmth'a 
gentleman like this should receive some attention. Would he like to 
see the church? or if he has a taste for the fine arts--which I 
have no doubt he hasfrom the description you give of his 
circumstances--I can send him down a few portfolios. Salisbury 
Cathedralmy dear Jonas' said Mr Pecksniff; the mention of the 
portfolios and his anxiety to display himself to advantage
suggesting his usual phraseology in that regard'is an edifice 
replete with venerable associationsand strikingly suggestive of 
the loftiest emotions. It is here we contemplate the work of bygone 
ages. It is here we listen to the swelling organas we stroll 
through the reverberating aisles. We have drawings of this 
celebrated structure from the Northfrom the Southfrom the East
from the Westfrom the South-Eastfrom the Nor'West--' 
During this digressionand indeed during the whole dialogueJonas 
had been rocking on his chairwith his hands in his pockets and his 
head thrown cunningly on one side. He looked at Mr Pecksniff now 
with such shrewd meaning twinkling in his eyesthat Mr Pecksniff 
stoppedand asked him what he was going to say. 
'Ecod!' he answered. 'Pecksniff if I knew how you meant to leave 
your moneyI could put you in the way of doubling it in no time. 
It wouldn't be bad to keep a chance like this snug in the family. 
But you're such a deep one!' 
'Jonas!' cried Mr Pecksniffmuch affected'I am not a 
diplomatical character; my heart is in my hand. By far the 
greater part of the inconsiderable savings I have accumulated in the 
course of--I hope--a not dishonourable or useless careeris already 
givendevisedand bequeathed (correct memy dear Jonasif I am 
technically wrong)with expressions of confidencewhich I will not 
repeat; and in securities which it is unnecessary to mention to a 
person whom I cannotwhom I will notwhom I need notname.' Here 
he gave the hand of his son-in-law a fervent squeezeas if he would 
have added'God bless you; be very careful of it when you get it!' 
Mr Jonas only shook his head and laughedandseeming to think 
better of what he had had in his mindsaid'No. He would keep his 
own counsel.' But as he observed that he would take a walkMr 
Pecksniff insisted on accompanying himremarking that he could 
leave a card for Mr Montagueas they went alongby way of 
gentleman-usher to himself at dinner-time. Which he did. 
In the course of their walkMr Jonas affected to maintain that 
close reserve which had operated as a timely check upon him during 
the foregoing dialogue. And as he made no attempt to conciliate Mr 
Pecksniffbuton the contrarywas more boorish and rude to him 
than usualthat gentlemanso far from suspecting his real design
laid himself out to be attacked with advantage. For it is in the 
nature of a knave to think the tools with which he works 
indispensable to knavery; and knowing what he would do himself in 
such a caseMr Pecksniff argued'if this young man wanted anything 
of me for his own endshe would be polite and deferential.' 
The more Jonas repelled him in his hints and inquiriesthe more 
solicitousthereforeMr Pecksniff became to be initiated into the 
golden mysteries at which he had obscurely glanced. Why should 
there be cold and worldly secretshe observedbetween relations? 
What was life without confidence? If the chosen husband of his 
daughterthe man to whom he had delivered her with so much pride 
and hopesuch bounding and such beaming joy; if he were not a green 
spot in the barren waste of lifewhere was that oasis to be bound? 
Little did Mr Pecksniff think on what a very green spot he planted 
one foot at that moment! Little did he foresee when he said'All is 
but dust!' how very shortly he would come down with his own! 
Inch by inchin his grudging and ill-conditioned way; sustained to 
the lifefor the hope of making Mr Pecksniff suffer in that tender 
placethe pocketwhere Jonas smarted so terribly himselfgave him 
an additional and malicious interest in the wiles he was set on to 
practise; inch by inchand bit by bitJonas rather allowed the 
dazzling prospects of the Anglo-Bengalee establishment to escape 
himthan paraded them before his greedy listener. And in the same 
niggardly spirithe left Mr Pecksniff to inferif he chose (which 
he DID chooseof course)that a consciousness of not having any 
great natural gifts of speech and manner himselfrendered him 
desirous to have the credit of introducing to Mr Montague some one 
who was well endowed in those respectsand so atone for his own 
deficiencies. Otherwisehe muttered discontentedlyhe would have 
seen his beloved father-in-law 'far enough off' before he would 
have taken him into his confidence. 
Primed in this artful mannerMr Pecksniff presented himself at 
dinner-time in such a state of suavitybenevolencecheerfulness
politenessand cordialityas even he had perhaps never attained 
before. The frankness of the country gentlemanthe refinement of 
the artistthe good-humoured allowance of the man of the world; 
philanthropyforbearancepietytolerationall blended together 
in a flexible adaptability to anything and everything; were 
expressed in Mr Pecksniffas he shook hands with the great 
speculator and capitalist. 
'Welcomerespected sir' said Mr Pecksniff'to our humble village! 
We are a simple people; primitive clodsMr Montague; but we can 
appreciate the honour of your visitas my dear son-in-law can 
testify. It is very strange' said Mr Pecksniffpressing his hand 
almost reverentially'but I seem to know you. That towering 
foreheadmy dear Jonas' said Mr Pecksniff aside'and those 
clustering masses of rich hair--I must have seen youmy dear sir
in the sparkling throng.' 
Nothing was more probablethey all agreed. 
'I could have wished' said Mr Pecksniff'to have had the honour of 
introducing you to an elderly inmate of our house: to the uncle of 
our friend. Mr Chuzzlewitsirwould have been proud indeed to 
have taken you by the hand.' 
'Is the gentleman here now?' asked Montagueturning deeply red. 
'He is' said Mr Pecksniff. 
'You said nothing about thatChuzzlewit.' 
'I didn't suppose you'd care to hear of it' returned Jonas. 'You 
wouldn't care to know himI can promise you.' 
'Jonas! my dear Jonas!' remonstrated Mr Pecksniff. 'Really!' 
'Oh! it's all very well for you to speak up for him' said Jonas. 
'You have nailed him. You'll get a fortune by him.' 
'Oho! Is the wind in that quarter?' cried Montague. 'Hahaha!' 
and here they all laughed--especially Mr Pecksniff. 
'Nono!' said that gentlemanclapping his son-in-law playfully 
upon the shoulder. 'You must not believe all that my young relative 
saysMr Montague. You may believe him in official businessand 
trust him in official businessbut you must not attach importance 
to his flights of fancy.' 
'Upon my lifeMr Pecksniff' cried Montague'I attach the greatest 
importance to that last observation of his. I trust and hope it's 
true. Money cannot be turned and turned again quickly enough in the 
ordinary courseMr Pecksniff. There is nothing like building our 
fortune on the weaknesses of mankind.' 
'Oh fie! oh fiefor shame!' cried Mr Pecksniff. But they all 
laughed again--especially Mr Pecksniff. 
'I give you my honour that WE do it' said Montague. 
'Oh fiefie!' cried Mr Pecksniff. 'You are very pleasant. That I 
am sure you don't! That I am sure you don't! How CAN youyou know?' 
Again they all laughed in concert; and again Mr Pecksniff laughed 
especially. 
This was very agreeable indeed. It was confidentialeasy
straight-forward; and still left Mr Pecksniff in the position of 
being in a gentle way the Mentor of the party. The greatest 
achievements in the article of cookery that the Dragon had ever 
performedwere set before them; the oldest and best wines in the 
Dragon's cellar saw the light on that occasion; a thousand bubbles
indicative of the wealth and station of Mr Montague in the depths of 
his pursuitswere constantly rising to the surface of the 
conversation; and they were as frank and merry as three honest men 
could be. Mr Pecksniff thought it a pity (he said so) that Mr 
Montague should think lightly of mankind and their weaknesses. He 
was anxious upon this subject; his mind ran upon it; in one way or 
another he was constantly coming back to it; he must make a convert 
of himhe said. And as often as Mr Montague repeated his sentiment 
about building fortunes on the weaknesses of mankindand added 
frankly'WE do it!' just as often Mr Pecksniff repeated 'Oh fie! oh 
fiefor shame! I am sure you don't. How CAN youyou know?' laying 
a greater stress each time on those last words. 
The frequent repetition of this playful inquiry on the part of Mr 
Pecksniffled at last to playful answers on the part of Mr 
Montague; but after some little sharp-shooting on both sidesMr 
Pecksniff became gravealmost to tears; observing that if Mr 
Montague would give him leavehe would drink the health of his 
young kinsmanMr Jonas; congratulating him upon the valuable and 
distinguished friendship he had formedbut envying himhe would 
confesshis usefulness to his fellow-creatures. Forif he 
understood the objects of that Institution with which he was newly 
and advantageously connected--knowing them but imperfectly--they 
were calculated to do Good; and for his (Mr Pecksniff's) partif he 
could in any way promote themhe thought he would be able to lay 
his head upon his pillow every nightwith an absolute certainty of 
going to sleep at once. 
The transition from this accidental remark (for it was quite 
accidental and had fallen from Mr Pecksniff in the openness of his 
soul)to the discussion of the subject as a matter of businesswas 
easy. Bookspapersstatementstablescalculations of various 
kindswere soon spread out before them; and as they were all framed 
with one objectit is not surprising that they should all have 
tended to one end. But stillwhenever Montague enlarged upon the 
profits of the officeand said that as long as there were gulls 
upon the wing it must succeedMr Pecksniff mildly said 'Oh fie!'-and 
might indeed have remonstrated with himbut that he knew he was 
joking. Mr Pecksniff did know he was joking; because he said so. 
There never had been beforeand there never would be againsuch an 
opportunity for the investment of a considerable sum (the rate of 
advantage increased in proportion to the amount invested)as at 
that moment. The only time that had at all approached itwas the 
time when Jonas had come into the concern; which made him ill-natured 
nowand inclined him to pick out a doubt in this placeand a flaw 
in thatand grumbling to advise Mr Pecksniff to think better of it. 
The sum which would complete the proprietorship in this snug 
concernwas nearly equal to Mr Pecksniff's whole hoard; not 
counting Mr Chuzzlewitthat is to saywhom he looked upon as money 
in the Bankthe possession of which inclined him the more to make a 
dash with his own private sprats for the capture of such a whale as 
Mr Montague described. The returns began almost immediatelyand 
were immense. The end of it wasthat Mr Pecksniff agreed to become 
the last partner and proprietor in the Anglo-Bengaleeand made an 
appointment to dine with Mr Montagueat Salisburyon the next day 
but onethen and there to complete the negotiation. 
It took so long to bring the subject to this headthat it was 
nearly midnight when they parted. When Mr Pecksniff walked 
downstairs to the doorhe found Mrs Lupin standing therelooking 
out. 
'Ahmy good friend!' he said; 'not a-bed yet! Contemplating the 
starsMrs Lupin?' 
'It's a beautiful starlight nightsir.' 
'A beautiful starlight night' said Mr Pecksnifflooking up. 
'Behold the planetshow they shine! Behold the--those two persons 
who were here this morning have left your houseI hopeMrs Lupin?' 
'Yessir. They are gone.' 
'I am glad to hear it' said Mr Pecksniff. 'Behold the wonders of 
the firmamentMrs Lupin! how glorious is the scene! When I look up 
at those shining orbsI think that each of them is winking to the 
other to take notice of the vanity of men's pursuits. My 
fellowmen!' cried Mr Pecksniffshaking his head in pity; 'you are 
much mistaken; my wormy relativesyou are much deceived! The stars 
are perfectly contented (I suppose so) in their several spheres. 
Why are not you? Oh! do not strive and struggle to enrich 
yourselvesor to get the better of each othermy deluded friends
but look up therewith me!' 
Mrs Lupin shook her headand heaved a sigh. It was very affecting. 
'Look up therewith me!' repeated Mr Pecksniffstretching out his 
hand; 'With mea humble individual who is also an insect like 
yourselves. Can silvergoldor precious stonessparkle like 
those constellations! I think not. Then do not thirst for silver
goldor precious stones; but look up therewith me!' 
With those wordsthe good man patted Mrs Lupin's hand between his 
ownas if he would have added 'think of thismy good woman!' and 
walked away in a sort of ecstasy or rapturewith his hat under his 
arm. 
Jonas sat in the attitude in which Mr Pecksniff had left himgazing 
moodily at his friend; whosurrounded by a heap of documentswas 
writing something on an oblong slip of paper. 
'You mean to wait at Salisbury over the day after to-morrowdo you
then?' said Jonas. 
'You heard our appointment' returned Montaguewithout raising his 
eyes. 'In any case I should have waited to see after the boy.' 
They appeared to have changed places again; Montague being in high 
spirits; Jonas gloomy and lowering. 
'You don't want meI suppose?' said Jonas. 
'I want you to put your name here' he returnedglancing at him 
with a smile'as soon as I have filled up the stamp. I may as well 
have your note of hand for that extra capital. That's all I want. 
If you wish to go homeI can manage Mr Pecksniff nowalone. There 
is a perfect understanding between us.' 
Jonas sat scowling at him as he wrotein silence. When he had 
finished his writingand had dried it on the blotting paper in his 
travelling-desk; he looked upand tossed the pen towards him. 
'Whatnot a day's gracenot a day's trusteh?' said Jonas 
bitterly. 'Not after the pains I have taken with to-night's work?' 
'To night's work was a part of our bargain' replied Montague; 'and 
so was this.' 
'You drive a hard bargain' said Jonasadvancing to the table. 
'You know best. Give it here!' 
Montague gave him the paper. After pausing as if he could not make 
up his mind to put his name to itJonas dipped his pen hastily in 
the nearest inkstandand began to write. But he had scarcely 
marked the paper when he started backin a panic. 
'Whywhat the devil's this?' he said. 'It's bloody!' 
He had dipped the penas another moment showedinto red ink. But 
he attached a strange degree of importance to the mistake. He asked 
how it had come therewho had brought itwhy it had been brought; 
and looked at Montagueat firstas if he thought he had put a 
trick upon him. Even when he used a different penand the right 
inkhe made some scratches on another paper firstas half 
believing they would turn red also. 
'Black enoughthis time' he saidhanding the note to Montague. 
'Good-bye.' 
'Going now! how do you mean to get away from here?' 
'I shall cross early in the morning to the high roadbefore you are 
out of bed; and catch the day-coachgoing up. Good-bye!' 
'You are in a hurry!' 
'I have something to do' said Jonas. 'Good-bye!' 
His friend looked after him as he went outin surprisewhich 
gradually gave place to an air of satisfaction and relief. 
'It happens all the better. It brings about what I wantedwithout 
any difficulty. I shall travel home alone.' 
CHAPTER FORTY-FIVE 
IN WHICH TOM PINCH AND HIS SISTER TAKE A LITTLE PLEASURE; BUT QUITE 
IN A DOMESTIC WAYAND WITH NO CEREMONY ABOUT IT 
Tom Pinch and his sister having to partfor the dispatch of the 
morning's businessimmediately after the dispersion of the other 
actors in the scene upon the wharf with which the reader has been 
already made acquaintedhad no opportunity of discussing the 
subject at that time. But Tomin his solitary officeand Ruthin 
the triangular parlourthought about nothing else all day; and
when their hour of meeting in the afternoon approachedthey were 
very full of itto be sure. 
There was a little plot between themthat Tom should always come 
out of the Temple by one way; and that was past the fountain. 
Coming through Fountain Courthe was just to glance down the steps 
leading into Garden Courtand to look once all round him; and if 
Ruth had come to meet himthere he would see her; not sauntering
you understand (on account of the clerks)but coming briskly up
with the best little laugh upon her face that ever played in 
opposition to the fountainand beat it all to nothing. Forfifty 
to oneTom had been looking for her in the wrong directionand had 
quite given her upwhile she had been tripping towards him from the 
first; jingling that little reticule of hers (with all the keys in 
it) to attract his wandering observation. 
Whether there was life enough left in the slow vegetation of 
Fountain Court for the smoky shrubs to have any consciousness of the 
brightest and purest-hearted little woman in the worldis a 
question for gardenersand those who are learned in the loves of 
plants. Butthat it was a good thing for that same paved yard to 
have such a delicate little figure flitting through it; that it 
passed like a smile from the grimy old housesand the worn 
flagstonesand left them dullerdarkersterner than before; there 
is no sort of doubt. The Temple fountain might have leaped up 
twenty feet to greet the spring of hopeful maidenhoodthat in her 
person stole onsparklingthrough the dry and dusty channels of 
the Law; the chirping sparrowsbred in Temple chinks and crannies
might have held their peace to listen to imaginary skylarksas so 
fresh a little creature passed; the dingy boughsunused to droop
otherwise than in their puny growthmight have bent down in a 
kindred gracefulness to shed their benedictions on her graceful 
head; old love lettersshut up in iron boxes in the neighbouring 
officesand made of no account among the heaps of family papers 
into which they had strayedand of whichin their degeneracythey 
formed a partmight have stirred and fluttered with a moment's 
recollection of their ancient tendernessas she went lightly by. 
Anything might have happened that did not happenand never will
for the love of Ruth. 
Something happenedtooupon the afternoon of which the history 
treats. Not for her love. Oh no! quite by accidentand without 
the least reference to her at all. 
Either she was a little too soonor Tom was a little too late--she 
was so precise in generalthat she timed it to half a minute--but 
no Tom was there. Well! But was anybody else therethat she 
blushed so deeplyafter looking roundand tripped off down the 
steps with such unusual expedition? 
Whythe fact isthat Mr Westlock was passing at that moment. The 
Temple is a public thoroughfare; they may write up on the gates that 
it is notbut so long as the gates are left open it isand will 
be; and Mr Westlock had as good a right to be there as anybody else. 
But why did she run awaythen? Not being ill dressedfor she was 
much too neat for thatwhy did she run away? The brown hair that 
had fallen down beneath her bonnetand had one impertinent imp of a 
false flower clinging to itboastful of its licence before all men
THAT could not have been the causefor it looked charming. Oh! 
foolishpantingfrightened little heartwhy did she run away! 
Merrily the tiny fountain playedand merrily the dimples sparkled 
on its sunny face. John Westlock hurried after her. Softly the 
whispering water broke and fell; as roguishly the dimples twinkled
as he stole upon her footsteps. 
Ohfoolishpantingtimid little heartwhy did she feign to be 
unconscious of his coming! Why wish herself so far awayyet be so 
flutteringly happy there! 
'I felt sure it was you' said Johnwhen he overtook her in the 
sanctuary of Garden Court. 'I knew I couldn't be mistaken.' 
She was SO surprised. 
'You are waiting for your brother' said John. 'Let me bear you 
company.' 
So light was the touch of the coy little handthat he glanced down 
to assure himself he had it on his arm. But his glancestopping 
for an instant at the bright eyesforgot its first designand went 
no farther. 
They walked up and down three or four timesspeaking about Tom and 
his mysterious employment. Now that was a very natural and innocent 
subjectsurely. Then whywhenever Ruth lifted up her eyesdid 
she let them fall again immediatelyand seek the uncongenial 
pavement of the court? They were not such eyes as shun the light; 
they were not such eyes as require to be hoarded to enhance their 
value. They were much too precious and too genuine to stand in need 
of arts like those. Somebody must have been looking at them! 
They found out Tomthoughquickly enough. This pair of eyes 
descried him in the distancethe moment he appeared. He was 
staring about himas usualin all directions but the right one; 
and was as obstinate in not looking towards themas if he had 
intended it. As it was plain thatbeing left to himselfhe would 
walk away homeJohn Westlock darted off to stop him. 
This made the approach of poor little Ruthby herselfone of the 
most embarrassing of circumstances. There was Tommanifesting 
extreme surprise (he had no presence of mindthat Tomon small 
occasions); there was Johnmaking as light of it as he couldbut 
explaining at the same time with most unnecessary elaboration; and 
here was shecoming towards themwith both of them looking at her
conscious of blushing to a terrible extentbut trying to throw up 
her eyebrows carelesslyand pout her rosy lipsas if she were the 
coolest and most unconcerned of little women. 
Merrily the fountain plashed and plasheduntil the dimplesmerging 
into one anotherswelled into a general smilethat covered the 
whole surface of the basin. 
'What an extraordinary meeting!' said Tom. 'I should never have 
dreamed of seeing you two together here.' 
'Quite accidental' John was heard to murmur. 
'Exactly' cried Tom; 'that's what I meanyou know. If it wasn't 
accidentalthere would be nothing remarkable in it.' 
'To be sure' said John. 
'Such an out-of-the-way place for you to have met in' pursued Tom
quite delighted. 'Such an unlikely spot!' 
John rather disputed that. On the contraryhe considered it a very 
likely spotindeed. He was constantly passing to and fro therehe 
said. He shouldn't wonder if it were to happen again. His only 
wonder wasthat it had never happened before. 
By this time Ruth had got round on the farther side of her brother
and had taken his arm. She was squeezing it nowas much as to say 
'Are you going to stop here all dayyou dearoldblundering Tom?' 
Tom answered the squeeze as if it had been a speech. 'John' he 
said'if you'll give my sister your armwe'll take her between us
and walk on. I have a curious circumstance to relate to you. Our 
meeting could not have happened better.' 
Merrily the fountain leaped and dancedand merrily the smiling 
dimples twinkled and expanded more and moreuntil they broke into a 
laugh against the basin's rimand vanished. 
'Tom' said his friendas they turned into the noisy street'I 
have a proposition to make. It isthat you and your sister--if she 
will so far honour a poor bachelor's dwelling--give me a great 
pleasureand come and dine with me.' 
'Whatto-day?' cried Tom. 
'Yesto-day. It's close byyou know. PrayMiss Pinchinsist 
upon it. It will be very disinterestedfor I have nothing to give 
you.' 
'Oh! you must not believe thatRuth' said Tom. 'He is the most 
tremendous fellowin his housekeepingthat I ever heard offor a 
single man. He ought to be Lord Mayor. Well! what do you say? 
Shall we go?' 
'If you pleaseTom' rejoined his dutiful little sister. 
'But I mean' said Tomregarding her with smiling admiration; 'is 
there anything you ought to wearand haven't got? I am sure I 
don't knowJohn; she may not be able to take her bonnet offfor 
anything I can tell.' 
There was a great deal of laughing at thisand there were divers 
compliments from John Westlock--not compliments HE said at least 
(and really he was right)but goodplainhonest truthswhich no 
one could deny. Ruth laughedand all thatbut she made no 
objection; so it was an engagement. 
'If I had known it a little sooner' said John'I would have tried 
another pudding. Not in rivalry; but merely to exalt that famous 
one. I wouldn't on any account have had it made with suet.' 
'Why not?' asked Tom. 
'Because that cookery-book advises suet' said John Westlock; 'and 
ours was made with flour and eggs.' 
'Oh good gracious!' cried Tom. 'Ours was made with flour and eggs
was it? Hahaha! A beefsteak pudding made with flour and eggs! 
Why anybody knows better than that. I know better than that! Ha
haha!' 
It is unnecessary to say that Tom had been present at the making of 
the puddingand had been a devoted believer in it all through. But 
he was so delighted to have this joke against his busy little sister 
and was tickled to that degree at having found her outthat he 
stopped in Temple Bar to laugh; and it was no more to Tomthat he 
was anathematized and knocked about by the surly passengersthan it 
would have been to a post; for he continued to exclaim with unabated 
good humour'flour and eggs! A beefsteak pudding made with flour 
and eggs!' until John Westlock and his sister fairly ran away from 
himand left him to have his laugh out by himself; which he had
and then came dodging across the crowded street to themwith such 
sweet temper and tenderness (it was quite a tender joke of Tom's) 
beaming in his faceGod bless itthat it might have purified the 
airthough Temple Bar had beenas in the golden days gone by
embellished with a row of rotting human heads. 
There are snug chambers in those Inns where the bachelors liveand
for the desolate fellows they pretend to beit is quite surprising 
how well they get on. John was very pathetic on the subject of his 
dreary lifeand the deplorable makeshifts and apologetic 
contrivances it involvedbut he really seemed to make himself 
pretty comfortable. His rooms were the perfection of neatness and 
convenience at any rate; and if he were anything but comfortable
the fault was certainly not theirs. 
He had no sooner ushered Tom and his sister into his best room 
(where there was a beautiful little vase of fresh flowers on the 
tableall ready for Ruth. Just as if he had expected herTom 
said)thanseizing his hathe bustled out againin his most 
energetically bustlingway; and presently came hurrying backas 
they saw through the half-opened doorattended by a fiery-faced 
matron attired in a crunched bonnetwith particularly long strings 
to it hanging down her back; in conjunction with whom he instantly 
began to lay the cloth for dinnerpolishing up the wine-glasses 
with his own handsbrightening the silver top of the pepper-caster 
on his coat-sleevedrawing corks and filling decanterswith a 
skill and expedition that were quite dazzling. And as ifin the 
course of this rubbing and polishinghe had rubbed an enchanted 
lamp or a magic ringobedient to which there were twenty thousand 
supernatural slaves at leastsuddenly there appeared a being in a 
white waistcoatcarrying under his arm a napkinand attended by 
another being with an oblong box upon his headfrom which a 
banquetpiping hotwas taken out and set upon the table. 
Salmonlambpeasinnocent young potatoesa cool saladsliced 
cucumbera tender ducklingand a tart--all there. They all came at 
the right time. Where they came fromdidn't appear; but the oblong 
box was constantly going and comingand making its arrival known to 
the man in the white waistcoat by bumping modestly against the 
outside of the door; forafter its first appearanceit entered the 
room no more. He was never surprisedthis man; he never seemed to 
wonder at the extraordinary things he found in the boxbut took 
them out with a face expressive of a steady purpose and impenetrable 
characterand put them on the table. He was a kind man; gentle in 
his mannersand much interested in what they ate and drank. He was 
a learned manand knew the flavour of John Westlock's private 
sauceswhich he softly and feelingly describedas he handed the 
little bottles round. He was a grave manand a noiseless; for 
dinner being doneand wine and fruit arranged upon the boardhe 
vanishedbox and alllike something that had never been. 
'Didn't I say he was a tremendous fellow in his housekeeping?' cried 
Tom. 'Bless my soul! It's wonderful.' 
'AhMiss Pinch' said John. 'This is the bright side of the life 
we lead in such a place. It would be a dismal lifeindeedif it 
didn't brighten up to-day' 
'Don't believe a word he says' cried Tom. 'He lives here like a 
monarchand wouldn't change his mode of life for any consideration. 
He only pretends to grumble.' 
NoJohn really did not appear to pretend; for he was uncommonly 
earnest in his desire to have it understood that he was as dull
solitaryand uncomfortable on ordinary occasions as an unfortunate 
young man couldin reasonbe. It was a wretched lifehe saida 
miserable life. He thought of getting rid of the chambers as soon 
as possible; and meantin factto put a bill up very shortly. 
'Well' said Tom Pinch'I don't know where you can goJohnto be 
more comfortable. That's all I can say. What do YOU sayRuth?' 
Ruth trifled with the cherries on her plateand said that she 
thought Mr Westlock ought to be quite happyand that she had no 
doubt he was. 
Ahfoolishpantingfrightened little hearthow timidly she said 
it! 
'But you are forgetting what you had to tellTom; what occurred 
this morning' she added in the same breath. 
'So I am' said Tom. 'We have been so talkative on other topics that 
I declare I have not had time to think of it. I'll tell it you at 
onceJohnin case I should forget it altogether.' 
On Tom's relating what had passed upon the wharfhis friend was 
very much surprisedand took such a great interest in the narrative 
as Tom could not quite understand. He believed he knew the old lady 
whose acquaintance they had madehe said; and that he might venture 
to sayfrom their description of herthat her name was Gamp. But 
of what nature the communication could have been which Tom had borne 
so unexpectedly; why its delivery had been entrusted to him; how it 
happened that the parties were involved together; and what secret 
lay at the bottom of the whole affair; perplexed him very much. Tom 
had been sure of his taking some interest in the matter; but was not 
prepared for the strong interest he showed. It held John Westlock 
to the subject even after Ruth had left the room; and evidently made 
him anxious to pursue it further than as a mere subject of 
conversation. 
'I shall remonstrate with my landlordof course' said Tom; 'though 
he is a very singular secret sort of manand not likely to afford 
me much satisfaction; even if he knew what was in the letter.' 
'Which you may swear he did' John interposed. 
'You think so?' 
'I am certain of it.' 
'Well!' said Tom'I shall remonstrate with him when I see him (he 
goes in and out in a strange waybut I will try to catch him 
tomorrow morning)on his having asked me to execute such an 
unpleasant commission. And I have been thinkingJohnthat if I 
went down to Mrs What's-her-name's in the Citywhere I was before
you know--Mrs Todgers's--to-morrow morningI might find poor Mercy 
Pecksniff thereperhapsand be able to explain to her how I came 
to have any hand in the business.' 
'You are perfectly rightTom' returned his friendafter a short 
interval of reflection. 'You cannot do better. It is quite clear 
to me that whatever the business isthere is little good in it; and 
it is so desirable for you to disentangle yourself from any 
appearance of willful connection with itthat I would counsel you to 
see her husbandif you canand wash your hands of it by a plain 
statement of the facts. I have a misgiving that there is something 
dark at work hereTom. I will tell you whyat another time; when 
I have made an inquiry or two myself.' 
All this sounded very mysterious to Tom Pinch. But as he knew he 
could rely upon his friendhe resolved to follow this advice. 
Ahbut it would have been a good thing to have had a coat of 
invisibilitywherein to have watched little Ruthwhen she was left 
to herself in John Westlock's chambersand John and her brother 
were talking thusover their wine! The gentle way in which she 
tried to get up a little conversation with the fiery-faced matron in 
the crunched bonnetwho was waiting to attend her; after making a 
desperate rally in regard of her dressand attiring herself in a 
washed-out yellow gown with sprigs of the same upon itso that it 
looked like a tesselated work of pats of butter. That would have 
been pleasant. The grim and griffin-like inflexibility with which 
the fiery-faced matron repelled these engaging advancesas 
proceeding from a hostile and dangerous powerwho could have no 
business thereunless it were to deprive her of a customeror 
suggest what became of the self-consuming tea and sugarand other 
general trifles. That would have been agreeable. The bashful
winningglorious curiositywith which little Ruthwhen fiery-face 
was gonepeeped into the books and nick-nacks that were lying 
aboutand had a particular interest in some delicate paper-matches 
on the chimney-piece; wondering who could have made them. That 
would have been worth seeing. The faltering hand with which she 
tied those flowers together; with whichalmost blushing at her own 
fair self as imaged in the glassshe arranged them in her breast
and looking at them with her head asidenow half resolved to take 
them out againnow half resolved to leave them where they were. 
That would have been delightful! 
John seemed to think it all delightful; for coming in with Tom to 
teahe took his seat beside her like a man enchanted. And when the 
tea-service had been removedand Tomsitting down at the piano
became absorbed in some of his old organ tuneshe was still beside 
her at the open windowlooking out upon the twilight. 
There is little enough to see in Furnival's Inn. It is a shady
quiet placeechoing to the footsteps of the stragglers who have 
business there; and rather monotonous and gloomy on summer 
evenings. What gave it such a charm to themthat they remained at 
the window as unconscious of the flight of time as Tom himselfthe 
dreamerwhile the melodies which had so often soothed his spirit 
were hovering again about him! What power infused into the fading 
lightthe gathering darkness; the stars that here and there 
appeared; the evening airthe City's hum and stirthe very chiming 
of the old church clocks; such exquisite enthrallmentthat the 
divinest regions of the earth spread out before their eyes could not 
have held them captive in a stronger chain? 
The shadows deepeneddeepenedand the room became quite dark. 
Still Tom's fingers wandered over the keys of the pianoand still 
the window had its pair of tenants. At lengthher hand upon his 
shoulderand her breath upon his foreheadroused Tom from his 
reverie. 
'Dear me!' he crieddesisting with a start. 'I am afraid I have 
been very inconsiderate and unpolite.' 
Tom little thought how much consideration and politeness he had 
shown! 
'Sing something to usmy dear' said Tom. 'let us hear your voice. 
Come!' 
John Westlock added his entreaties with such earnestness that a 
flinty heart alone could have resisted them. Hers was not a flinty 
heart. Ohdear no! Quite another thing. 
So down she satand in a pleasant voice began to sing the ballads 
Tom loved well. Old rhyming storieswith here and there a pause 
for a few simple chordssuch as a harper might have sounded in the 
ancient time while looking upward for the current of some halfremembered 
legend; words of old poetswedded to such measures that 
the strain of music might have been the poet's breathgiving 
utterance and expression to his thoughts; and now a melody so joyous 
and light-heartedthat the singer seemed incapable of sadness
until in her inconstancy (oh wicked little singer!) she relapsed
and broke the listeners' hearts again; these were the simple means 
she used to please them. And that these simple means prevailedand 
she DID please themlet the still darkened chamberand its longdeferred 
illumination witness. 
The candles came at lastand it was time for moving homeward. 
Cutting paper carefullyand rolling it about the stalks of those 
same flowersoccasioned some delay; but even this was done in time
and Ruth was ready. 
'Good night!' said Tom. 'A memorable and delightful visitJohn! 
Good night!' 
John thought he would walk with them. 
'Nono. Don't!' said Tom. 'What nonsense! We can get home very 
well alone. I couldn't think of taking you out.' 
But John said he would rather. 
'Are you sure you would rather?' said Tom. 'I am afraid you only 
say so out of politeness.' 
John being quite suregave his arm to Ruthand led her out. 
Fiery-facewho was again in attendanceacknowledged her departure 
with so cold a curtsey that it was hardly visible; and cut Tomdead. 
Their host was bent on walking the whole distanceand would not 
listen to Tom's dissuasions. Happy timehappy walkhappy parting
happy dreams! But there are some sweet day-dreamsso there are that 
put the visions of the night to shame. 
Busily the Temple fountain murmured in the moonlightwhile Ruth lay 
sleepingwith her flowers beside her; and John Westlock sketched a 
portrait--whose?--from memory. 
CHAPTER FORTY-SIX 
IN WHICH MISS PECKSNIFF MAKES LOVEMR JONAS MAKES WRATHMRS GAMP 
MAKES TEAAND MR CHUFFEY MAKES BUSINESS 
On the next day's official duties coming to a closeTom hurried 
home without losing any time by the way; and after dinner and a 
short rest sallied out againaccompanied by Ruthto pay his 
projected visit to Todgers's. Tom took Ruth with himnot only 
because it was a great pleasure to him to have her for his companion 
whenever he couldbut because he wished her to cherish and comfort 
poor Merry; which shefor her own part (having heard the wretched 
history of that young wife from Tom)was all eagerness to do. 
'She was so glad to see me' said Tom'that I am sure she will be 
glad to see you. Your sympathy is certain to be much more delicate 
and acceptable than mine.' 
'I am very far from being certain of thatTom' she replied; 'and 
indeed you do yourself an injustice. Indeed you do. But I hope she 
may like meTom.' 
'Ohshe is sure to do that!' cried Tomconfidently. 
'What a number of friends I should haveif everybody was of your 
way of thinking. Shouldn't ITomdear?' said his little sister 
pinching him upon the cheek. 
Tom laughedand said that with reference to this particular case he 
had no doubt at all of finding a disciple in Merry. 'For you 
women' said Tom'you womenmy dearare so kindand in your 
kindness have such nice perception; you know so well how to be 
affectionate and full of solicitude without appearing to be; your 
gentleness of feeling is like your touch so light and easythat the 
one enables you to deal with wounds of the mind as tenderly as the 
other enables you to deal with wounds of the body. You are such--' 
'My goodnessTom!' his sister interposed. 'You ought to fall in 
love immediately.' 
Tom put this observation off good humouredlybut somewhat gravely 
too; and they were soon very chatty again on some other subject. 
As they were passing through a street in the Citynot very far from 
Mrs Todgers's place of residenceRuth checked Tom before the window 
of a large Upholstery and Furniture Warehouseto call his attention 
to something very magnificent and ingeniousdisplayed there to the 
best advantagefor the admiration and temptation of the public. 
Tom had hazarded some most erroneous and extravagantly wrong guess 
in relation to the price of this articleand had joined his sister 
in laughing heartily at his mistakewhen he pressed her arm in his
and pointed to two persons at a little distancewho were looking in 
at the same window with a deep interest in the chests of drawers and 
tables. 
'Hush!' Tom whispered. 'Miss Pecksniffand the young gentleman to 
whom she is going to be married.' 
'Why does he look as if he was going to be buriedTom?' inquired 
his little sister. 
'Whyhe is naturally a dismal young gentlemanI believe' said Tom 
'but he is very civil and inoffensive.' 
'I suppose they are furnishing their house' whispered Ruth. 
'YesI suppose they are' replied Tom. 'We had better avoid 
speaking to them.' 
They could not very well avoid looking at themhoweverespecially 
as some obstruction on the pavementat a little distancehappened 
to detain them where they were for a few moments. Miss Pecksniff 
had quite the air of having taken the unhappy Moddle captiveand 
brought him up to the contemplation of the furniture like a lamb to 
the altar. He offered no resistancebut was perfectly resigned and 
quiet. The melancholy depicted in the turn of his languishing head
and in his dejected attitudewas extreme; and though there was a 
full-sized four-post bedstead in the windowsuch a tear stood 
trembling in his eye as seemed to blot it out. 
'Augustusmy love' said Miss Pecksniff'ask the price of the 
eight rosewood chairsand the loo table.' 
'Perhaps they are ordered already' said Augustus. 'Perhaps they 
are Another's.' 
'They can make more like themif they are' rejoined Miss 
Pecksniff. 
'Nonothey can't' said Moddle. 'It's impossible!' 
He appearedfor the momentto be quite overwhelmed and stupefied 
by the prospect of his approaching happiness; but recovering
entered the shop. He returned immediatelysaying in a tone of 
despair 
'Twenty-four pound ten!' 
Miss Pecksniffturning to receive this announcementbecame 
conscious of the observation of Tom Pinch and his sister. 
'Ohreally!' cried Miss Pecksniffglancing about heras if for 
some convenient means of sinking into the earth. 'Upon my wordI-there 
never was such a--to think that one should be so very--Mr 
Augustus ModdleMiss Pinch!' 
Miss Pecksniff was quite gracious to Miss Pinch in this triumphant 
introduction; exceedingly gracious. She was more than gracious; she 
was kind and cordial. Whether the recollection of the old service 
Tom had rendered her in knocking Mr Jonas on the head had wrought 
this change in her opinions; or whether her separation from her 
parent had reconciled her to all human-kindor to all that 
interesting portion of human-kind which was not friendly to him; or 
whether the delight of having some new female acquaintance to whom 
to communicate her interesting prospects was paramount to every 
other consideration; cordial and kind Miss Pecksniff was. And twice 
Miss Pecksniff kissed Miss Pinch upon the cheek. 
'Augustus--Mr Pinchyou know. My dear girl!' said Miss Pecksniff
aside. 'I never was so ashamed in my life.' 
Ruth begged her not to think of it. 
'I mind your brother less than anybody else' simpered Miss 
Pecksniff. 'But the indelicacy of meeting any gentleman under such 
circumstances! Augustusmy childdid you--' 
Here Miss Pecksniff whispered in his ear. The suffering Moddle 
repeated: 
'Twenty-four pound ten!' 
'Ohyou silly man! I don't mean them' said Miss Pecksniff. 'I am 
speaking of the--' 
Here she whispered him again. 
'If it's the same patterned chintz as that in the window; thirtytwo
twelvesix' said Moddlewith a sigh. 'And very dear.' 
Miss Pecksniff stopped him from giving any further explanation by 
laying her hand upon his lipsand betraying a soft embarrassment. 
She then asked Tom Pinch which way he was going. 
'I was going to see if I could find your sister' answered Tom'to 
whom I wished to say a few words. We were going to Mrs Todgers's
where I had the pleasure of seeing her before.' 
'It's of no use your going onthen' said Cherry'for we have not 
long left there; and I know she is not at home. But I'll take you 
to my sister's houseif you please. Augustus--Mr ModdleI mean-and 
myselfare on our way to tea therenow. You needn't think of 
HIM' she addednodding her head as she observed some hesitation on 
Tom's part. 'He is not at home.' 
'Are you sure?' asked Tom. 
'OhI am quite sure of that. I don't want any MORE revenge' said 
Miss Pecksniffexpressively. 'ButreallyI must beg you two 
gentlemen to walk onand allow me to follow with Miss Pinch. My 
dearI never was so taken by surprise!' 
In furtherance of this bashful arrangementModdle gave his arm to 
Tom; and Miss Pecksniff linked her own in Ruth's. 
'Of coursemy love' said Miss Pecksniff'it would be useless for 
me to disguiseafter what you have seenthat I am about to be 
united to the gentleman who is walking with your brother. It would 
be in vain to conceal it. What do you think of him? Praylet me 
have your candid opinion.' 
Ruth intimated thatas far as she could judgehe was a very 
eligible swain. 
'I am curious to know' said Miss Pecksniffwith loquacious 
frankness'whether you have observedor fanciedin this very 
short space of timethat he is of a rather melancholy turn?' 
'So very short a time' Ruth pleaded. 
'Nono; but don't let that interfere with your answer' returned 
Miss Pecksniff. 'I am curious to hear what you say.' 
Ruth acknowledged that he had impressed her at first sight as 
looking 'rather low.' 
'Noreally?' said Miss Pecksniff. 'Well! that is quite remarkable! 
Everybody says the same. Mrs Todgers says the same; and Augustus 
informs me that it is quite a joke among the gentlemen in the house. 
Indeedbut for the positive commands I have laid upon himI 
believe it would have been the occasion of loaded fire-arms being 
resorted to more than once. What do you think is the cause of his 
appearance of depression?' 
Ruth thought of several things; such as his digestionhis tailor
his motherand the like. But hesitating to give utterance to any 
one of themshe refrained from expressing an opinion. 
'My dear' said Miss Pecksniff; 'I shouldn't wish it to be known
but I don't mind mentioning it to youhaving known your brother for 
so many years--I refused Augustus three times. He is of a most 
amiable and sensitive naturealways ready to shed tears if you look 
at himwhich is extremely charming; and he has never recovered the 
effect of that cruelty. For it WAS cruel' said Miss Pecksniff
with a self-conviction candour that might have adorned the diadem of 
her own papa. 'There is no doubt of it. I look back upon my 
conduct now with blushes. I always liked him. I felt that he was not 
to me what the crowd of young men who had made proposals had been
but something very different. Then what right had I to refuse him 
three times?' 
'It was a severe trial of his fidelityno doubt' said Ruth. 
'My dear' returned Miss Pecksniff. 'It was wrong. But such is the 
caprice and thoughtlessness of our sex! Let me be a warning to you. 
Don't try the feelings of any one who makes you an offeras I have 
tried the feelings of Augustus; but if you ever feel towards a 
person as I really felt towards himat the very time when I was 
driving him to distractionlet that feeling find expressionif 
that person throws himself at your feetas Augustus Moddle did at 
mine. Think' said Miss Pecksniff'what my feelings would have 
beenif I had goaded him to suicideand it had got into the 
papers!' 
Ruth observed that she would have been full of remorseno doubt. 
'Remorse!' cried Miss Pecksniffin a sort of snug and comfortable 
penitence. 'What my remorse is at this momenteven after making 
reparation by accepting himit would be impossible to tell you! 
Looking back upon my giddy selfmy dearnow that I am sobered down 
and made thoughtfulby treading on the very brink of matrimony; and 
contemplating myself as I was when I was like what you are now; I 
shudder. I shudder. What is the consequence of my past conduct? 
Until Augustus leads me to the altar he is not sure of me. I have 
blighted and withered the affections of his heart to that extent 
that he is not sure of me. I see that preying on his mind and 
feeding on his vitals. What are the reproaches of my conscience
when I see this in the man I love!' 
Ruth endeavoured to express some sense of her unbounded and 
flattering confidence; and presumed that she was going to be married 
soon. 
'Very soon indeed' returned Miss Pecksniff. 'As soon as our house 
is ready. We are furnishing now as fast as we can.' 
In the same vein of confidence Miss Pecksniff ran through a general 
inventory of the articles that were already bought with the articles 
that remained to be purchased; what garments she intended to be 
married inand where the ceremony was to be performed; and gave 
Miss Pinchin short (as she told her)early and exclusive 
information on all points of interest connected with the event. 
While this was going forward in the rearTom and Mr Moddle walked 
onarm in armin the frontin a state of profound silencewhich 
Tom at last broke; after thinking for a long time what he could say 
that should refer to an indifferent topicin respect of which he 
might relywith some degree of certaintyon Mr Moddle's bosom 
being unruffled. 
'I wonder' said Tom'that in these crowded streets the footpassengers 
are not oftener run over.' 
Mr Moddlewith a dark lookreplied: 
'The drivers won't do it.' 
'Do you mean?' Tom began-
'That there are some men' interrupted Moddlewith a hollow laugh
'who can't get run over. They live a charmed life. Coal waggons 
recoil from themand even cabs refuse to run them down. Ah!' said 
Augustusmarking Tom's astonishment. 'There are such men. One of 
'em is a friend of mine.' 
'Upon my word and honour' thought Tom'this young gentleman is in 
a state of mind which is very serious indeed!' Abandoning all idea 
of conversationhe did not venture to say another wordbut he was 
careful to keep a tight hold upon Augustus's armlest he should fly 
into the roadand making another and a more successful attempt
should get up a private little Juggernaut before the eyes of his 
betrothed. Tom was so afraid of his committing this rash actthat 
he had scarcely ever experienced such mental relief as when they 
arrived in safety at Mrs Jonas Chuzzlewit's house. 
'Walk upprayMr Pinch' said Miss Pecksniff. For Tom halted
irresolutelyat the door. 
'I am doubtful whether I should be welcome' replied Tom'orI 
ought rather to sayI have no doubt about it. I will send up a 
messageI think.' 
'But what nonsense that is!' returned Miss Pecksniffspeaking apart 
to Tom. 'He is not at homeI am certain. I know he is not; and 
Merry hasn't the least idea that you ever--' 
'No' interrupted Tom. 'Nor would I have her know iton any 
account. I am not so proud of that scuffleI assure you.' 
'Ahbut then you are so modestyou see' returned Miss Pecksniff
with a smile. 'But pray walk up. If you don't wish her to know it
and do wish to speak to herpray walk up. Pray walk upMiss 
Pinch. Don't stand here.' 
Tom still hesitated for he felt that he was in an awkward position. 
But Cherry passing him at this junctureand leading his sister 
upstairsand the house-door being at the same time shut behind 
themhe followed without quite knowing whether it was well or illjudged 
so to do. 
'Merrymy darling!' said the fair Miss Pecksniffopening the door 
of the usual sitting-room. 'Here are Mr Pinch and his sister come 
to see you! I thought we should find you hereMrs Todgers! How do 
you doMrs Gamp? And how do you doMr Chuffeythough it's of no 
use asking you the questionI am well aware.' 
Honouring each of these partiesas she severally addressed them
with an acid smileMiss Charity presented 'Mr Moddle.' 
'I believe you have seen HIM before' she pleasantly observed. 
'Augustusmy sweet childbring me a chair.' 
The sweet child did as he was told; and was then about to retire 
into a corner to mourn in secretwhen Miss Charitycalling him in 
an audible whisper a 'little pet' gave him leave to come and sit 
beside her. It is to be hopedfor the general cheerfulness of 
mankindthat such a doleful little pet was never seen as Mr Moddle 
looked when he complied. So despondent was his temperthat he 
showed no outward thrill of ecstasy when Miss Pecksniff placed her 
lily hand in hisand concealed this mark of her favour from the 
vulgar gaze by covering it with a corner of her shawl. Indeedhe 
was infinitely more rueful then than he had been before; and
sitting uncomfortably upright in his chairsurveyed the company 
with watery eyeswhich seemed to saywithout the aid of language
'Ohgood gracious! look here! Won't some kind Christian help me!' 
But the ecstasies of Mrs Gamp were sufficient to have furnished 
forth a score of young lovers; and they were chiefly awakened by the 
sight of Tom Pinch and his sister. Mrs Gamp was a lady of that 
happy temperament which can be ecstatic without any other 
stimulating cause than a general desire to establish a large and 
profitable connection. She added daily so many strings to her bow
that she made a perfect harp of it; and upon that instrument she now 
began to perform an extemporaneous concerto. 
'Whygoodness me!' she said'Mrs Chuzzlewit! To think as I should 
see beneath this blessed 'ousewhich well I know itMiss Pecksniff
my sweet young ladyto be a 'ouse as there is not a many likeworse 
luckand wishin' it were not sowhich then this tearful walley 
would be changed into a flowerin' guardianMr Chuffey; to think as 
I should see beneath this indiwidgle roofidentically comin'Mr 
Pinch (I take the libertythough almost unbeknown)and do assure 
you of itsirthe smilinest and sweetest face as everMrs 
ChuzzlewitI see exceptin' yournmy dear good ladyand YOUR good 
lady's toosirMr Moddleif I may make so bold as speak so plain 
of what is plain enough to them as needn't look through millstones
Mrs Todgersto find out wot is wrote upon the wall behind. Which 
no offence is meantladies and gentlemen; none bein' tookI hope. 
To think as I should see that smilinest and sweetest face which me 
and another friend of minetook notice of among the packages down 
London Bridgein this promiscous placeis a surprige in-deed!' 
Having contrivedin this happy mannerto invest every member of 
her audience with an individual share and immediate personal 
interest in her addressMrs Gamp dropped several curtseys to Ruth
and smilingly shaking her head a great many timespursued the 
thread of her discourse: 
'Nowain't we rich in beauty this here joyful arternoonI'm sure. 
I knows a ladywhich her nameI'll not deceive youMrs 
Chuzzlewitis Harrisher husband's brother bein' six foot three
and marked with a mad bull in Wellington boots upon his left armon 
account of his precious mother havin' been worrited by one into a 
shoemaker's shopwhen in a sitiwation which blessed is the man as 
has his quiver full of sechas many times I've said to Gamp when 
words has roge betwixt us on account of the expense--and often have 
I said to Mrs HarrisOh, Mrs Harris, ma'am! your countenance is 
quite a angel's!Whichbut for Pimplesit would be. "NoSairey 
Gamp says she, you best of hard-working and industrious creeturs 
as ever was underpaid at any pricewhich underpaid you arequite 
diff'rent. Harris had it done afore marriage at ten and six she 
says, and wore it faithful next his heart "till the colour run
when the money was declined to be give backand no arrangement 
could be come to. But he never said it was a angel'sSairey
wotever he might have thought." If Mrs Harris's husband was here 
now' said Mrs Gamplooking roundand chuckling as she dropped a 
general curtsey'he'd speak out plainhe wouldand his dear wife 
would be the last to blame him! For if ever a woman lived as know'd 
not wot it was to form a wish to pizon them as had good looksand 
had no reagion give her by the best of husbandsMrs Harris is that 
ev'nly dispogician!' 
With these words the worthy womanwho appeared to have dropped in 
to take tea as a delicate little attentionrather than to have any 
engagement on the premises in an official capacitycrossed to Mr 
Chuffeywho was seated in the same corner as of oldand shook him 
by the shoulder. 
'Rouge yourselfand look up! Come!' said Mrs Gamp. 'Here's 
companyMr Chuffey.' 
'I am sorry for it' cried the old manlooking humbly round the 
room. 'I know I'm in the way. I ask pardonbut I've nowhere else 
to go to. Where is she?' 
Merry went to him. 
'Ah!' said the old manpatting her on the check. 'Here she is. 
Here she is! She's never hard on poor old Chuffey. Poor old Chuff!' 
As she took her seat upon a low chair by the old man's sideand put 
herself within the reach of his handshe looked up once at Tom. It 
was a sad look that she cast upon himthough there was a faint 
smile trembling on her face. It was a speaking lookand Tom knew 
what it said. 'You see how misery has changed me. I can feel for a 
dependant NOWand set some value on his attachment.' 
'Ayeaye!' cried Chuffey in a soothing tone. 'Ayeayeaye! Never 
mind him. It's hard to hearbut never mind him. He'll die one 
day. There are three hundred and sixty-five days in the year--three 
hundred and sixty-six in leap year--and he may die on any one of 
'em.' 
'You're a wearing old souland that's the sacred truth' said Mrs 
Gampcontemplating him from a little distance with anything but 
favouras he continued to mutter to himself. 'It's a pity that you 
don't know wot you sayfor you'd tire your own patience out if you 
didand fret yourself into a happy releage for all as knows you.' 
'His son' murmured the old manlifting up his hand. 'His son!' 
'WellI'm sure!' said Mrs Gamp'you're a-settlin' of itMr 
Chuffey. To your satigefactionsirI hope. But I wouldn't lay a 
new pincushion on it myselfsirthough you ARE so well informed. 
Drat the old creeturhe's a-layin' down the law tolerable 
confidenttoo! A deal he knows of sons! or darters either! Suppose 
you was to favour us with some remarks on twinssirWOULD you be 
so good!' 
The bitter and indignant sarcasm which Mrs Gamp conveyed into these 
taunts was altogether lost on the unconscious Chuffeywho appeared 
to be as little cognizant of their delivery as of his having given 
Mrs Gamp offence. But that high-minded woman being sensitively 
alive to any invasion of her professional provinceand imagining 
that Mr Chuffey had given utterance to some prediction on the 
subject of sonswhich ought to have emanated in the first instance 
from herself as the only lawful authorityor which should at least 
have been on no account proclaimed without her sanction and 
concurrencewas not so easily appeased. She continued to sidle at 
Mr Chuffey with looks of sharp hostilityand to defy him with many 
other ironical remarksuttered in that low key which commonly 
denotes suppressed indignation; until the entrance of the teaboard
and a request from Mrs Jonas that she would make tea at a side-table 
for the party that had unexpectedly assembledrestored her to 
herself. She smiled againand entered on her ministration with her 
own particular urbanity. 
'And quite a family it is to make tea for' said Mrs Gamp; 'and wot 
a happiness to do it! My good young 'ooman'--to the servant-girl-'
p'raps somebody would like to try a new-laid egg or twonot biled 
too hard. Likewaysa few rounds o' buttered toastfirst cuttin' 
off the crustin consequence of tender teethand not too many of 
'em; which Gamp himselfMrs Chuzzlewitat one blowbeing in 
liquorstruck out fourtwo singleand two doubleas was took by 
Mrs Harris for a keepsakeand is carried in her pocket at this 
present houralong with two cramp-bonesa bit o' gingerand a 
grater like a blessed infant's shoein tinwith a little heel to 
put the nutmeg in; as many times I've seen and saidand used for 
candle when requiredwithin the month.' 
As the privileges of the side-table--besides including the small 
prerogatives of sitting next the toastand taking two cups of tea 
to other people's oneand always taking them at a crisisthat is 
to saybefore putting fresh water into the tea-potand after it 
had been standing for some time--also comprehended a full view of 
the companyand an opportunity of addressing them as from a 
rostrumMrs Gamp discharged the functions entrusted to her with 
extreme good-humour and affability. Sometimes resting her saucer on 
the palm of her outspread handand supporting her elbow on the 
tableshe stopped between her sips of tea to favour the circle with 
a smilea winka roll of the heador some other mark of notice; 
and at those periods her countenance was lighted up with a degree of 
intelligence and vivacitywhich it was almost impossible to 
separate from the benignant influence of distilled waters. 
But for Mrs Gampit would have been a curiously silent party. Miss 
Pecksniff only spoke to her Augustusand to him in whispers. 
Augustus spoke to nobodybut sighed for every oneand occasionally 
gave himself such a sounding slap upon the forehead as would make 
Mrs Todgerswho was rather nervousstart in her chair with an 
involuntary exclamation. Mrs Todgers was occupied in knittingand 
seldom spoke. Poor Merry held the hand of cheerful little Ruth 
between her ownand listening with evident pleasure to all she 
saidbut rarely speaking herselfsometimes smiledand sometimes 
kissed her on the cheekand sometimes turned aside to hide the 
tears that trembled in her eyes. Tom felt this change in her so 
muchand was so glad to see how tenderly Ruth dealt with herand 
how she knew and answered to itthat he had not the heart to make 
any movement towards their departurealthough he had long since 
given utterance to all he came to say. 
The old clerksubsiding into his usual stateremained profoundly 
silentwhile the rest of the little assembly were thus occupied
intent upon the dreamswhatever they might bewhich hardly seemed 
to stir the surface of his sluggish thoughts. The bent of these 
dull fancies combining probably with the silent feasting that was 
going on about himand some struggling recollection of the last 
approach to revelry he had witnessedsuggested a strange question 
to his mind. He looked round upon a suddenand said: 
'Who's lying dead upstairs?' 
'No one' said Merryturning to him. 'What is the matter? We are 
all here.' 
'All here!' cried the old man. 'All here! Where is he then--my old 
masterMr Chuzzlewitwho had the only son? Where is he?' 
'Hush! Hush!' said Merryspeaking kindly to him. 'That happened 
long ago. Don't you recollect?' 
'Recollect!' rejoined the old manwith a cry of grief. 'As if I 
could forget! As if I ever could forget!' 
He put his hand up to his face for a moment; and then repeated 
turning round exactly as before: 
'Who's lying dead upstairs?' 
'No one!' said Merry. 
At first he gazed angrily upon heras upon a stranger who 
endeavoured to deceive him; but peering into her faceand seeing 
that it was indeed shehe shook his head in sorrowful compassion. 
'You think not. But they don't tell you. Nonopoor thing! They 
don't tell you. Who are theseand why are they merry-making here
if there is no one dead? Foul play! Go see who it is!' 
She made a sign to them not to speak to himwhich indeed they had 
little inclination to do; and remained silent herself. So did he 
for a short time; but then he repeated the same question with an 
eagerness that had a peculiar terror in it. 
'There's some one dead' he said'or dying; and I want to knows who 
it is. Go seego see! Where's Jonas?' 
'In the country' she replied. 
The old man gazed at her as if he doubted what she saidor had not 
heard her; andrising from his chairwalked across the room and 
upstairswhispering as he went'Foul play!' They heard his 
footsteps overheadgoing up into that corner of the room in which 
the bed stood (it was there old Anthony had died); and then they 
heard him coming down again immediately. His fancy was not so 
strong or wild that it pictured to him anything in the deserted 
bedchamber which was not there; for he returned much calmerand 
appeared to have satisfied himself. 
'They don't tell you' he said to Merry in his quavering voiceas 
he sat down againand patted her upon the head. 'They don't tell 
me either; but I'll watchI'll watch. They shall not hurt you; 
don't be frightened. When you have sat up watchingI have sat up 
watching too. AyeayeI have!' he piped outclenching his weak
shrivelled hand. 'Many a night I have been ready!' 
He said this with such trembling gaps and pauses in his want of 
breathand said it in his jealous secrecy so closely in her ear
that little or nothing of it was understood by the visitors. But 
they had heard and seen enough of the old man to be disquietedand 
to have left their seats and gathered about him; thereby affording 
Mrs Gampwhose professional coolness was not so easily disturbed
an eligible opportunity for concentrating the whole resources of her 
powerful mind and appetite upon the toast and buttertea and eggs. 
She had brought them to bear upon those viands with such vigour that 
her face was in the highest state of inflammationwhen she now 
(there being nothing left to eat or drink) saw fit to interpose. 
'Whyhighty tightysir!' cried Mrs Gamp'is these your manners? 
You want a pitcher of cold water throw'd over you to bring you 
round; that's my beliefand if you was under Betsey Prig you'd have 
ittooI do assure youMr Chuffey. Spanish Flies is the only 
thing to draw this nonsense out of you; and if anybody wanted to do 
you a kindnessthey'd clap a blister of 'em on your headand put a 
mustard poultige on your back. 'Who's deadindeed! It wouldn't be 
no grievous loss if some one wasI think!' 
'He's quiet nowMrs Gamp' said Merry. 'Don't disturb him.' 
'Ohbother the old wictimMrs Chuzzlewit' replied that zealous 
lady'I ain't no patience with him. You give him his own way too 
much by half. A worritin' wexagious creetur!' 
No doubt with the view of carrying out the precepts she enforced
and 'bothering the old wictim' in practice as well as in theoryMrs 
Gamp took him by the collar of his coatand gave him some dozen or 
two of hearty shakes backward and forward in his chair; that 
exercise being considered by the disciples of the Prig school of 
nursing (who are very numerous among professional ladies) as 
exceedingly conducive to reposeand highly beneficial to the 
performance of the nervous functions. Its effect in this instance 
was to render the patient so giddy and addle-headedthat he could 
say nothing more; which Mrs Gamp regarded as the triumph of her art. 
'There!' she saidloosening the old man's cravatin consequence of 
his being rather black in the faceafter this scientific treatment. 
'NowI hopeyou're easy in your mind. If you should turn at all 
faint we can soon rewive yousirI promige you. Bite a person's 
thumbsor turn their fingers the wrong way' said Mrs Gampsmiling 
with the consciousness of at once imparting pleasure and instruction 
to her auditors'and they comes towonderfulLord bless you!' 
As this excellent woman had been formerly entrusted with the care of 
Mr Chuffey on a previous occasionneither Mrs Jonas nor anybody 
else had the resolution to interfere directly with her mode of 
treatment; though all present (Tom Pinch and his sister especially) 
appeared to be disposed to differ from her views. For such is the 
rash boldness of the uninitiatedthat they will frequently set up 
some monstrous abstract principlesuch as humanityor tenderness
or the like idle follyin obstinate defiance of all precedent and 
usage; and will even venture to maintain the same against the 
persons who have made the precedents and established the usageand 
who must therefore be the best and most impartial judges of the 
subject. 
'AhMr Pinch!' said Miss Pecksniff. 'It all comes of this 
unfortunate marriage. If my sister had not been so precipitateand 
had not united herself to a Wretchthere would have been no Mr 
Chuffey in the house.' 
'Hush!' cried Tom. 'She'll hear you.' 
'I should be very sorry if she did hear meMr Pinch' said Cherry
raising her voice a little; 'for it is not in my nature to add to 
the uneasiness of any person; far less of my own sister. I know 
what a sister's duties areMr Pinchand I hope I always showed it 
in my practice. Augustusmy dear childfind my pockethandkerchief
and give it to me.' 
Augustus obeyedand took Mrs Todgers aside to pour his griefs into 
her friendly bosom. 
'I am sureMr Pinch' said Charitylooking after her betrothed and 
glancing at her sister'that I ought to be very grateful for the 
blessings I enjoyand those which are yet in store for me. When I 
contrast Augustus'--here she was modest and embarrased--'whoI 
don't mind saying to youis all softnessmildnessand devotion
with the detestable man who is my sister's husband; and when I 
thinkMr Pinchthat in the dispensations of this worldour cases 
might have been reversed; I have much to be thankful forindeed
and much to make me humble and contented.' 
Contented she might have beenbut humble she assuredly was not. 
Her face and manner experienced something so widely different from 
humilitythat Tom could not help understanding and despising the 
base motives that were working in her breast. He turned awayand 
said to Ruththat it was time for them to go. 
'I will write to your husband' said Tom to Merry'and explain to 
himas I would have done if I had met him herethat if he has 
sustained any inconvenience through my meansit is not my fault; a 
postman not being more innocent of the news he bringsthan I was 
when I handed him that letter.' 
'I thank you!' said Merry. 'It may do some good.' 
She parted tenderly from Ruthwho with her brother was in the act 
of leaving the roomwhen a key was heard in the lock of the door 
belowand immediately afterwards a quick footstep in the passage. 
Tom stoppedand looked at Merry. 
It was Jonasshe said timidly. 
'I had better not meet him on the stairsperhaps' said Tom
drawing his sister's arm through hisand coming back a step or two. 
'I'll wait for him herea moment.' 
He had scarcely said it when the door openedand Jonas entered. 
His wife came forward to receive him; but he put her aside with his 
handand said in a surly tone: 
'I didn't know you'd got a party.' 
As he lookedat the same timeeither by accident or design
towards Miss Pecksniff; and as Miss Pecksniff was only too delighted 
to quarrel with himshe instantly resented it. 
'Oh dear!' she saidrising. 'Pray don't let us intrude upon your 
domestic happiness! That would be a pity. We have taken tea here
sirin your absence; but if you will have the goodness to send us a 
note of the expensereceiptedwe shall be happy to pay it. 
Augustusmy lovewe will goif you please. Mrs Todgersunless 
you wish to remain herewe shall be happy to take you with us. It 
would be a pityindeedto spoil the bliss which this gentleman 
always brings with himespecially into his own home.' 
'Charity! Charity!' remonstrated her sisterin such a heartfelt 
tone that she might have been imploring her to show the cardinal 
virtue whose name she bore. 
'Merrymy dearI am much obliged to you for your advice' returned 
Miss Pecksniffwith a stately scorn--by the wayshe had not been 
offered any--'but I am not his slave--' 
'Nonor wouldn't have been if you could' interrupted Jonas. 'We 
know all about it.' 
'WHAT did you saysir?' cried Miss Pecksniffsharply. 
'Didn't you hear?' retorted Jonaslounging down upon a chair. 'I 
am not a-going to say it again. If you like to stayyou may stay. 
If you like to goyou may go. But if you stayplease to be 
civil.' 
'Beast!' cried Miss Pecksniffsweeping past him. 'Augustus! He is 
beneath your notice!' Augustus had been making some faint and sickly 
demonstration of shaking his fist. 'Come awaychild' screamed 
Miss Pecksniff'I command you!' 
The scream was elicited from her by Augustus manifesting an 
intention to return and grapple with him. But Miss Pecksniff giving 
the fiery youth a pulland Mrs Todgers giving him a push they all 
three tumbled out of the room togetherto the music of Miss 
Pecksniff's shrill remonstrances. 
All this time Jonas had seen nothing of Tom and his sister; for they 
were almost behind the door when he opened itand he had sat down 
with his back towards themand had purposely kept his eyes upon the 
opposite side of the street during his altercation with Miss 
Pecksniffin order that his seeming carelessness might increase the 
exasperation of that wronged young damsel. His wife now faltered 
out that Tom had been waiting to see him; and Tom advanced. 
The instant he presented himselfJonas got up from his chairand 
swearing a great oathcaught it in his graspas if he would have 
felled Tom to the ground with it. As he most unquestionably would 
have donebut that his very passion and surprise made him 
irresoluteand gave Tomin his calmnessan opportunity of being 
heard. 
'You have no cause to be violentsir' said Tom. 'Though what I 
wish to say relates to your own affairsI know nothing of themand 
desire to know nothing of them.' 
Jonas was too enraged to speak. He held the door open; and stamping 
his foot upon the groundmotioned Tom away. 
'As you cannot suppose' said Tom'that I am here with any view of 
conciliating you or pleasing myselfI am quite indifferent to your 
reception of meor your dismissal of me. Hear what I have to say
if you are not a madman! I gave you a letter the other daywhen you 
were about to go abroad.' 
'You Thiefyou did!' retorted Jonas. 'I'll pay you for the 
carriage of it one dayand settle an old score besides. I will!' 
'Tuttut' said Tom'you needn't waste words or threats. I wish 
you to understand--plainly because I would rather keep clear of you 
and everything that concerns you: not because I have the least 
apprehension of your doing me any injury: which would be weak 
indeed--that I am no party to the contents of that letter. That I 
know nothing of it. That I was not even aware that it was to be 
delivered to you; and that I had it from--' 
'By the Lord!' cried Jonasfiercely catching up the chair'I'll 
knock your brains outif you speak another word.' 
Tomneverthelesspersisting in his intentionand opening his lips 
to speak againJonas set upon him like a savage; and in the 
quickness and ferocity of his attack would have surely done him some 
grievous injurydefenceless as he wasand embarrassed by having 
his frightened sister clinging to his armif Merry had not run 
between themcrying to Tom for the love of Heaven to leave the 
house. The agony of this poor creaturethe terror of his sister
the impossibility of making himself audibleand the equal 
impossibility of bearing up against Mrs Gampwho threw herself upon 
him like a feather-bedand forced him backwards down the stairs by 
the mere oppression of her dead weightprevailed. Tom shook the 
dust of that house off his feetwithout having mentioned Nadgett's 
name. 
If the name could have passed his lips; if Jonasin the insolence 
of his vile naturehad never roused him to do that old act of 
manlinessfor which (and not for his last offence) he hated him 
with such malignity; if Jonas could have learnedas then he could 
and would have learnedthrough Tom's meanswhat unsuspected spy 
there was upon him; he would have been saved from the commission of 
a Guilty Deedthen drawing on towards its black accomplishment. 
But the fatality was of his own working; the pit was of his own 
digging; the gloom that gathered round him was the shadow of his own 
life. 
His wife had closed the doorand thrown herself before iton the 
groundupon her knees. She held up her hands to him nowand 
besought him not to be harsh with herfor she had interposed in 
fear of bloodshed. 
'Soso!' said Jonaslooking down upon heras he fetched his 
breath. 'These are your friendsare theywhen I am away? You 
plot and tamper with this sort of peopledo you?' 
'Noindeed! I have no knowledge of these secretsand no clue to 
their meaning. I have never seen him since I left home but once-but 
twice--before to-day.' 
'Oh!' sneered Jonascatching at this correction. 'But oncebut 
twiceeh? Which do you mean? Twice and onceperhaps. Three 
times! How many moreyou lying jade?' 
As he made an angry motion with his handshe shrunk down hastily. 
A suggestive action! Full of a cruel truth! 
'How many more times?' he repeated. 
'No more. The other morningand to-dayand once besides.' 
He was about to retort upon herwhen the clock struck. He started 
stoppedand listened; appearing to revert to some engagementor to 
some other subjecta secret within his own breastrecalled to him 
by this record of the progress of the hours. 
'Don't lie there! Get up!' 
Having helped her to riseor rather hauled her up by the armhe 
went on to say: 
'Listen to meyoung lady; and don't whine when you have no 
occasionor I may make some for you. If I find him in my house 
againor find that you have seen him in anybody else's house
you'll repent it. If you are not deaf and dumb to everything that 
concerns meunless you have my leave to hear and speakyou'll 
repent it. If you don't obey exactly what I orderyou'll repent 
it. Nowattend. What's the time?' 
'It struck eight a minute ago.' 
He looked towards her intently; and saidwith a laboured 
distinctnessas if he had got the words off by heart: 
'I have been travelling day and nightand am tired. I have lost 
some moneyand that don't improve me. Put my supper in the little 
off-room belowand have the truckle-bed made. I shall sleep there 
to-nightand maybe to-morrow night; and if I can sleep all day tomorrow
so much the betterfor I've got trouble to sleep offif I 
can. Keep the house quietand don't call me. Mind! Don't call me. 
Don't let anybody call me. Let me lie there.' 
She said it should be done. Was that all? 
'All what? You must be prying and questioning!' he angrily 
retorted. 'What more do you want to know?' 
'I want to know nothingJonasbut what you tell me. All hope of 
confidence between us has long deserted me!' 
'EcodI should hope so!' he muttered. 
'But if you will tell me what you wishI will be obedient and will 
try to please you. I make no merit of thatfor I have no friend in 
my father or my sisterbut am quite alone. I am very humble and 
submissive. You told me you would break my spiritand you have 
done so. Do not break my heart too!' 
She venturedas she said these wordsto lay her hand upon his 
shoulder. He suffered it to rest therein his exultation; and the 
whole meanabjectsordidpitiful soul of the manlooked at her
for the momentthrough his wicked eyes. 
For the moment only; forwith the same hurried return to something 
within himselfhe bade herin a surly toneshow her obedience by 
executing his commands without delay. When she had withdrawn he 
paced up and down the room several times; but always with his right 
hand clenchedas if it held something; which it did notbeing 
empty. When he was tired of thishe threw himself into a chair
and thoughtfully turned up the sleeve of his right armas if he 
were rather musing about its strength than examining it; buteven 
thenhe kept the hand clenched. 
He was brooding in this chairwith his eyes cast down upon the 
groundwhen Mrs Gamp came in to tell him that the little room was 
ready. Not being quite sure of her reception after interfering in 
the quarrelMrs Gampas a means of interesting and propitiating 
her patronaffected a deep solicitude in Mr Chuffey. 
'How is he nowsir?' she said. 
'Who?' cried Jonasraising his headand staring at her. 
'To be sure!' returned the matron with a smile and a curtsey. 'What 
am I thinking of! You wasn't heresirwhen he was took so strange. 
I never see a poor dear creetur took so strange in all my life
except a patient much about the same ageas I once nussedwhich 
his calling was the custom-'usand his name was Mrs Harris's own 
fatheras pleasant a singerMr Chuzzlewitas ever you heerdwith 
a voice like a Jew's-harp in the bass notesthat it took six men to 
hold at sech timesfoaming frightful.' 
'Chuffeyeh?' said Jonas carelesslyseeing that she went up to the 
oldclerkand looked at him. 'Ha!' 
'The creetur's head's so hot' said Mrs Gamp'that you might heat a 
flat-iron at it. And no wonder I am sureconsiderin' the things he 
said!' 
'Said!' cried Jonas. 'What did he say?' 
Mrs Gamp laid her hand upon her heartto put some check upon its 
palpitationsand turning up her eyes replied in a faint voice: 
'The awfulest thingsMr Chuzzlewitas ever I heerd! Which Mrs 
Harris's father never spoke a word when took sosome does and some 
don'texcept sayin' when he come roundWhere is Sairey Gamp?
But ralysirwhen Mr Chuffey comes to ask who's lyin' dead upstairs
and--' 
'Who's lying dead upstairs!' repeated Jonasstanding aghast. 
Mrs Gamp noddedmade as if she were swallowingand went on. 
'Who's lying dead upstairs; sech was his Bible language; and where 
was Mr Chuzzlewit as had the only son; and when he goes upstairs alooking 
in the beds and wandering about the roomsand comes down 
again a-whisperin' softly to his-self about foul play and that; it 
gives me sech a turnI don't deny itMr Chuzzlewitthat I never 
could have kep myself up but for a little drain o' spiritswhich I 
seldom touchesbut could always wish to know where to findif so 
dispogednever knowin' wot may happen nextthe world bein' so 
uncertain.' 
'Whythe old fool's mad!' cried Jonasmuch disturbed. 
'That's my opinionsir' said Mrs Gamp'and I will not deceive 
you. I believe as Mr Chuffeysirrekwires attention (if I may 
make so bold)and should not have his liberty to wex and worrit 
your sweet lady as he does.' 
'Whywho minds what he says?' retorted Jonas. 
'Still he is worritin' sir' said Mrs Gamp. 'No one don't mind him
but he IS a ill conwenience.' 
'Ecod you're right' said Jonaslooking doubtfully at the subject 
of this conversation. 'I have half a mind to shut him up.' 
Mrs Gamp rubbed her handsand smiledand shook her headand 
sniffed expressivelyas scenting a job. 
'Could you--could you take care of such an idiotnowin some spare 
room upstairs?' asked Jonas. 
'Me and a friend of mineone offone oncould do itMr 
Chuzzlewit' replied the nurse; 'our charges not bein' highbut 
wishin' they was lowerand allowance made considerin' not 
strangers. Me and Betsey Prigsirwould undertake Mr Chuffey 
reasonable' said Mrs Gamplooking at him with her head on one 
sideas if he had been a piece of goodsfor which she was driving 
a bargain; 'and give every satigefaction. Betsey Prig has nussed a 
many lunaciesand well she knows their wayswhich puttin' 'em 
right close afore the firewhen fractiousis the certainest and 
most compoging.' 
While Mrs Gamp discoursed to this effectJonas was walking up and 
down the room againglancing covertly at the old clerkas he did 
so. He now made a stopand said: 
'I must look after himI supposeor I may have him doing some 
mischief. What say you?' 
'Nothin' more likely!' Mrs Gamp replied. 'As well I have 
experiengedI do assure yousir.' 
'Well! Look after him for the presentand--let me see--three days 
from this time let the other woman come hereand we'll see if we 
can make a bargain of it. About nine or ten o'clock at nightsay. 
Keep your eye upon him in the meanwhileand don't talk about it. 
He's as mad as a March hare!' 
'Madder!' cried Mrs Gamp. 'A deal madder!' 
'See to himthen; take care that he does no harm; and recollect 
what I have told you.' 
Leaving Mrs Gamp in the act of repeating all she had been toldand 
of producing in support of her memory and trustworthinessmany 
commendations selected from among the most remarkable opinions of 
the celebrated Mrs Harrishe descended to the little room prepared 
for himand pulling off his coat and his bootsput them outside 
the door before he locked it. In locking ithe was careful so to 
adjust the key as to baffle any curious person who might try to peep 
in through the key-hole; and when he had taken these precautionshe 
sat down to his supper. 
'Mr Chuff' he muttered'it'll be pretty easy to be even with YOU. 
It's of no use doing things by halvesand as long as I stop here
I'll take good care of you. When I'm off you may say what you 
please. But it's a d--d strange thing' he addedpushing away his 
untouched plateand striding moodily to and fro'that his 
drivellings should have taken this turn just now.' 
After pacing the little room from end to end several timeshe sat 
down in another chair. 
'I say just nowbut for anything I knowhe may have been carrying 
on the same game all along. Old dog! He shall be gagged!' 
He paced the room again in the same restless and unsteady way; and 
then sat down upon the bedsteadleaning his chin upon his handand 
looking at the table. When he had looked at it for a long timehe 
remembered his supper; and resuming the chair he had first occupied
began to eat with great rapacity; not like a hungry manbut as if 
he were determined to do it. He drank tooroundly; sometimes 
stopping in the middle of a draught to walkand change his seat and 
walk againand dart back to the table and fall toin a ravenous 
hurryas before. 
It was now growing dark. As the gloom of eveningdeepening into 
nightcame onanother dark shade emerging from within him seemed 
to overspread his faceand slowly change it. Slowlyslowly; 
darker and darker; more and more haggard; creeping over him by 
little and littleuntil it was black night within him and without. 
The room in which he had shut himself upwas on the ground floor
at the back of the house. It was lighted by a dirty skylightand 
had a door in the wallopening into a narrow covered passage or 
blind-alleyvery little frequented after five or six o'clock in the 
eveningand not in much use as a thoroughfare at any hour. But it 
had an outlet in a neighbouring street. 
The ground on which this chamber stood hadat one timenot within 
his recollectionbeen a yard; and had been converted to its present 
purpose for use as an office. But the occasion for it died with the 
man who built it; and saving that it had sometimes served as an 
apology for a spare bedroomand that the old clerk had once held it 
(but that was years ago) as his recognized apartmentit had been 
little troubled by Anthony Chuzzlewit and Son. It was a blotched
stainedmouldering roomlike a vault; and there were water-pipes 
running through itwhich at unexpected times in the nightwhen 
other things were quietclicked and gurgled suddenlyas if they 
were choking. 
The door into the court had not been open for a longlong time; but 
the key had always hung in one placeand there it hung now. He was 
prepared for its being rusty; for he had a little bottle of oil in 
his pocket and the feather of a penwith which he lubricated the 
key and the lock toocarefully. All this while he had been without 
his coatand had nothing on his feet but his stockings. He now got 
softly into bed in the same stateand tossed from side to side to 
tumble it. In his restless condition that was easily done. 
When he arosehe took from his portmanteauwhich he had caused to 
be carried into that place when he came homea pair of clumsy 
shoesand put them on his feet; also a pair of leather leggings
such as countrymen are used to wearwith straps to fasten them to 
the waistband. In these he dressed himself at leisure. Lastlyhe 
took out a common frock of coarse dark jeanwhich he drew over his 
own under-clothing; and a felt hat--he had purposely left his own 
upstairs. He then sat himself down by the doorwith the key in his 
handwaiting. 
He had no light; the time was drearylongand awful. The ringers 
were practicing in a neighbouring churchand the clashing of the 
bells was almost maddening. Curse the clamouring bellsthey seemed 
to know that he was listening at the doorand to proclaim it in a 
crowd of voices to all the town! Would they never be still? 
They ceased at lastand then the silence was so new and terrible 
that it seemed the prelude to some dreadful noise. Footsteps in the 
court! Two men. He fell back from the door on tiptoeas if they 
could have seen him through its wooden panels. 
They passed ontalking (he could make out) about a skeleton which 
had been dug up yesterdayin some work of excavation near at hand
and was supposed to be that of a murdered man. 'So murder is not 
always found outyou see' they said to one another as they turned 
the corner. 
Hush! 
He put the key into the lockand turned it. The door resisted for 
a whilebut soon came stiffly open; mingling with the sense of 
fever in his moutha taste of rustand dustand earthand 
rotting wood. He looked out; passed out; locked it after him. 
All was clear and quietas he fled away. 
CHAPTER FORTY-SEVEN 
CONCLUSION OF THE ENTERPRISE OF MR JONAS AND HIS FRIEND 
Did no men passing through the dim streets shrink without knowing 
whywhen he came stealing up behind them? As he glided onhad no 
child in its sleep an indistinct perception of a guilty shadow 
falling on its bedthat troubled its innocent rest? Did no dog 
howland strive to break its rattling chainthat it might tear 
him; no burrowing ratscenting the work he had in handessay to 
gnaw a passage after himthat it might hold a greedy revel at the 
feast of his providing? When he looked backacross his shoulder
was it to see if his quick footsteps still fell dry upon the dusty 
pavementor were already moist and clogged with the red mire that 
stained the naked feet of Cain! 
He shaped his course for the main western roadand soon reached it; 
riding a part of the waythen alighting and walking on again. He 
travelled for a considerable distance upon the roof of a stagecoach
which came up while he was afoot; and when it turned out of 
his roadbribed the driver of a return post-chaise to take him on 
with him; and then made across the country at a runand saved a 
mile or two before he struck again into the road. At lastas his 
plan washe came up with a certain lumberingslownight-coach
which stopped wherever it couldand was stopping then at a publichouse
while the guard and coachman ate and drank within. 
He bargained for a seat outside this coachand took it. And he 
quitted it no more until it was within a few miles of its 
destinationbut occupied the same place all night. 
All night! It is a common fancy that nature seems to sleep by night. 
It is a false fancyas who should know better than he? 
The fishes slumbered in the coldbrightglistening streams and 
riversperhaps; and the birds roosted on the branches of the trees; 
and in their stalls and pastures beasts were quiet; and human 
creatures slept. But what of thatwhen the solemn night was 
watchingwhen it never winkedwhen its darkness watched no less 
than its light! The stately treesthe moon and shining starsthe 
softly stirring windthe over-shadowed lanethe broadbright 
countrysidethey all kept watch. There was not a blade of growing 
grass or cornbut watched; and the quieter it wasthe more intent 
and fixed its watch upon him seemed to be. 
And yet he slept. Riding on among those sentinels of Godhe slept
and did not change the purpose of his journey. If he forgot it in 
his troubled dreamsit came up steadilyand woke him. But it 
never woke him to remorseor to abandonment of his design. 
He dreamed at one time that he was lying calmly in his bedthinking 
of a moonlight night and the noise of wheelswhen the old clerk put 
his head in at the doorand beckoned him. At this signal he arose 
immediately--being already dressed in the clothes he actually wore 
at that time--and accompanied him into a strange citywhere the 
names of the streets were written on the walls in characters quite 
new to him; which gave him no surprise or uneasinessfor he 
remembered in his dream to have been there before. Although these 
streets were very precipitousinsomuch that to get from one to 
another it was necessary to descend great heights by ladders that 
were too shortand ropes that moved deep bellsand swung and 
swayed as they were clung tothe danger gave him little emotion 
beyond the first thrill of terror; his anxieties being concentrated 
on his dress which was quite unfitted for some festival that was 
about to be holden thereand in which he had come to take a part. 
Alreadygreat crowds began to fill the streetsand in one 
direction myriads of people came rushing down an interminable 
perspectivestrewing flowers and making way for others on white 
horseswhen a terrible figure started from the throngand cried 
out that it was the Last Day for all the world. The cry being 
spreadthere was a wild hurrying on to Judgment; and the press 
became so great that he and his companion (who was constantly 
changingand was never the same man two minutes togetherthough he 
never saw one man come or another go)stood aside in a porch
fearfully surveying the multitude; in which there were many faces 
that he knewand many that he did not knowbut dreamed he did; 
when all at once a struggling head rose up among the rest--livid and 
deadlybut the same as he had known it--and denounced him as having 
appointed that direful day to happen. They closed together. As he 
strove to free the hand in which he held a cluband strike the blow 
he had so often thought ofhe started to the knowledge of his 
waking purpose and the rising of the sun. 
The sun was welcome to him. There were life and motionand a world 
astirto divide the attention of Day. It was the eye of Night--of 
wakefulwatchfulsilentand attentive Nightwith so much leisure 
for the observation of his wicked thoughts--that he dreaded most. 
There is no glare in the night. Even Glory shows to small advantage 
in the nightupon a crowded battle-field. How then shows Glory's 
blood-relationbastard Murder! 
Aye! He made no compromiseand held no secret with himself now. 
Murder. He had come to do it. 
'Let me get down here' he said 
'Short of the towneh!' observed the coachman. 
'I may get down where I pleaseI suppose?' 
'You got up to please yourselfand may get down to please yourself. 
It won't break our hearts to lose youand it wouldn't have broken 
'em if we'd never found you. Be a little quicker. That's all.' 
The guard had alightedand was waiting in the road to take his 
money. In the jealousy and distrust of what he contemplatedhe 
thought this man looked at him with more than common curiosity 
'What are you staring at?' said Jonas. 
'Not at a handsome man' returned the guard. 'If you want your 
fortune toldI'll tell you a bit of it. You won't be drowned. 
That's a consolation for you.' 
Before he could retort or turn awaythe coachman put an end to the 
dialogue by giving him a cut with his whipand biddig him get 
out for a surly dog. The guard jumped up to his seat at the same 
momentand they drove offlaughing; leaving him to stand in the 
road and shake his fist at them. He was not displeased though
on second thoughtsto have been taken for an ill-conditioned 
common country fellow; but rather congratulated himself upon it 
as a proof that he was well disguised. 
Wandering into a copse by the road-side--but not in that place; two 
or three miles off--he tore out from a fence a thickhardknotted 
stake; andsitting down beneath a hayrickspent some time in 
shaping itin peeling off the barkand fashioning its jagged head 
with his knife. 
The day passed on. Noonafternoonevening. Sunset. 
At that serene and peaceful time two menriding in a gigcame out 
of the city by a road not much frequented. It was the day on which 
Mr Pecksniff had agreed to dine with Montague. He had kept his 
appointmentand was now going home. His host was riding with him 
for a short distance; meaning to return by a pleasant trackwhich 
Mr Pecksniff had engaged to show himthrough some fields. Jonas 
knew their plans. He had hung about the inn-yard while they were at 
dinner and had heard their orders given. 
They were loud and merry in their conversationand might have been 
heard at some distance; far above the sound of their carriage wheels 
or horses' hoofs. They came on noisilyto where a stile and 
footpath indicated their point of separation. Here they stopped. 
'It's too soon. Much too soon' said Mr Pecksniff. 'But this is 
the placemy dear sir. Keep the pathand go straight through the 
little wood you'll come to. The path is narrower therebut you 
can't miss it. When shall I see you again? Soon I hope?' 
'I hope so' replied Montague. 
'Good night!' 
'Good night. And a pleasant ride!' 
So long as Mr Pecksniff was in sightand turned his head at 
intervals to salute himMontague stood in the road smilingand 
waving his hand. But when his new partner had disappearedand this 
show was no longer necessaryhe sat down on the stile with looks so 
alteredthat he might have grown ten years older in the meantime. 
He was flushed with winebut not gay. His scheme had succeeded
but he showed no triumph. The effort of sustaining his difficult 
part before his late companion had fatigued himperhapsor it may 
be that the evening whispered to his conscienceor it may be (as it 
HAS been) that a shadowy veil was dropping round himclosing out 
all thoughts but the presentiment and vague foreknowledge of 
impending doom. 
If there be fluidsas we know there arewhichconscious of a 
coming windor rainor frostwill shrink and strive to hide 
themselves in their glass arteries; may not that subtle liquor of 
the blood perceiveby properties within itselfthat hands are 
raised to waste and spill it; and in the veins of men run cold and 
dull as his didin that hour! 
So coldalthough the air was warm; so dullalthough the sky was 
bright; that he rose up shivering from his seatand hastily resumed 
his walk. He checked himself as hastily; undecided whether to 
pursue the footpathwhich was lonely and retiredor to go back by 
the road. 
He took the footpath. 
The glory of the departing sun was on his face. The music of the 
birds was in his ears. Sweet wild flowers bloomed about him. 
Thatched roofs of poor men's homes were in the distance; and an old 
grey spiresurmounted by a Crossrose up between him and the 
coming night. 
He had never read the lesson which these things conveyed; he had 
ever mocked and turned away from it; butbefore going down into a 
hollow placehe looked roundonceupon the evening prospect
sorrowfully. Then he went downdowndowninto the dell. 
It brought him to the wood; a closethickshadowy woodthrough 
which the path went winding ondwindling away into a slender sheeptrack. 
He paused before entering; for the stillness of this spot 
almost daunted him. 
The last rays of the sun were shining inaslantmaking a path of 
golden light along the stems and branches in its rangewhicheven 
as he lookedbegan to die awayyielding gently to the twilight 
that came creeping on. It was so very quiet that the soft and 
stealthy moss about the trunks of some old treesseemed to have 
grown out of the silenceand to be its proper offspring. Those 
other trees which were subdued by blasts of wind in winter timehad 
not quite tumbled downbut being caught by otherslay all bare and 
scathed across their leafy armsas if unwilling to disturb the 
general repose by the crash of their fall. Vistas of silence opened 
everywhereinto the heart and innermost recesses of the wood; 
beginning with the likeness of an aislea cloisteror a ruin open 
to the sky; then tangling off into a deep green rustling mystery
through which gnarled trunksand twisted boughsand ivy-covered 
stemsand trembling leavesand bark-stripped bodies of old trees 
stretched out at lengthwere faintly seen in beautiful confusion. 
As the sunlight died awayand evening fell upon the woodhe 
entered it. Movinghere and there a bramble or a drooping bough 
which stretched across his pathhe slowly disappeared. At 
intervals a narrow opening showed him passing onor the sharp 
cracking of some tender branch denoted where he went; thenhe was 
seen or heard no more. 
Never more beheld by mortal eye or heard by mortal ear; one man 
excepted. That manparting the leaves and branches on the other 
sidenear where the path emerged againcame leaping out soon 
afterwards. 
What had he left within the woodthat he sprang out of it as if 
it were a hell! 
The body of a murdered man. In one thick solitary spotit lay 
among the last year's leaves of oak and beechjust as it had fallen 
headlong down. Sopping and soaking in among the leaves that formed 
its pillow; oozing down into the boggy groundas if to cover itself 
from human sight; forcing its way between and through the curling 
leavesas if those senseless things rejected and forswore it and 
were coiled up in abhorrence; went a darkdark stain that dyed the 
whole summer night from earth to heaven. 
The doer of this deed came leaping from the wood so fiercelythat 
he cast into the air a shower of fragments of young boughstorn 
away in his passageand fell with violence upon the grass. But he 
quickly gained his feet againand keeping underneath a hedge with 
his body bentwent running on towards the road. The road once 
reachedhe fell into a rapid walkand set on toward London. 
And he was not sorry for what he had done. He was frightened when 
he thought of it--when did he not think of it!--but he was not 
sorry. He had had a terror and dread of the wood when he was in it; 
but being out of itand having committed the crimehis fears were 
now divertedstrangelyto the dark room he had left shut up at 
home. He had a greater horrorinfinitely greaterof that room 
than of the wood. Now that he was on his return to itit seemed 
beyond comparison more dismal and more dreadful than the wood. His 
hideous secret was shut up in the roomand all its terrors were 
there; to his thinking it was not in the wood at all. 
He walked on for ten miles; and then stopped at an ale-house for a 
coachwhich he knew would pass throughon its way to London
before long; and which he also knew was not the coach he had 
travelled down byfor it came from another place. He sat down 
outside the door hereon a benchbeside a man who was smoking his 
pipe. Having called for some beerand drunkhe offered it to this 
companionwho thanked himand took a draught. He could not help 
thinking thatif the man had known allhe might scarcely have 
relished drinking out of the same cup with him. 
'A fine nightmaster!' said this person. 'And a rare sunset.' 
'I didn't see it' was his hasty answer. 
'Didn't see it?' returned the man. 
'How the devil could I see itif I was asleep?' 
'Asleep! Ayeaye.' The man appeared surprised by his unexpected 
irritabilityand saying no moresmoked his pipe in silence. They 
had not sat very longwhen there was a knocking within. 
'What's that?' cried Jonas. 
'Can't sayI'm sure' replied the man. 
He made no further inquiryfor the last question had escaped him in 
spite of himself. But he was thinkingat the momentof the 
closed-up room; of the possibility of their knocking at the door on 
some special occasion; of their being alarmed at receiving no 
answer; of their bursting it open; of their finding the room empty; 
of their fastening the door into the courtand rendering it 
impossible for him to get into the house without showing himself in 
the garb he worewhich would lead to rumourrumour to detection
detection to death. At that instantas if by some design and order 
of circumstancesthe knocking had come. 
It still continued; like a warning echo of the dread reality he had 
conjured up. As he could not sit and hear ithe paid for his beer 
and walked on again. And having slunk aboutin places unknown to 
him all day; and being out at nightin a lonely roadin an unusual 
dress and in that wandering and unsettled frame of mind; he stopped 
more than once to look about himhoping he might be in a dream. 
Still he was not sorry. No. He had hated the man too muchand had 
been benttoo desperately and too longon setting himself free. 
If the thing could have come over againhe would have done it 
again. His malignant and revengeful passions were not so easily 
laid. There was no more penitence or remorse within him now than 
there had been while the deed was brewing. 
Dread and fear were upon himto an extent he had never counted on
and could not manage in the least degree. He was so horribly afraid 
of that infernal room at home. This made himin a gloomy 
murderousmad waynot only fearful FOR himselfbut OF himself; 
for beingas it werea part of the room: a something supposed to 
be thereyet missing from it: he invested himself with its 
mysterious terrors; and when he pictured in his mind the ugly 
chamberfalse and quietfalse and quietthrough the dark hours of 
two nights; and the tumbled bedand he not in itthough believed 
to be; he became in a manner his own ghost and phantomand was at 
once the haunting spirit and the haunted man. 
When the coach came upwhich it soon didhe got a place outside 
and was carried briskly onward towards home. Nowin taking his 
seat among the people behindwho were chiefly country peoplehe 
conceived a fear that they knew of the murderand would tell him 
that the body had been found; whichconsidering the time and place 
of the commission of the crimewere events almost impossible to 
have happened yetas he very well knew. But although he did know 
itand had therefore no reason to regard their ignorance as 
anything but the natural sequence to the factsstill this very 
ignorance of theirs encouraged him. So far encouraged himthat he 
began to believe the body never would be foundand began to 
speculate on that probability. Setting off from this pointand 
measuring time by the rapid hurry of his guilty thoughtsand what 
had gone before the bloodshedand the troops of incoherent and 
disordered images of which he was the constant prey; he came by 
daylight to regard the murder as an old murderand to think himself 
comparatively safe because it had not been discovered yet. Yet! 
When the sun which looked into the woodand gilded with its rising 
light a dead man's lacehad seen that man aliveand sought to win 
him to a thought of Heavenon its going down last night! 
But here were London streets again. Hush! 
It was but five o'clock. He had time enough to reach his own house 
unobservedand before there were many people in the streetsif 
nothing had happened so fartending to his discovery. He slipped 
down from the coach without troubling the driver to stop his horses; 
and hurrying across the roadand in and out of every by-way that 
lay near his courseat length approached his own dwelling. He used 
additional caution in his immediate neighbourhood; halting first to 
look all down the street before him; then gliding swiftly through 
that oneand stopping to survey the nextand so on. 
The passage-way was empty when his murderer's face looked into it. 
He stole onto the door on tiptoeas if he dreaded to disturb his 
own imaginary rest. 
He listened. Not a sound. As he turned the key with a trembling 
handand pushed the door softly open with his kneea monstrous 
fear beset his mind. 
What if the murdered man were there before him! 
He cast a fearful glance all round. But there was nothing there. 
He went inlocked the doordrew the key through and through the 
dust and damp in the fire-place to sully it againand hung it up as 
of old. He took off his disguisetied it up in a bundle ready for 
carrying away and sinking in the river before nightand locked it 
up in a cupboard. These precautions takenhe undressed and went to 
bed. 
The raging thirstthe fire that burnt within him as he lay beneath 
the clothesthe augmented horror of the room when they shut it out 
from his view; the agony of listeningin which he paid enforced 
regard to every soundand thought the most unlikely one the prelude 
to that knocking which should bring the news; the starts with which 
he left his couchand looking in the glassimagined that his deed 
was broadly written in his faceand lying down and burying himself 
once more beneath the blanketsheard his own heart beating Murder
MurderMurderin the bed; what words can paint tremendous truths 
like these! 
The morning advanced. There were footsteps in the house. He heard 
the blinds drawn upand shutters opened; and now and then a 
stealthy tread outside his own door. He tried to call outmore 
than oncebut his mouth was dry as if it had been filled with sand. 
At last he sat up in his bedand cried: 
'Who's there?' 
It was his wife. 
He asked her what it was o'clock? Nine. 
'Did--did no one knock at my door yesterday?' he faltered. 
'Something disturbed me; but unless you had knocked the door down
you would have got no notice from me.' 
'No one' she replied. That was well. He had waitedalmost 
breathlessfor her answer. It was a relief to himif anything 
could be. 
'Mr Nadgett wanted to see you' she said'but I told him you were 
tiredand had requested not to be disturbed. He said it was of 
little consequenceand went away. As I was opening my window to 
let in the cool airI saw him passing through the street this 
morningvery early; but he hasn't been again.' 
Passing through the street that morning? Very early! Jonas trembled 
at the thought of having had a narrow chance of seeing him himself; 
even himwho had no object but to avoid peopleand sneak on 
unobservedand keep his own secrets; and who saw nothing. 
He called to her to get his breakfast readyand prepared to go 
upstairs; attiring himself in the clothes he had taken off when he 
came into that roomwhich had beenever sinceoutside the door. 
In his secret dread of meeting the household for the first time
after what he had donehe lingered at the door on slight pretexts 
that they might see him without looking in his face; and left it 
ajar while he dressed; and called out to have the windows opened
and the pavement wateredthat they might become accustomed to his 
voice. Even when he had put off the timeby one means or otherso 
that he had seen or spoken to them allhe could not muster courage 
for a long while to go in among thembut stood at his own door 
listening to the murmur of their distant conversation. 
He could not stop there for everand so joined them. His last 
glance at the glass had seen a tell-tale facebut that might have 
been because of his anxious looking in it. He dared not look at 
them to see if they observed himbut he thought them very silent. 
And whatsoever guard he kept upon himselfhe could not help 
listeningand showing that he listened. Whether he attended to 
their talkor tried to think of other thingsor talked himselfor 
held his peaceor resolutely counted the dull tickings of a hoarse 
clock at his backhe always lapsedas if a spell were on himinto 
eager listening. For he knew it must come. And his present 
punishmentand torture and distractionwereto listen for its 
coming. 
Hush! 
CHAPTER FORTY-EIGHT 
BEARS TIDINGS OF MARTIN AND OF MARKAS WELL AS OF A THIRD PERSON 
NOT QUITE UNKNOWN TO THE READER. EXHIBITS FILIAL PIETY IN AN UGLY 
ASPECT; AND CASTS A DOUBTFUL RAY OF LIGHT UPON A VERY DARK PLACE 
Tom Pinch and Ruth were sitting at their early breakfastwith the 
window openand a row of the freshest little plants ranged before 
it on the inside by Ruth's own hands; and Ruth had fastened a sprig 
of geranium in Tom's button-holeto make him very smart and summerlike 
for the day (it was obliged to be fastened inor that dear old 
Tom was certain to lose it); and people were crying flowers up and 
down the street; and a blundering beewho had got himself in 
between the two sashes of the windowwas bruising his head against 
the glassendeavouring to force himself out into the fine morning
and considering himself enchanted because he couldn't do it; and the 
morning was as fine a morning as ever was seen; and the fragrant air 
was kissing Ruth and rustling about Tomas if it said'how are 
youmy dears; I came all this way on purpose to salute you;' and it 
was one of those glad times when we formor ought to formthe wish 
that every one on earth were able to be happyand catching glimpses 
of the summer of the heartto feel the beauty of the summer of the 
year. 
It was even a pleasanter breakfast than usual; and it was always a 
pleasant one. For little Ruth had now two pupils to attendeach 
three times a week; and each two hours at a time; and besides this
she had painted some screens and card-racksandunknown to Tom 
(was there ever anything so delightful!)had walked into a certain 
shop which dealt in such articlesafter often peeping through the 
window; and had taken courage to ask the Mistress of that shop 
whether she would buy them. And the mistress had not only bought 
thembut had ordered moreand that very morning Ruth had made 
confession of these facts to Tomand had handed him the money in a 
little purse she had worked expressly for the purpose. They had 
been in a flutter about thisand perhaps had shed a happy tear or 
two for anything the history knows to the contrary; but it was all 
over now; and a brighter face than Tom'sor a brighter face than 
Ruth'sthe bright sun had not looked on since he went to bed last 
night. 
'My dear girl' said Tomcoming so abruptly on the subjectthat he 
interrupted himself in the act of cutting a slice of breadand left 
the knife sticking in the loaf'what a queer fellow our landlord 
is! I don't believe he has been home once since he got me into that 
unsatisfactory scrape. I begin to think he will never come home 
again. What a mysterious life that man does leadto be sure!' 
'Very strange. Is it notTom?' 
'Really' said Tom'I hope it is only strange. I hope there may be 
nothing wrong in it. Sometimes I begin to be doubtful of that. I 
must have an explanation with him' said Tomshaking his head as if 
this were a most tremendous threat'when I can catch him!' 
A short double knock at the door put Tom's menacing looks to flight
and awakened an expression of surprise instead. 
'Heyday!' said Tom. 'An early hour for visitors! It must be JohnI 
suppose.' 
'I--I--don't think it was his knockTom' observed his little 
sister. 
'No?' said Tom. 'It surely can't be my employer suddenly 
arrived in town; directed here by Mr Fips; and come for the key of 
the office. It's somebody inquiring for meI declare! Come inif 
you please!' 
But when the person came inTom Pinchinstead of saying'Did you 
wish to speak with mesir?' or'My name is Pinchsir; what is 
your businessmay I ask?' or addressing him in any such distant 
terms; cried out'Good gracious Heaven!' and seized him by both 
handswith the liveliest manifestations of astonishment and 
pleasure. 
The visitor was not less moved than Tom himselfand they shook 
hands a great many timeswithout another word being spoken on 
either side. Tom was the first to find his voice. 
'Mark Tapleytoo!' said Tomrunning towards the doorand shaking 
hands with somebody else. 'My dear Markcome in. How are you
Mark? He don't look a day older than he used to do at the Dragon. 
How ARE youMark?' 
'Uncommonly jollysirthank'ee' returned Mr Tapleyall smiles 
and bows. 'I hope I see you wellsir.' 
'Good gracious me!' cried Tompatting him tenderly on the back. 
'How delightful it is to hear his old voice again! My dear Martin
sit down. My sisterMartin. Mr Chuzzlewitmy love. Mark Tapley 
from the Dragonmy dear. Good gracious mewhat a surprise this 
is! Sit down. Lordbless me!' 
Tom was in such a state of excitement that he couldn't keep himself 
still for a momentbut was constantly running between Mark and 
Martinshaking hands with them alternatelyand presenting them 
over and over again to his sister. 
'I remember the day we partedMartinas well as if it were 
yesterday' said Tom. 'What a day it was! and what a passion you 
were in! And don't you remember my overtaking you in the road that 
morningMarkwhen I was going to Salisbury in the gig to fetch him
and you were looking out for a situation? And don't you recollect 
the dinner we had at SalisburyMartinwith John Westlockeh! Good 
gracious me! Ruthmy dearMr Chuzzlewit. Mark Tapleymy love
from the Dragon. More cups and saucersif you please. Bless my 
soulhow glad I am to see you both!' 
And then Tom (as John Westlock had done on his arrival) ran off to 
the loaf to cut some bread and butter for them; and before he had 
spread a single sliceremembered something elseand came running 
back again to tell it; and then he shook hands with them again; and 
then he introduced his sister again; and then he did everything he 
had done already all over again; and nothing Tom could doand 
nothing Tom could saywas half sufficient to express his joy at 
their safe return. 
Mr Tapley was the first to resume his composure. In a very short 
space of time he was discovered to have somehow installed himself in 
office as waiteror attendant upon the party; a fact which was 
first suggested to them by his temporary absence in the kitchenand 
speedy return with a kettle of boiling waterfrom which he 
replenished the tea-pot with a self-possession that was quite his 
own. 
'Sit downand take your breakfastMark' said Tom. 'Make him sit 
down and take his breakfastMartin.' 
'Oh! I gave him uplong agoas incorrigible' Martin replied. 'He 
takes his own wayTom. You would excuse himMiss Pinchif you 
knew his value.' 
'She knows itbless you!' said Tom. 'I have told her all about 
Mark Tapley. Have I notRuth?' 
'YesTom.' 
'Not all' returned Martinin a low voice. 'The best of Mark 
Tapley is only known to one manTom; and but for Mark he would 
hardly be alive to tell it!' 
'Mark!' said Tom Pinch energetically; 'if you don't sit down this 
minuteI'll swear at you!' 
'Wellsir' returned Mr Tapley'sooner than you should do that
I'll com-ply. It's a considerable invasion of a man's jollity to be 
made so partickler welcomebut a Werb is a word as signifies to be
to door to suffer (which is all the grammarand enough tooas 
ever I wos taught); and if there's a Werb aliveI'm it. For I'm 
always a-bein'sometimes a-doin'and continually a-sufferin'.' 
'Not jolly yet?' asked Tomwith a smile. 
'WhyI was rather soover the watersir' returned Mr Tapley; 
'and not entirely without credit. But Human Natur' is in a 
conspiracy again' me; I can't get on. I shall have to leave it in 
my willsirto be wrote upon my tomb: "He was a man as might have 
come out strong if he could have got a chance. But it was denied 
him."' 
Mr Tapley took this occasion of looking about him with a grinand 
subsequently attacking the breakfastwith an appetite not at all 
expressive of blighted hopesor insurmountable despondency. 
In the meanwhileMartin drew his chair a little nearer to Tom and 
his sisterand related to them what had passed at Mr Pecksniff's 
house; adding in few words a general summary of the distresses and 
disappointments he had undergone since he left England. 
'For your faithful stewardship in the trust I left with youTom' 
he said'and for all your goodness and disinterestednessI can 
never thank you enough. When I add Mary's thanks to mine--' 
AhTom! The blood retreated from his cheeksand came rushing back
so violentlythat it was pain to feel it; ease thoughease
compared with the aching of his wounded heart. 
'When I add Mary's thanks to mine' said Martin'I have made the 
only poor acknowledgment it is in our power to offer; but if you 
knew how much we feelTomyou would set some store by itI am 
sure.' 
And if they had known how much Tom felt--but that no human creature 
ever knew--they would have set some store by him. Indeed they 
would. 
Tom changed the topic of discourse. He was sorry he could not 
pursue itas it gave Martin pleasure; but he was unableat that 
moment. No drop of envy or bitterness was in his soul; but he could 
not master the firm utterance of her name. 
He inquired what Martin's projects were. 
'No longer to make your fortuneTom' said Martin'but to try to 
live. I tried that once in LondonTom; and failed. If you will 
give me the benefit of your advice and friendly counselI may 
succeed better under your guidance. I will do anything Tom
anythingto gain a livelihood by my own exertions. My hopes do not 
soar above thatnow.' 
High-heartednoble Tom! Sorry to find the pride of his old 
companion humbledand to hear him speaking in this altered strain 
at onceat oncehe drove from his breast the inability to contend 
with its deep emotionsand spoke out bravely. 
'Your hopes do not soar above that!' cried Tom. 'Yes they do. How 
can you talk so! They soar up to the time when you will be happy 
with herMartin. They soar up to the time when you will be able to 
claim herMartin. They soar up to the time when you will not be 
able to believe that you were ever cast down in spiritor poor in 
pocketMartin. Adviceand friendly counsel! Whyof course. But 
you shall have better advice and counsel (though you cannot have 
more friendly) than mine. You shall consult John Westlock. We'll 
go there immediately. It is yet so early that I shall have time to 
take you to his chambers before I go to business; they are in my 
way; and I can leave you thereto talk over your affairs with him. 
So come along. Come along. I am a man of occupation nowyou 
know' said Tomwith his pleasantest smile; 'and have no time to 
lose. Your hopes don't soar higher than that? I dare say they 
don't. I know youpretty well. They'll be soaring out of sight 
soonMartinand leaving all the rest of us leagues behind.' 
'Aye! But I may be a little changed' said Martin'since you knew 
me pretty wellTom.' 
'What nonsense!' exclaimed Tom. 'Why should you be changed? You 
talk as if you were an old man. I never heard such a fellow! Come 
to John Westlock'scome. Come alongMark Tapley. It's Mark's 
doingI have no doubt; and it serves you right for having such a 
grumbler for your companion.' 
'There's no credit to be got through being jolly with YOUMr Pinch
anyways' said Markwith his face all wrinkled up with grins. 'A 
parish doctor might be jolly with you. There's nothing short of 
goin' to the U-nited States for a second tripas would make it at 
all creditable to be jollyarter seein' you again!' 
Tom laughedand taking leave of his sisterhurried Mark and Martin 
out into the streetand away to John Westlock's by the nearest 
road; for his hour of business was very near at handand he prided 
himself on always being exact to his time. 
John Westlock was at homebutstrange to saywas rather 
embarrassed to see them; and when Tom was about to go into the room 
where he was breakfastingsaid he had a stranger there. It 
appeared to be a mysterious strangerfor John shut that door as he 
said itand led them into the next room. 
He was very much delightedthoughto see Mark Tapley; and received 
Martin with his own frank courtesy. But Martin felt that he did not 
inspire John Westlock with any unusual interest; and twice or thrice 
observed that he looked at Tom Pinch doubtfully; not to say 
compassionately. He thoughtand blushed to thinkthat he knew the 
cause of this. 
'I apprehend you are engaged' said Martinwhen Tom had announced 
the purport of their visit. 'If you will allow me to come again at 
your own timeI shall be glad to do so.' 
'I AM engaged' replied Johnwith some reluctance; 'but the matter 
on which I am engaged is oneto say the truthmore immediately 
demanding your knowledge than mine.' 
'Indeed!' cried Martin. 
'It relates to a member of your familyand is of a serious nature. 
If you will have the kindness to remain hereit will be a 
satisfaction to me to have it privately communicated to youin 
order that you may judge of its importance for yourself.' 
'And in the meantime' said Tom'I must really take myself off
without any further ceremony.' 
'Is your business so very particular' asked Martin'that you 
cannot remain with us for half an hour? I wish you could. What IS 
your businessTom?' 
It was Tom's turn to be embarrassed now; but he plainly saidafter 
a little hesitation: 
'WhyI am not at liberty to say what it isMartin; though I hope 
soon to be in a condition to do soand am aware of no other reason 
to prevent my doing so nowthan the request of my employer. It's 
an awkward position to be placed in' said Tomwith an uneasy sense 
of seeming to doubt his friend'as I feel every day; but I really 
cannot help itcan IJohn?' 
John Westlock replied in the negative; and Martinexpressing 
himself perfectly satisfiedbegged them not to say another word; 
though he could not help wondering very much what curious office Tom 
heldand why he was so secretand embarrassedand unlike himself
in reference to it. Nor could he help reverting to itin his own 
mindseveral times after Tom went awaywhich he did as soon as 
this conversation was endedtaking Mr Tapley with himwhoas he 
laughingly saidmight accompany him as far as Fleet Street without 
injury. 
'And what do you mean to doMark?' asked Tomas they walked on 
together. 
'Mean to dosir?' returned Mr Tapley. 
'Aye. What course of life do you mean to pursue?' 
'Wellsir' said Mr Tapley. 'The fact isthat I have been 
a-thinking rather of the matrimonial linesir.' 
'You don't say soMark!' cried Tom. 
'Yessir. I've been a-turnin' of it over.' 
'And who is the ladyMark?' 
'The whichsir?' said Mr Tapley. 
'The lady. Come! You know what I said' replied Tomlaughing'as 
well as I do!' 
Mr Tapley suppressed his own inclination to laugh; and with one of 
his most whimsically-twisted looksreplied: 
'You couldn't guessI supposeMr Pinch?' 
'How is it possible?' said Tom. 'I don't know any of your flames
Mark. Except Mrs Lupinindeed.' 
'Wellsir!' retorted Mr Tapley. 'And supposing it was her!' 
Tom stopping in the street to look at himMr Tapley for a moment 
presented to his view an utterly stolid and expressionless face; a 
perfect dead wall of countenance. But opening window after window 
in it with astonishing rapidityand lighting them all up as for a 
general illuminationhe repeated: 
'Supposin'for the sake of argumentas it was hersir!' 
'Why I thought such a connection wouldn't suit youMarkon any 
terms!' cried Tom. 
'Wellsir! I used to think so myselfonce' said Mark. 'But I 
ain't so clear about it now. A dearsweet creetursir!' 
'A dearsweet creature? To be sure she is' cried Tom. 'But she 
always was a dearsweet creaturewas she not?' 
'WAS she not!' assented Mr Tapley. 
'Then why on earth didn't you marry her at firstMarkinstead of 
wandering abroadand losing all this timeand leaving her alone by 
herselfliable to be courted by other people?' 
'Whysir' retorted Mr Tapleyin a spirit of unbounded confidence
'I'll tell you how it come about. You know meMr Pinchsir; there 
ain't a gentleman alive as knows me better. You're acquainted with 
my constitutionand you're acquainted with my weakness. My 
constitution isto be jolly; and my weakness isto wish to find a 
credit in it. Wery goodsir. In this state of mindI gets a 
notion in my head that she looks on me with a eye of--with what you 
may call a favourable sort of a eye in fact' said Mr Tapleywith 
modest hesitation. 
'No doubt' replied Tom. 'We knew that perfectly well when we spoke 
on this subject long ago; before you left the Dragon.' 
Mr Tapley nodded assent. 'Wellsir! But bein' at that time full of 
hopeful wisionsI arrives at the conclusion that no credit is to be 
got out of such a way of life as thatwhere everything agreeable 
would be ready to one's hand. Lookin' on the bright side of human 
life in shortone of my hopeful wisions isthat there's a deal of 
misery awaitin' for me; in the midst of which I may come out 
tolerable strongand be jolly under circumstances as reflects some 
credit. I goes into the worldsirwery boyantand I tries this. 
I goes aboard ship firstand wery soon discovers (by the ease with 
which I'm jollymind you) as there's no credit to be got THERE. I 
might have took warning by thisand gave it up; but I didn't. I 
gets to the U-nited States; and then I DO beginI won't deny itto 
feel some little credit in sustaining my spirits. What follows? 
Jest as I'm a-beginning to come outand am a-treadin' on the werge
my master deceives me.' 
'Deceives you!' cried Tom. 
'Swindles me' retorted Mr Tapley with a beaming face. 'Turns his 
back on everything as made his service a creditable oneand leaves 
me high and drywithout a leg to stand upon. In which state I 
returns home. Wery good. Then all my hopeful wisions bein' 
crushed; and findin' that there ain't no credit for me nowhere; I 
abandons myself to despairand saysLet me do that as has the 
least credit in it of all; marry a dear, sweet creetur, as is wery 
fond of me; me bein', at the same time, wery fond of her; lead a 
happy life, and struggle no more again' the blight which settles on 
my prospects.' 
'If your philosophyMark' said Tomwho laughed heartily at this 
speech'be the oddest I ever heard ofit is not the least wise. 
Mrs Lupin has said "yes of course?' 
'Why, no, sir,' replied Mr Tapley; 'she hasn't gone so far as that 
yet. Which I attribute principally to my not havin' asked her. But 
we was wery agreeable together--comfortable, I may say--the night I 
come home. It's all right, sir.' 
'Well!' said Tom, stopping at the Temple Gate. 'I wish you joy, 
Mark, with all my heart. I shall see you again to-day, I dare say. 
Good-bye for the present.' 
'Good-bye, sir! Good-bye, Mr Pinch!' he added by way of soliloquy, 
as he stood looking after him. 'Although you ARE a damper to a 
honourable ambition. You little think it, but you was the first to 
dash my hopes. Pecksniff would have built me up for life, but your 
sweet temper pulled me down. Good-bye, Mr Pinch!' 
While these confidences were interchanged between Tom Pinch and 
Mark, Martin and John Westlock were very differently engaged. They 
were no sooner left alone together than Martin said, with an effort 
he could not disguise: 
'Mr Westlock, we have met only once before, but you have known Tom a 
long while, and that seems to render you familiar to me. I cannot 
talk freely with you on any subject unless I relieve my mind of what 
oppresses it just now. I see with pain that you so far mistrust me 
that you think me likely to impose on Tom's regardlessness of 
himself, or on his kind nature, or some of his good qualities.' 
'I had no intention,' replied John, 'of conveying any such 
impression to you, and am exceedingly sorry to have done so.' 
'But you entertain it?' said Martin. 
'You ask me so pointedly and directly,' returned the other, 'that I 
cannot deny the having accustomed myself to regard you as one who, 
not in wantonness but in mere thoughtlessness of character, did not 
sufficiently consider his nature and did not quite treat it as it 
deserves to be treated. It is much easier to slight than to 
appreciate Tom Pinch.' 
This was not said warmly, but was energetically spoken too; for 
there was no subject in the world (but one) on which the speaker 
felt so strongly. 
'I grew into the knowledge of Tom,' he pursued, 'as I grew towards 
manhood; and I have learned to love him as something, infinitely 
better than myself. I did not think that you understood him when we 
met before. I did not think that you greatly cared to understand 
him. The instances of this which I observed in you were, like my 
opportunities for observation, very trivial--and were very harmless, 
I dare say. But they were not agreeable to me, and they forced 
themselves upon me; for I was not upon the watch for them, believe 
me. You will say,' added John, with a smile, as he subsided into 
more of his accustomed manner, 'that I am not by any means agreeable 
to you. I can only assure you, in reply, that I would not have 
originated this topic on any account.' 
'I originated it,' said Martin; 'and so far from having any 
complaint to make against you, highly esteem the friendship you 
entertain for Tom, and the very many proofs you have given him of 
it. Why should I endeavour to conceal from you'--he coloured deeply 
though--'that I neither understood him nor cared to understand him 
when I was his companion; and that I am very truly sorry for it 
now!' 
It was so sincerely said, at once so modestly and manfully, that 
John offered him his hand as if he had not done so before; and 
Martin giving his in the same open spirit, all constraint between 
the young men vanished. 
'Now pray,' said John, 'when I tire your patience very much in what 
I am going to say, recollect that it has an end to it, and that the 
end is the point of the story.' 
With this preface, he related all the circumstances connected with 
his having presided over the illness and slow recovery of the 
patient at the Bull; and tacked on to the skirts of that narrative 
Tom's own account of the business on the wharf. Martin was not a 
little puzzled when he came to an end, for the two stories seemed to 
have no connection with each other, and to leave him, as the phrase 
is, all abroad. 
'If you will excuse me for one moment,' said John, rising, 'I will 
beg you almost immediately to come into the next room.' 
Upon that, he left Martin to himself, in a state of considerable 
astonishment; and soon came back again to fulfil his promise. 
Accompanying him into the next room, Martin found there a third 
person; no doubt the stranger of whom his host had spoken when Tom 
Pinch introduced him. 
He was a young man; with deep black hair and eyes. He was gaunt and 
pale; and evidently had not long recovered from a severe illness. 
He stood as Martin entered, but sat again at John's desire. His 
eyes were cast downward; and but for one glance at them both, half 
in humiliation and half in entreaty, he kept them so, and sat quite 
still and silent. 
'This person's name is Lewsome,' said John Westlock, 'whom I have 
mentioned to you as having been seized with an illness at the inn 
near here, and undergone so much. He has had a very hard time of 
it, ever since he began to recover; but, as you see, he is now doing 
well.' 
As he did not move or speak, and John Westlock made a pause, Martin, 
not knowing what to say, said that he was glad to hear it. 
'The short statement that I wish you to hear from his own lips, Mr 
Chuzzlewit,' John pursued--looking attentively at him, and not at 
Martin--'he made to me for the first time yesterday, and repeated to 
me this morning, without the least variation of any essential 
particular. I have already told you that he informed me before he 
was removed from the Inn, that he had a secret to disclose to me 
which lay heavy on his mind. But, fluctuating between sickness and 
health and between his desire to relieve himself of it, and his 
dread of involving himself by revealing it, he has, until yesterday, 
avoided the disclosure. I never pressed him for it (having no idea 
of its weight or import, or of my right to do so), until within a 
few days past; when, understanding from him, on his own voluntary 
avowal, in a letter from the country, that it related to a person 
whose name was Jonas Chuzzlewit; and thinking that it might throw 
some light on that little mystery which made Tom anxious now and 
then; I urged the point upon him, and heard his statement, as you 
will now, from his own lips. It is due to him to say, that in the 
apprehension of death, he committed it to writing sometime since, 
and folded it in a sealed paper, addressed to me; which he could not 
resolve, however, to place of his own act in my hands. He has the 
paper in his breast, I believe, at this moment.' 
The young man touched it hastily; in corroboration of the fact. 
'It will be well to leave that in our charge, perhaps,' said John. 
'But do not mind it now.' 
As he said this, he held up his hand to bespeak Martin's attention. 
It was already fixed upon the man before him, who, after a short 
silence said, in a low, weak, hollow voice: 
'What relation was Mr Anthony Chuzzlewit, who--' 
'--Who died--to me?' said Martin. 'He was my grandfather's brother.' 
'I fear he was made away with. Murdered!' 
'My God!' said Martin. 'By whom?' 
The young man, Lewsome, looked up in his face, and casting down his 
eyes again, replied: 
'I fear, by me.' 
'By you?' cried Martin. 
'Not by my act, but I fear by my means.' 
'Speak out!' said Martin, 'and speak the truth.' 
'I fear this IS the truth.' 
Martin was about to interrupt him again, but John Westlock saying 
softly, 'Let him tell his story in his own way,' Lewsome went on 
thus: 
'I have been bred a surgeon, and for the last few years have served 
a general practitioner in the City, as his assistant. While I was 
in his employment I became acquainted with Jonas Chuzzlewit. He is 
the principal in this deed.' 
'What do you mean?' demanded Martin, sternly. 'Do you know he is 
the son of the old man of whom you have spoken?' 
'I do,' he answered. 
He remained silent for some moments, when he resumed at the point 
where he had left off. 
'I have reason to know it; for I have often heard him wish his old 
father dead, and complain of his being wearisome to him, and a drag 
upon him. He was in the habit of doing so, at a place of meeting we 
had--three or four of us--at night. There was no good in the place 
you may suppose, when you hear that he was the chief of the party. 
I wish I had died myself, and never seen it!' 
He stopped again; and again resumed as before. 
'We met to drink and game; not for large sums, but for sums that 
were large to us. He generally won. Whether or no, he lent money 
at interest to those who lost; and in this way, though I think we 
all secretly hated him, he came to be the master of us. To 
propitiate him we made a jest of his father; it began with his 
debtors; I was one; and we used to toast a quicker journey to the 
old man, and a swift inheritance to the young one.' 
He paused again. 
'One night he came there in a very bad humour. He had been greatly 
tried, he said, by the old man that day. He and I were alone 
together; and he angrily told me, that the old man was in his second 
childhood; that he was weak, imbecile, and drivelling; as unbearable 
to himself as he was to other people; and that it would be a charity 
to put him out of the way. He swore that he had often thought of 
mixing something with the stuff he took for his cough, which should 
help him to die easily. People were sometimes smothered who were 
bitten by mad dogs, he said; and why not help these lingering old 
men out of their troubles too? He looked full at me as he said so, 
and I looked full at him; but it went no farther that night.' 
He stopped once more, and was silent for so long an interval that 
John Westlock said 'Go on.' Martin had never removed his eyes from 
his face, but was so absorbed in horror and astonishment that he 
could not speak. 
'It may have been a week after that, or it may have been less or 
more--the matter was in my mind all the time, but I cannot recollect 
the time, as I should any other period--when he spoke to me again. 
We were alone then, too; being there before the usual hour of 
assembling. There was no appointment between us; but I think I went 
there to meet him, and I know he came there to meet me. He was 
there first. He was reading a newspaper when I went in, and nodded 
to me without looking up, or leaving off reading. I sat down 
opposite and close to him. He said, immediately, that he wanted me 
to get him some of two sorts of drugs. One that was instantaneous 
in its effect; of which he wanted very little. One that was slow 
and not suspicious in appearance; of which he wanted more. While he 
was speaking to me he still read the newspaper. He said Drugs 
and never used any other word. Neither did I.' 
'This all agrees with what I have heard before,' observed John 
Westlock. 
'I asked him what he wanted the drugs for? He said for no harm; to 
physic cats; what did it matter to me? I was going out to a distant 
colony (I had recently got the appointment, which, as Mr Westlock 
knows, I have since lost by my sickness, and which was my only hope 
of salvation from ruin), and what did it matter to me? He could get 
them without my aid at half a hundred places, but not so easily as 
he could get them of me. This was true. He might not want them at 
all, he said, and he had no present idea of using them; but he 
wished to have them by him. All this time he still read the 
newspaper. We talked about the price. He was to forgive me a small 
debt--I was quite in his power--and to pay me five pounds; and there 
the matter dropped, through others coming in. But, next night, 
under exactly similar circumstances, I gave him the drugs, on his 
saying I was a fool to think that he should ever use them for any 
harm; and he gave me the money. We have never met since. I only 
know that the poor old father died soon afterwards, just as he would 
have died from this cause; and that I have undergone, and suffer 
now, intolerable misery. Nothing' he added, stretching out his 
hands, 'can paint my misery! It is well deserved, but nothing can 
paint it.' 
With that he hung his head, and said no more, wasted and wretched, 
he was not a creature upon whom to heap reproaches that were 
unavailing. 
'Let him remain at hand,' said Martin, turning from him; 'but out of 
sight, in Heaven's name!' 
'He will remain here,' John whispered. 'Come with me!' Softly 
turning the key upon him as they went out, he conducted Martin into 
the adjoining room, in which they had been before. 
Martin was so amazed, so shocked, and confounded by what he had 
heard that it was some time before he could reduce it to any order 
in his mind, or could sufficiently comprehend the bearing of one 
part upon another, to take in all the details at one view. When he, 
at length, had the whole narrative clearly before him, John Westlock 
went on to point out the great probability of the guilt of Jonas 
being known to other people, who traded in it for their own benefit, 
and who were, by such means, able to exert that control over him 
which Tom Pinch had accidentally witnessed, and unconsciously 
assisted. This appeared so plain, that they agreed upon it without 
difficulty; but instead of deriving the least assistance from this 
source, they found that it embarrassed them the more. 
They knew nothing of the real parties who possessed this power. The 
only person before them was Tom's landlord. They had no right to 
question Tom's landlord, even if they could find him, which, 
according to Tom's account, it would not be easy to do. And 
granting that they did question him, and he answered (which was 
taking a good deal for granted), he had only to say, with reference 
to the adventure on the wharf, that he had been sent from such and 
such a place to summon Jonas back on urgent business, and there was 
an end of it. 
Besides, there was the great difficulty and responsibility of moving 
at all in the matter. Lewsome's story might be false; in his 
wretched state it might be greatly heightened by a diseased brain; 
or admitting it to be entirely true, the old man might have died a 
natural death. Mr Pecksniff had been there at the time; as Tom 
immediately remembered, when he came back in the afternoon, and 
shared their counsels; and there had been no secrecy about it. 
Martin's grandfather was of right the person to decide upon the 
course that should be taken; but to get at his views would be 
impossible, for Mr Pecksniff's views were certain to be his. 
And the nature of Mr Pecksniff's views in reference to his own 
son-in-law might be easily reckoned upon. 
Apart from these considerations, Martin could not endure the thought 
of seeming to grasp at this unnatural charge against his relative, 
and using it as a stepping-stone to his grandfather's favour. But 
that he would seem to do so, if he presented himself before his 
grandfather in Mr Pecksniff's house again, for the purpose of 
declaring it; and that Mr Pecksniff, of all men, would represent his 
conduct in that despicable light, he perfectly well knew. On the 
other hand to be in possession of such a statement, and take no 
measures of further inquiry in reference to it, was tantamount to 
being a partner in the guilt it professed to disclose. 
In a word, they were wholly unable to discover any outlet from this 
maze of difficulty, which did not lie through some perplexed and 
entangled thicket. And although Mr Tapley was promptly taken into 
their confidence; and the fertile imagination of that gentleman 
suggested many bold expedients, which, to do him justice, he was 
quite ready to carry into instant operation on his own personal 
responsibility; still 'bating the general zeal of Mr Tapley's 
nature, nothing was made particularly clearer by these offers of 
service. 
It was in this position of affairs that Tom's account of the strange 
behaviour of the decayed clerk, on the night of the tea-party, 
became of great moment, and finally convinced them that to arrive at 
a more accurate knowledge of the workings of that old man's mind and 
memory, would be to take a most important stride in their pursuit of 
the truth. So, having first satisfied themselves that no 
communication had ever taken place between Lewsome and Mr Chuffey 
(which would have accounted at once for any suspicions the latter 
might entertain), they unanimously resolved that the old clerk was 
the man they wanted. 
But, like the unanimous resolution of a public meeting, which will 
oftentimes declare that this or that grievance is not to be borne a 
moment longer, which is nevertheless borne for a century or two 
afterwards, without any modification, they only reached in this the 
conclusion that they were all of one mind. For it was one thing to 
want Mr Chuffey, and another thing to get at him; and to do that 
without alarming him, or without alarming Jonas, or without being 
discomfited by the difficulty of striking, in an instrument so out 
of tune and so unused, the note they sought, was an end as far from 
their reach as ever. 
The question then became, who of those about the old clerk had had 
most influence with him that night? Tom said his young mistress 
clearly. But Tom and all of them shrunk from the thought of 
entrapping her, and making her the innocent means of bringing 
retribution on her cruel husband. Was there nobody else? Why yes. 
In a very different way, Tom said, he was influenced by Mrs Gamp, 
the nurse; who had once had the control of him, as he understood, 
for some time. 
They caught at this immediately. Here was a new way out, developed 
in a quarter until then overlooked. John Westlock knew Mrs Gamp; he 
had given her employment; he was acquainted with her place of 
residence: for that good lady had obligingly furnished him, at 
parting, with a pack of her professional cards for general 
distribution. It was decided that Mrs Gamp should be approached 
with caution, but approached without delay; and that the depths of 
that discreet matron's knowledge of Mr Chuffey, and means of 
bringing them, or one of them, into communication with him, should 
be carefully sounded. 
On this service, Martin and John Westlock determined to proceed that 
night; waiting on Mrs Gamp first, at her lodgings; and taking their 
chance of finding her in the repose of private life, or of having to 
seek her out, elsewhere, in the exercise of her professional duties. 
Tom returned home, that he might lose no opportunity of having an 
interview with Nadgett, by being absent in the event of his 
reappearance. And Mr Tapley remained (by his own particular desire) 
for the time being in Furnival's Inn, to look after Lewsome; who 
might safely have been left to himself, however, for any thought he 
seemed to entertain of giving them the slip. 
Before they parted on their several errands, they caused him to read 
aloud, in the presence of them all, the paper which he had about 
him, and the declaration he had attached to it, which was to the 
effect that he had written it voluntarily, in the fear of death and 
in the torture of his mind. And when he had done so, they all 
signed it, and taking it from him, of his free will, locked it in a 
place of safety. 
Martin also wrote, by John's advice, a letter to the trustees of the 
famous Grammar School, boldly claiming the successful design as his, 
and charging Mr Pecksniff with the fraud he had committed. In this 
proceeding also, John was hotly interested; observing, with his usual 
irreverance, that Mr Pecksniff had been a successful rascal all his 
life through, and that it would be a lasting source of happiness to 
him (John) if he could help to do him justice in the smallest 
particular. 
A busy day! But Martin had no lodgings yet; so when these matters 
were disposed of, he excused himself from dining with John Westlock 
and was fain to wander out alone, and look for some. He succeeded, 
after great trouble, in engaging two garrets for himself and Mark, 
situated in a court in the Strand, not far from Temple Bar. Their 
luggage, which was waiting for them at a coach-office, he conveyed 
to this new place of refuge; and it was with a glow of satisfaction, 
which as a selfish man he never could have known and never had, 
that, thinking how much pains and trouble he had saved Mark, and how 
pleased and astonished Mark would be, he afterwards walked up and 
down, in the Temple, eating a meat-pie for his dinner. 
CHAPTER FORTY-NINE 
IN WHICH MRS HARRIS ASSISTED BY A TEAPOT, IS THE CAUSE OF A 
DIVISION BETWEEN FRIENDS 
Mrs Gamp's apartment in Kingsgate Street, High Holborn, wore, 
metaphorically speaking, a robe of state. It was swept and 
garnished for the reception of a visitor. That visitor was Betsey 
Prig; Mrs Prig, of Bartlemy's; or as some said Barklemy's, or as 
some said Bardlemy's; for by all these endearing and familiar 
appellations, had the hospital of Saint Bartholomew become a 
household word among the sisterhood which Betsey Prig adorned. 
Mrs Gamp's apartment was not a spacious one, but, to a contented 
mind, a closet is a palace; and the first-floor front at Mr 
Sweedlepipe's may have been, in the imagination of Mrs Gamp, a 
stately pile. If it were not exactly that, to restless intellects, 
it at least comprised as much accommodation as any person, not 
sanguine to insanity, could have looked for in a room of its 
dimensions. For only keep the bedstead always in your mind; and you 
were safe. That was the grand secret. Remembering the bedstead, 
you might even stoop to look under the little round table for 
anything you had dropped, without hurting yourself much against the 
chest of drawers, or qualifying as a patient of Saint Bartholomew, 
by falling into the fire. 
Visitors were much assisted in their cautious efforts to preserve an 
unflagging recollection of this piece of furniture, by its size; 
which was great. It was not a turn-up bedstead, nor yet a French 
bedstead, nor yet a four-post bedstead, but what is poetically called 
a tent; the sacking whereof was low and bulgy, insomuch that Mrs 
Gamp's box would not go under it, but stopped half-way, in a manner 
which, while it did violence to the reason, likewise endangered the 
legs of a stranger. The frame too, which would have supported the 
canopy and hangings if there had been any, was ornamented with 
divers pippins carved in timber, which on the slightest provocation, 
and frequently on none at all, came tumbling down; harassing the 
peaceful guest with inexplicable terrors. 
The bed itself was decorated with a patchwork quilt of great 
antiquity; and at the upper end, upon the side nearest to the door, 
hung a scanty curtain of blue check, which prevented the Zephyrs 
that were abroad in Kingsgate Street, from visiting Mrs Gamp's head 
too roughly. Some rusty gowns and other articles of that lady's 
wardrobe depended from the posts; and these had so adapted 
themselves by long usage to her figure, that more than one impatient 
husband coming in precipitately, at about the time of twilight, had 
been for an instant stricken dumb by the supposed discovery that Mrs 
Gamp had hanged herself. One gentleman, coming on the usual hasty 
errand, had said indeed, that they looked like guardian angels 
'watching of her in her sleep.' But that, as Mrs Gamp said, 'was 
his first;' and he never repeated the sentiment, though he often 
repeated his visit. 
The chairs in Mrs Gamp's apartment were extremely large and broadbacked, 
which was more than a sufficient reason for there being but 
two in number. They were both elbow-chairs, of ancient mahogany; 
and were chiefly valuable for the slippery nature of their seats, 
which had been originally horsehair, but were now covered with a 
shiny substance of a bluish tint, from which the visitor began to 
slide away with a dismayed countenance, immediately after sitting 
down. What Mrs Gamp wanted in chairs she made up in bandboxes; of 
which she had a great collection, devoted to the reception of 
various miscellaneous valuables, which were not, however, as well 
protected as the good woman, by a pleasant fiction, seemed to think; 
for, though every bandbox had a carefully closed lid, not one among 
them had a bottom; owing to which cause the property within was 
merely, as it were, extinguished. The chest of drawers having been 
originally made to stand upon the top of another chest, had a 
dwarfish, elfin look, alone; but in regard of its security it had a 
great advantage over the bandboxes, for as all the handles had been 
long ago pulled off, it was very difficult to get at its contents. 
This indeed was only to be done by one or two devices; either by 
tilting the whole structure forward until all the drawers fell out 
together, or by opening them singly with knives, like oysters. 
Mrs Gamp stored all her household matters in a little cupboard by 
the fire-place; beginning below the surface (as in nature) with the 
coals, and mounting gradually upwards to the spirits, which, from 
motives of delicacy, she kept in a teapot. The chimney-piece was 
ornamented with a small almanack, marked here and there in Mrs 
Gamp's own hand with a memorandum of the date at which some lady was 
expected to fall due. It was also embellished with three profiles: 
one, in colours, of Mrs Gamp herself in early life; one, in bronze, 
of a lady in feathers, supposed to be Mrs Harris, as she appeared 
when dressed for a ball; and one, in black, of Mr Gamp, deceased. 
The last was a full length, in order that the likeness might be 
rendered more obvious and forcible by the introduction of the wooden 
leg. 
A pair of bellows, a pair of pattens, a toasting-fork, a kettle, a 
pap-boat, a spoon for the administration of medicine to the 
refractory, and lastly, Mrs Gamp's umbrella, which as something of 
great price and rarity, was displayed with particular ostentation, 
completed the decorations of the chimney-piece and adjacent wall. 
Towards these objects Mrs Gamp raised her eyes in satisfaction when 
she had arranged the tea-board, and had concluded her arrangements 
for the reception of Betsey Prig, even unto the setting forth of two 
pounds of Newcastle salmon, intensely pickled. 
'There! Now drat you, Betsey, don't be long!' said Mrs Gamp, 
apostrophizing her absent friend. 'For I can't abear to wait, I do 
assure you. To wotever place I goes, I sticks to this one mortar, 
I'm easy pleased; it is but little as I wants; but I must have that 
little of the bestand to the minute when the clock strikeselse 
we do not part as I could wishbut bearin' malice in our arts."' 
Her own preparations were of the bestfor they comprehended a 
delicate new loafa plate of fresh buttera basin of fine white 
sugarand other arrangements on the same scale. Even the snuff 
with which she now refreshed herselfwas so choice in quality that 
she took a second pinch. 
'There's the little bell a-ringing now' said Mrs Gamphurrying to 
the stair-head and looking over. 'Betsey Prigmy--why it's that 
there disapintin' SweedlepipesI do believe.' 
'Yesit's me' said the barber in a faint voice; 'I've just come 
in.' 
'You're always a-comin' inI think' muttered Mrs Gamp to herself
'except wen you're a-goin' out. I ha'n't no patience with that 
man!' 
'Mrs Gamp' said the barber. 'I say! Mrs Gamp!' 
'Well' cried Mrs Gampimpatientlyas she descended the stairs. 
'What is it? Is the Thames a-fireand cooking its own fishMr 
Sweedlepipes? Why wot's the man gone and been a-doin' of to 
himself? He's as white as chalk!' 
She added the latter clause of inquirywhen she got downstairsand 
found him seated in the shaving-chairpale and disconsolate. 
'You recollect' said Poll. 'You recollect young--' 
'Not young Wilkins!' cried Mrs Gamp. 'Don't say young Wilkins
wotever you do. If young Wilkins's wife is took--' 
'It isn't anybody's wife' exclaimed the little barber. 'Bailey
young Bailey!' 
'Whywot do you mean to say that chit's been a-doin' of?' retorted 
Mrs Gampsharply. 'Stuff and nonsenseMrs Sweedlepipes!' 
'He hasn't been a-doing anything!' exclaimed poor Pollquite 
desperate. 'What do you catch me up so short forwhen you see me 
put out to that extent that I can hardly speak? He'll never do 
anything again. He's done for. He's killed. The first time I ever 
see that boy' said Poll'I charged him too much for a red-poll. I 
asked him three-halfpence for a penny onebecause I was afraid he'd 
beat me down. But he didn't. And now he's dead; and if you was to 
crowd all the steam-engines and electric fluids that ever wasinto 
this shopand set 'em every one to work their hardestthey 
couldn't square the accountthough it's only a ha'penny!' 
Mr Sweedlepipe turned aside to the toweland wiped his eyes with 
it. 
'And what a clever boy he was!' he said. 'What a surprising young 
chap he was! How he talked! and what a deal he know'd! Shaved in 
this very chair he was; only for fun; it was all his fun; he was 
full of it. Ah! to think that he'll never be shaved in earnest! The 
birds might every one have diedand welcome' cried the little 
barberlooking round him at the cagesand again applying to the 
towel'sooner than I'd have heard this news!' 
'How did you ever come to hear it?' said Mrs Gamp. 'who told you?' 
'I went out' returned the little barber'into the Cityto meet a 
sporting gent upon the Stock Exchangethat wanted a few slow 
pigeons to practice at; and when I'd done with himI went to get a 
little drop of beerand there I heard everybody a-talking about it. 
It's in the papers.' 
'You are in a nice state of confugionMr Sweedlepipesyou are!' 
said Mrs Gampshaking her head; 'and my opinion isas halfa-
dudgeon fresh young lively leeches on your templeswouldn't be too 
much to clear your mindwhich so I tell you. Wot were they atalkin' 
onand wot was in the papers?' 
'All about it!' cried the barber. 'What else do you suppose? Him 
and his master were upset on a journeyand he was carried to 
Salisburyand was breathing his last when the account came away. 
He never spoke afterwards. Not a single word. That's the worst of 
it to me; but that ain't all. His master can't be found. The other 
manager of their office in the cityCrimpleDavid Crimplehas 
gone off with the moneyand is advertised forwith a rewardupon 
the walls. Mr Montaguepoor young Bailey's master (what a boy he 
was!) is advertised fortoo. Some say he's slipped offto join 
his friend abroad; some say he mayn't have got away yet; and they're 
looking for him high and low. Their office is a smash; a swindle 
altogether. But what's a Life Assurance office to a Life! And what 
a Life Young Bailey's was!' 
'He was born into a wale' said Mrs Gampwith philosophical 
coolness. 'and he lived in a wale; and he must take the 
consequences of sech a sitiwation. But don't you hear nothink of Mr 
Chuzzlewit in all this?' 
'No' said Poll'nothing to speak of. His name wasn't printed as 
one of the boardthough some people say it was just going to be. 
Some believe he was took inand some believe he was one of the 
takers-in; but however that may bethey can't prove nothing against 
him. This morning he went up of his own accord afore the Lord Mayor 
or some of them City big-wigsand complained that he'd been 
swindledand that these two persons had gone off and cheated him
and that he had just found out that Montague's name wasn't even 
Montaguebut something else. And they do say that he looked like 
Deathowing to his losses. ButLord forgive me' cried the 
barbercoming back again to the subject of his individual grief
'what's his looks to me! He might have died and welcomefifty 
timesand not been such a loss as Bailey!' 
At this juncture the little bell rangand the deep voice of Mrs 
Prig struck into the conversation. 
'Oh! You're a-talkin' about itare you!' observed that lady. 
'WellI hope you've got it overfor I ain't interested in it 
myself.' 
'My precious Betsey' said Mrs Gamp'how late you are!' 
The worthy Mrs Prig repliedwith some asperity'that if perwerse 
people went off deadwhen they was least expectedit warn't no 
fault of her'n.' And further'that it was quite aggrawation enough 
to be made late when one was dropping for one's teawithout hearing 
on it again.' 
Mrs Gampderiving from this exhibition of repartee some clue to the 
state of Mrs Prig's feelingsinstantly conducted her upstairs; 
deeming that the sight of pickled salmon might work a softening 
change. 
But Betsey Prig expected pickled salmon. It was obvious that she 
did; for her first wordsafter glancing at the tablewere: 
'I know'd she wouldn't have a cowcumber!' 
Mrs Gamp changed colourand sat down upon the bedstead. 
'Lord bless youBetsey Prigyour words is true. I quite forgot 
it!' 
Mrs Priglooking steadfastly at her friendput her hand in her 
pocketand with an air of surly triumph drew forth either the 
oldest of lettuces or youngest of cabbagesbut at any ratea green 
vegetable of an expansive natureand of such magnificent 
proportions that she was obliged to shut it up like an umbrella 
before she could pull it out. She also produced a handful of 
mustard and cressa trifle of the herb called dandelionthree 
bunches of radishesan onion rather larger than an average turnip
three substantial slices of beetrootand a short prong or antler of 
celery; the whole of this garden-stuff having been publicly 
exhibitedbut a short time beforeas a twopenny saladand 
purchased by Mrs Prig on condition that the vendor could get it all 
into her pocket. Which had been happily accomplishedin High 
Holbornto the breathless interest of a hackney-coach stand. And 
she laid so little stress on this surprising forethoughtthat she 
did not even smilebut returning her pocket into its accustomed 
spheremerely recommended that these productions of nature should 
be sliced upfor immediate consumptionin plenty of vinegar. 
'And don't go a-droppin' none of your snuff in it' said Mrs Prig. 
'In gruelbarley-waterapple-teamutton-brothand thatit don't 
signify. It stimulates a patient. But I don't relish it myself.' 
'WhyBetsey Prig!' cried Mrs Gamp'how CAN you talk so!' 
'Whyain't your patientswotever their diseases isalways 
asneezin' their wery heads offalong of your snuff?' said Mrs Prig. 
'And wot if they are!' said Mrs Gamp 
'Nothing if they are' said Mrs Prig. 'But don't deny itSairah.' 
'Who deniges of it?' Mrs Gamp inquired. 
Mrs Prig returned no answer. 
'WHO deniges of itBetsey?' Mrs Gamp inquired again. Then Mrs 
Gampby reversing the questionimparted a deeper and more awful 
character of solemnity to the same. 'Betseywho deniges of it?' 
It was the nearest possible approach to a very decided difference of 
opinion between these ladies; but Mrs Prig's impatience for the meal 
being greater at the moment than her impatience of contradiction
she repliedfor the present'Nobodyif you don'tSairah' and 
prepared herself for tea. For a quarrel can be taken up at any 
timebut a limited quantity of salmon cannot. 
Her toilet was simple. She had merely to 'chuck' her bonnet and 
shawl upon the bed; give her hair two pullsone upon the right side 
and one upon the leftas if she were ringing a couple of bells; and 
all was done. The tea was already madeMrs Gamp was not long over 
the saladand they were soon at the height of their repast. 
The temper of both parties was improvedfor the time beingby the 
enjoyments of the table. When the meal came to a termination (which 
it was pretty long in doing)and Mrs Gamp having cleared away
produced the teapot from the top shelfsimultaneously with a couple 
of wine-glassesthey were quite amiable. 
'Betsey' said Mrs Gampfilling her own glass and passing the 
teapot'I will now propoge a toast. My frequent pardnerBetsey 
Prig!' 
'Whichaltering the name to Sairah Gamp; I drink' said Mrs Prig
'with love and tenderness.' 
From this moment symptoms of inflammation began to lurk in the nose 
of each lady; and perhapsnotwithstanding all appearances to the 
contraryin the temper also. 
'NowSairah' said Mrs Prig'joining business with pleasurewot 
is this case in which you wants me?' 
Mrs Gamp betraying in her face some intention of returning an 
evasive answerBetsey added: 
'IS it Mrs Harris?' 
'NoBetsey Prigit ain't' was Mrs Gamp's reply. 
'Well!' said Mrs Prigwith a short laugh. 'I'm glad of thatat 
any rate.' 
'Why should you be glad of thatBetsey?' Mrs Gamp retortedwarmly. 
'She is unbeknown to you except by hearsaywhy should you be glad? 
If you have anythink to say contrairy to the character of Mrs 
Harriswhich well I knows behind her backafore her faceor 
anywheresis not to be impeagedout with itBetsey. I have 
know'd that sweetest and best of women' said Mrs Gampshaking her 
headand shedding tears'ever since afore her Firstwhich Mr 
Harris who was dreadful timid went and stopped his ears in a empty 
dog-kenneland never took his hands away or come out once till he 
was showed the babywen bein' took with fitsthe doctor collared 
him and laid him on his back upon the airy stonesand she was told 
to ease her mindhis owls was organs. And I have know'd her
Betsey Prigwhen he has hurt her feelin' art by sayin' of his Ninth 
that it was one too manyif not twowhile that dear innocent was 
cooin' in his facewhich thrive it did though bandybut I have 
never know'd as you had occagion to be gladBetseyon accounts of 
Mrs Harris not requiring you. Require she never willdepend upon 
itfor her constant words in sickness isand will beSend for 
Sairey?' 
During this touching addressMrs Prig adroitly feigning to be the 
victim of that absence of mind which has its origin in excessive 
attention to one topichelped herself from the teapot without 
appearing to observe it. Mrs Gamp observed ithoweverand came to 
a premature close in consequence. 
'Wellit ain't herit seems' said Mrs Prigcoldly; 'who is it 
then?' 
'You have heerd me mentionBetsey' Mrs Gamp repliedafter 
glancing in an expressive and marked manner at the tea-pot'a 
person as I took care on at the time as you and me was pardners off 
and onin that there fever at the Bull?' 
'Old Snuffey' Mrs Prig observed. 
Sarah Gamp looked at her with an eye of firefor she saw in this 
mistake of Mrs Priganother willful and malignant stab at that same 
weakness or custom of hersan ungenerous allusion to whichon the 
part of Betseyhad first disturbed their harmony that evening. And 
she saw it still more clearlywhenpolitely but firmly correcting 
that lady by the distinct enunciation of the word 'Chuffey' Mrs 
Prig received the correction with a diabolical laugh. 
The best among us have their failingsand it must be conceded of 
Mrs Prigthat if there were a blemish in the goodness of her 
dispositionit was a habit she had of not bestowing all its sharp 
and acid properties upon her patients (as a thoroughly amiable woman 
would have done)but of keeping a considerable remainder for the 
service of her friends. Highly pickled salmonand lettuces chopped 
up in vinegarmayas viands possessing some acidity of their own
have encouraged and increased this failing in Mrs Prig; and every 
application to the teapot certainly did; for it was often remarked 
of her by her friendsthat she was most contradictory when most 
elevated. It is certain that her countenance became about this time 
derisive and defiantand that she sat with her arms foldedand one 
eye shut upin a somewhat offensivebecause obstrusively 
intelligentmanner. 
Mrs Gamp observing thisfelt it the more necessary that Mrs Prig 
should know her placeand be made sensible of her exact station in 
societyas well as of her obligations to herself. She therefore 
assumed an air of greater patronage and importanceas she went on 
to answer Mrs Prig a little more in detail. 
'Mr ChuffeyBetsey' said Mrs Gamp'is weak in his mind. Excuge 
me if I makes remarkthat he may neither be so weak as people 
thinksnor people may not think he is so weak as they pretendsand 
what I knowsI knows; and what you don'tyou don't; so do not ask 
meBetsey. But Mr Chuffey's friends has made propojals for his 
bein' took care onand has said to meMrs Gamp, WILL you 
undertake it? We couldn't think,they saysof trusting him to 
nobody but you, for, Sairey, you are gold as has passed the furnage. 
Will you undertake it, at your own price, day and night, and by your 
own self?No,I saysI will not. Do not reckon on it. There 
is,I saysbut one creetur in the world as I would undertake on 
sech termsand her name is Harris. But I says, I am acquainted 
with a friendwhose name is Betsey Prigthat I can recommendand 
will assist me. Betsey I says, is always to be trusted under 
meand will be guided as I could desire."' 
Here Mrs Prigwithout any abatement of her offensive manner again 
counterfeited abstraction of mindand stretched out her hand to the 
teapot. It was more than Mrs Gamp could bear. She stopped the hand 
of Mrs Prig with her ownand saidwith great feeling: 
'NoBetsey! Drink fairwotever you do!' 
Mrs Prigthus baffledthrew herself back in her chairand closing 
the same eye more emphaticallyand folding her arms tighter
suffered her head to roll slowly from side to sidewhile she 
surveyed her friend with a contemptuous smile. 
Mrs Gamp resumed: 
'Mrs HarrisBetsey--' 
'Bother Mrs Harris!' said Betsey Prig. 
Mrs Gamp looked at her with amazementincredulityand indignation; 
when Mrs Prigshutting her eye still closerand folding her arms 
still tighteruttered these memorable and tremendous words: 
'I don't believe there's no sich a person!' 
After the utterance of which expressionsshe leaned forwardand 
snapped her fingers oncetwicethrice; each time nearer to the 
face of Mrs Gampand then rose to put on her bonnetas one who 
felt that there was now a gulf between themwhich nothing could 
ever bridge across. 
The shock of this blow was so violent and suddenthat Mrs Gamp sat 
staring at nothing with uplifted eyesand her mouth open as if she 
were gasping for breathuntil Betsey Prig had put on her bonnet and 
her shawland was gathering the latter about her throat. Then Mrs 
Gamp rose--morally and physically rose--and denounced her. 
'What!' said Mrs Gamp'you bage creeturhave I know'd Mrs Harris 
five and thirty yearto be told at last that there ain't no sech a 
person livin'! Have I stood her friend in all her troublesgreat 
and smallfor it to come at last to sech a end as thiswhich her 
own sweet picter hanging up afore you all the timeto shame your 
Bragian words! But well you mayn't believe there's no sech a 
creeturfor she wouldn't demean herself to look at youand often 
has she saidwhen I have made mention of your namewhichto my 
sinful sorrowI have doneWhat, Sairey Gamp! debage yourself to 
HER!Go along with you!' 
'I'm a-goin'ma'amain't I?' said Mrs Prigstopping as she said 
it. 
'You had betterma'am' said Mrs Gamp. 
'Do you know who you're talking toma'am?' inquired her visitor. 
'Aperiently' said Mrs Gampsurveying her with scorn from head to 
foot'to Betsey Prig. Aperiently so. I know her. No one better. 
Go along with you!' 
'And YOU was a-goin' to take me under you!' cried Mrs Prig
surveying Mrs Gamp from head to foot in her turn. 'YOU waswas 
you? Ohhow kind! Whydeuce take your imperence' said Mrs Prig
with a rapid change from banter to ferocity'what do you mean?' 
'Go along with you!' said Mrs Gamp. 'I blush for you.' 
'You had better blush a little for yourselfwhile you ARE about 
it!' said Mrs Prig. 'You and your Chuffeys! Whatthe poor old 
creetur isn't mad enoughisn't he? Aha!' 
'He'd very soon be mad enoughif you had anything to do with him' 
said Mrs Gamp. 
'And that's what I was wanted foris it?' cried Mrs Prig
triumphantly. 'Yes. But you'll find yourself deceived. I won't go 
near him. We shall see how you get on without me. I won't have 
nothink to do with him.' 
'You never spoke a truer word than that!' said Mrs Gamp. 'Go along 
with you!' 
She was prevented from witnessing the actual retirement of Mrs Prig 
from the roomnotwithstanding the great desire she had expressed to 
behold itby that ladyin her angry withdrawalcoming into 
contact with the bedsteadand bringing down the previously 
mentioned pippins; three or four of which came rattling on the head 
of Mrs Gamp so smartlythat when she recovered from this wooden 
shower-bathMrs Prig was gone. 
She had the satisfactionhoweverof hearing the deep voice of 
Betseyproclaiming her injuries and her determination to have 
nothing to do with Mr Chuffeydown the stairsand along the 
passageand even out in Kingsgate Street. Likewise of seeing in 
her own apartmentin the place of Mrs PrigMr Sweedlepipe and two 
gentlemen. 
'Whybless my life!' exclaimed the little barber'what's amiss? 
The noise you ladies have been makingMrs Gamp! Whythese two 
gentlemen have been standing on the stairsoutside the doornearly 
all the timetrying to make you hearwhile you were pelting away
hammer and tongs! It'll be the death of the little bullfinch in the 
shopthat draws his own water. In his frighthe's been astraining 
himself all to bitsdrawing more water than he could 
drink in a twelvemonth. He must have thought it was Fire!' 
Mrs Gamp had in the meanwhile sunk into her chairfrom whence
turning up her overflowing eyesand clasping her handsshe 
delivered the following lamentation: 
'OhMr Sweedlepipeswhich Mr Westlock alsoif my eyes do not 
deceiveand a friend not havin' the pleasure of bein' beknownwot 
I have took from Betsey Prig this blessed nightno mortial creetur 
knows! If she had abuged mebein' in liquorwhich I thought I 
smelt her wen she comebut could not so believenot bein' used 
myself'--Mrs Gampby the waywas pretty far goneand the 
fragrance of the teapot was strong in the room--'I could have bore 
it with a thankful art. But the words she spoke of Mrs Harris
lambs could not forgive. NoBetsey!' said Mrs Gampin a violent 
burst of feeling'nor worms forget!' 
The little barber scratched his headand shook itand looked at 
the teapotand gradually got out of the room. John Westlock
taking a chairsat down on one side of Mrs Gamp. Martintaking 
the foot of the bedsupported her on the other. 
'You wonder what we wantI daresay' observed John. 'I'll tell 
you presentlywhen you have recovered. It's not pressingfor a 
few minutes or so. How do you find yourself? Better?' 
Mrs Gamp shed more tearsshook her head and feebly pronounced Mrs 
Harris's name. 
'Have a little--' John was at a loss what to call it. 
'Tea' suggested Martin. 
'It ain't tea' said Mrs Gamp. 
'Physic of some sortI suppose' cried John. 'Have a little.' 
Mrs Gamp was prevailed upon to take a glassful. 'On condition' she 
passionately observed'as Betsey never has another stroke of work 
from me.' 
'Certainly not' said John. 'She shall never help to nurse ME.' 
'To think' said Mrs Gamp'as she should ever have helped to nuss 
that friend of yournand been so near of hearing things that--Ah!' 
John looked at Martin. 
'Yes' he said. 'That was a narrow escapeMrs Gamp.' 
'Narrerin-deed!' she returned. 'It was only my having the night
and hearin' of him in his wanderins; and her the daythat saved it. 
Wot would she have said and doneif she had know'd what I know; 
that perfeejus wretch! Yetoh good gracious me!' cried Mrs Gamp
trampling on the floorin the absence of Mrs Prig'that I should 
hear from that same woman's lips what I have heerd her speak of Mrs 
Harris!' 
'Never mind' said John. 'You know it is not true.' 
'Isn't true!' cried Mrs Gamp. 'True! Don't I know as that dear 
woman is expecting of me at this minnitMr Westlockand is a
lookin' out of window down the streetwith little Tommy Harris in 
her armsas calls me his own Gammyand truly callsfor bless the 
mottled little legs of that there precious child (like Canterbury 
Brawn his own dear father sayswhich so they are) his own I have 
beenever since I found himMr Westlockwith his small red 
worsted shoe a-gurglin' in his throatwhere he had put it in his 
playa chickwile they was leavin' of him on the floor a-lookin' 
for it through the ouse and him a-choakin' sweetly in the parlour! 
OhBetsey Prigwhat wickedness you've showed this nightbut never 
shall you darken Sairey's doors agenyou twining serpiant!' 
'You were always so kind to hertoo!' said Johnconsolingly. 
'That's the cutting part. That's where it hurts meMr Westlock' 
Mrs Gamp replied; holding out her glass unconsciouslywhile Martin 
filled it. 
'Chosen to help you with Mr Lewsome!' said John. 'Chosen to help 
you with Mr Chuffey!' 
'Chose oncebut chose no more' cried Mrs Gamp. 'No pardnership 
with Betsey Prig agensir!' 
'Nono' said John. 'That would never do.' 
'I don't know as it ever would have donesir' Mrs Gamp replied
with a solemnity peculiar to a certain stage of intoxication. 'Now 
that the marks' by which Mrs Gamp is supposed to have meant mask
'is off that creetur's faceI do not think it ever would have done. 
There are reagions in families for keeping things a secretMr 
Westlockand havin' only them about you as you knows you can repoge 
in. Who could repoge in Betsey Prigarter her words of Mrs Harris
setting in that chair afore my eyes!' 
'Quite true' said John; 'quite. I hope you have time to find 
another assistantMrs Gamp?' 
Between her indignation and the teapother powers of comprehending 
what was said to her began to fail. She looked at John with tearful 
eyesand murmuring the well-remembered name which Mrs Prig had 
challenged--as if it were a talisman against all earthly sorrows-seemed 
to wander in her mind. 
'I hope' repeated John'that you have time to find another 
assistant?' 
'Which short it isindeed' cried Mrs Gampturning up her languid 
eyesand clasping Mr Westlock's wrist with matronly affection. 
'To-morrow evenin'sirI waits upon his friends. Mr Chuzzlewit 
apinted it from nine to ten.' 
'From nine to ten' said Johnwith a significant glance at Martin. 
'and then Mr Chuffey retires into safe keepingdoes he?' 
'He needs to be kep safeI do assure you' Mrs Gamp replied with a 
mysterious air. 'Other people besides me has had a happy 
deliverance from Betsey Prig. I little know'd that woman. She'd 
have let it out!' 
'Let HIM outyou mean' said John. 
'Do I!' retorted Mrs Gamp. 'Oh!' 
The severely ironical character of this reply was strengthened by a 
very slow nodand a still slower drawing down of the corners of Mrs 
Gamp's mouth. She added with extreme stateliness of manner after 
indulging in a short doze: 
'But I am a-keepin' of you gentlemenand time is precious.' 
Mingling with that delusion of the teapot which inspired her with 
the belief that they wanted her to go somewhere immediatelya shrewd 
avoidance of any further reference to the topics into which she had 
lately strayedMrs Gamp rose; and putting away the teapot in its 
accustomed placeand locking the cupboard with much gravity 
proceeded to attire herself for a professional visit. 
This preparation was easily madeas it required nothing more than 
the snuffy black bonnetthe snuffy black shawlthe pattens and the 
indispensable umbrellawithout which neither a lying-in nor a 
laying-out could by any possibility be attempted. When Mrs Gamp had 
invested herself with these appendages she returned to her chair
and sitting down againdeclared herself quite ready. 
'It's a 'appiness to know as one can benefit the poor sweet creetur' 
she observed'I'm sure. It isn't all as can. The torters Betsey 
Prig inflicts is frightful!' 
Closing her eyes as she made this remarkin the acuteness of her 
commiseration for Betsey's patientsshe forgot to open them again 
until she dropped a patten. Her nap was also broken at intervals 
like the fabled slumbers of Friar Baconby the dropping of the 
other pattenand of the umbrella. But when she had got rid of 
those incumbrancesher sleep was peaceful. 
The two young men looked at each otherludicrously enough; and 
Martinstifling his disposition to laughwhispered in John 
Westlock's ear
'What shall we do now?' 
'Stay here' he replied. 
Mrs Gamp was heard to murmur 'Mrs Harris' in her sleep. 
'Rely upon it' whispered Johnlooking cautiously towards her
'that you shall question this old clerkthough you go as Mrs Harris 
herself. We know quite enough to carry her our own way nowat all 
events; thanks to this quarrelwhich confirms the old saying that 
when rogues fall outhonest people get what they want. Let Jonas 
Chuzzlewit look to himself; and let her sleep as long as she likes. 
We shall gain our end in good time.' 
CHAPTER FIFTY 
SURPRISES TOM PINCH VERY MUCHAND SHOWS HOW CERTAIN CONFIDENCES 
PASSED BETWEEN HIM AND HIS SISTER 
It was the next evening; and Tom and his sister were sitting 
together before teatalkingin their usual quiet wayabout a 
great many thingsbut not at all about Lewsome's story or anything 
connected with it; for John Westlock--really Johnfor so young a 
manwas one of the most considerate fellows in the world--had 
particularly advised Tom not to mention it to his sister just yet
in case it should disquiet her. 'And I wouldn'tTom' he said
with a little hesitation'I wouldn't have a shadow on her happy 
faceor an uneasy thought in her gentle heartfor all the wealth 
and honours of the universe!' Really John was uncommonly kind; 
extraordinarily kind. If he had been her fatherTom saidhe could 
not have taken a greater interest in her. 
But although Tom and his sister were extremely conversationalthey 
were less livelyand less cheerfulthan usual. Tom had no idea 
that this originated with Ruthbut took it for granted that he was 
rather dull himself. In truth he was; for the lightest cloud upon 
the Heaven of her quiet mindcast its shadow upon Tom. 
And there was a cloud on little Ruth that evening. Yesindeed. 
When Tom was looking in another directionher bright eyesstealing 
on towards his facewould sparkle still more brightly than their 
custom wasand then grow dim. When Tom was silentlooking out 
upon the summer weathershe would sometimes make a hasty movement
as if she were about to throw herself upon his neck; then check the 
impulseand when he looked roundshow a laughing faceand speak 
to him very merrily; when she had anything to give Tomor had any 
excuse for coming near himshe would flutter about himand lay her 
bashful hand upon his shoulderand not be willing to withdraw it; 
and would show by all such means that there was something on her 
heart which in her great love she longed to say to himbut had not 
the courage to utter. 
So they were sittingshe with her work before herbut not working
and Tom with his book beside himbut not readingwhen Martin 
knocked at the door. Anticipating who it wasTom went to open it; 
and he and Martin came back into the room together. Tom looked 
surprisedfor in answer to his cordial greeting Martin had hardly 
spoken a word. 
Ruth also saw that there was something strange in the manner of 
their visitorand raised her eyes inquiringly to Tom's faceas if 
she were seeking an explanation there. Tom shook his headand made 
the same mute appeal to Martin. 
Martin did not sit down but walked up to the windowand stood there 
looking out. He turned round after a few moments to speakbut 
hastily averted his head againwithout doing so. 
'What has happenedMartin?' Tom anxiously inquired. 'My dear 
fellowwhat bad news do you bring?' 
'OhTom!' replied Martinin a tone of deep reproach. 'To hear you 
feign that interest in anything that happens to mehurts me even 
more than your ungenerous dealing.' 
'My ungenerous dealing! Martin! My--' Tom could say no more. 
'How could youTomhow could you suffer me to thank you so 
fervently and sincerely for your friendship; and not tell melike a 
manthat you had deserted me! Was it trueTom! Was it honest! Was 
it worthy of what you used to be--of what I am sure you used to be-to 
tempt mewhen you had turned against meinto pouring out my 
heart! OhTom!' 
His tone was one of such strong injury and yet of so much grief for 
the loss of a friend he had trusted in--it expressed such high past 
love for Tomand so much sorrow and compassion for his supposed 
unworthiness--that Tomfor a momentput his hand before his face
and had no more power of justifying himselfthan if he had been a 
monster of deceit and falsehood. 
'I protestas I must die' said Martin'that I grieve over the 
loss of what I thought you; and have no anger in the recollection of 
my own injuries. It is only at such a timeand after such a 
discoverythat we know the full measure of our old regard for the 
subject of it. I swearlittle as I showed it--little as I know I 
showed it--that when I had the least consideration for youTomI 
loved you like a brother.' 
Tom was composed by this timeand might have been the Spirit of 
Truthin a homely dress--it very often wears a homely dressthank 
God!--when he replied to him. 
'Martin' he said'I don't know what is in your mindor who has 
abused itor by what extraordinary means. But the means are false. 
There is no truth whatever in the impression under which you labour. 
It is a delusion from first to last; and I warn you that you will 
deeply regret the wrong you do me. I can honestly say that I have 
been true to youand to myself. You will be very sorry for this. 
Indeedyou will be very sorry for itMartin.' 
'I AM sorry' returned Martinshaking his head. 'I think I never 
knew what it was to be sorry in my heartuntil now.' 
'At least' said Tom'if I had always been what you charge me with 
being nowand had never had a place in your regardbut had always 
been despised by youand had always deserved ityou should tell me 
in what you have found me to be treacherous; and on what grounds you 
proceed. I do not intreat youthereforeto give me that 
satisfaction as a favourMartinbut I ask it of you as a right.' 
'My own eyes are my witnesses' returned Martin. 'Am I to believe 
them?' 
'No' said Tomcalmly. 'Not if they accuse me.' 
'Your own words. Your own manner' pursued Martin. 'Am I to 
believe THEM?' 
'No' replied Tomcalmly. 'Not if they accuse me. But they never 
have accused me. Whoever has perverted them to such a purposehas 
wronged me almost as cruelly'--his calmness rather failed him here-'
as you have done.' 
'I came here' said Martin; 'and I appeal to your good sister to 
hear me--' 
'Not to her' interrupted Tom. 'Praydo not appeal to her. She 
will never believe you.' 
He drew her arm through his ownas he said it. 
'I believe itTom!' 
'Nono' cried Tom'of course not. I said so. Whytuttut
tut. What a silly little thing you are!' 
'I never meant' said Martinhastily'to appeal to you against 
your brother. Do not think me so unmanly and unkind. I merely 
appealed to you to hear my declarationthat I came here for no 
purpose of reproach--I have not one reproach to vent--but in deep 
regret. You could not know in what bitterness of regretunless you 
knew how often I have thought of Tom; how long in almost hopeless 
circumstancesI have looked forward to the better estimation of his 
friendship; and how steadfastly I have believed and trusted in him.' 
'Tuttut' said Tomstopping her as she was about to speak. 'He 
is mistaken. He is deceived. Why should you mind? He is sure to 
be set right at last.' 
'Heaven bless the day that sets me right!' cried Martin'if it 
could ever come!' 
'Amen!' said Tom. 'And it will!' 
Martin pausedand then said in a still milder voice: 
'You have chosen for yourselfTomand will be relieved by our 
parting. It is not an angry one. There is no anger on my side--' 
'There is none on mine' said Tom. 
'--It is merely what you have brought aboutand worked to bring 
about. I say againyou have chosen for yourself. You have made 
the choice that might have been expected in most people situated as 
you arebut which I did not expect in you. For thatperhapsI 
should blame my own judgment more than you. There is wealth and 
favour worth havingon one side; and there is the worthless 
friendship of an abandonedstruggling fellowon the other. You 
were free to make your electionand you made it; and the choice was 
not difficult. But those who have not the courage to resist such 
temptationsshould have the courage to avow what they have yielded 
to them; and I DO blame you for thisTom: that you received me with 
a show of warmthencouraged me to be frank and plain-spoken
tempted me to confide in youand professed that you were able to be 
mine; when you had sold yourself to others. I do not believe' said 
Martinwith emotion--'hear me say it from my heart--I CANNOT 
believeTomnow that I am standing face to face with youthat it 
would have been in your nature to do me any serious harmeven 
though I had not discoveredby chancein whose employment you 
were. But I should have encumbered you; I should have led you into 
more double-dealing; I should have hazarded your retaining the 
favour for which you have paid so high a pricebartering away your 
former self; and it is best for both of us that I have found out 
what you so much desired to keep secret.' 
'Be just' said Tom; whohad not removed his mild gaze from 
Martin's face since the commencement of this last address; 'be just 
even in your injusticeMartin. You forget. You have not yet told 
me what your accusation is!' 
'Why should I?' returned Martinwaving his handand moving towards 
the door. 'You could not know it the better for my dwelling on it
and though it would be really none the worseit might seem to me to 
be. NoTom. Bygones shall be bygones between us. I can take 
leave of you at this momentand in this place--in which you are so 
amiable and so good--as heartilyif not as cheerfullyas ever I 
have done since we first met. All good go with youTom!--I--' 
'You leave me so? You can leave me socan you?' said Tom. 
'I--you--you have chosen for yourselfTom! I--I hope it was a rash 
choice' Martin faltered. 'I think it was. I am sure it was! Goodbye!' 
And he was gone. 
Tom led his little sister to her chairand sat down in his own. He 
took his bookand reador seemed to read. Presently he said 
aloudturning a leaf as he spoke: 'He will be very sorry for this.' 
And a tear stole down his faceand dropped upon the page. 
Ruth nestled down beside him on her kneesand clasped her arms 
about his neck. 
'NoTom! Nono! Be comforted! Dear Tom!' 
'I am quite--comforted' said Tom. 'It will be set right.' 
'Such a cruelbad return!' cried Ruth. 
'Nono' said Tom. 'He believes it. I cannot imagine why. But it 
will be set right.' 
More closely yetshe nestled down about him; and wept as if her 
heart would break. 
'Don't. Don't' said Tom. 'Why do you hide your facemy dear!' 
Then in a burst of tearsit all broke out at last. 
'Oh Tomdear TomI know your secret heart. I have found it out; 
you couldn't hide the truth from me. Why didn't you tell me? I am 
sure I could have made you happierif you had! You love herTom
so dearly!' 
Tom made a motion with his hand as if he would have put his sister 
hurriedly away; but it clasped upon hersand all his little history 
was written in the action. All its pathetic eloquence was in the 
silent touch. 
'In spite of that' said Ruth'you have been so faithful and so 
gooddear; in spite of thatyou have been so true and selfdenying
and have struggled with yourself; in spite of thatyou 
have been so gentleand so kindand even-temperedthat I have 
never seen you give a hasty lookor heard you say one irritable 
word. In spite of allyou have been so cruelly mistaken. Oh Tom
dear Tomwill THIS be set right too! Will itTom? Will you always 
have this sorrow in your breast; you who deserve to be so happy; or 
is there any hope?' 
And still she hid her face from Tomand clasped him round the neck
and wept for himand poured out all her woman's heart and soul in 
the relief and pain of this disclosure. 
It was not very long before she and Tom were sitting side by side
and she was looking with an earnest quietness in Tom's face. Then 
Tom spoke to her thuscheerilythough gravely: 
'I am very gladmy dearthat this has passed between us. Not 
because it assures me of your tender affection (for I was well 
assured of that before)but because it relieves my mind of a great 
weight.' 
Tom's eyes glistened when he spoke of her affection; and he kissed 
her on the cheek. 
'My dear girl' said Tom; 'with whatever feeling I regard her'--they 
seemed to avoid the name by mutual consent--'I have long ago--I am 
sure I may say from the very first--looked upon it as a dream. As 
something that might possibly have happened under very different 
circumstancesbut which can never be. Nowtell me. What would 
you have set right?' 
She gave Tom such a significant little lookthat he was obliged to 
take it for an answer whether he would or no; and to go on. 
'By her own choice and free consentmy loveshe is betrothed to 
Martin; and waslong before either of them knew of my existence. 
You would have her betrothed to me?' 
'Yes' she said directly. 
'Yes' rejoined Tom'but that might be setting it wronginstead of 
right. Do you think' said Tomwith a grave smile'that even if 
she had never seen himit is very likely she would have fallen in 
love with Me?' 
'Why notdear Tom?' 
Tom shook his headand smiled again. 
'You think of meRuth' said Tom'and it is very natural that you 
shouldas if I were a character in a book; and you make it a sort 
of poetical justice that I shouldby some impossible means or 
othercomeat lastto marry the person I love. But there is a 
much higher justice than poetical justicemy dearand it does not 
order events upon the same principle. Accordinglypeople who read 
about heroes in booksand choose to make heroes of themselves out 
of booksconsider it a very fine thing to be discontented and 
gloomyand misanthropicaland perhaps a little blasphemous
because they cannot have everything ordered for their individual 
accommodation. Would you like me to become one of that sort of 
people?' 
'NoTom. But still I know' she added timidly'that this is a 
sorrow to you in your own better way.' 
Tom thought of disputing the position. But it would have been mere 
follyand he gave it up. 
'My dear' said Tom'I will repay your affection with the Truth and 
all the Truth. It is a sorrow to me. I have proved it to be so 
sometimesthough I have always striven against it. But somebody 
who is precious to you may dieand you may dream that you are in 
heaven with the departed spiritand you may find it a sorrow to 
wake to the life on earthwhich is no harder to be borne than when 
you fell asleep. It is sorrowful to me to contemplate my dream 
which I always knew was a dreameven when it first presented 
itself; but the realities about me are not to blame. They are the 
same as they were. My sistermy sweet companionwho makes this 
place so dearis she less devoted to meRuththan she would have 
beenif this vision had never troubled me? My old friend Johnwho 
might so easily have treated me with coldness and neglectis he 
less cordial to me? The world about meis there less good in that? 
Are my words to be harsh and my looks to be sourand is my heart to 
grow coldbecause there has fallen in my way a good and beautiful 
creaturewho but for the selfish regret that I cannot call her my 
ownwouldlike all other good and beautiful creaturesmake me 
happier and better! Nomy dear sister. No' said Tom stoutly. 
'Remembering all my means of happinessI hardly dare to call this 
lurking something a sorrow; but whatever name it may justly bearI 
thank Heaven that it renders me more sensible of affection and 
attachmentand softens me in fifty ways. Not less happy. Not less 
happyRuth!' 
She could not speak to himbut she loved himas he well deserved. 
Even as he deservedshe loved him. 
'She will open Martin's eyes' said Tomwith a glow of pride'and 
that (which is indeed wrong) will be set right. Nothing will 
persuade herI knowthat I have betrayed him. It will be set 
right through herand he will be very sorry for it. Our secret
Ruthis our ownand lives and dies with us. I don't believe I 
ever could have told it you' said Tomwith a smile'but how glad 
I am to think you have found it out!' 
They had never taken such a pleasant walk as they took that night. 
Tom told her all so freely and so simplyand was so desirous to 
return her tenderness with his fullest confidencethat they 
prolonged it far beyond their usual hourand sat up late when they 
came home. And when they parted for the night there was such a 
tranquilbeautiful expression in Tom's facethat she could not 
bear to shut it outbut going back on tiptoe to his chamber-door
looked in and stood there till he saw herand then embracing him 
againwithdrew. And in her prayers and in her sleep--good times to 
be remembered with such fervourTom!--his name was uppermost. 
When he was left aloneTom pondered very much on this discovery of 
hersand greatly wondered what had led her to it. 'Because' 
thought Tom'I have been so very careful. It was foolish and 
unnecessary in meas I clearly see nowwhen I am so relieved by 
her knowing it; but I have been so very careful to conceal it from 
her. Of course I knew that she was intelligent and quickand for 
that reason was more upon my guard; but I was not in the least 
prepared for this. I am sure her discovery has been sudden too. 
Dear me!' said Tom. 'It's a most singular instance of penetration!' 
Tom could not get it out of his head. There it waswhen his head 
was on his pillow. 
'How she trembled when she began to tell me she knew it!' thought 
Tomrecalling all the little incidents and circumstances; 'and how 
her face flushed! But that was natural! Ohquite natural! That 
needs no accounting for.' 
Tom little thought how natural it was. Tom little knew that there 
was that in Ruth's own heartbut newly set therewhich had helped 
her to the reading of his mystery. AhTom! He didn't understand 
the whispers of the Temple Fountainthough he passed it every day. 
Who so lively and cheerful as busy Ruth next morning! Her early tap 
at Tom's doorand her light foot outsidewould have been music to 
him though she had not spoken. But she said it was the brightest 
morning ever seen; and so it was; and if it had been otherwiseshe 
would have made it so to Tom. 
She was ready with his neat breakfast when he went downstairsand 
had her bonnet ready for the early walkand was so full of news
that Tom was lost in wonder. She might have been up all night
collecting it for his entertainment. There was Mr Nadgett not come 
home yetand there was bread down a penny a loafand there was 
twice as much strength in this tea as in the lastand the milkwoman's 
husband had come out of the hospital curedand the curlyheaded 
child over the way had been lost all yesterdayand she was 
going to make all sorts of preserves in a desperate hurryand there 
happened to be a saucepan in the house which was the very saucepan 
for the purpose; and she knew all about the last book Tom had 
brought homeall throughthough it was a teaser to read; and she 
had so much to tell him that she had finished breakfast first. Then 
she had her little bonnet onand the tea and sugar locked upand 
the keys in her reticuleand the floweras usualin Tom's coat
and was in all respects quite ready to accompany himbefore Tom 
knew she had begun to prepare. And in shortas Tom saidwith a 
confidence in his own assertion which amounted to a defiance of the 
public in generalthere never was such a little woman. 
She made Tom talkative. It was impossible to resist her. She put 
such enticing questions to him; about booksand about dates of 
churchesand about organs and about the Templeand about all kinds 
of things. Indeedshe lightened the way (and Tom's heart with it) 
to that degreethat the Temple looked quite blank and solitary when 
he parted from her at the gate. 
'No Mr Fips's friend to-dayI suppose' thought Tomas he ascended 
the stairs. 
Not yetat any ratefor the door was closed as usualand Tom 
opened it with his key. He had got the books into perfect order 
nowand had mended the torn leavesand had pasted up the broken 
backsand substituted neat labels for the worn-out letterings. It 
looked a different placeit was so orderly and neat. Tom felt some 
pride in comtemplating the change he had wroughtthough there was 
no one to approve or disapprove of it. 
He was at present occupied in making a fair copy of his draught of 
the catalogue; on whichas there was no hurryhe was painfully 
concentrating all the ingenious and laborious neatness he had ever 
expended on map or plan in Mr Pecksniff's workroom. It was a very 
marvel of a catalogue; for Tom sometimes thought he was really 
getting his money too easilyand he had determined within himself 
that this document should take a little of his superfluous leisure 
out of him. 
So with pens and rulerand compasses and india-rubberand pencil
and black inkand red inkTom worked away all the morning. He 
thought a good deal about Martinand their interview of yesterday
and would have been far easier in his mind if he could have resolved 
to confide it to his friend Johnand to have taken his opinion on 
the subject. But besides that he knew what John's boiling 
indignation would behe bethought himself that he was helping 
Martin now in a matter of great momentand that to deprive the 
latter of his assistance at such a crisis of affairswould be to 
inflict a serious injury upon him. 
'So I'll keep it to myself' said Tomwith a sigh. 'I'll keep it 
to myself.' 
And to work he went againmore assiduously than everwith the 
pensand the rulerand the india-rubberand the pencilsand the 
red inkthat he might forget it. 
He had laboured away another hour or morewhen he heard a footstep 
in the entrydown below. 
'Ah!' said Tomlooking towards the door; 'time wasnot long ago 
eitherwhen that would have set me wondering and expecting. But I 
have left off now.' 
The footstep came onup the stairs. 
'Thirty-sixthirty-seventhirty-eight' said Tomcounting. 'Now 
you'll stop. Nobody ever comes past the thirty-eighth stair.' 
The person didcertainlybut only to take breath; for up the 
footstep came again. Fortyforty-oneforty-twoand so on. 
The door stood open. As the tread advancedTom looked impatiently 
and eagerly towards it. When a figure came upon the landingand 
arriving in the doorwaystopped and gazed at himhe rose up from 
his chairand half believed he saw a spirit. 
Old Martin Chuzzlewit! The same whom he had left at Mr Pecksniff's
weak and sinking! 
The same? Nonot the samefor this old manthough oldwas 
strongand leaned upon his stick with a vigorous handwhile with 
the other he signed to Tom to make no noise. One glance at the 
resolute facethe watchful eyethe vigorous hand upon the staff
the triumphant purpose in the figureand such a light broke in on 
Tom as blinded him. 
'You have expected me' said Martin'a long time.' 
'I was told that my employer would arrive soon' said Tom; 'but--' 
'I know. You were ignorant who he was. It was my desire. I am 
glad it has been so well observed. I intended to have been with you 
much sooner. I thought the time had come. I thought I could know 
no moreand no worseof himthan I did on that day when I saw you 
last. But I was wrong.' 
He had by this time come up to Tomand now he grasped his hand. 
'I have lived in his housePinchand had him fawning on me days 
and weeks and months. You know it. I have suffered him to treat me 
like his tool and instrument. You know it; you have seen me there. 
I have undergone ten thousand times as much as I could have endured 
if I had been the miserable weak old man he took me for. You know 
it. I have seen him offer love to Mary. You know it; who better-who 
bettermy true heart! I have had his base soul bare before me
day by dayand have not betrayed myself once. I never could have 
undergone such torture but for looking forward to this time.' 
He stoppedeven in the passion of his speech--if that can be called 
passion which was so resolute and steady--to press Tom's hand again. 
Then he saidin great excitement: 
'Close the doorclose the door. He will not be long after mebut 
may come too soon. The time now drawing on' said the old man
hurriedly--his eyes and whole face brightening as he spoke--'will 
make amends for all. I wouldn't have him die or hang himselffor 
millions of golden pieces! Close the door!' 
Tom did so; hardly knowing yet whether he was awake or in a dream. 
CHAPTER FIFTY-ONE 
SHEDS NEW AND BRIGHTER LIGHT UPON THE VERY DARK PLACE; AND CONTAINS 
THE SEQUEL OF THE ENTERPRISE OF MR JONAS AND HIS FRIEND 
The night had now comewhen the old clerk was to be delivered over 
to his keepers. In the midst of his guilty distractionsJonas had 
not forgotten it. 
It was a part of his guilty state of mind to remember it; for on his 
persistence in the scheme depended one of his precautions for his 
own safety. A hinta wordfrom the old manuttered at such a 
moment in attentive earsmight fire the train of suspicionand 
destroy him. His watchfulness of every avenue by which the 
discovery of his guilt might be approachedsharpened with his sense 
of the danger by which he was encompassed. With murder on his soul
and its innumerable alarms and terrors dragging at him night and 
dayhe would have repeated the crimeif he had seen a path of 
safety stretching out beyond. It was in his punishment; it was in 
his guilty condition. The very deed which his fears rendered 
insupportablehis fears would have impelled him to commit again. 
But keeping the old man closeaccording to his designwould serve 
his turn. His purpose was to escapewhen the first alarm and 
wonder had subsided; and when he could make the attempt without 
awakening instant suspicion. In the meanwhile these women would 
keep him quiet; and if the talking humour came upon himwould not 
be easily startled. He knew their trade. 
Nor had he spoken idly when he said the old man should be gagged. 
He had resolved to ensure his silence; and he looked to the endnot 
the means. He had been rough and rude and cruel to the old man all 
his life; and violence was natural to his mind in connection with 
him. 'He shall be gagged if he speaksand pinioned if he writes' 
said Jonaslooking at him; for they sat alone together. 'He is mad 
enough for that; I'll go through with it!' 
Hush! 
Still listening! To every sound. He had listened ever sinceand it 
had not come yet. The exposure of the Assurance office; the flight 
of Crimple and Bullamy with the plunderand among the restas he 
fearedwith his own billwhich he had not found in the pocket-book 
of the murdered manand which with Mr Pecksniff's money had 
probably been remitted to one or other of those trusty friends for 
safe deposit at the banker's; his immense lossesand peril of being 
still called to account as a partner in the broken firm; all these 
things rose in his mind at one time and alwaysbut he could not 
contemplate them. He was aware of their presenceand of the rage
discomfitureand despairthey brought along with them; but he 
thought--of his own controlling power and direction he thought--of 
the one dread question only. When they would find the body in the 
wood. 
He tried--he had never left off trying--not to forget it was there
for that was impossiblebut to forget to weary himself by drawing 
vivid pictures of it in his fancy; by going softly about it and 
about it among the leavesapproaching it nearer and nearer through 
a gap in the boughsand startling the very flies that were thickly 
sprinkled all over itlike heaps of dried currants. His mind was 
fixed and fastened on the discoveryfor intelligence of which he 
listened intently to every cry and shout; listened when any one came 
in or went out; watched from the window the people who passed up 
and down the street; mistrusted his own looks and words. And the 
more his thoughts were set upon the discoverythe stronger was the 
fascination which attracted them to the thing itself; lying alone in 
the wood. He was for ever showing and presenting itas it wereto 
every creature whom he saw. 'Look here! Do you know of this? Is it 
found? Do you suspect ME?' If he had been condemned to bear the 
body in his armsand lay it down for recognition at the feet of 
every one he metit could not have been more constantly with him
or a cause of more monotonous and dismal occupation than it was in 
this state of his mind. 
Still he was not sorry. It was no contrition or remorse for what he 
had done that moved him; it was nothing but alarm for his own 
security. The vague consciousness he possessed of having wrecked 
his fortune in the murderous ventureintensified his hatred and 
revengeand made him set the greater store by what he had gained 
The man was dead; nothing could undo that. He felt a triumph yet
in the reflection. 
He had kept a jealous watch on Chuffey ever since the deed; seldom 
leaving him but on compulsionand then for as short intervals as 
possible. They were alone together now. It was twilightand the 
appointed time drew near at hand. Jonas walked up and down the 
room. The old man sat in his accustomed corner. 
The slightest circumstance was matter of disquiet to the murderer
and he was made uneasy at this time by the absence of his wifewho 
had left home early in the afternoonand had not returned yet. No 
tenderness for her was at the bottom of this; but he had a misgiving 
that she might have been waylaidand tempted into saying something 
that would criminate him when the news came. For anything he knew
she might have knocked at the door of his roomwhile he was away
and discovered his plot. Confound herit was like her pale face to 
be wandering up and down the house! Where was she now? 
'She went to her good friendMrs Todgers' said the old manwhen 
he asked the question with an angry oath. 
Aye! To be sure! Always stealing away into the company of that 
woman. She was no friend of his. Who could tell what devil's 
mischief they might hatch together! Let her be fetched home 
directly. 
The old manmuttering some words softlyrose as if he would have 
gone himselfbut Jonas thrust him back into his chair with an 
impatient imprecationand sent a servant-girl to fetch her. When 
he had charged her with her errand he walked to and fro againand 
never stopped till she came backwhich she did pretty soon; the way 
being shortand the woman having made good haste. 
Well! Where was she? Had she come? 
No. She had left therefull three hours. 
'Left there! Alone?' 
The messenger had not asked; taking that for granted. 
'Curse you for a fool. Bring candles!' 
She had scarcely left the room when the old clerkwho had been 
unusually observant of him ever since he had asked about his wife
came suddenly upon him. 
'Give her up!' cried the old man. 'Come! Give her up to me! Tell me 
what you have done with her. Quick! I have made no promises on that 
score. Tell me what you have done with her.' 
He laid his hands upon his collar as he spokeand grasped it; 
tightly too. 
'You shall not leave me!' cried the old man. 'I am strong enough to 
cry out to the neighboursand I willunless you give her up. Give 
her up to me!' 
Jonas was so dismayed and conscience-strickenthat he had not even 
hardihood enough to unclench the old man's hands with his own; but 
stood looking at him as well as he could in the darknesswithout 
moving a finger. It was as much as he could do to ask him what he 
meant. 
'I will know what you have done with her!' retorted Chuffey. 'If 
you hurt a hair of her headyou shall answer it. Poor thing! Poor 
thing! Where is she?' 
'Whyyou old madman!' said Jonasin a low voiceand with 
trembling lips. 'What Bedlam fit has come upon you now?' 
'It is enough to make me madseeing what I have seen in this 
house!' cried Chuffey. 'Where is my dear old master! Where is his 
only son that I have nursed upon my kneea child! Where is sheshe 
who was the last; she that I've seen pining day by dayand heard 
weeping in the dead of night! She was the lastthe last of all my 
friends! Heaven help meshe was the very last!' 
Seeing that the tears were stealing down his faceJonas mustered 
courage to unclench his handsand push him off before he answered: 
'Did you hear me ask for her? Did you hear me send for her? How 
can I give you up what I haven't gotidiot! EcodI'd give her up 
to you and welcomeif I could; and a precious pair you'd be!' 
'If she has come to any harm' cried Chuffey'mind! I'm old and 
silly; but I have my memory sometimes; and if she has come to any 
harm--' 
'Devil take you' interrupted Jonasbut in a suppressed voice 
still; 'what harm do you suppose she has come to? I know no more 
where she is than you do; I wish I did. Wait till she comes home
and see; she can't be long. Will that content you?' 
'Mind!' exclaimed the old man. 'Not a hair of her head! not a hair 
of her head ill-used! I won't bear it. I--I--have borne it too long 
Jonas. I am silentbut I--I--I can speak. I--I--I can speak--' he 
stammeredas he crept back to his chairand turned a threatening
though a feeblelook upon him. 
'You can speakcan you!' thought Jonas. 'Sosowe'll stop your 
speaking. It's well I knew of this in good time. Prevention is 
better than cure.' 
He had made a poor show of playing the bully and evincing a desire 
to conciliate at the same timebut was so afraid of the old man 
that great drops had started out upon his brow; and they stood there 
yet. His unusual tone of voice and agitated manner had sufficiently 
expressed his fear; but his face would have done so nowwithout 
that aidas he again walked to and froglancing at him by the 
candelight. 
He stopped at the window to think. An opposite shop was lighted up; 
and the tradesman and a customer were reading some printed bill 
together across the counter. The sight brought him backinstantly
to the occupation he had forgotten. 'Look here! Do you know of 
this? Is it found? Do you suspect ME?' 
A hand upon the door. 'What's that!' 
'A pleasant evenin'' said the voice of Mrs Gamp'though warm
whichbless youMr Chuzzlewitwe must expect when cowcumbers is 
three for twopence. How does Mr Chuffey find his self to-night
sir?' 
Mrs Gamp kept particularly close to the door in saying thisand 
curtseyed more than usual. She did not appear to be quite so much 
at her ease as she generally was. 
'Get him to his room' said Jonaswalking up to herand speaking 
in her ear. 'He has been raving to-night--stark mad. Don't talk 
while he's herebut come down again.' 
'Poor sweet dear!' cried Mrs Gampwith uncommon tenderness. 'He's 
all of a tremble.' 
'Well he may be' said Jonas'after the mad fit he has had. Get 
him upstairs.' 
She was by this time assisting him to rise. 
'There's my blessed old chick!' cried Mrs Gampin a tone that was 
at once soothing and encouraging. 'There's my darlin' Mr Chuffey! 
Now come up to your own roomsirand lay down on your bed a bit; 
for you're a-shakin' all overas if your precious jints was hung 
upon wires. That's a good creetur! Come with Sairey!' 
'Is she come home?' inquired the old man. 
'She'll be here directly minit' returned Mrs Gamp. 'Come with 
SaireyMr Chuffey. Come with your own Sairey!' 
The good woman had no reference to any female in the world in 
promising this speedy advent of the person for whom Mr Chuffey 
inquiredbut merely threw it out as a means of pacifying the old 
man. It had its effectfor he permitted her to lead him away; and 
they quitted the room together. 
Jonas looked out of the window again. They were still reading the 
printed paper in the shop oppositeand a third man had joined in 
the perusal. What could it beto interest them so?' 
A dispute or discussion seemed to arise among themfor they all 
looked up from their reading togetherand one of the threewho had 
been glancing over the shoulder of anotherstepped back to explain 
or illustrate some action by his gestures. 
Horror! How like the blow he had struck in the wood! 
It beat him from the window as if it had lighted on himself. As he 
staggered into a chairhe thought of the change in Mrs Gamp 
exhibited in her new-born tenderness to her charge. Was that 
because it was found?--because she knew of it?--because she 
suspected him? 
'Mr Chuffey is a-lyin' down' said Mrs Gampreturning'and much 
good may it do himMr Chuzzlewitwhich harm it can't and good it 
may; be joyful!' 
'Sit down' said Jonashoarsely'and let us get this business 
done. Where is the other woman?' 
'The other person's with him now' she answered. 
'That's right' said Jonas. 'He is not fit to be left to himself. 
Whyhe fastened on me to-night; hereupon my coat; like a savage 
dog. Old as he isand feeble as he is usuallyI had some trouble 
to shake him off. You--Hush!--It's nothing. You told me the other 
woman's name. I forget it.' 
'I mentioned Betsey Prig' said Mrs Gamp. 
'She is to be trustedis she?' 
'That she ain't!' said Mrs Gamp; 'nor have I brought herMr 
Chuzzlewit. I've brought anotherwhich engages to give every 
satigefaction.' 
'What is her name?' asked Jonas. 
Mrs Gamp looked at him in an odd way without returning any answer
but appeared to understand the question too. 
'What is her name?' repeated Jonas. 
'Her name' said Mrs Gamp'is Harris.' 
It was extraordinary how much effort it cost Mrs Gamp to pronounce 
the name she was commonly so ready with. She made some three or 
four gasps before she could get it out; andwhen she had uttered 
itpressed her hand upon her sideand turned up her eyesas if 
she were going to faint away. Butknowing her to labour under a 
complication of internal disorderswhich rendered a few drops of 
spirits indispensable at certain times to her existenceand which 
came on very strong when that remedy was not at handJonas merely 
supposed her to be the victim of one of these attacks. 
'Well!' he saidhastilyfor he felt how incapable he was of 
confining his wandering attention to the subject. 'You and she have 
arranged to take care of himhave you?' 
Mrs Gamp replied in the affirmativeand softly discharged herself 
of her familiar phrase'Turn and turn about; one offone on.' But 
she spoke so tremulously that she felt called upon to add'which 
fiddle-strings is weakness to expredge my nerves this night!' 
Jonas stopped to listen. Then saidhurriedly: 
'We shall not quarrel about terms. Let them be the same as they 
were before. Keep him closeand keep him quiet. He must be 
restrained. He has got it in his head to-night that my wife's dead
and has been attacking me as if I had killed her. It's--it's common 
with mad people to take the worst fancies of those they like best. 
Isn't it?' 
Mrs Gamp assented with a short groan. 
'Keep him closethenor in one of his fits he'll be doing me a 
mischief. And don't trust him at any time; for when he seems most 
rationalhe's wildest in his talk. But that you know already. Let 
me see the other.' 
'The t'other personsir?' said Mrs Gamp. 
'Aye! Go you to him and send the other. Quick! I'm busy.' 
Mrs Gamp took two or three backward steps towards the doorand 
stopped there. 
'It is your wishesMr Chuzzlewit' she saidin a sort of quavering 
croak'to see the t'other person. Is it?' 
But the ghastly change in Jonas told her that the other person was 
already seen. Before she could look round towards the doorshe was 
put aside by old Martin's hand; and Chuffey and John Westlock 
entered with him. 
'Let no one leave the house' said Martin. 'This man is my 
brother's son. Ill-metill-trainedill-begotten. If he moves 
from the spot on which he standsor speaks a word above his breath 
to any person hereopen the windowand call for help!' 
'What right have you to give such directions in this house?' asked 
Jonas faintly. 
'The right of your wrong-doing. Come in there!' 
An irrepressible exclamation burst from the lips of Jonasas 
Lewsome entered at the door. It was not a groanor a shriekor a 
wordbut was wholly unlike any sound that had ever fallen on the 
ears of those who heard itwhile at the same time it was the most 
sharp and terrible expression of what was working in his guilty 
breastthat nature could have invented. 
He had done murder for this! He had girdled himself about with 
perilsagonies of mindinnumerable fearsfor this! He had hidden 
his secret in the wood; pressed and stamped it down into the bloody 
ground; and here it started up when least expectedmiles upon miles 
away; known to many; proclaiming itself from the lips of an old man 
who had renewed his strength and vigour as by a miracleto give it 
voice against him! 
He leaned his hand on the back of a chairand looked at them. It 
was in vain to try to do so scornfullyor with his usual insolence. 
He required the chair for his support. But he made a struggle for 
it. 
'I know that fellow' he saidfetching his breath at every word
and pointing his trembling finger towards Lewsome. 'He's the 
greatest liar alive. What's his last tale? Haha! You're rare 
fellowstoo! Whythat uncle of mine is childish; he's even a 
greater child than his brothermy fatherwasin his old age; or 
than Chuffey is. What the devil do you mean' he addedlooking 
fiercely at John Westlock and Mark Tapley (the latter had entered 
with Lewsome)'by coming hereand bringing two idiots and a knave 
with you to take my house by storm? Hallothere! Open the door! 
Turn these strangers out!' 
'I tell you what' cried Mr Tapleycoming forward'if it wasn't 
for your nameI'd drag you through the streets of my own accord
and single-handed I would! AhI would! Don't try and look bold at 
me. You can't do it! Now go onsir' this was to old Martin. 
'Bring the murderin' wagabond upon his knees! If he wants noisehe 
shall have enough of it; for as sure as he's a shiverin' from head 
to foot I'll raise a uproar at this winder that shall bring half 
London in. Go onsir! Let him try me onceand see whether I'm a 
man of my word or not.' 
With thatMark folded his armsand took his seat upon the windowledge
with an air of general preparation for anythingwhich seemed 
to imply that he was equally ready to jump out himselfor to throw 
Jonas outupon receiving the slightest hint that it would be 
agreeable to the company. 
Old Martin turned to Lewsome: 
'This is the man' he saidextending his hand towards Jonas. 'Is 
it?' 
'You need do no more than look at him to be sure of thator of the 
truth of what I have said' was the reply. 'He is my witness.' 
'Ohbrother!' cried old Martinclasping his hands and lifting up 
his eyes. 'Ohbrotherbrother! Were we strangers half our lives 
that you might breed a wretch like thisand I make life a desert by 
withering every flower that grew about me! Is it the natural end of 
your precepts and minethat this should be the creature of your 
rearingtrainingteachinghoardingstriving for; and I the means 
of bringing him to punishmentwhen nothing can repair the wasted 
past!' 
He sat down upon a chair as he spokeand turning away his facewas 
silent for a few moments. Then with recovered energy he proceeded: 
'But the accursed harvest of our mistaken lives shall be trodden 
down. It is not too late for that. You are confronted with this 
manyou monster there; not to be sparedbut to be dealt with 
justly. Hear what he says! Replybe silentcontradictrepeat
defydo what you please. My course will be the same. Go on! And 
you' he said to Chuffey'for the love of your old friendspeak 
outgood fellow!' 
'I have been silent for his love!' cried the old man. 'He urged me 
to it. He made me promise it upon his dying bed. I never would 
have spokenbut for your finding out so much. I have thought about 
it ever since; I couldn't help that; and sometimes I have had it all 
before me in a dream; but in the day-timenot in sleep. Is there 
such a kind of dream?' said Chuffeylooking anxiously in old 
Martin's face. 
As Martin made him an encouraging replyhe listened attentively to 
his voiceand smiled. 
'Ahaye!' he cried. 'He often spoke to me like that. We were at 
school togetherhe and I. I couldn't turn against his sonyou 
know--his only sonMr Chuzzlewit!' 
'I would to Heaven you had been his son!' said Martin. 
'You speak so like my dear old master' cried the old man with a 
childish delight'that I almost think I hear him. I can hear you 
quite as well as I used to hear him. It makes me young again. He 
never spoke unkindly to meand I always understood him. I could 
always see him toothough my sight was dim. Wellwell! He's dead
he's dead. He was very good to memy dear old master!' 
He shook his head mournfully over the brother's hand. At this 
moment Markwho had been glancing out of the windowleft the room. 
'I couldn't turn against his only sonyou know' said Chuffey. 'He 
has nearly driven me to do it sometimes; he very nearly did tonight. 
Ah!' cried the old manwith a sudden recollection of the cause. 
'Where is she? She's not come home!' 
'Do you mean his wife?' said Mr Chuzzlewit. 
'Yes.' 
'I have removed her. She is in my careand will be spared the 
present knowledge of what is passing here. She has known misery 
enoughwithout that addition.' 
Jonas heard this with a sinking heart. He knew that they were on 
his heelsand felt that they were resolute to run him to 
destruction. Inch by inch the ground beneath him was sliding from 
his feet; faster and faster the encircling ruin contracted and 
contracted towards himselfits wicked centreuntil it should close 
in and crush him. 
And now he heard the voice of his accomplice stating to his face
with every circumstance of time and place and incident; and openly 
proclaimingwith no reservesuppressionpassionor concealment; 
all the truth. The truthwhich nothing would keep down; which 
blood would not smotherand earth would not hide; the truthwhose 
terrible inspiration seemed to change dotards into strong men; and 
on whose avenging wingsone whom he had supposed to be at the 
extremest corner of the earth came swooping down upon him. 
He tried to deny itbut his tongue would not move. He conceived 
some desperate thought of rushing awayand tearing through the 
streets; but his limbs would as little answer to his will as his 
starkstiff staring face. All this time the voice went slowly on
denouncing him. It was as if every drop of blood in the wood had 
found a voice to jeer him with. 
When it ceasedanother voice took up the talebut strangely; for 
the old clerkwho had watchedand listened to the wholeand had 
wrung his hands from time to timeas if he knew its truth and could 
confirm itbroke in with these words: 
'Nonono! you're wrong; you're wrong--all wrong together! Have 
patiencefor the truth is only known to me!' 
'How can that be' said his old master's brother'after what you 
have heard? Besidesyou said just nowabove-stairswhen I told 
you of the accusation against himthat you knew he was his father's 
murderer.' 
'Ayeyes! and so he was!' cried Chuffeywildly. 'But not as you 
suppose--not as you suppose. Stay! Give me a moment's time. I have 
it all here--all here! It was foulfoulcruelbad; but not as you 
suppose. Staystay!' 
He put his hands up to his headas if it throbbed or pained him. 
After looking about him in a wandering and vacant manner for some 
momentshis eyes rested upon Jonaswhen they kindled up with 
sudden recollection and intelligence. 
'Yes!' cried old Chuffey'yes! That's how it was. It's all upon me 
now. He--he got up from his bed before he diedto be sureto say 
that he forgave him; and he came down with me into this room; and 
when he saw him--his only sonthe son he loved--his speech forsook 
him; he had no speech for what he knew--and no one understood him 
except me. But I did--I did!' 
Old Martin regarded him in amazement; so did his companions. Mrs 
Gampwho had said nothing yet; but had kept two-thirds of herself 
behind the doorready for escapeand one-third in the roomready 
for siding with the strongest party; came a little further in and 
remarkedwith a sobthat Mr Chuffey was 'the sweetest old creetur 
goin'.' 
'He bought the stuff' said Chuffeystretching out his arm towards 
Jonas while an unwonted fire shone in his eyeand lightened up his 
face; 'he bought the stuffno doubtas you have heardand brought 
it home. He mixed the stuff--look at him!--with some sweetmeat in a 
jarexactly as the medicine for his father's cough was mixedand 
put it in a drawer; in that drawer yonder in the desk; he knows 
which drawer I mean! He kept it there locked up. But his courage 
failed him or his heart was touched--my God! I hope it was his 
heart! He was his only son!--and he did not put it in the usual 
placewhere my old master would have taken it twenty times a day.' 
The trembling figure of the old man shook with the strong emotions 
that possessed him. Butwith the same light in his eyeand with 
his arm outstretchedand with his grey hair stirring on his head
he seemed to grow in sizeand was like a man inspired. Jonas 
shrunk from looking at himand cowered down into the chair by which 
he had held. It seemed as if this tremendous Truth could make the 
dumb speak. 
'I know it every word now!' cried Chuffey. 'Every word! He put it 
in that draweras I have said. He went so often thereand was so 
secretthat his father took notice of it; and when he was outhad 
it opened. We were there togetherand we found the mixture--Mr 
Chuzzlewit and I. He took it into his possessionand made light of 
it at the time; but in the night he came to my bedsideweepingand 
told me that his own son had it in his mind to poison him. "Oh
Chuff he said, ohdear old Chuff! a voice came into my room 
to-nightand told me that this crime began with me. It began when I 
taught him to be too covetous of what I have to leaveand made the 
expectation of it his great business!" Those were his words; aye
they are his very words! If he was a hard man now and thenit was 
for his only son. He loved his only sonand he was always good to 
me!' 
Jonas listened with increased attention. Hope was breaking in upon 
him. 
'"He shall not weary for my deathChuff;" that was what he said 
next' pursued the old clerkas he wiped his eyes; 'that was what 
he said nextcrying like a little child: "He shall not weary for my 
deathChuff. He shall have it now; he shall marry where he has a 
fancyChuffalthough it don't please me; and you and I will go 
away and live upon a little. I always loved him; perhaps he'll love 
me then. It's a dreadful thing to have my own child thirsting for 
my death. But I might have known it. I have sownand I must reap. 
He shall believe that I am taking this; and when I see that he is 
sorryand has all he wantsI'll tell him that I found it outand 
I'll forgive him. He'll make a better man of his own sonand be a 
better man himselfperhapsChuff!"' 
Poor Chuffey paused to dry his eyes again. Old Martin's face was 
hidden in his hands. Jonas listened still more keenlyand his 
breast heaved like a swollen waterbut with hope. With growing 
hope. 
'My dear old master made believe next day' said Chuffey'that he 
had opened the drawer by mistake with a key from the bunchwhich 
happened to fit it (we had one made and hung upon it); and that he 
had been surprised to find his fresh supply of cough medicine in 
such a placebut supposed it had been put there in a hurry when the 
drawer stood open. We burnt it; but his son believed that he was 
taking it--he knows he did. Once Mr Chuzzlewitto try himtook 
heart to say it had a strange taste; and he got up directlyand 
went out.' 
Jonas gave a shortdry cough; andchanging his position for an 
easier onefolded his arms without looking at themthough they 
could now see his face. 
'Mr Chuzzlewit wrote to her father; I mean the father of the poor 
thing who's his wife' said Chuffey; 'and got him to come up
intending to hasten on the marriage. But his mindlike minewent 
a little wrong through griefand then his heart broke. He sank and 
altered from the time when he came to me in the night; and never 
held up his head again. It was only a few daysbut he had never 
changed so much in twice the years. "Spare himChuff!" he said
before he died. They were the only words he could speak. "Spare 
himChuff!" I promised him I would. I've tried to do it. He's 
his only son.' 
On his recollection of the last scene in his old friend's lifepoor 
Chuffey's voicewhich had grown weaker and weakerquite deserted 
him. Making a motion with his handas if he would have said that 
Anthony had taken itand had died with it in hishe retreated to 
the corner where he usually concealed his sorrows; and was silent. 
Jonas could look at his company nowand vauntingly too. 'Well!' he 
saidafter a pause. 'Are you satisfied? or have you any more of 
your plots to broach? Why that fellowLewsomecan invent 'em for 
you by the score. Is this all? Have you nothing else?' 
Old Martin looked at him steadily. 
'Whether you are what you seemed to be at Pecksniff'sor are 
something else and a mountebankI don't know and I don't care' 
said Jonaslooking downward with a smile'but I don't want you 
here. You were here so often when your brother was aliveand were 
always so fond of him (your deardear brotherand you would have 
been cuffing one another before thisecod!)that I am not 
surprised at your being attached to the place; but the place is not 
attached to youand you can't leave it too soonthough you may 
leave it too late. And for my wifeold mansend her home 
straightor it will be the worse for her. Haha! You carry it 
with a high handtoo! But it isn't hanging yet for a man to keep a 
penn'orth of poison for his own purposesand have it taken from him 
by two old crazy jolter-heads who go and act a play about it. Ha
ha! Do you see the door?' 
His base triumphstruggling with his cowardiceand shameand 
guiltwas so detestablethat they turned away from himas if he 
were some obscene and filthy animalrepugnant to the sight. And 
here that last black crime was busy with him too; working within him 
to his perdition. But for thatthe old clerk's story might have 
touched himthough never so lightly; but for thatthe sudden 
removal of so great a load might have brought about some wholesome 
change even in him. With that deed donehowever; with that 
unnecessary wasteful danger haunting him; despair was in his very 
triumph and relief; wildungovernableraging despairfor the 
uselessness of the peril into which he had plunged; despair that 
hardened him and maddened himand set his teeth a-grinding in a 
moment of his exultation. 
'My good friend!' said old Martinlaying his hand on Chuffey's 
sleeve. 'This is no place for you to remain in. Come with me.' 
'Just his old way!' cried Chuffeylooking up into his face. 'I 
almost believe it's Mr Chuzzlewit alive again. Yes! Take me with 
you! Staythoughstay.' 
'For what?' asked old Martin. 
'I can't leave herpoor thing!' said Chuffey. 'She has been very 
good to me. I can't leave herMr Chuzzlewit. Thank you kindly. 
I'll remain here. I haven't long to remain; it's no great matter.' 
As he meekly shook his poorgrey headand thanked old Martin in 
these wordsMrs Gampnow entirely in the roomwas affected to 
tears. 
'The mercy as it is!' she said'as sech a deargoodreverend 
creetur never got into the clutches of Betsey Prigwhich but for me 
he would have doneundoubted; facts bein' stubborn and not easy 
drove!' 
'You heard me speak to you just nowold man' said Jonas to his 
uncle. 'I'll have no more tampering with my peopleman or woman. 
Do you see the door?' 
'Do YOU see the door?' returned the voice of Markcoming from that 
direction. 'Look at it!' 
He lookedand his gaze was nailed there. Fatalill-omened 
blighted thresholdcursed by his father's footsteps in his dying 
hourcursed by his young wife's sorrowing treadcursed by the 
daily shadow of the old clerk's figurecursed by the crossing of 
his murderer's feet--what men were standing in the door way! 
Nadgett foremost. 
Hark! It came onroaring like a sea! Hawkers burst into the street
crying it up and down; windows were thrown open that the inhabitants 
might hear it; people stopped to listen in the road and on the 
pavement; the bellsthe same bellsbegan to ring; tumbling over 
one another in a dance of boisterous joy at the discovery (that was 
the sound they had in his distempered thoughts)and making their 
airy play-ground rock. 
'That is the man' said Nadgett. 'By the window!' 
Three others came inlaid hands upon himand secured him. It was 
so quickly donethat he had not lost sight of the informer's face 
for an instant when his wrists were manacled together. 
'Murder' said Nadgettlooking round on the astonished group. 'Let 
no one interfere.' 
The sounding street repeated Murder; barbarous and dreadful Murder. 
MurderMurderMurder. Rolling on from house to houseand echoing 
from stone to stoneuntil the voices died away into the distant 
humwhich seemed to mutter the same word! 
They all stood silent: listeningand gazing in each other's faces
as the noise passed on. 
Old Martin was the first to speak. 'What terrible history is this?' 
he demanded. 
'Ask HIM' said Nadgett. 'You're his friendsir. He can tell you
if he will. He knows more of it than I dothough I know much.' 
'How do you know much?' 
'I have not been watching him so long for nothing' returned 
Nadgett. 'I never watched a man so close as I have watched him.' 
Another of the phantom forms of this terrific Truth! Another of the 
many shapes in which it started up about himout of vacancy. This 
manof all men in the worlda spy upon him; this manchanging his 
identity; casting off his shrinkingpurblindunobservant 
characterand springing up into a watchful enemy! The dead man 
might have come out of his graveand not confounded and appalled 
him more. 
The game was up. The race was at an end; the rope was woven for his 
neck. Ifby a miraclehe could escape from this straithe had 
but to turn his face another wayno matter whereand there would 
rise some new avenger front to front with him; some infant in an 
hour grown oldor old man in an hour grown youngor blind man with 
his sight restoredor deaf man with his hearing given him. There 
was no chance. He sank down in a heap against the walland never 
hoped again from that moment. 
'I am not his friendalthough I have the honour to be his 
relative' said Mr Chuzzlewit. 'You may speak to me. Where have 
you watchedand what have you seen?' 
'I have watched in many places' returned Nadgett'night and day. 
I have watched him latelyalmost without rest or relief;' his 
anxious face and bloodshot eyes confirmed it. 'I little thought to 
what my watching was to lead. As little as he did when he slipped 
out in the nightdressed in those clothes which he afterwards sunk 
in a bundle at London Bridge!' 
Jonas moved upon the ground like a man in bodily torture. He 
uttered a suppressed groanas if he had been wounded by some cruel 
weapon; and plucked at the iron band upon his wristsas though (his 
hands being free) he would have torn himself. 
'Steadykinsman!' said the chief officer of the party. 'Don't be 
violent.' 
'Whom do you call kinsman?' asked old Martin sternly. 
'You' said the man'among others.' 
Martin turned his scrutinizing gaze upon him. He was sitting lazily 
across a chair with his arms resting on the back; eating nutsand 
throwing the shells out of window as he cracked themwhich he still 
continued to do while speaking. 
'Aye' he saidwith a sulky nod. 'You may deny your nephews till 
you die; but Chevy Slyme is Chevy Slyme stillall the world over. 
Perhaps even you may feel it some disgrace to your own blood to be 
employed in this way. I'm to be bought off.' 
'At every turn!' cried Martin. 'Selfselfself. Every one among 
them for himself!' 
'You had better save one or two among them the trouble then and be 
for them as well as YOURself' replied his nephew. 'Look here at 
me! Can you see the man of your family who has more talent in his 
little finger than all the rest in their united brainsdressed as a 
police officer without being ashamed? I took up with this trade on 
purpose to shame you. I didn't think I should have to make a 
capture in the familythough.' 
'If your debaucheryand that of your chosen friendshas really 
brought you to this level' returned the old man'keep it. You are 
living honestlyI hopeand that's something.' 
'Don't be hard upon my chosen friends' returned Slyme'for they 
were sometimes your chosen friends too. Don't say you never 
employed my friend Tiggfor I know better. We quarrelled upon it.' 
'I hired the fellow' retorted Mr Chuzzlewit'and I paid him.' 
'It's well you paid him' said his nephew'for it would be too late 
to do so now. He has given his receipt in full; or had it forced 
from him rather.' 
The old man looked at him as if he were curious to know what he 
meantbut scorned to prolong the conversation. 
'I have always expected that he and I would be brought together 
again in the course of business' said Slymetaking a fresh handful 
of nuts from his pocket; 'but I thought he would be wanted for some 
swindling job; it never entered my head that I should hold a warrant 
for the apprehension of his murderer.' 
'HIS murderer!' cried Mr Chuzzlewitlooking from one to another. 
'His or Mr Montague's' said Nadgett. 'They are the sameI am 
told. I accuse him yonder of the murder of Mr Montaguewho was 
found last nightkilledin a wood. You will ask me why I accuse 
him as you have already asked me how I know so much. I'll tell you. 
It can't remain a secret long.' 
The ruling passion of the man expressed itself even thenin the 
tone of regret in which he deplored the approaching publicity of 
what he knew. 
'I told you I had watched him' he proceeded. 'I was instructed to 
do so by Mr Montaguein whose employment I have been for some time. 
We had our suspicions of him; and you know what they pointed atfor 
you have been discussing it since we have been waiting hereoutside 
the room. If you care to hearnow it's all overin what our 
suspicions beganI'll tell you plainly: in a quarrel (it first came 
to our ears through a hint of his own) between him and another 
office in which his father's life was insuredand which had so much 
doubt and distrust upon the subjectthat he compounded with them
and took half the money; and was glad to do it. Bit by bitI 
ferreted out more circumstances against himand not a few. It 
required a little patiencebut it's my calling. I found the nurse 
--here she is to confirm me; I found the doctorI found the 
undertakerI found the undertaker's man. I found out how the old 
gentleman thereMr Chuffeyhad behaved at the funeral; and I found 
out what this man' touching Lewsome on the arm'had talked about 
in his fever. I found out how he conducted himself before his 
father's deathand how since and how at the time; and writing it 
all downand putting it carefully togethermade case enough for Mr 
Montague to tax him with the crimewhich (as he himself believed 
until to-night) he had committed. I was by when this was done. You 
see him now. He is only worse than he was then.' 
Ohmiserablemiserable fool! ohinsupportableexcruciating 
torture! To find alive and active--a party to it all--the brain and 
right-hand of the secret he had thought to crush! In whomthough he 
had walled the murdered man upby enchantment in a rockthe story 
would have lived and walked abroad! He tried to stop his ears with 
his fettered armsthat he might shut out the rest. 
As he crouched upon the floorthey drew away from him as if a 
pestilence were in his breath. They fell offone by onefrom that 
part of the roomleaving him alone upon the ground. Even those who 
had him in their keeping shunned himand (with the exception of 
Slymewho was still occupied with his nuts) kept apart. 
'From that garret-window opposite' said Nadgettpointing across 
the narrow street'I have watched this house and him for days and 
nights. From that garret-window opposite I saw him return home
alonefrom a journey on which he had set out with Mr Montague. 
That was my token that Mr Montague's end was gained; and I might 
rest easy on my watchthough I was not to leave it until he 
dismissed me. Butstanding at the door oppositeafter dark that 
same nightI saw a countryman steal out of this houseby a sidedoor 
in the courtwho had never entered it. I knew his walkand 
that it was himselfdisguised. I followed him immediately. I lost 
him on the western roadstill travelling westward.' 
Jonas looked up at him for an instantand muttered an oath. 
'I could not comprehend what this meant' said Nadgett; 'buthaving 
seen so muchI resolved to see it outand through. And I did. 
Learningon inquiry at his house from his wifethat he was 
supposed to be sleeping in the room from which I had seen him go 
outand that he had given strict orders not to be disturbedI knew 
that he was coming back; and for his coming back I watched. I kept 
my watch in the street--in doorwaysand such places--all that 
night; at the same windowall next day; and when night came on 
againin the street once more. For I knew he would come backas 
he had gone outwhen this part of the town was empty. He did. 
Early in the morningthe same countryman came creepingcreeping
creeping home.' 
'Look sharp!' interposed Slymewho had now finished his nuts. 
'This is quite irregularMr Nadgett.' 
'I kept at the window all day' said Nadgettwithout heeding him. 
'I think I never closed my eyes. At nightI saw him come out with 
a bundle. I followed him again. He went down the steps at London 
Bridgeand sunk it in the river. I now began to entertain some 
serious fearsand made a communication to the Policewhich caused 
that bundle to be--' 
'To be fished up' interrupted Slyme. 'Be aliveMr Nadgett.' 
'It contained the dress I had seen him wear' said Nadgett; 
'stained with clayand spotted with blood. Information of the 
murder was received in town last night. The wearer of that dress is 
already known to have been seen near the place; to have been lurking 
in that neighbourhood; and to have alighted from a coach coming from 
that part of the countryat a time exactly tallying with the very 
minute when I saw him returning home. The warrant has been outand 
these officers have been with mesome hours. We chose our time; 
and seeing you come inand seeing this person at the window--' 
'Beckoned to him' said Marktaking up the thread of the narrative
on hearing this allusion to himself'to open the door; which he did 
with a deal of pleasure.' 
'That's all at present' said Nadgettputting up his great 
pocketbookwhich from mere habit he had produced when he began his 
revelationand had kept in his hand all the time; 'but there is 
plenty more to come. You asked me for the factsso far I have 
related themand need not detain these gentlemen any longer. Are 
you readyMr Slyme?' 
'And something more' replied that worthyrising. 'If you walk 
round to the officewe shall be there as soon as you. Tom! Get a 
coach!' 
The officer to whom he spoke departed for that purpose. Old Martin 
lingered for a few momentsas if he would have addressed some words 
to Jonas; but looking roundand seeing him still seated on the 
floorrocking himself in a savage manner to and frotook Chuffey's 
armand slowly followed Nadgett out. John Westlock and Mark Tapley 
accompanied them. Mrs Gamp had tottered out firstfor the better 
display of her feelingsin a kind of walking swoon; for Mrs Gamp 
performed swoons of different sortsupon a moderate noticeas Mr 
Mould did Funerals. 
'Ha!' muttered Slymelooking after them. 'Upon my soul! As 
insensible of being disgraced by having such a nephew as myselfin 
such a situationas he was of my being an honour and a credit to 
the family! That's the return I get for having humbled my spirit-such 
a spirit as mine--to earn a livelihoodis it?' 
He got up from his chairand kicked it away indignantly. 
'And such a livelihood too! When there are hundreds of mennot fit 
to hold a candle to merolling in carriages and living on their 
fortunes. Upon my soul it's a nice world!' 
His eyes encountered Jonaswho looked earnestly towards himand 
moved his lips as if he were whispering. 
'Eh?' said Slyme. 
Jonas glanced at the attendant whose back was towards himand made 
a clumsy motion with his bound hands towards the door. 
'Humph!' said Slymethoughtfully. 'I couldn't hope to disgrace him 
into anything when you have shot so far ahead of me though. I 
forgot that.' 
Jonas repeated the same look and gesture. 
'Jack!' said Slyme. 
'Hallo!' returned his man. 
'Go down to the doorready for the coach. Call out when it comes. 
I'd rather have you there. Now then' he addedturning hastily to 
Jonaswhen the man was gone. 'What's the matter?' 
Jonas essayed to rise. 
'Stop a bit' said Slyme. 'It's not so easy when your wrists are 
tight together. Now then! Up! What is it?' 
'Put your hand in my pocket. Here! The breast pocketon the left!' 
said Jonas. 
He did so; and drew out a purse. 
'There's a hundred pound in it' said Jonaswhose words were almost 
unintelligible; as his facein its pallor and agonywas scarcely 
human. 
Slyme looked at him; gave it into his hands; and shook his head. 
'I can't. I daren't. I couldn't if I dared. Those fellows below--' 
'Escape's impossible' said Jonas. 'I know it. One hundred pound 
for only five minutes in the next room!' 
'What to do?' he asked. 
The face of his prisoner as he advanced to whisper in his earmade 
him recoil involuntarily. But he stopped and listened to him. The 
words were fewbut his own face changed as he heard them. 
'I have it about me' said Jonasputting his hands to his throat
as though whatever he referred to were hidden in his neckerchief. 
'How should you know of it? How could you know? A hundred pound 
for only five minutes in the next room! The time's passing. Speak!' 
'It would be more--more creditable to the family' observed Slyme
with trembling lips. 'I wish you hadn't told me half so much. Less 
would have served your purpose. You might have kept it to yourself.' 
'A hundred pound for only five minutes in the next room! Speak!' 
cried Jonasdesperately. 
He took the purse. Jonaswith a wild unsteady stepretreated to 
the door in the glass partition. 
'Stop!' cried Slymecatching at his skirts. 'I don't know about 
this. Yet it must end so at last. Are you guilty?' 
'Yes!' said Jonas. 
'Are the proofs as they were told just now?' 
'Yes!' said Jonas. 
'Will you--will you engage to say a--a Prayernowor something of 
that sort?' faltered Slyme. 
Jonas broke from him without replyingand closed the door between 
them. 
Slyme listened at the keyhole. After thathe crept away on tiptoe
as far off as he could; and looked awfully towards the place. He 
was roused by the arrival of the coachand their letting down the 
steps. 
'He's getting a few things together' he saidleaning out of 
windowand speaking to the two men belowwho stood in the full 
light of a street-lamp. 'Keep your eye upon the backone of you
for form's sake.' 
One of the men withdrew into the court. The otherseating himself 
self on the steps of the coachremained in conversation with Slyme 
at the window who perhaps had risen to be his superiorin virtue of 
his old propensity (one so much lauded by the murdered man) of being 
always round the corner. A useful habit in his present calling. 
'Where is he?' asked the man. 
Slyme looked into the room for an instant and gave his head a jerk 
as much as to say'Close at hand. I see him.' 
'He's booked' observed the man. 
'Through' said Slyme. 
They looked at each otherand up and down the street. The man on 
the coach-steps took his hat offand put it on againand whistled 
a little. 
'I say! He's taking his time!' he remonstrated. 
'I allowed him five minutes' said Slyme. 'Time's more than up
though. I'll bring him down.' 
He withdrew from the window accordinglyand walked on tiptoe to the 
door in the partition. He listened. There was not a sound within. 
He set the candles near itthat they might shine through the glass. 
It was not easyhe foundto make up his mind to the opening of the 
door. But he flung it wide open suddenlyand with a noise; then 
retreated. After peeping in and listening againhe entered. 
He started back as his eyes met those of Jonasstanding in an angle 
of the walland staring at him. His neckerchief was off; his face 
was ashy pale. 
'You're too soon' said Jonaswith an abject whimper. 'I've not 
had time. I have not been able to do it. I--five minutes more--two 
minutes more!--only one!' 
Slyme gave him no replybut thrusting the purse upon him and 
forcing it back into his pocketcalled up his men. 
He whinedand criedand cursedand entreated themand struggled
and submittedin the same breathand had no power to stand. They 
got him away and into the coachwhere they put him on a seat; but 
he soon fell moaning down among the straw at the bottomand lay 
there. 
The two men were with him. Slyme being on the box with the driver; 
and they let him lie. Happening to pass a fruiterer's on their way; 
the door of which was openthough the shop was by this time shut; 
one of them remarked how faint the peaches smelled. 
The other assented at the momentbut presently stooped down in 
quick alarmand looked at the prisoner. 
'Stop the coach! He has poisoned himself! The smell comes from this 
bottle in his hand!' 
The hand had shut upon it tight. With that rigidity of grasp with 
which no living manin the full strength and energy of lifecan 
clutch a prize he has won. 
They dragged him out into the dark street; but juryjudgeand 
hangmancould have done no moreand could do nothing now. Dead
deaddead. 
CHAPTER FIFTY-TWO 
IN WHICH THE TABLES ARE TURNEDCOMPLETELY UPSIDE DOWN 
Old Martin's cherished projectsso long hidden in his own breast
so frequently in danger of abrupt disclosure through the bursting 
forth of the indignation he had hoarded up during his residence with 
Mr Pecksniffwere retardedbut not beyond a few hoursby the 
occurrences just now related. Stunnedas he had been at first by 
the intelligence conveyed to him through Tom Pinch and John 
Westlockof the supposed manner of his brother's death; overwhelmed 
as he was by the subsequent narratives of Chuffey and Nadgettand 
the forging of that chain of circumstances ending in the death of 
Jonasof which catastrophe he was immediately informed; scattered 
as his purposes and hopes were for the momentby the crowding in of 
all these incidents between him and his end; still their very 
intensity and the tumult of their assemblage nerved him to the rapid 
and unyielding execution of his scheme. In every single 
circumstancewhether it were cruelcowardlyor falsehe saw the 
flowering of the same pregnant seed. Self; graspingeagernarrowranging
overreaching self; with its long train of suspicions
lustsdeceitsand all their growing consequences; was the root of 
the vile tree. Mr Pecksniff had so presented his character before 
the old man's eyesthat he--the goodthe tolerantenduring 
Pecksniff--had become the incarnation of all selfishness and 
treachery; and the more odious the shapes in which those vices 
ranged themselves before him nowthe sterner consolation he had in 
his design of setting Mr Pecksniff right and Mr Pecksniff's victims 
too. 
To this work he broughtnot only the energy and determination 
natural to his character (whichas the reader may have observed in 
the beginning of his or her acquaintance with this gentlemanwas 
remarkable for the strong development of those qualities)but all 
the forced and unnaturally nurtured energy consequent upon their 
long suppression. And these two tides of resolution setting into 
one and sweeping onbecame so strong and vigorousthatto prevent 
themselves from being carried away before itHeaven knows where
was as much as John Westlock and Mark Tapley together (though they 
were tolerably energetic too) could manage to effect. 
He had sent for John Westlock immediately on his arrival; and John
under the conduct of Tom Pinchhad waited on him. Having a lively 
recollection of Mr Tapleyhe had caused that gentleman's attendance 
to be securedthrough John's meanswithout delay; and thusas we 
have seenthey had all repaired together to the City. But his 
grandson he had refused to see until to-morrowwhen Mr Tapley was 
instructed to summon him to the Temple at ten o'clock in the 
forenoon. Tom he would not allow to be employed in anythinglest 
he should be wrongfully suspected; but he was a party to all their 
proceedingsand was with them until late at night--until after they 
knew of the death of Jonas; when he went home to tell all these 
wonders to little Ruthand to prepare her for accompanying him to 
the Temple in the morningagreeably to Mr Chuzzlewit's particular 
injunction. 
It was characteristic of old Martinand his looking on to something 
which he had distinctly before himthat he communicated to them 
nothing of his intentionsbeyond such hints of reprisal on Mr 
Pecksniff as they gathered from the game he had played in that 
gentleman's houseand the brightening of his eyes whenever his name 
was mentioned. Even to John Westlockin whom he was evidently 
disposed to place great confidence (which may indeed be said of 
every one of them)he gave no explanation whatever. He merely 
requested him to return in the morning; and with this for their 
utmost satisfactionthey left himwhen the night was far advanced
alone. 
The events of such a day might have worn out the body and spirit of 
a much younger man than hebut he sat in deep and painful 
meditation until the morning was bright. Nor did he even then seek 
any prolonged reposebut merely slumbered in his chairuntil seven 
o'clockwhen Mr Tapley had appointed to come to him by his desire; 
and came--as fresh and clean and cheerful as the morning itself. 
'You are punctual' said Mr Chuzzlewitopening the door to him in 
reply to his light knockwhich had roused him instantly. 
'My wishessir' replied Mr Tapleywhose mind would appear from 
the context to have been running on the matrimonial service'is to 
lovehonourand obey. The clock's a-striking nowsir.' 
'Come in!' 
'Thank'eesir' rejoined Mr Tapley'what could I do for you first
sir?' 
'You gave my message to Martin?' said the old manbending his eyes 
upon him. 
'I didsir' returned Mark; 'and you never see a gentleman more 
surprised in all your born days than he was.' 
'What more did you tell him?' Mr Chuzzlewit inquired. 
'Whysir' said Mr Tapleysmiling'I should have liked to tell 
him a deal morebut not being ablesirI didn't tell it him.' 
'You told him all you knew?' 
'But it was precious littlesir' retorted Mr Tapley. 'There was 
very little respectin' you that I was able to tell himsir. I only 
mentioned my opinion that Mr Pecksniff would find himself deceived
sirand that you would find yourself deceivedand that he would 
find himself deceivedsir.' 
'In what?' asked Mr Chuzzlewit. 
'Meaning himsir?' 
'Meaning both him and me.' 
'Wellsir' said Mr Tapley. 'In your old opinions of each other. 
As to himsirand his opinionsI know he's a altered man. I know 
it. I know'd it long afore he spoke to you t'other dayand I must 
say it. Nobody don't know half as much of him as I do. Nobody 
can't. There was always a deal of good in himbut a little of it 
got crusted oversomehow. I can't say who rolled the paste of that 
'ere crust myselfbut--' 
'Go on' said Martin. 'Why do you stop?' 
'But it--well! I beg your pardonbut I think it may have been you
sir. Unintentional I think it may have been you. I don't believe 
that neither of you gave the other quite a fair chance. There! Now 
I've got rid on it' said Mr Tapley in a fit of desperation: 'I 
can't go a-carryin' it about in my own mindbustin' myself with it; 
yesterday was quite long enough. It's out now. I can't help it. 
I'm sorry for it. Don't wisit on himsirthat's all.' 
It was clear that Mark expected to be ordered out immediatelyand 
was quite prepared to go. 
'So you think' said Martin'that his old faults arein some 
degreeof my creationdo you?' 
'Wellsir' retorted Mr Tapley'I'm werry sorrybut I can't unsay 
it. It's hardly fair of yousirto make a ignorant man conwict 
himself in this waybut I DO think so. I am as respectful disposed 
to yousiras a man can be; but I DO think so.' 
The light of a faint smile seemed to break through the dull 
steadiness of Martin's faceas he looked attentively at him
without replying. 
'Yet you are an ignorant manyou say' he observed after a long 
pause. 
'Werry much so' Mr Tapley replied. 
'And I a learnedwell-instructed manyou think?' 
'Likewise wery much so' Mr Tapley answered. 
The old manwith his chin resting on his handpaced the room twice 
or thrice before he added: 
'You have left him this morning?' 
'Come straight from him nowsir.' 
'For what does he suppose?' 
'He don't know what to supposesirno more than myself. I told him 
jest wot passed yesterdaysirand that you had said to meCan 
you be here by seven in the morning?and that you had said to him
through meCan you be here by ten in the morning?and that I had 
said "Yes" to both. That's allsir.' 
His frankness was so genuine that it plainly WAS all. 
'Perhaps' said Martin'he may think you are going to desert him
and to serve me?' 
'I have served him in that sort of waysir' replied Markwithout 
the loss of any atom of his self-possession; 'and we have been that 
sort of companions in misfortunethat my opinion ishe don't 
believe a word on it. No more than you dosir.' 
'Will you help me to dressand get me some breakfast from the 
hotel?' asked Martin. 
'With pleasuresir' said Mark. 
'And by-and-bye' said Martin'remaining in the roomas I wish you 
to dowill you attend to the door yonder--give admission to 
visitorsI meanwhen they knock?' 
'Certainlysir' said Mr Tapley. 
'You will not find it necessary to express surprise at their 
appearance' Martin suggested. 
'Oh dear nosir!' said Mr Tapley'not at all.' 
Although he pledged himself to this with perfect confidencehe was 
in a state of unbounded astonishment even now. Martin appeared to 
observe itand to have some sense of the ludicrous bearing of Mr 
Tapley under these perplexing circumstances; forin spite of the 
composure of his voice and the gravity of his facethe same 
indistinct light flickered on the latter several times. Mark 
bestirred himselfhoweverto execute the offices with which he was 
entrusted; and soon lost all tendency to any outward expression of 
his surprisein the occupation of being brisk and busy. 
But when he had put Mr Chuzzlewit's clothes in good order for 
dressingand when that gentleman was dressed and sitting at his 
breakfastMr Tapley's feelings of wonder began to return upon him 
with great violence; andstanding beside the old man with a napkin 
under his arm (it was as natural and easy to joke to Mark to be a 
butler in the Templeas it had been to volunteer as cook on board 
the Screw)he found it difficult to resist the temptation of 
casting sidelong glances at him very often. Nayhe found it 
impossible; and accordingly yielded to this impulse so oftenthat 
Martin caught him in the fact some fifty times. The extraordinary 
things Mr Tapley did with his own face when any of these detections 
occurred; the sudden occasions he had to rub his eyes or his nose or 
his chin; the look of wisdom with which he immediately plunged into 
the deepest thoughtor became intensely interested in the habits 
and customs of the flies upon the ceilingor the sparrows out of 
doors; or the overwhelming politeness with which he endeavoured to 
hide his confusion by handing the muffin; may not unreasonably be 
assumed to have exercised the utmost power of feature that even 
Martin Chuzzlewit the elder possessed. 
But he sat perfectly quiet and took his breakfast at his leisureor 
made a show of doing sofor he scarcely ate or drankand 
frequently lapsed into long intervals of musing. When he had 
finishedMark sat down to his breakfast at the same table; and Mr 
Chuzzlewitquite silent stillwalked up and down the room. 
Mark cleared away in due courseand set a chair out for himin 
whichas the time drew on towards ten o'clockhe took his seat
leaning his hands upon his stickand clenching them upon the 
handleand resting his chin on them again. All his impatience and 
abstraction of manner had vanished now; and as he sat there
lookingwith his keen eyessteadily towards the doorMark could 
not help thinking what a firmsquarepowerful face it was; or 
exulting in the thought that Mr Pecksniffafter playing a pretty 
long game of bowls with its ownerseemed to be at last in a very 
fair way of coming in for a rubber or two. 
Mark's uncertainty in respect of what was going to be done or said
and by whom to whomwould have excited him in itself. But knowing 
for a certainty besidesthat young Martin was comingand in a very 
few minutes must arrivehe found it by no means easy to remain 
quiet and silent. Butexcepting that he occasionally coughed in a 
hollow and unnatural manner to relieve himselfhe behaved with 
great decorum through the longest ten minutes he had ever known. 
A knock at the door. Mr Westlock. Mr Tapleyin admitting him
raised his eyebrows to the highest possible pitchimplying thereby 
that he considered himself in an unsatisfactory position. Mr 
Chuzzlewit received him very courteously. 
Mark waited at the door for Tom Pinch and his sisterwho were 
coming up the stairs. The old man went to meet them; took their 
hands in his; and kissed her on the cheek. As this looked 
promisingMr Tapley smiled benignantly. 
Mr Chuzzlewit had resumed his chair before young Martinwho was 
close behind thementered. The old manscarcely looking at him
pointed to a distant seat. This was less encouraging; and Mr 
Tapley's spirits fell again. 
He was quickly summoned to the door by another knock. He did not 
startor cryor tumble downat sight of Miss Graham and Mrs 
Lupinbut he drew a very long breathand came back perfectly 
resignedlooking on them and on the rest with an expression which 
seemed to say that nothing could surprise him any more; and that he 
was rather glad to have done with that sensation for ever. 
The old man received Mary no less tenderly than he had received Tom 
Pinch's sister. A look of friendly recognition passed between 
himself and Mrs Lupinwhich implied the existence of a perfect 
understanding between them. It engendered no astonishment in Mr 
Tapley; foras he afterwards observedhe had retired from the 
businessand sold off the stock. 
Not the least curious feature in this assemblage wasthat everybody 
present was so much surprised and embarrassed by the sight of 
everybody elsethat nobody ventured to speak. Mr Chuzzlewit alone 
broke silence. 
'Set the door openMark!' he said; 'and come here.' 
Mark obeyed. 
The last appointed footstep sounded now upon the stairs. They all 
knew it. It was Mr Pecksniff's; and Mr Pecksniff was in a hurry 
toofor he came bounding up with such uncommon expedition that he 
stumbled twice or thrice. 
'Where is my venerable friend?' he cried upon the upper landing; and 
then with open arms came darting in. 
Old Martin merely looked at him; but Mr Pecksniff started back as if 
he had received the charge from an electric battery. 
'My venerable friend is well?' cried Mr Pecksniff. 
'Quite well.' 
It seemed to reassure the anxious inquirer. He clasped his hands 
andlooking upwards with a pious joysilently expressed his 
gratitude. He then looked round on the assembled groupand shook 
his head reproachfully. For such a man severelyquite severely. 
'Ohvermin!' said Mr Pecksniff. 'Ohbloodsuckers! Is it not 
enough that you have embittered the existence of an individual 
wholly unparalleled in the biographical records of amiable persons
but must you noweven nowwhen he has made his electionand 
reposed his trust in a Numblebut at least sincere and 
disinterested relative; must you nowvermin and swarmers (I regret 
to make use of these strong expressionsmy dear sirbut there are 
times when honest indignation will not be controlled)must you now
vermin and swarmers (for I WILL repeat it)take advantage of his 
unprotected stateassemble round him from all quartersas wolves 
and vulturesand other animals of the feathered tribe assemble 
round--I will not say round carrion or a carcassfor Mr Chuzzlewit 
is quite the contrary--but round their prey; their prey; to rifle and 
despoil; gorging their voracious mawsand staining their offensive 
beakswith every description of carnivorous enjoyment!' 
As he stopped to fetch his breathhe waved them offin a solemn 
mannerwith his hand. 
'Horde of unnatural plunderers and robbers!' he continued; 'leave 
him! leave himI say! Begone! Abscond! You had better be off! 
Wander over the face of the earthyoung sirslike vagabonds as you 
areand do not presume to remain in a spot which is hallowed by the 
grey hairs of the patriarchal gentleman to whose tottering limbs I 
have the honour to act as an unworthybut I hope an unassuming
prop and staff. And youmy tender sir' said Mr Pecksniff
addressing himself in a tone of gentle remonstrance to the old man
'how could you ever leave methough even for this short period! You 
have absented yourselfI do not doubtupon some act of kindness to 
me; bless you for it; but you must not do it; you must not be so 
venturesome. I should really be angry with you if I couldmy 
friend!' 
He advanced with outstretched arms to take the old man's hand. But 
he had not seen how the hand clasped and clutched the stick within 
its grasp. As he came smiling onand got within his reachold 
Martinwith his burning indignation crowded into one vehement 
burstand flashing out of every line and wrinkle in his facerose 
upand struck him down upon the ground. 
With such a well-directed nervous blowthat down he wentas 
heavily and true as if the charge of a Life-Guardsman had tumbled 
him out of a saddle. And whether he was stunned by the shockor 
only confused by the wonder and novelty of this warm receptionhe 
did not offer to get up again; but lay therelooking about him with 
a disconcerted meekness in his face so enormously ridiculousthat 
neither Mark Tapley nor John Westlock could repress a smilethough 
both were actively interposing to prevent a repetition of the blow; 
which the old man's gleaming eyes and vigorous attitude seemed to 
render one of the most probable events in the world. 
'Drag him away! Take him out of my reach!' said Martin; 'or I can't 
help it. The strong restraint I have put upon my hands has been 
enough to palsy them. I am not master of myself while he is within 
their range. Drag him away!' 
Seeing that he still did not riseMr Tapleywithout any compromise 
about itactually did drag him awayand stick him up on the floor
with his back against the opposite wall. 
'Hear merascal!' said Mr Chuzzlewit. 'I have summoned you here to 
witness your own work. I have summoned you here to witness it
because I know it will be gall and wormwood to you! I have summoned 
you here to witness itbecause I know the sight of everybody here 
must be a dagger in your meanfalse heart! What! do you know me as 
I amat last!' 
Mr Pecksniff had cause to stare at himfor the triumph in his face 
and speech and figure was a sight to stare at. 
'Look there!' said the old manpointing at himand appealing to 
the rest. 'Look there! And then--come hithermy dear Martin--look 
here! here! here!' At every repetition of the word he pressed his 
grandson closer to his breast. 
'The passion I feltMartinwhen I dared not do this' he said
'was in the blow I struck just now. Why did we ever part! How could 
we ever part! How could you ever fly from me to him!' 
Martin was about to answerbut he stopped himand went on. 
'The fault was mine no less than yours. Mark has told me so today
and I have known it long; though not so long as I might have done. 
Marymy lovecome here.' 
As she trembled and was very palehe sat her in his own chairand 
stood beside it with her hand in his; and Martin standing by him. 
'The curse of our house' said the old manlooking kindly down upon 
her'has been the love of self; has ever been the love of self. 
How often have I said sowhen I never knew that I had wrought it 
upon others.' 
He drew one hand through Martin's armand standing sobetween 
themproceeded thus: 
'You all know how I bred this orphan upto tend me. None of you 
can know by what degrees I have come to regard her as a daughter; 
for she has won upon meby her self-forgetfulnessher tenderness
her patienceall the goodness of her naturewhen Heaven is her 
witness that I took but little pains to draw it forth. It blossomed 
without cultivationand it ripened without heat. I cannot find it 
in my heart to say that I am sorry for it nowor yonder fellow 
might be holding up his head.' 
Mr Pecksniff put his hand into his waistcoatand slightly shook 
that part of him to which allusion had been made; as if to signify 
that it was still uppermost. 
'There is a kind of selfishness' said Martin--'I have learned it in 
my own experience of my own breast--which is constantly upon the 
watch for selfishness in others; and holding others at a distance
by suspicions and distrustswonders why they don't approachand 
don't confideand calls that selfishness in them. Thus I once 
doubted those about me--not without reason in the beginning--and 
thus I once doubted youMartin.' 
'Not without reason' Martin answered'either.' 
'Listenhypocrite! Listensmooth-tonguedservilecrawling 
knave!' said Martin. 'Listenyou shallow dog. What! When I was 
seeking himyou had already spread your nets; you were already 
fishing for himwere ye? When I lay ill in this good woman's house 
and your meek spirit pleaded for my grandsonyou had already caught 
himhad ye? Counting on the restoration of the love you knew I 
bore himyou designed him for one of your two daughters did ye? Or 
failing thatyou traded in him as a speculation which at any rate 
should blind me with the lustre of your charityand found a claim 
upon me! Whyeven then I knew youand I told you so. Did I tell 
you that I knew youeven then?' 
'I am not angrysir' said Mr Pecksniffsoftly. 'I can bear a 
great deal from you. I will never contradict youMr Chuzzlewit.' 
'Observe!' said Martinlooking round. 'I put myself in that man's 
hands on terms as mean and baseand as degrading to himselfas I 
could render them in words. I stated them at length to himbefore 
his own childrensyllable by syllableas coarsely as I couldand 
with as much offenceand with as plain an exposition of my 
contemptas words--not looks and manner merely--could convey. If I 
had only called the angry blood into his faceI would have wavered 
in my purpose. If I had only stung him into being a man for a 
minute I would have abandoned it. If he had offered me one word of 
remonstrancein favour of the grandson whom he supposed I had 
disinherited; if he had pleaded with methough never so faintly
against my appeal to him to abandon him to misery and cast him from 
his house; I think I could have borne with him for ever afterwards. 
But not a wordnot a word. Pandering to the worst of human 
passions was the office of his nature; and faithfully he did his 
work!' 
'I am not angry' observed Mr Pecksniff. 'I am hurtMr Chuzzlewit; 
wounded in my feelings; but I am not angrymy good sir.' 
Mr Chuzzlewit resumed. 
'Once resolved to try himI was resolute to pursue the trial to the 
end; but while I was bent on fathoming the depth of his duplicityI 
made a sacred compact with myself that I would give him credit on 
the other side for any latent spark of goodnesshonour
forbearance--any virtue--that might glimmer in him. For first to 
last there has been no such thing. Not once. He cannot say I have 
not given him opportunity. He cannot say I have ever led him on. 
He cannot say I have not left him freely to himself in all things; 
or that I have not been a passive instrument in his handswhich he 
might have used for good as easily as evil. Or if he canhe Lies! 
And that's his naturetoo.' 
'Mr Chuzzlewit' interrupted Pecksniffshedding tears. 'I am not 
angrysir. I cannot be angry with you. But did you nevermy dear 
sirexpress a desire that the unnatural young man who by his wicked 
arts has estranged your good opinion from mefor the time being; 
only for the time being; that your grandsonMr Chuzzlewitshould 
be dismissed my house? Recollect yourselfmy Christian friend.' 
'I have said sohave I not?' retorted the old mansternly. 'I 
could not tell how far your specious hypocrisy had deceived him
knave; and knew no better way of opening his eyes than by presenting 
you before him in your own servile character. Yes. I did express 
that desire. And you leaped to meet it; and you met it; and turning 
in an instant on the hand you had licked and beslaveredas only 
such hounds canyou strengthenedand confirmedand justified me 
in my scheme.' 
Mr Pecksniff made a bow; a submissivenot to say a grovelling and 
an abject bow. If he had been complimented on his practice of the 
loftiest virtueshe never could have bowed as he bowed then. 
'The wretched man who has been murdered' Mr Chuzzlewit went on to 
say; 'then passing by the name of--' 
'Tigg' suggested Mark. 
'Of Tigg; brought begging messages to me on behalf of a friend of 
hisand an unworthy relative of mine; and finding him a man well 
enough suited to my purposeI employed him to glean some news of 
youMartinfor me. It was from him I learned that you had taken 
up your abode with yonder fellow. It was hewho meeting you here 
in townone evening--you remember where?' 
'At the pawnbroker's shop' said Martin. 
'Yes; watched you to your lodgingand enabled me to send you a 
bank-note.' 
'I little thought' said Martingreatly moved'that it had come 
from you; I little thought that you were interested in my fate. If 
I had--' 
'If you had' returned the old mansorrowfully'you would have 
shown less knowledge of me as I seemed to beand as I really was. 
I hoped to bring you backMartinpenitent and humbled. I hoped to 
distress you into coming back to me. Much as I loved youI had 
that to acknowledge which I could not reconcile it to myself to avow
thenunless you made submission to me first. Thus it was I lost 
you. If I have hadindirectlyany act or part in the fate of that 
unhappy manby putting meanshowever smallwithin his reach
Heaven forgive me! I might have knownperhapsthat he would misuse 
money; that it was ill-bestowed upon him; and that sown by his hands 
it could engender mischief only. But I never thought of him at that 
time as having the disposition or ability to be a serious impostor
or otherwise than as a thoughtlessidle-humoureddissipated 
spendthriftsinning more against himself than othersand 
frequenting low haunts and indulging vicious tastesto his own ruin 
only.' 
'Beggin' your pardonsir' said Mr Tapleywho had Mrs Lupin on his 
arm by this timequite agreeably; 'if I may make so bold as say so
my opinion isas you was quite correctand that he turned out 
perfectly nat'ral for all that. There's surprisin' number of men 
sirwho as long as they've only got their own shoes and stockings 
to depend uponwill walk down hillalong the gutters quiet enough 
and by themselvesand not do much harm. But set any on 'em up with 
a coach and horsessir; and it's wonderful what a knowledge of 
drivin' he'll showand how he'll fill his wehicle with passengers
and start off in the middle of the roadneck or nothingto the 
Devil! Bless your heartsirthere's ever so many Tiggs a-passin' 
this here Temple-gate any hour in the daythat only want a chance 
to turn out full-blown Montagues every one!' 
'Your ignoranceas you call itMark' said Mr Chuzzlewit'is 
wiser than some men's enlightenmentand mine among them. You are 
right; not for the first time to-day. Now hear me outmy dears. 
And hear meyouwhoif what I have been told be accurately stated
are Bankrupt in pocket no less than in good name! And when you have 
heard meleave this placeand poison my sight no more!' 
Mr Pecksniff laid his hand upon his breastand bowed again. 
'The penance I have done in this house' said Mr Chuzzlewit'has 
earned this reflection with it constantlyabove all others. That 
if it had pleased Heaven to visit such infirmity on my old age as 
really had reduced me to the state in which I feigned to beI 
should have brought its misery upon myself. Ohyou whose wealth
like minehas been a source of continual unhappinessleading you 
to distrust the nearest and dearestand to dig yourself a living 
grave of suspicion and reserve; take heed thathaving cast off all 
whom you might have bound to youand tenderlyyou do not become in 
your decay the instrument of such a man as thisand waken in 
another world to the knowledge of such wrong as would embitter 
Heaven itselfif wrong or you could ever reach it!' 
And then he told them how he had sometimes thoughtin the 
beginningthat love might grow up between Mary and Martin; and how 
he had pleased his fancy with the picture of observing it when it 
was newand taking them to taskapartin counterfeited doubtand 
then confessing to them that it had been an object dear to his 
heart; and by his sympathy with themand generous provision for 
their young fortunesestablishing a claim on their affection and 
regard which nothing should witherand which should surround his 
old age with means of happiness. How in the first dawn of this 
designand when the pleasure of such a scheme for the happiness of 
others was new and indistinct within himMartin had come to tell 
him that he had already chosen for himself; knowing that hethe old 
manhad some faint project on that headbut ignorant whom it 
concerned. How it was little comfort to him to know that Martin had 
chosen Herbecause the grace of his design was lostand because 
finding that she had returned his lovehe tortured himself with the 
reflection that theyso youngto whom he had been so kind a 
benefactorwere already like the worldand bent on their own 
selfishstealthy ends. How in the bitterness of this impression
and of his past experiencehe had reproached Martin so harshly 
(forgetting that he had never invited his confidence on such a 
pointand confounding what he had meant to do with what he had 
done)that high words sprung up between themand they separated in 
wrath. How he loved him stilland hoped he would return. How on 
the night of his illness at the Dragonhe had secretly written 
tenderly of himand made him his heirand sanctioned his marriage 
with Mary; and howafter his interview with Mr Pecksniffhe had 
distrusted him againand burnt the paper to ashesand had lain 
down in his bed distracted by suspicionsdoubtsand regrets. 
And then he told them howresolved to probe this Pecksniffand to 
prove the constancy and truth of Mary (to himself no less than 
Martin)he had conceived and entered on his plan; and howbeneath 
her gentleness and patiencehe had softened more and more; still 
more and more beneath the goodness and simplicitythe honour and 
the manly faith of Tom. And when he spoke of Tomhe said God bless 
him; and the tears were in his eyes; for he said that Tom
mistrusted and disliked by him at firsthad come like summer rain 
upon his heart; and had disposed it to believe in better things. 
And Martin took him by the handand Mary tooand Johnhis old 
friendstoutly too; and Markand Mrs Lupinand his sisterlittle 
Ruth. And peace of minddeeptranquil peace of mindwas in Tom's 
heart. 
The old man then related how nobly Mr Pecksniff had performed the 
duty in which he stood indebted to societyin the matter of Tom's 
dismissal; and howhaving often heard disparagement of Mr Westlock 
from Pecksniffian lipsand knowing him to be a friend to Tomhe had 
usedthrough his confidential agent and solicitorthat little 
artifice which had kept him in readiness to receive his unknown 
friend in London. And he called on Mr Pecksniff (by the name of 
Scoundrel) to remember that there again he had not trapped him to do 
evilbut that he had done it of his own free will and agency; nay
that he had cautioned him against it. And once again he called on 
Mr Pecksniff (by the name of Hang-dog) to remember that when Martin 
coming home at lastan altered manhad sued for the forgiveness 
which awaited himhePecksniffhad rejected him in language of 
his ownand had remorsely stepped in between him and the least 
touch of natural tenderness. 'For which' said the old man'if the 
bending of my finger would remove a halter from your neckI 
wouldn't bend it!' 
'Martin' he added'your rival has not been a dangerous onebut 
Mrs Lupin here has played duenna for some weeks; not so much to 
watch your love as to watch her lover. For that Ghoul'--his 
fertility in finding names for Mr Pecksniff was astonishing--'would 
have crawled into her daily walks otherwiseand polluted the fresh 
air. What's this? Her hand is trembling strangely. See if you can 
hold it.' 
Hold it! If he clasped it half as tightly as he did her waist. 
Wellwell! 
But it was good in him that even thenin his high fortune and 
happinesswith her lips nearly printed on his ownand her proud 
young beauty in his close embracehe had a hand still left to 
stretch out to Tom Pinch. 
'OhTom! Dear Tom! I saw youaccidentallycoming here. Forgive 
me!' 
'Forgive!' cried Tom. 'I'll never forgive you as long as I live
Martinif you say another syllable about it. Joy to you both! Joy
my dear fellowfifty thousand times.' 
Joy! There is not a blessing on earth that Tom did not wish them. 
There is not a blessing on earth that Tom would not have bestowed 
upon themif he could. 
'I beg your pardonsir' said Mr Tapleystepping forward'but yow 
was mentionin'just nowa lady of the name of Lupinsir.' 
'I was' returned old Martin 
'Yessir. It's a pretty namesir?' 
'A very good name' said Martin. 
'It seems a'most a pity to change such a name into Tapley. Don't 
itsir?' said Mark. 
'That depends upon the lady. What is HER opinion?' 
'Whysir' said Mr Tapleyretiringwith a bowtowards the buxom 
hostess'her opinion is as the name ain't a change for the better
but the indiwidual may beandthereforeif nobody ain't 
acquainted with no jest cause or impedimentet cetrerthe Blue 
Dragon will be con-werted into the Jolly Tapley. A sign of my own 
inwentionsir. Wery newconwivialand expressive!' 
The whole of these proceedings were so agreeable to Mr Pecksniff 
that he stood with his eyes fixed upon the floor and his hands 
clasping one another alternatelyas if a host of penal sentences 
were being passed upon him. Not only did his figure appear to have 
shrunkbut his discomfiture seemed to have extended itself even to 
his dress. His clothes seemed to have grown shabbierhis linen to 
have turned yellowhis hair to have become lank and frowsy; his 
very boots looked villanous and dimas if their gloss had departed 
with his own. 
Feelingrather than seeingthat the old man now pointed to the 
doorhe raised his eyespicked up his hatand thus addressed him: 
'Mr Chuzzlewitsir! you have partaken of my hospitality.' 
'And paid for it' he observed. 
'Thank you. That savours' said Mr Pecksnifftaking out his 
pocket-handkerchief'of your old familiar frankness. You have paid 
for it. I was about to make the remark. You have deceived mesir. 
Thank you again. I am glad of it. To see you in the possession of 
your health and faculties on any termsisin itselfa sufficient 
recompense. To have been deceived implies a trusting nature. Mine 
is a trusting nature. I am thankful for it. I would rather have a 
trusting naturedo you knowsirthan a doubting one!' 
Here Mr Pecksniffwith a sad smilebowedand wiped his eyes. 
'There is hardly any person presentMr Chuzzlewit' said Pecksniff
'by whom I have not been deceived. I have forgiven those persons on 
the spot. That was my duty; andof courseI have done it. 
Whether it was worthy of you to partake of my hospitalityand to 
act the part you did act in my housethatsiris a question which 
I leave to your own conscience. And your conscience does not acquit 
you. Nosirno!' 
Pronouncing these last words in a loud and solemn voiceMr 
Pecksniff was not so absolutely lost in his own fervour as to be 
unmindful of the expediency of getting a little nearer to the door. 
'I have been struck this day' said Mr Pecksniff'with a walking 
stick (which I have every reason to believe has knobs upon it)on 
that delicate and exquisite portion of the human anatomy--the brain. 
Several blows have been inflictedsirwithout a walking-stick
upon that tenderer portion of my frame--my heart. You have 
mentionedsirmy being bankrupt in my purse. YessirI am. By 
an unfortunate speculationcombined with treacheryI find myself 
reduced to poverty; at a timesirwhen the child of my bosom is 
widowedand affliction and disgrace are in my family.' 
Here Mr Pecksniff wiped his eyes againand gave himself two or 
three little knocks upon the breastas if he were answering two or 
three other little knocks from withingiven by the tinkling hammer 
of his conscienceto express 'Cheer upmy boy!' 
'I know the human mindalthough I trust it. That is my weakness. 
Do I not knowsir'--here he became exceedingly plaintive and was 
observed to glance towards Tom Pinch--'that my misfortunes bring 
this treatment on me? Do I not knowsirthat but for them I never 
should have heard what I have heard to-day? Do I not know that in 
the silence and the solitude of nighta little voice will whisper 
in your earMr ChuzzlewitThis was not well. This was not well, 
sir!Think of thissir (if you will have the goodness)remote 
from the impulses of passionand apart from the specialitiesif I 
may use that strong remarkof prejudice. And if you ever 
contemplate the silent tombsirwhich you will excuse me for 
entertaining some doubt of your doingafter the conduct into which 
you have allowed yourself to be betrayed this day; if you ever 
contemplate the silent tomb sirthink of me. If you find yourself 
approaching to the silent tombsirthink of me. If you should wish 
to have anything inscribed upon your silent tombsirlet it be
that I--ahmy remorseful sir! that I--the humble individual who has 
now the honour of reproaching youforgave you. That I forgave you 
when my injuries were freshand when my bosom was newly wrung. It 
may be bitterness to you to hear it nowsirbut you will live to 
seek a consolation in it. May you find a consolation in it when you 
want itsir! Good morning!' 
With this sublime addressMr Pecksniff departed. But the effect of 
his departure was much impaired by his being immediately afterwards 
run againstand nearly knocked downby a monstrously excited 
little man in velveteen shorts and a very tall hat; who came 
bursting up the stairsand straight into the chambers of Mr 
Chuzzlewitas if he were deranged. 
'Is there anybody here that knows him?' cried the little man. 'Is 
there anybody here that knows him? Ohmy starsis there anybody 
here that knows him?' 
They looked at each other for an explanation; but nobody knew 
anything more than that here was an excited little man with a very 
tall hat onrunning in and out of the room as hard as he could go; 
making his single pair of bright blue stockings appear at least a 
dozen; and constantly repeating in a shrill voice'IS there anybody 
here that knows him?' 
'If your brains is not turned topjy turjeyMr Sweedlepipes!' 
exclaimed another voice'hold that there nige of yournI beg you
sir.' 
At the same time Mrs Gamp was seen in the doorway; out of breath 
from coming up so many stairsand panting fearfully; but dropping 
curtseys to the last. 
'Excuge the weakness of the man' said Mrs Gampeyeing Mr 
Sweedlepipe with great indignation; 'and well I might expect itas 
I should have know'dand wishin' he was drownded in the Thames 
afore I had brought him herewhich not a blessed hour ago he nearly 
shaved the noge off from the father of as lovely a family as ever
Mr Chuzzlewitwas born three sets of twinsand would have done it
only he see it a-goin' in the glassand dodged the rager. And 
neverMr SweedlepipesI do assure yousirdid I so well know 
what a misfortun it was to be acquainted with youas now I do
which so I saysirand I don't deceive you!' 
'I ask your pardonladies and gentlemen all' cried the little 
barbertaking off his hat'and yours tooMrs Gamp. But--but' he 
added this half laughing and half crying'IS there anybody here 
that knows him?' 
As the barber said these wordsa something in top-bootswith its 
head bandaged upstaggered into the roomand began going round and 
round and roundapparently under the impression that it was walking 
straight forward. 
'Look at him!' cried the excited little barber. 'Here he is! 
That'll soon wear offand then he'll be all right again. He's no 
more dead than I am. He's all alive and hearty. Aint youBailey?' 
'R--r--reether soPoll!' replied that gentleman. 
'Look here!' cried the little barberlaughing and crying in the 
same breath. 'When I steady him he comes all right. There! He's 
all right now. Nothing's the matter with him nowexcept that he's 
a little shook and rather giddy; is thereBailey?' 
'R--r--reether shookPoll--reether so!' said Mr Bailey. 'Whatmy 
lovely Sairey! There you air!' 
'What a boy he is!' cried the tender-hearted Pollactually sobbing 
over him. 'I never see sech a boy! It's all his fun. He's full of 
it. He shall go into the business along with me. I am determined 
he shall. We'll make it Sweedlepipe and Bailey. He shall have the 
sporting branch (what a one he'll be for the matches!) and me the 
shavin'. I'll make over the birds to him as soon as ever he's well 
enough. He shall have the little bullfinch in the shopand all. 
He's sech a boy! I ask your pardonladies and gentlemenbut I 
thought there might be some one here that know'd him!' 
Mrs Gamp had observednot without jealousy and scornthat a 
favourable impression appeared to exist in behalf of Mr Sweedlepipe 
and his young friend; and that she had fallen rather into the 
background in consequence. She now struggled to the front
thereforeand stated her business. 
'WhichMr Chuzzlewit' she said'is well beknown to Mrs Harris as 
has one sweet infant (though she DO not wish it known) in her own 
family by the mother's sidekep in spirits in a bottle; and that 
sweet babe she see at Greenwich Faira-travelling in company with a 
pink-eyed ladyProoshan dwarfand livin' skelintonwhich judge 
her feelings when the barrel organ playedand she was showed her own 
dear sister's childthe same not bein' expected from the outside 
picterwhere it was painted quite contrairy in a livin' statea 
many sizes largerand performing beautiful upon the Arpwhich 
never did that dear child know or do; since breathe it never didto 
speak on in this wale! And Mrs HarrisMr Chuzzlewithas knowed me 
many yearand can give you information that the lady which is 
widdered can't do better and may do worsethan let me wait upon 
herwhich I hope to do. Permittin' the sweet faces as I see afore 
me.' 
'Oh!' said Mr Chuzzlewit. 'Is that your business? Was this good 
person paid for the trouble we gave her?' 
'I paid hersir' returned Mark Tapley; 'liberal.' 
'The young man's words is true' said Mrs Gamp'and thank you 
kindly.' 
'Then here we will close our acquaintanceMrs Gamp' retorted Mr 
Chuzzlewit. 'And Mr Sweedlepipe--is that your name?' 
'That is my namesir' replied Pollaccepting with a profusion of 
gratitudesome chinking pieces which the old man slipped into his 
hand. 
'Mr Sweedlepipetake as much care of your lady-lodger as you can
and give her a word or two of good advice now and then. Such' said 
old Martinlooking gravely at the astonished Mrs Gamp'as hinting 
at the expediency of a little less liquorand a little more 
humanityand a little less regard for herselfand a little more 
regard for her patientsand perhaps a trifle of additional honesty. 
Or when Mrs Gamp gets into troubleMr Sweedlepipeit had better 
not be at a time when I am near enough to the Old Bailey to 
volunteer myself as a witness to her character. Endeavour to 
impress that upon her at your leisureif you please.' 
Mrs Gamp clasped her handsturned up her eyes until they were quite 
invisiblethrew back her bonnet for the admission of fresh air to 
her heated brow; and in the act of saying faintly--'Less liquor!--
Sairey Gamp--Bottle on the chimney-pieceand let me put my lips to 
itwhen I am so dispoged!'--fell into one of the walking swoons; in 
which pitiable state she was conducted forth by Mr Sweedlepipewho
between his two patientsthe swooning Mrs Gamp and the revolving 
Baileyhad enough to dopoor fellow. 
The old man looked about himwith a smileuntil his eyes rested on 
Tom Pinch's sister; when he smiled the more. 
'We will all dine here together' he said; 'and as you and Mary have 
enough to talk ofMartinyou shall keep house for us until the 
afternoonwith Mr and Mrs Tapley. I must see your lodgings in the 
meanwhileTom.' 
Tom was quite delighted. So was Ruth. She would go with them. 
'Thank youmy love' said Mr Chuzzlewit. 'But I am afraid I must 
take Tom a little out of the wayon business. Suppose you go on 
firstmy dear?' 
Pretty little Ruth was equally delighted to do that. 
'But not alone' said Martin'not alone. Mr WestlockI dare say
will escort you.' 
Whyof course he would: what else had Mr Westlock in his mind? How 
dull these old men are! 
'You are sure you have no engagement?' he persisted. 
Engagement! As if he could have any engagement! 
So they went off arm-in-arm. When Tom and Mr Chuzzlewit went off 
arm-in-arm a few minutes after themthe latter was still smiling; 
and reallyfor a gentleman of his habitsin rather a knowing 
manner. 
CHAPTER FIFTY-THREE 
WHAT JOHN WESTLOCK SAID TO TOM PINCH'S SISTER; WHAT TOM PINCH'S 
SISTER SAID TO JOHN WESTLOCK; WHAT TOM PINCH SAID TO BOTH OF THEM; 
AND HOW THEY ALL PASSED THE REMAINDER OF THE DAY 
Brilliantly the Temple Fountain sparkled in the sunand laughingly 
its liquid music playedand merrily the idle drops of water danced 
and dancedand peeping out in sport among the treesplunged 
lightly down to hide themselvesas little Ruth and her companion 
came toward it. 
And why they came toward the Fountain at all is a mystery; for they 
had no business there. It was not in their way. It was quite out 
of their way. They had no more to do with the Fountainbless you
than they had with--with Loveor any out-of-the-way thing of that 
sort. 
It was all very well for Tom and his sister to make appointments by 
the Fountainbut that was quite another affair. Becauseof 
coursewhen she had to wait a minute or twoit would have been 
very awkward for her to have had to wait in any but a tolerably 
quiet spot; but that was as quiet a spoteverything consideredas 
they could choose. But when she had John Westlock to take care of 
herand was going home with her arm in his (home being in a 
different direction altogether)their coming anywhere near that 
Fountain was quite extraordinary. 
Howeverthere they found themselves. And another extraordinary 
part of the matter wasthat they seemed to have come thereby a 
silent understanding. Yet when they got therethey were a little 
confused by being therewhich was the strangest part of all; 
because there is nothing naturally confusing in a Fountain. We all 
know that. 
What a good old place it was! John said. With quite an earnest 
affection for it 
'A pleasant place indeed' said little Ruth. 'So shady!' 
Oh wicked little Ruth! 
They came to a stop when John began to praise it. The day was 
exquisite; and stopping at allit was quite natural--nothing could 
be more so--that they should glance down Garden Court; because 
Garden Court ends in the Gardenand the Garden ends in the River
and that glimpse is very bright and fresh and shining on a summer's 
day. Thenohlittle Ruthwhy not look boldly at it! Why fit that 
tinypreciousblessed little foot into the cracked corner of an 
insensible old flagstone in the pavement; and be so very anxious to 
adjust it to a nicety! 
If the Fiery-faced matron in the crunched bonnet could have seen 
them as they walked awayhow many years' purchase might Fiery Face 
have been disposed to take for her situation in Furnival's Inn as 
laundress to Mr Westlock! 
They went awaybut not through London's streets! Through some 
enchanted citywhere the pavements were of air; where all the rough 
sounds of a stirring town were softened into gentle music; where 
everything was happy; where there was no distanceand no time. 
There were two good-tempered burly draymen letting down big butts of 
beer into a cellarsomewhere; and when John helped her--almost 
lifted her--the lightesteasiestneatest thing you ever saw-across 
the ropethey said he owed them a good turn for giving him 
the chance. Celestial draymen! 
Green pastures in the summer tidedeep-littered straw yards in the 
winterno start of corn and clovereverto that noble horse who 
WOULD dance on the pavement with a gig behind himand who 
frightened herand made her clasp his arm with both hands (both 
hands meeting one upon the another so endearingly!)and caused her 
to implore him to take refuge in the pastry-cook'sand afterwards 
to peep out at the door so shrinkingly; and thenlooking at him 
with those eyesto ask him was he sure--now was he sure--they might 
go safely on! Oh for a string of rampant horses! For a lionfor a 
bearfor a mad bullfor anything to bring the little hands together 
on his arm again! 
They talkedof course. They talked of Tomand all these changes 
and the attachment Mr Chuzzlewit had conceived for himand the 
bright prospects he had in such a friendand a great deal more to 
the same purpose. The more they talkedthe more afraid this 
fluttering little Ruth became of any pause; and sooner than have a 
pause she would say the same things over again; and if she hadn't 
courage or presence of mind enough for that (to say the truth she 
very seldom had)she was ten thousand times more charming and 
irresistible than she had been before. 
'Martin will be married very soon nowI suppose?' said John. 
She supposed he would. Never did a bewitching little woman suppose 
anything in such a faint voice as Ruth supposed that. 
But seeing that another of those alarming pauses was approaching
she remarked that he would have a beautiful wife. Didn't Mr 
Westlock think so? 
'Ye--yes' said John'ohyes.' 
She feared he was rather hard to pleasehe spoke so coldly. 
'Rather say already pleased' said John. 'I have scarcely seen her. 
I had no care to see her. I had no eyes for HERthis morning.' 
Ohgood gracious! 
It was well they had reached their destination. She never could 
have gone any further. It would have been impossible to walk in 
such a tremble. 
Tom had not come in. They entered the triangular parlour together
and alone. Fiery FaceFiery Facehow many years' purchase NOW! 
She sat down on the little sofaand untied her bonnet-strings. He 
sat down by her sideand very near her; veryvery near her. Oh 
rapidswellingbursting little heartyou knew that it would come 
to thisand hoped it would. Why beat so wildlyheart! 
'Dear Ruth! Sweet Ruth! If I had loved you lessI could have told 
you that I loved youlong ago. I have loved you from the first. 
There never was a creature in the world more truly loved than you
dear Ruthby me!' 
She clasped her little hands before her face. The gushing tears of 
joyand prideand hopeand innocent affectionwould not be 
restrained. Fresh from her full young heart they came to answer 
him. 
'My dear love! If this is--I almost dare to hope it isnow--not 
painful or distressing to youyou make me happier than I can tell
or you imagine. Darling Ruth! My own goodgentlewinning Ruth! I 
hope I know the value of your heartI hope I know the worth of your 
angel nature. Let me try and show you that I do; and you will make 
me happierRuth--' 
'Not happier' she sobbed'than you make me. No one can be 
happierJohnthan you make me!' 
Fiery Faceprovide yourself! The usual wages or the usual warning. 
It's all overFiery Face. We needn't trouble you any further. 
The little hands could meet each other nowwithout a rampant horse 
to urge them. There was no occasion for lionsbearsor mad bulls. 
It could all be doneand infinitely betterwithout their 
assistance. No burly drayman or big butts of beerwere wanted for 
apologies. No apology at all was wanted. The soft light touch fell 
coylybut quite naturallyupon the lover's shoulder; the delicate 
waistthe drooping headthe blushing cheekthe beautiful eyes
the exquisite mouth itselfwere all as natural as possible. If all 
the horses in Araby had run away at oncethey couldn't have 
improved upon it. 
They soon began to talk of Tom again. 
'I hope he will be glad to hear of it!' said Johnwith sparkling 
eyes. 
Ruth drew the little hands a little tighter when he said itand 
looked up seriously into his face. 
'I am never to leave himAM Idear? I could never leave Tom. I 
am sure you know that.' 
'Do you think I would ask you?' he returnedwith a--well! Never 
mind with what. 
'I am sure you never would' she answeredthe bright tears standing 
in her eyes. 
'And I will swear itRuthmy darlingif you please. Leave Tom! 
That would be a strange beginning. Leave Tomdear! If Tom and we 
be not inseparableand Tom (God bless him) have not all honour and 
all love in our homemy little wifemay that home never be! And 
that's a strong oathRuth.' 
Shall it be recorded how she thanked him? Yesit shall. In all 
simplicity and innocence and purity of heartyet with a timid
gracefulhalf-determined hesitationshe set a little rosy seal 
upon the vowwhose colour was reflected in her faceand flashed up 
to the braiding of her dark brown hair. 
'Tom will be so happyand so proudand glad' she saidclasping 
her little hands. 'But so surprised! I am sure he had never thought 
of such a thing.' 
Of course John asked her immediately--because you know they were in 
that foolish state when great allowances must be made--when SHE had 
begun to think of such a thingand this made a little diversion in 
their talk; a charming diversion to thembut not so interesting to 
us; at the end of whichthey came back to Tom again. 
'Ah! dear Tom!' said Ruth. 'I suppose I ought to tell you 
everything now. I should have no secrets from you. Should IJohn
love?' 
It is of no use saying how that preposterous John answered her
because he answered in a manner which is untranslatable on paper 
though highly satisfactory in itself. But what he conveyed wasNo 
no nosweet Ruth; or something to that effect. 
Then she told him Tom's great secret; not exactly saying how she had 
found it outbut leaving him to understand it if he liked; and John 
was sadly grieved to hear itand was full of sympathy and sorrow. 
But they would tryhe saidonly the moreon this account to make 
him happyand to beguile him with his favourite pursuits. And 
thenin all the confidence of such a timehe told her how he had a 
capital opportunity of establishing himself in his old profession in 
the country; and how he had been thinkingin the event of that 
happiness coming upon him which had actually come--there was another 
slight diversion here--how he had been thinking that it would afford 
occupation to Tomand enable them to live together in the easiest 
mannerwithout any sense of dependence on Tom's part; and to be as 
happy as the day was long. And Ruth receiving this with joythey 
went on catering for Tom to that extent that they had already 
purchased him a select library and built him an organon which he 
was performing with the greatest satisfactionwhen they heard him 
knocking at the door. 
Though she longed to tell him what had happenedpoor little Ruth 
was greatly agitated by his arrival; the more so because she knew 
that Mr Chuzzlewit was with him. So she saidall in a tremble: 
'What shall I dodear John! I can't bear that he should hear it 
from any one but meand I could not tell himunless we were 
alone.' 
'Domy love' said John'whatever is natural to you on the impulse 
of the momentand I am sure it will be right.' 
He had hardly time to say thus muchand Ruth had hardly time to-just 
to get a little farther off--upon the sofawhen Tom and Mr 
Chuzzlewit came in. Mr Chuzzlewit came firstand Tom was a few 
seconds behind him. 
Now Ruth had hastily resolved that she would beckon Tom upstairs 
after a short timeand would tell him in his little bedroom. But 
when she saw his dear old face come inher heart was so touched 
that she ran into his armsand laid her head down on his breast and 
sobbed out'Bless meTom! My dearest brother!' 
Tom looked upin surpriseand saw John Westlock close beside him
holding out his hand. 
'John!' cried Tom. 'John!' 
'Dear Tom' said his friend'give me your hand. We are brothers
Tom.' 
Tom wrung it with all his forceembraced his sister ferventlyand 
put her in John Westlock's arms. 
'Don't speak to meJohn. Heaven is very good to us. I--' Tom 
could find no further utterancebut left the room; and Ruth went 
after him. 
And when they came backwhich they did by-and-byeshe looked more 
beautifuland Tom more good and true (if that were possible) than 
ever. And though Tom could not speak upon the subject even now; 
being yet too newly gladhe put both his hands in both of John's 
with emphasis sufficient for the best speech ever spoken. 
'I am glad you chose to-day' said Mr Chuzzlewit to John; with the 
same knowing smile as when they had left him. 'I thought you would. 
I hoped Tom and I lingered behind a discreet time. It's so long 
since I had any practical knowledge of these subjectsthat I have 
been anxiousI assure you.' 
'Your knowledge is still pretty accuratesir' returned John
laughing'if it led you to foresee what would happen to-day.' 
'WhyI am not sureMr Westlock' said the old man'that any great 
spirit of prophecy was neededafter seeing you and Ruth together. 
Come hitherpretty one. See what Tom and I purchased this morning
while you were dealing in exchange with that young merchant there.' 
The old man's way of seating her beside himand humouring his voice 
as if she were a childwas whimsical enoughbut full of 
tendernessand not ill adaptedsomehowto little Ruth. 
'See here!' he saidtaking a case from his pocket'what a 
beautiful necklace. Ah! How it glitters! Earringstooand 
braceletsand a zone for your waist. This set is yoursand Mary 
has another like it. Tom couldn't understand why I wanted two. 
What a short-sighted Tom! Earrings and braceletsand a zone for 
your waist! Ah! Beautiful! Let us see how brave they look. 
Ask Mr Westlock to clasp them on.' 
It was the prettiest thing to see her holding out her roundwhite 
arm; and John (oh deepdeep John!) pretending that the bracelet was 
very hard to fasten; it was the prettiest thing to see her girding 
on the precious little zoneand yet obliged to have assistance 
because her fingers were in such terrible perplexity; it was the 
prettiest thing to see her so confused and bashfulwith the smiles 
and blushes playing brightly on her facelike the sparkling light 
upon the jewels; it was the prettiest thing that you would seein 
the common experiences of a twelvemonthrely upon it. 
'The set of jewels and the wearer are so well matched' said the old 
man'that I don't know which becomes the other most. Mr Westlock 
could tell meI have no doubtbut I'll not ask himfor he is 
bribed. Health to wear themmy dearand happiness to make you 
forgetful of themexcept as a remembrance from a loving friend!' 
He patted her upon the cheekand said to Tom: 
'I must play the part of a father hereTomalso. There are not 
many fathers who marry two such daughters on the same day; but we 
will overlook the improbability for the gratification of an old 
man's fancy. I may claim that much indulgence' he added'for I 
have gratified few fancies enough in my life tending to the 
happiness of othersHeaven knows!' 
These various proceedings had occupied so much timeand they fell 
into such a pleasant conversation nowthat it was within a quarter 
of an hour of the time appointed for dinner before any of them 
thought about it. A hackney-coach soon carried them to the Temple
however; and there they found everything prepared for their 
reception
Mr Tapley having been furnished with unlimited credentials relative 
to the ordering of dinnerhad so exerted himself for the honour of 
the partythat a prodigious banquet was servedunder the joint 
direction of himself and his Intended. Mr Chuzzlewit would have had 
them of the partyand Martin urgently seconded his wishbut Mark 
could by no means be persuaded to sit down at table; observingthat 
in having the honour of attending to their comfortshe felt 
himselfindeedthe landlord of the Jolly Tapleyand could almost 
delude himself into the belief that the entertainment was actually 
being held under the Jolly Tapley's roof. 
For the better encouragement of himself in this fableMr Tapley 
took it upon him to issue divers general directions to the waiters 
from the hotelrelative to the disposal of the dishes and so forth; 
and as they were usually in direct opposition to all precedentand 
were always issued in his most facetious form of thought and speech
they occasioned great merriment among those attendants; in which Mr 
Tapley participatedwith an infinite enjoyment of his own humour. 
He likewise entertained them with short anecdotes of his travels 
appropriate to the occasion; and now and then with some comic 
passage or other between himself and Mrs Lupin; so that explosive 
laughs were constantly issuing from the side-boardand from the 
backs of chairs; and the head-waiter (who wore powderand kneesmalls
and was usually a grave man) got to be a bright scarlet in 
the faceand broke his waistcoat-strings audibly. 
Young Martin sat at the head of the tableand Tom Pinch at the 
foot; and if there were a genial face at that boardit was Tom's. 
They all took their tone from Tom. Everybody drank to him
everybody looked to himeverybody thought of himeverybody loved 
him. If he so much as laid down his knife and forksomebody put 
out a hand to shake with him. Martin and Mary had taken him aside 
before dinnerand spoken to him so heartily of the time to come
laying such fervent stress upon the trust they had in his completion 
of their felicityby his society and closest friendshipthat Tom 
was positively moved to tears. He couldn't bear it. His heart was 
fullhe saidof happiness. And so it was. Tom spoke the honest 
truth. It was. Large as thy heart wasdear Tom Pinchit had no 
room that day for anything but happiness and sympathy! 
And there was Fipsold Fips of Austin Friarspresent at the 
dinnerand turning out to be the jolliest old dog that ever did 
violence to his convivial sentiments by shutting himself up in a 
dark office. 'Where is he?' said Fipswhen he came in. And then 
he pounced on Tomand told him that he wanted to relieve himself of 
all his old constraint; and in the first place shook him by one 
handand in the second place shook him by the otherand in the 
third place nudged him in the waistcoatand in the fourth place 
said'How are you?' and in a great many other places did a great 
many other things to show his friendliness and joy. And he sang 
songsdid Fips; and made speechesdid Fips; and knocked off his 
wine pretty handsomelydid Fips; and in shorthe showed himself a 
perfect Trumpdid Fipsin all respects. 
But ah! the happiness of strolling home at night--obstinate little 
Ruthshe wouldn't hear of riding!--as they had done on that dear 
nightfrom Furnival's Inn! The happiness of being able to talk 
about itand to confide their happiness to each other! The 
happiness of stating all their little plans to Tomand seeing his 
bright face grow brighter as they spoke! 
When they reached homeTom left John and his sister in the parlour
and went upstairs into his own roomunder pretence of seeking a 
book. And Tom actually winked to himself when he got upstairs; he 
thought it such a deep thing to have done. 
'They like to be by themselvesof course' said Tom; 'and I came 
away so naturallythat I have no doubt they are expecting meevery 
momentto return. That's capital!' 
But he had not sat reading very longwhen he heard a tap at his 
door. 
'May I come in?' said John. 
'Ohsurely!' Tom replied. 
'Don't leave usTom. Don't sit by yourself. We want to make you 
merry; not melancholy.' 
'My dear friend' said Tomwith a cheerful smile. 
'BrotherTom. Brother.' 
'My dear brother' said Tom; 'there is no danger of my being 
melancholyhow can I be melancholywhen I know that you and Ruth 
are so blest in each other! I think I can find my tongue tonight
John' he addedafter a moment's pause. 'But I never can tell you 
what unutterable joy this day has given me. It would be unjust to 
you to speak of your having chosen a portionless girlfor I feel 
that you know her worth; I am sure you know her worth. Nor will it 
diminish in your estimationJohnwhich money might.' 
'Which money wouldTom' he returned. 'Her worth! Ohwho could 
see her hereand not love her! Who could know herTomand not 
honour her! Who could ever stand possessed of such a heart as hers
and grow indifferent to the treasure! Who could feel the rapture 
that I feel to-dayand love as I love herTomwithout knowing 
something of her worth! Your joy unutterable! NonoTom. It's 
mineit's mine. 
'NonoJohn' said Tom. 'It's mineit's mine.' 
Their friendly contention was brought to a close by little Ruth 
herselfwho came peeping in at the door. And ohthe lookthe 
glorioushalf-proudhalf-timid look she gave Tomwhen her lover 
drew her to his side! As much as to say'YesindeedTomhe will 
do it. But then he has a rightyou know. Because I AM fond of 
himTom.' 
As to Tomhe was perfectly delighted. He could have sat and looked 
at themjust as they werefor hours. 
'I have told Tomloveas we agreedthat we are not going to 
permit him to run awayand that we cannot possibly allow it. The 
loss of one personand such a person as Tomtooout of our small 
household of threeis not to be endured; and so I have told him. 
Whether he is considerateor whether he is only selfishI don't 
know. But he needn't be consideratefor he is not the least 
restraint upon us. Is hedearest Ruth?' 
Well! He really did not seem to be any particular restraint upon 
them. Judging from what ensued. 
Was it folly in Tom to be so pleased by their remembrance of him at 
such a time? Was their graceful love a follywere their dear 
caresses follieswas their lengthened parting folly? Was it folly 
in him to watch her window from the streetand rate its scantiest 
gleam of light above all diamonds; folly in her to breathe his name 
upon her kneesand pour out her pure heart before that Being from 
whom such hearts and such affections come? 
If these be folliesthen Fiery Face go on and prosper! If they be 
notthen Fiery Face avaunt! But set the crunched bonnet at some 
other single gentlemanin any casefor one is lost to thee for 
ever! 
CHAPTER FIFTY-FOUR 
GIVES THE AUTHOR GREAT CONCERN. FOR IT IS THE LAST IN THE BOOK 
Todger's was in high featherand mighty preparations for a late 
breakfast were astir in its commercial bowers. The blissful morning 
had arrived when Miss Pecksniff was to be united in holy matrimony
to Augustus. 
Miss Pecksniff was in a frame of mind equally becoming to herself 
and the occasion. She was full of clemency and conciliation. She 
had laid in several caldrons of live coalsand was prepared to 
heap them on the heads of her enemies. She bore no spite nor malice 
in her heart. Not the least. 
QuarrelsMiss Pecksniff saidwere dreadful things in families; and 
though she never could forgive her dear papashe was willing to 
receive her other relations. They had been separatedshe observed
too long. It was enough to call down a judgment upon the family. 
She believed the death of Jonas WAS a judgment on them for their 
internal dissensions. And Miss Pecksniff was confirmed in this 
beliefby the lightness with which the visitation had fallen on 
herself. 
By way of doing sacrifice--not in triumph; notof coursein 
triumphbut in humiliation of spirit--this amiable young person 
wrotethereforeto her kinswoman of the strong mindand informed 
her that her nuptials would take place on such a day. That she had 
been much hurt by the unnatural conduct of herself and daughters
and hoped they might not have suffered in their consciences. That
being desirous to forgive her enemiesand make her peace with the 
world before entering into the most solemn of covenants with the 
most devoted of menshe now held out the hand of friendship. That 
if the strong-minded women took that handin the temper in which it 
was extended to hersheMiss Pecksniffdid invite her to be 
present at the ceremony of her marriageand did furthermore invite 
the three red-nosed spinstersher daughters (but Miss Pecksniff did 
not particularize their noses)to attend as bridesmaids. 
The strong-minded women returned for answerthat herself and 
daughters wereas regarded their consciencesin the enjoyment of 
robust healthwhich she knew Miss Pecksniff would be glad to hear. 
That she had received Miss Pecksniff's note with unalloyed delight
because she never had attached the least importance to the paltry 
and insignificant jealousies with which herself and circle had been 
assailed; otherwise than as she had found themin the 
contemplationa harmless source of innocent mirth. That she would 
joyfully attend Miss Pecksniff's bridal; and that her three dear 
daughters would be happy to assiston so interestingand SO VERY 
UNEXPECTED--which the strong-minded woman underlined--SO VERY 
UNEXPECTED an occasion. 
On the receipt of this gracious replyMiss Pecksniff extended her 
forgiveness and her invitations to Mr and Mrs Spottletoe; to Mr 
George Chuzzlewit the bachelor cousin; to the solitary female who 
usually had the toothache; and to the hairy young gentleman with 
the outline of a face; surviving remnants of the party that had once 
assembled in Mr Pecksniff's parlour. After which Miss Pecksniff 
remarked that there was a sweetness in doing our dutywhich 
neutralized the bitter in our cups. 
The wedding guests had not yet assembledand indeed it was so early 
that Miss Pecksniff herself was in the act of dressing at her 
leisurewhen a carriage stopped near the Monument; and Mark
dismounting from the rumbleassisted Mr Chuzzlewit to alight. The 
carriage remained in waiting; so did Mr Tapley. Mr Chuzzlewit 
betook himself to Todger's. 
He was shownby the degenerate successor of Mr Baileyinto the 
dining-parlour; where--for his visit was expected--Mrs Todgers 
immediately appeared. 
'You are dressedI seefor the wedding' he said. 
Mrs Todgerswho was greatly flurried by the preparationsreplied 
in the affirmative. 
'It goes against my wishes to have it in progress just nowI assure 
yousir' said Mrs Todgers; 'but Miss Pecksniff's mind was set upon 
itand it really is time that Miss Pecksniff was married. That 
cannot be deniedsir.' 
'No' said Mr Chuzzlewit'assuredly not. Her sister takes no part 
in the proceedings?' 
'Ohdear nosir. Poor thing!' said Mrs Todgersshaking her 
headand dropping her voice. 'Since she has known the worstshe 
has never left my room; the next room.' 
'Is she prepared to see me?' he inquired. 
'Quite preparedsir.' 
'Then let us lose no time.' 
Mrs Todgers conducted him into the little back chamber commanding 
the prospect of the cistern; and theresadly different from when it 
had first been her lodgingsat poor Merryin mourning weeds. The 
room looked very dark and sorrowful; and so did she; but she had one 
friend beside herfaithful to the last. Old Chuffey. 
When Mr Chuzzlewit sat down at her sideshe took his hand and put 
it to her lips. She was in great grief. He too was agitated; for 
he had not seen her since their parting in the churchyard. 
'I judged you hastily' he saidin a low voice. 'I fear I judged 
you cruelly. Let me know that I have your forgiveness.' 
She kissed his hand again; and retaining it in hersthanked him in 
a broken voicefor all his kindness to her since. 
'Tom Pinch' said Martin'has faithfully related to me all that you 
desired him to convey; at a time when he deemed it very improbable 
that he would ever have an opportunity of delivering your message. 
Believe methat if I ever deal again with an ill-advised and 
unawakened naturehiding the strength it thinks its weaknessI will 
have long and merciful consideration for it.' 
'You had for me; even for me' she answered. 'I quite believe it. 
I said the words you have repeatedwhen my distress was very sharp 
and hard to bear; I say them now for others; but I cannot urge them 
for myself. You spoke to me after you had seen and watched me day 
by day. There was great consideration in that. You might have 
spokenperhapsmore kindly; you might have tried to invite my 
confidence by greater gentleness; but the end would have been the 
same.' 
He shook his head in doubtand not without some inward selfreproach. 
'How can I hope' she said'that your interposition would have 
prevailed with mewhen I know how obdurate I was! I never thought 
at all; dear Mr ChuzzlewitI never thought at all; I had no 
thoughtno heartno care to find one; at that time. It has grown 
out of my trouble. I have felt it in my trouble. I wouldn't recall 
my trouble such as it is and has been--and it is light in comparison 
with trials which hundreds of good people suffer every dayI know-I 
wouldn't recall it to-morrowif I could. It has been my friend
for without it no one could have changed me; nothing could have 
changed me. Do not mistrust me because of these tears; I cannot 
help them. I am grateful for itin my soul. Indeed I am!' 
'Indeed she is!' said Mrs Todgers. 'I believe itsir.' 
'And so do I!' said Mr Chuzzlewit. 'Nowattend to memy dear. 
Your late husband's estateif not wasted by the confession of a 
large debt to the broken office (which documentbeing useless to 
the runawayshas been sent over to England by them; not so much for 
the sake of the creditors as for the gratification of their dislike 
to himwhom they suppose to be still living)will be seized upon 
by law; for it is not exemptas I learnfrom the claims of those 
who have suffered by the fraud in which he was engaged. Your 
father's property was allor nearly allembarked in the same 
transaction. If there be any leftit will be seized onin like 
manner. There is no home THERE.' 
'I couldn't return to him' she saidwith an instinctive reference 
to his having forced her marriage on. 'I could not return to him.' 
'I know it' Mr Chuzzlewit resumed; 'and I am here because I know 
it. Come with me! From all who are about meyou are certain (I 
have ascertained it) of a generous welcome. But until your health 
is re-establishedand you are sufficiently composed to bear that 
welcomeyou shall have your abode in any quiet retreat of your own 
choosingnear London; not so far removed but that this kind-hearted 
lady may still visit you as often as she pleases. You have suffered 
much; but you are youngand have a brighter and a better future 
stretching out before you. Come with me. Your sister is careless 
of youI know. She hurries on and publishes her marriagein a 
spirit which (to say no more of it) is barely decentis unsisterly
and bad. Leave the house before her guests arrive. She means to 
give you pain. Spare her the offenceand come with me!' 
Mrs Todgersthough most unwilling to part with heradded her 
persuasions. Even poor old Chuffey (of course included in the 
project) added his. She hurriedly attired herselfand was ready to 
departwhen Miss Pecksniff dashed into the room. 
Miss Pecksniff dashed in so suddenlythat she was placed in an 
embarrassing position. For though she had completed her bridal 
toilette as to her headon which she wore a bridal bonnet with 
orange flowersshe had not completed it as to her skirtswhich 
displayed no choicer decoration than a dimity bedgown. She had 
dashed inin factabout half-way throughto console her sister
in her afflictionwith a sight of the aforesaid bonnet; and being 
quite unconscious of the presence of a visitoruntil she found Mr 
Chuzzlewit standing face to face with herher surprise was an 
uncomfortable one. 
'Soyoung lady!' said the old maneyeing her with strong 
disfavour. 'You are to be married to-day!' 
'Yessir' returned Miss Pecksniffmodestly. 'I am. I--my dress 
is rather--reallyMrs Todgers!' 
'Your delicacy' said old Martin'is troubledI perceive. I am 
not surprised to find it so. You have chosen the period of your 
marriage unfortunately.' 
'I beg your pardonMr Chuzzlewit' retorted Cherry; very red and 
angry in a moment; 'but if you have anything to say on that subject
I must beg to refer you to Augustus. You will scarcely think it 
manlyI hopeto force an argument on mewhen Augustus is at all 
times ready to discuss it with you. I have nothing to do with any 
deceptions that may have been practiced on my parent' said Miss 
Pecksniffpointedly; 'and as I wish to be on good terms with 
everybody at such a timeI should have been glad if you would have 
favoured us with your company at breakfast. But I will not ask you 
as it is; seeing that you have been prepossessed and set against me 
in another quarter. I hope I have my natural affections for another 
quarterand my natural pity for another quarter; but I cannot 
always submit to be subservient to itMr Chuzzlewit. That would be 
a little too much. I trust I have more respect for myselfas well 
as for the man who claims me as his Bride.' 
'Your sistermeeting--as I think; not as she saysfor she has said 
nothing about it--with little consideration from youis going away 
with me' said Mr Chuzzlewit. 
'I am very happy to find that she has some good fortune at last' 
returned Miss Pecksnifftossing her head. 'I congratulate herI 
am sure. I am not surprised that this event should be painful to 
her--painful to her--but I can't help thatMr Chuzzlewit. It's 
not my fault.' 
'ComeMiss Pecksniff!' said the old manquietly. 'I should like 
to see a better parting between you. I should like to see a better 
parting on your sidein such circumstances. It would make me your 
friend. You may want a friend one day or other.' 
'Every relation of lifeMr Chuzzlewitbegging your pardon; and 
every friend in life' returned Miss Pecksniffwith dignity'is 
now bound up and cemented in Augustus. So long as Augustus is my 
ownI cannot want a friend. When you speak of friendssirI must 
begonce for allto refer you to Augustus. That is my impression 
of the religious ceremony in which I am so soon to take a part at 
that altar to which Augustus will conduct me. I bear no malice at 
any timemuch less in a moment of triumphtowards any one; much 
less towards my sister. On the contraryI congratulate her. If 
you didn't hear me say soI am not to blame. And as I owe it to 
Augustusto be punctual on an occasion when he may naturally be 
supposed to be--to be impatient--reallyMrs Todgers!--I must beg 
your leavesirto retire.'
After these words the bridal bonnet disappeared; with as much state 
as the dimity bedgown left in it. 
Old Martin gave his arm to the younger sister without speaking; and 
led her out. Mrs Todgerswith her holiday garments fluttering in 
the windaccompanied them to the carriageclung round Merry's neck 
at partingand ran back to her own dingy housecrying the whole 
way. She had a leanlank bodyMrs Todgersbut a well-conditioned 
soul within. Perhaps the good Samaritan was lean and lankand 
found it hard to live. Who knows! 
Mr Chuzzlewit followed her so closely with his eyesthatuntil she 
had shut her own doorthey did not encounter Mr Tapley's face. 
'WhyMark!' he saidas soon as he observed it'what's the 
matter?' 
'The wonderfulest ewentsir!' returned Markpumping at his voice 
in a most laborious mannerand hardly able to articulate with all 
his efforts. 'A coincidence as never was equalled! I'm blessed if 
here ain't two old neighbours of ournsir!' 
'What neighbours?' cried old Martinlooking out of window. 
'Where?' 
'I was a-walkin' up and down not five yards from this spot' said Mr 
Tapleybreathless'and they come upon me like their own ghostsas 
I thought they was! It's the wonderfulest ewent that ever happened. 
Bring a feathersomebodyand knock me down with it!' 
'What do you mean!' exclaimed old Martinquite as much excited by 
the spectacle of Mark's excitement as that strange person was 
himself. 'Neighbourswhere?' 
'Heresir!' replied Mr Tapley. 'Here in the city of London! Here 
upon these very stones! Here they aresir! Don't I know 'em? Lord 
love their welcome facesdon't I know 'em!' 
With which ejaculations Mr Tapley not only pointed to a decentlooking 
man and woman standing bybut commenced embracing them 
alternatelyover and over againin Monument Yard. 
'NeighboursWHERE? old Martin shouted; almost maddened by his 
ineffectual efforts to get out at the coach-door. 
'Neighbours in America! Neighbours in Eden!' cried Mark. 
'Neighbours in the swampneighbours in the bushneighbours in the 
fever. Didn't she nurse us! Didn't he help us! Shouldn't we both 
have died without 'em! Haven't they come a-strugglin' backwithout 
a single child for their consolation! And talk to me of neighbours!' 
Away he went againin a perfectly wild statehugging themand 
skipping round themand cutting in between themas if he were 
performing some frantic and outlandish dance. 
Mr Chuzzlewit no sooner gathered who these people werethan he 
burst open the coach-door somehow or otherand came tumbling out 
among them; and as if the lunacy of Mr Tapley were contagioushe 
immediately began to shake hands tooand exhibit every demonstration 
of the liveliest joy. 
'Get upbehind!' he said. 'Get up in the rumble. Come along with 
me! Go you on the boxMark. Home! Home!' 
'Home!' cried Mr Tapleyseizing the old man's hand in a burst of 
enthusiasm. 'Exactly my opinionsir. Home for ever! Excuse the 
libertysirI can't help it. Success to the Jolly Tapley! There's 
nothin' in the house they shan't have for the askin' forexcept a 
bill. Home to be sure! Hurrah!' 
Home they rolled accordinglywhen he had got the old man in again
as fast as they could go; Mark abating nothing of his fervour by the 
wayby allowing it to vent itself as unrestrainedly as if he had 
been on Salisbury Plain. 
And now the wedding party began to assemble at Todgers's. Mr 
Jinkinsthe only boarder invitedwas on the ground first. He wore 
a white favour in his button-holeand a bran new extra super 
double-milled blue saxony dress coat (that was its description in the 
bill)with a variety of tortuous embellishments about the pockets
invented by the artist to do honour to the day. The miserable 
Augustus no longer felt strongly even on the subject of Jinkins. He 
hadn't strength of mind enough to do it. 'Let him come!' he had 
saidin answer to Miss Pecksniffwhen she urged the point. 'Let 
him come! He has ever been my rock ahead through life. 'Tis meet he 
should be there. Haha! Ohyes! let Jinkins come!' 
Jinkins had come with all the pleasure in lifeand there he was. 
For some few minutes he had no companion but the breakfastwhich 
was set forth in the drawing-roomwith unusual taste and ceremony. 
But Mrs Todgers soon joined him; and the bachelor cousinthe hairy 
young gentlemanand Mr and Mrs Spottletoearrived in quick 
succession. 
Mr Spottletoe honoured Jinkins with an encouraging bow. 'Glad to 
know yousir' he said. 'Give you joy!' Under the impression that 
Jinkins was the happy man. 
Mr Jinkins explained. He was merely doing the honours for his 
friend Moddlewho had ceased to reside in the houseand had not 
yet arrived. 
'Not arrivedsir!' exclaimed Spottletoein a great heat. 
'Not yet' said Mr Jinkins. 
'Upon my soul!' cried Spottletoe. 'He begins well! Upon my life and 
honour this young man begins well! But I should very much like to 
know how it is that every one who comes into contact with this 
family is guilty of some gross insult to it. Death! Not arrived 
yet. Not here to receive us!' 
The nephew with the outline of a countenancesuggested that perhaps 
he had ordered a new pair of bootsand they hadn't come home. 
'Don't talk to me of Bootssir!' retorted Spottletoewith immense 
indignation. 'He is bound to come here in his slippers then; he is 
bound to come here barefoot. Don't offer such a wretched and 
evasive plea to me on behalf of your friendas Bootssir.' 
'He is not MY friend' said the nephew. 'I never saw him.' 
'Very wellsir' returned the fiery Spottletoe. 'Then don't talk 
to me!' 
The door was thrown open at this junctureand Miss Pecksniff 
enteredtotteringand supported by her three bridesmaids. The 
strong-minded woman brought up the rear; having waited outside until 
nowfor the purpose of spoiling the effect. 
'How do you doma'am!' said Spottletoe to the strong-minded woman 
in a tone of defiance. 'I believe you see Mrs Spottletoema'am?' 
The strong-minded woman with an air of great interest in Mrs 
Spottletoe's healthregretted that she was not more easily seen. 
Nature erringin that lady's caseupon the slim side. 
'Mrs Spottletoe is at least more easily seen than the bridegroom
ma'am' returned that lady's husband. 'That isunless he has 
confined his attentions to any particular part or branch of this 
familywhich would be quite in keeping with its usual proceedings.' 
'If you allude to mesir--' the strong-minded woman began. 
'Pray' interposed Miss Pecksniff'do not allow Augustusat this 
awful moment of his life and mineto be the means of disturbing 
that harmony which it is ever Augustus's and my wish to maintain. 
Augustus has not been introduced to any of my relations now present. 
He preferred not.' 
'WhythenI venture to assert' cried Mr Spottletoe'that the man 
who aspires to join this familyand "prefers not" to be introduced 
to its membersis an impertinent Puppy. That is my opinion of 
HIM!' 
The strong-minded woman remarked with great suavitythat she was 
afraid he must be. Her three daughters observed aloud that it was 
'Shameful!' 
'You do not know Augustus' said Miss Pecksnifftearfully'indeed 
you do not know him. Augustus is all mildness and humility. Wait 
till you see Augustusand I am sure he will conciliate your 
affections.' 
'The question arises' said Spottletoefolding his arms: 'How long 
we are to wait. I am not accustomed to wait; that's the fact. And 
I want to know how long we are expected to wait.' 
'Mrs Todgers!' said Charity'Mr Jinkins! I am afraid there must be 
some mistake. I think Augustus must have gone straight to the 
Altar!' 
As such a thing was possibleand the church was close at handMr 
Jinkins ran off to seeaccompanied by Mr George Chuzzlewit the 
bachelor cousinwho preferred anything to the aggravation of 
sitting near the breakfastwithout being able to eat it. But they 
came back with no other tidings than a familiar message from the 
clerkimporting that if they wanted to be married that morning they 
had better look sharpas the curate wasn't going to wait there all 
day. 
The bride was now alarmed; seriously alarmed. Good Heavenswhat 
could have happened! Augustus! Dear Augustus! 
Mr Jinkins volunteered to take a caband seek him at the newlyfurnished 
house. The strong-minded woman administered comfort to 
Miss Pecksniff. 'It was a specimen of what she had to expect. It 
would do her good. It would dispel the romance of the affair.' The 
red-nosed daughters also administered the kindest comfort. 'Perhaps 
he'd come' they said. The sketchy nephew hinted that he might have 
fallen off a bridge. The wrath of Mr Spottletoe resisted all the 
entreaties of his wife. Everybody spoke at onceand Miss 
Pecksniffwith clasped handssought consolation everywhere and 
found it nowherewhen Jinkinshaving met the postman at the door
came back with a letterwhich he put into her hand. 
Miss Pecksniff opened ituttered a piercing shriekthrew it down 
upon the groundand fainted away. 
They picked it up; and crowding roundand looking over one 
another's shouldersreadin the words and dashes followingthis 
communication: 
'OFF GRAVESEND. 
'CLIPPER SCHOONERCUPID 
'Wednesday night 
'EVER INJURED MISS PECKSNIFF--Ere this reaches youthe undersigned 
will be--if not a corpse--on the way to Van Dieman's Land. Send 
not in pursuit. I never will be taken alive! 
'The burden--300 tons per register--forgiveif in my distractionI 
allude to the ship--on my mind--has been truly dreadful. Frequently 
--when you have sought to soothe my brow with kisses--has selfdestruction 
flashed across me. Frequently--incredible as it may 
seem--have I abandoned the idea. 
'I love another. She is Another's. Everything appears to be 
somebody else's. Nothing in the world is mine--not even my 
Situation--which I have forfeited--by my rash conduct--in running 
away. 
'If you ever loved mehear my last appeal! The last appeal of a 
miserable and blighted exile. Forward the inclosed--it is the key 
of my desk--to the office--by hand. Please address to Bobbs and 
Cholberry--I mean to Chobbs and Bolberry--but my mind is totally 
unhinged. I left a penknife--with a buckhorn handle--in your 
work-box. It will repay the messenger. May it make him happier than 
ever it did me! 
'OhMiss Pecksniffwhy didn't you leave me alone! Was it not 
cruelCRUEL! Ohmy goodnesshave you not been a witness of my 
feelings--have you not seen them flowing from my eyes--did you not
yourselfreproach me with weeping more than usual on that dreadful 
night when last we met--in that house--where I once was peaceful-though 
blighted--in the society of Mrs Todgers! 
'But it was written--in the Talmud--that you should involve yourself 
in the inscrutable and gloomy Fate which it is my mission to 
accomplishand which wreathes itself--e'en now--about in temples. 
I will not reproachfor I have wronged you. May the Furniture make 
some amends! 
'Farewell! Be the proud bride of a ducal coronetand forget me! 
Long may it be before you know the anguish with which I now 
subscribe myself--amid the tempestuous howlings of the--sailors
'Unalterably
'Never yours
'AUGUSTUS.' 
They thought as little of Miss Pecksniffwhile they greedily 
perused this letteras if she were the very last person on earth 
whom it concerned. But Miss Pecksniff really had fainted away. The 
bitterness of her mortification; the bitterness of having summoned 
witnessesand such witnessesto behold it; the bitterness of 
knowing that the strong-minded women and the red-nosed daughters 
towered triumphant in this hour of their anticipated overthrow; was 
too much to be borne. Miss Pecksniff had fainted away in earnest. 
What sounds are these that fall so grandly on the ear! What 
darkening room is this! 
And that mild figure seated at an organwho is he! Ah Tomdear 
Tomold friend! 
Thy head is prematurely greythough Time has passed thee and our 
old associationTom. Butin those sounds with which it is thy 
wont to bear the twilight companythe music of thy heart speaks 
out--the story of thy life relates itself. 
Thy life is tranquilcalmand happyTom. In the soft strain 
which ever and again comes stealing back upon the earthe memory of 
thine old love may find a voice perhaps; but it is a pleasant
softenedwhispering memorylike that in which we sometimes hold 
the deadand does not pain or grieve theeGod be thanked. 
Touch the notes lightlyTomas lightly as thou wiltbut never 
will thine hand fall half so lightly on that Instrument as on the 
head of thine old tyrant brought down veryvery low; and never will 
it make as hollow a response to any touch of thineas he does 
always. 
For a drunkenbeggingsqualidletter-writing mancalled Pecksniff
with a shrewish daughterhaunts theeTom; and when he makes 
appeals to thee for cashreminds thee that he built thy fortunes 
better than his own; and when he spends itentertains the alehouse 
company with tales of thine ingratitude and his munificence towards 
thee once upon a time; and then he shows his elbows worn in holes
and puts his soleless shoes up on a benchand begs his auditors 
look therewhile thou art comfortably housed and clothed. All 
known to theeand yet all borne withTom! 
Sowith a smile upon thy facethou passest gently to another 
measure--to a quicker and more joyful one--and little feet are used 
to dance about thee at the soundand bright young eyes to glance up 
into thine. And there is one slight creatureTom--her child; not 
Ruth's--whom thine eyes follow in the romp and dance; whowondering 
sometimes to see thee look so thoughtfulruns to climb up on thy 
kneeand put her cheek to thine; who loves theeTomabove the 
restif that can be; and falling sick oncechose thee for her 
nurseand never knew impatienceTomwhen thou wert by her side. 
Thou glidestnowinto a graver air; an air devoted to old friends 
and bygone times; and in thy lingering touch upon the keysand the 
rich swelling of the mellow harmonythey rise before thee. The 
spirit of that old man deadwho delighted to anticipate thy wants
and never ceased to honour theeis thereamong the rest; 
repeatingwith a face composed and calmthe words he said to thee 
upon his bedand blessing thee! 
And coming from a gardenTombestrewn with flowers by children's 
handsthy sisterlittle Ruthas light of foot and heart as in old 
dayssits down beside thee. From the Presentand the Pastwith 
which she is so tenderly entwined in all thy thoughtsthy strain 
soars onward to the Future. As it resounds within thee and without
the noble musicrolling round ye bothshuts out the grosser 
prospect of an earthly partingand uplifts ye both to Heaven!